1922 PDF
1922 PDF
1922 PDF
CONTENTS
CHRIST MYLIFE ...................................... -~
Who is Christ y ....................................... 3
Outlook for 1922 ......................... 7
World-wide Campamn ....... 5
o
REPORT O~’ BRIT1SI[ l~tt~\CH ....
REPORT FROM CENTR2,L IL~IJROPI]AN ()FFICE ]~
HIPPODROME ~EETINC, .~EW ~I_’OI[IC ]1
]~.~tOVA]R Oh ]~AAL9 ............................ t~
Eh3ah’s Tauntmg .................................... ~2
Jehovah Invoked ............................... 1"
ELIJAH’S FLIGHT AND I{ETUKN ...... 1,
Sleet, and Refreshment .......... l!
Jezebel the Fumous .......................... £
A Lesson ~n Ommpotence ........................... 14
LETTERS I~ROKI AFIELD ........................... ]-~
or powers; all khlngs were created by Mm,and for him: Whensome came to Jesus to know what they might do
and he is before all {hmgs, and by him all things con- in order to wm’kthe works of God that would lead them
s~st. And he is the head of the body, the church; who .to life, he answered: "Moses gave you not that bread
is the })egnmmg,the firstborn, from the dead; that in from heaven; but my Father giveth you the true bread
~]] things he m@~thave the preeminence. For it pleased from heaven. For the bread of God is he which eometh
the Father that in him should all fullness dwell."-- downfrom heaven, and givefh life unto the world ....
Co]osslans1 : 15-19. I am the bread of life : he that eomethto meshall never
He 1.,_ designated "the Wordof God". As spokesman hunger; and he that beheveth on me shall never )ha’st."
or mouthpiece of Jehmah, his title originally was the (John 6: 32-35) Thus he designates hm>_elf as that
l..,,go,. Dr. Alexander Clark has well said concerning sustaining bTead prov)ded by Jehovah for the life of the
hi, /~tle Loges: "This term should be left untranslated world.
for the same reason that the names Jesus and Christ Light is a symbol td ld,,. x~tnle darkness symbohzes
are left untranslated. As every appellative of the Savior death. For four thousand years the world had been In
of the world was descriptive of some excellencies in darkness, and when Chmst appeared he was the hght
his person, nature or work, so the epithet Loges, which shining m a dark place. Aad those who have observed
sJgmfies a word, a word spoken, speech, eloquence, dec- and followed that light have been blessed w~th the op-
irma, reason, or faculty of reason, is very properly up- portunitms for life. To the Pharisee,s Jesus said: "I am
])lied to h~m." "In the beginning was the Word, and the hght of the aorhl: he that follox~eth nIe shall not
the Word was with [the] God, and the Word was [a] walk in darkness, but .,,hall have the hgMof life". ( John
god. The same was in the beginning with God." (John 8: 12) To his dlsmple.~ he ,aid: "As long as I am in the
1:1., 2) "And his name is called the Wordof God." world, I am the light of the ~orld". (John 9: 5) As
(Revelation 19: 13) St. John in his epxstle to the great light, he has guided the seekers after righteous-
church speaks of him as "the Wordof life". Through hess into the way of life exm’lastmg. He m the "Light
him Jehovah speaks the word that brings life to man- which hghteth every man that cometh Into the aorhl".
kind. --John 1 : 9.
In order that man might be redeemed from the curse The way to life was closed before tlm cmm,gor" the
of sm and death, the life of tMs mighty One was trans- Lord Jesu,_ Clmst. Although God had made prowsi.n
fmlod from the spin) to the human plane. Beforehis in his law that a perfect humanlife re@it be g~ve, as
lnrth as the man-child, the angel of Jehovah brought a ran,-.om or redemptwe price for Adamand Ms race,
to Mary. his earthly mother, the message: "He shall yet of all the people of earth none of th,:nl could bv
be gloat, and shall be called the Son of the I-hghc<t: any means redeem hl.~ b~other or g~xe fc~ God a ransom
and the Lord God shall give unto him the throne of for Mm.(Psahn 49 : 7) Godsent his ln.I ~.. d Son .le.~us
his father David; and he shall reign over the house of intothe ~orld to open the x~ay of bto. t~,a{ thereaftt,r
Jacoh forever; and of h)s kingdom there shall be no whosoever of mankind would behave up,m lmu ,-ball not
end".--Luke 1 : 32, 33. perish but have e~erla~-tmg hre. (.Iohl~:~ 10)Aspro-
Whenhe reached manhood’sestate, as provided by the feet man, he cameto g~ve Inn>elf a ral~*om for as many
terms of the law, he became a qualified, perfect h~gh as would believe upon Ins name. (Matthew 20 : 28)
priest ; and was designated as "the Lambof God". to be camethat the people might llave hfe and that the fadh-
slain that man nligllt be reheved from the great sin ful might have it more abnndantl 3.-John 10:10.
commlffed m Eden and the effects that resulted there- It was sin that depraved manof the r@at to life. "The
from. Whenhe entered upon his earthly ministry, h~s wages of sin is death." Thele could be no release from
forerunner announced: "Behold the Lamb of God, this condition of death except anolher perfect manwill-
which taketh away the sm of the world".--John 1: 29. ingly permit himself to be put to death a.s an offering
In Eden God had prm ~ded a tree of life, which pro- for sin. I-Ienee Jesus was made"to be [a] sm [offering]
duced perfect food and which would sustain the organ- for us, who knew no sin, that we nnght he made the
~sm of man and keep him ahve forever if obedmnt to righteousness of God in him". (2 Corinthians 5: 21)
God’s law. Because of disobedience man was removed By the grace of God he tasted death for every man.
from that tree of life and no longer permitted to feed (Hebrews2: 9) He was that holy, spotless one, without
upon its perfect food; hence m due tmle he dmd. Je- blemM~. Man’s redemption is not aeeoniphshed by an
hovah made a covenant with Israel m which he prolmsed miperfect one, by h~mself, nor by corruptible things,
to that nahon hfe ff they would keep his emenant. The "l ut x~ ith the precious blood of Chmst,as of a lambwith-
Psalmist states the rule of God concerning life thus: out blemish and without spot," who for that purpose
"T~u~_t in the Lord and do good; so shalt thou dwell in x~as foreordained before the foundation of the world.--
the land. and verily thou shalt be fed". Thus the Lord 1 Peter 1 : 19, 20.
slates that all who ~,li have hfe must trust Mm,be Christ Jesus u as not haughty, self-centered, or
obedient to his laws, and tlrus do good; aMshall there- at)stere, proud or amlntious. I-Ie was meek and lowly
fore be fed upon the bread that brings life everlasting. of heart, lie gave all honor and credi~ to the Father.
,rh. WATCH TOWER
tie came to (lo the lCafl~m’s ~dl and m this he de- ser~mes amongst the Israelites. The ema’t surrounding
hghh.,d. He was a sel~ant antong-q tho.-.e ~xho had the the tabervacle represented the eondmonof humanper-
t)r]\llege O*tellm~slnp x~ltl~ hmLA-. he ,-toted "[ am ~ectmn. Th, on] 3 entrance lute the court was by the
ammlg ~ou as he that smxeth . (Luke 0’):27) Being gale. The ?.ate p~elured Christ, the onb ua3r of en-
obe(hent to the Fath(q’, ~vd]. he humbled]mn.,elf to the trance rote justification. "I amthe door [Greelr, gate] :
~gnomhnou.~death of the cross, tie died. the just for b~ me ]± any manenter ]n, he shall be saved, and shall
the unjust, that he might bring us to God. (1 Peter go mand out. al)d find l,a-ture." (John 10.9) ’_Phus
3: l.q) ]t was not possible that he should be held shows the ~a3 that leads to hfe and the uay for aeqmr-
death, God having loosened the paros of death and lug tim 1>, feet food that sustains one .~ourneymgto the
rinsed him up to life. (Acts 2: 24) He arose trmm- goal. I-[e plainly states that he ~s the nay and that there
phant over death and the grave, "and being so raised, ]s none other "I am the way, the truth, and the life:
God hath made lnm both Lord and Chr>.t" --Aet.~ 2 : 36. no man eometh unto the Father, but bv me." (John
The plan of Jehovah wa~ kept secret and none ~ere 14: 6) All other ~ays are false, lie ~s the only true
able to knowit until his due time. Tin,,_ laet ,le.-_us way
Inctured to St. John in vision. The hea~enl~ Father is Christ ~s our w>_dom.He leads us rote the ways of
shown as seated upon the throne, ]loldmg in lu: hand life everlasting provided by Jehovah. "Of him are ye
a scroll sealed ~]thin and ~]thout, ret)le,-_enfll~g his m Christ Jesus, who of God is made unto us w~sdom,
plan, until someone wouhlprove tn.~ u orthm(.s: to ope,a and righteousness, and san(tificatmn, and redemptmn."
tile seal and thereb) becomethe executor of the &vine (1 Corinthians 1: 30) Whenwe came to the Lord, pre-
an’angemeut. Inquiry ~s made as to who is ~orthy to sent~ng ourselves in full surrender, he showed us the
open the book and to loo-e the seals the:reef. None wine right way. He imputed to us h~s merit and thereby
found nl heaven or emth And beeau..e of th>lact the b~eame our righteousness. And then he presents us to
messenger wept much. But one of the p,’ophcc~es of the Father. By the Father we were justified and set
old speaking, said: "Behold, the Lmnoi the hqhe of aside for the Master’s use, begotten to the divine nature,
Judah hath prevailed to open the book". By proving his and the sanehficahon or development began, which con-
loyalty to God even nnto death, he uas not only made tinues until our complete deh~erance when we shall
Lord and Christ, but ~as g~ven the great honor of be- have gained the v]etmv through our beloved Head and
coming the executor of God’, great plan, to uhomwas Lord.
justly given the title "the l,mn of the tube of Judah", He ~s tim Br~degroon~and the eh]~eh ~.~ the bride.
and upon whomwas conferred all power in heaven and (John 3 ?9; Re~elahon 19: 7) lie has I),~,trothed unto
in earth. (Matthew 28:18) And now he is Lord hml the church Ins t,nde and given her precious prom-
lm’ds and King of kings. (lle\elatmn 11.14) He i- ~se~ of -baring w:th ]ran the habitation which has been
Chmst, and ulhmately to hml every knee shall hm~ of in preparatmn for many centuries. To her h~ says: "I
tile ~hmgs in heaven and m earth, and exerv tongue wall 1,:troth thee unto me forever; yea. I will betroth
shall confess Christ as Lord, to the glory of God the thee unto me ~n righteousness, and m judgment, and
]?ather.--Phihppmns 2 : 10, 11. m loving kindness, and m mercies. I will even betroth
Ha~mggamed the most exalted pomtmn m the uni- thee unto me in truthfulness; and thou shalt knm~the
verse, ~tneh he will hoht forever, subject only lo .Teho- Lord." (Hoses 2: 19, 20) :He is the Head mer the
xah, m tmn and by him .Jehovah lind the foundatmn church ~h~eh ]s Ins body. Be it known, then, that he
for the new e,eation. He thelefore is the sohd rock cxermses the greatest degree of care and ~atehfulness
~q)on which the new ereatton ]s braiding. "’Behold., over those ~ho are thus betrothed to hint b3 being
la~ ~n Zmna duet cornerstone, elect, preemus [a sure begotten, anointed and baptized into Christ.
J’oundatmn]; and he that beheveth on h,m shall not Called to the heavenly calling, the Chnstmnis direct-
be confounded."( 1 l’vt~q "2 : d : ]~amh28 : 16) At Pente- ed that ~t is his privilege and duty to follow mthe foot-
cost, Jehovah, by Chr]st, began the selection of other steps of Jesus,who ~s his example. "For even hereunto
hying stones, eln,-ehng, prcl)atmg and fitting them for ~ere ye called; because Chn.~t also suffered for u.,, lea>
a place in the building of God. It ~s these to whom mgus an example, that ye should follow his steps."
God glveth the v~ctory through Christ. As ~e obs(’r~e (1 Peter ",:21) Of nece~,s~ty such following entails
the care with vbich these ha~c been selected, the gra- sutr~q.mg upon the one who follows. Journeying along
cious and loving l)rov~smn made for th(ur beginning and the narrm~ way~he soon finds that he ts hamperedby hB
development, our faith is raade ~,tr,ng, that he ~ho c,~n imperfect organism, and as a nm~e]cature ]s set
began the good ~ork will firnsh ~t to ht: (ran ~lory. uponby h~s enemies, the world, the flesh, and the devil.
"J’]~erefo]’e wemarl)e a,,-_m’edthat ~t ~e are mChrist, 3’he nm~c~ea~ure thus find.~ lnmself engaged ma deadly
and almhng there fa.thfullv to the end, x~e shall have battle. 17[], ltesh is one of his enem,es,~dule other erie-
tl~e ~]etorv o~er all tile erie]hie., of tile newcr(’ai~on. rams operate through the weaknesses of his flesh. The
Fores]malta; ~ng the prel),watmn and dexetopnmnt of mind of the Ilesh wars against the new mind. The old
the new meahon, God estabhshed the tabernacle and ~ts mind was long m control of the mganism, because born
BROOKLYN, N. ~.
,rE WATCH TOWER
in sin and shapen in iniquity. But nowthe new mind, and you may be mistreated because of this misunder-
the mind of Christ, has taken possession and must con- standing; but be not d~scouraged. This experience may
trol; hence the warfare is on. "Theflesh lusteth against be to give you an opportunity to develop long-suffering.
the spirit, and the spfi’lt against the ilesh; and these Love is long-suffering and kind. As one of his followers,
are contrary the one to the other, so that ye cannot do St. Paul says: "Christ Jesus came into the world to
the things that ye would."--Galatmns 5: 17. save stoners, of whmnI am chief. Howbmtfor this
Experience proves that St. Paul ~as mght when he cause I obtained mercy, that in me first Jesus Christ
says: "Ye cannot do the things that ye would". To m~gbtshowforth all long-suffemng, for a pattern to them
wmthe victory, then, over the flesh what shall I do? Muchshould hereafter beheve on hnn to life everlast-
The apostle Paul answers: "Walk m the spn’lt [follow nlg." (1 Timothy 1: 15, 16) As a follower of Jesus
the way of Christ Jesus and by him gain the victory], you may be misjudged and your mohves m~pugned as
and ye shall not fulfill the lust of the flesh". (Galatlans evil. Let each Chnshan have in mind that man ~s not
5:16) Wtnle the new creature must continue to fight his judge, but that all must stand before the judgment
against the wrongflfl tendencies, never yMdmgto his seat of Christ (P~omans14: 10), and it ~s he that judges
adversaries, he must not become discouraged because w~th a righteous ~udgment, for lie is that Just One.--
of inability to think, speak or act perfectly. You make Acts 22 : 14.
,q m~take and you are truly sorry for it. Nowwhat Satan, the ndversaly of the new creatmn, the dewl,
shall you do? Go mm~edlately unto the Lord. He is as a roaring lion ~alks about necking whomhe may
the merciful Christ. tie is the High Priest of our pro- de’,our. (i Peter 5: 8) Hisclnef concern is to de.~trov
fessmn; he knows and understands the mflrnuties of the seed of prmnlse. Workln~ through the weakne.~ses
those who walk in the narrow way. (Hebrews 2: t7) of the fl~sh, the organ>m of the church fins sMe the
"Let us therefore come confidently unto the throne of vad, he stn’s up strife amongst the brethren. Iu tins
grace, that ave mayobtain mercy, and find grace to help x~ ay he en&avorsto devour tlfem. "If ve lute and devour
m tram of need."--ttebrews 4: 16. one another, take heed that ye be not consumedone of
The mind Js the battleground. It ~s the mind that another." (Oalatmns 5: 15) If each one of Christ’s
mu:t be t~ansformed. (Romans 12: 2) The success folIm~ers uould keep mmnld ins m her proper rela{~on-
the battle of the Clmstmn, hm~ever, will depend in slnp to Christ Jesus, and therelore h,s or her prop.er
large measure upon ~hat oeeupms his mind. For this relatmnslnp to each other nmmber, a more sfrenuou~
cause St. John wrdes: "My dear cMldren, these thmg~ effmt would be put forth to axmdthe eontrmersms such
wrlt~ I unto you that ye sm not". By this he means as deeembed by the Apostle, x~h,eh allse alnongst the
that the new creature should haxe in mind the things brethren. The followers of the Ma<ter should see to it
&scu~sed in Ms epistle concerning the Lord Jehovah that they do not lend then~seh, es as instruments to
and the Lord Jesus. the development of the ehm’ch and Satan.
the glormus things that are set before its members.The They must keep up the warfare against t,la~s enemy.
mind filled with such things will add strength to battle Not only is the x~ arfare aamnst Satan and tbe flesh and
against the adversarms. But while in the flesh the the sprat of the world, but against prmetlmhttes, powers,
Chrlstmn is not perfect. If because of weakness he and a host of demons. (Ephesmns 6: 12) But xxhen the
stumbles, he must rise up and go on m the battle. "A battle is ragtag w~th 13ereoness ronnd about, figbt,,-~s
just man falleth seven tinier and nseth up again." within and fightmgs ~lthout then ~s the tm~e for breth-
(Proverbs 24: 16) Therefore we dlould not become ren to stand shoulder to shoulder, fighting for the go,pel
discouraged, but press on. Hence St. John savs to the of Jesus Chmstand never quaffing before the adversaries.
church: "If any mansin, ~e have an advocate x~lth the Conscious of our own weaknesses, and seeing we are
Father, Jesus Christ the righteous". (1 John 2: 1)As beset by such a host of enennes, howcould we ever hope
Advocate or Counsellor lie appears in the presence of to ~m against such great odds? Of our own selves we
God for us. Not only is he an Advocate. but he is a could not {vm; but let each one keep in mind that only
Friend also, a true Friend at court. He is a Friend self can separate us from the love of God which is in
that sticketh closer than a brother (Proverbs 18:24), Christ Jesus our Lord. (Romans 8:30) Greater is
ah~avs unselfishly looldng after the interest ofhis fol- that is for us than all that can be against us, and if
lm~ err. What must we as his followers do to be sure we abide in him, victory is sure.
of hi~ friendship? "He that loveth with a pure heart, Christ is the Captain of our salvation (Hebrews 2:
and hath 2race upon Ins lips, shall have the king for 10), and it pleased God in bringing many sons to glory
his friend."--Proverbs 22: 11. Leeser. to make him (the Captain) perfect through sufferings.
To be misunderstood ~s a part of the experience of Hence he knows how to sympathize fully with those
tho Chllstmn. Jesus was nnsundcrstood, even by those whoare being perfected through like experiences and is
who x, alked x~th hm~m the flesh for more than three not ashamedto call them brethren. Let each one, then,
3em.~. Manyx~lll nttsunderstand you as Ills follower, be of good courageandknow that Godwill give us the
WATCHTOWER 7
victory through Christ Jesus our Captain, our Redeemer book, "The Harp of God". This book is specially
and Lord. adapted for beginners in Bible study and is proof con-
This is the Mighty One ~ho is leading the hosts of elusive that millions now living will never die. With
heaven against the entrenched hosts of darkness and this book the same ground that has been gone over can
wickedness. It is the last time. The great battle is on. be again canvassed. Every one to whoma "Millions"
His armies are following where he leads and victory to. booklet was sold last year should want "The Harp of
him is sure. His followers maybe sure of victory if the,, God"this year. It contains the message that w~ll com-
abide in Christ and his Wordabides in them. The~" fort the sad and bring joy to the hearts of those who
that are with him in this warfare and that will b~ are looking for a better time. Weshould keep in mind
victorious are the called and chosen ones whocontinue that before any one can get hfe everlasting he must
faithful even unto the end. This means that their love have a knowledgeof Godand of Christ. It is our privi-
for Jehovah and for Christ Jesus is supreme; and to lege to help others get that knowledge. The prmmpal
love Godand love Christ means that we will do his com- work, therefore, is not to sell books, but to induce the
mandmentswith a joyful heart.--1 John 5 : 3. people to acquire the knowledgethat is necessary. Every
He is Christ, the obedient one. He said: "I have Sunday school teacher will find the "Harp" book par-
kept myFather’s commandmentsand abide in his love. ticularly ~alnable m the preparatmn and teaching of
If ye keep my commandments ye shall abide m mylove." lessons m the Bible. Every Sunday ~chool pupil will
(John 15 : 10) Not only did Christ Jesus keep the com- find It of great a,d as a textbook. In the nominal
mandments of Jehovah, but he did it zealously; and churches and Sunday schools are doubtless yet manywho
this zeal and earnestness with which he proved himself have some faith in the Lord and who will want to know
the true and faithful Witness led to persecution. It is the truth, and to whomthe Lord will send the truth.
written concerning him: "The zeal of thmo house hath The workers should see to ~t that these teachers and
eaten me up". (Psalm 69: 9) As sons of God, members Sunday school pupds have the opportumty of providing
of the house of sons, each one must have that zeal pecu- themselves with the "Harp" book.
liar to the Lord’s house, a loving, glowing zeal to do Every class or ecclesia should inaugurate a Bible
with our might what our hands find to do. study amongs~the young people of the consecrated, and
assign some brother to teach, using the "Harp" as a
OUTLOOK FOR 1922 textbcok. Rememberthat the children now growing up
The year 1921 just closed was a year of wide wmless have open minds, which minds should be prepared for
for the truth. United in heart and in action, the mem- the kingdom; and they should be madefit for the usa of
bers of the Lord’s army this side the vail have gone the princes in the earth in carrying on the new govern-
forth declaring the message: ’The kingdom of heaven ment. No parent could leave Mschildren a greater heri-
is here, millions nowliving will never die’. During the tage than to give it nowa knowledgeof the divine plan.
year colporteurs, sharpshooters, and class workers com- Your neighbor needs the truth and his children need
bined numbered almost 10,000 persons m the United the truttl; and it is your privilege to give it to them.
States alone. This number of workers should be doubled The "Harp" volume contains more than 1500 questions
during the year 1922 just opening. Every consecrated with answers. Encourage your nmghbor to get the book
child of God, seeing and appreciating the fact that the and read it and to encourage his children to study, by
kingdomof heaven is being set up, should eagerly grasp giving them so many questions daily to answer.
the opportunity to let others knowabout it and thereby Through the "Bulletin" announcement will shortly
be a faithful witness to the Lord and a comforter to be made to the directors and workers of a systematic
those that mourn. method of doing the canvassing. First the ground will
These workers in 1921 called on 6,067,544 families: be gone over with the combination until it is exhausted.
and counting 3.5 persons to a family, approxmmtely Then will follow the canvass for the "Harp" book, with
21,000,000, or about one-fifth of the populatmn of the a card system of questions to be mailed em’h week by
United States, were afforded an opportunity to hear the the classes to those interested, the purpo.,e being to re-
truth. Suppose the number of workers should be doubled duce the purchasers of the bookto read it, and then ~lll
during the year 1922, and these workers by putting forth follow the orgamzahonof classes. A tlm’d canvass will
a great effort should double the number of calls made, be madefor the STUDIES IN T:I-[E SCRll’TURES, the price
that would mean practically 84,000,000 persons would of which ~lll be greatly reduced so as to be put within
have an opportunity to hear the truth. the reach of all. Bible classes should be started in homes,
There is now on hand in possession of the classes a and every brother whois able to teach should be given
limited number of the combinatlons--"The Finished an opportumty to teach the truth.
Mystery," "Can the Living Talk with the Dead ?" and Brottler Russell stated in 1916 that the purpose of
"Millions" booklets--and these should be in the hands the V. D. M. questions was to ascertain how many
of the people within a short while. This will leave a brethren had the qualification to teach. The tnne has
clear field for the campaign to be made with the new come to put this into practical use. The operations for
BROOI(I,YN,N. Y.
WATCH TOWER
the year 192’2 should afford an opporfumty for every pai~ is on such as the world before has never known
one that is quahfied to teach to do so. There will be and will never again experienee. It is a figU¢ between
pubhc lectures, private meetings, Bible classes, new ones Satan and the alhes of hm empire on one side, ague;st
being started. The people must know the truth. It is the Chest on the other s~de. God’s judgment is wmtten
the Lord’s hmeand ~t is the Christian’s greatest privi- ,~eam~t Satan’s empire. It must fall. God will bring
lege to make kno~n flus truth to others. th~s great vietory for righteousness through Chest, re-
lea~wg tlle people from then’ thraldom. The whole
Beginmng with 1922. tile subsemptmn price of THE
creation has long been groaning and travmhng in pain,
GOL>>:xAce is reduced to $1.00 per 3"ear, thus placing
it w~thmthe reach of almost every one. An intensive wa~tmgfor this day. Let those ~ho see ~t now liit up
campaign m due tmw will be canled on to put T~E thmr heads and reaome.
GOLDEN AflE into the ]lands ot hundreds of thousands of Chmst comes to lead the x~o~ld into truth. "Moses
people. truly saul unto the ldther.~. A prophet shall the Lord
your God raise up unto 3ou of your lnethre,u hke unto
WORLD-WIDE CAMPAIGN me; hun shall ye hear m all things whatsoever he shall
On Septenlber 25, 192A, 0ctoh~’ 30 and December11 say unto you." (Acts 3:22) Chest ~s that great Pro-
phet, now come to procla,n h~s me,,sage of dehverance
ther~atter lmhhe meehngs were ~unultaneously held m
to mankind.
all pair,_ ot the UmtedSlab,~ and Canada, at winch tim
message "Mllhon~ No~ I~lxmg Wall Never Din" ~as Chest has come as the great Priest. Of him it is
~r~tten: "Thou art a priest forever after the order of
proclamled. This umted act,on I:,~s brought .-plendld
results. The Lord’s ble.-.-mg ~s upon it. It has afforded Melctnzedek". (PsMm110:4) He is that great Priest.
There has never been one hke unto him before; there
opportumty for all the Pdgr,ms, ehlers and other Imbhc
will never be another hke unto him. As the great Prmst
speaker.~ to give a ~ltne, s for tile truth. Upto this tram
tins c;.ort ha~ been omfined to the Umted States and he will nnmster unto the people and bestow upon them
Cana(ltt part~cula~l3 ; but nox~111 the near future ~t x~ d[ the blessings lo~g ago promised by Jehovah.
be extelM,,_Mto every cmmtrvw ttle world uher’,,, tile Satan w~th lns beastly organization in earth has op-
truth is known. The date l’a, b-en set and the classes pres;ed mankindfor ages. The rulers of the earth under
will be notdicd of the e\act date through the "Bulletin", his influence have explmted the people, subjecting them
for a world-wide proclamation ou a certain Sunday by ~mlence and m~ustme. Chest comes as the great
aiternoon of tile rues, age "MdhonsNowLiving Will King no~ to rule m righteousness. (Isamh 32 : 1) "And
Never D~e". It ~fll lie preached m every language m the governmentshall be upon h~s shoulder," and he wall
whmhthe truth is now pnbh~hed and prohably more. bring hfe and peace and happiness to mankind, for he
Weinvite ihe WaTC*~ Tox;mt readers, the consecrated is "the everlasting Father and the Prince of Peace".--
brethren throughout the world, l egardless of language, Isamh 9 : 6.
to lore in tlns proelanmtmnof the messageof the truth Chr>t comes as that "one mediator between God and
on the day allpomted. Begin to make pleparatlon for men"; and he ~fll medmte the new law covenant and
it nnmedmtel~. There will be much advertising matter through it will minister unto the people health, strength,
and many tracts for dlstnbuhon. There will be serwce life, and happiness. (1 Tnnothy 2: 5) lie ~lll put the
in proeuring balls, arranging for the meetings, etc., and law of Godin fhmr mindsand x~ :’~te it upontheir healts.
thus every one will be afforded an opportunity to do ---Itebrews 10 : ] 6.
something. Even tile crippled and those who are unable Chest, therefore, ~s the de,~n’e of all natmm,.(Haggai
to leave then’ homes can partm~pate by thmr prayers 2: 7) Long bare they x~:~te(l and hoped and prayed for
unto the Lord for Msblessing, remembering the pmture relief, not kno~mghow ~t was coming; but now ~t has
given mD~wd’sexperience, that they who stayed behind come.--Romans 8: ~2, 19.
with tile stuff should hkewlse be counted in the army, It ~s under th~s nnghty One, the King of kings, the
whose hearts and prayers are umted w~th their brethren Lord of glory, that h~s people on earth are now priw-
at the front. leged to he enhsted. The membersof h~s earthly army
Pohhcal eampaigns have been waged between great a~e fighting the last desperate conflict. It is a fight for
contending parties amidst much exmtement of tile peo- life- fightings w~thmand fightings without. Within
ple, resulting m the putting out of one government and ourselves we cannot gain this victory ; but Godwill g~ve
the bringing in of another. With the hope of bettering us the victory through Christ, if we hold fast the begin-
the eon&tion of the people, monarchies have been ning of our confidence unto the end, rejoicing in hope.
overturned to be replaeed bv republics. Nations have (Hebrews3 : 6) Therefore ’qet us not be weary in well-
fallen before natmns and kingdoms before democracies dmng, for in due season we shall reap if we relax not".
hi an effort on the part of the people to alleviate suffer- (Galatians 6: 9, Diaglott)Will you gain the victory this
lllg liumanitv. But Satan, the god of this world, has year ? It is a fight of faith. Accordingto your faith be
ovelrcached all human effort. :Now, however, a cam- it unto you.
~ANUARY 1, 1922
WATCH TOWER
The hope set before the Chmshanis life divine w~th of Christ Jesus, the Captain, rememberthat it is his
all its atto-dant olm,y and honor. What a prize m duty not only to be loyal to the Captain, but a real
prospect ! Before tile Chmstiancan come to tile frmtlon fmend to h~s hrother, each member of the body. Let
of his hope.~ tm mu~tprove Ins faithfulness unto the end. each one, therefore. ~eeto ~t that peace prevails among.,t
A1)~olute loyalty leads to victory. A.pprematmgthe fact those who profess Ins name and that a sohd and umted
that he > oil the Lord’s s~de; that Christ Jesus is his front lie presented to tlne enemy,and all go forth m the
true fmc,_~d,tie can truly .~av: ’Christ is mvall: Christ hattie re]m(mgm the hope. "And ahove all these things
Is mvhfe’. "Keepyour heart with all dlh’,,:anee, for cut put on line ~hmhis the bond of perfectness. And let
of Jt are the issues of life." (Iho~mhs4’ 23) Godwall the pc, ace of Godrule m your hearts, to the whmhalso
showhn’th his strength m heb:llf of those pos,es_slPg ,t ve at,. called m one body; and b~, ve t, hankSd. Let the
per~ {t eondhtmn of hcdrt (2 Chromclc.,_ 16’ O) Then word ct C’M>_t dx~ell m you mehly m all wlsdom."--
let each soldmr of the cross fightm’i’ raider the banner Co]os~mns3 : 14-16.
The audience was particularly attentive nnd not infre- In the ]~d,tnes -Angle books xxme on sale. Altogethel’ 290l
qtlently ~h(med decorous en|huumum by applause at ~ome topic., o:t tile boolt.s ~ere sold. m(:ludlug sevela[ hun~h’ed
(,f the more welcome points of the lecture As iu the case (h-l,-ued ot lit /lent of the Iillfldlng 1o tho~e ~ho could lid(
iii lilly large nu(hence. ~ome*exx were (hspleased. but anl(~ng get ill Ill ad(htmn to the~e nh.mt nine hundred were sold
those x~l}o ga~e e\pre.,.,.mn to their views, by fill’ the nl,t- on nnlll or(]el’,~ (lel ]x ilia, fronl the ~ld~el’|i_~enlents
iority were comforted and eat(refuged I)y the hope of near Altogether tim fJ’l,,ll¢ls .~t (;~e.ttel’ New~7ork felt luuch
relief from the world’s ,.~rea~t ill,tress and perplexity. encouraTed that tile la,Jd had ,-e(,n ht Io blevs thmr eftm’ts
Just prior to the begmmng of the lecture and before the to speak for hun m a pla<e x~ here f,t~th in t-lod’s XVol’d is
~peaker came onto the pl,ttlorrn t~ carefully wo,’ded canvass, ve 1",~ small
JEHOVAH OR BAAL?
[Co~, CLLTDEDFRO I~,[ DECEMBEI{
I5 ].bSUE]
Idolatry was not a mere sin into which people grmlunlly de, out Jews (Ac_ts 10:;): Darnel 6"10; l’,~ahn 55:17).
sunk: hut it was a Satanic device into ~lneh people rose Elll’lli hpg.(n to t;Itmt the unh,lpl)v proldml> of the (lev~l’s
in ruder to glnttfy the lusts of tile fleql undm tile rio:(l{ rt’llglOII He q~onled lo them /lmt lhev ]l:ld I)ettev ’pall
el it,he)on. [i;l~] (~x hich nleans glory find 14 aqsocmted x~ xth hnn I.uder’ Yes, hv ~s a ~od nil ~t:ht, and lie ~s very
the ~plendor ,f |he 6un) was else~xhere called Moloch Baal flitmtl~e to your plendm,~-, that 14 ltxll3 (lemon.-tvated bv
’~, ext, l’llotl,,
l,u It more <t)emlJc and distinctive name of the .~ame deity, tile ouleome of your lnorltlllg ]Alu[ doll’( ~ive
as is seen by eomparlng Jerenlpth 7.31 and 19.5. This lip. Either l:laal is n~ hi> hbv,t]3 thinking over ~a~> and
consideratmn helps us to understun(l many places x~here mean~ to hold his influence xxilh the n’mon or he Ires
tbe word P;aa] is used singly. In the ht>t of tim ford 3e’lrs gone aside for ~ome pl~s:lle matter. It may be also tbat
of wihlerness wandering Israel joined themselves to 13aal- he is givlnt,, audten(e to others. In an) of these cases, let
peer and "ate the sacrifices of the dead". (Putdm 106 28) him know that thl~ z> ,in ,mportant thing It will not do
In the seventh or inmost shrine of the Moloch temples a for lure to be tn a profonnd re~eri(, mm ~xhen hi9 name
large brazen image of that calf-headed god wax placed, and prestige among the xxhole people are at stake. Call
which was heated up on occasions, to which were s~tcmliced hxm louder Perhaps lie is ()fig on a hunting trip. But don’t
and by which were consumed the chihlren of devotees. Con- let that fact discourage you, here is b~gger game than any-
neeted with these offerings of children were minor sacri- thing lie could bag m heaven. Shout’ Let him know th,~t
fices which were eaten by the members of the family of all lq now in the balance. He cannot afford to lose all hi~
the dead. This was the terrible sm of Israel ](t-t before credit and reverence on e,lrth merely to pursue doubtlul
entering Canaan. They sacrificed their living sons to Baal quarry m the happy hunting groun(l~ above.
or Moloch and celebrated the event by eating the associated Stung by these taunts of Ehlah, the priests of Baal gale
~acrifices. Solomon fell so far as to construct a temple to themselves all the more ardently to the work of arou~-ma
this god on the Mount of Olives across the Valley of Tophet lheir god, this time gashing theinselves with kmveu and
from the city of his father. Toph means a drnm or tom-tom d&ggers until the blood spurted out upon their half-naked
u hleh w,qs used In connection with these barlmrous sacri- bodies. If Baal would not take notice ot the bullock’> blood,
fices to drown out the cries of the perishing child. perhaps he would of theirs. "But there was neither vo~ee,
These facts lend color to the incident befme us; for Baal nor any to answer, nor any that paid attention ’" ];ut the
~as not only the god of the sun, or celestial hre, but fire dizzy orgy proeeedcul with more or less of fervor u Ill] l]h l:~ll
~as also used in the most intimate of 13aalite sacrifices. was ready with his sacrifice.
From morning, probably about nine o’clock or the hour Some time before three o’clock Ehjah called fm Ihe .l i tell-
of the morning sacrifice in the Temple, until noon the lion of the people, who by this time would lie x~ell x~eariod
priests of Baal invoked their god. During this time Elijah of the senseless and fruitless ravings of the he’lttten.,l)ro-
said not a word The wild, heathenish outcries of the pagan phets. He invited them to draw near to tim spot xxhere am
prophets rang along the mountain side--"Baal, 0 hear us, ~ncient altar of Jehovah lay m lump. It was met’ely an
and answer us !" But tile sad comment is made: "There was earthen altar built during the brae of the Judges ar dnring
no voice, nor ony that anb’,~ered" the reign of Saul. Elijah took twelve ~tones, to remind tbo
Obtaining no response, no rile from heaven, the plophets pe,ple of tim fact that the divine pronnge9 ~ere asgocmled
incre,tsed the vigor of then’ oulcmes and ,’tdded to. them with the twelve tribes and not merely x~th tim n~wthe~u
the x~hirling, swirling dances ~hich are still uqe(1 ih all ten. These stones h# used as a cap ()r covering t, the
he’(then lands They jumped up ;m(l down about tim ,Olaf earlhen altar. Aroum] tins allot he (lu~ n trench deoo
until noon, enough to set a two+~eah (txxenty-one-qnnr~l measure m.
Not all people could endule such strenuou> and ~mlent Then he placed wood m propel ,)r,l(,~ ,~l,,)~e tim st,me9 aml,
e\m ciges. Pn~::ln prol)hets, even now in lhe O~ tent. tire spe- havll]g cut the bnllocl-7 Ill piece-_’, he 1,ud it Oil {he D(I(I(I
el:lily instrnctc’d in this sort of g3mnflv_lic8. Their bodies Then, to demonstrate p.-tttxel,x lhnt none of lit(, he,,~h(,l~
ate kept lithe and supple by frequent anointing.>. deceptions were going to be pl:lctt~ed, he el’doled v,~.no fig
tile people to draw f(}llr I,:vl’els of water il’Onl [lie ~.],l Illf£-
ELI JAIl’S TAUNTING full h]ook lle,qrhy ,tlld to l)41111 lhese Oil {(’q) t~f |he -,,,tl lille
At noon, which was one of the seasons of prayer for and the wood. This order was zepeated yet a thtld tram,
WATCH
TOWER la
until tile sam lhce, the wood, the altar, and even the trench more simple and artless than this descmi)timl; and yet how
round about were thoroughly drenched with water. These amazingly full and satisfactory is the whole account.
minute points establish beyond the possibility of a doubt This was a dramatic spectacle for the people and their
the miraculous nature of’ the subsequent fire. interest in it was heightened by the long, boresome u ~utmg
JEHOVAH INVOKED o£ the day. The prophets of Baal were taken and slam by
Then follows the calm, dignified prayer of the Prophet: the Brook Klshon, rather by Eluah’s hand or by hm order.
"0 Jehovah. the God of Abraham, of Isaac, and of Israel, This was in fulfillment of one of the most terribly expheit
let *t be knm~n this day that thou art God in Israel, and of the statutes of Mo~es’ law which condemned to death
that I am thy servant, and that I have done all these ttlings those ~ho endeavore(l to be(tuce the people to idolatry.
at thy word. Hear me, 0 Jehovah, hen, me, that this peo- (Deuteronomy :13.6-9) And why was not Ahab slain, since
ple may know that thou, Jehovah, art God, and that thou he was tile most responsible of all in the gathering? Tim
hast turned their heart back again" from idolatry to a Prophet doubtless knex~ that he would be punished in a
~ecognitlon of thee. This formula comprising the names special manner- It was not many years before he too was
ot the three ancient patriarchs w‘as mte,aded to turn the killed.--1 Kings 22 : 34-36.
mmd~ of the people back lo ~he first t~me it was used, Ehjah heard the sound of approaching rain. This was a
where at the burning bush ,lmvah’s angel manifested miraculous hearing; for no one else had perceived it as
Inm~elf aq u fl,me of fire--Exodlls R:2. yet, and the actual storm was many miles distant at sea.
Then tell the l~re from heaven. It consumed the burnt Ah,ab went up the mountain to eat and drink; but Elijah
sa(,rfl]ce and even the altar itself. The process of this con- went to the top of the mountain to prn.x Most metx would
~umptmn is very lemarknble; and calculated to remove the have thought that they had done a day’s work already,
possibility of a suspicion that there was any concealed fire but Elijah was wilhng to be used as long as the Lord chose
whatever. The fire earn~ doum from heaven. The pieces of to use hHn. He prayed about the ram and sent his servant
the sacmfice were first consumed. The wood next. to show seven times to observe the Mediterranean. Only on the
Ihat it x~a.~ not even by means of the wood that the flesh seventh observatmn was there a cloud ~lble. This was the
\~ a.b burned. Tile twelve stones ~ere also consumed, to show sign Ehjah looked for. He sent his servant to advise Ahab
ih’lt It %%,1Sno co|ninon fire, but one whose agency nothing to move with all haste in his chariot to Jezreel. But ~-hile
(:nu]d resl,t. The dust, or earth of which the altar was Ahab drove furmusly to outrun if possible the blackening
constructed, was burnt up. And the water that was in the storm, the ~trength of tile Lord rested on Elijah so that
Jrench x~ as, by the actmn of th~s fire, entirely evaporated. he was able on foot to outrun Ahab in his charmt and
The action of the fire was, in every respect, downwa~l, actually preceded him into the gates of the city. The dis-
contrary to the nature of all earthly flames. :Nothing can he tance was above mghteen miles.
"’f It Ill stattt~ llpon ~ty *eat(l~ and ~eill set my" foot
frijol/, the ’/’oael, alltl it, ill totl~ch to see ~lhat lie ~t,~ll
aqy ~ltto 1lie, (llld llhrlt (lll~l~l I shall lllak6 to them
thttt t)p~o~c t~lc --Jloba!.l, tll. 2
Upon the earth distress of nations with perplexity; the sea attd the waves (the restless, di:rontentetD tt~,Lrtn~, m~n s hearts falling Wlemfor fear and for looking to ~he
things coming upon the earth (~oetety), for the powers of the heavens (eedeslastlel~ln) shall he shaken ~hen )e see these things begin to come to
then know t, hat tho Kingdom of God Im at hand. Look ug, hft Up your heads, re,oleo, for your redemption draweth nlgil--Ma.Lt 24 33, M,~rk I3 20. Luke 21:2~-$1.
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS ~&CRED MISSION
T HIS Sourllal
presented
Is one of the prime factors
in all parts of the civilized
or instruments in the system of Bible instruction,
world by the ~VATCtt TO~ER BIBLE ~ TRACT~OCIETY, cnarterea
or "Seminary Extens!on’~ noW. b~ll~
A.U. lb~, ’~or u~e ~’r~
motion of Christmn Knowledge". Jt not only serves as a class room where Bible students may meet in the study of the divine Word bu~
also as a channel of communication through which they may be reached with announcementq of the Society’s conventions and of the
coming of its traveling representatives, styled "Pilgrims", and refreshed with reports of its conventions.
Our "Berean Lessons" are topical rehearsals or reviews of our Society’s published STUDTES-m0qt entertainingly arranged, and very
helpful to all who would memt the only honorary degree which the Society accords, ~lz., Vcl b~ Dei Jllsn~ster (V. D. hr.), which translated
into English is Minister el God’s Word. Our treatment of the International Sunday School Lessons is specially for the older Bible
students and ~eachers. By some this festure is considered indispensable.
This journal stands firmly for the defense of the only true foundation of the Christian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
~redemption through the prectous blood of "the man Christ Jesus, who gave himself a ransom [a corresponding price, a substitute] for
all". (1 Peter 1 : 19 ; 1 Timothy 2 : 6) I~uildmg up on this sure foundation the gold, mher and precious stones (1 Corinthians 3 :
15; 2 Peter 1 : 5-11) of the Word of God, its further mission is to "make all see ~hat is the fellowship of the mystery which...has
been hid in God, . . . to the intent that now might be made known by the church the manifold wisdom of God"--"whlch in other ages
was not made known unto the sons of men as it is now revealed".--Ephesians 3:5-9, 10.
It stands free from all parties, sects and creeds of men, whtle it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
subjection to the will of God in Chmst, as expressed in, the holy Scriptures. It-is thus ~ree to declare boldly whatsoever the Lord
hath spoken--according to the divine wisdom granted unto us to understand his utter,races, Its attitude is not dogmatic, but confident;
for we know whereof we affirm, treading with implicit faith upon the sure promises of God. ]t is held as a trust, to he used only in his
service ; hence our decisions relative to what may and what may not appear in its columns mus~ be according to our judgment of his
good pleasure, the teaching of his Word, for the upbuild~ng of his people in grace and knowledg~ And we not only invite but urge ou~
readers to prove all its utterances by the infallible Word to which reference is constantly made to facilitate such testing,
TO US THE SCRIPTURES CLEARLY TEACH
That the church is "the temple of the living God", peculiarly "his workmanship" ; that its construction has been in progress throughouil
the gospel age ever since Christ became the world’s Redeemer and the Chief Corner Stone of his temple, through which, when
hni~hed, God’s hle~lng shall come "to all people", and they find access to him.--1 Corlnthians 3:16, 17 ; Ephestans 2 : 20-22 ;
Genesis 28 : 14 ; Galatians 3 : 29.
~hat meantime the chiseling, shaping, and polishing of consecrated believers in Chmst’s atonement for sin, progre&qes; and when th0
last of these "li~ing stones", "elect and precmus," ~hall ha~e been nmde ready, the great Master Workman will bring all together
in the first resurrection ; and the temple ~hall be filled with his glory, and be the lnee~mg place between God and men throughout
the Mlllenntum.--Revelation 15 : 5-8.
"Phat the basis of hope, for the church and the world, lies in the fact that "Jesus Christ, by the grace of God, tasted death for every
man," "a ransom for all," and will be the true light which hghteth every man that eometh ~nlo the ~vorld", "in due tlmo".--
Hebrews 2 : 9 ; John 1 : 9 ; 1 21mothy 2 : 5, 6.
~£hat the hope of the church is that she may be like her Lord, "see him as he is," be "partakers of the divine nature’,’ and share his
glory as his Jolnt-helr.--1 John 3.2; John 17:24; Romans 8 :]7; 2 Peter 1:4.
~hat the present mission of the church ]s the perfecting of the saints for the future work of service; to develop in herself every
grace; to be God’s wltness to the ~orid; and to prepare to be kings and pmests ]n the next age.--Ephesiaus 4 : 12 ; ]~latthew 24
14; Revelation 1: 6; 20:6.
That the hope for the world lies in tlae blessings of knowledge and opportumty to be brought to all by Christ’s Millennial kingdom, thQ
restitution
t of all that was lost in Adam, to all the wllhng and ohedlenL at the hands of theAr Redeemer and his glorified chured3
when all the wllfully wicked will be destroyed.--Acts 3:19-23 ; lsalah 35.
trated to help the Lord save others. What a wily trick trade or vocation of the follower of Christ is "to do the
of the adversary! There is but one soul for each person will of God", to grow in love, perfecting holiness, wath-
to save, and that cannot be done without assistance from out which no one shall see God; "to give diligence to
God. "For by grace are ye saved, through faith; and make your calling and election sure".
that not of yourselves: it is the gift of God."(Ephesians "That needeth not to be ashamed"] "So tha~ you may
2: 8) "For it is God which worketh in you both to will
be menof transparent character, and may be blameless,
and to do of his good pleasure." (Philippians 2 : 13) How
in preparation for the day of Chmst." (1Ve!/mo,th)
necessary for each one whohopes to receive the promised "Nowunto him that is able to keep you from falhng,
reward to "give the more earnest heed to the things and to present you faultless before the presence of his
which we have heard, lest at any time we should let glory, with exceeding .loy." "Wherefore, beloved, seeing
them slip". (Hebrews2 : 1) Weshould not neglect doing that ye look for such things, be diligent that ye maybe
good to all as we have opportunity, specially to the found of him in peace, without spot and blameless."
household of faith, but first and foremost is the work of "According as he hath chosen us in him before the
self-development. foundation of the world, that we should be holy and
"’Approved"] Tested, tried; one who has been thm’- without blame before him in love." "That he might
oughly examined by a skilled expert. Approved for present it to himself a glorious church, not havicvg spot,
~ hat ? To receive glory, honor, and immortahty. "Bless- or wrinkle, or any s,tch thing; but.that it should be holy
ed is the man that endureth temptation; for when he and without blem~sh."--Phil]ppmns 1:10; Jude 24;
is tried, he shall receive the crown of life, which the 2 Peter 3: 14 ;. Ephe~mns1: 4; 5: 27.
Lord hath promised to them that love him." (James "To present you t, olg and unblameableand unreprove-
1:12) Weymputhrenders it, "When he has stood the able in his mght." (Colossmns 1: 22) In other words a
test". The following texts amphfy the thought. "The perfect workman,one who will stand every test.
true character of each individual’s work will become
manifest, for the day of Christ will disclose it, because "Rightly dividing the word of truth"] Every work-
that day is soon to come upon us clothed m fire, and as manneeds tools, and tools suited to his vocation. Here
the Apostle calls attention to the tools of the Chr~stmn,
for the quality of every one’s work, the fire is the thing
which will test it." (Weymouth) "But the God of all the Word of God. As a workmanneeds to understand
the use of each tool in his list, and becomeskilled m
grace, who hath called you unto his eternal glory by
Jesus Christ, after that ye have suffered a~hile, make its use, so it is necessary for every Christian to become
yon perfect, stabh~.h, stren~hen, settle you." "For our famlhar with his tools; how and when to u~.e each one;
hght affhctlon which ]s but for a moment, workeChout how to divide rightly between them; ho~ to use thenl
for us a far more exceeding and eternal ~e]ght of glory." singly or jointly. No needless tools.ha~e been supplied
by the Lord; every one is for use; and sooner or later
(1 Corinthians 3: 13; 1 Peter 5: 10; 2 Cormtbmns4:
the Lord will apply the test. The tools are al~o of the
17) Each apprentice must be pa~sed upon md~.Jdually
best maternal, and peculmr in one respect: they never
before he can receive the diploma of approval.
need sharpening. "The Wordof God is living and active
GODTHE APPROVER and sharper than any two-edged sword, piercing even to
the dividing of the smil and spirit, of both joints and
"U]~to God" God is the Master Workmanbe~me ~hom marrow, and quick to discern the thoughts and intents
all must stand approved, if at all; for "every one of us of the hearts." (Hebrews4 : 12) These tools in the Word
shall give an account of himself fo God". "It is God of Godmight be likened to the electrically-driven tools
that worketh in you to will and to do of his good plea- nowbeing used very generally, such as electric hammers,
sure." "Now that God of peace, that brougbt again saws, planes, bits, riveting machines, etc., which exert
from the dead our Lord Jesus, . . . make you perfect a power far above the power of the workmanhimself.
in every good work to do his will, working in you that They might be said to be alive with energy, so the power
which is wellpleasing in his sight." "That ye maystand or spirit of God works through his Word. The Wordof
perfect and complete in all the will of God." "Where- Godcan cut between the "soul"--the being, the person-
fore let them that suffer according to the will of God ality with all its powers--and the "spirit"--the motLve,
committhe keeping of their souls to him in well-doing, the purpose, the why of each action ; and between the
as unto a faithful Creator." (Romans 14: 12; Phihp- joints and marrow,very dose-fitting parts of the natural
pians 2:13; Hebrews 13:20,21; Colossians 4:12; 1 body. So the Wordcuts between close-related members
Peter 4: 19) God’s will is the standard by whmhall of the mystical body if necessary. "Andthis I pray, that
are to be guided, trained, tested, and approved. your love may abound more and more in knox~ledge and
"A workman"] One who woE~s, and works at some- wisdom, that ye may try [put to the test] things that
thing defimte. "I therefore so run, not as uncertainly ; differ’--or which are not m harmony with the truth.
so fight I, not as one that beateth the air." (1 Corinth- (Philippians 1 : 9, 10) Knowledgemay be likened to
ians 9 : 26) The implication of our text is that it des- accumulation of facts, and wisdom the ability to use
ignates an apprentice, one whois learning a trade. The the facts. Thus the Apostle prays that the church n,ay
’rh, WATCHTOWER 21
have the necessary knowledge to work with and the yet all-inclusive contract. It will be for Godto deter-
wisdomto use the knowledgeproperly in order that all mine what the remuneration shall be. All who lmder-
maydevelop the necessary result, love. stand God’s glorious arrangement must acknowledge
that restitution will be a far greater reward than the
HEAVEN-PROVIDED INSTRUMENTS best service could merit; hence no one should stop for
One might have a beautiful set of tools, of the finest an instant to contend for ’%citer wages". To do so
quality, and be very proud of them and always desirous would be very improper and in the nature of an insult
of exhibiting them ; but ff he knows not how to use to God. Even Jesus did not stop to inquire ’what the
them of ~ hat benefit are they to him ? So the Apostle wages would be’. His faith in his Father was sufficient
sa3s the possession of knowledge alone "puffeth up". to know that he would receive no injustice, and that
A wxse workman~fll not need to show his tools as his his reward would doubtless be far above what he could
chief reeolnmendatlon as a skilled mechanic, but will ask or expect.
rather let lus ~ork speak for limb a~- the Psalmist re- Somehave the idea there must be some sort of feeling
nli,~ds, "The heavens declare the glory of God, and the or inward "push" before they can be sure it would be
tirmanlent showeth his handiwork". proper to take the step of consecratmn. They feel it
Tools are of little value w~thoutthe skill to use them; might be improper, or sclf-~ssertlve, to comeand offer
They cannot use themsehes. So knowledge without wIs- themselves without this "evidence" that he desires them.
donI is el little practical use. Restating our text In the Such have an erroneous idea of God’s Inethods. Jesus
~ords of another, "Earnestly seek to commendyourself says, "Come unto me, all ye that labor and are heavy
to Godas a servant who, because of his straightforward laden, and I will give you rest". (Matthew11: 28) Then
dealing wdh the word of truth, has no reason to feel we are to sit downand coun.t the cost, estimate as far
as possible the value of the "exceeding great and pre-
a~:y shame".--lle!/moulh
Before a ~ orkmanis enaployed lie must be entered up- cious promises", the amount of faith-stock we have in
on the "pa.v-roll" ; before he is entered uponthe pay-roLl God’s Bank of Grace, and then come to a del~nite con-
there nlu~-t be an agreement or contract, written or ita- clusion, irrespective of any feeling or non-fc~ling. "And
whosoever cloth not bear his cross and come after me
ly,lied, stipulating the conditions of employmentand the
consideration of remuneratmn. Our Lord says: "Many [make the contract] cannot be my disciple. For which
~1]1 .~ay unto hie mthat day, Lol d, Lord, have we not of you, intending to build a tower, sitteth not down
prophesied m thy name ? and in thy naane east out dev- first, and counteth the co~t. whether he have sufficient
11~ and m thy name done many wonderful works? And to finish it?" (Lalke 14: 27, 28) Let each answer the
then wall I profess unto them, I never knew you; de- question for himself or herself, whether such a contract
part from me, ye that work iniquity." (Matthew 7: 22, has been signed. If so let this check of faith be cashed:
"Him that cometh to me I will in no wise cast out".
23) In other phrase, many will ask the Lord, Whyare
we not receiving our wages? Surely we have worked Wewill suppose that each one has thus entered into
hard enough to entffle us to good wages. Just look at covenant relationship with the Lord and been started
the works, surely you must have seen them, they were as an apprentice. What next ? "Looking unto Jesus the
not done an private. The answer will be, You never author and the finisher of our faith" we find that the
made any contract with me, nor worked under mydirec- first thing he did after taking the vowof full con~cra-
tions. You must have been working for some one else; tion was to go to the wilderness. He did not fully under-
or possibly you were working for your sympathies, your stand the contract when he signed it at Jordan, for he
pride, your desire to shine in the sight of others, or some was only a "natural man" and "the natural man re-
denominational system. Therefore you cannot expect ceiveth not the things of the spirit of God; . . . neither
me to pay you; you are unjust to expect it of me; you can he knowthem, because they are spiritually discern-
are not in line with the law, therefore violators, trans- ed". He immediately went to the wilderness, to be alone
ga.essors, workersof iniquity. and ~mrnolested, that he might study the agreement he
had already signed. Did he not act unwisely by signing
ARE WE THE LORD’S? something he did not fully comprehend? That would
Weneed first of all to ascertain ff we are on the have been true had he not had sufficient faith in his
Lord’s pay-roll. Have we made a contract to enter his Father to believe that he would not ask him to under-
~ervice ? This must be a definite act of consecration to take anything but what would be right and proper. Hi*
do his will. As recorded of our Lord at Jordan, "Then faith was thus severely tested at the start. Howdili-
said I, Lo, I come . . . TODOTn-Y WlI~%O GOD".(He- gently he studied may be knownby the fact that after
brews 10: 7) That was the contract Jesus made with the forty days of fasting, when he was weak in mind and
heavenly Father; no stipulations or limitations what- body the adversary was permitted to test him on the
ever. Every one whoever obtains eternal life, whether points which would appear to be the most pregnable.
as a memberof the bride class, of the gTeat company, Note the devilishness of the adversary in attempting
or o¢ the reshtution class, will have to makethat simple, thus to take advantage of the weakness of another. How
BROOKLiN, N. Y.
WATCH TOWER
aid our Lold meet t1~ attack? Always, "It is written". Lord may send us off to something entirely different,
Where? Ill the contract. Howdid he know? By forty which does not appeal to us at all. Wewonder why.
days’ diligent study with the aid of the holy spn.it. So, Surely we had not made many nustakes. The work seem-
the admomtionin our text, "study," applies individu- ed prospering nnder our hands. Then we are not fitted
ally to the Lord’s followers. If we are to be ’sanctified for the new work, and are hable to make many blunders
tllrough the truth’ how can we know unless we also and httle if any progress. Washe dissatisfied with us,
’give the more earnest heed to the things which we have and ~s this change gn, en m the nature of a punishment
heard, lest at any tram we shotfld let them run out’ as for stone unintentional mistake? He", such thoughts
are apt to trouble us. It is here we need to knowhowto
leaking vessels ?--Hebrews2 : 1.
proper]y "divide the word of truth".
PRELIMINARY TESTINGS
HOW KNOW THE RIGHT?
Sttppo.~e a man advertises for a mechanic, and one
applies for the positron. The man asks the applicant, Then comes the adversary with his suggestmns: ’liow
do you know that you are right, anyway-? Do you not
"What can you do ?" lie might reply, "Anything de-
know manywho apparently are as consmentious as your-
sired of a first-class mechanic". The employerdesires to
self, whoare endeavoring as loyally as you are to serve
have first-hand knowledge, not mere statement. He de-
God? liow do you know’but that they are right and you
termines to test the man. IIe gives the man a piec~ of
wrongafter all ? Pretty hard for someone who is &aug-
work to do, the doing of which will test the man as to
ing your work all the tnne, apparently not knowingwhat
his knowledge of machinery and tools, tie may put him
he wants himself.’ The skilled workmanwill immedi-
at half a dozen jobs and not let him complete one of
ately reply: I "knowthat all things work together for
them. He just lets him go far enough to demonstrate
good to them that love God, to them that are called
his ability in each department, until the workmanmay
come to the conclusion that his employer does not know according to his purpose" (method and object); there-
his ownmind, is erratic or something wrong somewhere, fore God must be trying me out in the use of some in-
structions (tools) with which I maynot be so famfimr.
and possibly has decided to seek employment with a
But, then, how may I be’ sure that I really love him?
man who knows what he wants. Then the employer
calls him into the office and lays before lure specifica- God has fully supphed "all things necessary" (2
tions for an intricate machine which would test an ex- Peter 1:3) if we but look for them. So over m one
pert’s ability, lie explains: "I have here somevery im- corner we shall find a pmr of perfect balances by which
portant work. Here are the plans in detail, and in thai we may weigh ourseh’es at any tm~e. Put a tag on tt
large shop you will find all the machinery and tools so we em~ always find it. Alcove 1, shelf 2, box 3--
necessary, also all the materials. I desire you to do the 1 John 2 : 3. "And hereby we know that we knm~[some
work for me." "But," says the workmanin astonistunent, people have a knm~ledgebut do not knowthat they have
"I have not completed any of those other jobs you start- it, and when some one te]ls them then" knowledge~s no
ed me at." "Never mind them. I did not care for any good they beheve him and throw it away] lnm, IF ws
’~
KEEP ]3:18 COMMAND3IENTS.
of them." "You did not! Then why did you have me
waste so muchtime on them ?" "Oh, you said you were ttow simple-! Not our feehngs, nor the amount of
a mechamcthat could do any kind of work, but I did work done. Not how well we can answer questions or
not knowwhether you could or not, so I determined to lead a class. Not how many books we can sell or how
find out for myself. I would not think of entrusting good a discourse we can g~ve. Not hownmchor httle we
such a job as this to any one until I was fully satisfied think of ourselves or how many flaws we can find in
whether ~t would be safe or not. So I tested you on all another. Not how much we have g~ven to the Lord or
lines and found you competent. So now, go ahead. I how many aches and pains we may have physically.
know you can do it." What before appeared foolishness (1 Corinthians 13: 1-3) Simply, Are we keeping lus
to the workmannow was seen to be wisdom itself. "The commandmentsto the best of our ability. "If yeq~eep
Lord your God proveth you, to know whether ye do love my commandments,ye shall abide in my love, even as
the Lord your Godwith all youi heart and with all your I have kept my leather’s commandments,and abide in
soul.’--Deuteronomy 13 : 3. his love." (adhn 1’5: 10) liow did Jesus know he was
So to the Christian. God desires some master work- keeping Ins Father’s commandments?Because he "felt
men to do a very mlportant work in the future, lie has good", or hecanse he exerted every last oune- of energy
all the materials and machinery necessary, but no one every day, or because he was making such great lfn-
can receive an appointment for that work until he has pressions upon the people? Oh, no. God’s command-
been thoroughly tested. "For whenhe is tried, he shall merits were his me&tartans day and night. (See John
receive the crown of life, which the Lord hath pronused 8: 28) He stood the test in every department. He was
to them that love him." Sometimes he places us at a tried in all points like as we are.
work which seems to us to be very impoffcant, and we Let us note carefully the httle instrument in the ad-
exert our zeal and ability to "make good". Soon the joinhlg box. (1 John 2 : 4) "He that saith, I knowhnn,
JA:,LAI.). ]5, 1922 ,m WATCH TOWER
and keepcth not his commandments,IS A LIAR, and the asked a question you could always depend upon getting a
truth is not m him." Is every one who claims to be a studied answer, one tlmt showedthought ancl care ? If we
followers of Christ, or a Christian, whodoes not keep crltlmze and find falflt what are we doing ? "Andkeepeth
has commandmentsa liar ? Having made a full conse- not has commandments is a --?" Possibly the Lord
cratlcm to do God’s wfl_l, are we not under obhgation to overruled that that brother should be elected that we
obey? It may not be amiss to test ourselves. might be tried on that very point. Again, suppose the
class were to elect another instead of reelecting us to
SELF-TESTS
eldea’slnp. Then we determine to "let the class go to
We~ fl] 1,t ~,e a simple test first. "Moreover
~f thy broth- pmces, if they do not apprecmte that only by our un-
er shall trespass against thee, go and tell him his fault tiring efforts it has been kept going as long as ~t has.
between thee and him alone; ff he shall hear thee, thou It will teach them a lesson." Would we have hked it
hast gamed thy brother. But if he will not hear thee, if others were to act that way when we were elected
then take with thee one or two more, that in the mouth elders ? The same commandapplies to all the relation-
of two or three witnesses evcry word maybe established. ships of life. From the elder to the class; from the
And if he shall neglect to hear them, tell it unto the husband to the wife, from the wife to the husband;
church; but ff he neglect to hear the church, let him be the test is a broad one.
unto thee as a heathen man and a publlcan."(~Iatthew
18: 15-17) Have we had a brother tlespass against us? THREEIMPORTANTINSTRUMENTS
Howdid we meet the sltuatmn ? Did we first go round
and tell manyothers, until we had a good deal of sym- There seem to be three "tools" with which more of
pathy, and then go to the brother and demand an open the Lord’s people have cut themselves than any others
apology? If so what were we doing? The Apostle says in the whole list. Manyseem to have been so badly cut
that those who do not keep God’s commandmentsare that they have spiritually bled to death. Howcan one
hars. Is that a commandmentor not? Did our actions bleed to death spiritually ? If we see someone cut with
prove us to be liars ? Will Godaccept liars Into his king- a sword or knife, and he bleeds until there is no more
dom? Whoknowsbut that God permitted that brother to activity left, we concludehe has bled to death physically.
commitsomeact of trespass against us ? It maynot have If one is cut spiritually and loses all activity in the
had any willfulness m it. It may have been done in Lord’s service, is it unreasonable to conclude such a one
~gnorance. At any rate we were given an opportunity has bled to death spiritually ? Let each reader recall the
to use that "tool". Supposewe reply, "Well, that broth- personal misunderstandings, class controversies, divi-
er can out-talk us three to one, and no doubt he would sions among’the workers, as far as personal knowledge
have proven us to be in the fault, Wouldn’t that have may cover, and ask how manyof these could easily have
been a fine situation!" Well, what of that~ The ques- been avoided if the following "tools" had been carefully
tmn is, Did v e obey the commandor not > If not, what handled : "Humbleyourselves therefore under the mighty
did we do"; Can we expect to pass approval if we are hand of God, that he may exalt you in due time." "Let
so eareles~ about the commandments? none of you suffer as a murderer, or as a thief, or as
Let us try another: "Therefore all things whatsoever an evildoer, or as a busy-body in other men’s matters."
ye would that men should do to you, do ye even so to "Study to be quiet and do [mind] your own business."
them; for this is the law and the prophets". (Matthew (l Peter 5: 6; 4: 15; 1 Thessalonians 4: 11) Rather
g:12) Suppose in the course of a class election some hard for a "busy-body" to be classed with murderers,
brother whois not quite up to our elite standard as to thieves, and evil-doers. If the above had been carefully
heeded, all ambition, haughtiness, pride, desire to lord
ability as a public speaker, and whose grammar"mur-
ders the queen’s English" and his manners are not as it over others, effort to run someone else’s affairs, and
genteel as demred. Withal a good brother, and has much the troubles that follow in their wake would have been
of the spirit of the Lord, but we wouldnever have voted eliminated. It was lack of humility that caused Lucifer
for him if we had been present at the meeting. We to fall. If we seek to exalt ourselves; if we go nosing
think, What did the class elect him for? Weshould around in other people’s business; if we do not study to
be quiet, and a long list of other questions, what are
think they would be ashamed of themselves. Wenever
we doing? Keeping his commandmentsor not? If not
get any good whenever he tries to explain anything.
Wewill not go to any classes he leads. Ah, suppose the what are we proving ourselves to be ? Let us recall the
matter were just turned around, and the class had text again, "Study to show thyself approved".
thought well to elect you as elder, how would you like
BLEEDINGS FROM CUTS
to have him act towards you ? Wouldyou like to have
him go around and show up your short-comings and Wemight cite an instance or so from the history of
make deprecatory remarks regarding you ? Wouldit not the harvest period. Those who have been long in the
be nice if he were to ask the Lord to bless your ministry, work can remember the sifting of 1894. Some of the
and endeavor to study his lessons that wheneverhe were office force at the Bible House, then at Allegheny (now
"rat WATCH TOWER BROOI~,L~N, N, Y.
lg. S. PittsMrgh), Pa., became impressed with their convinced that they were pleasing God when they sep-
own importance and concluded that Brother Russell was arated from us, but have been vmythankful that they
taking "too much of the authority and honors" upon saw &fferently later on. If the Apostle ~ould not even
himself, and that they were not receiving proper credit judge tnmself, much le~s another, and cautmned ns to
for what they were doing. It reminds us of Nmnbers "form no premature judgments, but wa~t lmtd the
16: 3. They wrote a very seurrflous pamphlet accusing Lord returns [who] will both bring to hght the secrets
Brother Russell of many things. ~avmg aeeess to the of darkness and will opeuly disclose the motives that
WATC~ TOWER list they mailed the pamphlet to all the have been mpeople’s hearts," we should carefully ,heed
TOWEI~ subscribers. It struck the church hke a bolt of the words. Wemay take ~arnin~ from the experiences
light-nmg from a dear sky. It stnvered from stem to of others a~ the Apostle suggested m lu~ day. (1 Tmm-
stern. Could Brother Russell be such a man as t!.n’e thy 1:19; 2 ’lhmothy 4: 14, 15) Someof these:’dear
insinuated? Many went immedmtely to the Lord for frmnds ’cell us they thought they were standing ,for
the promised grace to stay their faith. Brother Ru.>sell principle but forgot that prmc,ple Is a rule of actmn,
and that God’s prmmpleis h~s rule for our action, and
had not harmed any member of the church, but h,,d
anything contrary to that is dlsobedmnce, m’espeettve
been a messenger at the hands of the Lord for th,,tr
blessing. Nevertheless, some were eager to "bnsx-body" of our own pmvate impressions or prefmenees.
in other men’s matters ; it was not long until they began
OIL AND BALM
to show s~gms of loss of spmtual blood, and later all
signs of wtahty vamshed. Negleetmg the commandment What then shouht be our attitude toxxards those who
of the Lord, they laid themselves open to attack by the claim to be able to pass judgment as to ~ho are of the
poisonous darts of the adversary, ~;ho was qmekto note httle flock, and who are of the great companyand who
their shattered defense of froth. What was the result? are else~here? Smlply follow instruction: "Now I
8o far as we have been informed none of those who beseech you, brethren, mark them ~lneh cause dirt-
were thus disobedient to the Lord’s Wordever became stuns and offenses contrary to the doctrines wtneh ye
interested again in the active work of the harvest We have learned, and avmd them". (Romans 16:17) Smude
are not judging, but our Lord advises us to note care- enough. Nothing further is inemnbent upon us. This
fully the frmt on a tree. does not mean that we are to brand them as culprits,
Again in 1908 when the vow was brought forth many or hars, or say that are worthy of the second death, or
gave themselves much trouble m busy-bodying and evil- even speak evil of them in any way. That is not our
,peaking about Brother Russell, accusing him of ira- business. Let others do as they think best. "As for me
morality and of then bringing on* the vow and demand- and myhouse, we will serve the Lord," should be the
ing that others take it in order to cover his ownsins. heart attitude of every child of God. Weall have suG
What was the result ? The same as in 1894. Apparently fieient to do to "cleanse ourselve from all filthiness of
"the earth [business and worldly cares and interests] the flesh and spirit," otherwise we shall miss the mark,
opened her month, and swallowed them up," as far as and find ours lves unapproved of God.
any further spiritual activity in the harvest is conemmed. "Not neglecting, as some halntuallv do, to meet to-
Manycan recall more recent trying experiences. Again gether, but encouraging one another, and doing th~s all
the ship of church was struck and shivered from stem the more since you see the day of Clmst approaching."
to stern. Again many sought the Lord for strength of This does not mean that we shall get up from sick beds
faith to trust him mind the storm. IIe answered the and go whether we are physically able or not, but to use
prayers of all such. Others seemed not to mamfest the the sprat of a sound mind and come together as often
same sprat. What has been the result? Wesee a large as we can within all reasonable limitations.
number of divisions, and these are subdividing, again Wemerely call attentmn to a fm~ of the paragraphs
and again, apparently so interested in personal or class of the contract, or some of the "tools" if we hke the
affairs that but little if any time is left for the Lord’s fllnstrahon, as an mdmatmnhow ~e may be able to
work. But it is not for us to find out where any one study to show ourselves approved unto God, workmen
else stands. Our contract reads: "’Test your,:elves to that need not to be ashamed, rightly &riding lus Word
discover whether you m’e true believers: put your own of truth. By this stmple rule we shall nmer ~o far
serves under examanatwn". Again, "Judge not that ye astray; for ’the sprat its_elf ~ fll bear ~tne~ with our
be not judged". The momentwe attempt to pass judg- spirit that we are the children of God,’ and, "as many
ment upon another we disobey our Lord’s command- as are led by the spirit of God,they are the sons of God,"
meats and place ourselves in line to be counted liars. for %t is the sprat that qmekeneth . . . *.he ~or(ls
Wedoubt not that most of those who were formerly [sayings] that I speak unto you, they are gpn~t and
with us are still conscientious and think they do God’s they are life". (John 6:63) If we carefully endoaxor
service. To think otherwise would be to accuse them follow the Lord’s commandswe may be sure he will
of hypocrisy, and many who have been pleased to work never permit us to go far from the path that leads to
with us again have assured us they were thorouglfly the crown.
’n,e WATCH TOWER 25
God has not overlooked supplying some "oil" and race set before us, looking unto Jesus, the author and
%alto" in case we get hm’t ~lth the tools, on account fimsher of our faith ; whofor the joy that was set before
of not knowing how to use them well. "If any may sm him endured the cross, despising the shame, and is set
we have an advocate with the Father, Jesus Christ the do~mat the right hand of the throne of God." "Where-
r@~teous." "If we confess our sins, he is faithful and fore the rather, brethren, g~ve dihgenee to make your
just to forgive us our sins, and to cleanse us from all
ealhng and election sure; for if ye do these things, ye
unrighteousness." "That by two immutable things, an
which it was m~posslble for God to he, we might haxe shall never fail; for so an entrance shall be ministered
strong consolation, whohave fled for refuge to lay hold unto you abundantly rote the everlasting kingdom of
upon the hope set before uC’ "Wherefore see.rag we our Lord and Savior ,Jesus Christ." "If children, then
also are compassedabout x~th so great a cloud of wit- heirs: hmrs of God, and joint-hen’s with Christ; ff so
nesses, let us lay aside every wmght, and the sm whmh be that we suffer ~ lth him, that we maybe also glomfied
doth so easily beset us, and let u~ rnn ~ lth patience the together."
"Be .~ute your s~*~ wall find you out "--Numbers 82:28.
pendent that they ~ould not come down and make more ado indirectly to misrepresent God. His falsehood xxas, "My
over me, and pe~ haps come to ,Jordan with me, to see wheth- master hath sent me, s~3ung, Behold even now their be
er or not it tool; effect, have missed getting the present come to me from Mount Ephraim two young men of the
which I broucht from Syria for them, and I am the gainer sons of the prophets: glxe them, I pray thee, a talent of
by just that much. No, ~th a true nobihty of -_oul he slher [$1 9441 an(1 tx~o changes of garment.C’. Naamanwas
desired to nI,tke .~omeacknox~ledgment of the goodness xx lliclI tt)o muchof an Oriental to be fooled by tliis, but, nonethe-
bad been beMowednpon hlnl ~o he returneil to Ellslm x~ lib less he urged Gehazi to take two talents of silver, and bound
the remarkable xxnrtls: "I~ehohl, now I know that the)e is them ill tWOb’lg~, with the change~ of garments, and had
no Godm all the earth but in Iarael ; now tllerefore. I pray them upon t~xo of IllS servants, and they bare thenl before
thee, t.ike a hle~mg[a p~e~-ent] of thy servant". Here tiue him ; and when he came to a secret place Gehazi took them
dignit3 of character is slmxxn. He xxas not necking to see from their hands and hid them in the house.
how cheaply he c()uhl get the faro1 Of heaven: lie dl(1
But El~,tla called him and said "Went not mine heart
say within himself, If EhMia had balgamed with me for a with thee ~hen the man tutne(l ,t~.lin fronl his cliariot to
large sum bet(,)e I went downto Jordan and got the bless- meet thee ~ Is ~t a time [a sultalde occasion] to leer ire
ing, then indeed I WOhhlhave given lnuch to ()blare this
money,,Hid to receive g, u lnent,., ,m(1 ohveyards, and xme-
great I/enetlt, bUt nowI ’,;ill put 1Hmoff ~ ith sometiqflmg yar(ls, and qbeel), and o\en, Hlnl nlcn~,el’vflnts, and inaid,,er-
gift, and no doubt, as a poor man, lie wall think a c~eat vants--nitlnmting that all of these things had been the
deal of it.
moving, covetous cause before tile maid of Geliazl: an(l no
On the contrary, he had brqpglit a gift representing, it douht at that pellod such an amount of money, nearly four
is cl:Lmmd, over seventy-~even thousand dollars, beuldeS thouqnnd (loll,/rs, would have ptir(.ba~,ed a great deal and
muell "goodly ,pparel", and he evidently was de~lrous that have made Gehazi a weMthy man Bat the penalty of bis
the Prophet shouhl receive all of this as a token of his misconductwas severe, for tile lel)roa 3 of N~qainan ~,vfls,given
apprecnmonof the g~eat benel~t confeI’ted. But if the noble, him.
proper spirit ~/as manffe.~ted by N,|i/mall iU deSHqlIg to
So. ~xe are ~orry lo say, there are some in daily contact
render ~omethmgm rettnn for the nlercleS rece~ed, there w~th tile truth and with the Lord’s consecrated servants,
was not less of the nol)le slnr~t nl ]~hsha, ui refu~mg to who ilo not partake of the spirit of the truth--in whom
receive those gifts. To receive the gifts would have nieant selfishness is the ruling pqssion and who wall, therefore,
the selling of the divine power which operated through him ; eventually not only far to receive the gre.lt blessings, such
and Elisha well knew that God’s gifts are not for sale. as came to Naaman,but addlhonally will receive tlle divine
Fortunate would it be for manywho deal with the spiritual disfavor, tlie second death.
things of the Lord, in the cure of the leprosy of sin, if they offered, wonld not be offered for several centuries; conse-
could take as exalted a view of matters as did EhMla. We
fear that too often the Lord’s ~-ervants are ready to accept quently, although Naaman was of so honest a heart that
earthly rewards for their part in tim heahng of sln-smkness the Lord dehghted to send him to the Prophet and to heal
----costly apparel, gold and ml,-er. him of hm leprosy, and althongh tim Lord appreciated his
And then comes out still another lesson of nobility of nobility of character, yet the tune had not come for making
character. Naaman requested that he m~ght have as much any offer of reconciliation to the gentiles. The only offer
soil from the land of Israel as two pack mules could cam’y, thus fqr made was to the seed of Abral)am, according to
intimating that his desire for tlus earth was that lie nilgIlt the flesh.
place it in some suitable locatmn in his own eountr3 that There is still anotlier feature of this narrative which con-
he might kneel upon the sacred soil, wlimh God had blessed, tains a vahmble lesson. Ehsl|a had a servant namedGehazi,
and might offer prayer to the true God, who had healed him, who had been with the Prophet for a considerable time and
besides whomthere is no God And the keenness of his witnessed manyof liis wonderful works; the same servant,
conscience is shown by his further remark, that lie knew probably, who carried his staff and laid it upon the Shu-
that his king, a worshiper of a false god, would expect namnnte woman’s son, and who very well knew that the
him to go with him, as his servant, as u~ual, that he might Lord’s power had operated through the Prophet for the
lean upon his arm when bowing himself before the false recovery of the child to life. But all of this contact with
god Rimmon in his temple at Damabcu.~ Rimmon, as the divine power and goodness and mercy, and all of the illus-
storm-god, was a malevolent deity: as the rain-god, lie was trations of the Prophet’s nobility of character and generosity
a kindly god Hadad was one of lus names, and Ben-hadad --all of this counted for practically nothing, to Gehazi. He
was namc~l after him. He may have been the tutelary deity saw the rich presents that lind been brought by Naaman,
of Damascus. Naaman inqinred whether or not .Jehovah and allowed covetousness to enter into his heart, instead
would llardon hiai for thus 3pining ~xith and asslst,ng his of allowing the spiral of righteousness and generosity to
king m the worship ~hJch now lie would no longer take prevent it. He said to himself, Whata pity to see this wealth
part m from the heart. Ehsha indmated to him tliat, since thus rejected by the Prophet l I will oontrive a plan by ~:hach
lie was a servant, it would be no 1)erbonal transgression for I may get some of it for myself; then I can have olive
him to hell) his master, the king, dew2 and up at his re- groves and vineyards, and be a very wea,lthy man, and
ligions wolsbip, even though it was before an idol. some of these costly garments will make nie the envy of
Wecanuot doubt that Elisha sought direction of the Lord my neighbors. So he ran after the departing chariot to
in thlb matter, and that he had the Lord’s mind in respect accomplish his purpose.
to it But why even this much sanction to a false god As a matter of fact, covetousness with almost everyone,
shouhl be permitted may be a question. We suggest, as an leads to various other sins--generally to lying, somehmesto
e-q)lanatlon, that God was not then dealing with any gentile murder. Nearly every crime is more or less traceable to
mitten, but with Judah and Israel only. The redemption covetousness. In this case Gehazi did not hesitate la he.
sacmfice for the sins of the whole world had not yet been and not only so, but to mlsiei)re~ent his master. :m(t thusl
BROTHER R. L. ROBIE
BROTHER J. A. BOHNET Green~fll(~,S. C .............. Feb 1 Dallas, Ga.................... Feb :10
Demorest, Ga ............... " 2 Rome,Ga ................. Feb. 12, 13
Zoua,La............................. Feb 1 Jennuw.~, La ................... Feb. 8 Lavonm,GR..................... " 3 Rockmart, Ga ................ Feb. 14
Folsom,La ..................... ’ o Lake Charles, La ............ " 9 Athens, Ga................... Feb 5, 6 Ceda~town,Ga ................ " 15
New OrleanS, La ....... McNary,La ...................... " 10 Atlanta, Ga ................... " 7-9 Tallapoosa, Ga................. " 16
Baton Rouge, LR ......... Feb 5, 7 I,:ellv. "I,a .......................... " 12
P~Rle,La........................... Feb 6 Slkes, La ................... Feb. 13, 14
BROTHER O. L. SULLIVAN
North Duxbury, Mass __ .Jan 30 Newpmt, R I ............... Feb. 6
BROTHER A. 3. ESIILEMAN Plymouth, Mass ............ " 31 NewHaven, (’onn ............. " 7
Plympton, Ma~s............. Feb 1 Brldgepmt, Coun ............. " 8
Onamm, Mlnn ....... Feb 1 Tomah,Wts............... Feb. il, 12 New Bedford, Mass ..... Feb 2, 3 Ehzhbeth, N. J ................. " 9
]~ammngton, M~nn .... Feb 2, 3 Milwaukee. Wm......... " :13, 14 Fall River, hIass ........... Feb 5 Trenton, N. J ................... " 10
Maltletou, Miun ............. Feb 5 Racine, Win.................. Feb. 15
Rochester, MHm .......... Feb 6, 7 ]L[.anllIIIlJld ]nd ............... " :16
Whalan,Minn................... Feb. 9 \ all)al.IP~o,] qt[ .............. ’P 17
BROTHER W. J. THORN
Bradento~ n, Fia ......... Feb :1, 2 Zephythllls, Flu ........... Feb. 10
St. Petersburg, Flu ..... " 3, 5 X~flhuton, Fla ............... Feb. 12
BROTHER A. M. GRAtlAM Clearwater, Fla ................ Feb (i Dog, hug Park, Flu ........... Feb. 14
Oldsmar,Fla ................ Feb 7, 8 Monhcello, Fla ............... " 15
Bessemer, Ala .............. Feb 1 LmcohuAl,t ................... Feb. 8 Tampa,Flu ...................... Feb. 9 Marmnna, Fla ..... Feb 16, 17
Randolph, Ala ................ " 2 lqedmont. *,la ............ Feb 9, 10
I~llnllnghanl, Ala ............. " 5 Boaz, Ala .................. Feb. 12
].’eli City, Ala ................... " 6 W~lnut Grove, Ala ........ " :13
Riverside, Ala ................... " 7. Albany, Ala .................... " 16 BROTHER T. H. THORNTON
Rockford,Ill ................... Feb. 1 Clinton, Ia ................... Feb. 9
Belvidere,Ill ..................... " 2 Moline, Ill ............. Feb. 10, 12
Marengo,Ill ..................... " 3 Rock Island, Ill ....... " 12, 13
BROTHER M. L. HERR Freeport, Ill ............... Feb. 5, 6 Davenport,Ia .................. Feb 14
Dubuque, Ia ................ " 7, 8 Kewanee, Ill ........... Feb 15, 16
W’aslungton. D. C ........ Feb 1 Rocky Mount, N. C .......... Feb. 8
Rich~nond, Va .............. Feb 2, 3 Wilson, N C ................ " 9
Petersburg, ~,a .............. Feb 5 hit Oh~e, N C ............... ":10
North Emporm, Va ........ ". (; ~\ Ihnmgton, N. C .... Feb :12, 13 BROTHER W. A. THRUTCHLEY
Enhehl. N. C .................. " 7 Sumter, S. C ................. Feb. 14
Gait, Oat ......................... Feb. 1 Canauoque, Out ........... Feb. 8
Guelph,Ont .................. " 2 Brockvflle. Ont ................. " 9
Toronto. Ont ................ Feb 3, 5 Iroqums, Oat ................. " 10
BROTHER M. Bellewlle, Ont .................. Feb 6 Montreal, P. Q., ........ Feb 12, 13
A. HOWLETT Kingston Oat ................... " 7 Woodstock. N. B: ........ Feb. 15
East L]vell)ool, Ohio ___Feb :1 Negley, Ohio ............ I,’eb 7
VCe,~t Point Ohio ........... " 2 Salem, Oluo ................. " 8
Ll.Sbon, Ohio ..... " 3 AIhanee, Oluo .................. " 9 ~ROTHER S. H. TOUTJIAN
Ne,v Ihi~hton, Pa ........ " 5 ~Hes, Oh,o "JO 1)alntq~flle, Ky............. Feb 1, 2 Lotnsvulle, Ky ............ Feb 9, 12
East PalestHle, Ohm....... " G Youngsto~ n. Ohm Feb 12, :13 Lexington, Ky............... " 3, 4 New Albany, Ind ......... Feb. 13
Frankfmt. Ky ............... " 5, 6 Jeffersonmlle, Ind ........... " 14
Shelbyvllle, Ky............... Feb. 7 Brandenburg, Ky ...... " :15
Jeffersontown, Ky. ............ " 8 Owensboro,Ky ........... Feb 16, 17"
BROTHER S. MORTON
East Stroudsburg, Pa Feb. 1 Cafitondale, Pa ................ Feb. S
Scranton, Pa ............ Feb 2,5 lbme~dale. Pa ............... " 9 BROTHER J. B. WILLIAMS
Maplewood,Pa ................. " 3 ’I’o~auda, Pa ............... " 10
Throop,Pa ........................ " 6 v ~H,amsport, Pa ...... Feb 12, J4 WmIHe[Man................ Feb. 1 Moose Jaw. Sask ....... Feb. :12
" 7 Alb.t,Pa........................... Feb. :13 Darhng~old, ’Man ........ " 2 Chaphn, Sa~k ................ ,, 13
Peckvflle, Pa ..................... BramlomMan............... Feb 4, 5 Herbert, Susk .................. ,, 14
Sourl~M,-tn .................. " 6, 7 MapleCreek, Sask ........... " 15
Wa~ota.Sask ............... " 8, 9 Medtcine :Hat, Alta ........ ,, 16
BROTHER W. H. PICKERING
Salt Flanclsco, Cal ...... Feb 2-5 Eureka, Cal ............ Feb 12, J3 BROTHER W. M. WISDOM
San Rafael, Cal ............. Feb. 6 Oakland, Cal ............... Feb. :15
Petaluma, Cal ................. " 7 Richmond, Cal .............. " 16 Sapulna C~k~a.............. Feb 1, 5 Nowata, Okla .......... Feb. :10, :12
Santa Rosa, Cal ............... " 8 San Jose, Ca} ................ " :17 Okmulgee,Okla ................ Feb. 2 Claremore, 0kla ....... " :13, :14
" 10 Santa Cruz, Cal ............. " :19 Btxby. 0kla .................. " 3 Muskogee,Okla ............... Feb. 15
Scotia, Cal ......................... Feb 6, 7 Tamaha, Okla ...........
Bartlesmlle, Okla ........... Feb.’16, 17
Coffeywlle, Kan ............. " 8, 9 Fort Smith, Ark ............ Feb. 19
BROTHER G. R. POLLOCK
BROTHER L. F. ZINK
Miles, Tex........................ Feb. I ~ lyder, Tex....................... Feb 9
San Angelo, Tex ............... " 2 lmmesa, Tex .................. " 10 Maly~ die Wash............. Feb 1 Port Townsend, Wash Feb. 10
Merkel, Tex................... " 5 Lubbock, Tex ................. " 12 Everett. Wash.............. Feb. 2, 5 Puyallup, Wash........ Feb. 13, 14
Abilene, Tex ................. Feb 6, 7 Rosx~ell, N..SIex ..... Feb 13, 14 Snohomtsh, Wash ......... " 6, 7 Enumclaw. Wash ......... Feb. 15
" 8, 15 Eastland, Tex................. Feb. 16 Seattle, Wash............... " 8, 12 Tacoma. Wash .......... Feb. 16, 19
18weetwater, Tex ......... Bremerton, Wash............. Feb. 9 Lake Bay, Wash............. Feb. 17
CONTENTS
VIEWS FROMTH~ WATCHTOWER........................
35
AnOpen
Confessl,on
........................................
35
The AffectedMovement................................. 36
MoreTrenchant Words...................................... 36
The Poor Parson........................................ 37
More Southern Methodist Troubles ................37
A Basisfor Judgment..................................... 37
The OnlySafe%Vay.......................................... 38
THE PARENTHESISOF SIN ................................... 38
The Biblea Telescope .......................................
39
DivineJusticeiMamfested .................................
40
Who Createdthe Devil?.................................. 41
Lucifer’s A]nbltion Realized........................... 42
WickedSpiritsto be D~troyed....................... 43
GOD’S DEALINGS WITH A WICKED CITY ................44
AMOS~’~SISR~EI~ ,. ........................................ 46
THE AFFECTED MOVEMENT not have the effect of making war more unlikely than it
Other less ephemeral and more sophisticated words Is today. On the contrary, it will have the effect of making
war more likely, for it will remove one of the cbmf of the
are to be found in abundance. Mr. tI. G. Wells, per-
existing objections to war, to wit, the objection that It costs
spicuous English observer and writer who has been too much. What is needed, first, is a definite and final
visiting America with a view to taking in the Arms renunciation of the incessant international intriguing, the
Conference at closer range, says in the New York endless hatching of plots and alliances, the infernal dab-
World: bhng with encirclements and balances of power which caused
"Weare all n:tturally trivial creatures. We do not live the. last great war, and will inevitably cause another one
fl~m year to year; ~e live from day to day. Our minds if it is not soon almndoned. And what is needed, secondly,
naturally take short views and are distracted by little, im- is an equally defimte renunciatmn of the doctrine that it
mediate issues. We forget with astonishing facility. And is the solemn duty of certain powerful nations to interfere
this is as true of the high political persons who will gather forcibly with the tuner organization attd foreign relations
at Washington as It is of any overworked clerk ~ho will of certain weaker nations, and that the latter lay them-
read about tim conference in a street car or on the way selves open to just ptmishmeut when they remst.
hmne to SUl,per and bed. The~e big que,,nons affect every- "Tile actual pro’pose of the Conference from the American
body, and nlse they are too big for nnybody. A great in- standpoint -- not the purposes outlined in Dr. Harding’s
tellectu,d and moral effect is reqmred if they are to be lymcal nonsense, or even thtme de.~cmbed by the more in-
dealt wd_ll m any effectual manner." telligent and honest Mr. I-lughes, hut the real purpose, the
In another arhcle the same writer remarks: fundamental purpose -- is to chp the wings of Japan by
"At pre~ent the chief powers of the world show no signs diplomacy, and so obhterate the necessity of clipping them
of the collecNve action demanded. They are still obsessed by force. I£ the .Taps are to be permitted to run wild in
by old-faslnone(i ideas of national sovereignty and national Northern A~ta, then it means money out of Uncle Shm’s
competition, and tlmugl~ all verge on bankruptcy, they mare- pocket -- and not a few dollar% but millions and btlhons.
tam and deveh,p fre:,h ’trmms and fleets. Tlmt is to say, lie is trying (under M1 tile hl~lfalutin and posturing)
they are in the p~eparatory stage of another war. Solong accomplish this by bre’tkmg np the Anglo-,Iapanese alhance’
:ts this divtde(l :rod threatening state of affairs continues --by offering tile Government of England such gaudy induce-
theae can be no stabihts, no real general recovery ; shorlat~mes nlents that pubhe ()pinion x~dl force it to throw over the
~ ill incren,,e famine will spread, towns, reties, communica: laps and accept. If he s~ucceeds, then every Amertcan pro-
tions will decay; increasing mnsse~ (,f ~tarvmg unemployed hteer x~ho is a man and a Chmstian will fall upon his knees
will resort to more and more de,,perate and violent pro- and g~ve thank~ to God. If he fads, then we must prepare
tests, until they assume ,t qmls>xew)lutmnary character. for another butchery--and tlns tmle. in all probabdity, one
Education will ebb, and socml security dwindle and lade in the grand nmnner."
into ltnarchy. Clvthzatmn as xxe know it ~tll go under "The chihhsh nonsense of Dr. Harding about the altruism
and /l tle~ ~Dltr] r. Age begin. of the Umted States ts (h.eepllxe, of course, to no one, qnd
"And this fate is not thleatenlng m~dizatmn; it is hap- least of ,’ill to the laps They know very well th’lt tile in-
penmg to Clxlhz’ttion 1}efme our eyes The slup of mvihza- terest of the oligarch3, x~luch rules America m the hberty
tion is not going to sink tn hxe years’ lime or Ht titty >ears’ and honor of the Clnne~e, l~:orean% S~be~ians, and so on
ttnle. It is snd;]tlg next. l{usMa is nnder tile x~nter line, is infinitely l(.~s passmnate tlmn ~ts interest in the trade of
sbe h’ls cettsed to 1)reduce, she slat ~es; large are,’l,~ of East- these peoples. The American st-ttement of war nuns in 1917
ern Europe and Astll Silll,S toward the q’llUd level; tile in- was notornmsly hypocmtical and false, and every intelligent
dustrml areas of Germany lace a Imrnllel gram decline: lhe foreigner is well aware of ~t; exen certain rash Amemcans,
~mter will be tim x~ol’st on lecord tor British htbor. The for example Senator Glass, h’lve begun to denounce the dis-
pulse of Aln(-rtc,tn business weakens c~elmncy between tile protestation of lofty intention and
"To face v.h~ch s~tualton in the xxorhl’s "fftairs this crowd the obscene scramble for easy loot. In the present ease, no
of lmstfly comDled representanves’, and their associates, sane man believes, as Dr. Harding stud, that ’we harbor
dependents nnd satelhtes, now gatllel’s at ~Vashmgton. They no feglrs ’ and ’have no sordid ends to serve’. We harbor,
~re all, from l’resident ]:birding doxxn to the ra~est steno- in fact, a very re.ll fear--the fear of J’tpan, with a fear
gm,pher gnl, hunlan beings. That is to say, they are all of England flo’~ting in the air. And our end is quite as
inattentive, moods, trnlal, selhsh, evasive, patrmtm, preju- sordid "~s that of the laps themselves: we are trying to
dined creatmes, unahle to be mtell~aently selfish even, for keep them from bogging 2fsta, that our own patriotic entre-
nmte than "l ye-tr or so ahead, after the nature of . . . No. 1. p, cneurs may have a fair chance to swindle the simple
"Every one has some sort of bhndmg pm’sonal interest Amans, e. g., w~th eonsortnlms, missionaries, bootleg whis-
to distort the realities thglt he has to face. Politicians ha~e key, phonograph recnrds, chewing-gum, patent medmmes,
to lltink of their personal prestige and their party assocm- picture postcards, embalmed beef, mouldy flour, and all th6
Irons; naval and military experts have to think of their other great engines of Christian Kultur. Our altruism in
careers. Asia is precisely hke our altruism in Mexico and Eiait~
"One may argue it as good a gathering as our present a transparent disguise for self-interest."
e,rcumstances permit. Probably there is some good will "The case of American imperialism against ffapanese im-
for nil mankind in every one who comes. Probably not one 0eri.~hsm is as weak and hypocritical as the case of British
~s altogether blind to the tremendous disaster that towers navnlism against German mihtarmm. The laps have (lone
over us, but all are forgetful." nolhing to the Koreans that we have not done to the
Humans. In our case, in fact, the provocation was vastly
MORE TRENCHANT WORDS less, and the means adopted were even more brutal and
cowardly. The Japanese people needed room for expansion,
Still more penetrating words are found in the Balti- trod Korea was (hrectly under thmr noses; and it was .as
more Evening Sun: natural for them to ooze into it as it was for the Canadmns
"lf the total net result of tile Conference is merely a to ooze into Saskatchewan. But we went into Haiti for
imnzontal reduction in armaments, then it will certainly the sole purpose of screwing money out of the Haitians---
and our enlightened method of collecting it was to nmrder "His address to tile Martin class was in the nature of an
three thousand Haitians, nine-tenths of whom,I dare say, explanation of his suddenly changed purpose and also an
had never so much as heard of the debt, if actual debt it admonition to the church of a serious and radical ch,’mge
was. Here was imperialism in its crassest and most ignoble that he declares has come over the s~plmt of the service.
form--and the same President Harding, x~ho burbled of He charged directly that ~ithovt quahfication the ’unortho-
altruism last Saturday, and the same Secretary Hughes, dox doctrines’ were being tal~ght by mlssmnaties and that
who followed him with a plea for the stacking of arms, the mission schools were being ’saturated with the new
have taken over and accepted full responsibility for its theology’ which denies the divlmty of the Bible and the
consequences, and have let nine months go by without the miraculous birth of Christ, and that tins was being done
slightest moveto atone for them." with tile consent and upparent approv’i1 of tim niissmn
"Two different results may thus flow out of the Disarma- board. I~te had prote.-ted, he said, to the hm~rd without
ment Conference, judging by the cards now on the table. success, and not hemgconscientiously willing to continue
Fn’st, there may be u new Triple Alliance---England and in a service that was underniining the very e~entl.tl funda-
the United States, w,th the Japanese, maybe, admitted to mentals of the rehglon he beheved in and whmhlie had
the ante-chamber to save thmr faces--a Triple Alliance abandoned his professional business to teach the Chinese
that xxill last precisely as long as-any of those in the past in their blinthmss, returned honIe, lie closed with the ~arn-
have lasted, viz. : until the two great paladins of mghteous- ing to his hearers that tim same pois(m--ratmnah~m and
nes~ begin quarrehng oxer the spoils. Secondly, there may materialism--was spreading tlllOllghout tile ehllreh, and
be a genuine and whole-imarted abandonment of imperial- insisted that it must be met and countered; that ’heresy
ism and nnlitari~in--a torthi’Ight giving up, not of one or is not confined to tile work in China, but that fact,Gas in
t~o of the pi~,tols in the rack, but of’ the fundamental the church at home -ire seeking to take the divine msp~ra-
scheine of thnlgs that makes it p~ndent to keep them prim- tion out of the Bible winch, if not met and overeonm, would
ed anti loaded--a fornmi quitting of tile business of murder wreck the church on the rock of niatermhsm’."
and robbery as a means o17 gain. Tins is what Senator
Borah dreams of -- honest, uncontaminated, disinterested A BASIS FOR JUDGMENT
pe¢zce and good-will, like that, say, between Maryhmdand All we need to do to judge, ~ot of the everlasting
l’mm.--si~anIa--mternational relations purged of clncanery,
btut.’thty, awuice, braggadocio. destroy of ~nchviduals, but of the meats and demerits
"It l~- a beautiftll dleam. But don’t put any of your money of a Cltnst~an movement, is to ~nqmre into ~ts attitude
on it " toward the Word of God. A cursory review of the course
of Christendom will show it to be but a series of apos-
THE POOR PARSON tasms, with a few feeble returns to the truth; but >.’ver
Bad as pecnnmry con&tmns have been among Amer- has there been such complete apostasy as at the presm~t
ican c]crgymen (onLy seventeen percent of whomreceive time, even in those very bo(hcs ~]nch owe thmr rise to
$1.500.00 or over per )’ear), the con&irons are worse a return to God’s Word. Cathohmsm, as exhibited in
in Great Britain. The London Daily News comments the Greek and Roman Churches, has never in all these
on the situatmn m that country: ccntttnes of apostasy been guilty of the repudmtiou of
"The nuserable plight of the majomty of ministers of the Sacred Wmtmgs, but rather they have hidden them
religmn in nearly all denominatmns is the worst scandal --hidden them from the laity; h~dden them w~th a
of the churches today. They are expected, large numbers covering of superstitmus legends and observances; hid-
of them, to carry out tlieir high mission in cireumstnnces den them as the scribes had covered them of old, with
that a~ e often degr’tdmg and denloralizing, even to the finest such a thick crust of h’a&tmn that the very custedmns
spn’~ts, and on lnttances that a dustman would reject with
scorn. What mght have the lay critics, in the face of such of the t~uth did not l~ow the Truth when he came, but
notoi’,on.~ lacts as these, to complain of the thinness of the disdained and crucified him.
spiritual .,ustenance sometmies offered to them? And how The Greek Church, be it said to its credit, has always
long do they lInagnm it w~ll be before the source of supply cherished a knowledge of the original texts of the B~ble
ill altogether dry up? There are in the Church of England
at least four milhon commmiicants, from whoma contmbu- and has striven at various times to revise its Versions
tion of a shilhng apiece would provide, not only the sum to conform to them. While the Roman community
asked for on behalf of the clergy, but sufficient also to opposed the Reformation, the Greek Church inaugurated
supply the amount allotted by the National Assembly for a s~milar reform, but was opposed by the people. Never-
the pensions of clergymentoo old to do their work efficiently,
but compelled to continue as the only alternative to com- theless, that natmnal religion has become so firmly
plete destitution. A religion which is not worth a shilling a estabhshed by custom and usage, and is so far divorced
year seems to us to be x, orth nothing to speak of." from the vital realities of Holy Writ that it is deemed
The public ewdently concurs. unworthy of any d~vine support or protection. It has
already begun a serious disintegration.
MORESOUTHERNMETHODISTTROUBLES So much has been said against the Roman movement
All honest people must admire the course of ~r. by Protestants that it is needless to enlarge upon her
Charles W. Rankin, who has just returned from China crime in withholding the Scriptures from the people
where he has been doing missionary work under the and so utterly misrepresenting God as to lead them to
auspices of the Southern Methodist Church. Mr. Ran- suppose that he is bartering his favors for thmr penance
kin has recently resigned. The Chattanooga Sunday and their pence. They make merchandise of his gifts
Times remarks editorially: to ennch themselves. And Protestantism and its pro-
as ,rh, WATCH TOWER
geny has torn off somo of the traditions of Rome, spe- discards aught of divine revelation is proof of apostasy.
cially restoring the truth of justification by faith. The niost godly disciple of a doctrine which is bugressed
But even this truth has been practically &sownedby by hoary suppositions and sacred traditions may think
the various state churches which were founded upon it. that he is opposing the apostasy and still be its most
It still remains in their creeds, but finds only a scattered
efllment advocate !
ihdlvidual recognition amongtheir members. Tho greatest danger, to those who love God’s Word
lies, not in the carping critic, not from those wholive
THE, ONLY SAFE WAY on their emotions; for these do not exert nearly so great
Take as an evidence of the prohficness of apostasy an influence as defenders of the faith whoare honestly
one notable instance, Methodlsni. Itself a protest against endeavoring to oppose what they deem error.
lax living, it is repudiated on this ground by Free What ;s our safety, then ? Safety hes only in such a
][ethodism. This in turn is succeeded by the distinctly recognition of tlIe prevalence of apostasy as will lead
tIollne, ss Movement ; but this, in turn, is discounted by us to pass by all human authordv and supposition and
the "Tongues", which is itself split into various and tradition and found all our faith upon the facts of the
discordant divisions. Noble and devout students of God’s Word. Nor do we exclude ourselves from the list of
Word have been in all the movements in Christendom; those who should not be followed. Wehave the same
but the human element has sooner or later prevailed, difficulties within and without to contend with as the
and their followers have given their word, their opinions, rest. But we hope that all who read these hues may be
about the Scriptures a higher place than the Sacred able to grant us this one thing, that the burden of our
Text itself. message is a return to God’s Word. If it is not that,
Each of these movementsseems to have had one effect then we have no excuse for a separate existence. We
--to divorce believers from the faith. The most mar- claun only one thing--an earnest desire to believe God;
velous experience~ and visions and tongues, coupled with and to receive what he has said, regardless alike of the
extreme sanctity, if it refuses to bow to the Wordof praise of men or the fear of men; and apart from all
God, is proof of apostasy. The ripest scholarship which traditional beliefs or intelpretatmns.
WOmoral forcea, right and wrong, have been and for light, as we read: "The god of this world hath
T are operative in the world. That wrong seems to
be the more powerful of the two at present, will bo
blinded the minds of the unbelieving, that the light of
the gospel of the glory of Christ, whois the image of
considered by most. Aa to why this should be few can God, should dawn not upon them". In contrast to all
reasonably explain. Fewer yet will attempt to trace these "babbhngs of smence" Jehovah has stated the
these forces to their fountain-heads for a solution. entire case so clearly that all whodesire mayeasily find
l=[ave these forces always been active, and will wrong the real explanatlo’n, one wMeh satisfies reason, justice,
always be dominant? Could not the God who created love, and power. Whyneed we search further?
man and supplied him with a meani for a limited life Wecall to mind the strain of the Psalmist, "The
h~ve aranged far a perfect environment with perfect heavens relate the glory of God; and the expanse telleth
food and freedom from sin that he might have enjoyed of the work of his hands. Day unto day uttereth speech,
eternal life, thus avoiding the awful calamity, death, and night unto night showeth knowledge. There is no
and its attendant miaeries ? speech, there are no words; their voice is not heard,
Manyof the brightest minds of the ages have long but their melody e~endeth through all the earth, and
puzzled over these questions, unable to solve them. to ~lle end of the world their words." (Leeser) Care-
They were limited by lack of knowledge and of faith fully studying those heavens astronomers advise us that
in God, and deceived by the god of this world. There- the moonis about 240,000 miles from the earth. Its
fore there have been manyfalso theories advanced. We orbit therefore would be about 4~80,000 miles in diam-
need not 8top to inspect all the mentally and logically eter. The sun is 960,000 miles in diameter, large enough
nauseating creeds put forth by imperfect men. Satan to enclose several earths and their moons, orbits and
has continued to put light for darkness and darkness all. The sun is 93,000,000 miles from the earth. The
WATC H TOWER s9
diameter of the earth’s orbit is about 186,000,000miles. condition to one of order and life-sustaining arrange-
Astronomers tell us that Betelguese, one of the stars ments. Other Scriptures inform us that God had set
of the star-group Orion, has a diameter of 230,000,000 aside a great seven-day week for the perfecting of the
miles. This could enclose our sun, with the planets earth. Wemay ]mowfrom this that the earth was not
Vulcan, Mercury, Venus, and Earth, and permit them perfect at the end of sLx days. A perfect home in the
to continue thmr present courses about the sun, and Garden of Eden ~as specially prepared for the forth-
still not fill Betelguese. Yet Betelguese is but one of coming king of earth, man.
countless giants which course the skies. It is interesting to note that there is not the slightest
Whocreated Betelguese and his entourage, and who intimation that God created man to die, or that he only
directs their times and courses with a precisioa exceed- intended him to hve upon earth for a short tune and
ing that of a locomotive engineer, that every appoint- then transfer or transplant him elsewhere to other en-
ment shall be made exactly on time ? "To whomthen vironments, or that he had not made full provision for
will ye hken me, or shall I be equal? saith the Holy man’s eternal life. On the contrary, Genesis 2:9 and 3:
One. Lift up your eyes on high, and behold who hath 22 state very clearly that everything was prepared for
created these, that bringeth out their host by number; the enjoyment and eternal life of Adam. Cohld we ex-
he calleth them all by names by the greatness of his pect less from a loving, all-wise, all-powerful Creator to-
might, for that he is strong in power; not one fadeth." wards his creatures whomhe had brought forth in his
(Isaiah 40: 25, 26) No wonder the Psalmist again o,sn image? Nothing less did God provide. The crea-
exclaims. "What is man that thou art mindful of him? ture was perfect, his environments were perfect. He
and the son of man, that thou vlsitest hnn?" By way was basking in the full sunshine of the favor of his
of comparingthe relative sizes of the earth and Betel- Maker. He was given a perfect start and told to gen-
guese, we might think of a globe about 600 feet in erate after hi; mwnkind.
dmmeter as representing Bete]guese, the earth would
COMPANION FOR ADAM DIVINELY PROVIDED
be about the aze of a small pea. Then think of a speck
on the pea small enough ~u proportion to represent a God be.gun dealing with hml lovingly and methodic-
man. It wou]d be so small that the most powerful ally to develop his latent powers of mind that he might
m~croseopc would be reqmred to find it. Would amy knowhunself and his surroundings. To satisfy his hun-
sane mind contend that a bmngcapable of filling the ger he might choose from all the varied fruits of the
heavens x~lth gmnt,~ hke Betelguese and hohtmg them garden, only one exception being made. To keep the
mlc, ash, could not control the speck of a man, or a garden in order he might arrange his work as he de-
mvrmdof them, ff he so desired? "Behold, the natmns sired. (Genesis 2: 15) He enjoyed the favor of personal
are as a drop of a bucket, and are counted as the small commlmionwith his Creator, the Logos. All the birds
dust of the 1,nlanee; betaold, he taketh up the ~sles as ,nnd animals were brought before him that he might
a very little thmg."---Isamh 40" 15. ~ame them, and "whatsoever Adamcalled every living
creature that was the name thereof". His language and
TIlE BIBLE A TELESCOPE memory were thus put to work. Furthermore he must
The Ihble elamls to be a revelatton from God to man, have been set to thinking and reasoning, for "Adam
and Christmas and Jews trove so accepted it for cen- gave namesto all cattle, and to the fowl of the air, and
turies. Suppnqe we think of the Bd~le as a telescope to every beast of the field; but for Adamthere was not
through wluch we may vmwsomettnng of the scope of found an help meet for him". This implies that he
God’s xast empire, uhmhspans from ages past on into was looldng for some suitable companion, and since
the tumtless future. A hand telescope is usually folded none was found he must have thought and wondered
closely and has a cap over each end to protect the lenses. about it. Doubtless Jehovah thus coached his develop-
It ~ould be of httle value until the caps were removed meat in mind and, concurrently, in personal character
and it were adjusted to the eye of the obserxcr, usually that he might be able properly to use the great abilities
drawn to fl111 length. So with the Bible, it is of com- with which he had been endowedNs he realized his lack
paratively httle v,que to a possessor until the caps are of human companionship, and reflected upon it, he
remoxedand it Js properly adjusted. Drawingit to its would be better prepared to appreciate the gift of a
full length, as we woulda telescope, and letting Genesis partner statable to his station. With what ecstatic joy
and Re~elahon be the end lenses what do we see? A he must have first beheld Eve and realized that she was
clear wslon of God’s plan for the human race, from %oneof his bones, and flesh of his flesh’. Whata happy,
sinlessness to sinlessness, with an interim or parenthesis congenial union! What a mutual joy in each other’s
of 7000 years of sin. The first three chapters of Genesis companionship! Perfect beings, perfect in beauty, para-
describe the preparation of the earth as a homefor a disaic surroundings, eternal prospects. No forebodings
new creation, man. The work of six creative days, or of evil, not a cloud upon their horizon, not a thing to
epochs, of 7000years each, 42,000years, is briefly sketch- mar their happiness. What more could God give? As
ed, showing the gradual changing from a void or chaotic an obedient child never think~ of disobeying the parent~
4O WATCH TOWER
nor questions the right of the parent to give commands might not have been inflicted upon her, because she was
or limitations, doubtless these two never questioned the deceived.
prohibition to eat of the tree of knowledge. Whyshould Adamknew from experience what it was to be with-
they? There was plenty of everything needed for life out such a companion. He &d not wmtto seek further
and enjo)qnent. They were daily growing in knowledge information. He made up his own mind. He decided
and appreciation of their blessings, and luxuriating in to dmwith her, rather than live w.tthout her, as he
each other’s love and the love and care of God. supposed would be necessary; so he dehberately dis-
Here the record introduces another expermnce. One obeyed and made himself a transgressor.
of the well-known beings of the garden, the serpent, It Js a true saying,’"Consctence doeth’~makecowards
was used by some extemor power to convev a me~,age of us all". Instead of, as formerly, looking forward with
to the woman. Being found alone she was mwted to pleasure to the evening season of fellowship with their
Lord, they wanted to hide from his presence. The wise
use her reasomng faculties along a new hne, individ-
man says, "The winked flee ~hen no man pursueth".
ually, aside from consultation w~th her husband. Sug-
It is probable that wheneverthe Lord appeared to Adam
gestions merely, but with an msmuatmnof ewl on the
It was m some such manner as he appeard to Abrahanl
part of God tox~ards them. This was something new. m the plains of Mature. (Genesis 18) As Lucifer had
No force, no coercion used. Why did not the woman been appointed the care-taker and protector of Adam
immediately resent the insinuation against her very (Ezekml 28" ?4) it may be doubted, whether he had
best Friend? Because she had doubtless come to iove ever appeared m bodily form, though tie used the ser-
and trust the spirit being who was now deemvlng her. pent to present the temptatmn to Eve. Adamand Eve
She put forth her hand and took and did eat of the were human beings, perfect to be sure, but nothing
forbidden fruit. She did not discern the situation dear- more, "of the earth, earthy," as explained by St. Paul.
ly, for she was deceived by her tempter. No doubt the Not sprat-natured nor heavenly-minded, nor with the
fruit tasted good, just as it had looked desirable to the slightest hint that they nnght ever expect anything
eye. St. Paul tells us that the womanwas deemved; more than they had.
probably thinking she had found something valuable
DIVINE JUSTICE MANIFESTED
and desirable, and being o~ a generous disposition she
at once desired to share her new-foundtrea~,ul’e ~ltll Wepause a monlent to e.xamme the sentence passed
Adam. by the great Judge. No one has the right to add to or
take from what is recorded. "In the sweat of thy face
ADAM WAS NOT DECEIVED shalt thou ea~ bread, till thou l’eturn unto the ground;
Whenshe presented the fruit to hun, he ~a~_ not for out of ~t wast thou taken; for dust thou art, and
deceived for a moment, but he was confronted with a unto dust shalt thou return." No mtlmatmnhere that
situation never before met. Here was his first acquaint- there had been a consmoussoul or sprat hovering in the
ance with sin, the principle of wrong In action. How air at the tnne of Adam’s creatmn whmhGod had taken
should he meet ~t? Wemay reasonably presume that and placed in the created body: and no mtmmtionthat
his mind began to work as it had never worked before. he called such supposed combination man. (Genesis
}Its beautiful, lovely, God-given companionhad broken 2: 7) Hence ~hen he returned to the ground there could
the commandof God and eaten of the forbidden fruit. be no soul or spirit to continue conscious after the de-
struction of the body. Consciousness is only possible
What would be the result? Not many particulars are
given, but we may easily pmture the grief and &snIay with a body. To carry out the sentence they were denied
which wrung his heart and mind. No doubt in his mind longer access to the perfcct food and conditions of the
but that the death sentence would be imposed upon her garden (Genesis 3: 22), bat might prolong life for
as soon as the matter came before Jehovah. Apparently while by seeking such sustenance as m~ght be found in
there was no possible hope for her, she must die. What the herbs and roots outside. The results of the sentence
would he do? Apparently he must choose between life passed on to their offspring by heredity.
and loyalty to his Creator, without his wife, or disobey The last three chapters of Revelation bring to our
and die with her. What an opportunity for hm~to walt view the same human homestead 7,000 years later. The
and seek wisdom from God. Wemay readily conclude, full seven-day weekis there ended; the world perfected:
from other Scriptures bearing upon the subject that a world-wide Paradise; perEect con&trans, chmate,
God would have been willing to tell him that he was fruits and water; perfect government. Millions and
the head of the family, and that the responsibility billions of perfect beings--"the kings of the earth do
therefore rested upon him. He had not transgressed, bring their glory and honor rote" the mty or govern-
and was therefore not culpable; but as for Eve, behag ment. Who are they? The sons of Adam who had
in transgression, but not under direct personal trial, shared in his loss and terrible experiences ylth sm and
somepunishment suitable to flue offense would be meted death, but who were redeemed by Another, aM given
cut to her, and that would suffice. The death sentence the
, opportunity to recover frmn that loss, wiser, hapi)ier
FEBRUARY 1, 1922 T- ,e WATCH TOWER 41
stronger in character for their awful experience. They No one could be a son and be as old as his father. Thus
w:ll be able more fully to appremate tile wisdom, love, the tes~mmny multlphes that there was a tnne when
and power of God, and tns reason for hating sin m all Godwas alone. ’I-l is work is perfect; for all his ways
~ts forms, and Ins austme mdestroying forever all will- are judgment [justme]; a God of truth and w,thout
ful stoners. ]?he memoryof their terrible experiences lniqmty, lust and right is he." (Deuteronomy 32: 4)
during the rmgn of sm and death will cause them to Wrongcould not funetmn then, for there was no one to
recoil from ifs polluting touch with horror. They will put it into action. That was long before the beginning
,~tfll be humanbmngs their nature will not have been of sm.
altered mthe least: nor will theu’ place of residence After the bringing froth of the Logos there were two
have been changed. Neither will thmr transgression beings m the universe. Of hml we read that he was
alter God’s purpose to have a world filled with intelli- "holy, harmless, undefiled, and separate from sinners".
gent beings, in Ins ownlikeness and mmgeon the human Hence nmther of them was evil m any way The prin-
plalLe. mples of mght and wrong have aL~ays existed, as prin-
Stop and look at the pmture carefully. Every one ciples. But prmmples cannot act of themselves: there
perfect, with the ~lory and honor of God’s image stamp- must be some achve agent to put them into operahon.
ed forever upon lnm nothing to harm or make ah’ald, As God and the Logos were perfect in action as well
surromlded ~)lth the dehghts of Paradise, blessed with as being, they could not set the prmmpleof ~wonginto
the fellowship of ln.~ tellow-creatures, and every sense action.
of aoy and happiness fully gratified; forever freed from
sin; ~rong never again to function on earth. WHO CREATED THE DEVIL?
Man’sexpelience ~lth sin would therefore be a period In Ephesians 3.9 we are further reformed that it
of 7,000 years. He came Into the world sinless and was God "who created all things by Jesus Christ"; and
pure. He was told to propagate and replenish the earth. ,erse 11 states that all was m accord ruth a plan de-
H,s ~ransgresslon did not change God’s plan, but gave sJgned by God. In Colossmns 1:16 we are further m-
Godthe oppoltumiy to mamfest a wisdom, justice, love, formedthat by him, the Logos, "were all things created,
and power, m such a manner as might never have been that are in heaven, and that are in earth, wslble and in-
proper under any other condlhons, and to appeal to the V~slble, whether they be thrones, or dominions, or prin-
mte]hgence of h~s creatures as to the righteousness of clpahtms, or powers; all things were created by him and
all his acts. for him". Additional information is given in Revela-
hon 10:6: "Who created heaven, and the things that
WHEN GOD WAS ALONE thereto are and th~ earth, and the things that thereto
Thus our first v~ew through the telescope of God’s are, and the sea, and the things whmhare thereto".
Wordreveals the fact that God is fully able to cope Hence whatever life came into existence must have
with wrong and sin whenever and however he may received a start from the Logos. Furthermore, as the
please, so far as the earth is concerned. But this does prmmple of wrong must have an active agent, whoever
not carry us back far enough to see where sin first that active agent is must have received hfe from God
originafed. Wrongwas apparently already active when at the hands of the Logos. If there is a personal devil,
Adamfirst came in contact with it. Let us therefore here must have been his source of hfe. Did they make
turn our glass to scan further into the past. Suppose a devil? tIow could they if neither could do wrong?
we go back ?o the tnne when God was alone. Howmay To create a devil would surely be a great wrong. Is
we know that God ever was alone? By carefully scan- there then no devil, or if there is did he spring from
nmgthe records of the past which God has had recorded someother source ?
and preserved for our mstruchon. In Revelation 3:14 There were other intelligent beings long before man
we read that the Logos was "the beginning of the crea- was created, for we read m Job 38:7 that when the
tion of God". What God may have been doing before foundations of the earth were laid "the morning stars
he began creating is not material to the subject. That sang together, and all the sons of Godshouted for joy".
is back far enough. There he began the work of creat- Whowere these other "sons of God" who were so in-
ing. His first creation was the Logos. (John 1:1-3) terested in the work of creation that they verily shouted
Of course Godmust have existed before he could create for joy? The Psalmist says: "What is man that thou
anything. I-Ience before that he must have been alone. a~ mindful of him? and the son of man that thou
Again m Colossians 1 : 15 we read that the Logos was x’isitest him? For thou hast made him a little lower
"the image of the invisible God, the firstborn of every than the angels." Ah! they are angels, personal beings
crealure"--the same thought stated in different phrase. of somewha~higher order than man, w~th sprat-nature
God ~s not a creature, a created being, for he is from bodies instead of fleshly-nature bo&es. Our Lord further
everlasting to everlasting, t{e ~s called the Father of explains: "That which is born of the flesh is flesh [a
the Logos. No one could be a father and be no older fleshly or humanbeing] ; and that wluch is born of the
than his offspring. The Logos is called the Son of God. spirit is spirit [a spirit being with a spirit-body] ....
¯ WATCH TOWER ~IIOOKLYN,N. Y.
The wind bloweth where it listeth, and thou hearest the As yet his scheme was "in his mind", and doubtless he
sound thereof, but eanst not tell whenceit cometh, and thought no one could know of it, not even Jehovah.
whither it goeth, so is every one that is born of the liowever, if God is able to read the thoughts and im-
sprat [brought forth on the spirit plane of life]." Hu- aginations of the hearts of his creature man, is it pre-
manbeings cannot sense the presence of spirit beings, smnable that he would limit his ability to man alone
for their bodmsare so different. Intimations are given of all his intelligent creatures? Wouldit not be far
that there maybe several grades or planes of spirit be- more reasonable to suppose that he would reserve to
ings, or angels, someof less ability, and someof greater himself that privilege towards all his creatures? We
ability and authority. What a happy family of heavenly have no doubt then that Jehovah could easily read,the
beings, staging and praising God for his blessings and thoughts of Lucifer’s mind. Knowingthe final result
bounties, and all interested in every further manifesta- of sin, God could have nipped this insurrection "in the
tion of his wisdom and purposes. No wrong or sin bud" had he so desired. But supposing he had done so,
anywhere. Can any one imagine there were no ties of what would have been the effect upon all the other
love and affection amongthe membersof that family ? angels ? If Godhad instantly annihilated Lucifer, the
others, not knowing the cause, and unable to compre-
"LUCIFER, SON OF THE MORNING" hend the ultimate effects of sin if they had been told,
Weare not favored with the personal names of many would have considered God an arbitrary tyrant, and
of those heavenly beings; only three names are given, probably attributed all sorts of motives to his action,
viz., Michael, Gabriel, and Lucifer. Gabriel is mentioned such as jealousy, desire to showhis authority and power,
by name four times, Lucifer but once. Not muchis said etc. They would have feared him for his power, and
of rather Michaelor Gabriel by way of personal descrip- not loved and obeyed him in spirit and in truth. Ap-
*ion, but Lumfer is described at some length in Isaiah parently God gave no evidence of knowing Lucifer’s
14:12-19 and Ezekiel 28: 12-19. By connecting and thoughts.
combining the two descmptlons we have a clear state-
ment of the beginning of sin, also its calamitous end. LUCIFER’S AMBITION REALIZED
"0 Lucifer, son of the mm’ning," %houhast been in At just what time in the past Lucifer first entertained
Eden the garden of God; every precious stone was thy such thoughts is not stated, nor is it necessary for us
covering, the sardm%topaz, and the diamond, the beryl, to know, but evidently they were not acted upon until
the onyx, -’rod the ja.-per, {lie sapphire, the emeraldand he decided to try them out upon Adam. Being exceed-
the carbuncle, and gold ; the ~ orkman.~hlpof thy tabrets ing]y wise, he determined to present the matter to Eve,
and of thy Dpes was prel)ared in thee in the dav that who loved and trusted "The Morning Star" and to
thou wast created. Thou art the anointed cherub that Adamthrough his most vulnerable trait, his love for
covereth; and I have set thee so; thou wast upon the Eve. lie doubtless reasoned that it wmfld be useless
hod mountain of God; thou hast walked up a~d down to ask Adamto join in any open rebellion against
in the midst of the stones of fire. Thouwast perfect in God. He therefore planned to trap Adaminto an act
all thy ways from the day ihnt thou wast created, till of disobedience, which would result in his loss of favor
imqu~ty was found in thee." Howthou art fallen h’mn with Jehovah, and this wmfid automatically enlist him
heaven. "Thine heart was hfted up because of thv xv~th Lucifer. Weneed not rehearse the sad account
beauty, thou hast corrupted thy wisdom by reason of again. Lucifer succeeded. Then there were two in re-
thy bmghtness [turned all thy wisdom into the ways bellion against God, one a powerful angel, the other a
of wickedness and corruptmn]." "For thou hast said in man, with dominion over the earth. In the condemna-
thine heart [secretly plotted against God]: I will ascend tion against the serpent there was a veiled sentence
into heaven [usurp some position not given him by against Lucifer, which he may or may not have under-
Jehovah], I will exalt my throne above the stars of stood. He may have thought that Godhad not suspected
God [take a position above all my companions], I will his treachery, but reMly considered the serpent the gmlty
sit also upon the mount [government, p]ace of greater party, and therefore condemnedit henceforth to crawl
authority] of the congregation in the sides of the north ; upon its belly. But Lucifer had no intention of playing
I will ascend above the heights of the clouds ; I will be eqtml with his partner in sin. Adamhad something too
iike the 13lost High." alnable to be lost sight of, which Lucifer greatly de-
Here is the explanation of the first sin in the universe, sired, viz., the domimonof earth. Godhad not recalled
the principle of wrong put into action by a personal the appointment of Adamas ruler of the earth, although
agent, Lucifer. Being a free moral agent he had the it was of course implied in the deafh sentence. Lucifer
privilege of choosing that course if he so desired. mayhave had miller of two expectahons : one that Adaan
_No doubt Lucifer, "The lforning Star," was greatly would not really din, as death had never come to any
beloved by all the heavenly host, not only for his beauty of God’s moral creatures up to that hme, and provision
and wisdom, but also for his personahty and good qual- had been made for his eternal existence in the garden;
ities Also he occupied a high position in the kingdom. the other that if he should die the dominion might be
grasped by himself. It did not take the angel long to ground, which didst weaken the natmns .... Thou
bring the man and Ins posterity into subjection. (2 shalt be brought downto hell, to the stdes of the pit.
Corinthians 4: 4) Goddid not particularly interfere, They that see thee shall narrowly look upon thee, and
but let Lucifer have all the liberty necessary to plant consider thee, saying, is this the man that made the
and reap a full crop of sin, that all might see for {hem~ earth to tremble, that &d shake kingdoms ? That made
selves the actual fruit of sin gone to seed.--Rev. 14: 18. the world a wilderness, and destroyed the elhes thereof;
that opened not the house of his prisoners? .... By the
ANGELS TESTED AND SIFTED multitude of thy merehan&sethey ha~e filled the mlds~
What a letting these experiences must have been to of thee ruth violence, and thou hast stoned: therefore
all the angelK Every one would be compelled to make I will cast thee as profane out of the mountainof God;
a choice. Lucifer, the beautiful, great, nnghty, at the and I will destroy thee, 0 covering cherub, from the
head of powerful organizatmns carrying on an appar- midst of the stones of fire .... I will east thee to the
ently successful rebellion against God, yet God seem- ground, I will lay thee before kings, that they ma~be-
ingly making no effort to restrain him. What was the hold thee. Thou hast defiled thy sanctuaries by the
matter ? WasGod afrmd of Lucifer, and unable to meet multitude of thme miqmtIes, by the imqmty of thy
so able and wily an antagonist? But God could keep traffic; therefore will I bring forth a fire from the m~dst
his own counsel, and saw it would be well to let them of thee, it shall devour thee, and I will bring thee to
think. They were developing characters. Many con- ashes upon the earth in the sight of all them that be-
cluded Lucifer ~as having the best of it and demdedto hold thee." "All the king~ of the nahons, even all of
join him; thus he became ~he "chief of devils". (Luke them, lie in glory, every one in his own house But
11: 15) He organized principahties, powers, appointed thou art eaat out of thy grave hke an abominable
rulers of darkness, and set up his fellow wicked spirit branch, and aa the raiment of those that me slam, thrust
beings in heavenly positions in his government. (Ephe- through with a sword, that go downto the stones of the
roans 6: 12) The faith of every angel must have been pit; a caress8 trodden under foot. Thou shalt not be
severely tested. Doubtless somelost faith. Occasionally joined with them in burial, because thou hast destroyed
Godsent servants and prophets to promise great bless- thy land, and slam thy people" "All flley that know
ings some time in the future, after he had permitted thee amongthe people shall be astomshed at thee; thou
sm to run a suffiment course. art becomea terror, and never shalt thou be any more."
Other of the angels determined to trust God at all
events. What a change must have come over the once WICKED SPIRITS TO BE DESTROYED
happy heavenly home. Discord, division, breaking of Whata eastigatmn ! The final sentence has been pass-
tender heart-hes, and bonds of affectmn that had ce- ed; and Lucifer and all the lesser devils nowknowand
mented h’londs for ages. understand that God intends thmr l~nal destruction.
Nox~here m all the Bible is there an intimatmn, by (Luke 4: 34) God has permitted them to demonstrate
word, parable or prophecy that God has not been able fully the termble results of sin and their ownunworthi-
at all tlme~ to cope fully with any and every eondltmn ness for further hfe. They turned thmr domimoninto
of opposition that might arise. Menand angels might, a wilderness and madethemselves a terror to everything
from their own hmlted reasoning, indeed conclude that good and righteous. Their execution will therefore be
the situation had gotten beyond God. If they had an seen clearly to be in fullest harmonyw;th justme, not
opponent who was making such devastatmns and had only to themselves but towards all others.
the power to overthrow hmb how qmckly would they "And they sang the song of Moses the servant of
do it. Wouldthey permit him to continue his depreda- God, and the song of the Lamb, ~ymg. Great and
tions, deceiving, destroying and kflhng their best friends marvelous are thv works, Lord God Almighty; .lust and
and most loval supporters ? No, indeed ! Then why does true are thy ways, thou King of saints. Whoshall not
God? Ages roll by and still httle if any signs of ae- fear [reverence] thee, 0 Lord, and glorify they name?
tiwty on his part. The world is still in subjugation to for thou only art holy ; for all nations shall come and
Lucifer and he is doing about as he will. God must worship [in spirit and in truth because of thmr under-
be unable [some say] to carry out his benevolent designs, standing] before thee; for thy judgments are made
and he has left us to work out our own salvation. Lu- manifest." (Revelation 15:3, 4) "And I saw a new
cifer, later knownas the deQ1, coached such misrepre- heaven and a new earth, for the previous heaven and
sentations, and many forgot or ahnost began to hate the previous earth were passed away .... And there
God. shall in no wise enter into it anything that defileth, nei-
Finally God sent forth word by his prophets in no ther worketh abommatmn, or a lie; but [only] they
ancertain terms, though still somewhatcovered by fig- which are written in the Lamb’s book of hfe."--Reve-
tlrative applications as against "the king of Babylon" lation 21:1, gT.
and the "king of Tyrus". Weread again from Isaiah For ages in the past there was no such thing as sin.
14 and Ezekiel 28: "How art ~hou cut down ~o the God’s Wordreveals to us the first inception of sin in
the mindof Lucifer, tracing it downto its full irmtion; short time¯ It might be called aa explanatory parenthe-
the wreck it madeof him and all whofollowed in his sis of the ages whichmoreclearly reveals God’s wonder-
course, the awftfl pall it cast over heavenand earth ; ful characteristics, justice, love, power, andwisdom.
and leads on dox~mto sin’s final extinction. Again will "I will extol thee, myGod,0 king; and I will bless
follow ages where there will be no sin. The memory thy namefor ever and ever .... Great is~ Jehovah, and
of the misery, distress, and destruction during the re- greatly to be praised, and lns greatness is unsearchable¯
bellion of Satan will seem hke a hormble mghtmare ¯ . . I will speak of the glorious honorof thy majesty,
of the past, and cause every child of Godto forever and of thy wondrousworks .... They shall abundantly
recoil from the death-deahngtouch of sin. utter the memoryof thy great goodness, and sing of
As we by faith now behold the glormus outcome, and thv r~ghteousness .... They shall speak of the glory
~ready see tim I~ord of hosts resumingcontrol, shall cl thy kingdom,and ,+a]k of thy power; to makekmow-n
we not enthusmshcallyjoin in the hallelujah chorus of to the sons of menhis m~ghtyacts, and the glorious
I~evelahon5 : ] 1-14 ? l~mje~y of his kingdom .... Thou openest thy hand
Looking thus through God’s Wordwe see that sm and satisfiest the desire of ever), hwngthing."--Parts
ha-s bees1 permitted of Godfor only a comparatively of Psalm 145~
in Ephram~. The pJophevies which God g’tve through hun irom now on to h:tve a representative at tlie court of Nine-
om(erning lgptu-aim were Sllch as showed tlint tim kingdom veh, and to have the same representative as had been at
Of ]’,lael xxllb Io l(,~ltln some grollnd from the .]kqqyrl,l.ns the (ourt of Ephrnml. because the supremacy was pa~smg
~lli(:li h.’M been tsken under c~rcumstances lilimihatt~lg to from Ephraim to Aq~yria. Assyria was to become domnlant
lhe Isinehto- .Jonah’s l~lophecles gulned for him pox~er, o~er the Semitic p(u)ple%
plIbltlOn alld poplll,llll3 at {31liFt and 11nlonI£ tile people 21m secret voice of llm Lind as it came to Jonah ~as
I~;ut (;od lind lne\ionsly foretohl (1 l(lngq 14:15, 16) tlna tram unwelcome lhs previous ministry hall won for
tiox~ Assyria x~ouid be the whip in h~s hand to chasten hun fame and, doubtless, the fortune that goes with fame.
lus people Israel Tins tin’eat still hung over them unfnl- To move to Nineveh now after he h’id prophesied proseprity
fille~l, despite the otlmr prophecy concerning the tenapor,lry for Israel, to go to that long-brae enemy of Israel and
pi-.~lierlty ftf l~,’ml The A~sll’i:in kingdom lind been tile extend to them opportunity for repentance, an(L thus make
nmat l)owelful of all the kmgdonis in the worhl for snn]e likely an avoidance of their destruction, would be to turn
tram ln’ior to .]omllf~ experi(,ncea BIll shortly before the from mini,,tering to his own country and be ’rendering aid
trine of Jeroi)o’tm lhe Second’s reign A~,alrnI was experi- and comfort to the eneniy’. Tlie whole idea offended his
en(_uig a hacksei- There are e~gllteen ~flent yearn in her patrlotm feeling, woumled his national prude, Such a move
oxen lnutory, \~lHvh meill/~ that there ~ere no conquests-- would also involve him in the loss of social adv:tntage, and
history being iurgel5 a record of conquests and defe’ils. woubl ruin hm temporal prospects. It wouh! break up the
During tlie~e e~ghteen or twenty years the great and proud sncred ties of home and country. In the eyes of his auso-
city of :Nineveh had experienced the chagrin of rexolutions cintes it would he nothing short of social and rehgmus
from ~ar.)uu ot its provnlfies. It really looked as though heresy. It would ostracize him for ever from the things
A~syrm’s sun was at)out to set. If it did set, then God’s ~lnch he had held dear. It would tarnish his proptietlc
prophecy about the breaking of Ephraim could not be ful- glory, and destroy his prestige among his own people. It
filled; and the Ephralmltes hoped that tlus might be the would expose him to tile charge of inconsistency. I-Ie would
case. be classed as a pervert, a traitor, a renegade.
But God’s vision was longer-sighted than man’s. When
the time drew near for Ephraim’s (Israel’s) denationaliza- EFFORT TO ESCAPE
tion, an ambassador ~as ordered to Assyria to prepare a Did he have the streu~h to proclaim publicly the mes-
shelter for the exiles from Israel who would b~ led thither sage which had been ~hispered to him In private? On the
captive. That ambassador was Jonah. one hand lay the favor of God; OR the other the respect
of man. On one side was divine truth; on the other, an-
JONAH’S AWKWARDSITUATION cient custom. On the one hand was the vision of a future
Imagine ilie situation ill which Jonah found himself when which was offensive to his national pr~de: on the other the
the miraculous ~hisper told him to go to Nineveh and to melnory of a past which flattered his personal vanity. Was
cry against its wickedness. "Now Nineveh became a great there no third way? Oh yes: he m~ght dod,-e it, (lodge the
city unto God," as reads the literal rendering of Jonah 3:3. re(ponsibility for such a drastic change in his life.
That is, Nineveh began to show up large in the divine The more Jonah thought of the proposition the more it
purposes. Ephrmin was about to cease being the head appealed to him to be the proper thing to do--to get away
WATCH TOWER 45
from the whole thing. Anyway, he was not seeking to avoid prayed to God that they might be blood guiltless in the
the prophetic mission simply to spare his personal pride, matter. Then they threw Jonah overboard.
the humiliation attendant upon such a work: for if he got A great fish had been prepared by God to swallow Jonah
away he would also be serving his country a good turn. up. This was not to keep him from drowning, but was to
:His patriotism was almost stronger than his love for God. render easier a deliverance of him at a certain spot three
It was generally understood that outside of the Holy Land days later, and to make more specific the picture of his
God would not communicate his messages. So if he could entombment. During the last moments of his consciousness
only get away and bury himself in the depths of heathen- inside the great hsh, Jonah prayed earnestly coming quick-
dom, there he would cease to hear the voice of God. 1Nineveh ly to the point of sorrow for his own course of disobedience.
would not be warned, would not repent, would therefore be Snatches of psalms passed raptdly through his mind, and
destroyed, and his people Israel spared the degradation of after his deliverance he wrote these down under prophetic
defeat and captivity at tile hands of the great Assyrian guidance.
power.
The voice was at once so imperative and so persistent ANOTHER MESSAGE
that he mu~t do something: so he journeyed more than fifty
Three days later Jonah found himseff disgorged on dry
miles to Joppa, and there paid passage on a ship bound for land, probably not far from Joppa, whence he made his way
Tarshish, now known a~ Glbralh’lr. He pa~d his fare all back to Gath-hepher, his home. Jonah had now learned
the way, but did not get the worth of Ins money. Man’s much toward the suppression of his racial prejudice. He
schemes are often different from God’s plans. still had something to learn about his religious prejudice.
After tile slap had gotten well out to sea and while He waited for another message from the Lord. Finally it
Jonah ~ns sleeping, exhausted, somewhere under deck, a came, and was practically the same as his first. He was
mighty storm arose x~lnch so tossed the craft as to threaten told to arise and go to Nineveh and preach unto it the
~ts nnmedmte destiuctmn. This storm was raised by divine preaching which God would show him. Now Nineveh was
power to £nl’ntsh a means of teacldng Jonah a lesson winch above five hundred miles from Jonah’s home and was a
he might not have learned in another way. long and arduous journey. But Jonah made it, this time,
Tile storm was so great that even the experienced sailors without a whimper.
were frightened. They heaved overboard much of their cargo The present ruins of Nineveh correspond exactly in slze
and movables, to ligilten the strip. They called every man with the s~ze indicated in thin prophecy. It was three days
upon hm o~n God, pr’~ying for deliverance. But tlle waves journey in circumference, or about sixty miles around, fif-
continued to rage and beat upon the sides of the ship with teen miles on each side. The present area, as shown by
fury. S,nce the heathen prayers were unavailing, the ship’s the mound heaps and ruins of the ancient walls, consists of
master descended to awaken Jonah and to m~plore him to about two hundred sixteen square miles. But it must be
call upon h~s God. Maybe he wonld be willing to grant the remembered that the city was loosely built with houses of
dehver~ulce. It is not said that Jonall pra3ed. :But it is mostly one story, and that there were large tracts for culti-
reasonably certain that he did some thinking. He perceived vation and pasturage inside the walls.
that the storm was connected with his own disobedmnt Nineveh existed as the head of the Assyrian kingdom for
flight and ~th his effort to escape tile instructions of the about a thousand years, but there was never any natmnal
Lord. He began to reahze that God had more than one coherence in e~ther tile Assyrian kingdom or the empire.
way of spe:,king. If Jonah wmfld not hsten to the inner It was maintained solely by force of arms. The Asu}rian
and miraculous whisper, perhaps tie would give heed to the rulm’s were almost all high class bandits, dragging into
nnghty wa~es, beside which Jonah was a mere pygmy for their capital city the spoils of pilfered nations. There was
power. no patriotic fervor in Nineveh. It was merely a place to
Meanwhile the sailors were casting lots to ascertain whose trade and to gamble. Lt was filled with a motley crowd of
fault it was for ~lHch the evil had come upon them. The fantasnllc fore~gners.
lot fell upon Jonah. Here was another lesson for Jonah: Just at this time the city was suffering reverses and
God was as able to overrule the lots on a heathen vessel God’s message of repentance came to them through his
on a heathen sea as he was in connection with the high prophet Jonah. The Prophet entered into tim confines of
prmst’s bag iu the Temple at Jerusalem. Jonah was trying the great city, declaring hm message to the people whom
he met in the byways, market-places and concourses, for
to escape from the presence of the Lord; bt, t he was begin-
ning to learn that God is no mere national Deity. one whnle day. So marked was the heed g~ven to Ins simple
utterance that it was carrmd on by its own momentum, and
When the sailors learned that Jonah was a worshiper finally reached the ears of the king, safely enseonsed be-
of Jehovah, who made the sea and the dry land, they had hind his palace walls, his body-guard, and his royal hang-
much respect for him and desired to know what Omy could ings.
do to cahn tile sea, for it was becolnmg more and more The king had evidently been troubled, and this new mes-
tempestuous. Jonah was moved by the candor and rever- sage from the God of Israel gave lure hope. Repent they
ence shown by these heathen satlors, and was likewise re- could, and repent they would. Anything to turn the ttde of
buked by it. Hele he was, trying hm best to escape from theJr mmfortune. He felt flattered to have tills muctl atten-
Jehovah’s service; and here were these pagan sailors will- tion from the special Guardmn of h~s specml enemy. The
ing to run much risk for him. He got the ~dea of m~glm- king sent forth couriers throughout the city to declare a
nimlty from them, and at the same time realized the ju~st- fast of both man and beast. The king rightly understood
ness of a proposition from h,m. He proposed to offer tam- the message to imply that if they repented from the wolence
self a sacrifice that the rest might be spared from the which they had been accustomed to doing the city might
dangers of the deep. be spared. If there were no hope, why should Jehovah take
But even then the sailors were loath to take so much the tronhle to warn them? Accordingly, the fast and ~ts
responsib,hty. They made a last desperate effort to reach accompanying physical humiliation was carried out in ex-
land by hard rowing, but could not. E~en when their efforts treme heathen style; but there is everything to in(hcate
furled in this dn’ection they had such respect for God’s that the repentance on the part of both king and people
power that they did not give up Jonah until they had was genuine.
BROOKLkN, N. Y.
,rh WATCH TOWER
REPINING AT REPENTANCE hovah said to hlm, ill subbtance ’Are you not m your
Jonah bee,ram indignant at this turn of events. This re- anger refuting the very grounds of your own discontent?
pentance ot the Nmevites showed that their city would not You have taken an interest in a plant which was grown on
be destroyed, and that it xxould, therefore, be used m liar- heathensoil. You acceptedthe ministration of tile plant,
mony ~x ~th God’s prophecy to pumsh Ins people Israel. His which was a plant of Nineveh. You dld not disdain its
rehgmus prejmhee was still strong, forgetting, as he ,hd, shadowbecauseit grew on heathensoil.You did not insist
that ]as own ten tr,bes had long been separated from the on tranqplantlngit into JewlshgroundbeforeacceptingIts
proper place of x~orsh~p, Jerusalenl IIe entertanled a cet- servlceNo You eagerly soughtits shade, becausett reel
tain ,lmomlt of disdain for thlq heathen ,’epentance. It was yourneed,becauseit satisfied yourcravingfor refreshment.
lid, ,recording to ~Jtual, and perhaps God would not accept And ~hall not I acceptthe serv,ceof Nineveh?Thoughits
it after all. He wonld hang around and see x~hat happened. fast be a heathenfast, thoughits cry be a cry from pagan
The Prophet went outrode the city to a ridge of hills hearts,thoughits repentancebe the repentanceof an un-
lying to enstw’/rd and built him a httle b,)oth He would tutored constmnce,thoughits voice be the voice, not of
wa,t out the folty days, at all events, and see what to do intelhgentkn(m ledge,but of dire presentiment,
It refreshes
after that tmle Jonah’s first great lesson ~as shown lnm my heart,it satt.bfiesiny longingfor responsive love.]By
by tile might3 waves of the ocean. They were admittedly your ox~ n angeryou have vindlcatedmy ways.’
his supemor But now another lesson ~as to be taught
him by a hnmble little broad-leaved plant, over which he JONAH AS TYPE8
felt Ins poster. God caused tills plant to grow up and to
stuehl him from the burning sun. X~ hen Jonah had come As for types there are two distinct ones indicated:
to appreciate the plant and its se,~,ces toward hm,, God (1) Jonah ~ns a t)pe of the death, burial, and resur-
caused worms to unleave the plant and a hot sirocco wind rection of our Lord. (Matthew 12:40) As our Lord was
to blow upon him until he longed fol death ra,sed from the dead at the end of his period of death,
]-]ere God questioned Jonah as to the proprmty of hL~ so Jonah was cast forth from his temporary "sheol".
great dmpleltsure. Jonah was not backward about saying (2) "As Jonah was a mgn unto the Ninevites, so shall
that lie was angry and that he had good cause. The de- also the Son of man be to thin generation." (Luke 11:30)
structmn of the plant was merely the last straw. Every- The generation which was witnessed to by our Lord after
thing had conspired to irritate Jonah, to ruffle his feehngs. his death, burial, and resurrection, was as grieved and
lhq dl<pleqsure at the repentance of the Ninevites was not angered at the faith and repentance of those to whom the
the waywardness of a child, but was the displeasure of a resurrection of our Lord was proclaimed as Jonah was
nlan of GOd, for what seemed to h,m great and sufficient at the repentance of the Nlnevites, or as the Nlnevttes would
reA~,ons. presumably have been at the message of Jonah had they
Then the Lord carefully showed Jonah what he xx,shed been as stiffnecked and hard of heart as were the Jews of
hill, to learn from the worm-eaten and withered plant, ae- our Lord’s day.
lianl people had settled down to ease and luxury--to self- But the bnlk of the world’s wealth is in the hands of
gratihcatmn. They considered that they had won ill the the few. The inordinately rich are in great danger of
battle of life, and would now take their ease and enjoy injuring themselveG. Some of these cannot devise ways and
the frmts of their strife and diligence. They would let the means by which to consume even their incomes. Luxuries
other fellou do the worrying for awhile, and they would of every kind are tasted in the hope of finding rest, happi-
live on Easy Street. ness, joy, peace. Not finding these, mankind still pursue
The Lord through the Prophet upbraided them, assuring them, seeking new avenues to happiness. Wealth brings
them that he was not pleased with such a course. EIe tells increased opportunity for sin in Its various forms, including
them that woes are to be expected as a result. It was debauchery.
made the mission of Amos to call attention to the fact The influence upon the poor is notable. The latter, seek-
that aggressive selfishness had accumulated great riches, Ing pleasure, imagine erroneously that the rich and indolent
that the wealthy were living in great luxury, and that these are finding it, while they themaelve~ are seeking in vain.
conditions fostered pride and moral laxity among the Thus the poorer, surrounded by the wonderful blessings of
wealthy; while the poor were being filled with avarice, our day, are often miserable, because their minds are dis-
losing respect for God and religion, for truth and mercy, contented. They want happiness, Joy, pIeasure, and believe
and the desire fer further knowledge of God. Society was they can obtain these only through wealth. The result is
on the edge of a great volcano, and God declared that an that their hearts are filling with anger and malice, and
eruption was near at hand. Amos was his mouthpiece. Jealousy of the rich. The way is thus paved for most evil
Today’s lesson is a part of the message he delivered. and atrocious conditions, and many are fully persuaded
Our lesson is not inappropriate to our times. Nothwith- that our present comparatively favorable social conditions
standing the progress that has been made in many good are maintained only through police and military power,
lines, inside and outside the Christian denominations, never- backed by all the assistance of modern times--the telegraph,
theless there is danger. First of all, let us consider the telephones, etc.
WATCH TOWER 47
"WARN THEM THAT ARE RICH" first-borns, whose names are written in heaven. (Hebrews
These words of tim Apostle~ were never more in season :12: 23) These are to be highly exalted and to be used of
than now The~e t~ustmg in rite uncertainty of riches need the Ahn~ghty ~th the Savmr Jesus in the great work of
to arouse lhem,elxes. They need to learn the lesson that blessing the uhole world. These are the seed of Abraham,
the pleasure theb seek hes not in the (hreetion of their the body of the Me,~i’th, of which Jesus is the Head.--
indulgenc~ of self, but rqther in self-sacmfiee--in the service Galatians 3’ 16-19.
of other~. :Indeed this lb the great lesson for :ill to learn The greatest pmvdege of the present time ~s to get into
--both rmh and poor While nnllions are seeking ~oy, plea- th]u elect e,)mpany of God’~ saints. In order to enter this
sure, only a remnrk,tbly few have f(mnd lhem. ’l’h,i~e few emnpany faith and obe(hence are necessary requisites. That
are God’s saintly people---whether Cathohcs or Protestants. fatth must recogmze 3esus as the l~anlb of God, the Sin-
The secret of their success h~ hnding xxh.’lt olhets are Be:~rer. X\’e must recogmze him also -Is the Pattern and
still seeking for lies m the fact that they have been heaven- Exemplar. The reward will be to those uho have h~s spirit,
directed, nnd that they have follox~e(l the gmdance ,ff God’s 1H~ dl~l)O~lnnn, and xxho xxJll ~alk thrm,gh the present hfe
Word. And the more fully thpy have heeded h~< mstructmns, m his footsteps. Such will eventually gain ~lth him glory,
the greater has been tltmr blesslnt~. God’s mes.~age to all honor, lmmnrtahty--the kingdom.
is, Seek first Gods ~ghtcx)usness, God’s ufll. the diwne In the present time they ~ll to the w,,rh] seem to have
rule or kingdom. Father Adam rebelled against the dwine the unfavorable side, ft battle against the ,aorld, the flesh,
will, and by breaking hls covenant precipitated upon lain- and lhe adversary The werhl e’tnnot understand what
self an avalanche of imperfection and death, which has plea<ure anti blessing these really enjoy because of the
since remained on the world--the rmgn of sm and death. eonfnrm~ty of then" ~llls to God’s wilt, and because of the
God’s Word reveals that in due time lie will roll away spiral of the I,ord, winch they consequently reemve. But
the curse, and bring blesslngu and opportunities to every these alone have the peace and ]oy and blessing which the
member of our race. But meantime he would gather out ~xorld can nmther gl~e nor t’tke away. What other men
a special class for a special purpose---the church of the are seeking and falling to find, God’s saints enjoy.
INTERESTING LETTERS
APPRECIATES THE HARP OF GOD tion", that subject being just now partieularly due and In
order. As pre~ented in T~E HAra? it should surely appeal
DEAR BROTHERRUTHERFORD:
to all openminded people the x~orld over. Surely it has been
I consider THE HARPOF GODa most wonderful epitome of especially directed of our Lord for this time. May it ae-
the STUDIES IN THE SCRIPTUBES. All the salient Scripture enmphsh things for the people by preparing them for resti-
points of God’s plan are thereto clearly and forcefully set tution blessings now just at the door. I am,
forth, and in a way of clear and furl comprehension on Your fellow serwmt in the Lord, ELSTO~LVTT~.r.~..--A/a.
the reader’s part. In fact, upon its reader’s mind is deeply
impressed all the points he would be apt to retain from a
careful perusal of the entire set of the STUDIESI~’q TI=~E INVESTMENTS
SCRIPTURESaS they pertain to the plan of God. Quite a number of the friends have been induced to invest their
The reader of THE HARP OF GOD can gain a quicker, if small uavlngs in oil and other stocks and have lo~t Our advice is
asked and we answer: Great corporatmns control the off, gold and
not a more comprehensive, knowledge of the truth as we mduutrml businesu. If a small independent company is fortunate
understand it than he could obtain by giving manifoldly enough to stroke off or gold the big companies make it impossible
for the snlall conlpany In uucceod and tile latter ]u compelled to
more time to the reading of the STUDIES, wherein he must sell cut to the big corporations for practically nothing or lose all.
wade through so much matter that bears only indirectly If glnall anlollnt ¢, ale ln~e~ted in tile big O1] or lUlnln~_ companies’
stock,, then the ma3olity stocldiolders USllally put through some
upon the simple outline of the divine plan. schemeto .squeeze out tile "httle fellow" The Lord’s people should
For beginners this book fills a long felt want, eupecially keep lhelr haulls out of tile hon’-~ mouth. Onr advice would be to
avoidall ~ucli lnge,,~tlnell(,~
In this day of rush and hurry and lack of time to read.
I have read THE HARPwith profit as a means of refreshing COLORED BRETHREN
my mind on things long known. It is t,’uly a wonder. L~ke Informatmn t~ needed at tlu~ office for the Colored Branch, for
orgamzatmn Vte request each (]a<s of colored brethren that is
the "Millions" book it goes right to the point. There is no olganlzed tO advise u- thlongh lig secretary of *lie number in the
(lass Dad In towns x~llele there ls only one brother or sister,
mistaking its meaning; seemingly it has no superfluous for such to I.indl~ ~mte to tlu~ othce gwmgname and address.
words. Divine help surely was given in its preparation. ThIS lnfolnlatlon (’fill be glVell Oll a poslal ~ar(l addressed 3,¥ATCH
TuWrlt 1),H3[.e & Ta’.c’-v SOClETX, Cololed Depart~nent, 124 Columbia
I trust THE HARPOF GODwill be widely advertised, widely Heights, Btookl:~n, N. Y
circulated and ~dely read. It simply can’t be bent as a
HYMNS FOR APRIL
speedy means of enhghtening the peaple on "the plan of the
ages". For the restitution class it goes ahead o£ anything Sunday........... 2 254 9 78 16 58 23 70 30 21
the Society has yet brought forth. It bears effectually the Monday ............ 3 2S9 10 95 17 90 24 267 .........
messqge of the hour. Tuesday............ 4 46 11 47 18 333 25 93 .........
As a publication it ~s surely worth its weight in diamonds Wednesday ...... 5 128 12 92 19 269 26 74 .........
if not in radium. Thursday ........ 6 299 13 122 20 275 27 229 .........
Faithfully yours, a’. A. BOH~ET.--PIIgri~. Friday.............. 7 226 14 190 21 209 28 19 ...........
Saturday 1, 183 8 184 15 308 ZZ 1 29 112 ............
VALUABLE ADDITION TO TRUTH LIBRARY PRAYER-MEETING TEXTS FOR APRIL
DEAR BROTHERRUTHERFORD: April 5"THEPRINCEOF PEACE."H~s name shall be called . . .
tim I’rlnce of Peace"--Isahth 9. 6
I ju-~t wish to exln e~S In icily my apprecmtion of your last April 12. CHRIST THI~ DAYSPRING "The dayspring from on
book. T~]F. ]I.uu, OF GOD.While I have been studyin~ present high hath visited us."--Luke 1:78.
truth for abont 33 ~ears, yet I consider Tin,: ]_-]ARP as a April 19. C}~RiST ql-lE DELIVERER:"There shall come out of
Zion the Dehveler "--Romans l : 26
most valuable addition to my truth hbrary. Tht~ thought, April 26: C}IR;ST OVIt W,SDO.~: "Chrmt Jegus... of God Is
o£ course, al)i,he> partmularly to the last chapter, Bestora- made, unto us w~sdom."--i Corinthians 1:30.
International Bible StudentsA sociation Classes
~¢c~urc~artd ~udlc,5 b~ Travclm~brethren
BROTHER IL H. BARBER BROTHER %:. C. RICE
New BrooMand, S C ....... Feb 19 Charleston, S. C ............... Feb. 26 Seal~, Tex ......... Feb 14, 15 Bandera, Tex .......... Feb 22
I(ershaw, S C ............. " 20 Elk,), S C ....................... " 27 ]Iallettsvdle, Tex ..... Veil 16 Tarpley, Tex. _Feb. 23, 24
Rock I-hll S C .............. " 21 AugustaGa..................... " 28 San Anlomo, Tex ....... I:eb 17, 26 Smmmns, Tex ...... " 27, 28
Sumter, S C ............. Feb 22,23 Macon.Ga ...................... Mar 1 Ke]l~ file, Tcx ............... Feb. 19 Mathl% Tex ................. Mar. l
Lamar, S. C ................. Feb 2t Eufaula, Ala .............. " 2 Comfort,Tex................... " 20 Premont, Tex ......... ’ 2
BROTHER J. A. BOHNET
Shreveport, La ............... BROTHER R. L. ROBIE
Feb. 15 Dover, Ark ......... Feb 23
Foreman, Ark ............. Feb. 16, 17 I[a~ana, Ark " 24 Montgomery,Ala ............. Feb. 21
Washburn,Ark................. Feb 19 Little Rock, Ark--_ - _. " 26 Cedartown, Ga ............... Feb 15
Fort Smith, Ark ............... Hot Spllngs, A]k ........ " 27 Tallapoosa, Ga................. " 16 Blex~ton, Ala ............... " 22
" 20 Poll City, Ala ................. " 17 Bay Mmette, Ala ....... Feb. 23, 24
Ozark,Ark...................... " 21 Donaldson, Alk ........ " 28
Biimlngham, Ala ............. " 19 Mobile, Ala .............. " 26, 27
Bessemer,Ala ................. " 20 Deer t’aik, Ala ................ Feb. 28
BROTHER E. F. CRIST
Batavia, N. Y................... Feb. 17 Cortland, N Y ............. Feb 23
Rochester, N. Y .............. " 19 Ithaca, N Y ....... " :24 BROTHER W. J. THORN
Ha.mmondsport, N. Y ....... " .’20 Sy]acuse, N Y .... Feb 261Mar 1 Wilhston, Fin .................. Feb 12 Mlllville, Fla ............ Feb. 20
~lmira, NY .................... " 21 Auburn, N. Y ............ Feb 26,27 DowhngPark, Fla ........... ’ 14 De Fumak Spgs, Fla. Feb. 22, 23
Blnghamton, N. Y ........... " 22 Geneva, N Y ................ Feb 28 Monticello, Fin ............. " 15 Pensacola, Fla .......... " 25,26
MtrmnnaFla ........... Feb 16, 17 Florala, Ala .................. Feb 27
Dothan,A]a .................... Feb. 19 Stella, Fla ....................... " 28
BROTtlER A. J. ESHLEMAN
Valparaiso, Ind ........ Feb 17 Mansfichl,Ohio................ Feb 23
Fort WayneInd ............ " ]9 Newark. Ohm............... " 24 BROTHER T. H. THORNTON
Van Wert, Ohio .............. " 20 Zane~vdle. Ohm............. " 26
Lima. Ohio .................... " 21 Cmul)rldge. Ohio ....... " 27
Ma]mn,(ghlo .................. " ’2’2 Wheehng, ~% \’a __. " 28 Kewance,Ill ............... Feb 15, :16 Decatur.Ill ..................... Feb 22
Knoxville. Ill ............... Feb 17 Hammond,Ill ................... " 23
Peoria. Ill ....................... ~ 19 Monticello, iII ............... " 24
Canton, Ill ................... " 20 Champmgn.’Ill ......... Feb 26, 27
Bloomington,Ill ............... " 21 :Btoadlands,Ill ................. Feb 28
BROTHER [~L L. HERR
Wilmington1 N C ......Feb 12, 13 Jacksomflle, Fla ...... Feb 20, 21
Sumter, S C .................... Feb 14 Tltus~lle, Fin .......... Feb 22
Charleston, S. C ......... " 15 Lake Worth, Fla ......... " 24
Savannah, Ga ......... l’eb 16, 17 Mmmi, Fin ....... Feb 26, Mar 1 ~ROTHER S. H. TOUTJIAN
]Irun~wJck. Ga .............. Feb 19 Key We~t, Fla ............ Feb. 28
Owensboro,Ky .......... Feb 16, 17 Guthme,Ky...................... Feb 23
Evansville, Ind ................ Feb 19 Lebanon.Tenn................. ,, 24
BeechCreek, Ky............... " 20 Nashvdle, Tenn .............. " 26
BROTHER M. A. HOWLETT St. Charles, Ky ............... " 21 Clarkswlle, Tenn ............. - 27
HopkmsxHle,Ky ............... " 22 B~gSandy, Term............. " ,28
Youngstown, 0hlo ..... Feb 12, 13 Canton, Ohio.................. Feb. 19
Warren, Ohm............. Feb 14 Alhance, Oh]o .......... " 20
Ashtabula, Ohio .............. " 15 Masmllon, Otuo ............ Feb 21
Cleveland, Ohio ......... l:eb 16, 26 N. Canton, Ohio .............. " 22
Hudson, Ohm.................. Feb. 17 Akron, Ohio .............. Feb. 23, 24
BROTHER J. B. WILLIAMS
BROTHER G. IL POLLOCK Fort Smith, Ark ............. Feb 19 Atoka,Oklw. .................. Feb. 24
MeCurtam, Okla ......... " 20 Demson,Tex ................. ,, 26
Eastland, Tex.................. Feb. 16 Electra, Tex..................... Feb 2"/ Qumton, Okla ......... " 21 Sherman, Tex ............... ,’ 26
Banger.Tex.................... " 17 Cluldress, Tex................. " 28 McAlester, Okla ..... " 22 Durant, Okla.................... " 27
Weatherford, Te~ ......... " 19 Amarillo, Tex................... Mar. 1 Wfiburton, Okla .......... " 23 Caney, Okla .................... " 28
Ahord, Tcx .............. " 24 Dalhart, Tex ................ Mar. 2, 4
Ww]nlaFalls, Tex ........... " 26 EIooker,Okla..................... Mar. 3
BROTHER L. F. ZINK
BROTHER B. M. RICE
O.~eo,Wls...................... Feb. 15 Monticello, Wis............... Feb. 23 Puyallup, Wash......... Feb 13, 14 Chehalls, Wauh I.’eb 22, 23
Black River Falls, %Vls .... " 16 Gratiot, Wm ................. ’ ’ 24 Enumclaw, Wash ........... Feb 15 Vancouver, Wasl~, . _ Feb 24
Dubuque, Ia ............ Feb. 26, 27 Tacoma, Wash........... Feb 16, 19 pnrtIand. Ore ........ Feb 2(;, 27
Tomah,W~u...................... " 17 Lake Bay, Wash............. Feb. 17 McMinnvflle, Ore ............
Madison, W~s............. Feb. 39, 22 Elma, Ia ................. Mar. 1, 2 Feb. 28
Boaz, Wls .............. " 20,21 Waterloo, Ia ..... " 3, 4 Olympia, Wash ....... " 20 Dallas, Ore........................ Mar. 1.
VOL. ):LIII SEMI-~IONTHLT :No. -J
CONTENTS
THIS DO YB... IN REMEMBRANC] OF ~]E" .~]
The Bread and the Wine ................................. 51
The Bread His Body .................................. 52
go3
"Thls Is My Blood". .....................................
"Dlscermng the Lord’s Body .................... 54
Let Us Examine Ourselves ............................ 54
Some S~gmficant P~cturea ............................... 55
"We Being Many Are One Bread" ................. 55
Sigmficance of the Wine ............................. 56
"They Sung an Hymn"...................................... 56
CAPTIVITY OF THE TEN-TRIBE KINGDOM............... O7
"LOStTribes" not Lost ......................................... 58
ENDO~ THE TEN-TRIBEKINGDOM ........................... 59
ASA’S REFORMSAND PRAYERFOR ~ICTORY ........... 61
INTERESTING LETTERS...................................... 63
"t~ wal stand upon lay watch and will set my foot
upon the Tower, and w~ll watch to see what He wsll
say unto me, and what answer I shall make to them
tl.~t oppose n*e "--Habakl~uk ~. 1.
/
-- °
, ~,.%.._~:~-?~--_~-~.=...%’~_--~.~..
~-;-::. ::.-:-:- ::~’--~-
Uporl lhe clrth th~tle~ of nalmns with perp]exlly, the sea and the waves (the rest,less, discontented) roaring, men’s hearts falling them for fear add for looking to thl
things coming upon the earth (society); for the powers of tile heavens (eeeleslas~lelzm~ snort be shaken When }e see these things begin to come to pass.
then kno~ that the K~agdom of God ]z at hand Look up, lift up your heads, re]oxee, for i’ottt redemptmn draweth mgh--Matt 24 33, Mark 13 29; Luhe 21.25-31.
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS SACRED MISSION
THISpresented
Journal ~ one Of the prime factors
in all parts of the civilized
or instruments in the system of Bible instruction,
world by the WATCHTOWERBIBLE & TRACTSOCIETY~ chartered
or "Seminary Extension", now bei~
A.D. 1884, "For the Pro-
8
meson of Christian Knowledge". It not only serves as a class room where Bible students may meet in the study of the diwne Word but
also as a channel of communication through which they may be reached with announcements of the Society’s conventions and of the
eoming of its traveling representatives, st~led °’Pilgrims", and refreshed with reports of its conventions.
Our "Berean Lessons" are topical rehearsals or reviews of our Society’s published STUDIES most entertainingly arranged, and very
helpful to all who would merit the only honorary degree which the Society accords, viz., Vcrb~ De* Minister (V. D. M.), which translated
into Fmghsh is Mmlster o! God’s Word. Our treatment of the International Sunday School Lessons is specially for the older Bible
students and teachers. I~y some this feature is considered indispensable.
This journal stands firmly for the defense of tile only true foundation of the Christian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
predemptlon through the precious blood of "the man Christ Jesus, who gave himself a ransom [a corresponding price, a substitute] for
all". (1 Peter 1 : 19 ; 1 Timothy 2 : 6) Building up on tlus sure foundation the gold, silver and precious stones (1 Corinthians 3:
15 ; 2 Peter 1 : 5-11) of the Word of God, its further mission is to "make all see what IS the fellowship of the m~stery which...has
been hid in God .... to the intent that now might be made known by the church the manifold wisdom of God"~"which in other ages
was not made known unto the sons of men as it is now revealed".--Ephesians 3 : 5-9, 10.
It stands free from all parties, sects and creeds of men. while it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
snbjectmn to the will of God in Christ, as expressed ]n the holy Scriptures. It is thus free to declare boldly whatsoever the Lord
hath spoken--according to the divine wisdom granted unto us to understand his utterances, lts attitude is not dogmaUc, but confident;
for we know whereof we affirm, treading with imphcit faith upon the sure promises of God. Jt is lmld as a trust, to be used only in his
service; hence our decisions relative to what may and what may not appear in ~ts columns mu~ be according In our judgment of his
good pleasure, tile teaching of his ~,Vord, for the uphuihheg of his peonie in grace and knowledge. And we not only lnwte but urge ou~
readers to prove all its utterances by the infallible Word to which reference is constantly made to facilitate such tesung.
TO US THE SCRIPTURES CLEARLY TEACH
That the church is "the temple of the living God", peculiarly "his workmanship" ; that its construction ]ms been in progress throughout
the gospel age---ever since Christ became the world’s I{edeemer and the Chief Corner Stone of his temple, through which, when
finished, God’s blensing shall come "to all people", and they find access to him.--1 Corinthians 3 : 16, 17 ; Ephesians 2:20-22 :
Genesis 28 : 14 ; Galatians 3 : 29.
~hat meantime the chiseling, shaping, and polishing of consecrated believers in Christ’s atonement for sin, progresses ; and when the
last of these "hying Mones", "elect aml precmus," sball have been made ready, the great blaster Workman will hriug all together
in the first resurrection : and the temple shall be filled with his glory, and be the meeting place between God and men throughout
the Mfllennmm.--Rexelatlon 15 : 5-8.
.That the basl~ of hope, for the church and the world, lies in the fact that "Jesus Christ, by the grace of God, tasted death for every
man," "a ransola for all," and will be "the true light which hghteth every man that cometh ~uto She world"~ "in due tlme",~
I-Iebre~s 2:9; John 1:9; 1 Timothy 2:5, 6.
That the hope of the church is that she may be like her Lord, "see him as he is," be "partakers of the divine nature’,’ and share his
glory as his joint-heir.--1 John 3.2; John 17:24; Romans 8:17; 2 Peter 1:4.
"That the present mission of tim church is the perfecting of the saints for the future work of service: to develop in herself every
grace ; to be God’s witness to the world ; and to prepare to be kings and priests m tile next age.~Ephesians 4 : 12 ; Matthew 24
14; Revelation 1: 6; 20’6.
That the hope for the world lies in the blessings of knowledge and opportumty to be brought to all by Christ’s Millennial kingdom, the
restitution of all that ~as lost ]n Adam, to all the wllhng and obedient, at the hands of their Redeemer and his glormed ehurcha
when all the wllfully wicked will be destroyed.--Acts 3 : 19-23 ; lsalah 35.
w
"’THIS DO YE . IN REMEMBRANCE
OF ME"
"T]~e Lord Jesus, the same night tn which he was betrayed, toob bread: a~zd Irhen he had g~ven thanl¢s,
he brahe it, and said; Tube, eat; thts ~s my body: whichis bro/ce~ for yo~t : thus do in remembrance
of me.
After the same ma~neralso he toob the cup whenhe had s~tl)l*ed, ~ttying, ~l’hzs cup is the new testament
~n my blood: this do ye, as oft as ye drink it, ~ remembranceof rne.’-----1 Corinthians 11:28-25.
the blood of bulls and goats could not possibly purge ]n the light which ~as to shine more and more; the
away any s~n whatever. bread symbolizedfirst and primt rfly the body, the per-
Shortly afterward the Lord was betrayed by a ~avored feet humanity, of Jesus. It was soon appreciated that
friend, convicted on false testimony, and in an unjust as a loaf of bread is made np of manygrains of wheat,
trial sentenced to death. Then he was crucified, dead the loaf signified the partr~rslup, partic~pMion: fellow-
and buried. ship of the members of the church in the perfect hu-
manity of the body of Jesus Christ. It was an impnted
ENLIGHTENED BY THE HOLY SPIRIT partnership, but nevertheless was real and tangfl)]e--
just as the value imputed to a commercial note by en-
The twelve apostles did not discern at the time any
dorsement is real and of actual worth. So imptuatmn
of the significance of the innovations which the Lord
gives worth, value, partnership, fellowship in that ~ hich
had made in the Passover supper. Perhaps they dis-
is imputed.
cussed with one another the novel departures from the
ritual well overa thousand ?,ears old. Undoubtedlythey Thus Saint Paul wrote to the Corinfllians: "The
turned the matter over in their minds, questioning what bread Muchwe break, is it not [a symbol of] the com-
the Lord could mean. munion [partnership, participation] of the bodyof
Christ?"~l Corinthians 10 : 16.
But the unexpected return of the Lord from the dead
showed them that there was not only mystery but some In modern English "to partake of" is ordinarily un-
mighty power, some supernatural operatton of God, in derstood to mean to eat of. This is the significance
connection with the acts of their Lord and Master. It commonlyattached to the memomalact of eating the
is written that he taught them many things concerning bread. The underlying thought of this erroneous or
the kingdomof God, the affairs of his church, and it partial conception of the truth is that the partaker
is not unreasonable to think that he explained to them merely eats or asmmflates the body of Christ in an
something at least about the new features of the Pass- actual sense or in a spmtual sense.
over supper. This is not the right thought, because it is not the
Finally came the day of Pentecost. Their Lord and complete thought. Every consecrated person does as-
~aster had gone away from them into the heavens. They similate and have a share in the body of Christ. But
had seen him depart far into the azure sky of Palestine. in the Greek language, in which Paul wrote, the word
They rememberedand obeyed his injunction to wait in which is tran,~lated "partaker" means one who has part-
Jerusalem for something that was coming from him. nership, participation, fellowship. The broader thought
They were gathered m an upper room in Jerusalem on of Patti is that of an aetaml participation in that which
the day of Pentecost, and suddenly came that marvelous is symbolized by the bread, namely, the perfect humanity
experience of the descent of the holy spirit upon them. o~ Jesus Christ.
From then on all things were made new. Saint Paul seeks to make the matter perfectly plain.
The Twelve remembered the things that had been Be says to the Corinthians: ’For we, being many, are
said and done by their Master throughout his ministry. one loaf [bread] and one body; for we are all partakers
They began to understand them. Great must have been [partners, participators in] of that one loaf [bread]’.---
their joy in their gatherings, as one after another would ] Corinthians 10 : 17.
explain some of the things that Jesus had done and Therefore, whatever is represented by the bread, the
what they really signified. The spirit syake through membersof the church are partnera or l~artieipators in
WATCH TOWER 53
it. Jesus said, "This is my body". Elsewhere he said Christian people have been more or less nnfaithrul.
that it ~ a~ his fle.-,h. Andit is in the perfect hmnanity They are more or less aNictcd with spiritual bhndness
of Jesus Christ that the church has fellowship or part- and fad to discern that mystery hid frmn ages and
nership. This is by imputation, and yet, as shown, ira- from generations, ’Christ in us,’ as applying directly
putation imparts the value of that which is imputed. to themselves. Our Lord and the apostle John could
Languagecould not makeit clearer that the loaf repre- not have madeit plainer that Christ is in his diqciples
sents not solely the physical body of Jesus, but his per- and they are in Into; but blindness has covered the
feet humanity imputed to all the members of Chnst. minds of the host of professed Christians, and they can-
By justification, which is conferred by Godas a con- not see distinctly the deeper things o£ the Wordof God.
sequence of mlphcit faith and consecration, all footstep Tins is associated ~th the teaching that was brought
followers of Christ are partners in that v.luch is sym- forth by Paul, that Jesus Christ was madelike unto his
bohzed by the bread eateu at the memorial supper brethren in all things and they like unto him. They
are paltners in lus mlputed htmmmty. They are also
"THIS IS MY BLOOD" partnels in his hfe-lald-down.
Aiter the la-_t supper with the twelve d>mph-s ~as Paul exhorts the Christians to present themselves a
over, Jesus, the great Teacher, reclined with them, and, living saeriiice, as an offering to Jeho~ah. If thmr bodms
after the mannerof teachers and schools of those days, were dead they wouldbe ~vholly unacceptable, and a body
conferred with them on many things before they sang nnperfect or dying would be an abommatmuas an offer-
the hymn and ~ent out. He had told them m veiled ing. For, m the typmal ~acnfices, the ammalwinch was
lan~tage that he was not going to be with them always, to be pres(.ntod as anoffering must not only be perfect
but now he informed them plainly that he was about and unblemished, but it must have life. WhenChris-
to go ’to his Father’, as he put it, m strange language hans are ;ushfied the perfect humanlife of Jesu~ is
to them. The Twelve were greatly troubled at the imputed to them. ]t ~s hke the imputation of his per-
thought of him leaving them, on whomthey had wholly feet humanity--it is the life whmhis imputed. It is
depended. Then he stud: ’I ha~e been your paraklete, real and actual, and of equal value to hmhfe, like tim
helper, adviser, and comforter, but when I am come unto value winch is mlpnted to a worthless note by endorse-
my Father, I will send you another paraldete, helper, ment. This value may not be misused; it ~s imputed
adviser, and confforter, the holy splat, and the holy only to those ~ho. hv a previous complete eonseeratmn
sDrit will show you all things, and lead you into all to do the will of God, are committedto the laying doxnl
truth, and make all things that I have said and done of the imputed hfe as an offering unto Jehovah.
clear to you’. 8o the members of the body of Christ are partners
The sprat of God has cast a flood of light upon the by imputation in the perfect life of Jesus Christ. They
cup o~ wine. "This is myblood." Blood whenin the body are partners in Ins blood--m the perfect human life
represents hfe. Blood poured out symbolizes life lazd which is symbohzedby the blood.
down. Jesus laid downb~s unforfeited and perfect hu-
man life wherewith to obtmn the merit which would MADE LIKE UNTO HIM
buy just one perfect human hfe, the hfe of Adam-- Paul makes this partnershzp plain in the strong form
no more, no less. The life laid down,the right to life of a rbetorma[ queshon. IIe says: "The cup of ble~.smg
as a perfect nmn given up, was destined to purchase which ~e bless, is it not the communion[partnership,
from God, mthe aspect of diviue Justice, the forfeited partmlpahon]of the blood of Christ ?" (1 Corinthian s 10
perfect life of Adam,the right of Adamto live again 16) Weare made like unto him in his body, his human"
ss a perfect man. On a principle of the old law of ity; we are madelike unto him in his perfect life laid
slavery, all of Adam’schildren are included in the pur- down. In all things the principle holds that we are made
chase because the payment for a sla~e also included all like unto hnn in everything save headship--partners in
the offspring without additional price. (Exodus21 : 1-4) the hnmmntvof Jesus, partners in his perfect life--
Thus the life laid down, the blood poured out, effects all actual but all by imputation.
the purchase of Adamand all his children. "For which cause he is not ashamed to call them
Jesus said concerning the cup of wine: "This is my brethren." (Hdnews 2: 11) Both the Head meniber
blood of the new testament which is shed for you and and the body members of Christ have one Father, Je-
for many--for the remission of sins". (Matthew 26:28) hovah, the Eternal One.- They also have one perfect
It is made plain by Jesus Christ that the only ones who humanity, one perfect human hfe. The Head had this
will fully understand the truth are those whomost faith- actually and tangibly ; the body membershave it actually
fully walk in his footsteps. Peter, by suggesting the but intangibly as a result of the imputation.
addition to faith of the various traits of Christian char- Anyone that faithfully abides in Christ is able to
acter, elaborates the thought and says that those who discern this oneness of himself with his Lord and Head.
lack these things becomemore or less blind. Nearly all This is the mystery or hidden secret of the gospel which
WATCH TOWER
is knownonly to the ones in the secret, and is the cer- of the Lord and the cup of devils: ye cannot be par-
tain knowledge that they are in Christ and that Christ takers of the Lord’s table, and of the table of devils.
is in them. Others of less discernment or of lost dis- ¯ . . I would not that ye should have fellowshi~ with
cernmentsee that the Bible says that such a thing exists, devils." (1 Corinthmns 10: 21, 20) Such persons are
but they know not to whomit applies. found amongthose who evidently are still partners in
the bread and the wine, but they are unworthy partners.
"DISCERNING THE LORD’S BODY" Fortunately indeed, the Wordof Godshows that all such
Unto us is made known, and we continue to know the may be recovered.
mystery hid from ages and from generations, that Christ There is a remedy, and that a speedy, easy, and dn’eet
is in us and we are in Christ. Those in the secret know one. "If any man sin, we have an advocate with the
that Messiah is a class of which Jesus is the IKead and Father, Jesus Chris~ the righteous." (1 John 2:1) If,
the others are the membersof his body. then, we confess our sins, as Instructed by our Advocate,
Everyone that has been justified is a partner in the with sincere repentance, which is proved by turning
humanity and file life of Jesus Christ. To properly from the evil, God is faithful and just to forgive us
perceive this great mystery as applying to themselves cur sins and to cleanse us from all our defilements. Let
is a great privilege of the faithful ones. Nonecontinue any of us who have been walking unworthtiy ~mmedl-
to discern this except those abiding in him and he in ately act without delay. Let us take to the Lord our
them. weaknesses, our frailties, even things which perhaps we
The apostle Paul speaks of unworthily eating the have thought scemed right, and ask him for dehverance
bread. In 1 Corinthians the occasion for referring to and for safety and for forgiveness, knowing that if we
partaking unworthily was the unseemly conduct of some then resolutely turn our face away from the course
at the memorial, but it has a wide application. This which we have been following, he will immediately for-
may be explained more f,1]y. One person mayfor a long give us and clean the slate of whatever record may have
period have been a worthy partner in the body and been against us.
blood of Christ; that is, he has walked worthily, or as
LET US EXAMINE OURSELVES
a person whoenjoys this precious privilege should con-
duct himself in life. Afterwards he walks lmworthy of It is desirabl~ from time to time for consecrated
his high calling, lJe then has eaten and drunken un- Christmns to make a searching introspection. It is not
worthily, and is one of those of whomPatti says: "]Ke well to make too frequent practice of this, lest one be-
that eateth and drinketh unworthily, eateth and drink- come morbid. But seLf-exammatmn from time to time
eth judgment to himself, not [any longer] discerning is profitable, to ascertain exactly where we stand. Let
the Lord’s body". (1 Corinthmns 11:29) If anyone ns each see whether we are fully in the faith. It is
walks lmworthily and mM(esa practice of it he gradu- best for us to prove our ownselves in order that it may
ally loses the discernment he once had of this great mys- not be necessary for the Lord to judge us, by stripes
tery. Spiritually he becomes weak or sick. Paul ex- and chastisements leading us back to the way. Let us
plains : "For this cause manyare weakand sickly among be comforted by the assurance that we are still partners
you, and many sleep". (1 Corinthians 11: 30) Some in the blood and the wine, for, says Saint Patti: "Know
8o far as to be oblivious, asleep to their membershipin ye not your ownselves, howthat Jesus Christ is in you,
the body of Christ and everything connected therewith. except ye be reprobates ? But I trust that ye shall know
IKappily, the sick may be healed, and those who ara that we are not reprobates."--9 Corinthtans 13 : 5, 6.
asleep may be awakened. According to the Scriptures a very proper time for
Another may be now walking in a manner quite in- self-examination is that preceding the celebration of the
consistent with his sacred partnership in the imputed Lord’s supper. In that connection Saint Patti gives this
humanity and life of Jesus Christ. Then the partnership sound advice: "Let a man examine himself .... If we
which was intended to be for hfe and divine approval, would judge [examine] ourselves, we should not be
becomes for him a just cause for divine judgment. He, judged [by the Lord] ; but when we are judged [by the
too, eateth and drinkcth judgment to himself. Lord], we are chastened of the Lord, that we should
Yet another may be interested in and a defender of not be condemned .... So let him eat of that bread
some form of occultism. Many of these forms seem to and drink of that cup."--I Corinthians 11: 28-32.
be harmless enough astrolog% for example. Instead The important matter is the partnership in the im-
of being a fn’m opposer, in accordance with the Vow puted humanity and the imputed life of Jesus Christ.
taken by the Bible student he tolerates, or even de- The bread and the wine of the memorial supper are only
fends. This one is eating of the table of devils and the symbols which bring the actuality vividly before our
drinking the cup of devils. Sooner or later he will be minds.
obliged to makea choice between Christ and the demons. Whomay partake of the Lord’s supper ? All persons
’rYe cannot," warns the apostle Paul, "drink the cup may partake of the bread and the wine of the memorial
me WATCH TOWER 55
supper who believe in Jesus Christ as their personal The partaker takes the bread and breaks it himself.
Redeemer, have fully consecrated themselves to do his The bread here is the imputed humamtyof Christ. tie
will and whose walk in heart is worthy of him, or who, symbolizes that he, as a new creature and given strenggh
ff unfortunate enough to have been walking unworthily, and guidance by the holy spirit of God, does willingly,
by examination, repentance, and confession to God have gladly, and continually break his justified humamtyas
been cleansed by him of all their defilements and are did the Master break his own body. Let the prayer of
again in harmony with the Father. each one breaking bread at the table of the Lord be that
he mayfaithfully continue to coJperate with the Lord,
SOME SIGNIFICANT PICTURES not quenching the spirit, in the breaking of himself
Whenwe come together for the Lord’s supper it is even unto death.
profitable to have our minds set upoll the beautiful and The partaker eats the bread. Tho bread again repre-
~gnlficant lnctures x~ hich appear m the manner of con- sents the imputed humanity o~ Christ. The bread enters
dnetmg the memorml. The real table of the Lord is the body of the partaker and becomes a very part of
that state or comhhonin which we ha~e partnm’ship in himself. As his blood stream assimilates this piece of
his mlputed hmnamtyand Ins imputed hie. The Lord’s bread, it is carried along, and finally there is no part
,~upper is the symbohcal table of the Lord. Let us who of his entl{’e body ~here that bread is not carried. So,
ha~e come to that table consxder some of the features in a figure, the imputed hnmamtyenters the body of
which x~fll enlarge our hearts and edify our minds. Christ, and there is no memberof the body of Christ
The Head of the little companythat gathered in the in the remotest corner of the earth and in all centuries
upper room and partook of the first memorial was Jesus in which this humanity has not been. Day by day let the
Christ himself. Jesus ]mnself was the celebrant; he partaker rememberthat as the physical bread is in him
blessed and broke the bread; he passed ~t to the others ; and abides there, so Christ is in him, and will abide in
he gave thanks over the cup, and he passed the cup of him.
wine to the Twelve.
In every httle company of the Lord’s people, every "WE BEING MANY ARE ONE BREAD"
ecclesia or church, someone is chosen to conduct the It is not to be forgotten also that this loaf of bread
memorial. He is the celebrant, and, for the tram being, is made up of manygrains of wheat ga’ound up so that
he stands as the head of the little company. He is in in a sense every gram is in contact with every other
the same relationship to them that Christ ~ as to the grain. This pictures the mystical union of the faithful
twelve disciples. Christ did cmtamthings at the first followers of Jesus Christ. "We are membersone of an-
memorial supper. What the celebrant does at the me- other," reminds Saint Paul. (Ephesians 4: 25) The
morial supper represents what Christ himself did. fact that we have mutual membership in the body, in
Representing Christ, the Head of the church, the the losf, will help the partaker to love more deeply all
celebrant blesses the bread. The bread is Christ’s im- of his fellow members, and to do good to all of them
puted humanity. It is the mystical ]oaf, or body, of as opportunity affords, because "no manever yet hated
which all the true followers of Jesus Christ are mem- his ox~mflesh; but nourisheth and cherisheth it".~
bers. Just as the celebrant blesses the loaf, so does Jesus Ephesians 5 : 29.
Chmstbless richly with favor and privilege and all spir- So let us as membersof this mystical loaf, love and
itual blessings the one and nndu~ded body of conse- cherish one another as we do ourselves. Let love rei~ma
crated Christ,ans. supreme, and let one membercare for and look out for
The celebrant breaks the bread. The bread represents and provide for those memberswho need care and pro-
the body or humamtvof Christ. As the celebrant breaks ~Jsion ~ltll not only the spiritual things but with the
the hread, so did Christ bv the power and guidance of material things of this life.
the indwelling holy spirit resolutely break Ins ox~ n body, The celebrant takes the cup of wine and gives thanks
beginning at the rner Jordan. and col~tinutng well and for it. The cup of wine represents the perfect human
faithfully until he died on the cross and his humanity, life of Jesus Christ. So &d Christ thank God for the
his body, was fully broken. perfect hmnanhfe that was his, for ’she opportumty to
The celebrant gives the bread to the partaker. The so greatly serve the Father by laying downthis hfe, for
bread i~ the humanityof .Jesus Christ, which by a spe- the prix ffege of service as he went about in the ministry
eial aluangement, in order that there might be a com- of his &staples and of his people, and for the untold
pany of brethren in all ways like one another and hke privileges of service for poor and needy humanity that
unto their Head, was to be imputed to the body mem- will come about in the Golden Age. For when the laid-
hers in order that they might have wherewith to offer downlife has been transmitted to Justice, then Christ
an acceptable sacrifice. As the celebrant gives the bread and those who are members of Christ will bestow the
to the partaker, so Christ mxputesh~s perfect humanity divinely-appointed blessings upon all the willing and
to each memberof his own body. obedient of roan’kind.
WATCH TOWER
The celebrant gives the cup to the partaker. The us. Day by day we will from time to time meditate and
wine represents the imputed, perfect human life of think upon the mystmal emblems and their profound
Jesus Christ. So does Christ give to each one of his sigmfieance to us.
footstep followers the privilege of being his partner by
imputation in the life laid downand in the privileges ’THEY SUNG AN" HYMN’
connected therewith. The simple ceremony closes with a hymn. For, after
"they had sung an hymn, they went out". If we had
SIGNIFICANCE OF THE WINE been among the Twelve privileged to be at the first
The partaker silently thanks God for the wine, in memorial supper, the hymnwhich was sung at the close
symbol thanking him for the precious privilege of hav- just before they went out or just before the conversa-
ing this personal partnerslnp m the hfe represented by tion which Jesus held with them, would have been the
the wine. portion of the Hallel or %ymnof praise" whmhis con-
The partaker drinks of the x~ine. rained in Psalms 116, 117, and 118. The whole Hallel
comprises also Psalms 113, 11~, and 115 ; but these had
The wine represents the ~mputedhfe of Jesus Christ.
The wine ])asses rote his body, and ma short time there been sung earlier in the l~assover supper.
is no portion of his body x~here the wine is not. So do Wecannot appreciate the grandeur and beauty of this
all the partakers receive by mlputahon the perfect hu- hymn which was sung by the Twelve and by the Lord
man life of Jesus Christ and become partners in that himself, because the translation into English causes it
life. The partaker perceives as he drinks of the wine to lose the rhythm and beauty of the Hebrewpsalm. But
that tMs same imputed life is m all the members of we can join m the beautiful and appropriate thoughts
Chmsteverywhere, and again he hfts his heart mthanks of this HalleI, mwhich the Lord and his twelve apostles
to God for the mystwal common-linion of the whole lifted up their voices before they wen~out unto the
church of God dunng nineteen centurms--all sharers great tragedy which we memormhze.
in the same imputed life. I-Ie silently and rexcrcntly I love the LOAD,
~ededmates his life unto the will of God, and petitions because he hath beard my voice and my supplications.
the Father for grace and strength to continue the pour- Because he hath inclined his ear unto me,
ing out of hfe willingly and gladly until all is poured therefore will I call upon him as long as I live.
The sorrows of death compassed me,
out in death--as did his Master before lnm.
and the paros of hell gut hold upon me:
The wine represents the life of Christ; and the wine I found trouble and sorrow.
poured out represents his life poured out unto death. Then called I upon the nalae of the I,OUD;
C} I,ORD, I beseech thee, dehxer my soul.
"He poured out his soul unto death." (Isamh 53:12)
Gracmns ~s the I,ont), :,ml l~ghteous;
The Christian partaking of the wine under.-.tands that yea. our Cod ~s meJmtttl
it represents to him first his prRflege of partm,patmg The Loan preserveth tim ~unple:
in the life of Christ that results to lnm by wrtue of the I x~:t ~, brought loxx, and he helped me
merit of Christ; and that the pouring out of tl~e ~.ine Return unto thy rest, O my soul.
for the Lore) hath dealt bountifully with thee.
pictures his privilege of pouring out his own hfe in For thou hast deHvm’ed my soul from death,
death that he might be dead with Christ in order that mine eyes from tears, and my feet from fMhng.
he might be raised with Mm.Jesus poured out Ms life I will walk before the Lm:n
faithfully unto death, and because of his fa~thfullncss in the land of the hying
God raised him out of death and exalted hnn to the I believed, therefore have I spoken:
posihon of glory, honor and immoltnhty, far above all I was greatly nflhcted.
I said m my haste;
other powers and princ~paIltms. 1~e who faithfully All men are hars.
pours out his hfe as a memberof the body of Christ What shall I render unto the I,oun
unto death has the promise of and will partake m the for all his benefits toward me?
first resurrectmn, being gJanted life everlasting on the I will take the cup of salvation,
and call upon tim name of the LOAD.
divine plane. (Rex.elation 2: 10) Jesus said: "Except I will I)aY nly vowq unto the LORD
ye eat the flesh of the Son of man, and drink tns blood, now m the l)re~enee of all Ins people.
ye have no life in you. Whoso eateth my flesh, and Premous in the sight of lbe LORD
drmketh my blood, hath eternal hfe; and 1 will raise i- the death of his saints
him up at the last day."--John 6 : 53, 54. O LOUD. truly I am thy servant;
I am thy servant, and the son o£ thine handmaid:
So in the memorial eelebratmn we hold two things Tlnm ha~t loo~ed my 1)ondq.
in remembrance: the death of Jesus Christ, and the I will ~,ffer to thee the sacrifice of thanksgiving,
partnership of the church in the body and blood of him. and will call upon tl~e name of the LORD.
I will pay my vows unto the LOaD
As we pass out from this wonderful table of the Lord,
now in the pre~ence of all his people,
we meditate in silent thought and give continual thanks In the courts of the Lom)’s house,
for the unspeakable blessings and privileges given u:ato itl tim m~dst of thee, O aeru~aleta.
WATCH TOWER 57
Praise ye the LORD. This is tile day which the LORDh’tth made;
0 prame the LORD,all ye nations : we will rejoice and be glad m it.
praise him, all ye people. Save now, I beseech thee, O LORD:
For his mercifulkindnessis great towardus: O LORD, I beseech thee, send now prosperity.
and tiletruthof tlle LORD endurethforever. ]~]e~se([ be he that o)meth in Ihc ii~llHe of tile ].(too
Praiseye the LORD. we have blessedyou out of tile house o£ tile Lm:D.
O g~ve thanksunto tile LOAD; God is the LORD, xxluchhath Mleuedus hght:
for he is good: bil]dtile saclificewlth colds,men nnto tile hornsof
tile altar.
becauqe his mercy endurethforever. Thou art my God, and I will pr,tlSE Ihee:
Let Israel now say, thou art my God, and I x~il] exalt thee.
that hts mel cy enduretb for ever. O glee give timnk> nllto tlle Lomi;
Let tile house of Aaron now say, for he ~s good
that Ills mercy endurett~ for ever. for In.> mercy en,hneth for e~er.
Let them now that fear the LORDsay,
tlmt his mmcy endureth forever. :How little did the twelve apostles comprehend the
I called upon the LORDin distress:
the LORDanswered me, and set me In a large place. sigmficance of what they sang. But Jesus l~ew, because
The LORDiS on my side; the holy sprat had enhghtened ]as mind. They sang of
I will not fear: what can man do unto me? humfliahon, m~dglory; of (lefoat, and hfe; of combat,
The LOaD taketh my part with them that help me: and victory in the name of Jehovah; of the rejected
therefore shall I see my desire upon them that hate me. stone and its headdnp; of the sacrdlcml animal tethered
It is better to trust m the Loan
than to put confidence ia man. to the altar; of vows made and kept; of wctory over
It is better to trust in the Loan the grave; of eternal mercy; and of everlasting salvation.
than to put confidence in princes. The Lord hm~self as he sang understood what the
All nations compassed me about:
but in the name of the LORDwill I destroy them. symbolismsof the I-Iallel s~gmfied. But the Twelvecon-
They compassed me about ; yea, they compassed me about : ceived of the hylm~ of praise in terms of earthly do-
but in the name of the LORDI will destroy them. minion. Fifty days h~ter at Pentecost the Tweheagain
They compassed me about like bees; were gathered m an lqiper room, and there came into
they are quenched as the fire of thorns:
for in the name of tile Loao I will destroy them. their byes that indwelling of the holy spirit which was
~-
deshned to comi)le{c]y alter their lives and their con
’£hou hast thrust sore at me that I might fall:
but tile Load helped me. ceptmns. From an earthly dommmnand things con-
Ti~e Load is my stlength and song, nected therewith, then’ vision expanded wider than the
and ~s become lay salvation. skies and higher than the ws%le heavens.
The voice of leim<.lng and salvation
]u in the tabmn,~cleu of the righteous: Unwittingly at this Passover the T~ehe had cele-
the right hand of lhe LOP, D doeth valiantly. brated the imminentdeath of Jesus Christ, theH leader.
The Imht hand of the Lore) is exalted: Soon they began to see that Ins death comeyed the
the mght lmnd of the LORDdoeth valiantly. sigmfieanee of thmr owndeath in partnerslnp ~ifh him.
I shall not (he. but live,
and decl,ue the works of tile LOAD. ,Soon they began to memormhzethe death aecomlfllshcd
The I,ORDhath chastened me sore: and they apphed to themselves the s)mbohsms of the
but he hath not given me over unto death. emblemsof tho memormlsupper, as do all enl~ghtmaed
Open to me the gates of mghteonsness: Clmshans throughout the world today.
i x~ HI go into throb, and I will praise the LORD.
T]us Rate of tlle I,ORD. Let us eaeh and all sing our pla]ses to Jehovah in a
into winch tile righteous shall enter. hymnof praise and in terms of the better sacrifices and
I will praise thee: for thou hast heard me, the h@mrhopes. Let us go forth with a hynm in our
and art become lay salvation. hearts. Let us consider Jesus Christ, and let us pray
Tile stone which tile builders refused
J~ become the head stone of tile corner. that we may ever remember his death and ever bear m
TilLs ts tile LORD’Sdoing, mind the privilege that he has given to us to be in all
it is inal X E|OllS lU our eyes. things hke unto him and he in aU things hke unto us.
"R~ghleousncss
4. cxaltcth a nation; but sin is a reproach to Ray pcoplc."--Provc~bs 15:3
T HE decline of Israel
reclined
as a nation,
sure to follow, because Jehovah is "a jealous God" (jealous toward his erring people. As our text declares, Jehovah is
for the good of his creatures) and his law of retribution not only righteous, just, in all his ways, but he is graciotm
is unerring. as well. No humanbeing will be able to say, at the end of
The chapter (2 Kings 17) which narrates the account his career, that he has not been treated justly, nor will he be
the overthrow of the ten-tribe kingdom, tells us just how able to say that he has been denied mercy. The righteous
it was that Israel came to its ruin. The evidence is summed character of God will be universally recognized.
up in verse 15 and is to the effect that: (1) they rejected Tile mercy precedes tile justice, but when the mni~ has
G,d’s btatutes--(lod’s la~, God’s Word; (2) they lost mght come for Justice to act nothing can turn it aside. It is ir-
of and neglected the covenant which he made ~th their represMble; it opposes a:’.~lhmg that comes against it, and
latlmrs---the5 lost froth in the prom~ses of God; (3) they favors anything that goes in harmony with ~t. We can
lost sight of the testmmny which he ga~e tlmm respecting recogmze something of this principle in various laws of
x~hat would be the result of forsaking his counsel; (4) they nature; :is, for instance, gravitation. Let us also recogmze
followed xamty (toohshne.~b--they did not take the ~ise that the principles of d~vine govermnent operate m a very
course) and be(:ame ~ain (foohsll) and went after snnllar manner. As fire burns the evil or the good x~ hen they
he.tthen thai were round them (copied "ffter olhers, desiring opine m contact with it, and as the law of gr:tvm~tion
to be not peculiar, but popuh/r), concerning whomthe Lord 0I)ellile’~ 111 re~pect to all, \xhether good or bad, x~ho come
had clmrge, I them tlmt they ~hould not do like the other rote the hue of its influence, so the princll)le~ of divine
llqtion,.. justice operate automatically.
Applying the~e various points to antitypical nominal Israel The correctness of the foregoing statement may be ques-
of today, x~e hn(t that to the extent stm has gone from the tioned b:y some, ~ho Ira/3 s~ly that in tile majority of cases
Lord, in them y nnd m practme, it has been very gradually justice d( es not ceen to oper’~e, tlmt those wllo tempt God
as tile result of (1) not heeding the Lord’s Word; (2) are set up, and lhose ’,~ ]1o v~or]-: xx mkedness and deceit often
being neghgent of the promises whmhwere set before spirit- prosper. We ]epl3 that in order to understand our position
uM Israel, the high calling, etc.; (3) of becoming foolish, it must be rrmelnbered tlmt God’s go~ernment has hexer
in .tttempting to serve God, and to be his "peculiar people", been established in the world except over tile one nation of
nnd at the s~me time attempting to please and to copy the Israel; and, hence, only in that one nation should x~e expect
~orid and tr, be popular therewith. All this is fulfilled in to find the laws of retrihution operating automatically The
so-cltlled (lhrJ,tendoln today.
Lord said of Israel: "You only have I known [recogni7ed]
of all the famtheb of the earth". (Amos 3:2) Again, the
ANALOGIES IN SPIRITUAL ISRAEL
Apostle asks ¯ "What ndx antage hath the Jew?" and. ans~ er-
In lhe (liximou of fleshly Israel into two .~’eat camps we ing, declares: "Much exe,’y xxay; clnefly because to them
may leasolmbly expect to find analogies in spiritual Israel, were committed the el’aries of God". God entered into ob-
and wc hnd them The first epoch of the church’s history lig;ltmns x~lh I~rael that ~f thej, as a people, x~ould obey
in the (htys of the apostles was quickly followed at their his laws and keep his statutes, they wouhl be bles.-ed in
death hy the great "falhng away" from the faith and sim- proportion to their faithfulness and obedience: an(l if lhey
phclt~ ,)f the original establishment; elmstlsements follmxed, should fail of obedience, they would be corle~pondingly
1)el~_ecutmns, etc., and finally the great majority went into 1)unlshed; that he xxouhl pelmit to come upon them variou~
c’tptJvily to the world--to Babylon. To these the worship ehastibelnentb--diseabe~, ell--as the natural le~a[ib of the
of inmges and shrines and pictnres and the offering of violatn)ns of the principles of his goxernment. But such an
incense and burning of holy candles were associated ~xith arrangement lilts not been made v, ith other nations :it any
a great false sacrifice---the "sacmfice of the mass" wlnch is time m the world’s h,btory.
"an abomination unto the Lord".
Gradually the Lord separated from that system of con- OUR PERSECUTION A BLESSING
faslou lind error the few who were spiritual l.~raehtes indeed.
\\ lth spiritual I,~rael God’s hlessings and chastisements
Protestantism thus gradually grew, and in some respects
~epresented more nearly than did the Greek and Roman are spi~itu’ll, and may also extend to tenlporal affairs. In
proportion to their faithfulness they grow spn’itnaily strong
churches the true hopes and prospects of the Christian ; and
and beautiful; and in proportion to the unfmthfulness they
yet in Protestantmm much was found that ~as reprehensible
grow spiritually weak and receive chastisements and lose
in God’s sight, many who had only a forlu of godliness with-
divine favor. It is not true x~ith the spiritual Israehte as
out the power, but some---a proportionately larger number
it was ~ ith the natural Israehte, that by obeying the Lord
lhan in Papacy--were found at heart loyal to tile Lord
and desirous of knowmg lns will and phul. he wouh[ be blessed tempoially in all his undertakings. On
the contrary, to the spimtnal I~taehte the Lord .gives the ex-
These dealings with nominal spiritual Israel for the past press declaration and encouragement: "All that will live
eighteen eenturms are gradually separating to the Lord an godly in Christ Jesus shall tin tlu~ hfe] suffer persecution" ;
overcoming class mid preparing a relnnant for him m his "Marvel not, my brethren, if the worhl hate you"; "Ye know
second presence. The Reformation movement gathered out that it bated me before it tinted you" ; "Blessed are ye when
of Papacy the majority of the loyal souls at that time; and men shall say all manner of evil against you for my sake:
now in the harvest time of this age the ripe wheat is being rejoice and be exceeding glad; for great is your reward in
garnered from "all Israel", from Cathohc~sm as well as heaveu"--iu spiritual things, not m temporal matters.--2
Protestantism, though because of previous siftings, etc., Timothy 3:12 ; l John 3: 13; John 15 : aS, Matthew 5: 11, 12.
Inuch the htrger proportion, as might be expected, is gathered
When the Millennial kingdom shall be established, and, in
from Protestantism.
harmony w~th the petition of our Lord’s prayer, God’s king-
dom shall come, and his will be done on earth as in heaven
JEHOVAH JUST AND GRACIOUS --then the laws of righteousness will work automatically
The averthrow of the ten tribes came aq an act of God’s again, and "every transgression shall receive its just recom-
Justice, but it was preceded by a long period, two hundred pense of reward", and every proper endeavor will bring it~
and fifty-nine years, of the ministries of his grace and mercy meed of blessing and uplifting influence--restitution.
ASA’S REFORMSAND HIS PRAYER FOR. VICTORY IN WAR
-- -- AP~ 9. -- 2 CHRONICLES
14 : 1-12 -- --
GOODKING ASA ~ ONE CAUSEOF THE INQUISITION~ ASA’S COURSENOT PROPER1¢0R US ~ ~tIS PRAYERFOR VICTORY~ SUCH
PRAYERSNOT NOWACCEPTABLE--ASA’SSICKNESS ANn DEATHALSO ~[ISUNDERST00D.
"Help us, 0 Jehovah our God: 1or we rely an thee."--~ Chramclcs 14: I1.
the obligations
the topic for today’s lesson were
no doubt sincere in the thought that this lesson teaches
of professed Christians of our day to
them the tru~ God and tim true worship; and even In thl.q
he would have no privilege
to then* wishes,
to intrude upon others contrary
but may merely make kaown tile good
act as puniqhers of false rehgmn, to lead arimes into battle tidings to those who have "ear~ to hear"--to those ~illing
and to pray for victory over their enemies. The lesson to be taught. It was a ~ r,mg ~ mwof 1 l,is nlatter, and a copy-
teaches nothing of the sort, as we shall see. ins of Israel’s doings, and of tile things which God approved
In our ~tudms of lhe omrse of the leu Uibes, we saw that in Israel, ~ luch, nllbnnder>tood and nn~.lpl)hed, undoubtedly
the dlw,~Jon of lhe kingdom had worked to the advantage led to many ot tim lehgn)us excesses and vn)lations both of
of the two tribe% Judah and Benjamin, known as tile justme and of love "rod mercy, during the dull( ages. It was
Kingdom of Judah, in that it had humbled them, drawn a failure to recogmTe the dtffc, cnt htw of this gospel age,
(heal nearer to tile Lord, and nla(ie t]lenl nlore zealouq of over spiritual Israel, that led to niuch of the religiouq per-
his ~orslul), and more faithtul in reblsting idolatry of tlle seention of the daik ’l~es. the burning of thatch edifices
snrroun(hng nations; much of this, ILo doubt, resulted from of so-called heretics, the hnrnmg of the heretics themselves,
the (hvismn of tim empire, anil tile very wrong idolatrous and nf their Bible,,, then’ persecution bv inquisitors, etc.
course taken by the ten tribes. Cln’i,~tendm~] in gener,ql Is oul~’owing these false ideas, es-
Thus lhe three ye’trs reign of Abijah, altliough at very pecially in Great Bmmin and the United States, where
short one, seenl.~ to have tieen a good reign in nl,lny respects. religious hhetty fin’ all denomination% all lehgions, and
Nexertheless, Ins loyally to tim Lord did not lead him to toleration for ’ill creeds is recognized, demanded, and en-
make a thorough reformation, and to utterly put away the joyed, m harmony with tile enli~l]tened ]ml~ment of their
groves mid liigh places d(woted to improper worship, x~liich peoples. :P, ut those who thus recognize religmu~ hberty as
began to be eutahhslied in Snlomon’s day, and consequently the proper thing now, very generally fail to see how or
he failed to have the Lord’s approval, as it was subsequently why anything else lima religious hberty could h.tve been
pr.nounced upon In> son, A,~a. "Asa did that whlcll was good proper at miy other time. Such are inchned to h)ok upon the
and right ill the eyes of tile Lord his God." "The heart of Bible as not up to dat(~ns countenancing bigotry and perse-
Asa ~ns perfect all Ins days."--2 Chronicles 15: 17. cution; and as long as they regffrd the matter from this
l.ikewise today there are those who are on tlm Lord’s side viewpoint they are in great danger of a gt’oxx mg agnosticism
and get a blessing nsa result, who, nevertbeless, fail to have and mfidehty. Let us understand clearly, therefore, why the
tile Lord’s hearly :lppro~aL It ts not suflicmnt that we out- course of Asa was approved of God, and bleased, while a
wardly ael(nowledge the Lord to be our God; if we would simil’tr course today, m any nation of Chri.~tendom, would
haxe the tnllne~-s of the d,vine approval ~e must be zealous, be disapproved of the Lord, and of those who have his spirit.
,rot only m being on the Lord’s szile, but zealous also and
faithfifl m ser~mg his cause. Such faithfulness means ac- ASA’S COURSE NOT PROPER FOR US
tivily in tile cauae ot truth, and effort to bring others into Tile explanation of tile difference is that Israel as a nation
full acemd with tile divine law.
took upon itself a specml covenant with God at Mount Sinai,
Asa’s omlse was approved more than that of his father,
by which every inihvMual of that nation, including the
Ablj-dl, 1)ecause, as it Is stated, h~s helot was perfect: he
children, becanie bounden nationally and indivzdually to God,
was not serving the Lord because it would be tile most to be his people; wMle God bound himself to them to be
prolitable course for hm].~elf and for the nation--not merely
their God, their King, their Protector. In the compact or
to obtain divine blessuig--hut he served from a heart that covenant the people further guaranteed tim( they would
was in lmrmony with God, and tlmt wL~hed to aeconipllsh neither haxe nor make images of wood, nor worship any
the divine will. So a right hem t made Asa a great reformer. other God. That covenant constituted Israel God’s peculiar
people; they became his typical kingdom; he x~as the ~ecog-
ONE CAUSE OF THE INQUISITION razed King among them, and so it is written: "Solomon sat
Many Christian people, making the very serious mistake on tile th, oqze of the Lord as king instead of David his
of not noticing the difference between the covenant which father". (1 Chronicles 29: 23) It was God’s throne all along,
God made with fleshly Israel and the dlfterent covenant and earthly representatives sat upon it. l:lence as long as
and different regulations with spiritual Israel, have natural- that nation was preserved as a kingdom among the nations,
ly f-illen into the mist’ike of seeking to follow after tile it was bound by the will or law of its King, the Lord, which
course of God’s ins(rue(runs to natural Iur’ml, which is not spemfically demanded that all idolatry should be put away.
proper for the ChrlsN:~n. He has a "new commandment" even And as we have previously seeu, God separated this one
to love one another. For instance, ~tnle it was perfectly natron from all other nations of the earth, in order that
nglit for Asa to interfere with the other religmns in the he mzglit make of tlmm a typical nation or kingdom, fore-
land under Iris control :rod to overthrow tile f’tlse worship, shadowing in them the "holy n’ttion" of spiritual Israelites,
and to burn the idols, and to destroy the altars and groves, which he is now g’athering out of every kingdom, people,
it would be entirely wrong for any Christian king, president, nation, and tongue, and which shortly he will organize under
governor, mayor, or one of any position, to attempt to do Immanuel, to be the kingdom of heaven and to rule and
smnlarly w~th the i’eliaious arrangements of others today, bless all the families of the earth.--1 Peter 2: 9, 10; Luke
either in Chins(ran or m heathen lands. The duty of the 12 : 32.
spiritual Israelite is to worship the Lord according to the It would be wholly improper, now, for the people of the
dictates of lus own conscmnce, and to leave everybody else United States, for instance, to attempt to decide what is
free to do the same--not molesting him, hm institutions or false worship and to abolish it; or to interfere in any
arrangements in any manner whatever. manner or degree with absolute religious liberty; becauss
The only way in which lie would be permitted to interfere tim people of the United States are not God’s kingdom, as
witll others would be by preaching, by making known to Israel was God’s kingdom. God never did recognize any
01
62
¯ WATCH TOWER
other liar:ion than Israel (Amo~3’ 2) ; nor (hal he ever make tion to any prayers of thi~ sort. The pope blessed the
eo~m~,mt~ ~ith other natmn~, On lhe contlary, the present Spanish navy and Adnm’al Schley ~ent it to the bottom
goxe,’nments of earth ale nil ot them reckoned as "kingdoms of the sea. Protestant Germany prayed for victory over
of thl,~ x~orhl", ill contra,h-tmctton It, the kingdom of our Cathohc and inhdel Fra~nce, and the French arms were
Lord attd of ill.’, Anointed--the "holy natron" now being victorious.
prepmed. Widle the heaxenly kingdom, tile antltjpe of We would not be understood as declaring or even im-
Israel s kingdom, is not yet~,~et up m gloly its tile holy plying that God has no interest in the affairs of tile
n.ltl(m, the pecnh.n pe(~ple, the rofal pmesthood, neverthe- wolhl, and that God does not m any measure take a hand
le~-, ,n each mdl~ {({n:{l healt of thi~ elect class tilts ptinmple in the results of the wars of our time Qmte the con-
npphes each lsJaehte indeed h.ts entered into a covenant trary. We believe that the Lord’s power, especially m
x~th the Lord that he xxdl lmve no other god~ and that te this tm~e of "h-trvest", is supervising and .>hapuJg tile af-
will render xx el slHp to no other, lint x~ ill serx e the Lord with fairs of the nations x~lth a view to bringing about the
all ills lmalt, xxLth all his nnnd, with all his being, ~ith all gr’md consummatmn of the age so long foretold in the Scrap-
Ins strength. And as tim nation of Israel was ohhgated by tares- a social IHflltlCal and finanmal upheaval which wall
tt,~ covenant to abohsh idols, so each indlv{duttl Christian prepare the way for the kingdom of God’s dear Son in
of tins new lml5 nation is obhgated by Ins covenant to its due time. But ~e deny lhe propriety of Christians
de.stroy every idol ftoln his healt, and to worship the Lord attempting to pray or otherwise direct the Lord in con-
only, and in the beauty of hohness. nection with these mattms, and the outworking of the
divine program, which we cannot fully and clearly com-
ASA’S PRAYER FOR VICTORY prehend. No nation in the world today is God’s nation
Tile ten years of qmet mentioned m verses 1, 5, and 6, in the sense that Israel was his people. With no nation
in x~hich Asa instituted reforms among the people and in the world today has God made a covenant such as
equipped them for defense, were ewdently all needed for that which subsisted between himself and Israel for the
the struggle recorded in verse 9. Zerah, the Ethiopian, centuries between the giving of the law at Sinai and the
with an army of 1,000,000 men, is supposed by some to rejection of the Lord at the time of hls crucifixion. No
have been Osorkon II of Egypt, who was of Ethiopian de- nation or kingdom in the world can claim divine author-
scent. Others suppose that Zerah was the general of this lty or right or backing. The title, "Christian nations,"
king. In the days of Rehoboam tile king of Egypt had is entirely a misnomer, unauthorized by anything in God’s
invaded Judah and conquered it, and had taken away from Word. All these nations, from the Scriptural standpoint,
it aa immen-_e treasure m gold accumulated by King are "kingdoms of this world", gentile kingdoms. The Lord
Solomon, including the solid gold shiehls which Solomon acknowledges none of them, but describes them unitedly
had hanging from the pillars of the Temple. It is as- as great Babylon, which in due time will fall and give
sumed that Judah became practically a vassal nation to place to the glorious kingdom which the Lord has prom-
ised--the antltype of the Jewish kingdom under a still
Egypt as a result of thin war, and that Asa’s organization
of the nation on a military basis and the erecting of more favorable covenant, under a still better ]XIediator,
fortifications meant a declaration of independence and a under a still more grand and glorious King than David
or Solomon or any other.
refusM to pay tribute to Egypt, and that Zerah’s army
was sent to punish him, to bring away more spoil and to
reduce the nation again to the condition of a ~assal. NEUTRALITY THE CHRISTIAN’S ATTITUDE
Asa called into re0uisition his army, whmh numbered
The proper attitude, therefore, for the Lord’s consecra-
only about one-half that of the invading foe, but his confi-
ted people to occupy is that of neutrals. "They are not
dence was in the Lord, and he crmd unto him in prayer for
of the world, even as I am not of the world." (John 17:
help that the war might result favorably to the Lord’s people,
16) "I have chosen you, and ordained you, that ye should
the Jews. His recorded prayer is beautiful for its mm-
go and bring forth fruit, and that your f~uit should re-
plicity of faith:
mum." (John 15: 16) The fruit wh~cll the Lord’s people
"Asa cried unto Jehovah his God, and said, Jehovah, are to bear is not strife and enmity and vainglory, but
there is none besides thee to help, between the mighty love, joy, and peace in the holy spirit. This does not
and him that hath no strength: help us, O Jehovah our
mean either that we are to quarrel with the world and
God; for we rely on thee, an(l in thy name are we come
seek to bring all mankind to the same position that we
against this multitude. O Jehovah, thou art our God;
occupy. On the contrary, we are to realize that the world
let not man prevail against thee."
is of one nature and the Lord’s consecrated and accepted
The Lord blessed the forces of the Jews. The enemy
ones are of a new nature, that the Lord has not given to
was discomfited, scattered, routed, and pursued through the world the same law that he has given to his conse-
the land of the Philistines, who evidently were in league crated ones, and that tie is not expecting of the world
with them as enemies of the Jews. This was one of the the same course of conduct that he is expecting of the
most remarkable victories ever achieved by the Jews over house of sons begotten of his spirit, adopted into his fam-
any foreign nation. ily, and guided by his spirit and his Word.
Let the world fight its fight; the Lord wall supervise
SUCH PRAYERS NOT NOW ACCEPTABLE
and the results w~ll be glorious eventually. Let us who
Following the custom of Asa and David and Moses, and belong to the new nation, to the new kingdom that is
others o£ bygone times in Israel, it is the habit of Chris- not of tins world, who use no carnal weapons, but the
tian peoples of our day to offer up prayers for succeas sword of the splint-- let us fight the good fight of f.uth,
in war. The offering of such prayers, the lnaking of mu- lay hohl upon the glorious things set befm’e uu. and not
nitions, and the raising of war funds, constitute in time only stand ourselves, but help all those begotten of the
of war the principal occupations of millions who claim to s’lme spirit and members of the snnle heavenly army corps
be God’s children. These prayers are offered on all s~des to stand, complete in him who is the Heml of the body,
of every conflict. It is this which caused Napoleon’s cyn- the Captain of our salvation. Bye and bye (lotl’s lining
ical remark that "God is on the side of the heaviest battal- care over all his creatures x~ill be mamfe.~ted m the glori-
ions". As a matter of fact, God pays not the least attea- ous kingdom of his dear Son, which shall bless and rule,
63
WATCH TOWER
instruct and uphft mankind ir celmral. "The groaning expressed in one of the commandments, their "days should
ereatmn" ~ill titan be dehvered from the bondage of cor- be long in the land" which the Lord their God gave them.
ruptmn into the glorious liberly of the sons of God-- Thi~ being the case, ~t is nnderstood among scholars that the
so many of them as ~11 then accept the ble.~smg. Then phssicians here referred to were enchanters and magi-
all ~tll see that God so loved Ihe world ns to give his cmns x~ho affected to he’fi d~seases and who undoubtedly
Son to die for us and to thus open the way for his king- performed some crees, after the manner of clairvoyant
dora bless.m gs. physicmns and voodoo and black-art doctors of today--
by Satanic power. Hence, although it was a mistake on
ASA’S SICKNESS MISUNDERSTOOD Asa’s part to seek to the physicians of his day and to
Much ado is made by some out ot the statement that neglect the divine covenant x~th his people, we see no
v. hen Asa was snl,sequently diseased m his feet, "In his intHnation here that it would be wrong for mankind in
disease he sought not to the Lord but to the physicians. general to make use of bona fide medical skill and aid
And Asa slept with his fathers." From flus it is argued today.
that it is sin for anyone to make use (,~ medical assistance, We are pernntted to select from nature’s provisions such
and that God’s displeasure was m.tmfe,ted HI Asa’s death foods as we lind to be most suited to our health and oc-
as a lesson to his people then and ntm. We will not at- cupation; so ,llso we nmy reasonably use anytlnng from
tempt to controvert the claim that much of the nledmlne nature’s laboratory which we ourselves or others may be
given by physicians does more harnl than good, but we able to compolmd which would serve to correct or tone
deny that there is any ground for nsing tluu case as a up our phy~cql systems for greater usefulness in life. It
basis for such an argument as tim foregoing .~u~ested. i~ a nnstake of some in suppose that God has prom~se(l
We must not forgel that God’s covenant x~ its tie-hb Israel, to keep sp~ritnal Israel free from s~ckness and pain and
made at Sinai, inlphed not only that he wonld be tlmir trouble. On the contrary, we know that he permits the
Captain, and give tlmm dehveranee in the tm~e of war, dll~multms of life to afflict some of his most loyal children.
and that he would be then" Lax~-Gtver and l,:mg, to rule "What he does pronnse m theft whatever he may permit
them for their best welfare, but alto th’tt ob~erv-tnce of to lns people will work out somethn~g for their good, for
his laws would, under his providence, protec~ them from then" blessing, if they ~x~ll be rightly exercised thereby,
pestilences and the conlmon di~e,t-e~ of ]tie, so that, as and seek for the blessings.
INTERESTING LETTERS
TOWER APPRECIATED IN HAWAII if not the best since Brother Russell’s death.
DEAR ~RETVIREN : D’~ily I am praying for the Lord’s supervision over T~E
Greetings in the name of onr Kn,g TO~Ea, as well as all the work, and that he will not permit
At a recent meeting, motion "p.~ls Illild0 and uatllllnl(~u~iy anything to appear therein except what would be for our
carried that a letter be sent to you conveying our love, as Christian welfare.
well as to show our appreciation of the wonderful articles ]~ow it comes along with a good hot serving of food and
which have come to us in TfIn ~VA’rCH TowFl~. warms us thronghout, stimulating us as the message from
These precious truths brought fro’Ill from our Heavenly the apostle Peter was intended to do when he wrote 2
Father’s great storehouse, have given us much joy and Peter 2 1-13.
strength. The Lord well knew what his children needed. If we
Daily our prayers are that you may be richly blessed in were all in a healthy spiritual condition there would be
the future as in the past. little fraction and much zeal for the truth manifested.
Realizing that a great witnessing ~ork is yet to be done. It seems we have so little time for study and are such
we wish to assure you of our earnest desire to co6perate leaky vessels we forget thm.gs so m~portant to our Christian
with you in any way possible. welfare We change, but the Lord and hm Word change not.
HONOLULU (Hawaii) ECCLESIA, J. 51. HA:RItUB, See’y. Dear brethren, I feel it my duty to write and express
my heartfelt thanks for the "meat in due season" which I
FINDS THE FOOD APPETIZING have recmved through your labor of love.
DEAR WATCYt TOWER OFFICERS: May the Lo~d’s blessing continue to rest upon you is the
I have in~t concluded reading the article on "Approved daffy pra)er of
Workmen" in last Tt)~E~ and think it one of the richest Your sister in the Lord, Mrs. a. It. St~IErtWOOD,--Ma~s.
"I am his," 0 blest assurance, how it thrills my soul with "I am his", and oh the richness of my Joy and eestacy
joy ! As I sit low at his feet and hear his whispered words to me.
View it brightens every moment that I spend in his employ. Words of wisdom and instruction,
How it makes my days seem shorter, Words so loving and so kind,
How it makes my tanks seem light, Words revealing all the grandeur of the graces of his mind.
~Iakes my hours rosy--tinted, makes my songs abound at
night. "I am his !" and his forever, oh how precious Is the thought,
To be with him. to be like him, and to love him as I m~ght,
"I am his !" Mytime, my talent, to be spent at his sx~eet will.
Subject Io his wise direction God’s greqt purpose to fulfill. To be in his presence ever,
What a sense of comfort fills me, To be sharing in his joy,
What a sense of peace and re~t, Ble~qng all lus blood has purchased, which shall be our
I lean upon my Savior, knowing that his way is best. glad employ.
International Bible StudentsAssociation Classes
BROTHER R. H. BARBER BROTHF-A{ Bo M. RICE
Macon, Ga ....... Mar. 1 Elba, Ala ................ Mar. 7 Clinton, Ia. _ .Mar. 9, 10
Enfaula, Ala. " 2 Opp, Ala ............... Mar 8, 12 Elma, Ia ................ Mar. 1, 2
Waterloo, Ia .......... " 3.4 Davenport, Ia. .... Mar. 12
Clayton, Ala. " 3 Andaluma, Ala ....... " 9, 10 Mollne, IlL " 13
Dothan, Ala ............. " 5 Geneva, Ala ............. Mar. 13 Cedar Rapids, Ia. , " 5, 6
Enterprise, Ala. " 6 " 14 Shellsburg, Ia ......... Mar. 7 Rock Island~ IlL -- "n 14
-’~ Florala, Ala ............. Muscatine, Ia. 1~
Oxford Jc., Ia. -- " 8
BROFIIER J. A. BOHNET
P, edfieht, A,k ............ Mar 1 Searcy,.krl.: .................... Mar. 9
H,in]l)u]~ ~.zl, .......... Mar 2,3 l-)e~ A~c, Ark.............. " 10 BROTHER C. ROBERTS
lteleuA AJl ......... M,It 5 Ward,Ark ................ Mar 12, 13
Fome.t CJi3. Alk ........ " 6 Swffton, Ark................... Mar.14
Judsonm, Alk ............. Mm. 7, 8 Bates~Hle, Ark .............. " 15 St, Catharines, 0at ......... Mar. 1 Caledonia, Oat ................ Mar. 9
Thorold, Ont ................... " 2 Brantford, Ont. __..Mar. 1O, 11
Nmgara Falls, Ont ........ Mar. 3,5 Scotland, Ont. .......... Mar. 13
Welland, Oat ................ Mar. 6 Slmcoe, Oat .......... Mar 14, 15
Dunnwlle, Ont. ....... Mar. 7, 8 Tilsonburg, Ont. Mar. 16
BROTHER E. F. CRIST
S~rae.~e, NY ................. Mar. 1 Utica, N.Y..................... Mar 8, 9
Mann.xfllc, N Y. ........ " 2 Oneonta,N. Y ................. Mar. 10
~Xatertown, N. Y ........... M,u 3,5 Johnstown, N. Y ............ " 12
ltome, N k .................... Mar. 6 Glo~el~flle, N. Y .......... " 13 BROTHER R. L. ROBIE
Oneida, N Y ................ " 7 Schene~tad3, N. Y ..... Mar. 14, 15
Wayne~bmo,IMiss ......... Mar. 1, 2 Vicksburg, Miss ...... Mar. 10
West Point, 5Iiss ........ " 3, 5 St Joseph, La ................. " 12
Okolon.t, bliss ................. Mar. 6 Wanilla, Miss ........... Mar. 13, 14
Cohlmbus, ~llSS ........... " 7 IIattlesburg, Miss ..... " 15, 19
BROTIIER A. J. ESI1LEMAN Jackson, Miss ........... Mar. 8, 9 Laurel, hhss ............... Mar. 16
BROTHER S. H. TOUTJIAN
BROTHER W. H. PICKERING Gadsden, Tenn ................ Mar. 1 Texarkana, Tex. ......... Mar. 7
Mar 2 Reedlev,Cal ..................... Mar. 8 Memphi%Tenn ............. " 2 Dallas, Tex ............ Mar. 9-12
Santa Rosa, Cal ............. Ju(l~nula, Atl, ................. " 3 Waxahachie, Tex. ..... Mar. 13
San Rafael, Cal ............... " 3 Oto~,Cal ........................ " 9
Oaklnnd,Cat .................... " 5 TuLue, Cal ................... " 10 lAttlc Rock, Ark................ " 5 Hillsboro, Tex ....... " 14
I~l(:hnlond, Cal ................. " 6 Pottet~llle, (’al ............... " 12 Donaldson, Ark ............. " 6 Waco, Tex ...... " 15
Fleano,Cal ....................... " 7 B,4kersfihht, Cal ............... " 13
BROTHER W. M. WISDOM
BROTHER G. R. POLLOCK
Ammillo,Tex ............... Mar. 1, 5 Dallnu, Tex................ Mar 9-12 Wapanucka. OMa............. l~Iar. 1 Dallas, Tex................. Mar 9-12
Dalhart, Te~................ " 2,4 Dul)hn, Tex .............. Mar. 13 Aehille Ol, la .................. " 2 Ardmore, Okla .......... Mar. 13, 14
l]ooke~, Okla ................... Mar. 3 Stephenv]lle, Tex ......... " 14 Bosxxell, Okla.................. " "~ Madfll, Okla .................. Mar. 15
Wlc]uta l’all% Tex ........... " 6 Gustme, Tex ................. " 16 Valhant, Okla .............. Mar 5, c, Sulphur, Okla ............... " 16
Bowie,Tex ...................... " 7 Purmcla, Tex ............ Mar 17, 18 Darant, Ol, la .................. Mar. 7 Ada, Okla ...................... " 17
, ,,
"1 well ~tal;d upon my .tttLh (Ind ICIZJ Yet ;Ity fO0$
upot~ the Tozte*, arid t.~tll ltatch lO 8ec what He wall
say unto me, and what attsttet I 8halt make to them
(h,lt oppose mc ~--ll~lboLLttk £ 1.
UI}on the eqtlii rhqtt~ of natanls with ~rpiexlt~; the sea and the waves (tile ro%1e~%dl,ranlented) roaring; men’s hearts falling them for fear ~nd for looking to the
things coming norm the earth (society); for the powers of the hvaven~ (e~cc~t,~Llel~llt ~.~t he shaken.... When ye see these things begin In rome to papa,
then kllo~t that the K’"=tr,m of God Is at hand. Look ~, lift up your heads, rejoice, for you, rede~,Ttlola dmweth tllgh.--Matt. 24:33; Mark 13 29. Luke 21 2,5-~k
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS SACRED MISSION
THISpresented
journal is one of the I)rlme factors
in all parts of the civilized
or instruments m the system of Bible instruction,
world by the WATCHTOWERBIBLE & TRACTSOCIETY, chartered
or "Seminary Ex%~nsion", now betn~
A.D. 1S84, "For the Pro-
motion of Christian Knowledge". It not only serves as a class room ullere Bible students may meet ~n the study of the dlvhle Word but
also lls a chanllel of comuIunlcatiou through ~lllch they may be reached v~lth announcements of the Society’s subventions anti of the
coming of ~ts tiavellng rcpresentatnes, styled "Pilgrims", and refreshed with reports of its conventions.
Oar "Berean Lcnsons" are top,.cM rehearsals or reviews of our Society’s pubhshed STUDIES mo~t entertainingly arranged, and very
helpful t9 all who would mel~t the only honorary degree which the Roclety accords, wz., Ycrbi De~ Minister IV. D. M.), which translated
into Engllqi i~ Min,ster o/ God’s Wo~d. Our treatment of the luternatlonal Sunday School Lessons m specially for the older Bible
students and teacl,~,s. Dy some this featule is considered indispen=able.
~lns journal stundg firmly for the defense of tile only true foundahon of the Christian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
--redempUon through the preeiou~ blood of "tile man Chr,st Jesus. who ga~e himself a ransom [a comespondlng price, a substitute] for
all". (1 Peter 1 : 1.3 ; 1 Timothy 2. 6) lquildmg up on this snre foundation the gold, silver and precious stones (1 Corinthians 3:
15 ; 2 Peter 1 : 5-11) of the Word of God, its further imsblun is to "make all see what is the fellowship of the mystery whmh...h~
been lad J,1 God, . . . to the intent that now mlgllt be made known by tile church the manifold wisdom of God"--"which in other ages
was not made knm~n unto the sons of meu as ~t is now revealed".--Epheslans 3 : 5-9, 10.
It stands free from all parlies, sects and creeds of men, while it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
subjection to the will of God Jn Chmst, ns oxpI’e~ned ]n the ilo~y Scrmtures. ]t is thus free to declare boldly whatsoever the Lord
hath spoken--according to tile divine wisdom granted mite us to umlerstand his utterances. Its atUtude is not dogmatic, but confident ;
for ~e know ~heteof we afihm, treadulg w, th tlnphci~ faith upon the sore promises of God. ]t is held as a trust, to be used only in his
ser’,tce; hence our decbnons relahve to ~llat may and ~hat may not appear m its colmnns must be according ~o our Judgment of his
good pleasure, the teaching of hin Word, for the npbluldmg of his peonle In grace and knowledge. And we not only invite but urge ou~
readers to prove all 1is utterance~ ~y the infallible Word to ~hich referents is constam]y made to faclhtate such testing.
TEXAS CONVENTION
pu~UlS~F~O 8~
’211oInCelnational IIihle~tudontq Association willhold a gener-
WATCH TOWER. I~ISLE 6-TRACT SOCIETY a] con~.entlon at Dallas,Te.xaq,5:arrh9, 10, II and :12. A numher
of lulgrinl brelhren "a lit he p~ c~cnt np,l tile Pre~,dont of the Socmty
124COLUMSIA HEIQHTS n g BI’(OOKLYN. N.Y..u-S’A"~,~ill address the l)ubhc Oil Snllday atterncon. Tlll~ conventlou "C, lll
fnrnlMl nil ol)portunltv far tile lr~ends of Texa~ Okhdloma, and
FoRmc~ O~ICES: Blitlsh 34 Craven Terrace, Lancaster Gate, ethel adlotnulg ~tatos to ha~ e a %~,l~c~nof l)el~ollal fe![o~x,~hll) to-
London ]V 2; Canadma 270 Dundas St., W., Toronto, Ontamo; gether It l~ expected that flu< ~,,11 lie well attended, as it is the
Ausi~nIa,lan 4q5 Colhns St, Melbourne Austlaha; South Atr~ onl3 eon’~entlon hehl 111 the bm,thwt-st dhrlUg tile glnter, l~’or
can 123 Plem St., Cape Tol~n, South Afmca local acconunodatlons alldle~.~ E Telkaml), 464l Tragls Street,
PIEX%n ~DY, RESS THn SOCIETY IN ~VERY CASE, Dalla% Texas
I.BS’A
BEIEANBIBLESTUDIES May 3 CIaRIST ann VI~F. "I am the true vine."---John
May 10. CIIRI~T YFIE I"OUNDATION:
15: 1.
"I~ellohl I lay in Zion . . , a
ByMeansoF "The Plan of the Ages" ~ute found:~t:on"--I~mah 2S :16.
"These thing salth he that is holy."
May 17. C~mST T~tr, lI,~lY
Chapter VI: Our Lord’s Return --Re, elation 3. 7
Weekof Msy 7 ............ Q ,~6-42 Week ~,t .Ma3 21 ... Q 50 7)6 May 24: CnalST q lll~ RIGHTEOI q "~[y righteous servant shall
Week of Ma5 14 ....... Q. 43-49 V;eek of May 28 ....... Q 57-63 3ustffY many."--:1,~alah 53.11.
QIIc3110II bonl, s on "The D Yti12Plan , 15¢ p~SLllald May 31 : CY/RIST THE FAITHFUL: "Faithful is he that ealleth you."
; --1 Thessalomans 5 : 24.
WHO IS WISE?
"So teach us to number our days, that we may apply our hearts unto wisdom."---PsaZm 90: 12.
his enemies, but that would ha~c been an unwise course to endless blessmg~.. (Exodus 19: 5) I-Iad their hearts
5ecause it was the Father’s will that he should do other- been applied io wmdomthey would have been obedient
wise. to their ~ovcnant; but they were not. Their rulers and
Whenhe reached the hour of his supreme suffering teachers and leaders became~ise after the Satanic order
he did pray nnto the _Father: "0 my Father, if it be of wisdom, and led the masses rote wrong paths.
possible, let this cup pass frmn me: nevmtheless not WhenJesus came to his o’,xn people lie found that
as [ will, but as thou udt". (Matthew26: 39) God per- thmr teachers and ]ulers claimed to be men of great
mitred his beloved Son to ~,uffer. "Though he were a learmng, accordn,g to the world, and appropr:ated to
Son, yet learned he obedmnee by the things which he then:selves tJttes .~ueh as doctor, etc., and that they were
suffered ; and b ,~.~
,’~-~ madepe~feet, he became the author self-centered, selfish, and wise mtheir owncontrols.
of eternal salvation unto all them that obey him." (He- The,.r hearts were impure. For this ~eason ,Jesus d,d
brews 5: 8.9) Thus is demonstrated ’din announced not choose any of them to be h~s disciples. Tt.ose whom
prinmple that. obedience is more pleasing than saemfice. he did choose ~*ere menmoJ’Ima~ywalks of !fie, fi-,her-
Furthermore, this shows that the reverence of Jchoxnh men and craftsmen. They had not attended theolegmal
is the beginning of wisdom, and that full and eowplete schools. They were uniearncd men according to the
obedience to Jchoxah, even unto the greatest sacrifice, Pharisees’ standard; yet, v lth b-~it one exeeptton, they
is the end or eompletionof wisdom.I-Ienee it is wmtten: beeame w~se men.
"Wisdomis the principal thmg".--Proverbs 4:7. Concerning Nathaniel, Jesu~ stud: ’:Behohl an israel-
ite indeed, in whomis no gatle!" (go]m 1:47) There
TWO MASTERS was nothing about that Israehte that was eunmng and
There are but two masters: The master of sm and wily and d~plomatie. He was a humble and wise man.
death, Satan the devil; and the blaster of truth, the Because eleven of these &dapply their hearts to wis-
Lord Jesus. This great contrast of the two is made dom, the Lord has made them mJgl,ty ones in his king-
in the Scriptures for the teaching of the people of God, dora. Their earthly wisdom &d not’help them at all,
however,to get such exalted positions.
that they might properly apply their hearts unto wis-
dom. Everything written is written for their learning.
(Romans15:4) It follows, then, that every one is the APPLIEDUNTOWISDOM
servant of one or the other of these two masters. St. St. Stephen is an example of one who applied his
Paul writes: "Know ye not, {hat to whomye yield heart unto wisdom. He was not a learned man, but
yourselves to obey, his servants ye are to whomye obey ; being full of froth and the spirit of the Lord, h~s argu-
whether of sin unto death, or of obedmnce1rote right- ments were so powerful that the debaters of the syna-
eousness?" (Romans 6: 16) It is x~ntten: "And this gogue of the Lfl)ertmes, the Cyrenians, Alexandrian%
~s hfe eternal, that they might knowthee the only true and them of Cdieia and of Asia, were not able to res, st
God, and Jesus Christ, whomthou hast sent" (John him. (Acts 6: 9. 10) These worldly-wine clergymen
17: 3), "m whomare hid all the treasures of wisdom thought they would soon squelch poor Stephen; but be-
and knowledge".--Colossians 2 : 3. ing unable to do it with thmr ownknm~ledge, and their
To gain worldly knovledge nnd apply it according to hearts being nnpure, the devil imparted to them his
the worldly manner may develop in one eunning and v lsdom of ctmmngand wickedness and they set about
eraftiness, but will lead to disaster. To have knowledge to destroy Stephen in that manner. The3- hh’ed men to
of Godand Jesus and apply it in the wise way according swear falsely against Stephen and caused him to be
to the divine standard leads to hfe and endless happl- arrested and brought hefore the supreme court of their
ness. The Wordof God is given for the instrnctmn of land. In that august body sat what many supposed
men in the way that leads to wisdomand to life. to be the men of greatest learning and wisdom m all
Israel. Those worhlly-wise doctors and judges heard
OTItER EXAMPLES the false witnesses testify against Stephen, wrongfully
convicted him, and sent him to death.
The children of Israel were God’s chosen people.
Sometimesthat nation pro’sued a wise course, but more Stephen’s heart was applied unto wisdom; and because
often an nnwtse course, ttad the Israelites been wise, of Ins faithful obed~eneeto the Lord and the witnessing
they would have adhered strictly to the true religion, to his cause, the Lord granted h~ma vision at the mo-
always recognizing Jehovah as the true God and joy- ment of supreme test; and looking up into heaven, lie
fully obeying his commandments.They yielded, how- said: "Behold, I see the heavens opened, and the Son
ever, to the seductzve.influence of the other master, of manstanding on the right hand of God".--Aets 7 : 56.
Satan, and were led away in unwise paths, embracing Sometimes a mnn of learning and knowledge con-
a false religion and following after false gods. They cerning earthly matters becomes wise. Saul of Tarsus
had the promise of Jehovah ’chat obedience would lead was a learned man, but not a wise man during the early
7O ¯ WATCH TOWER BROOKLYN,N. ~.4
part of his life. Doubtless he had an honest heart and foolishness; hence the higher critics deny God’s plan,
his persecution of Christians was based upon the belief deny lus Word, and deny the great Redeemer. For this
that he was doing right. In due time when the eyes of reason we see "that not manywise men after the flesh,
Ins understanding were opened and he applied his heart not manymighty, not manynoble, are called ; but God
to pure wisdom, the Lord sent him forth as a special hath chosen the foolish things of the world to confound
messenger to bear his name before the gentries and the [worldly] wise ; and Godhath chosen the weak tlnngs
kings and the children of Israel. (Acts 9:15) There- of the world to confound the things which are mlgl~ty;
after his love and devotion were to the Lord and to his and base things of the world, and things which are de-
cause. He went forth as a humble messenger of the spised, hath Godchosen, yea, and things which art not,
Lord and spoke in language that others could under- to bring to naught things that are ; that no flesh should
stand, tie specially avoided using language that his glory in his presence".--1 Corinthians 1: 26-~9.
hearers could not understand. (1 Corinthians 14~: 28)
Whenhe went to the friends to speak to them, or when "NONEOF THE WICKEDSlIALL UNDERSTAND"
he wrote an epistle to them, he did not expatiate about
3fore than five years have pa~sed slnce Brother Rus-
his great knowledgeof Arabic, Sansl¢it, Syriac, or any
sel dmd, and yet manyof the so-called orthodox clergy
oilier language except the one they understood, tie did
not tell them what a great lawyer he was, or give them continue to malign, slander and hbel him. It is unusual
a ]ecture on criminal or medical jurisprudence. He did to defame a man long after ins death. When such a
not come to them in the excellency of his own speech course of dcfamahon is pursued there must a reason.
and parade his own learning before them; but on the What is that reason? tIave m mind that there are but
contrary he said: "I am determined not to know any- two masters, and that the name of one of these masters
is the devil, whmhmeans slanderer; and his children
thing amongyou, s~ve Jesus Christ, and him crucified.
¯ . . Myspeech and mypreaching was not with enticing do his ~ffI. (John 8: ¢4) Onthe other hand, if Brother
Russdl was a special servant of the Lord and rendered
words of man’s wisdom, but in demonstration of the
spent and of power; that your faith should not stand faithful service, then it would be expected that because
in the wisdom of men, but in the power of God.". (1 of his faithfulness he would be persecuted by the off-
spring of the devd. Jesuq_ said: "The servant is not
Corinthians 2: 2-5) This is an example that all Chris-
gr,~ater than his lord. If they have persecuted me, they
tmns would do well to follow.
writ a]so persecute you." (John15: 2O)it ~fil be dis-
puted by some even who have come to a knowledge of
THEHIDDENWISDOM
present truth, that Brother Russdl oeeupmd any more
There is a temptation to man to exhibit his own peeuli,qr relationship to the Lord than any other servant
learning before others. This is not a wise course. When or follower of Jesus. In lmn we find another example
we speak or write it should be in such phrase as can be of one who spphed his heart to wisdom.
understood by our hearers or readers, that they maybe What was his peculiar relahonsh!p to the Lord, and
edified. It is quite probable that St. Paul was as learned whywas and stffl is he the specml target of the adver-
as any member of the Jewish Sanhedrin; but he did sary? Let us examine the ewdence here upon these
not speak with the wisdom that they spoke with. On pohlts.
the contrary, he says: ’5Ve speak . . . not the wisdom Just hefore the cruc:fixion of our Lord he said to his
of this world, nor of the princes of this world, that dismples that he was going away and would return again
come to naught; but we speak the wisdom of God in and receive the faithful ones unto himself, that they
a mystery, even the hidden wisdom, which God ordained might m due tnne be with him where he was going¯
before the world unto our glory, wlnch none of the From Pentecost fro’ward Christmns have looked for the
princes [rulers] of this world kmew". (1 Corinthians return of our Lord. St. Paul expressed it as his greatest
2: 6-8) The princes of this world did not have such destre that the Lord m~gllt return and that he might
wisdombecause they had not the spirit of Christ. Their be with him. He declared that at the Lord’s return he
heart~ were applied in the wrong direction. Their love woul4 not only reward St. Paul with a crm~mof right-
was for the honor and plaudits of men. St. Paul applied eousness, but likewise would grant a crown at that timo
his heart to wisdom, his love being for God and for to all who would love his appearing. Christians for a
Christ Jesus. long time x~ aired and prayed and hoped for that blessed
There never was a man in this world who thought time to come. All those who have been specially watch-
himself wise according to worldly wisdom but that was ing for it had the promise of a blessing, particularly
a fool in God’s sight, "because the foolishness of God those whoshould survive that time.
is wiser than men"; "for it is written, . . . Where is Godcaused his holy prophets of old to write concern-
the wise? where is the scribe? where is the disputer ing the coming of the Messmh,but the prophets did not
of this world? hath not God made foolish the wisdom nnderstand their own writings. It was not due time
of this world?" (1 Corinthians 1:19, 20, 25) The for them to understand. Wouldthe time ever tome when
preaching of Christ in the eyes of the worldly-wise is the true watchers would understand? Yes; God said to
WATCH TOWER 71
one of his holy prophets: "Go thy way, Daniel, for the m’ehy, and was follmved shortly by terrible persecution
words are closed up and sealed mltil the time of the of Christmas. The Lord showed Daniel that from the
end .... None of the wicked shall understand ; but the time of this union or formation of the "dreadful and
,c~se shall understand." (Daniel 12: 9, 10) The devil ternble beast" to the "time of the end" would be 1260
that wicked one ; and, as we have stated, his name sig- years; thereby marking 1799 again as the date of the
nifies slanderer. If we find, tllma, some engaged m "time of the end".
slandering and defaming the name of one who was Mark now that the sccdnd appearing of the Lord is
staving to follow the Lord, and those who are engaged the chief thing discussed in Daniel’s prophecy in the
in this slandering do not nnderstand the diving plan, twelfth chapter. The coming of the Messmh is the
it is easy to determine to which class they belong. If
most blessed time for wlnch Chrishans have looked for-
they were wise, they would understand and net scoff.
ward. The Lord gave to Daniel the key by which it
If they are other than wise, they eanno’~ understand.
could be dete,’mmed when that blessed tram should
begin. He caused lnm to write: "Blessed is he that
THE WISE SHALL UNDERSTAND waiteth, and cometh to the thousand three hundred and
Daniel the prophet is caused to niter the key words five and thirty days"--symbolie days, or 1335 literal
by which the "time of the end" may be definitely lo- years. Co’antmg the time, of course, from 539 A. D.,
cated, lie wrote prophecy, which means that the spirit the point from whmhthe terrible beast began its oper-
of Jehovah operating upon Daniel’s mind caused hm~ ations, forward 1335years, brings us to 1874, tlle blessed
to describe certain events that wonld take place in the time for ~hich the watchers were asked to wait. At
future, and when these events come to pass such would this time the Lord was due to be present.
be conclusive proof that the time foreshadowed by him Fulfilled prophecyeon~nsts of historical and physical
had arrived. Daniel wrote in advance the history of facts, wlneh are indisputable. Such facts never stultify
several world powers from Babylon untiI the "time of themselves. ~\qffle we have a line of Blb!e chronol%~y
the end", which latter time tie marked thus: "At the showing tl’e presence of the Lord due in 1874, even if
time of the olzd shall the king of the south push at him ; we did not have this the evidence gnen by fu!filled pro-
and the king of the north shall come against bin1 hke pheey clearly marks the date of the Lord’s second pres-
a wlm’lwind, with charmts, and with horsemen, and ence. liaving now in mind God’s unchangeable promise,
with manyships; nnd he shall enter into the countries, that during the "time of the end" the w~se should un-
and shall overflow and pass over. He shall enter also derstand, and added to that the teshmony of St. Paul
into the glormus land, and many countries shall be that greater light wouldbe given to the watchers at the
over~hrowa~: bnt these shall escape out of his hand, even end of the age, it is to be expected that someone in the
Edom, and Moab, and the chief of the children of Am- world, waiting and watching for the comingof the Lord,
mon.’--Danlel 11: 40, 41. would be numbered among the wise.
The fulfillment of this prophecy fixes the beginning
of the "tm~e of the end" because the prophecy,so states. KNOWNBY THEIR FRUITS
The king of the south here mentioned refers to Egypt; Lfl<e fulfilled prophecy,circumstantial evidence is one
while the king of the north refers to Great Britain, of the most conclusive ways of making proof of a ques-
which was then an integral pm’t of what had been the tion at issue. If, then, we find the circumstances around
I’,oman empire. Napoleon, fighting his battles in Egypt, a certain person that exactly fit conditions foretold in
gamedgreat vmtories; but at the same time the British, prophecy, the fulfillment of the prophecy shows the time
under the leadership of Lord Nelson, were making an defimtely; while the circumstances in connection there-
effective attack upon Napoleon’s forces at sea. This with locate the person or persons in connection with the
campaign began in 1798 and Napoleon finished it and matter.
returned October 1, 1799. Therefore 1799 is marked There lived in Allegheny, Pennsylvania, in the early
as the beginning of the "time of the end". seventies a young man engaged in the mercantile bus>
StiI1 another method is given by Jehovah to Daniel hess. by the name of Charles Taze Russell. He was fnlly
of fixing the begmmngof that period of time. God consecrated to the Lord. He was not a learned man as
caused Daniel to describe in symbolic phrase four great the world terms learning. He was not a university
world powers, which are symbolizedby the term "beast" ; graduate; yet he was a careful student and a diligent
and the fourth beast is described as "dreadful and ter- searcher for truth. Aboveall, lie was applying his heart
rible". The three component elements that go to make in the direction of knowing the Lord. lie was taking
up the "dreadful and terrible beast" are, to wit: com- a proper course in order to be wise. "By their frmts ye
mercialism, professional pohtic’ians and apostate cIergT, shall know them." (Matthew 7: 20) While he watched
or eeclesiastimsm. This union took place amongst these and studied, waited and prayed, the Lord further i!-
component elements for the first time in 539 A. D., hminatod his mind; and it was about 1875 when he
at the time of the overthrow of the Ostrogothic men- became convinced of the second presence of the Lord,
BROOKLYn,
N. ~,
¯ WATCH TOWER
and in 1877 he wrote, published and widely distributed planation of the so-called comnmnieationwith the dead.
a booklet entitled "The Object and ]~lanner of Our The Lord had promised that "the path of the just is
Lord’s Return". Webelieve without question that this as the shining light that shmeth more and more unto
was the first publieatmn that ever announcedthe Lord’s the perfect day". The light continued to mcrea.,e, be-
~econd presence. cause the "time of the end" was here and God ~ as ful-
In 1879 he began the publication of T~ W,TO~ filling his promise that the wise should under~-tand.
TOWER AND HERALD OF CHRIST’S PRESENOE, the sub- Beeauso greater light was shining upon God’s \Vm’d,
title expressing his confidence in the fact that the Lord Satan was active in trying to blind the minds of God’s
was then present. Since then THEWATCI{TOWER has people, particularly their leaders. The evolution theory
began to get a strm)g foothold in the churches and
continued to be published regularly and is the only
amongst the preachers. Higher criticism b%an to be
paper that has ever persistently and consistently an-
rampant; and in 1898 Brother Russell wreK~ and pub-
nounced the second presence of the Lord. Jesus said: hshcd "The Bible versus the Evolution Theory". thus
"]:[owbeit, whenthe spirit of truth is comeit will guide exposing Satan’s attempt to destroy faith in the Word
you into all truth". (John 16: 13) Fully consecrated of (5od.
to the Lord, begotten and anointed of the holy spirit,
In 1899 he wrote and pubhshed in ¥ohlme V of
his heart devoted to the Lord, Brother Russell contin-
STUnlF.SIN Tire SCRIPTUreS that wonderfully clear ex-
ued to search and write; and becoming convinced from
planatmn of the "Atonement Between God and Man",
aa examination of the Bible that Jehovah has a divine
clarifying the philosophy of the ransom sacrifice and
plan which he is working out in an orderly way, in the the sin-offering, and the witness and operation of the
year 1881 he wrote "Food for Thinking Christians".
In the same year he wrote "Tabernacle Shadows of the holy spirit.
Better Sacrifices". This was the first time that any In 1900 he again wrove and pubhshed a small book
student, as far as we know, had applied the types and on "Our Lord’s Return", explaining the matl,er of
shadowsconnected with the sacrifices of Israel at their Christ’s seeond presence in greater detail.
proper place and showed how they foreshadowed the lit 1904he published the sixth of the series of STUDII]S
sin-offering on behalf of the world, and howthe church n~ ’ra~E Sor, ll’TOlmS, "The NewCreation," which deals
in due time would have a part in that sin-offering. with the call, begetting, anointing and devdopmentof
the church, and the goverr:ment and dlsciphne m the
"SOME AN HUNDREDFOLD" churdl.
In 1914 he produced and pul)hshed the Seenarm of
In 1886 he wrote and published "The Divine Plan "The Photo-Drama of Creahon", vhieh has had a tre-
of the Ages", Volume1 of STUD~eS I1¢ T~E StriCTURES, mendouscirculation throughout the earth.
a more elaborate and detailed statement of God’s ga-ea£
He had written much in T~ WATC,-r TOWl.:R and
plan of salvation. In 1889 he wrote and pubhshed Vof
nine 2 of this series, "The Tm~eis at I-Iantt," explaining other publications which was afterward ,~sed in compil-
the "times and seasons", the Bible chronologT, the ing the seventh of the series of STUDIES IX :e~ ScRn’-
"times of the gentiles", the parallel dispensations, etc. TUR~S,"The Finished Mystery," which was pubhshed
In 1891 he published series 3 of the S’rUDIESn¢ T~E after his death.
SCUleTUm:S,"Thy Kingdom Come," clearly and fully
THE TIME OF THE HARVEST
explaining the prophecies relating to the coming of the
Messianic kingdom, the time of the end, the cleansing Jesus saicl that the age would end with a harvest, at
of the sanctua~3’, the time of the harvest, the work of which time he would be present, and that lie wouldthen
the harvest, the deliverance of the church and the re- send forth his messengers to gather together his elect.
storation of Isiael. (Matthew 13: 24-30; 24: 31) It is to be expected that
In 1896 he lmbli.~hed a small book on "What Say the Lord would have some witness in the earth at the
the Scriptures about Hall", e_xposing the defamation time of the harvest to make announcement of the fact
that Satan had heaped upon Jehovah’s character, and of his presence and of the harvest. Here is some more
removing fear anti dread from hundreds of thousands circumstantial evidence whid~ is proof conclusive; some
of minds. In the same year he produced the boo’kle{ more phymcalfacts that speak louder than amlible words,
on the "Chart of the Ages", explaining the ages and to wit: It was Brother Russell who announced the time
dispen.-_atio,~. of the harvest and the presence of the Master of the
harvest. It was he whofirst went forth throughout the
In 1897 he ~l’ote and published the fourth series of
land crying out, ’The harvest is here ; go ye into the field
STm~tcsa~ Tu~ Scmm’cl~,s, "The Battle of Arranged-
and labor’. Andthousands of others taking up the slo-
(Ion," foreshado~ing the great trouble which has since gan joined in the proclamation of the message.
come upon the world and which is now in progress.
The same year he published,a small book on "What Say Jesus plainly said that during the time of his presence
the Sctilatures about Spiritism", giving the Bible ex- he would have a faithful and wise servant whomhe
MARCH
1, 1922 73
WATCH TOWER
would use to give meat to the household (of faith) his promise that then the wise should understand.
due season. Every one today who has a knowledge of
WISE TOWARD GOD
the divine plan of the ages must truthfully answer that
he derived that knowledge from studying his Bible in Was he wise? As the world understands that word,
connection with what Brother Russell wrote; that be- particularly as defined by worldly clergymen, he was
fore such time he did not even know that God had a not. And thank God he was not. Had he possessed great
plan of salvation. Every person whotoday is rejoicing worldly wisdom, such as that employed by his defamers,
in the light of the truth of God’s Wordrealizes that the the Lord would never have used him. Be it noted that
Lord brought ¢o him that truth, unfolding it through these so-called learned clergymen charge against him
the ministrations and work begun by Brother Russell that he was not learned in the Greek and Hebrew. That
shortly following the presence of the Lord. charge is true. The facts demonstrate beyond a doubt
Washe a servant of the Lord ? No one who knew him that the majority of men who possess a knowledge of
and who tells the truth can deny the fact that he was Greek and Hebrew take themselves too seriously. They
servant, because he gave his time over to service, tie begin to think they knowso nmch that they must bring
devoted all of his earthly possesmonsthat others might forth something startling to upset what somebodyelso
gain a knowledge of God’s plan. lie devoted his life has done. They depart from the Lord’s way and lean
from the time of his early manhooduntil his death in to their own understanding, contrary to his Word.
going throughout the earth serving others in the name (Proverbs 3:5, 6) They usually speak and write
of the Lord. such phrase that the ordinary mind cannot grasp it;
and this they do hoping to magmfytheir own wisdom
A FAITHFUL AND WISE SERVANT in the eyes of others. Because they believe they have
greater wisdom than others they make statements in a
Washe faithful? This question must be answered in dogmatic form, regardless of x~hether right or wrong,
the attirmative. Faithfulness means to follow loyally depending on the matter being swallowed by others be-
and constantly the course that one starts out to follow, cause not able to fathom this supposed wisdom.
viz., a devotion to the Lord and his cause. Never for
one momentdid he deviate from the faith once delivered Satan takes advantage of these things and leads them
to the ~amts. He put forth every power within him to into error deeper and deeper ; and if they ever had any
remmefrom the minds of the people the foul stain on faith in God’s Wordit is soon destroyed. They have
Jehovah’s cl,aracter placed there by Satan and his em- taken the wrong course because of self-love, because of
desire for approval by others, a desire to be thought
lssar~es, manyof winch emissaries paraded before the
great and w~se. They have applied their hearts unto
people as representatives of Christ. He turned on a
selfishness and have not apphed them unto wisdom--
flood of hght from the Wordof God and "put the fire
not that the knowledge of Greek and Hebrew or any
out of hell", gn;mg its true, Scriptural meaning, tie
other learning ~s in itself wrongor detrimental. It be-
held ;o;th before the people that Godis love and that
Jesus is the express mmgeof the Father, the great tie- comes detrimental only when one permits himself to
deemer of man, the head of the church, the King of becomewise in his turn conceit by reason of possessing
kings and Lord of lords. He made clear the philosophy such knowledge.
of the ransom,~aerifice and the sin-offering. He preached Brother Russell was not that kind of man. His
consistently ju~tlfieatmn by faith through the blood of heart was completely devoted to the Lord. He reahzed
Christ alone; sanettficahon by the washing of the Word his dependence upon the Lord and joyfully laid all of
and follo~x mgm the footsteps of the Master. He made his burdens at the feet of Jesus. I-Ie numberedhis days
clear to searchers for truth the true relationship of the and apphed Ins heart unto wisdom ; and the Lord made
church to her Headand h’Iaster. He explained covenants him wise. Christ Jesus was made unto him wisdom.
and brought to hght the true import of the Abrahamie (1 Corinthmns 1: 30) To him was the promise ful-
promise and the restorahon of man. filled: "Whenthe spirit of truth is comehe will guide
you into all truth".--John 16:13.
Twogreat truths had long been hid under the rubbish
piled upon them by worldly-wise clergymen blinded by The indisputable facts, therefore, showthat the "time
the adversary, namely, the Abrahamie promise and the of the end" began in 1799; that the Lord’s second pres-
restoration of man. Godused Brother Russell to bring joy ence began in 1874; that the harvest followed thereafter
to millions of hearts by unearthing these great truths and greater light has come upon the Wordof God. In
and bringing them again to light He was used to put into this connectmn, then, let us note the words of Jesus:
the minds of the people a dearer understanding of the "Whothen is a faithful and wise servant, whomhis
divine arrangement than any man of modern times. lord hath made ruler over his household, to give them
Andwhy ? The answer is, Because the Lord is present ; meat in due season ? Blessed is that servant, whomhi.q
the end of the age is here, and Jehovah is makingtrue lord when he cometh shalI find so doing." (Matthew24:
?4 WATCH TOWER BROOKLYN, N.Y,
45, 46) It must be conceded, then, that at the end ot chronology of the Bible, deny the presence of tl~e Lord,
the world, at the "time of the end", during the presence deny the resurrection of the saints, deny the harvest
of the Lord, during the harvest, he would have in the period is here, and deny that the church is the bride
earth a servant who would be faithful and wise. The of Christ, etc. They will base their conclusions largely
physical facts show that Brother Russell met every one upon human rea~.oning. This is not the w~sdomthat
of these reqmrements. This prophetic utterance, then, cometh from above.
has been fulfilled. Therefore fulfilled prophecy, or phys- Let the in&spntable physical facts, the fulfilled pro-
ical facts, and the circmnstantial evidence are conclu- phecy, forever put to silence those who would become
sive proofs that Brother P~ussell filled the office of that
wise in their own estimation. ]f we had no chronolog-y
faithful and wise servant. He applied his heart unto at all, or if our calculations concerning chronology are
wisdom. ~rong, yet fulfilled prophecy, circumstantial evidence,
is proof conchlsive of these great fundamental truths:
EDUCATION NOT ALWAYS WISDOM the presence 6f the Lind, the harvest of the saints, the
Ever and anon some one, yielding to ~he seductive end of the world, and that the kingdomof heaven is at
influence of the adversary, concludes that he must, be- hand.
cause of his ownconstruction of some Greek or ttebrew Let each one who ]ms the truth ask himself, From
word, or something that he has found in secular history, whence did I get it ? He must answer, I obtained it by
overturn some teaching of the truth; and he is hound reading the writings of that faithftfl and wise servant
to exhibit his own wisdom to others, even though it who interpreted and unfolded to me the divine plan.
upsets the faith and confidence of God’s people. Who Is it reasonable, then. that the Lord would use the
would be interested in inducing any human being to agencies he has used during the past forty years to il-
take such a course that would result in injury to the luminate the minds of consecrated Christmns and lead
faith of any of the Lord’s httle ones ? Rememberagain them along the way and then permit it to appear that
that there are but the two masters, and that Satan the all these agencies are fraudu]ent? It is wholly unrea-
devil is interested in destroying all faith in Godand in sonable. It is wholly unlike the Lord. Then let all who
his Word. Let none of the Lord’s sheep becomediscour- have obtained a lcnowledge neglect not the applying of
aged whenthese things arise. They will comeperiodmally their hearts to the acquiring of wisdomby filling their
and they operate as tests to those who are consecrated minds again and again with the precious truths contain-
unto the Lord. Let each one, then, consider how the ed in the STUDIES I~ T1~IE SCRIPTURES and other writ-
Lord has ]ed him and how the Lord ha~ unfolded his ings of that faithful and wise servant; and by devoting
truth at the end of the age, and witness these disturb- fl~_emselvesto the Lord and to his cause.
ances only as another evidence that the Lord is dealing Jn our next issue we will have something to say about
lovingly with his ownpeople. the practical application of the hearts of God’s people
Somewill arise from time to time ~ho dispute the unto wisdom.
BROTHER C. ROBERTS
BROTHER J. A. BOHNET
Tilsonburg, Ont .......... Mar 16 L~,’unington, Ont ....... Mar 24
Turkey,Ark..................... Mar. 17 SpHngdale,Ark .............. Mar. 23 Aylmer, not ............ Mar 17, ]9 W~nd,~or. 0nt ......... ]~lal 26 27
Zlll(, AIk......................... " 37 Bentonvllle, Ark............. " 24 St. Tbomas, Ont ........ " 20,2t Clmtham. not ........ " 25 29
Jophn,Mo........................ " 20 P.tt,~burg, Kan ........... Mar. 26, 27 Ri’dgetown,Ont ............ ’.’Mar 22 Sarnm, Ont ................. Mar. 30
SH(*dmSprings. Ark ....... " 21 Gnard, Kan.................... Mar. 28 Blenheml,Ont ................. " 23 Strathroy, Ont .............. " 31
Fayette~llle, Alk .......... " 22 Cherokee,Kan................. " 29
BROTHER R. L. ROBIE
BROTHER E. F. CRIST Laurel, Miss................... Mar. 16 Zona, La ...................... Mar. 24
VosburgMiss ................ " 17 NewOrleal~s, La ...... Mar. 2(;, 27
S:uatoga Springs, N.Y. Mar. 16 Granville, N. Y ......... Mar. 23, 26 Meridian,Miss ................. " 18 Foisom, La ............... " 2S, 29
F(ut Edward, N. Y. Mar. 17, 19 Greenwich, N. Y ............. Mar. 27 Poplarville, Miss ............. " 20 Ouceola, La ................... Mar 30
Glenu Falls, N. Y ....... " 19, 20 Mecbamcsvllle, N. Y ....... " 28 Bogalusa, La ........... ]~lar. 22, 23 Baton Rouge La ......... Apr. 2, 3
T]conderoga, N. Y ........... l~Iar. 21 Troy, N..Y....................... " 29
Rutland, Vt. ................ " 22 Watervhet, N. Y ............. " 30
BROTHER W. J. TIIORN
BROTHER T. H. THORNTON
Bellmont.Ill ................... Mar. 16 Ti~ehe~Ill ...................... Mar. 23
BROTHER A. M. GRAHAM ]~Iarmn,Ill ................. Mar 1S, 19 5lound~Ill ....................... " 24
WtutoAsil, Ill ............... Mar. 20 Anna,Ill ....................... " 26
Schenectady, N. Y ........... Mar. 19 Niagara Fall% N. Y ......... Mar. 24 Metropohs,Ill ................. " 21 Alto Pass, Ill ............. " 28
" 20 Buffalo, N. Y.................. " 26 Paducah,Ky .................... " 22 St. Louis, Mo................ " 29
Utica, N. Y ...................
Rome, N.Y. " 21 Eme,Pa ........................ " 27
Syxacnse, N. Y ............. " 22 Ashtabula, Ohio ............. " 28
Rochester, N. Y .......... " 23 Cleveland, Ohio............... " 29
BROTHER S. H. TOUTJIAN
Waco.Tex .................... Mar. 15 Utopia Tcx ........... Mar 23
Temple,Tex.............. Mar. 16, 17 El Pa¢o. Tex .......... Mar 26 27
Austin, Tex ................... Mar. 19 Phoemx, Amz........... " 29 30
BROTHER M. L. HERR Sall Marcos, Tex ............. " 20 YumaAt~z.................... Mar. 31
San Ant4~nlo,Tex ............. " 21 San l)tego, Cal ............... Apr. 2
St l)eter~i)urg, Fla. Mar. 17, Ocala,Flu ......................... Mar. 26
Arcadm. Fla ................ Mar 21 ~Vilhston,Flu .................. " 27
Punia Gorda. Fla ........... " 22 DowhngPark, Fla ......... " 29
Fort M.~ers. Flu ............... " 23 Montmello, Flu ............. " 30
Lakeland, Flu ............. " 24 Marianna, Fla. Mar. 31, Apr. 2 BROTHER W. M. WISDOM
Ada,Okla................... Mar 17, 19 Wynnewood, 0kla ..... Mar. 23, 26
Konawa,Okla ................. Mar. 18 Ehnore. 0kla ................ .Mar. 24
Purcell Okla ................ " 20 Chickasim, Okla ......... Mar 27, 28
Norman:Okla ................ " 21 Mmco.Okla .............. Mar. 29
BROTHER W. H. PICKERING Paoh, Okla..................... " 22 Comanche, Okla. ~4"a~ 3~, Apr.2
Long Beaclb Cal ............. Mar. 16 Los Angeles, Cal ............. Mar. 23
Santa Ana, Cal ............... " 17 Ontario. Cal ..................... " 24
San Diego,Cal ................. " 19 Riverside, Cal ............. Mar. 26, 28
Oceanslde,Cal ................ " 20 San Bernardlno, Cal. " 26, 27 BROTHER L. F. ZINK
Ramona, Cal ............... " 22 Goldfield, Nev................. Mar. 30
Ashland, Ore ............. Mar. 16, 17 Stockton, Cal ................. Mar. 26
Chlco, Cal .................. " 19, 21 Modesto,Cal .................... " 27
Paradise, Cal ................... Mar. 22 Fresno, Cal ................... " 28
Sacramento, Cal ............ " 23 Portervflle, Cal ....... " 29
Lodl,Cal ........................ " 2~ Bakersfield, Cal ........ - $0
BROTHER G. IL POLLOCK
~pon the earlh tile ~ave~ Ithe leq,le~s, dlseOlllented) rr.i.lng men’s he,lrt% falling them for fear and for looking to tho
dlq PsR of na?,lOnS with perplexity; the sea ap~~,1]
thing¢ faming (Ipllll Ihe (.llth (soct¢l~Y)~ the powe (if 1the heaven¢(erelesldStltl ~llliil b, shaken Whenye see the~e thlilg~ hcl..,n [11 Pialle to pl~$,
lben knou thai the Kingdom of Ood Is at hand Look up, lift up your heads, rejoice, for your redemption dr~wetb nigh--Mail, 24:33; ~tiaik 13 29. Luke 21 25-31
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS SACRED MISSION
TttISpresented
Journal Is one of the prime factors
in all partq of the ClVlhzed
or mstrumeuts in the .,ystem of Bible instruction,
worhl by the V/ATCHTOX/LP~ BIBLE & TRACTSOCIETY, chalt~eletl
or "Sere|navy F, xfe~,~on", now belng
A.D. ]S,bd, "For tile Pro-
motion of C’hrlMlan Knox~ledge". It not only serxes as u clash room ~here Bible ~tll(lel/ts may meet tn the ~ttnly of the ,h~me Word bat
also h~ a chanilel of COllllllnnlcatloa throu’_’h v~hlch they Inav l~e roached with anllotlnt,ement~ of the boclety’s conventions and of the
coming of its tlaxellng rcplebentatlves, stslcd "PllgllUlS", and refreshe[ with lepo: ts o[ its com entlons.
Our "Beloan Les~onb" ale tOl)lCal rel’ear~aN or re/ie~s of our Society’s publtblletl ~TLD1LSnlo-t entertainingly arranged, and very
helpful to all x~ll-J l~ouhl lneJ It the only laono~aly degree which the Secret5 "tcooltl~, xlz., I el b* Del Mlal~’ter IV. It. hi.), ~lllcll translated
into 1,n~llMl is M~l~l~ter of God’s "Wo~d Our tleatment of ilm Internatn,nal Sunday School Le~sons is specially for the older B~b!o
studeutb and teachelo. ]ly borne this featulo t.- consldeled lndlSl)en~al)le.
Tlll jomnal stands firmly for the defense of 1lie onl~ true fo:nldatlon of the Chrl.tlan’s llope now being ao genetally repudiated
~redenll~tlon lhrough the precious hlood ot "the nn/n Chl ,-t Je~llq, u he gale himself a 1(ul.o,l~ [a corresponding price, a substitute] for
all". (1 Peter 1 -19, 1 ’[’m,othy 2 (;/ 12,ml,Jnix up Oil tln~ aule foundation tile gold, silver ,rod plecmus staneq (t Corlnthmus 3:
15 ; 2 l’eter 1 : 5-11) of the W,)rd of God, Its frill;let lnl~alon ~, t o " make a ll s ee X ~llat t s t he f elloxxxhlp o f t he n Dstely v ~hlcll., has
been ll~d nl God .... to the 1,1to-it that EOWmr.’h[ be made Iroxxn by 1he ehulch the manifold Y, ISdOla of God"--"uhmh in other ages
was not made ltnox~n unto tile ~ons of men as It is now reve,fled".--Epheslaus 3.5-9, 10.
It btamls flee froln all paltms, ~c~ts and ereeds of men, ~lnle it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
snhjechon to the will of tJ011 In (’hll~t, ,q~ exI)lea-ed Ill lhe holy Semi,turns. it is ~bllS free io declare boldly ~llaL~oe~er the Lord
hail. hll()’,.Qll--lIC(~ordln~ tO |lie (ll’~lne v isdonl graoted nnto us IO nlnleIsLlnd ]11~ lll|oran(eq. Its allltlhle is not dogmatic, but coEhdent ;
for ~,~e [xno~v ~helc(lf ~e ,l" l ,)I, ~lO,llllllg XXllll }nli~heit f,ll~h linen The qure promtqebo[ (,od ]t is held as a tlnst, to be used only in his
~er~.l(e. ]lence ollr lloCl-lOIl~ lell~t,~e ]O xxlllt ~iltl ~, 0lid xx’hat ln~ not hp[lear ]n its COlnlllllS nltlSg be accor(hng to our Judgment of his
good ldc,t-u,e, the Icaclnn~ Of its Wold, for 1’le llpbUild,llg of hlb peoIde in grace .qnd l, nox~lellge. And ~e not only ln~lte but urge ou~:
readelS to l)lOVe all Its utterances by 1he lnlalhble ~.Vold 1o v, hlch refereme 1~ constantly inade to faciht&te such testing.
reprove thee, and thou be found a liar." (Proverbs 30: "’Gentle and easff to be entree’°& " Divine wisdom
5, 6) The lmnty here referred to memos puluty of develops gentleness m one whofollows it. To be gentle
thought, purity of word and of comlnct. It means that means to lie nnld, affable and kiml, even under a trial
one is without fraud or deeelt, is sincere, open snd above of long-suffering; not austere, sour or harsh, but placid,
board, loving the light and the truth and following It. mild and meek. Mdd m~phes that one has a temper
It means the heart and mind ~hich accepts the Lord’s not easily pro\eked; u hale meeknessshowsa spirit that
Wordas final. It means one x~ho does not deceive him- has been schooled into mildness by suffering. Moses
suffeled much and became the meeke,-.t of the meek.
self into behe~ing that Ins m~nconclusion is superLor
Davnt en&u’ed great hard:Ivps and suffering and be-
to Cod’s expressed will.
came gentle. (lm~t!cn,ss ~s Godhke After David had
"Blessed are the pure in heart; for thor shall see Iouaht ~xffh the Phdl.,_tmeq time and again in the hills
God." (Matthew 5: 8) The ones flint enter into the o17,hi(hen an,~hadDc(:ndc,lh, ercd h’onl themandothers
king(lore must haxe "’c~cnn hand8 and a pure hearL". of his ellenlles, Ill, composed
~llld sang a SODa 1)~ pra,~e,
(Psalm 24: 4) The Christina is admonished to ttnnk extolling the name of Jchmah, in ~h~ch tie said: "Thou
upon pure things. (Plnhppmns 4:8) If xou see others ha.-_t also glwmnit the shmld of thy sahatiou: and thy
doing ~rong by slander, flh~fll, backb~(nlg or other right hand hath hohlen me up, and thy gentleness hath
wrongful course, ’lie not lmltal, el’s ot7 then’ sins; keep niade me great". (J’.-.nhn 18.35) The apoatle Paid
thyself pure’. (I Timothy 5:22) if ew,ry one were in h~,,_ ,~econd epistle to Tm~othv,instructing hun in the
pure of heart and pure of Slwceh, there could be ~o quahtlcs that mu~tbe posse.-_sed by one pleasing to the
strife. Nothing hut peace would 17ollow, l)eeau,_e "the Lord, ~ rote "The :er\ mlt Of tile Lord lnu,~t not strive
~ol’ds of the 1,are are plea,ant words". (Pro~mDs15: but be gentle unto all, apt to teach, patmnt".--2 Tnn-
26) Therefore ~e can see the force of St. James ~tate- othy 2 : 21
meat that d~mewisdom is first 7).re. Then d nee(,’s- "Easy to be entreated" mean.~ tha~ one whohas suffer-
sarflv follm~ s that peace will pre~ aft amongstthe people ed an injury fl’oin another is u llllng to hear tile prayer
of God. Let each one, then, look well to hunse@purify or petition o17 ttle offender and h"ar tt \v~th a sympathetm
hss ownheart and mindatilt[ conduce;rtefl Jilt h’omf,ttllt- oar; and not only hear ~t, but be glad to forgt\c and
tindlng, nlcddhng, backbiting or maur,,g a,,,the, ~,, any fm,gc.t and to ~cnder all a~d poss~l)le to help the one ~ho
x~a3", put aua,v all aelfi.,_hne~.~, pride, and aml)ltmn,and ha~ been ulifortlmah’. Wepray God to forgive us our
follm~ the dlx,ne aria,oration to "loxe one at~other ~lth fro,passes as uc forgive those that tre@a,,s a.~ainst us.
a pure healt" (1 Peter 1"22), and peace ulll follow. ~d’e e.\pcet hun to do ~o if we a.~k in faith.The out \~ho
dmolol>mgaccording to the d,vme w~sdomdcsu’es to be
PEACEABLE, GEN3LE AND FORGIVING Codhke; thmefore x~ slling to lorgive those ~ho tre.qmss
"’Then l)eaceable." ])J~me ul~dom is "then peace- against hnn. Such ones realize that all art imperfect
able". Ttw,’e 1~ no {u,hficaimn or excuse for stllfe mid all comeshort; that all mn.,t ask forgiveness of tht
amongst the Lord’s people, exen though it becomes Ltid and must lie willing and anxious to de\elop and
n~’cc~-ary to (]lsown some because of m~purity. Such ma~,lest ltl,s Godhkeattribute.
positive action should be taken m a firm, yet kind and
loxlng way. bitter worda 1)crag enfu’oh, absent. Divine MERCIFUL, LOVING AND JUST
w>domlnst-rncts: "Follow ln~aee with a]t, and hohness, "i,’ull, of ~¢rcy a~d good fruits.’" To be merciful
x~s{hout ~hich no manshall see the Lord".--l-[elort~vs moans to lie compassionate; to look with pity upon tlm
12: 14. nnFol tutmte. It moansforbearance to inflict pmnshment
If the course of a C, hrv-tmn is in harmonyw~th the %~}lore punls]lnlCllt m~ght be justly due. "For thou,
divine Wordas {aught by JOSIiS, both by precept and Lord uric good, and ready to fmglve; and plenteous in
e\ample, then such a one will &~ell m peace. Jesus is nlercy u~to all them that eall upon thee." (Psahn
called {lie Lord of Peace. "Nowthe Lord of peace him- 86 : 5) "W~th the merefful thou wilt show thyself mer-
serf give you peace ahvavs by all means." I-Ic whois m ciful." (P.~alm 18: 25) "Blessed are the lnerefful, for
Christ following the course of &vine wisdom, has the they shall obtain mercy." (Matthew 5: 7) Again divine
promisethatc "the peace of God~i, hich passeth all under- w~sdomsays: "Be ye therefore merciful, as your Father
standing shall keep your hearts and minds through also is merciful .... Condemnnot, and ye shall not be
Jesus Christ". (Phlhppians 4~: 7) One who is impure condemned; forgive, and ye shall be forgiven." {Luke6:
o~ heart or conduct wilI find trouble in his eonseience 36, as) Mercy makes a distinction between wrong and
and mhis heart and will not possess that peace; hence wrowdoers. No Christmn can have sympathy with
the necessity of first purity in self, andthen will follow wrong; but he can exercise properly a compassionate
this peace that passeth all humanunderstanding. There- feehng tm~ard one who has done wrong when such a
fore let every one purify himself according to the divine one tries to recover himself or manifests sorrow for
standardandperfect peace will prevail in the ecclesias. such a wrong.
Meditation upon divine wisdomwill establish peace m "0cod fruits" means that which results from doing
the heart andmind.--Isaiah 26 : 3. good. One who is following divine wisdomis endear-
88 me WATCH TOWER 7.
m’mgto do good unto all. and thus there resldts to of God and desires to dwell in peace. But self-purity,
hnn lhe good f]’mt,~ of the spnlt however, is first: then comes the peace. He desires
"lV~thout i,art,ahty.’" Parhallfy means to show fav- peace and harmony and umty ~:th the brethren and
orLt~m to one person or one s~de and therefore not to strixe~ to develop the Oodhke quahties of gentlene~%
dent ju-.tly and honestly with all. But the one who is eompa~,mn, and love. He, then, who keeps before Ins
iollo~mg (hvme wisdom str,ves to hold the balanee of mnnl the perfeet pattern Christ Jesus and who feeds
3u.tlce ~:th an e~en hand and to deal hone,-%ly and upon the Word of God and the words of the 1Kaster
~,nrly ~l~h all. The apostle Panl again says m writing learns to appreciate that God has made Christ unto
to "l’mlothx : "I charge thee beIore God. and the Lord himv, :sdom.
,Iesu, Chrl-t, and the elect m:gel~, that thou observe P~enmml~ern:g.then, that we have but a short time to
thc,._~, things ~thont ln el’errwg one before another, do- develop the heavenly wisdom, let each one make the
mg i.:thlng 1G partiality" (1 Tmmthv5:21) Divine prayer of Moses h~s prayer, that we may so number
x~l,dmn, then. &reel- that the. Chnstmndeal ju~tl v with our days that we may apply our hearts unto wlsdmn,
all ],al~euJarl 3 ulth lns brethren. that true w:sdom ~.neh cometh from aboxe, and x~hieh
develops m one uho learns ~t the Chnsthke eharaeter.
HONESF--NOT HYPOCRITICAL The Christian, then. should carefully and soberly nmn-
bet h~s days. :He should count them a~ so many priv-
"11 db,,)ut hylmCr~,!/ A hypocrite. 18 one whoplays ileges and opportumtms to grow m the ld:eness oi the
a pall out\:aldl v hut ~ho m~a~dlv takes a different Lord and to show forth h~s praises who has called him
athtude, one ~ho In’< t,,nds to wrtue and pmty but who out o~ darkne,*s rote Ins nmrvelous hght; and m doing
ha~ an evil heart. H~poer,sv :s an attr:bute of Satan. so he should be anxmus and wflhng to render aid and
It is deceptmn; and one o[ the devil’s names, serpent, comfort and assManee to others of h:s brethren who
means deceiver. To be :~]thout hypocrisy, then, means are hkewlse striving in the same narrow way to grow
to be open "rod above boald, ta~r and honest: not fmgn- rote the same Christ hkeness, To ~alk in the paths of
ing to do one thing and then doing another. The scribes w~sdommeans to havel the way unto life eternal.
and l’harl~ees ~c’re hvpoe~Ites They pretended to rep- Appreciating, then, the dtstmchon between the false
resent the Lold, x~ hen mfact the v ~ere the children of aml the true w~sdomand the praetmal appheation of
thede~fl. (Luke 11.4q;.lolm 8.11) Themspn’ed ~lt- d~ me w~sdom,we ean have a better under~tanding and
hess of the Lord speal<mg dtvlne w:sdomto the Chris- appreemhon of the words of the wise man who sad:
hart says: "Lax mga,tde all maline, and all gmle, and "lqapp v >_ the man that findeth wisdom, and the man
hypoe]isles, and enx:es, and all e:I1 ,plankings . de- flint getteth understanding. For the merehan&se of
sire the sincere mill: of the word, i.h,:t ye may grow ~t ~ better than the merehand:se of silver, and the gain
thereby".--1 Peter 2’ 1. 2 tlwr~,of than fine gold. She is moreprecious than rutnes :
’J~hus we see that he who beeonles w~se according and all the things thou eanst deare are not to be com-
to the dwme~-tandard is first pure bv being wa~,hed pared unto her. Len~h of days is in her right hand;
an the blood of Chn.~t aml through the transforming and :n her left hand riches and honor. Her ways are
intluenee of the Word, s,mdtfie,t through the truth, ways of pleasantness, and all her paths are peace. She is
pur~i3nlg lmnself both out~a~dly and m~ardlv. Such a tree oi hfe to them that lay hold upon her; and happy
a one, then, is at peace v~th God and has the peaee is e~e~3 one that retameth her."--Proverbs 3: 13-18.
WISDOM
"llaplW the man who xx~-dmn c::n obtain, "In her r,ght hand shines like a diadem,
And getteth undet~tandm~ "lh* a pm/e While ~e,tlth and honor in her left nppenr.
l’d~ better than the ~lxe~’~ mel’ch,md~_e. Her x~flys are tl’tlly ways of plea%mll,e>~.
In ~nlue greatm than the lalent ~em And nil her paths are paths of peace,
Of sparkhng ore; th,m the rich ~uby’s gem To htm that dares, lmmoved hy tim’rous fear,
Mm’e p, eeious: man’s ,de,d ~m’ld (h~plays tIold her with firln and steadfast grasp, she’ll pro~e
Naught that can equal her; since length of day8 /k tree of life! Thrice happy he N who can retain her lovel
FULLNESS OF JOY
"Estee, m~t all joy, my brethren, u, hon you fall ,~tto various trials; knowingthat the proof of your faith produces
patience. But let patience have a perfect work, so that you may be perfect and complete,
deficient ~n ~othing."--James1 : 2-4, Diaglott.
1~"IO ItIE natural man the path of th. Christian is winch to hve, with nothing to pay on the pl’meq)al or
|exceedingly dreary and dolcfuh There seems to to lay by for a "rainy da3". 1-1c might sei1 Ins .$$500
""be nothing to attract, nothing to enjoy, nothing eqmty for a few dollar% but that uouhl not sustain
to give pleasure. The plom>e.~ ot renard to be gwen hma long nor buy a better ~a~m. ]f he can reta~ the
at the end of the nay arc \ague and Vl.,_lonary. The propertyhe will he able to sustain llte a few 3 ear.-, longer.
pohey of the ~mldappea~s at the head of a daily paper: It ].~ hard to tell ~hether the farm ]s an asset or a
"I don’t ~ant sonmthnlg ~ay off m the future; I want hal)]hty.
name lqght here and no~". In ins extrenntx he seeks the assistance of a fl~en(t.
To ~he iully consecrated Clar>tlan the very reverse The friend look., tlne farm met and tells hm~that the
is true. Evmythlngabout him ]s transient and flht.-.ory. most unhkely part of the land as ~eall3 the most \aht-
The ghtternlg tinsel ~a not gohl. The gaudy display ahle. lie adwses lnm to sink a shaft thrm@l the rocks
does not satisfy the heart: the strain of life does not and he u]ll stake a ~aluable mine. tic offers_ to lend
bring rest, nor the po:sessmn of gold g]~ e happiness and an ontfit for .~]nkmg the. shaft. The m~ne]behe~e, his
peace. To him the only things worth ~lnle are those fnend, and takes ad\antage of the generous ofre~ He
promised by God, to be reahzed and enjoyed an the mu~.t ~ol’k alone, tel he has no money~th uh,ch to
future. hue help, and no credit. In due tram he reaches the
The natural man haa httle or no froth m God and valnable mineral. What a change I In one day horn.
usually no hehef m Ins pronnses. He passes them by povmtyto aches! Is there any que.-,tlon as to whether
indifferently as a sheep ~ould peas a gold coin. Why the farm ]s an assel o~ a l,ahfllt)? There ]s nothing
bother himself with such things? But the Chr>tlan more on ]t than before. Knowledge and ~o]k haxe
has all faith m the prom]ses of God. To tlnn they are brought tlne hMden~ealtln to light
more valuable than the gold bonds of any earthly gov-
ermnent. They are the most valuable of all his posses- MILLIONAIRE CHRISTIANS
sions, including has present hfe. A m,mJn northern Mmne,otaouned a quarter sectmn
Joy is that whiek dehghts and gladdens. Under the of land in the scrub-pine tm~ber district, lie ~as a
misrule of Satan it is exceedingly searee and hard to poor man and needed molney. I-~e offered the fa]m for
find. The httle that is found is a low-grade ore. Few $1,600--$10 per acre. No one ~anted at. The soft was
expect to find it. Many spend thmr tmae and energy too pool tor farml]qg and the timber too poor ±o market.
seeking for anesthetms to deaden their pam~-x~ lne tO Finally someone bought ~t o~ a speeulatmn, for there
drown their sorrows, and opiates to cause forgetfulness were vague runlors that iron had been fonnd noarby.
of distress. The purchaser sold at for a few thousand dollars, reahz-
The wm’dsof our text imply that beneath the Chris- ing a good profit. The rumors Inmeased, and ~t was
tian’s earthly troubles lie lladden mines of joy wh]eh, turned over several tmaes at ever-increasing pmees The
when found, yield immense treasures of wealth. The last owner reemved .$50,000 a month loyalty for the
worldly prospeelol would not think of locating a mine mines discovered beneath the surface.
beneath such rnhlll-h ]-[ere and there people of the world makegreai for-
~tost Ch]>tm~>ale imllned to pay little heed to f.he tunes. Wh 3 does not the Lord g~ve some brother a hint
Apostle’.-_~/u:g(..-t]on thlt ~t l~choovesu.-_ as eon,eeratod about such a farm’~ 1Vh} does not the Lold .gne all
Ctnlstmn~ to g]xe do~_v h,’ed to e~ery umd from the Ins people the reformation when there a;e such o\tra-
Lor,I and hl.~ ,~po-th,~ Let us follo~ tlw :\1,,’41(’- lead: ordn,ary opportumtle~ for aeqmrmg wealth? Uow
"M\bll|llren". ’l’hl~ is a ]oxmg~Mlttatloll i,o fellow r~ueh might be used for the spread of the truth l
tra~elel~ en route to the kingdom. Is not the Lord Interested m the welfare of h~s people?
Surely. He knowsuhel’e the richest ore bod,es are. but
CIIRISTIAN MATHEMATICS he prefers not to have h~s loved ones wink ~mhearthly
"l’;,teem": lh-ckoI~, account, take into account as an nunes, but rather nnnes o~ the true inches of heavenly
asset, eonmder vahmhle. Smnetlnaes it maybe d¢lieult treasure. To this end he &reels thmr attention to mines
to determine ~hether a poq,es,mn ]s an aqset or a halnl- all about them and gi~es speeml direetmns ho~ they
]iv. Suppose a man has a farm with a po~lhle value may be worked to the best advantage.
of $2.000. There ~s a mortgage of $1.500 again% it, At best we have but httle of this life. Wemay be
hable to be foreelo*ed on short nohee. The qml is poor, able to eke out a hying for a few years. Death holds a
and there is a part so rocky and hilly that ]t cannot be mortgage atramst n~ x~hmh may be foreclosed at any
worked. The favnl x~ fll produce only enough to pay the tram. There is little 1,rospeet of laying up an2thn~g for
interest on the mortgage and leave a bare p~ttnnee on tlm future of this hie.
89
9O ’the WATCH TOWER BROOKLYN, N. Y.
Is thepresent lift--our farm--an asset or a liabihty ? ization of some good. The highest joy arises from an
Troubles, trials, and be~etments hinder us. In our per- understanding of God and his plan for bestowing good
plexity v e turn to Christ. things upon those that love him. No lasting joy is
ever attained otherwise, either in this life or in that
SINK A SHAFT OF FAITtl winch is to come. God has so decreed.
The Lord informs us that our trial~, difficulhes, and The Christmn’s joy may abound amid the greatest
di~tle~.~es arc a valuahle part of our pod_sessions. He trials, adxer,~tms, and eommohonsof life. With the
adxl~e~ us to sink a shaft of faath into the stony, hdly poet. the child of Godcan joyfully sing:
part of our hxes. Weshall ~tnke a mine ot rmh returns "Content ~ilh beh(~lding his face,
hi3 rill to his pleasure resigned,
of ao3--the ~ery thing all long for but whmhthe ~valth No chan~e- of gea~.~l~ or Dlace
of tins ~orhl--ff ~e had It all--cannot buy. The nn- Can m,tke any eh,m~e in my mind:
desu’able suddenly becomesthe most x ahmble part of our Wlule I)]esl: u~th a ,eu~e t,f Ins line,
lives. Our Lord de.-.tres us to haxe the be~t he has to A lmlace a t.~ ~.uld appear;
gwe. "Thc-_e thmg.~ ]:axe I Sl,ol,en unto you, that my And ])lq~Ons \Xollhl palaces plove,
If Je-_us atlll dx~elt x~ ith methere."
jo 5 might renmln m you, and that your joy nught be
fult."--&,hn15: 11. The apo.-tle Paul had this joy: "Great ~s myboldness
The kmg~h~m eouhl not be a state of hap[ lnc,~v x~el’e of speech toured )on, great ~s my glm)mg of you;
no joy to be had. Joydoe> not he in vealth, henIth, mnfilled ~th comfort, I am e~cee&n,9yo,yfu~, in all my
beauty, honor; po~er, olIic,al ])o.-~t:on, or attthmlty. t~flqdat~on. For. xxhen we were come rote Maeedoma,
These properly utilized are acce%,,lws to joy, but not ou~ flesh had no rest. but we ~ere troubled on exery
jo) Itse]f. Mm~y ~ho ha~e gloat posses~ runs are unhappy. sale. x~lthout were fightmga, xxitlnin were fonra.’" (?
Somecontour smelde i~, ruder to end then’ trouhles. Cormthmns7:4, 5) Not y)yiul bccau,’e of lhe trouble%
l~mlIer ha~, a king(lore, hut has no joy. but ]o3ful mfl~em, because he reeogmzedGod’s overrul-
Joy Js a tee’rag ar>.ing from the expeetatlon or real- ing care and pox~er and purpose m thcnl all.
BROTHER V. C. RICE
BROTHER T. E. BARKER
Abflene, Tex .................. Apr. 2 Stephen~ille, Tex ........... Apr. 10
YhazH, lad ............ Apr 2,3 Andor~on ]lid ....... Apr. 11 ]Merkel, Tex.................. Apr. 3, 4 Dublln, Tex " 11
l,’ock~]lle Ind ........ kpr 4 l’:m~hlMou11, lad ........ " 12 Range1, Tex ........... Apt 5 ~zo~nxxood, Te< ..... Apr 12, 17
(’la~fold,,~[lle, Ind " 5 ~’,exx I_a,.th,. Iml " 13 ~Xentherford, Tex ........ Apr, 6,7 Ihookesnnth, Tex ........... Apr. 13
New RJehnlond, Ind . Aiu 6,7 Sull)hui ,%ptlngs, Ind " 14 For t Worth, Tex .............. Apr. 9 3Ille~, Tex...................... " 14
]ndianat*ohs, Ind ....... " 9, 10 Muntle, lad ............ Apr. 16, 17
BROTHER C. ROBERTS
BROTHER J. A. BOHNET ’Wll~(1,,nr, Oat ................ Apr 2 St Thmn,ql Ont ........... Apr. 7
]~Allh~ en, lint ............... " .2 l.ondon Ont " 9
Parkon%]~,qll ............. Loar,in~ton, Oat ........ " 4 ]Xt Ilpctowll, Ont............ " I0
Apr 2. 3 Wmhehl,Kan ................ Apt 10 Ingersoll, Ont .............. " 1!
:Ncrv]eqlu}, Kan ....... Apr. 4 Dnugl:,-~, Kan............... " 12 R.lgeto~n, Oat ................ " 6 ~,~ oo*l~tocl,, Oat:......... Apr, 12, 13
)ndel,endence Kan ..... AW 5.6 AII~II~tH, l(dn .......... " 13
Coffe~zlle l(an ...... Ain 7 l:hhH ddo Kall ............ " :14
Arkansas City, Kan ..... Apr. 9,11 Wlcluta, Kan ........... Apr. 16, 18
BROTHER R. L. ROBIE
.Finlon Rouge, La ........ Apr 2, 3 J’ud~onia, Ark .............. Apr. ‘)
1l
J0111llJl~, aa ......... Apt 4 Poplar ~,]uff, ]M0............ " :1
BROTHER B. H. BOYD L:d,e Cha~le~, La ....... " 5 I’] St I~0u]s Ill ............. " :1q-
l(ellv I.n ................... " 7 (; ilh~Dle, Ill " 26
Yuma.Ariz ..................... Apr 3 San Jac]nto, Cal .......... Apr 12 Little Rock, Ark ............... " 9 Springfield, Ill--’.-::’::.-:Apr. 17, :18
~eanmont, Cal ............ " 4 Ontario, Cnl ..... Apt 13,14
]tl~eI~l,le Cal .......... Apr. 5,6 Los Angele~ Cal ...... " 36,17
San Bmnard]no, Cal . . " 7,9 Pa’,adena, Cal .... 18,19
Redlaml>, Cal ............... "10,11 Alhambra, Cal .... 20, 21
BROTIIER O. L. SULLIVAN
BROTHER G. R. POLLOCK
AnnoMundi6050--April
I, ]922
CONTENTS
99
I%11-VOW UNTO TIIE LORD ..............................
Additional Promxses Acceptable to God ....... 100
101
I~ow the Vow Protects the Mind ....................
102
SAN I~’RANCISCO CONVENTION ...............................
QUESTIONS AND ANSWERS ...................................... 103
HarpJu~enlle Class.......................................... 103
Sisters Actingas ~Iders................................ 104
105
V. D. M. Questlons........................................
THE PROPItET ISAIAH’S VISION AND I~ESPONSE 105
Identity of the Seraphim ................................ 105
Jesus Supphes the Key .................................. 106
~ESSIAH’SI(INGDO.’d]~’ORESI~ADOWED ................ 107
Justice for thePeople...................................... 109
110
iNTERESTING LETTERS
..........................................
VV’ORLD-%VI DE%VITNESS.......................................... Iii
° °
,W’[B 5]’S ---~t
fflmn the earth distress of nations with perplexity; the sea and the waves (the restless, discontented) roaring; men’s hearts failing them for fear and for locking to ths
things coming upon the earth {Society}; for the powers of the heavens (ecoleslao~tlclsm) shall be shaken, . . . When ye sea ~es~ things begin to c(~me to pas~
then know that the Kingdom of God l~ at hand. ][,oo~ ~. llf~ ~ ~ h~d~, r~Joi~, tar ~o~ redemptLo9 dr~.weth ntglL~l~ttt. ~4: ~3; Mark 13 29. Luke ~1 25-8L
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS SACRED MISSION
THISpresented
~ournal is one of the prime factors or instrumentsin the system of Bible instruction,or "~emlnary Extension",now beln~
in all parts of the civilized world by the WATCHTOWERBIBLE & TRACTSOCIETY, chartered A.D. ]884, "For the Pro-
motion of ChrisUan Knowledge". It not only serves as a class room ~here Bible students may meet m the study of tim divine Word but
also as a channel of communication through which they may be reached with announcement~ of the Society’s conventions and of the
connng of its tlavehng representatives, styled "Pilgrims", and refreshed with reports of its conventmns.
Our "Berean Lessons" are topical rehearsals or reviews of our Soc~’ety s published ~TUDIES mo~t entertainingly arranged, and very
helpful to all who would merit the only honorary deglee which the SocmL~ accords, viz., Ve~bi Dci Minister IV. D. 5f.), which translated
into I’~nghqt is M,n~stcr of God’s Word. Our treatment of the International Sunday School Lessons is specially for the older Bible
students and teachers. By some this feature is considered indispensable.
This journal stands firmly for the defense of the only true foundation of the Christian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
--redemption through the precious blood of "the man Christ Jesus, who gave himself a ransom [a correspondmg price, a substitute] for
all". (1 Peter 1 : 10 ; I Timothy 2 : 6) Building up on this sure foundation the gold, silver and precmus stones (1 Corinthians 3:
15; 2 Peter 1 : 5-11} of the Word of God, its further mission is to "make all see what is the fellowship of the mystery which...has
been hid m God, . ° ° to the ~ntent that now aught be umde known by the church the mamfold wisdom of God"--"whlch in other ages
was not made known unto the sons of meu as it is now re~ealed".--Epheslans 3:5-9, 10.
It stands free from all parties, sects and creeds of men, while it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
subjection to the ~ll of God in Chrmt, as expressed in the holy Scriptures. It is thus free to declare boldly ~hatsoever the Lord
hath spoken--according to the divine wisdom granted unto us 1o understand his utterances. ]ts attitude is not dogmatic, but confident ;
for we know ~hcreof we affirm, treading with imphcit faith upon lhe sure pronnqes of God. It is held as a trust, tO be used only in his
service ; hence our decisions relative to what may and what may not appear ~n its cohnuns nmst be according ~o our judgment of hi~
good pleasure, the teaching of lus Word, for the upbuilddng of h~s people in grace and knnwledce. And we not only invite but urge oug
readers to prove all its utterances by the infallible Word to which reference Is constantly made 1o faohtate such tesung.
TO US THE SCRIPTURES CLEARLY TEACH
¯hat the church is "the temple of the living God", peculiarly "his workmanship" ; that its construction has been in progress throughoua
the gospel age---ever since Christ became the world’s Redeemer and the Chief Corner Stone of his temple, through which, when
finished, God’s blessing shall come "to all people", and they find access to hma.--1 CorLuthlans 3 : 16, 17 ; Ephesians 2:20-22 1
Genesis 28 : 14 ; Galatians 3 : 29.
That meantime the chiseling, shaping, and polishing of consecrated believers in Christ’s atonement for sin, progresses ; and when the
last of these "living stones", "elect and precious," shall have been made ready, the gre.lt 51 l~¢er Workmanwill bring all togethel*
in the first resurrection ; and the temple shall be filled with his glory, and be the meelmg place between God and men throughout
the Mlllennium.--Revelation 15 : 5-8.
’That the basis of hope, for the church and the world, lies in the fact that "Jesus Christ, by the grace of God, tasted death for every
man," "a ransmu for all," and will be "the true light which lighteth every maa that eometh ~nto the world"~ "in due ~lme".~
Hebrews 2 : 9 ; John 1 : 9 ; 1 Timothy 2 : 5, 6.
~rhat the hope of the church is that she may be like her Lord, "see him as he is," be "partakers of the divine nature’,’ and share hiS
gloly as his joint-heir--1 John 3 2; John 17.24; Romans 8:17; 2 Peter 1:4.
~’hat the present misqion of the church is the perfecting of the saints for the future work of service; to develop in herself every
grace; to be God’s wltne~q to the world ; and to prepare to be kings and l)tlests in the next age.--Ephesians 4 : 12 ; Matthew 24
14; Re, elation 1: 6, 20:6.
That the hope for the ~othl hes in the blessings of knowledge and opportunity to be brought to all by Christ’s Millennial kingdom, the
rest~tution
ewhen all the of all that ~as lost ~n Adam, to all the w~lling and obedient, at the hands of their Redeemer and his glorified ehurcIl
wllfully wicked will be de~troyed.--Acts 3 : 19-23 ; Isaiah 35.
ByMeansoP "The Plan of the Ages" The mail of the President should be addressed to 124
Chapter VI: Our Lord’s Return Columbia Heights, Brooklyn, N. Y.
Chapter VII: The Permission of Evil All mail intended for the Watch Tower Bible & Tract
Week of June 4 ....... Q. 64-68 Weekof June 18 .......... q. 8-14 Society, the International Bible Students Association, and
Weekof 3une 11 ........... Q. 1-7 Week of June 25 ........ Q. 15-21
TH~ Gor.~zN AG%should be addressed to 18 Concord Street,
Question bookson "The DivinePlan", 1~¢ postpaid.
Brooklyn, N. Y.
Vet.. XLIII A~rr.1, 1922 No. ?
the Lamb, and that the weapon of warfare of the fol- As trouble and perplexity increase, the desire of the
lowers of tile Lamb, Christ Jesus, is the message of people to know why increases, and greater is the op-
truth, the use of this weaponin the spirit of the Lord portunity of giving them the comforting message of
is not only a protection but a great means of strength the Messianic kingdom, which really offers the only
to the Lord’s bttle ones. The deal’ brethren are putting solution for the ills of humanMnd.
forth more zeal and energy m the work. The conventions are a great encouragement to the
Tile outlook for 19~ for a wide w~tness to the truth dear brethren, building each other up on the most holy
is very good, and we pray that the Lord may send many faith and advancing them toward the goal. 1~’e feel that
more into tile field to labor to his glory and for their the San Francisco Convention was a great help to all
owngood. The interest of the public is on the increase. whoattended.
M ANY centuries
righteous
ago God fore[old the reign of his
Son. Among others he caused the pro-
phet Isaiah to write concerning that blessed time.
conclusively
In Isaiah’s
that the prophecy itself is of divine origin.
day the Lord’s house was situated on Mount
Moriah, one of the three hills upon which the city of Jeru-
In Genems we read of the great sabbath or day of rest salem was erected. That house was built by Solomon.
of Jehovah. (Genesis 2:2) This day is a period of 7,000 Mount Momah was not the tallest mountain of Jerusalem,
years. The prophet Isaiah writes concerning the last days nor of that vicinity. Mount Zion, situated across the ravine
of this period of time. It is the same thousand-year day south and west of Mount Moriah, is a loftier elevation. It
to which St. Paul referred when lie said that God will was the site of the tabernacle, pitched there by David. The
Judge the world in righteousness by that man, Christ the word mountain as used in this text does not mean a literal
Lord, whom he hath ordained. (Acts 17: 31) While Isaiah elevation of land; nor is it to be expected that there is to
the prophet wrote concerning that time, he did not know be an upheaval in Palestine resulting in the creation of
the details regarding the establishment of the Lord’s king- h~gh mountain peaks. The language of this text Is highly
dom because it was not due time. His words are called figurative. Mountain here, as in many other texts of tim
prophecy because they foreshadow what will happen in a Scriptures, symbolizes kingdom. Hill is used al a symbolic
future time; and when those events foreshadowed do hap- term referring to smaller klngdoms.--Isalah 2: 2; 40: 4;
pen then they will be fulfilled prophecy; therefore proving 52:7; 54:10; Psalms 46:2, 3; 97:5.
los WATCH TOWER N.
The statement of the prophet Is that the mountain of "Out of Zion shall go forth the law, and the word of
the Lord’s house shall be established in the top of the the Lord from Jerusalem." The term Zion primarily applied
mountains; i. e., the kingdom of God through the reigning to the hill on which David’s citadel or tabernacle for God’s
hous~ shall be estahhshed over the other kingdoms. Solo- ark was erected, and by extension referred to the triple-
man’s temple, was a type of the Lord’s house here mention- peaked ridge on which ’Jerusalem was built; and is here
ed. The antitype is tile Irue Chr~stlan church, of which used in a symbolic sense. (Galatians 4:26; Hebrews 12:
Jesus is tile head and chief cornerstone and the members 22) Zion here means the glorified Christ, the royal or
of his body hying stones which go to make up the reigning reigning house from which will emanate the law or rule
house. "Ye also, as living stones, are built up a spimtual of action by which the people will be governed. When all
house." (1 Peter 2:5-10) "The temple of God is holy, the saints are exalted and united w~th the Lord Jesus in
which temple ye are." (1 Corinthians 3:17; 2 Oormthmns heavenly glory, then this prophecy will have its fulfillment.
6:16) This temple o£ God is his dwelling place, wherein Of necessity it will be spiritual and therefore invisible to
lie dwells by his holy spirit. While in course of construction hunmn eye~ It will both make and enforce the law through
his spirit dwells within them. Outwardly they appear to duly (.onslLtuted agencies.
the world as lnslg’nificant, evon as the hill npon whtch Since it is inviqlble, necessarily we should expect that
Solomon’s temple was built was inconspicuous compared God would provide some visible representatives. This pro-
with other mountains in that vicinity. This temple class phecy foreshadows such representatives under the symbolic
when completed xxlll constitute God’s royal f-lmily, the term of .Ierusalem. Without doubt the city of Jerusalem
kingdom class. will be literally rebuilt. Jesus is authomty for the state-
ment that Abraham, Isaac, Jacob and the prophets will be
there and ~ ill he observed by others who come. Ag’tin God’s
SATAN’S COUNTERFEIT prophet upeaks of these as princes in all the earth. (Psahn
45:]6) It j s to be expected, therefore, that Jerusalem will
Satan has attempted to counterfeit every l.,~l,m of be the mty of government, or the place of earthly adminis-
God’s plan and has succeeded in deceiving the greater tration of the affairs of the new order of things in the
number of humankind. During Satan’s misrule of earth he earth. It will be capital of the world. These princes or
has thrown up great symbolic mountains, namely, universal rulers, the anment worthie% bein~ resurrected as perfect
empires, some of which have boasted themselves as being men, will have commumcation with the inwsible part of
the kingdom of God; while all in fact are opponents of the kingdom. As visible representatives of the rmgning
God’s t~ngdom. Satan’s kingdom, pictured by a mount’tin, house, these will send forth ~he nard or voice of the Lord,
has overshadowed God’s kingdom in the eyes of men. But directing the people ~hat they shall do and wlmt they
now a reversal of the order is at hand. There are earth- shall not do.
quakes or upheavals in various parts of the world, as Satan foresees the coming of this reign of Messiah and
foretold by the Lord; and there is yet to be a still greater he brings forth a counterfeit and now attempts to estab-
earthquake which will completely throw down the moun- lish a universal empire under an arrangement desig~mted
tains or kingdoms of Satan, and there shall arise instead a league of nations or assocmtinu of nations, held together
the kingdom of God’s dear Son. That kingdom, as fore- by compact~ and treahes and ruled over by hm representa-
shadowed by the Prophet, will be great, grand and glorious, tives, namely, big bnsmess, big p(dltlClaUS and big preach-
and shall completely obhterate all other kingdoms. ers. Thin alliance is an unholy one and will be dashed to
Other corroborative evidence of this coming kingdom God pieces shortly by the great Messmmc kingdom. Satan’s
gives through the prophet Daniel. In explaining Nebuchad- counterfeit is now beg’inning to cry: ’Peace on earth; good
nezzar’s dream regarding the great image, Daniel shows will to men,’ saying that through the League of Natmns
that the kingdom of God when first set up at the intro- and disarmament conference they are estabhshing God’s
duction of the Mdlennium will be but a small stone which will on earth. This is deceiving many and x~lll deceive all
Ires been cut out without hands, but which will become a except God’s elect. Satan’s kingdom Is belligerent, martial,
great mountain and fill the whole earth. (Daniel 2: 31-45) Oppressive and wicked. The Lord ,Iesus now present has
This kingdom when in power will grind all other kingdoms taken unto himself lus power to re,gn, and his judgments
into powder, and the wind of trouble will carry them away. are now upon the natmns of the earth and Satan’s empire
This is the same kingdom referred to as the mountain or is tottering to the fail. Satan’s representatives are now
kingdom of the Lord’s house in the first verse of today’s crying out that the World War whmh began in 1914 pre-
lesson. That kingdom will be a kingdom of righteousness, pared the way for peace and reconstruction, which the
truth, purity and holiness. With the establishment of God’s devil’s agencies are now pretending to bring to light. In
righteous order all the nations, the peoples that have been the World War more than 7,000,000 men were killed, and
blinded by the glamour of Satan’s kingdom, shall flow like upwards of ]8,000,000 were wounded or driven insane; and
a mighty stream, steady and irresistible, unto God’s king- notwithstanding all this the unholy alliance cries out: ’It
dam. "Thy people shall be willing in the day of thy power." was for the good of mankind and to make the world safe
"Many people," 1. e., the great mass of mankind long op- for democracy; and the League of Nations resulting from
pressed by an unrighteous order, will be glad to be relieved It is the political expression of God’s kingdom on earth’.
from oppression and will favor the new order. The Prophet The war has bankrupted the nations and prepared soci-
represents them ns saying one to another : "Come ye, and ety for the great earthquake that shortly shall follow and
let us go up Zo the mountain [kingdom] of the Lord, to shall result in the complete downfall of Satan’s empire.
the house of the God of Jacob [Israel again in covenant
relationship with God] ; and he will teach us of his ways,
and we will walk in his paths". The purpose of the people’s THE RIGHTEOUS BRANCH
going up to the house of God will be to gain information Then God caused the prophet Isaiah to foretell from
concerning the Lord’s will. This pictures their consecration. whence would come the head of this new kingdom. "And
Seeing the Lord’s kingdom in operation, it will be their there shall come forth a rod out of the stem of Jesse, and
desire and will to be submissive to the Lord’s will, what- a Branch shall grow out of his roots." Jesse was the father
ever that may be for them; and all who are of this -~ub- of David. David was a type of Christ. The term David
mis~ive mind and heart will make progress means beloved. Christ Jesus.is the beloved One of Jehovah.
APRIL1, 1922 109
WATCH TOWER
Apparently little was expected of this young son of Jesse. of Jehovah, and shall make him of quick understanding."
The favor of the Lord, however, was with him. God’s pro- It will not be necessary to have long-drawn-out examina-
tection overshadowed him ; and In due time he was anointed tions of jurymen and then of the witnesses and argument
to be king over Israel EVen so when the antitypmal David, o~ counsel; but the Lord’s tribunal will readily ascertain
the Lord Jesus, came to the earth, little regard was paid the true facts; and "he shall not judge after the sight of
to him, and the wise and mighty of the earth despised him. his eyes, neither reprove "tfter the hearing of his ears; but
In due time, however, Jehovah anointed him with the holy
with mghteousness shall he judge the poor [poor in spirit,
spirit without limitation, which anointing took place "It
the time of his baptism at the Jordan. From Pentecost the meek, the lmmble-minded], and reprove with equity for
until now all the body members who go to make up the [justme] the meek of the earth: and he shall smite the
kingdom class have received the anointing by reason of earth x~ith the rod of his mouth, and with the breath of
coming into the body of Christ. As soon as the last member his lips Mmll he slay the winked".
thus anointed has completed his course and is united for- I:Ie ~ll ~emove the mask, let the truth be known, by
ever with the Lord in glory, then the hIdgment of the righteousness exposing wickedness; and thus by righteous-
world--the people individually--will begin in the newly ne~s he will destroy wickedness. With this punitive rod.
constituted court, Christ Jesus and the members of his he smites the earth; i. e., the unrighteous order of things
body.--Matthew 25 : 31-46 ; 1 Corinthians 6 : 2, prevaihng among men which operates against the people
and particularly against the meek and humble. As for the
wicked, tho~e who have cast the Lord’s Word behind them
JUSTICE FOR THE PEOPLE and shined against hght and the clear mghts of their fel-
The people have alwnj-~ suffered at the hands of Satan low creatures, these he will slay with the breath of his lips.
and his emissaries. Satan enslaved tlm human race and has To be sure lie could hterally extinguish the wicked instant-
oppressed them, preyed upon them through profiteers and ly. The language here used is symbolic. The breath of
exploiters under the name of politics, religion and com- his lips represents the words which he utters, which words
merce, and in other ways. The whole creation now groans "are ~_pimt and they are life". Again he said: "The word
and for centuries has been groaning under this great load. that I have spoken the same shall judge him in the last
They are waiting’ for deliverance, which deliverance is cer- day". Thus his utterance will act as a powerful destroying
tain to come and is near at hand. (Romans 8:19, 22) agency by convicting the wicked, guiding them to repent-
all times during the world’s history there have been some ance and conversion, and entering upon and passing aloha
honest-hearted men and women who have earnestly striven the highway of holiness until they are cleansed.
for the deliverance of mankind; but these cannot succeed "And righteousness shall be the girdle of his loins." The
because human efforts are inadequate to cope with the evil girdle is symbolic of a servant; hence foreshadowing that
powers and influences. Mankind has organized governments he will serve the people in righteousness. His spirit oi
for the purpose of bettering itself, but Satan has over- faithfulness shall uphold him in the path of duty and or’
reached these. Man has established courts and enacted servic~ as though it were a girdle around his waist.
good laws; and if these laws were administered according In symbolic phrase the Prophet then describ6s the blessed
to the principles of righteousness the people would be re- results of his reign. The wolfish spimt will disappear from
lieved of great suffering. But on the contrary, Satan has men and they will become like lambs. The spotted leopar, I
corrupted the judicial tribunals. God likened Satan’s rule class, pretending to be righteous, yet wicked at the presenl
to a wild beast, as distinguished from the peaceable rule time, will then be changed to a gentle disposition and re-
of the great Messiah. pose with the child-like. Men’s hearts of stone will be re-
The wild beast, a symbol of a rule by violence, is com- moved and hearts of flesh substituted, resulting in their
posed of the governing factors of the people. This beastly transformation from vicious and beastly creatures to beingu
order, being the offspring of Satan, is now making war in God’s likeness and image. We may be sure from the
against the Lamb and all of his followers; but we have prophetic words that even the dumb brute creation will be
the absolute certainty of victory for the Lord, and this affected and reflect the condition prevailing among men.
will mean the release of the people. In the Lord Jesus’ Security will pervade all quarters. Harmony will rule be-
day he was tried before a corrupt court; and St. Stephen, tween man and man, man and beast, and beast and beast.
as we are told, was tried before the same corrupt court, Then It will not be necessary to lock the house to keep out
that suborned witnesses, 1. e., hired them to swear falsely. the thief, nor to lock the barn to keep in the animals. The
And even so it is today. False witnesses are brought for- ravaging and destroying of the inoffensive will no longer
ward to accomplish the purpose of the beastly order. Un- be permitted, because those amenable to righteousness will
righteous judges are swayed by an improper influence, and lose the disposition to harm or Injure others. The incorrig-
mankind suffers. When the new judiciary of the Lord is ible will be destroyed.
established, however, such will not be the case. "When The glorious climax in human history will be the product
the judgments of the Lord are in the earth the people will of the Lord’s rule and Judgeship, an overspreading of the
learn righteousness." Now "man looketh upon the outward earth with knowledge, the true knowledge of God. It is
appearance, but Jehovah looketh on the heart". Even so God’s will that all men shall be brought to an accurate
under the new and righteous order of the Messiah the knowledge of the truth after having been saved through
Lord will judge according to the secret intents of the heart the redemptive blood. (1 Timothy 2: 8-6) The tide of truth
and will administer Justice to the people. will rise gradually higher and higher until it fills the earth
"A Branch shall grow out of his roots." This branch is as the waters now fill the deep, and all shall know the Lord
the great Messiah. Tt~rough another prophet Jehovah said: from the least to the greatest; and as it rises, one wlll say
"Hear now, O Joshua the high priest [symbolically pictur- to another : "Come ye, and let us walk In the light of the
ing the Messiah], thou, and thy fellows that sit before Lord".
thee: for they ’are men [to be] wondered at: for, behold, For centuries mankind has hoped for this blessed time.
I will bring forth my servant Tim Branch". (Zecharmh Now it is at the door. The present disturbed condition is
3: 8) "And the spirit of the Lord shall rest upon him, but the fulfillment of prophecy, marking the fact with un-
the spirit of wisdom and understanding, the spirit of coun- mistakable evidence that the old system of Satan is crumb-
sel and might, the spirit of knowledge and of the reverence ling and the Messianic kingdom is taking Its ];)lace.
INTERESTING LETTERS
GOOD NEWS FROM AUSTRIA HARP CUTS GORDIAN.KNOTS OF ERROR
A letter from a brother representing the Society in DEAR BROTH~ RUTHgRFOKD:
Austria, written the latter part of January, says: Have Intended writing you for a long time, and It seems
"After a discourse January 21 in the evening, I started the time could not be found. Since being here for past two
for a Journey through the largest cities of the land to weeks I have been at desk almost continually, from early
arrange for a lecturing tour, and returned to Vienna Janu- morn until late at night. There were so many things to be
ary 28. The dear Lord assisting, I found the authorities gone over.
receiving me very kindly so that I got the largest halls The first thing done on arriving here wan to "play on
for a trifle, almost for nothing, to pay for light, heat and THz HAm" for two days. No time had been found previ-
cleaning. Having to pay so little for halls, I can spend ously for reading It, and so the treat had only been en-
more for propaganda purposes. Cost of living, however, has Joyed by anticipation. Well, It was a delightful and profit-
within three months increased about 800 percent. For In- able privilege, I assure you.
stance, a hall In October cost 32,000 crowns ; while now tt THE H~a" O~ Go]) is wonderfully clear, beantifuliy sim-
costs 90,000 crowns (90 francs or eighteen dollars). ple, and forcibly convincing. It cuts every o~e of the ~r-
"High omcials of the government and authorities in the alien-knots of error that have confused the world. It is so
various cities frequently offered me thelr own seats, ink, natural in style as to make you think a child could have
paper and pen, so that I could write down immediately written it, until you undertake to copy that style yourself,
petitions or requests necessary to procure the halls and and then you find out it is almost unapproachable. This
a permit to speak, so as not to lose time. Aullc Counsellor short, clear, convincing, fascinating book Is evidently given
Dr. N - of Innsbruck, Tyrol, from the local government, at the present time because It Is necessary on account of
asked me to come back soon so the people might hear the the shortness o/ th~ time. This makes it possible to gain
message. You see I had much Joy and blessing while bat- some accurate, clear knowledge of the whole plan in a
tllng with other difficulties. ’Millions’ discourses will be brief space of time.
held at Vienna in the afternoon of February 26, and at Arrangements are being made everywhere I have been
Wagram In the evening." to embrace it in the class work. It seems to me to be the
wise thing to do.
"DEEP THANKFULNESS TO THE LORD" In lots of love to yourself and all the dear ones at Bethqd,
I am
Dzzaz Be.zTHm~ :
Your brother and fellow-servant, O. L. SO’LZa~A~, Pilgrira~
Love and greetings In the name of our blessed Redeemer.
¯.. I cannot help expressing my deep sense of thankfulness INCREASED INTEREST
to the Lord for the grand Joys of truth, which is being
[The following letter shows the continued increased In-
supplied to us through that channel at this time when we
terest tn the use of THw. FIA,p oF Gon In class study. We
see men’s hearts failing them, but when we can rejoice, aa strongly recommend that the friends everywhere organize
we see our deliverance drawing nigh. classes as outlined in the "Bulletin" of the Service Depart-
The evidences are quite clear to us that the new work
ment, as well as classes for beginners In the study of T~m
opening up to us now in proclaiming the comforting rues-
~IAm" O~ GOD.]
sage of the day, "Millions now living will never die," is It has for a number of years been the privilege of Sister
certainly exposing Satan and his messengers In their monu- Work and myself to have a beginners’ class in our home,
mental lie. We know that it fills our hearts with Joy to using In turn as the vehicles of study the "Divine Plan
be privileged not only to invest, but to do something prac- of the Ages", the "Millions" booklet, and now for the past
tical in this interesting feature of the work, as we go along five weeks, THe. l=IAm, oF GOD. I believe, therefore, we are
giving wide evidence to the hope within us, as ambassador~ in a position to pass, almost authoritatively may I say, upon
of the kingdom of our Lord and Master. the efficacy of the studies named. We are united in the
May the blessing of our loving Father and our dear Re- thought that the YI~ goes far beyond the two just men-
deemer rest and abide with you alL tioned, because we find epitomized in it all the information
Yours in the One ~Iope, Wrr~TJT*xr F~Rn~rgA,--Trin~ad.
of the seven volumes, the Tabernacle, "Talking with the
Dead," and the "Millions" booklet, ten in all--ten books,
IN THIS BLESSED SERVICE corresponding to the "ten strings". Tiffs judgznent is corrob-
DEAR BRETHREN : rated by the intmest shown; In all our years of experience
The article "Keeping His Commandments" In the Novem- we never had anything approaching the attendance in our
ber 1 WATCH TOWE]gis surely timely and should arouse the class study last Frzday. S~ster Work is an experienced
entire ecclesia to renewed activity In the service of the "packer", but her ingenmty was put to the test to get 65
Master. We are living in a wonderful time, as great as that people into an upper room. Most of those attending are
of the apostles nineteen hundred years ago, if indeed not young in the truth and many of them beginners. The inter-
greater because of the increased facilities for proclaiming est manifested is intense. The Philadelphia elders have very
lovingly made a special arrangement for me to conduct a
the gospel message unto the nations. Its perusal should
specml class for beginners. The Lord has so wonderfully
bring back into line all those who have arrayed themselves
blessed our mutual efforts along thi~ line that I feel that
against the Society, which the Lord instituted by his mes-
senger Brother Russell, and cause them to coliperate heartily it would be pleasing to him to have a similar effort put
forth in every large class, the object being to direct be-
with his people in the sending forth of that message of cheer
ginners to the special class for beginners; the meeting
and comfort to the hearts of all peoples of earth. I am glad
place should be as central as possible, and the leader one
to know that some who opposed are realizing their mistake
Others may who especially loves "babes".
and are again with us in this blessed service.
return too late to be of service. We sympathize with them The time for the last member to consecrate draws on
apace, the dark night cometh when no man can work In
in allowing themselves to be blinded at this important the harvest field, and if we by wlse direction can hasten
time of Biblical history. We can but pray that they will
that event, let us get busy.
pause and think.
Faithfully, J. A. BoH~r, Pilgrira. Your brother by hls grace, R. 1:). Woa%~Pa.
110
111
WATCH TOWER
FEEDING AT THE LORD’S TABLE ness, in comes a good stimulant such as the "Approved
DEAR BRETHREN : Workmen" in January 15 WATC~a TOWER, and encourages
I feel it my duty to write a word of thanks for the us. As we learn something of the Justice, power, love and
blessed food that I have received through THE WATCH wisdom of the great Jehovah, and see more and more our
TOWERBIBLE & TRACT SOCIETY. It is all so rich and so own weakness and imperfections we are filled with gratl-
satisfying. How can we doubt its coming from the Lord’s tude and love and rejoice that we have this High Priest
table? I daily, at the throne of grace, thank the Lord for to hand this "me’~t in due season", and who kno~s how to
this food and ask blessings upon each one who is serving. sympatidze and help.
The Lord knows just what we need and always sends May the Lord continue to bless you is the prayer of
it at the right time. When we are ready to faint of weak- your smter in the Lord. MRS. M. M. POOLE,Arl¢.
WORLD-WIDE WITNESS
ONCERNING himself Jesus said: "To this end
C was I born, and for this cause came I into the
world, that I should bear witness unto the truth".
able to take part in such a privilege are being awakened;
and I confidently expect that the next opportnnlty will
see greater things done. Wehad 306 meetings, with aa
Thus the Lord emphasizes the importance of his testi- attendance of 67,010."
mony. Each one who will be a memberof the body of From Jamaica: "The drive was a success. We be-
Christ must hkewise be a witness for the truth. Dur- lieve it was divinely directed to have the same, and we
ing h~s earthly mimstry the burden of Jesus’ testimony pray God may guide you to arrange some more. Thirty-
was "The kingdom of heaven is at hand". All of hls three meetings were held in Jamaica."
parables related to the kingdom. He had no fear of From the Fre~ch o~ce, Switzerland: "Numerous
being accused of talking about one thing onh-. letters are being received telhng us howthis world-wide
We are now at the inauguration of the kingdom. witness was a great encouragement for the dear breth-
There is a message for us as menIbers of his body, and ren." The French-speaking people m Switzerland,
as his ambasaadors, to dehver. A few of the frmnds France and Belgnml responded as never before. In
have raised objection to the repeated use of the message these French-speaking commumties, where heretofore
"Mflhons [Now Living Wall Never Die", because, say it was difficult to do an)thing, more than 15,000 people
they, it is madeto appear that we can talk about nothing attended the pubhc addresses on that date.
else. This objectmn IS without merit. Let us remember From V;en~a. Au6h’~a: "A meeting was held here
that it is the message of the kingdom we must get be- in the great hall holding more than 5,000 people, which
fore the people. It matters not what others may think was packed to the limit; and a far greater mmlber
about the messengers. Jesus clearly foretold the condi- standing on the outside clamoring m yam for admis-
tions that wouldprevail at the end of the world, namely, sion. So great ~as the interest that the hall has been
the world war, famine, pestilence, revolutmn, return of rented for three more lectures. Everywherethe govern-
Israel to Palestine, persecution of Christians, etc.; and merit grants the largest halls free of charge. The people
then added: "And this gospel of the kingdom shall be have great hunger and httle money."
preached in all the world for a witness unto all nations, In the United States and Canada the witness was
and then shall the end come". This gospel means the greater than it has ever been.
specific good news that the old world has ended, the SUNDAY, JUN,E 25. 1922
kingdom of heaven is here, and mflhons now hwng hasbeensetforanother world-wide witness,everybody
will never die. His messengers must give this witness
speaking the same message, "~[ilhons NowLiving Will
throughout the world; otherwise tie wall provide other
Never Die". There is so muchto say upon the subject
messengers.
that no one need give the same d~scourse again. To
With this thought in mind,, the friends have been accomphsh results we must do as our Lord &d and
asked to give a umted witness at a g~ven time. Feb- as our Lord commandedus: Keep this message promi-
ruary 26 was a day set for a world-wide witness. All nently before the minds of the people as a ~tness.
over the earth where the truth is known the brethren Rememberthe date and begin now to make prepara-
rejoiced in this opportunity; and on that day public tions. Maythe Lord’s blessing be with each one who
addresses were given in thh’ty-three languages, announc- puts forth an effort.
ing "this gospel". Reports are beginning to come in
showing a tremendous and enthusiastic witness through- Conventions to be Addressed by Brother Rutherford
out the world. Space will not permit us here to give a MA~;CHESTER,
ENOnA~XD ........................................ May 4- 7
detailed report. Wehope to do later when all the re- COPENHAGEN,
DEIq.~k~r,I~ .............................................. " 12-14
ports are in. Wequote excerpts from a few of the OREBRO,
SWEDE~....................................................... " ]6-19
DRESDEN,
GF.R~fA~Y .................................................. " 26-28
reports.
VIEr~NA,
AUSTmA................................................ May 3l, June 1
From London: "There was much enthusiasm among June 9-11
SWITZFRLAND
ZURICH, ..........................................
the brethren. The great witness has so stimulated the FRANCE
PARIS. ........................................................... " 18, 19
brethren that manywhohave treated themselves as un- LOiNDO’~,
ENGLAND .................................................... " 23-25
International Bible StudentsA sociation Classes
BROTHER It. BARBER BROTHER S. MORTON
¯ uscumbla,Ala ............. Apr. 14 Wytheville, Va. ..... Apr. 21 Indianapolis, Ind ........... .Apr. 16 Nil~, Mich...................... Apr. 21
Nashville, Term .......... " 16 Lynchburg, Va .......... " 23 Kokomo,Ind ................. " 17 Benton tIarbor~Mich. Apr. 23, 24
Lebanon, Term ............ " 17 Petersburg, Va ............. " 24 Peru, Ind ....................... " 18 South Ilaven, Mlch ......... Apr. 25
Knoxville, Term ...... _Apr. 18, 19 Richmond, Va .......... .Apr. 25. 26 Plymouth, Ind ............... " 19 Kalamazoo, Mich ....... Apr. 26, 30
Bristol, Term.................. Apr. 20 Washington,D. C ............. Apr. 27 South Bend, Ind .............. " 20 Three Rivers, Mlch ......... Apr. 27
Englewood,Kan .............. Apr. 17 DodgeCity, Kan ............ Apr 24: Menno, S Dak ........... Apr. 13, 14 Conde, S. Dak ........... Apr. 23, 24
Newton,Kau ................... " ]9 RoHa.I,:au .................... " 25 Mitchell, S Dak ......... " 16, 17 hlellette, S Dak ....... " 25, 26
Hutchinson, Kan ............. " 20 Fret Dodge, Kan ............. " 20 Huron, S. Dak ........... " 18, 19 Ip~tch, S Dak ............... Apr. 27
Arlington. Kan .............. " 21 Frlend, Nan.................... " 27 Miller, S. Dak................. Apr. 20 Be[ hn, N. Dak ........... Apr. 29;30
Pratt. Kan....................... " 23 Garden City, IEan ........... " 28 White, S. Dak ................ " 21 Fredonia, N. Dak ........... May 2, 3
Port Chester, N. Y ......... Apr. 17 Waterbury, Conn............. Apr. 24 Toronto, Ont. ................. .Apr. 16 Kingston, Ont ................ Apr. 24
Stamford, Conn............... " :18 Woodl)urs, Corm............. " 25 Oshawa,Out. ................. " 18 Gananoque,Ont. ............. " 25
South Norwalk, Corm ..... " :19 NewBritain, Conn ......... " 26 Orono,Ont....................... " 19 Brocl, xllIe, Ont. ............ ’’ 26
Bridgeport, Conn ....... Apt 20, 21 Cromwell, Conn ......... Apr. 27, 28 Trenton, Ont .................. " 21 Prescott, Ont .............. " 27
New Haven, Conn .......... Apr. 23 Hartford, Conn............... Apr. 30 Bellevllle, Ont. ............... " 23 Iroquois, Ont. .................. " 28
/%
t’°.
CONTENTS
VIE’~V% FROMTHE WATCHTOWER................. 115
]:~eforlnlng Satan’s Elal)H e .................. ] ] l;
Metho(hc Taxatmn f~,l Methodl.~ts .............. 117
]7],NLAR(.EM~,NT O[~ TIlE ~tV(Hll-: ............ llq
Loq AN~JEIE~ CON~ENPION .............. ]1+)
Conx elltlon Q tle~lOKl,~ ...................... ]1!)
The Watch-Towel ReplHit’+ ...................... ]2l
World-Wide "~X ltness ................... 122
I~EZEKIAH LEADS HIS PEOI’I,E ll~CK. TO GOD __ 123
The Temple Opened ................ 123
The Great Passover .................. 124
THE TRUE REFORMATION FORK%I[AI)OWED ........ 125
The Prehmlnary Reformation ............... 126
The Tlue Reformation : ................................ 126
AN INq_ERESTINGLETTER................................ 127
~_~-~ a~_-~:_-’~.~.-
Upon tile eal/~ dlsi,e~ oe na/.Iol~ Wltll l/¢t’ph.~q}’ tile ~-’a and the wa~es (the resl.]eqs, dlseoutented) roaring, men’s hearts falling them for fear and for looking to tbl
t.hing~ c<~mmg ilpfn the earth (sooted), for the powers of the heaths (eeeleslas~lolsm, snau DO shaken. "When ye see the~e things bcgm to P+,ol~" tel paml,
then knoa that the Kingdom of God Is aS hat~d. /.~ok up, llf~ ul~ ~e~ head~, re2ol~, tot your redemption drawsth nlgh--~latk 2"1:38~ ~Iark 13.29, l~ke 21 25-$1.
THIS JOURNALAND ITS SACREDMISSION
THISpresented
Journal is one of the prime factors
in all parts of tile civilized
or instruments in the system of Bible instruction,
world by the WATCHT0W~RBIBLE & TRACTSOCIETY, chartered
or "Seminary Extension", now being
A.D. 1884, "For the Pro-
motion of Christian Knowledge". It not only serves as a class room ~here Bible students may meet in the study of the divine Word but
also a~ a channel of commomeation through which they may be reached ~lth announcements of the Society’s co~venUons and of the
coming of ~ts tlavehng repr~eutatives, styled "Pilgrims", and refreshed with reports of ~ts conventions.
Our "Berean Lessons" are topical rehearsals or reviews of our Society’s pubhshed STUDIES mo~t entertainingly arranged, and very
l~elpful to all who would memt the only honorary degree which the Society accords, viz., Ve~b* Del Minister (V. D. ~I.), which translated
into Engimh is M*n*ster of God’s Word. Our treatment of the Iuternatzonal Sunday School Lessons is specially for the older Bible
students and teachers. By some this feature is considered indzspensable.
This journal stands firmly for the defense of the only true foundation of the Chrzstian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
~redemptmn through the precious blood of "the man Christ Jesus, u he gave himself a ~anso,n [a corresponding price, a substitute] for
all". (1 Peter 1 : 19; 1 Timothy 2 : 6) Building up on this sure foundation the gold, szher and precious stones (1 Corinthians 3:
15; 2 Peter 1:5-11) of the Word of God, its further mission is to "make all see ~hat is the fellowship of the mystery which...has
been lad in God, o . o to the intent that now might be made kno~n by the church the manifold wmdomof God"--"which in other ages
was not made known unto the sons of men as it is now revealed".--]~pheslans 3 : 5-9, 10.
It stands free from all parties, sects and creeds of men. while it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
eubjectmn to the will of God in Christ, as expressed in the holy ScrlpltDes. ]t is thns free to declare boldly whatsoever the Lord
hath spoken--according to the divine wisdom granted unto us to nndpt~tand hl~ Rttcrailees. Its attitude is not dogmatic, but confident ;
for we know ~hereof we affirm, treading with tmphclt fazth upon ~ile ~ure promi~es of God ]t is held as a trtmt, to be used only in hie
service; ilence our decisions relative to what may and x~h.lt may not appear in its eohunns must be according to our judgment of his
good pleasure, the teaclung of his Word, for the upbuihhng of Ius peonle In grace nnd ].nowledue. And ~e not only invite but urge ou~
readers to prove all its utterances by the infalhble Word to ~hieh referen(e ~s constantly made to facilitate such tesung.
as theyImvebeencontinuously sinceLouisthe Gleatdrag- work, the legislative program for 1922 is as follows:
gedhis armiesacrosstheRhineVengeance is stillin the "First: A Bill for the Strict Regulation of Public Billiard
heartsof the conquered, sowingseedsforanotherwar.Is Roomsand Pool Parlors "
therereason,,s theredecencym tins methodof settling "Seceded: A BHI to Regulate Dance Hallu."
disputes ~ The nunistersof Christthroughout the world
"Third : A Bill Forbtddmg Anyone to Run a Soft Drink
cannot, perhaps,tellstatesineu m Washington whatto do. Place without a State L~cense."
But the ministers of Christthroughout the worldcan de- "Fou~ th A BHI to Stol) Legislators WhoAre Lawyers Be-
clarethatfromthishourforward the handsof theChurch coming’ Lobbyists for Special hItereuts."
mustbe freeof thestainofblood." "F,/th: A Bill to Strengthen Oar MotmnPmture Censor-
Our sympathies must be with noble-minded men who ship Law."
have been deceived in this manner. We look forward to ",~.l th : A Bill for the Supp, essmn of Traveling Carnivals
the early arrival of the day when they will be wflhng to in Our State."
learn the truth and become undeceived, and be ready "8CVel,,th: A Bill to Stop Clmuifeurs or Taxicab MenTak-
ing People to Innnoral l-lou.>es."
as honest men to take their stand for Christ and real "E~ghth:For tile Enactmentof What is Knownas an
righteousness. ’Ouster Law’. . . fortheremoval fromofficeof an execu-
tlveothcial whorefuses to enforce thelawin thatcityor
REFORMING
SATAN’S EMPIRE town."
"N~Mh.A Bill to Provide for Educational Movie Films."
There is a host of people whose minds are favorable "Tenth: To huproxe out’ Direct l’t’Hnary Law."
toward right-doing. To persons of this cast of mind
Amon,~ "bnd b~lls we must oppose" are l>te(l:
reform and civic righteousness are attractive. Under "Bill to Repeal State Prohlbltmn Enf,,rcement Laws."
the deceptive influences which have held sway in the "Ball to Legalize Sale of Beer."
churches since the fourth century, when the church be- "Bill to Legalize Sunday Football Games."
came a department of the pagan government, it has been "Bill to Repeal MoweCensorship Law."
the honest but erroneous belief of many Christian men "Bill to Repeal Prolnbttmn Section of Penal Law."
and women that the kingdom of God has begun in some "Bill to Allow Jews to Open Stores on Sunday."
measure and has been extending its sway in the hearts
of those that joined the churches. This delusion has NOT WHAT JESUS DID
been fostered by the great adversary for the purpose of
Some of the recent aelnevements of the "Law and
keeping, not only the evil, but the good under his con- Order Department" include 1terns which are far from
trol. The governments of this world have always been
the scope of the true church of God:
controlled by the evil one, and, in the aggregate, they "Dope joint closed up."
constitute Satan’s empire. The folly of seeking to re- "Proprietor of a saloon arrested for violation of the Pro-
form such a dominion is manifest as long as the master hthmon Act."
mind and the evil personality in control remains un- "Suppressed the playing of crap gnmes."
"Ma.i arrested and fined for vIOhmonof Prohibition Act."
reformed and unfettered.
"Propmetor of pool-room fined $200 for violation of the
Attempts to reform the present order of things are Prohibition Act."
quite hopeless as far as lasting good is concerned. Though "Suppressed the awarding of prizes at church card party
many such reforms have achieved no small measure of and the prizes were sold in a legLtimate re:tuner and proceeds
success, practically all the reforms of history have been turned over to the church."
wiped out at last by sqme eruptmn of wmkedness. "Having discovered that a new, indecent magazine had
recently been placed on the market through periodical dis-
This does not signify that we are opposed to righteous- tributers, we infornIed the 1NewYork Socmty for the Suppres-
ness. The place to bring about reform, and the only sion of Vice of the same and ~,tli their cooperation the dis-
organization which can actually be reformed, is the tributer of the magazine was arrested and 4019 copies of the
church of God itself. Reforms can have lasting effect magazine were seized. The d,stributer wired to the publish-
only in the minds and characters of Christian people, er immediately cnnceling the contract for its distribution
aud nl court stipulated that the 4019 copies which were
and if they will reform themselves and reform their smzed should be destroyed. As a result later issues of that
religion back to the model of the apostohc church, they magaznle ]lave been muchcleaner."
will do a work well-pleasing unto God. Th~s can be "Road-house raided, proprietor arrested."
done, because God has promised his holy spirit and his "Manarrested for selling liquor."
o~m mighty power in his church as long as it walks in "Pirate l’fll(led and ]l(ln(~r ,~elzell."
"Hotel raided, liquor seized, proprietor arrested, convicted
a course entirely separate from the state and from and fined. Some local citizens cooperated w,th us in this
commercialism. matter."
It is interesting to observe the program of reform "Pool-rooms closed on Sunday. One proprietor arrested."
under the auspices of the Protestant churches, hrote "Lottery scheme suppressed.--As a result of the work of
how the reforms which are proposed have little or our Field Secretary, Mr. R. T. Hodgson, a turkey raffle was
nothing %o do with the church of God but are attempts stopped and three other lotteries suppressed."
"Sale of cigarettes to minors stopped."
to improve some part of Satan’s kingdom. As presented "Eighteen punch-boards taken, also coin machine seized
in The Reform, Bulletin (Albany, r. Y.) f or J anuary as a result of the work of our Field Secretary, R. T.
27, 192,2, the organ of these churches in their reform Hodgson."
APPdL15, 1922 117
"We furmshed the Government olhct,ds with a,lxerl~Mng Within lhe last century this kind of welfare work has
matter and reformation in regard to a colossal natron-wide waned and ecclesiastical effort has centered more on
lottery scheme, and as a result of our calling their atten-
tion to the matter, evidence was secured and the pro- getting money from the poor than on giving them
moters arrested." assistance. The degradation and poverty of the poor
Thatreformis neededin the churches themselves,of Italy is a monumentto the lack of real love in the
appears in one interesting itemabove.Thereformersprevalhng religion of that country. There the Young
closed up a fewlotteries, andin onecasehadthepro- Men’s Chri~han Assoemtion and the Methodist Epis-
motersarrested. Running lotteries, however, has been copal Chm’chentered the country in war time to work
a special privilege of churches; but at Gloversvflle, for the soldmr,~, but remained after the war, and by
N. Y., the reform people state that they "suppressed means of recreahon, charitable, and educational centers
the awarding of prizes at church card party and the carried on a work hke that done in the United States.
prizes were sold in a legltmmte manner and proceeds
turned over to the church". OPENS ITALIAN EYES
No report is made x~hether the pastor or the church Tlus departure m religton ha~ so opened the eyes of
officials were prosecuted under the lottery law, but per- the Italian people to the fact that there is something
haps the anment "pr~wlege of clergy" ’still operates to better than the at,croat ecclesmst]eal system that has
exempt ecclesiastics from the consequences of their cm’sed the peninsula that the Methodist Church has be-
crimes now, as it did in the dark ages. come a vemtable terror to the papacy.
One of the last acts of the late pope Benedict XV
HOPE FOR THE WORLD was a decree singhng out the Young Men’s Christian
One of the prophets of the present order of things Assocmtmnas particularly to be guarded against. The
is Mr. H. G. Wells of London. Mr. Wells has written pope x~as reported to have called upon the Knights of
a book enhtled "The Outline of ttistory". From this we Columbusof the UmtedStates to send over a million-
quote a paragraph ilhlstrating the fact that even men dollar fund to be devoted to American welfare work
v ho are fast bound in the chains of the god of this under K. of C. au.,lnees That flus is directed at the
worhl sense better things coming. It is not to be expect- Y. M. C. A. and the M(~tho&st Episcopal Church there
ed that, x~ith no e~flightenm,nt of the holy sprat, they is little doubt, but our RomanCathohc friends are care-
shouht peremve that tile coming Oohlen Age is not to ful to say that ’qt is not a fund to wage war on any-
be brou3ht about by some "moxement of the raeml body; ~t ~lll smlply be the mcan~of assisting in the
soul"-- a lnt of mental-seience-Emdoo-self-help philos- conservatmn of the fa,th of the youth of Italy"--in
ophy-but by the power of Ahmghty God. Through a plain language that somct]nng has to be done to keep
xan~ty of chammls, besides those m which the holy the people of Italy from abandomng Romamsmand
slmqt is operating, God is preparing the minds of the joimng the Method>_t Chm’ch.
grcat:r part of mankindand raising their expectations
to a hr3her standard. Whenthe still loftier arrange- METHODIC TAXATION FOR METHODISTS
mel’ts of the kingdomof God have come, they will say,
’This is the desire of all nations’. Wequote from Mr. The Metho(h~t~have learned something front the for-
Wella ward-looking mcthcds of then’ RomanCathohc brethren,
"But out of the trouble and tragedy of this present time whose propaganda thronghont the Umtcd States is an
the, e may emmge a moral and intellectual rewval, a rehg- oby_~et lesson. The Metho&sts are planning to prop-
ion* ~ex 1~ al, of a slmphelty and scope to draw together men agate their froth all over the world by means of a
of :~lte’. r,tecs and now disered,ted tradittons into one com- morton pmture telhng the story of John Wesley. Ac-
mon and su~lamed way of hvmg for the world’s service ....
O~eat moxements of the racial soul come at first ’like a cording to the plospcctus of the new Methodtst activ-
tluef m the mght’ and then ~uddenly are discovered to be ities, one of the characters of the play ~s to be Lord
po~xmful and x~orld-wtde. 1religious emotion--stripped of George Gordon, "whose cry of ’No popery’ eehoed around
corruptions and freed from Its 1/1st priestly entanglements-- the world". The prospectus, however, devotes a para-
may present[ly] blow through life again, bursting the doors
and flmmng open the shutters of individual life and making graph to suggeshng that the Methodtst Church should
nmn5 things possdde and easy that in these present days of give up its dependence upon voluntary offerings and
exhaustion seem almost too difficult to desire." adopt an obhgatory tax on the membership end:
"Too mueh dependence upon ~oluntary subscriptions has
kept Methodism back. Its greatest rival, the Roman Cath-
THE METHODIST TERROR IN ITALY
olic Church, keeps the floodgates of subscriptions and prop-
During the dark ages the papal empire operated aganda going night and day. Its Peter’s Penee, an obliga-
through brotherhoods and sisterhoods, alleviating the tory subscription from each ehurch, its Knights of Columbus,
con&tmnof the very poor of that somber period. Im- its Sisters organizations, its parochial schools, its propa-
ganda m the moving pictures, where it portrays mass, con-
mense was the charitable work carried on from the mon- fessmns, last rites for the dying, are all propaganda for
asterms, and no small amount of industrial training wlnch money is g, ven and received. Methodism must meet
was given to the common l~eople. this competitmn in publicity."
ENLARGEMENT OF THE WORK
"gor]~ with your ha.ads."--1 Thessalonians 4: 11.
~ ]XATthe Lord is pleased to have his children en- the stitching and the binding of ~hese publicafion~.
gaged in working with their hands to furthm" the It was found that we would have space sufficient to
gospel of the kingdom, we have abundance of place in one building the offices of the Society here,
Scriptural proof. The Lord hlmsel.f is present and d> together with the branch departments of the Arabic,
reefing his work, and we as brethren are privileged to Armenian, Colored, Czechoslovakian, German, Greek,
be co-laborers with him. Sometimes the Lord m(hcates Hungarmn,Italian, Lithuanian, Polish, and Ukrainian.
his will concerning his people by makingit very difficult The Polish brethren have voted to have the work
to follow a certain course and at the same time opening placed entirely under the supervision of the Brook-
another way. Webeheve the Lord has done so with the lyn office and to have the Detroit office moved to
Socmty in recent months. Brooklyn; that is now
]Ieretofore the books of being done. Consequently
the Somety have been the work at headquarters
manufactured by worldly will all be concentrated at
concerns under contract. one point. This will make
The labor, of course, was the handling of all the
done by those who have work more economical and
no real interest in it, but enable it to be done in a
who perform their duties In o r e efficient manner.
for pecuniary considera- ttence the offices of the
tion. It seems reasonable Society, except the execu-
that the Lord would be tive offices and the book-
well pleased to have his store, have been moved
work performed by those from Bethel to the newly
who do so because of their equipped building at the
love for him and the work. corner of Concord and
Hence the Society more Liberty Streets, Brooklyn,
than a year ago installed and installed on the sec-
a large printing-press to ond floor of said building;
do a certain amountof its while other floors are oc-
printing. The Lord has cupied by the manulactur-
abundantly blessed that ing, packing and shipping
effort; thus indicating his departments.
approval. On the fifth floor we
It seemed that the Lord have Installed six typeset-
might be pleased to have ting machines; and now
the books of the Society we are able to set the
manufactured by conse- type in Arabic, Armen-
crated hands. After milch ian, Bohemmn, Croatmn,
meditation, prayer and Danish, Dutch, Enghsh,
consideration concerning Finnish, French, German,
SOCIETY’s OPERATING O]~FICE
the matter, the way began Greek, l[ungarmn, Ice-
to open whereby such a thing seemed possible; and so landic, Italian, Lettish, Lithuanian, Maon, Norwegian,
as the Lord has led we have tried to follow. In the Polish, Portuguese, Roumanian, Russmn, l~utheman,
course of time the way was opened whereby it seemed Slovak, Spanish, Ukrainian, and Zulu. On this floor is
entirely feasible to procure machinery for the print- also installed the stereotyping department, where we
ing and binding of the STUmESIX T]nE SCRIPTURES make our own plates for printing msgazines and book-
and others of our publications. This has been done. lets; also an elcetrotyplng outfit, by which are made
Morespace was required, of course ; and the way readily the electroplates for books, etc.
opened for us to secure a good term lease upon a six- Wegratefully acknowledge the Lord’s goodness and
story and basement building situated at the corner of manifest loving kindness toward us ill thus enlarging
Concord and Liberty Streets, Brooklyn. In the base- the work and the capacity to work at headquarters.
mentof this building have been installed printing press- This will give employmentto a greater number of the
es for the printing of Tyro. WATC~ TOWE~,T~E GonD- consecrated brethren at a time when employment is
E~r AOE,booklets, STUI)IES IZ¢ T~. SCRII’TU~ES,"The difficult for some to find. It will enable the books in
]=[arp of God," and other books. On the first floor is a shor~ time to be produced cheaper than we could have
installed the most modern and efficient machinery for them otherwise produced, and thereby enable us to have
118
APRIL15, 1922 ’he WATCH TOWER 119
them placed in the hands of the people at a cheaper As tllUeS grow harder, we find it necessary to watch
late. Weieel qmte sure that the friends everywhere every way to carry on the work the Lord has g~ven us
will give thanks to the Lord and rejoin( that thus lie to do m the most econonncal mannerpossible. While
manifests his protection, guidance and blessing over the it is true that the Lord has riches beyond hmlt, yet he
efforts of the Society. As the Lord enlarges the capac- is pleased to have us, we are sure, use our faculties to
ity for the work, it would seem an mdmatlonthat there the best advantage m doing the greatest amount with
is much more work to be done. Having in mind, then, a small outlay of money. As the Lord x~idcns the op-
that our ehmf work is to be faithful and true witnesses portulnty for work in America, hkewlse it is bern%
to the Lord, we hope all will be moved to a greater ~ldened m foreign countrms, particularly m cm~.tmenta[
degree of zeal in performing their part in giving the Europe. Let us, dear brethren, ~Ol’k with our hands,
witness wheresoever situated. laboring
b. ~lth joy now ~hlle we have oppo~tunl
"Pot ],f 1/e turn aqarn ~Dllo tile Lo]d ~]our brethren and iio~tr cbihlren shall find compassmn before them that lead the~
capttve, so that they shall come again into tlv]s land: /or the Lord your God is gracious and merci[ul, and will DoS
turn away his face from you, if ye return nnto hen."--2 Chronicles $0: 9.
chosen] out of all your tribes to put his name there". To- should be put away from their houses prior to tile Pass-
day’s golden text forms a portion of the message sent. over. And was not idolatry a form of symbolic leaven, sin?
"Yield yourselves unto the Lord, and enter into his sanctu- It was "then [thnt] they killed the passover on tile four-
ary, whmh he hath sanctified for ever." it pleaded. teentb (lay of the ~econd month". But some who had come
The couriers dispatched ran from city to city with the down frmn Israel on the north were ~till ceremomally un-
gracious invitation. Those who bore the king’s letter into clean. Yet they sho~ed a right heart condition. Then" ~ery
the northern kingdom speci.dly loqmred courage arid hu- presellce at tile feast betokened n smcme (le.bu’e to partmi-
mility. Scoffing callousness, rehuffu were sure to be en- pate Hezel~lah’s heart ~xas touelled and he was loathe that
countered by tlmm. They mlt~(_qmt,,d this, ~o did Hezekiah. these sh(mld he demed tllmr rehaion~ pmvilegeu. He would
They were placed ,n the same poSltlOn with those ~ho bear pray for then1 that the Lord should grant pardon. The
the Lord’s prulted me.-~dge from door to door today Never- king’s prayer’did not nnbcarry. "The Lord hearkened and
theless, surely there x~,~s a rmnn:mt in Israel that x~ould healed the 1,e-pie" he nnputed to their bodies the con(litton
return unto tile Lord, ,tad tlu~ x~a~ x~mth all the hardnes~ of their hearts.
endured in finding it. But ~f com,t’:e and hnmdlty were Joyous wn~ lhe feast of unleavened bread uhieh followed,
needed by tile postmen, as nluch if 11(117 nlol’e ~xel’e needed be~tanlng with the tlflee!ltll day of the month And why
on the part of the ,’emnant xxho accepted rile mxit,auln. not? It ~a~ a l)m~llege ~hleh tile devout I~raellteq had
Jeers. mdieule, clmxees (,t d[~h)yalty to the nm’thern king- not enjoyed for at least sixteen years, and hence it x~a.u
dom, interference xxKh their going to the feaut, were in- peeulmrly sxxeet to them. What spu’ltual blebsillgS they
evitable. They mn~t braxe the~e things if they would obey lind missed all those long years! q’he.x were now hungry
the Lord and go and get the blessing. In <pite of all ellis for fellowsh,p with rhone of "lik¢ ~ precious faith". 2’0 them
the posts prosecuted their mlssmn, and solne--a "htlle the legally spec,tied seven festal (ln.~s were too few, too
flock"-- from Ephrann. Manauseh, Issaehar, Zebnlun, and soon gone, to ",’ttl~.fy their qppetm~ And so ]t was that
Asher vohmteered to undmgo tile lmmiliatmg expemences; "the x~ ]role l/’-i~,elnbly took eonn~el t(, keel) other seven days;
they ’humbled themseLes’ A~ for the maus of th~ ten- and the~ kept ,,ther seven da~q ~ith ~lndness". No one
tribe kingdom, they were beyond appeal: they had gro~xn eonhl l’ea~onably objectto this inolont~atlon of tile feast
proud, haughty, and self-~.nt]~hed: lhey had 1)eeome dis- m nmnffe~t,ltion of their appreemtmn. It ~as 3tlStllh’,l- in
dalliers of them that ale gotul, all of x~lnch led to t]leir the result- tlmt foil(meal. Then hearts were renexxed in
rejection with scorn of the opl)ortu,ut~ held out to them tile L(), d: ~he3 were unlhed in .~plrlt they were filled with
by the Lord. Five years later divine retrdmtiml overtook holy ioy; and they reeelxed a far-reaching mlpetus toward
them and they were deported to A,.,-~ tin. Hezekmh’s letter, hohness. For note: At tile end of the tet~t thee’ kindled
however, was better received by ln~ ,mn ~ubjeetq. It welded jealnuty for Jehovah incited them to 1)le k up the para-
them together In a unity of purp(~e and splint l)lmrmdm and m~dges connected with idol worqnp.
In tile af(lrementioneil exlielJcn(.eu lnstory has repeated These iconoclastic proceedmg.~ x~el’e not confined merely
itself Durln~ the past half-century the Lord Ires been
to Hezekiah’s domltln, but th,,~ex~ho letlll’ned to their
spreading a feast of spiritual fat things, of meat in due
homes among.-_t the ten tribes extended the u,)rk of de-
season. It has not been prepared ~lthm the x~alls of any
struelion there. Later, under tile kln~’, nlstrncll(His the
denominational system; and in in~iting the Israel of God,
people g.lxe so hberally to the Lord’., cause that p.ex~ store-
Israentes indeed, the Lord has altogether ignored sectarian houses lind to 1)e built in the temple to t,tke tale of the
lines of division He has sen~ Ins call to those xxho are his super-abundance of the offerings made. TrulS. fib they
people, regardless of whether they were inside or outuide brought their tithes in and proved the Lord, aeh,,vah p,m,.-
of denonunationalisnl They ale his people if so be that ed them out blessnlgs such that there wa; net l’ooin enough
they have surrendered themselxes to hun in full conseel’a-
to receive them.--Malacln 3:10.
lion. have recmved the Jmputat,on of tlle Savinr’~ remit,
have been justified and begotten of God’s spirit. Sectari’ln The foregoing bit of Instory renunds us of n greater
names do not have ally bearing on tile m’ttter. In tills, too, than Hezekiah--the Messiah. On his aeees<lnn to e, tlth’s
the,’e ]s a helpful lesson for all the clnldren of God. throne he too will eonlpletely abolish the old order, t,’ ,ed
up by Satan; and will estabhM1 "ne~x heavens, uml., . o-a-
They slmw the spirit of the heavenly Father in recog- earth, uhereu~ dwelleth mghteouaness". During h~s Mdh.n-
nlzmg as brethren all whom Jesus is not asllamed to call nlal reign the true temple of God, eompo,ed of aeuu, a,,d
brethren; for "he that loveth him tlmt begat, loveth hun his glorified saints, x~ll have ~ts doors lhmg xxi,le open,
also that is begotten of God". Hence our effort today should
that mankind may through it have access w God.
be to break down sectarian fences and assemble as brethren
Under the leadership of this great King tile pe,)ple~ o1
to share with one another the good and true things of God’s
earth will be led into the ways of eonseet.,tm,1 to G,.I and
Word and to unite in worshiping the Lord and in keeping
purification from all tarot of sin. The beneht. ,,t the death
his law, his will.
of the great antltypmal Lamb, "Chl’lUt our t’a%mer," ~ ~11
he made avmlnhle for all mankind; attd as they partake,
THE GRE&T PASSOVER their rejoicing x~tll abound. Responding to tim love and
The gathering of such a multitude at Jerusalem with goodness of God through Christ, the appt’eelatl~e x~lll b~ mg
just the one thing in mind fired them all with great re- forward their tithes of love, obe(henee, and faithful serxiee;
ligious zeal ; and before the feast began they rose in demon- and in requital tile Lord will open the windo*~s of heaven
stratlon against sin and destroyed as many of the heathen- and shower dox~n blessings, enmching them with restitution
ish idol altars as the time allowed. This was in keeping from the fail to perfection of being and everlasting hfe in
with the spirit of the law which required that all leaven an earthly paradise.
"Not less the patriot than the manof faith, What did Jerusalem owe thee for thy love,
l=[ow full of prayer and deed thy noble reign 1 Thy wisdom, and thy faith! And that old pool,
Before thy God how lowly and how meek; Poor and in ruins, as it now appear.>.
Before Assyria’s captains, strong and bravo, Yet tells of thee and of thy peaceful reign."
THE TRUE REFORMATION FORESHADOWED
-- -- MAY21- 2 CHRONICLES34:14-33 -- --
"Tl~y word is a lamp unto my feet, ancl a li~2h¢ unto my path."--Ps(~lm 119:105
:KING JOSIAH THE REFORMER -- FllgDING THE WORD OF THE LORD--HULDAH THE pROPHETESS--THE PRELII,[INARY RF.F01~II~A-
TION- THE TRUE RF~FOR~[ATION- Tt=IY WORD IS A LA~IP.
AN INTERESTING LETTER
WORK A VOLUNTARY ONE that the final test is on for each one of us? Is it that the
:
DEAal BRETHREN Lord, like Gideon of old, is mustering hi.~ army; and that
those who are afraid are being told to go home and sit
For more than twenty years it has been my experience down in an easy parlor-chair to ~rumble, while tile few are
that if any doubt or perplexing questions came up and if eutermg m to continue exactly the s~mle ",~e,l’k oil tile other
I just waited with patience for a little, there wouhl soon side--to preltch that his kingdom is at hand, to bring the
appear an article in TH~ WATCI~T0X~ERthat settled it all truth to a sin-sick u orld, to brad tip the broken hearts, to
and hlled my heart with peace, rest and a stronger faitll wipe awn5 tim bitter tears? This the Lord, through tile
than ever before, just as if God, knowing all my needs, W. T B. and T. S.c]ety, says: Go and do . . .
spoke through THE ~,VATCI~ TOWERfor my benefit only. But
Tim work at ilny rate is a vohlntflry one. No ol]e l,, forced
as yet I never have expressed iny appreciation for the same
to take p,]tt. Tile Lord will be able both to set up lu., king-
to those whom the Lord used to send me these comforts,
dom and to run it w~thout any of us. It ~s jusl~ a ble~ed
for fear I wouhl intrude on their time. But as my heart
plqvdege for any one to have a share in tile work next. So
at this time is oxerflowing, I cannot refrain from writing.
I refer especially to the articles in tile June 15th WATeI:I even if I could not spare more than one hour each month,
TOWER, "Murnluring against Jehovah," and July 1st, "Our let me tell the Director in the class. Let him plan the work;
Responslbihty concerning Present Truth". but let me put in that bout’ gladly, as unto the Lord. Tile
For some years I served as captain of the volunteers Ill least I can do ~s to refl’am from murmuring and fault-find-
St. Paul, Minn. Every house m the city was served with ing with tile Society and others, and by so doing discourage
literature. Nearly every Sunday morning we were out, all those who wish to work. Let me at least ask the Lord to
glad to have a share in the work and never any colnplaints. bless those ~\ho are working. There is a responsibility, and
But why is it that there are mulmurlngs now? lYor there I am thankful for having this brought to my attention
is murmuring going on among tbe dear brethren, as I Imve through T~IE WATC~TOWE~.
found myself. Is it that we are right at the end, that the
church is standing close up on this side of the vail, and Your brother in 0hrist, H. H~m~tJ~t, Minn.
International Bible StudentsA sociation Classes
hcc~ur¢~ bLJTravclinqBrethren
and~¢ud~c~
BROTHER T. E. BARKER BROTHER B. M. RICE
Elkhart, Ind .................. May 1 La Porte, Ind ............. May 8 Fredonia, N. Dak ....... May 2, 3 Donetrall, N. Dak ..... May 13, 14
Gosben,Ind ..................... " 2 I-lammond, Ind .......... May 9, 10 Wyndmere, N. Dak ..... May 5 Zahl, N, Dak................... May 15
Warsaw,Ind ................ May 3, 4 Hegew~sch,Ill ................. May 11 Fal_~o, N Dak ............ May7,9 Dore, N. D,q.k .............. 1~
Plymouth, Ind ................ May 5 Bo~eland,Ill .................. " 12 Northwood, N Dak .... May 8 Belfield, N. Dak ....... May 18, 19
Michigan City, Ind ....... " 7 Chicago, Ill ................. " 14 Enderhu, N. Dak ..... May 10, 11 Reserve, Mont. .............. May 21
"I lttll et~lld t~po~+ ~ny watch (tttd 1till qet tlly fOOt
itpnll, the TORPl, tllzd ,till lttltCll to 8e6 Ith¢lt lie t~,~,ll
g($~l tltzto t~6~ G~d Ithal On$~t¢~ I shall m+lke to them
ll.d ~i,poSe me’--Jlabakhuk ~ L
THIS JOURNALAND ITS SACREDMISSION
THISpresented
Journal ts one of the prime factors or instruments in the system of Bible mstruction,
in all paLts of tile cbthzed world by the I, VATCH
’~()l~.t,~ BIP.[E & TaACT
or "~emlnary E~t~n~ion", now bo~n~
challcrod A.D. :lnn.l. "I’or the Pro-
S(~CIbTY,
motion of Chris|inn Knowledge". It not only serves as a class room where Bible students ma~meet ta the ,~tu(ly eL .tO d’~tne Wordhut
also as a channel of conununwatlon through wkich they may be reached "Allh announcement~ of the Sooet.v’s cna~entlops and of the
eomntgof its travel|at lcpresentatl~.es t styled +’Pilgrims", and refreshed v, ith reports of its conventions.
Our "Berean Le~sons’" are topical rehearsals or reviews of our Society s pabh~,hed STUDIL% nmgt cntertamlngly arrang.’d, and very"
helpful ~o all who would meat the only honorary degree which the Society ,tccotd~, xiz, T’ob* Pet Minister (V. D. 5l.), which translated
into l ngh~h is ~hnlstcr of God’s Word. Our treatment of the International Sunday Sciiool Lessons Js specially for the ohier B~blo
students and teachers. :By some this feature is con~lde~ed indispensable.
TIL~ journal stands firmly for the defense of the only true foundation of the Christian’s Impe now being so generally repudmted
--rcdcmi,tlon throngh the preclou~ blood of "the manChtt~t Jesus, who gave himself a ransom [a torte<pending pmce, "t substitute] tot
all ’. ~t Peter 1 : 19 ; 1 Tnno|tty 2 : 6) Building up on this sure foundation the gold, silver and precious stones (1 CorLnthians 3: 11-
15. 2 Peter 1:5-11) of the Wordof God, its futther mission is to "nmke all see ~hat is the follow, ship of the mystery x~lnch...ha3
been h~d ~u Cod .... to the intent that now might be made known by the church the manifold wmdomof God"----"whtch in other ages
~as not made known unto the sons of men as it is now revealed".--I~phestans 3:5-9, 10.
it stands free from all parties, sects and creeds of men. ~hile it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
subjc[’lion to the ~lll of Godin Christ, an expren~ed tu the holy Scriptures. It is thus free to declare boldly ~hat-ocver the Lord
hath ~pt)ken--accordlng to the dl~,lU~ ~isdomgranted unto us to understand lt~, utterances. Its attitude is not doglaa1_lc, btlt conhdcnt ;
for x~e i~:llOW ~heleof we ,tEll’In, treading with itepIiclt faith upon tile sure pronn~e,~of Cod ] t is h+.Id au a trust, to be used only in ]1l¢¢
scrxlce: hence our declmtons relative to what mayfl~qd what maynot appear in its cohllnns nlii~L be according to our 3udgtuent o£ ill~
good pleasure, tile teacinng of tus Word, for the upbuilddng of ]its people in gra(e and ktmwle, t+e. Andwe not only inwte but urge our
readers to prove all its utterances by the infallible Wordto which refereu(e *s constantly made to facihtate such testing.
TO US THE SCRIPTURES CLEARLY TEACH
That the church is "the temple of the living God", peculiarly "his workmanship"; that its construction has been in p~ogress throughouft
the gospel age--e~er since Christ became the world’s Redeemer and the Chief Corner Stone of h~s temple, throtmh ~hwh, when
lmt~bed, Coal’s ble~ing ~hall come "to all people", and they find access to h~m.--1 Corinthians 3 : 16, 17 ; Ephesmas 2 : 20-22 ;
Genesis 2S : 14 ; Galattans 3 : 29.
’~hat mcantm~ethe chisehng, shaping, and poll.shrug of consecrated beliexers in Christ’s atonement for sin, progres~e~; and when the
last of these "hwngstones", "elect aud precious," shall have beeu made ready, the great 3ht~ler Workmanv. lll bllng all together
in the first resurrection: and the temple shall be filled with his glory, and be the meeung place between Godand men throughout
the Millennium --Rexelation 15 : 5-8.
~hat the basis of hope, for the church and the world, lies m the fact that "Jesus Christ, by the ,-race of God, ta~led death for every
nmn," "a ransma for all," and w~ll be "the true light which bghteth every man that comcth into the world", "in due tame".--
]Icbrews 2 : 9 ; John 1 : 9 ; 1 Timothy2 : 5, 6.
"Timt tile hope of the church is that she may he like her Lord, "see him as he is," be "partakers of the diwne nature’,’ and share his
gloly as his joint-heir.--1 John 3:2; John 17:24; Romans 8:17; 2 Peter 1:4.
~That the present mission of the church is the perfecting of the saints for the future work of serwce ; to develop in herself every
g~ace, to be God’s witness to the world ; and to prepare to be kings and prtest.~ ]u the next age.--Ephesmns 4 : 12 ; l~latthew 24 :
14, Re,elation 1: 6; 20:6.
~ha! ~l*e hope for the world lies in the blesstng$ of knowledge and opportumty to be brought to all by Chmst’s Millennial kingdom, the
rt.~tUllOn of all lhat was lost In Adamto all the wllhng and obedmnt al: the hands of their Redeemer and l~ls glor~hed churcha
,~ ~en all the x~ dful y w~ckcdwill be destroycd.--Acts 3 : 19-23 ; 1sarah dJ.
NOTHER test is on. Whowill weather the storm ? out of the wilderness. As he goes on in flus way, he
A it is a test of faith. "Accordingto your faith be
it unto you." During the time of the harvest
becomesconvinced in his ox~ n mind that the 1,ord ma&
a mistake in selecting Brother Russell as that servant;
there ha\e been spemal tests of faith at fixed intervals. and tins doubt leads to the conclusmn lat.r on that
Call to mind the shaking that came with the &scussion, Brother Russell ~a.-_ not "that servant" at .dr lie be-
in this journal, of the covenants. Then came the shak- gins to doubt what Ihoth,.’ Rns;ell ~rol,e, and -,) ex-
ing relating to the Vm~; then follm~ed another shaking presses hm>.elf. Nowhe &sr(’gard,- *,he Ix~l(l’, ~;m’~,
with the fuller dlsens~ton of consecration and justlfica- whmhsays: "Tru.~t in the Lord ~ ith all tn,ll,’ h;art;
tmn; then follo~e(l the test coneermng the Seventh and leml not unto thine own umh.’r.-tandlng In all thy
Volume; and then another test in 1918 concerning the ways acknouledge hmband he shall du’(’.ct thy paths."
harvest and the ~ork. From all these fiery tests the Thus disregarding this admonffmn, aml being led
greater majority of the con-eclated ha~e emerged un- on by the subtle influence of the a&er-ar~, he con-
scathed; but some, because of bltterne.-_s of heart, have vinees himself that it is Ins solemn duty to undo all
become blmd of w.-mn, gone out or the truth and back the things that Brother lhls~ell taught a~,d to tm n the
into the ~or]d. hehn~ led auay by the error of the ehm’eh’s vision in the right ~a3. ]h~’ pr,.pares a wanu-
u raked. There is a reason for this. Let us examinethe script and charts in support of .-ame, .~etf,~g fo~tl~ ]us
face eoneermng the reason. views. Submitting it to others and being mh~-,’d that
Lucifer ~as a e~eature of hght and power and of his thoughts are wrong, he co~,.-hue, th~.~ to re(an
great beauty. Bohnhhng his own beauty and being im- de-we to prevent him from pernnttmg In- hght to ,h me,
pressed with his own ~ lsdom and al)lhty, he concluded and &sregard~ such advice. So thoreughh," 1. ~ h,, m>
to put into operatmn a plan of lus own, different from pressed that he mn*t thus teach the people an(I undo
God’s arrangement and th,, em rvmg out of whmhwould that which has beentaught, that he begins the tmbllca-
make Lucifer great hke unto .leho~ah. In Ins heart he tion of his thought~ and to send these forth to the
becamed,:loyal to God, tm’n,’,l awayfrom the li£ht and consecrated. I-1 ,s a~.aumentsseemplau~fi)le to tho~e x~ he
truth, and became the x~mkedone. ])~ohahly his reten- makeonly a ,-_uperfi(’,al e.xammatlon,arm e.-peclally to
tions uere good whenhe fir-~t began to exermse ]n.~ wis- those whoha~ e to~ got ten ~ hatthey were taught. Doubt
domand to be impressed x~th Ins own mlportance. Am- arises in the minds of stone who thus read. Nowtile
bition turned him blind and embittered his heart. Since test ~s on.
then he has sought by fraud and decmt and other ~rong-
QUESTIONS DISCUSSED YEARS AGO
ful means to hun all a~ay from Jehovah. God has per-
mitred this defleehon of the great and brfihant crea- About a year ago the.re began some agffatm], con-
ture Ludfer to be made prominent in his Word for cerning chronology, the crux of the argument h,]ng
some good purpose. The evident purpose is, that all of that Brother Ru~se]] ~as wrong concerning chronology
his other intelligent creatures might, learn the proper and parbmularly m error ~tll reference to the gentdo
lesson. tnnes. More than fifteen years ago these questions were
raised and thrashed out, and so clearly did Brother
AMBITION’S FRUITAGE Russell set forth the facts in VolumeII of S’ruDIcSis
Ever and anon there arises some one who has been Tt[E SCRIPTURES and m T~E WaTch{ TowJ:a, that ~t
following the Lord, for a time at least, who po%eases seemed a waste of hme and space now to further dis-
a measure of beauty of mind and character, and possd)ly cuss the matter m tlns journal; and the subject ~as
of person--one whotakes himself too sermusly. ]}Ie suc- d~,-m~s~odon that ground.
ceeds in convincing himse15that the l,ord has appointed Seed~ of doubt once sownand pernntted to ~,,, >n,mte
him to look after things divine and to lead God’s people in the heart growuntil the doubterturns to a,.,’,~-, ~t ,,~:n
rhe WATCH TOWER BROOKLYN,
N. Y,
or positive opposie]on. I£ the person holding the doubt his ~ork is equivalent to a repudiation of the Lord,
take~ himself too ~enoudy, thinking more highly of upon the principle heretofore announced.
his own mlportanee than he should think (Romans 12:
3), o,’ wherehe pernnts bitterness to abide in his heart, FULL TEST OF FAITH
darkness is almost certain to ensue. But every one whohas a desire in his heart to shine
Ag darien concerning the error in chronology has con- at the expense of the reputation of the Lord’s chosen
tinued to increase throughout the year, and some have servant, or whomeditates the building for himself of a
turned into positive opposition to that which has been reputation anmngst men that it may be said of him
written. This has resulted in some of the Lord’s dear that he was particularly wise--such a one is almost
sheep becoming disturbed in mind and causing them certain to have an opportunity to attempt to realize
to require, Why does not Tn~E WATOE TOWER say his desires. Every one of the consecnlted who has tile
something? Is not its silence tantamount to an admis- inchnation of heart to follow such self-constituted
sion that our chronology is wrong? leaders is almost certain to have an opportunity to
From tmle to time the question of publishing some- have a f.ull test of his faith. For this cause there arise
thing in this journal has been considered. Each time from time to tm~e conditions which operate as a test
the Lord has seemed to interfere, until now. Why of the faith of God’s people.
should such be the case? Our opinion is that the Lord Again the test is on. This time it is on chronology.
has permitted the delay in the reviewing of the ques- Andfollowing this lead, ]t uill be found that the road
tion of dn’onology since the agitation was begun in of doubt and opposition will carry one into doubting
order to gn, e those ~vho had tile u rong con&lion of the second presence of the Lm’d,the time of the lmrve~t,
heaPt an ,)pportumty to manife,t themselves, snd to the office of "that servant" and the one who filled it,
give the others an opportunity to have thmr faith te~ted. the evidences of tile end of. the world, the mauguratmn
of tile kingdom,tile ueamwssof the restoration of man,
FAITHFULNESS IS LOYALTY and fhmlly to a repudlatRm o~ God and our Lord Jesus
To be /altlfful means to be loyal. To be loyal to the Ctnl.-t and the blood ~l[ll u lUChwe were h,,ught.
Lord means to be obedient to the Lord. To abandon ’_Phe opening crevice for the enemy~]l/lb to blast at
or ]epud~at{2 ihe I~ord’~ chosen instrument n>ans to the Rock of Ag:s ls now nm,le b3 the ra,.mg of I’m
abandon oP ~Cl~Udla[e the LoPd him:elf, upon the prin- qu,-tRu, eoneelnulg the gentdu [m~e-’ Somethus nn-
ciple that lie uho r@’ct.~ tile servant sent by the Master D’~ -cd uttll their ouu v >~lombu’gHl to hold rclth tile
tbeleby J’elect-. the Master. arg,,ntent lhat the gentfl’: tm]es b":,qln u Ith the be-m-
There l, no one mpresent tPuth to, lay whocan ]ton- nn]g or the reign of Neb]lel’~dm’z:,a] mthe year oga
es{h sn~ that he received a knouledge of the d~ine plan B. C.; hence could not end m 1914; hence the pre~ent
from an~ source other tlla]t by tl/e rain>try of Brother work of the ehu]’el] ]s u]ong, and the course or aehon
Ilu~.ell, e]ther dlreetly or mdn’eetly. Throughhis pro- should be re~er.-ed. The holding of such vleus bhnds
phet l:zeMel .lehoxah foreshadoued the office of a ser- one to tile present events, nunnnlzes the unportanee of
va]’,t, designating lmn as one clothed with linen, with the t,’emendous, ev~deneesel the end of the a~,e D " causes
urttm’s inkhorn by Ills side, who was delegated to go those uho ha\e h.’en act~x{’ to ec,~e to be ult~e,_:es for
thJ,mghout the city (Christendom) and comfort tho.-_e the l.ord, and being thus led aua} IB the error of. tile
that .-.~ghed by enhghten ing their mindsrelatlxe to Ood’~ wickedone, the3 fall aua3 fr,:m sl ad;a-D~es,..--2 Peter
gr~at ptam Be it noted that tilts u,qs a fa~or bestoued 3 : 11’, 18.
]lot by man, but by tile Lord hmlself. But ml<eeplllg ~V~lhg~atltude to Cod tin’ ul,at l,e ila- done for u%
~ith lhe Lord’s arrangement he used a man. The man with SUl}lemeloxe for hmuu]th a heart’s smeePe desire
whofilled that office, by the Lord’s grace, ~as Brother to he led by him, u ith htunl)le and sincere supplication
lRussell. that he hold us by tile hand snd keep us m tilt hght,
Jesus {lcarly in&cared that during his second pres- let us come to an honest examination of the facts.
ence lie uould ha~e among.-t the chnPch a faithful and
wi~-e ser\ ant, through u hemhe ~ould gl~ e to the house- "TIMES"
hold of faith meat m due sea~on. The evidence is oxer- The ~ol’{1 ’gentde" is a term used to dt~tmgtush the
whelmmgconcerning the Lord’s second pleseuce, the nqI.~: of e,u[h aside from the Jews, the Jews being
time of the harvest, and that tile office of "’that ser~ ant" God’s c’,osen people, with whomhe made a covenant.
has been filled by Brother Rus,ell. q_’lils is ]lot man- The "gentile times" is a period of time during which
worship by any means. It matters not who Charles T. the gm~tfles shall exercise imperial or kingly powerover
Russell was--whether he was a doctor, a l]od-carrmr or the affairs of earth. God eonstduted Israel his chosen
a seller of shirts. St. Peter was a fisherman: St. Paul people sbove all other peoples. (Exodus 19: 6) This
a lawyer. But these matters are immaterial, a, bove fa~or they were to enjoy provided they remained obedi-
all, these menwere the ehoaen vessels of. the Lord. Re- ent ~o the Lord Jehovah. For then’ disobedience he
gardless of his earthly avoeahmi,above all, Brother Rus- permitted them to be punished from time to time, the
sell wa~, the Lord’s servant. Then to repudiate him and pun]slnnent being inflicted by other nations. (Judges
MAwr1, 1922 ,rh WATCH TOWER 133
3 : 1¢; 4: : 2, 3 ; 10 : 7, 8 ; 13 : 1) Jehovah
warnedthe na- Someof the Lord’s dear children have permitted ~hese
tion of Israel that should they fail to profit by these contradmtory and conflicting statements to dt,-turh thmr
chastisements thus mflmted, he would punish them minds. Tills has been the result of a l’a,lutc to study
seven times. "If ye will not yet for all this hearken carefully the evidence as set forth m the [hble and in
unto me, then I will punish you seven times more for the STUDIES IN T:I-[E SClltt"rUl:.gS. We ,p(aI, of them
your slns."--Leviticus 26: 18. here as opponents because opposed to or coni tadwting
A "time", as used in the Scriptures, has reference to the chronology we have. The conclusmn of some of
a year, either symbolic or literal. Symbohctime is these is as follows, to wit: "That the dlxlne h a~e of
reckoned aeccr,hng to a lunar year of 360 days. (See power to tile gentiles began ~lth the acec,~lon or Ne-
A 89.) The rule for counting symbolic hme is a day buchadnezzar to the throne in the year 606 B. C ; hence
for a year. (Numbers14:: 33, 34:; A-91) One hme being the accession of Nebuchadnezzar to the throne mark~
360 years in duratmn, seven times would be a period of the beglnmngof the gentile treats, and the 2520 years
2520 years. therefore wouldrun out ~n 1914:". Againthey .,.fate lll,tt
W~th Israel God estabhshed the true religmn, com- "Zedekiah was taken captive and Jeru-.alem fell an the
manding {hat the people should worship him and have year 587 B. C.; thus showing that the tull end el the
no other god. (Exodus 2,0: 1-3) Satan, the prince gentile trams and the fall of genhle government-. ~s
droll-, and the ruler of the gentde nations, e.-.tabhshed aa&earedto take place m1934:". (It x~ ,ll be oh.,_e~,~.d
~lth those nattons the false l’chgton; and tile gentiles that tMs positron is cont,’admeory ~tthtn itself.)
were taught to worship devils, symbolized in varmus Another or the opponents says that Nehuchadncz.’ar
folms and images. Jehovah erected a slndd for the began Ins rmgn in the-fourth )eat elf .Jeholaldm; tlt,d
chddren of Israd by providing in his law the severest the servitude of Israel to Bahylonbegan the sam(, year;
penalty for ~orsMping dexd,. Tram and time again tlmt the desolation began m the nineteenth y~’ar of
I~rael went off after the fMsc religmn, worstnpmgthe Nehuehadnezzar; that the fourth year of .~ehomkm~and
demongods; and for this they were punished.--Le~ ~ti- thc first year of Nehuehadnezzarwas 60t; B. C ; all(1
cn~ °6 : 1-16. tlmt the desolation began nineteen vears fl~erva!t,%
]t must be apparent to all careful students that the whwhshows the overthrow of Clmstendomm 1 q3.1.
permd of the gentile times wouhl be a pelmd of great l’:aeh of these opponents clam~s that the po~lt,,,n
pml}shmentto Israel, and that that period of hme must taken is suppo~ted by secular history and that thmeh),’e
begin u ith some specific pumshnmntmarking the be- B~(,tlmr Russell uas mtstaken m his eonelusums about
g,:mmg of the gentile times defilntely and must con- the d~ronolo~zy. They also admit that lhe~ weH¢od,of
tinue for a defimte period of seven times, or 2520 years. cou~t~ng tvme changes H~epe.rwd of the l,’~ngs from 513
The question at issue is, Whendid this period of the years to 494: years.
gentde trams begin and when is the end thereof> 2 here
fa~t~ cannot be proven by profane history, because ,ueh BROTHER RUSSELL’S CONCLUSIONS
hi~t, lry is made by menwhoacted as agents of Satan’s
The eonclusmn of Brother ]lussell, reached from a
empire and hence were nnrehal~le" for Satan is the
careful examination of the Seriptmes, ~s sueeln(.t]y
father of lies. (John 8:44) Let e~eryom~’ who w>_hes
stated in VolmneII of STUDIES IN THEScnlI"rt:~:~:s.
to be bound by such authority do so; but surely all
page 7q, as follows:
Christm’~s will want to stand by the Bride. "The ]}~bll, ex~denee is clear and strong tlmt the ’tml,,S
Anabsolutely safe rule to follow, therefore, is this: of tile m,nlih,s’ is a permd’of 2520 years, from the 3t’ur
Whele the testimony of the Bible is clear and plato, B C 1;01; lo and including A. D 1914. This lease ot tim-
follow that alx~a3s. Where secular or profane lnslory %(q’~,,l[ dolllllill)ll [O gentile goverllllle|l|s, ItS we |l{tVe all’(,,Idy
is corroborated by the Bible, such testm~ony may be seen, I)(,~,m u,th Nebuchadnezzar--~mt w]tcn h~s reign b(’mtit,
but ~ lu.n lhe t.x incal kingdom of the Lord passed away. :rod
considered for what it is ~ol’th as cumulative exMcuee.
the (h,m.l.ln of tile whole world was left in the blinds .f
Where secular or profane h>fory Js contrary to the tilt. gt’nlth’s The date for the beginning of tile gent,le |lines
Bible. follow it never.--Roman~ 4: 3. is, therelme, definitely marked as at the time of tim ~emo/~tl
of lhc t io. n of God’~ typical kingdom f, om Zcdcl, mh. their
OPPONENTS’ CONCLUSIONS ldsl king"
’1’o a~ o~d any confusionwewall state that tile datesB.C. A careftd e.xamination of the Biblical proof herein
in tln~ article signify the numberof years before Christ, set forth denlonstrates that in their position on ehrono-
as ~e ha~,e been accustomed to stating them; exactness ogy the opponents of Brother Russell are wrong, and
m@~t,however, sometimes call for the previous year, that Brother Russell was right. In arriving at a con-
as the mtmeof the year, as distinguished from tile e]usion. Brother Russell did not ah~ax s state each -top
mtmberof full years elap,~ed. in detail; but his conclusions are plainly and definitely
Those who have attempted in recent months to prme stated and are based upon the Scriptures. Wemust
¢l,.at the chronology as prepared and pubhqhedby Broth- indulge the presmnption, therefore, ’chat he pursued a
er Russell is wrong make statements not only contra- sound course of reasoning in arriving at these conclu-
dicting Brother Russell, but contradictory in themselves. sions if we ]qnd the conclusions are correct.
134, ,’ra WATCH TOWER BROOKLYN,N. ~J~.
Weno~ propose to prove that ]tie gentile ]roles, a old when he began to reign [628 B. 0.] ; and he reigned
peiqod of 2520 years, began in the year 606 B. C. and eleven years [612 B. C.]in Jerusalem. In his days
ended in the fall of the 3ear 1914; and that the ouster Nebuchadnezzar king of Babylon came up, and Jehoia-
proceedings began promptly thereafter and on tnne. In kim becamehzs se]’Po, nt three years: then he turned and
maMngthis proof we rely upon the Bible and not upon rebelled against hini [Nebuchadnezzar]." (2 Kings 23:
~eeular or profane history. Weconsider the points in 36; 24: 1) "Against him [Jehoiakim] came up Nebu-
the order numberedhereinafter, as follows, to wit: chadnezzar king of Babylon, and bound lmn in fetters,
to carry him to Babylon."--2 Chromcles 36:6.
POINT h TENURE OF KINGS The carrying away of Jehoiaehin to Babylon was in
The time and duration of the rmgn of the various the year 617 B. 0. Jehoiakim’s reign having begun in
kings of Israel is one of the Biblical methodsof estab- 628 B. C., and he hawngrmgned elex en yea]’~,’ neces-
lishing the various dates in our chronology. Saul, sarily it ended in 617 B. C. At that time Nebnehad-
Israel’s first king, began to reign in the year A. M. nezzar was in the eighth year of his reign. Thus the
3009. The total period of the tenure of the kings of Scriptures prove beyond any qnc.-t]on of a doubt that
Israel was, to wit, 513 years. The reign of the kings the captivity did not begin in the first year of Nebu-
ended with the year A. M. 3522. No careful Bible chadnezzar’s reign; nor did the desolatmn begin th.,re.
students will dispute these facts. No other conclusion It is therefore seen that it is utterly ]mpo,,_~Jble for
can be reached except by juggling the figures and ig- the gentile t,mes to have begun in the first year of
noring the Bible statements. Nebuehadnezzar’.~reign, to x~]t, 625 B. C. No one elamls
In TtrB WATC~ TOWER of May 15, 1896, page 112, that the genhle times began In 617 B. C., the year
is set forth a statement of chronology from Adamto Jehoiakim ~a.-. taken and put to death, as indeed such
1914. These figures are given in Anne Mundi time. a claim could not be snecc, sshdly made in view of the
Accordingto this calculation it is proven by the Scrip- evidence herenmfter set forth.
tures there cited that Jehoiakim’s reign began in the
yam A. M. 3500, which corresponds to the year 628 HISTORIC CORROBORATION
B. C. The beginning of the reign of Jehoiakim, being It is reasonable to suppose that the Jewish historian
definitely fixed, gives us a starting point from which to Josephus, being deeply interested in his own people,
count the time and by which to determine the universal would be more reliable in fixing dates than would the
reign of Nebuchadnezzar and to reach a proper con- historians of the gentile nations. Wedo not at all need
clusion relative to the gentile times. the testimony of Josephus, but because it is corroborated
The first year of the reign of Nebuchadnezzar, king by the Bible we cite it here for what it is worth. He
of Babylon, was the fourth year of the reign of Jehoia- plainly states that no attack was made upon Jerusalem
kim. "The fourth year of Jehoiakim the son of Josiah at the beginning of Nebuchadnezzar’s reign. Wequote
king of Judah, that was the first year of Nebuchad- from Antiquities of the Jews, Book X, Chapter VI,
~ezzar king of Babylon." (Jeremiah 25: 1; see also pages 365-367 :
;Jeremiah 46:2) Since Jehoiakim’s rmgn began in 628 "In the fourth year of .Iehoiakim, one whose name was
NebuehadnezTnr took the government over the Babylonians;
B. C., it follows that the first year of Nebuchadnezzar’s who at the s, me time went up with a great army to the
reign was the year 625 B. C. There was no attack made etty Carchemish, wllieh xxas at Euphrates; upon a resolution
upon Jehoiakim by Nebuchadnezzar in the year of 625 tl,at he had taken to light with Neeho king of Egypt, under
B. C., the first year of Nebuchadnezzar’sreign. There whom all Syria then was. And when Neeho und.erstood the
could have been no attack as a king made by him earlier intention of the king of Babylon, and that this expedition
was made against hHll, he did not despise his attempt: but
than that. It was in that fourth year of Jeho]aldm’s made ]taste with a great band of men to Euphrates, to
reign and the first year of Nebuchadnezzar’s re]gn, to defend himself from Nebuchadnezzar. And when they had
wit, the year 625 B. 0., that the prophet Jeremiah joined battle he was beaten, nnd lost ninny thousands of
dehvered the divine decree pointing out that it was his soldiers. So the king of lIdbylon p’~ssed over the Eu-
phrates, and tool; all Sslm, ns far as Pelusium, e’~eel}t~T9
God’s determination to leave the land of Palestine deso- Judea. But when Nebuchadnezzar bad already reigned 1our
late as a punishment upon Israel. years, which was tile eighth of .lehoml;,ln’S government over
the Hebrew% tim king of Babylon made an expedition xx~th
THE FIRST ATTACK mighty forces agumst tim aexx% and required tribute of
In the fourth year of the reign of Nebuchadnezzar ~lehoiakim ; threatening l~pon Ins refusal to make war "L’-’a ms]
him. He was affrighted at Ins threatening, and bought
(and therefore the eighth year of the reign of Jehoia- h~s peace with mone.~; and brought the tribute lm was
kim), Nebuchadnezzar made his first attack against ordered to bring for three years.
Jerusalem; and in that year Jehoiakim became the "But on the lhild year. upon hearing that the king
servant or vassal to the king of Babylon. Three years of Babylon made nh expedition against the Egyplinn% he
did not pay ins tPilmI,,....
late]’, to wit, in the year 617 B. C., the same being the "A little tim{.’ alt~.rua,(l, the king of Babylon nmde an
eleventh year of the reign of Jehoiakim, Nebuchadnez- expedition against ,h.lmJ,tkim, who received hinl H]Io the
zar took Jehoialdm a prisoner and put him to death. city; and thib out of fear of the foregoing predictions of
The record reads : "Jehoiakim was twenty and five years ae]ennah, as ~upposlng he should suffer nothing that was
WATCH TOWER 135
terrible; because he nmther Mint the gates, nor fought Jeremmh the prophet speaking from the mouth of the
against hun. 5.’el when he was come rote tile city, he d~d Lord. And he also rebelled against king Nebuchadnez-
not obserxe the eoxenants he had made; but he slew Slleh
as ~ere in lhe flower of their age. ttlld such as were of the zar .... They mocked the messengers of God, and
greatest thgmty, together with their king Jehoi.lkim, whom despised his words, and misused his prophets, until the
he commanded to be throx~n betore the wails, without any wrath of the Lord arose against his people .... There-
bmhtl, and nhlde Ills son Jehoiaehm king of tile country, fore he brought upon them the king of the Chaldees
and of tile city ; he also took tile principal persons m dlgmty
for captives, three thousand in number, and led thmn away [Nebuchachmzzar], who slew their young men with the
to Babylon. Among these was tile prophet Ezekiel, who was sword in the house of their sanctuary, and had no com-
Ihen but yctung And this xxas the .elm of king aehomkim, pas.~mn upon young nlan or ma~den, old nlan, or him
when he had Ii~e,I thn’ts-six years, and reigned eleven But that stooped for age: he gave them all rote his hand.
he w:ts succeeded in the kingdom by .]ehomehin, whose Andnil the vessels of the house of God,great and small,
mother was zNehust’t, a mtizen of Jel’llsallenL He reigned
three mm,ths and ten days" and the treasures of the house of the Lord, and the
3ehomchmreigned on]x tlm,e month.~ and ten days, treasures of the king, and of hl~ princes; all *hese he
and was succeeded by Zedekiah. whose rm~l began in brought to Babylon. And they burnt the house of God,
the year 617 B. C. "Jehomehm was eight years old and brake dov,n the wall of Jerusalem, and burnt all
when he began to reign, and he reigned three months the palaces thereof with fire, and destroyed all the
and ten days m Jerusalem: and he did that wlneh was goodly vessels thereof. Andthem that had escaped from
evil m the sight of the Lord. And when the year was the sword carried he away to Babylon; ~herc they ~ere
cxt,red, king Nebuchadnezzar sent, and brought him serxants to hun and his sons untd the rmgn of tim
to Bab3 Ion, ~ith the goodly vessels of the house of the kingdomof Persia: to fulfill the word of the Lord by
Lord, and made Zedekiah, lus brother, king over Judah the mouth of Jeremiah, untd the land had enjoyed
and Jerusalem. Zedekiah was one and twenty years old her sabbaths: for as loetg as she lay desolate she kept
,~hen he began to rmgn, and reigned eleven years in sabbath, to fulfill threescore and ten years."--2 Chroni-
Jerusalem." (2 Chronicles 36: 9-11) Thus it is clearly cles 36 : 12, 13, 16-21.
seen that the rmgn of Zedckmh, which began in 617 NO CAPTIVITY BEFORE617 B. C.
B. C.. la,ted eleven years and ended in 606 B. C. He Tlns occurred at the end of the reign of Zedekiah, to
was the last king of Israel. wit, in the year 606 B. C.
POINT I1: DECREE FOR PUNISHMENT In corroboration of this we rote the fm’tber record
A decree means a judwml detmmmatmnby one hay- dealing with the same subject matter, made by Ezekiel
mg authm’lty, defining what mttst be done. It means the prophet. Ezekiel counts the time mentmnedin his
a sentence pronmmeedthat must be cnfm’eed. Neces- prophecy from the date that he and other Jews were
sarily decrees are always entered before they are en- taken captive and carried away to Babylon. (Ezekiel
forced. Jehovah pronounced through Moses a dwine 1:1,2; 8:1; 20:1) This captivity began in the year
decree or judgment that should be enforced against, 617 B. C. In the seventh year of that captivity, in the
Israel as a pumshment, and the decree is in these fifth month and the tenth day of the month, to wit,
words: "1 will make your reties ~aste, and bring ymtr about the first day of August, 610 B C., wluch was
sanctuaries nT~to desolahon,, alul I will not smell the the fifteenth year of the reign of Nebuchadnezzar, the
sa~or of 3our sweet odols. And 1 wdl bring the land dlvnm decree for the pun>hmentof lsrael was restated
vtto desolation: and your enemmswhmhdwell thereto in other phrase by the plophet Ezekiel.--Ezekml 20: I.
shall be a,~tonished at it."--Lex Iticus 26:31, 32. The same judmml deternmmhon of Jehovah as set
It must be concededby all that the taking of certain forth m Levlhcus 26:31-33 was restated by Ezekiel
of the Israehtes as pmsoner.-_ and carrying them away in the follmvmg words: "Therefore thus sadh the Lord
to Babylon would not constitute an enforcement of God B.~eause ye have made your imqmty to be remem-
this demee. The putting to death of Jehoiakma m no bered, ;n lhat your tran~gre~.sions are discovered, so
wise fulfilled the decree. Besides after his death Zede- that i- ;~11 your doings your ~]ns do al)pear; hecause,
kiah continued to be the king of I~rael and rmgnedfor say. that ye are cometo remembrance,ye shall be taken
eleven years. Surely during those eleven ~cars the city with the hand. And thou, profane wicked prince of
was not in waste : nor were the sanctual .... mdesolatmn. Israel, whose day is come, when mlqmty shall ha~e an
Surely during that period the Jews o!l,’~ed thmr sacri- end. thus saith the Lord God: llemove the dmdcm,and
fices in Jerusalem. When. then, in all the h~-tory of take off the crown; this shall not be the ~ame: exalt
Israel do we find any record of the enforcement of th~s him that is low, and abase tmn that is high. I will
divine decree? The Scriptures answer that ~t had ~ts overturn, overturn, overhu’n it; and it shall be no more,
fulfillment ;n the latter part of the rei,zn of Zedekiah. nnhl he comewhose right it is; and I will give it [to]
God had restated the decree of judzment a~amst him."--Ezekicl 21: 24-27.
Israel through Jeremiah. Concerning Z,.,lekiah *,he last ’l’hl~ restatement of the divine decree occurred four
king, we read: "He did that which was evil mthe siKht year,, before its enforcement. Brother Russell says that
of the Lord his God, and humbled not himself before the cnfm cement of this divine decree marks the begin-
n]n,a of the gentile times; and Brotlwr llu~,ell t- Light. tm~, (Darnel 1:1) is flu.-.: That the_ "thu’d yea~’" here
--B-;~), ¶¶ 2, 8. means tlw tlurd ~ea~ of the ~a.~.-alage el ,Ieholaklm to
Nebuchadlwzzat; or "th,, tlm’d xear ot .lehomkml J-,~
GENTILE TIMES BEGAN 606 B. C. vassal kmg]". It ~s plainly stated m the Scr,ptur -:,
God llad promised that the scephc shouhl not depart as heretofore set forth, that m the e~ghth year ot the
from Judal~ nor a lawgiver from between his feet until rmgn of Jehoiaknn as king, Nebuchadnezzar came
S]nloh come. (Genesis 49: 10) It will be observed that against him and Jehomkm~became bl.~ servant and
the decree of punishment &dnot include the removal pa~d tribute to Nebuchadnezzar three 9ea~s and then
of the sceptrc. It merely states: "Removethe diadem, rebelled against hnn. (2 Kings 2t: 1) Therefore, ~t ~as
take off the crown". The crown is a symbol of ml- exactly three 2ears later the l’egmmng(d h~s vas-aI,~ge,
penal dominion or rulership; while the sceptre ~s a to w~t, the year 617 B. C., that Ncbuchadnezza~ be-
staged Jerusalem and took gehoiakmb and at the ,ame
symbol of imperial authority or right. The enforcement
tram carried a~ay the p~ophets Daniel, Ezekiel. a,d
of this diwne decree, therefore, took away from Israel
others, including tlananiah, 1Kishael, and Azavmh,
the dominion, which dominion should be enjoyed by
the gentiles until the comingof him whose right it is, ~hose names were changed by the king to Shadrach,
namely, Shiloh, the Messiah. The gentile tm~es, there- Moshaeh, and Abed-nego, respeehvely. Daniel wrote h~s
fore, cmfld not possibly begin until the enforcement of t)rophecy Mule he ~as m Babylon; and ~t i~ qmte
apparent that he corn,ted tune from the date ot the
tins dwine decree. (Ezekiel 21: 24-27) And ~mceit ~as
beginning of the x a,-.-alage of Jehoiakimas king. Mani-
pronounced by the prophet Ezeldel whale Zedekmhwas
t’estly, then. the mgumentof Brother Russell’- -ppo-
the king, it conclusively proves that the gentile tmles
d,l not begin with the captivity of .]ehomkml or of nents that the gentde tnnes began during the ring, of
Jehomchm.but did begin with the overthrow of Zede- Jehomkim must fall.
kiah. POINT IV: NEBUCHADNEZZAR’S DREAM
About August 1, 606 [606{~] B.C., Nebuchadnozzarthe Again, opponents of the chronology as set forth hy
king of Babylon broke down the city of Jerusalem and Brother 12ussell state that the beginning of the genhle
destroyed it, took Zedekiah and put out tus eyes, and trams is marked bv the accession of Nebuchadnezzar to
desolated the city and the land. (Jeremmh 39: 2-9) the throne of Babylon, and m support of this contention
Thusfromanotherline of proof is deft n it,,l~ ~.,,tabllsl~ed
e~te Daniel 2: 1. Tlus argument nmst likewise fall.
that the divine decree was enforced m 606 11. C., en(hng Darnel 2:1 read~: "In the second year of the re.ign
the dominion of Israel and pernuttmg the gentries to of Nebuchadnezzar, Nebuchadnezzar dreamed dreams,
c,~tablish a untversal domimon.Here, at tlns tram, it wherewith lus spirit was troubled, and his sleep brake
x~a~ that Jehovah, figuratively speaking, ~ lthdrew from from him". The dream itself is set forth in verses 31
the stage of actmn aml permitted Satan, through his to 35 of the same chapter. Nebuchadnezzar the king
repr,,’*entatlve, Nebuehadnezzar,to estabhsh a universal had brought b,fore lmn magmmns,astrologers, sorcer-
cmpuc.Here it was that Satan became the ’god of the ers, and Clmhleans to interpret lus dream, and all of
~hoh,world’; and from that tram forward his rule them failed. "Then Amoeh[the captain of the king’s
through earthly representatives is s~mbollzed by a udd guard] brought m 1-~amel before the king in haste, and
b~’a
~t. sam tlms unto lmn. 1 havc found a man of the cap-
nves of Judah, that ~ ,ll make knownunto the king the
POINT III: DISCREPANCY EXPLAINED interpretation The king ansuered and said to Dantel,
Opponents of Brother Ilusscll’s eonelusmns on chro- whose name uas Belteshazzar, Art thmt able to make
n,loz~ attempt to show that the divine deeree against known unto me the dream ~hieh I ha~e seen, and the
lsra,1 hegan to be enforee, d mthe third year of the interpretation thereof ?’--Darnel 2 : 25, 2(;.
reign of Jehomkmband ctte as authordv Daniel 1:1, It is utterly m~po.~.-d,le for flus transachon to have
~ hmh~ead,q : "In the thn d year of the rcizn of Jehom- occurred in the second year of the reign of Nebmhad-
klnl king of Judah came Nebuehadnezzar king of Baby- nezzar for the following reasons, to w~t: (1) because
Ion unto Jerusalem, and besmgedit". A eareful e.xam- Daniel, in the second year of Nebuchadnezzar, was not
l,atmn of this text at once shows that there is a dis- in Babylon and could not then have been ta~:en b~fore
cl~,pancy. In the third year of Jehomkim’s reign, as the kh~,g; (2) hecanse he was taken to Babylon in the
~,. haxe heretofore seen, Nebuchadnezzar was not yet year 617 B. C., which was the e~ghth year of the reign
]~’mq of Babylon. He did not become king until a year of Nebuchadnezzar; and (3) because Dame] was not
lat,.r (Jeremiah 25: 1) ; and the plain Scriptural slate- permitted to appear before the king until after he had
merits’ heretofore cited showthat Nebuchadnezzar’sfirst been m Babylon three years, according to his owntesti-
att.M; against Jerusalem began in the eighth ~.,car of mony.
the reLgn of Jehoiakim. tIenee ~t was impossdJle for The facts heretofore set forth detlnitely establish the
iron to attack in the third year of Jehoiakim’, rmgn. correctnes,~ of rea.,ons (1) and (2). Weproceed to
The proper and reasonable explanation of th~s Scrip- examination of (3)
WATC H TOWER 137
]n the e@~th year of has reign Nelmchadnezzar ear- ere~se donmuon)~as taken from Israel. and a gentile
ne, I a~a~ to Babylon many of tile Jews, among~h(>m king pclputted to exercise that po~er. Now~e intro-
w~,re DanMand the three tIebrew children. The king duce another hue of proof by beginning at a later tixcd
ga\e an order unto Ashpenaz, the ma,~ter oi tu.~ eu- date and counting back, measuring the time by unml-
nuch,-., that he should bring certain of these Israehtes peaehable Bfl)hcal testmlony, which also shows the be-
"m ~homwas no blennsh, but ~ell favored, an([ skflful ginning of the gentile ttmes to be 606 B. C. The latter
in all x~ h-.dom, and cunning m knowledge, and under- hne of proof is a complete eorroboratmn of the former.
standing ,,_eienee, and such as had abihty m them to God had foretold through his prophet Isamh (see
stand m the king’s palace, and whomthey nnght teach chapters 44 and 45) that tl~e kingdom of the Bah)ion-
th.J h,a m.g and the tongue of the Chaldeans". In other ians under Nebuchadnezzar would be overthrm~n and
~ ords, those so selected were to be educated and trained. that then Israel uould be returned to her own land.
"And the king appointed them a daffy prowston of the The Lind’s prophet even named the wetormu,~ kuig,
king’s meat, and of the wine whmhhe drank; so nour- Cyrus. The date of the beginning of the reign of Cyrus
ishing them three years, that at the end thereof they therefore becomesm~portant.
might stand before the king. Nowamongthese were of The rmgn of Cyrus 1.~ ~hown by the teshmony of
the children of Judah, ])amel, IIanamah, _~ilshael, and ninny secular or profane lustormns. This te.-_tmmuy is
ATanah. Nowat th, e end of the days [to ~,t. three heir. cited for two rea-_ons: (1) because there 1~ ~caleely
years] that the king had ,-_aid that he should br,ng them a doubt about the emrectnes, of the date as qat’,d ; and
Jn then the prince of the eunuchs brought them m be- (2) because the date ~s corroborated by the SerH,tural
role Nebuchadnezzar. And the king communed with proof. Igenee the secular lu.tory nmvbe used a; cmnu-
them; and among them all ~as found none hke Darnel, lative testnnony under the lul,’. Weg~xe hclow a mtm-
Ita,anmh, MMmel,and Azanah: theTefore stood they ber of these authorities.
be]ore the /,’tng."--Damel 1 : 3-6, 18, 19.
REIGN BEGAN 536 B. C., SAY HISTORIANS
DATE OF DREAM WAS 614 B. C. Smith’s B&/eD~ctw~a~y,under the t~th.’ "’Cal)t~ ~tms
According to the king’s decree, this transaetmn of of the Jews", pages 99 and’100, says: "Th(, I;,~hxhmmu
Damel’s standing before the king could not have oc- eaptMty ~as brought to a-elo,e by the decree of Cyrus..
curred unid the end of the three years of instruction, B. C. 536".
which was, to wit, in the year 614 B. C. and m the Bible Comments(,Iam].aon, Faueett aml|~1’,)’~’~11), Vol.
eleventh year of the reign of Nebuchadnezzar.Evidently 1, page 288, g~ves the date of the re,g~, of (?~m~- and
it was about one year thereafter that Nebuchadnezzar the ~ssuing of the decree as 536 B. C.
had the dream in question. Swmtou’sHistory. page 40. g~ve,, 5.~(~ B. C. as the
Nowto removeall doubt as to the correctness of this date of the edict of C)rus for the refill’It of th,’ ,lews.
conclusion, we find that the Variorumrendering of this H~stor,ans" H, story of the 1Fo, ht. Vol. 2. lm~e 27,
text (Darnel 2: 1) is: "And in the twelfth year of the gives 536 B. C. as the date of the decree of C~ r,- for
reign of Nebuchadnezzar, Nebuchadnezzar dreamed the return of the Jews.
dreams," etc. The circumstantial evidence produced by Universal Eucyclopedln,,Vol. 6. page4,15.g~(’- 536
Daniel tmnself proves that the Variorum rendering is B. C. as the date of the ~e~gnof C\~,~
correct. Sanford’s Concise Cyclopedia of lNh,/w,~ h’n,), /edge,
The explanatmn of Daniel 2: 37, therefore, is that in page 471. ~ves the date of the hegmmngof Cyrus’,
the interpretation he told the king in substance that reign as 535 B. C.
Jehovah had determined that he (Nebuchadnezzar) should In the Ser,ptures we read: "Nowm the, fir.-t ~’ear
be the head of the image observed. Weare not left to of Cyrus king of Persm, that the word of the Lord
guess about matters of this kind, because the apostle spoken by the mouth of Jeremmh m@~the a~c,,mph4~-
Paul plainly says that God"ealleth those things which ed, the Lord st~rred up the ,~l TM~t of (M’u: I;m~ of
be not as though they were". (Romans 4: 17) Other- Persm, that he made a proelamahon fhro,.4hout all Ins
wise stated, Jehovah had determined that Nebuchadnez- kingdom, and put it also m writing saying, Thus .~mth
zar should occupy this position; but at that particular Cyrus king of Persia, All the king&m~.- of the earth
hme Zedekiah was the king, had been king for three hath the Lord God of heaven g~en me; and he hath
years, and reigned thereafter eight years belore Nebu- charged me to build him an house m Jerusalem, ~ hieh
chadnezzar really assumed the positron as head of the is in Judah. Whois there amongyou of all lus people?
image. The Lord Ins God be w~th him, and let hw,~ go ~p."
(2 Chronicles 36: 22, 23) "Then rose up the duet of
POINT V: THE REIGN OF CYRUS the fathers of Judah and Benjamin, and the Imests.
The argument hereinbefore made proves that the and the Levites, with all them whose spirit (;,)d had
gentile tnnes as a period is based upon the tenure of raised; to go up to bmld. the. house of the Lm&~l~:(,h is
office of the .Jm~lsh kings. This ewdeneeshows that it m Jerusalem .... Also Cyruq the l<m? l):,,u,,ht forth
~as the year 606 B. C. when the crown (power to ex- the vessels of the house of the Lord. x~l,-~- x~,,Imehad-
138 ,rh, WATCHTOWER BROOKLYN,
N. Y.
nezzar had brought forth out of Jerusalem .... All DESOLATE FOR SEVF~NTY YEARS
these did Sheshbazzar bring up with them of the cap- The proof heretofore adduced shows that the rmgn of
tivity that were brought up from Babylon unto gem- Cyrus began in the year 536 B. C.; and that the first
salem."(Ezra 1: 5, 7, ll)"And whert the seventh month year of his rmgn marked the end of the desolation of
was come and the children of Israel were in the reties, the land, in whmhyear he issued a decree for the re-
the people gathered themselves together as one man to bmldmgof Jerusalem. The Scriptures cited show that
Jerusalem .... They gave money also unto the ma- tlns period of desolation was to be seventy years in
sons, and to the carpenters; and meat, and drink, and duration. Counting back, then, seventy years from 536
off, unto them of Zidon, and to them of Tyre, to bring B. C. brings us to 606 B. C., completely corroborating
cedar trees from Lebanonto the sea of Joppa, according the other hne of proof showing that 606 B~ C. is the
to the grant that they had of Cyrus king of Persia "- date when the crown was removed from Israel, when the
Ezra 3:1, 7; see also Ezra 5: 12-14. desolstmn began, and when the gentile times began.
This Scriptural proof shows that the Jews’ captivity Incnlentally, here we remark that muchhas been said
to Babylon ended with the first year of the rmgn of about the nineteen years of the reign of Nebuchadnezzar
Cyrus; and the secular historians above cited shm~that before the overthrow of Zedekiah; and an attempt is
that year was 536 B. C. In the next succeeding pmnt madeto showthat thts indicates that there is a parallel
will be observed the ScrqJtural proof showing that the of mneteen years to be fulfilled with reference to the
date 536 B. C. is correct, which proof also shows that close of the gentile trams and the complete fall of gen-
the date 606 B. C. is the beginning of the gentile trams. tile government.,. There is absolutely no justlficatmn
for any such eonc]usmn. It is not warranted by rea.on
POINT VI: DESOLATION NOT CAPTIVITY nor by Scriptures. The nineteen years have nothing
Muchconfusion has rcstflted trom using the words what-_oeverto do ~ ith the gentile times, their beginning,
captix~ty, servitude, and desolahon as synonymous end. or the overthrow of govermnents. It has merely
terms. The Jews were m captnlt 5 more tlmn once and been injected to confuse ttle minds of some. Were@it
for &fferent periods of time; but there ~as only one as ~ell say that because a cat has "nine lives" Jt ~ould
period of desolation. It is true that the Jews were in take nine years to k,ll all the cats. as to say that. be-
captivity dnrmgthe period of dose]alton, but such cap- cause Nebuchadnezzar reigned rnneteen v(,ars befme he
tivlty was merely incidental to ttle de~olation. Their overthrew Zedekiah, thelett)le tim o~(.]thltm of g,ntde
first captivity to Nebuchadnezzar began in the year dommmn u ould be nineteen 3ear- after 1914. ’[’he ar-
617 B. C.. and not untd eleven years thereafter was gumentis unreasonable, unscriptural, and non~-en-.mal.
the land made desolate, without all lnhalntant. What
God intended for us to understand nmst be determined POINT VII: THE END--OUSTER PROCEEDINGS BEGUN
by the language employedin h,, decree for the punish- Uponall tile evidence there cannot be the shghtest
menr of I,_rael. Thereto he sald "I will make your doubt about the genhle times. The lea.e of umxer:al
mt,e., uaste, and bring ~our ~a~,ctuarics unto desola- dominion to tile gentries conld not begin as long as
tion. and I will not .~mell the ~a~or of veto’ s~eet odors. there was a vestige of God’s typical king(Iota. It mat-
And I x~lll hri,g the land into devolaHon: mid your ters not when the heathen king Nebuchadnezzar began
enemies whkhdwell thereto shall he sstoni,t~ed at it." his reign. The nineteen years of lns rmgn so much
(Leviticus 26:31, 32) Time and again the Lord re- spoken of are ~holly mnv.~lerml, form,an to the issue.
stated the decree thrmlgh the mouth of ,leremmh: "I The possessmn and exercise of nnperJal dolnmmn by
will make .leru~alem heaps, and a den of dragons; and Israel, s)mbohzedby the crm~n, ceased ~ ben that crown
I will maketim cities of Judah desolate. ~ ~thout an in- wa~ removed, to wit, when the last ruler of Israel ~as
habitant". (Jeremiah 9:11; see also Jeren, ah 33: 10; dethroned. That occurred m oo~, B. C. There the do-
34: ~2) As heletofore seen, ttns &vine decree was en- mimonto the ~hole world uas left; m the ban(k- of the
forced ~lth the merthrow of Zedekmhin the year 606 gentries, whida date is by every line of proof fixed a~
B. C. 606 B. C. There the period of gentile dominion began.
The period of flus desolation of the land is fixed by Being seven syml)ohe times in dnratmn, to wit, 2520
the Scriptures as seventy years. The lmrpose of the en- years, it ended in 1914 k. D.
forcelnent of the divine decree as set forth m 2 Chroni- But, say tho~_e uho oppose Brother Russell’s conclu-
cles 36:18-20 was "to fulfill the word of the Lord by sions, what has happened to showtlmt the gentile hines
the mouth of Jeremiah, until the land had enjoyed her have ended? Are not .the gentile government~still ex-
sabhaths; for as long as she lay desolate she kept sab- ercising ruling pm~er~ Are not things going on they
bath. to fulfill threescore and ten years". (Verse 21) wme from the Ile,~mnmg?
The prophet Jeremiah had said "This whole ]and shall Weanswer. E~erythmg has happened that the Lord
be a desolation, and an a=tomshment; and these nations foretohl weald happo,, W~ththe clase of the (Jewish)
shall serve the king of Babylon seventy years".--Jere- year 1914, he whose ~lght it is took unto himself his
miah25 : 11. great power and began his reign ; the nations were an-
1, WATCH TOWER 1:;9
gry, and the day of God’s wrath began.--Ezekwl 21: people mlgtlt recognize the htdeonsness of Satan’s em-
27 ; Revelation 11 : 17, 18. pire and the blessedness oliered by the hlessiamc em-
pn’e, to the end that manyof these nnght be brought
GENTILE TIMES ENDED IN 1914
through the trouble and be ready for the restmatmn
On file first day of October, 1914, Brother Russell bless,ngs that are to follow.
walked into the dining-room at Bethd and, clapping
To this end, exactly on hme, the ouster proceedings
his hands, anneunced m stentorian tones" "The gentile began in the World War, followed quickly by iamine,
times have ended! The kings of earth have had their pe.-_tllence, and rmolu/,on, the rehaMhtation of Pales-
day!" Brother Russell was right then. He was r,ght tree by the Jews, persecution of Christians in various
when he wrote VolumeII concerning the gentile tm~es.
If the contention of his opponents concerning chronolo- parts of the earth, offenses amongst those whoclaim to
be Jesus’ followers, vhfle the love of manywaxedcold.
gy is right, then everything that translm’ed in 1914 and All of these things Jesus stated wouldconstitute a try-
since must be disregarded as ewdenceoi ’~lessmh’s king- ing time, a trial of faith and patmnce, which wmfld be
dom. It is admitted by them that the tenure of office so severe that only ’he that endureth to the end should
of Israel’s kings must be changed in order to agree with be saved’. (Matthew 24: 7-13) While these ouster pro-
seine historians who were agents of Satan. Such a ceedings are m progress, he commandsIns follm~ers to
change would put out of joint all cur chronology, and
destroy the value of the dates 1874, 1878, 1881, 1910, tell the people that Satan’s empn’ehas ended; that the
gentile tnnes have ended; that the worhl has ended, and
1914, and 1918. Such would be equivalent to saying,
"Where is the proof of Ins presence?" "My Lord de- here is the proof of it; that the kingdom of heaven is
layeth his coming."--2 Peter 3:4:; Matthew 24: 48. at hand; that the hmeof resto~atmn is here; that mil-
Is any Chr>han so bhnd that he cannot see what lions nm~hying will never din, an(l that "tlu,~ gospel
happened m 1914 and thereafter, e~idencmg the end [good new~] of the ]dngdom shall be preached m all
the world for a witness unto all natmns, and then shall
of the gentile times? By way of fllustrahon: A tenant the end qome".
holds a piece of property under a lease, whmhlease ex-
pires January 1, 1914. The tenant refuses to vacate. Are those who oppose the conclu~,ions of Brother
The landlord, in order to legally obtain possession, must Russell concerning chronology obeying flus command
institute ouster proceedings. Godgranted to the gentiles of giving the witness ? Do we find those who are in
a ]ease of domimonfor a term of 2520 years, which term harmony with his conclusions concerning the gentile
or lease ended about August, 1914. Then came forward times obeying this injtmctmn and preaching the evi-
the Landlord, the rightful Ihfler (EzekM 21:27), and dences of the kingdom and that mflhons now living
began ouster proc~.edings. Tt > not to be expected that will never die? Surely everything has happened exactly
he would snddeMv wipe erything out of existence, as the Lord said it would happen concerning the end
for that is not the way the Lord does things; lint that of the gentile times.
he would overrule the contending elements, causing What ~fll iransDre in 1925? Wait upon the Lord
these to destroy the pre~ent order; and that while this and see. Be truthful to present priwlcgcs. Every Chris-
is going on he wouh] have his faithful followers give a finn’s faith is on trial. "Accordingto 3-our faith be it
tremendous witness m fhc ~o, ld, so that the teachable unto you."
TEXAS CONVENTION
FOUR-DAYconvenhon ef the Bible Students ventmn of several days is to them like transformatmn
A was held at Dallas, Te,xas. March9 to 12, Pil-
grim Brother Edward Stark serving as chair-
into an enhrely (hfferent atnmsphere. The testmmny
meetings gave strong e~tdenee of flus, the friends show-
man. The other speakers were Brothers V. C. Rice, ing by thmr testunomes that they are not only reamemg
S. 1:[. Toujian, G. R. Pollock, O. Magnuson. Scott in the opportunities of service, but are growing in
Anderson, A. H. ]Kaemillan, and Brother RrJtherford. knowledgeof the Lm’d’s plan and the fruits and g~ ages
The conventmn was attended by friends from Texas, of the spirit.
Oklahoma, Kansas, Arkansas, Lomsimm,and Missouri, On Sunday morning a question meehng was conduct-
the largest numberof friends attending on any one day ed by Brother Rutherford and we append hereto a few
being about five hundred. It was indeed good to be of the questions and answers:
there, and on every fate was observed the happy Chris- Questw,z: Is Jehu a type of the great company?
tian smile. Frequently the remark was made: ’This is A.nswer: No. The Scriptures clearly indicate that
the best eenvention I have ever attended’. Jehu did not represent a spiritual class. Some’dine ago
These conventions serve as a great uplift and strength the Society requosted the Pilgrim brethren not to dis-
to the friends, particularly the isolated ones. They have cuss in their d~seourses Jehu in ant~type, because it has
very llttle fellowship with others, and comingto a con- been deemeda wise course to take.
140 WATCH TOWER BROOKLYN, i. Y,
Questwn: At a business meeting of the ecclesm this xmtory? The apostle Paul ans~ers that ~e nm-t
should the chairman make a motion or vote upon the get ~t through Jesus Christ our Lord. Our year text
mohon? ~s exactly m ]~ne: "Thanks. be to God. ~ho g~cth us
Answer: One occupying the chair should keep the. \~etmy tluough our l~ord Jesus Chl’~St". (1 Cor-
order, direct the proceedings of the meeting, etc.; but inthmn.~ 15:57) Then says the Apostle: "Walk m the
it would not bc proper for the chairman while in the spent, and ye shall not fulfill the lust of the flesh".
chair to make a motion. If he desires to make a motion (Galat-mns 5: 16) That is to say, walk in the same
or speak upon the motion he should leax e the chau’ and tin’cotton the Lord u alked, in the ~ay of righteousness.
imlte ,omebody else to occupy if temporarfl}. The Be(ause of a failure, do not give up. If a m~stake is
cha],man should not seek to exercise undue mthtence made. ff one falls, remember the proverb: "A ansi
over the class, because of h~s positron as chau’man. As [r@~teous] man falleth sewm t~mes, and riseth up
to voting upon the motmn, he should not vote tmles~ again". (Provmbs 24: 16) Again remember that the
there is a tie, in which event he mayvote. Apostle says" "These things ~r,te I unto yon, that ve
Queshon: Whenone loves the Lord and the Lord’s ~]n not. And ]f any man sin, we have an advocate w~th
people dearl), loves the principles of righteousnes., and t]w Father, aes, s Ch,’]st the ~ghteons." (1 John 2:1)
truth, and yet finds m hm~sel~ or herself a ~eakness ’J’h~- ~- a part of the Chri.-.tmn’s warfare. The Lord
that keep.-, the mind often on ealthly thing.-, can such has g~acmuslyprox~ded that if we come to him in {role
a one be Slm%-h,g~.’tten? of need. asking for strength and help m his name. he
Alzswer: ’J’hi- que~_tionde,crihes the ,:ond~tmn of will oral i it ]t is the one uho continues in faith, and
mnn~whoare ,.p~ ~l-h%otten. The apostle Paul plainly fa~thflll) 3, patmntly endures to the end, that will gain
saxs" "The tlesh hl-h,th against the ,-pIllI. a>d the the c~o,~,,.
st,~,~t against the ill’st, and fhe~e are contl,l~ the one For lack of space all the questions answered me not
to the other: so l.hat ve cannot do the tlung.- that ve hme g,~en.
’
~ouhl". (Galat)an,_~ 17) A~aln the Apostle -a3:: "[ Sundax afternoon a })nhhc meeting at the Cohseum
knox~that m me(that ~s. mmyllesh) dxxolh,th no goat! v as addre-s.ed by Brother Rutherford on "MdhonsNow
thing: for to x~lll ~s l)resc’nt ~lth me; bill hmxto pro_ Li~mg Wfl[ Never lhe". About 3.200 attemh:d. The
foi’m that which is good 1 find not FoJ the good that ua,ml l,een intere,-_t u as manifested hy the hearers, a
I uould, I do not but the exll x~hich 1 ~xouhl not. th,t great many purchasing the books at the conclusion.
I do. Nowif I do that I ~ould not, it is no mare ] Wdl,al, the eonvention was a splendtd sueeess from
that do it, but ,-_in that dx~o]lofh mme."- Item ;"18-20.
The real hatfle-grmmd of the ne~ cl(’ature is m the the spil,tual standpoint: and every one went away hap-
mind, and the great battle that a new creatm,’ ha~ 1~ EYand rejoicing that they had been privileged again to
to keep the mind off things_ earthh and keep it on ha~e some fell(reship in the spMt while flus side the
spirdual things. Ilow, thin,, can a new cloature gain vail.
BROTHER A. J. ESHLEMAN
BROTHER O. L. StYI,LIVAN
(’rf.~’~(ill:l, Pn ....... May 14 ilazleton. Pa ............ 5 I ’l X21
)],lhlllrIV City, Pa .... " 35 While Itaven, l’a ...... ’ "2"2 ¯ ]_,’flOl,~OllCIIV,310....... M,qVI(; I’oorl:t Ill ............... M,qy2"}
S]l:llliOklll. ]~a " 16 Thloop, Pa .......... " >,"2: kf broil- %]o - -. " 17 (’.1 ,iDm Ill ............. t
Nmlhmnbetland, I’a’-_-_[ " 17 [’(,(.k~ille. :Pn ................. " ’.2’4 Splmghehl.’]ll ........ MILv 18,19 I(i:o\~ )Ill, 111................. -’5
Bont.n, Pa .............. May18,19 Carbondnle,Pa. ...: ............ " - 25 ltp(,Hul Ill ............. May 21 l(o~ II IlOl, III ............ 26
Nant]coke,Pa .................. May 2l Honexdale.I’a ................ " 211 lihmmin~lon, Ill .......... " 22 FI e(’:tiOl { J II ........... .Max-28, ~J0
BROTHER O. MAGNUSON
BROTtlER S.
Bander,i, Tex............. Mn~ 17 SAn~Iill’(I) ~., Tex............ May 25
Lodl, Cal ......... .~Iav 15
Tarlflev Tex .............. " 1"~ l~,,l’.tl op TOX............... 2G S,icrllnlonto, C,II ......... " 1[;
San Anlonlo, Tex ..... May 19 21 Cli 1 c 0, C a 1 ................... ’’ 17
Kerr~ 1lie, Tex................ 51a3 2"2 I.hl(I.d:lle Tex....... " 29 31,i~ I’, I’)
Comfort,Tex ................... " 23 ~,~ aco, Tex............... -Ma3 30, 31 Paradise, Cal .....
AMi]hnll, Ore ...... "Mn~ 21
llo;4ue Rl~el, Ole ....... " "22
BROTHER S. MORTON
CIme. 5hoh .................. May 17 ]lurand, Mieh.............. M,t~ 24 BROTHER W. M. WISDOM
Midlnnd51lOll .................. " 18 ]’enlon 5I](,11 ................. " 25 Sii|)Ol’lOl’, %VIS....... May14 15 AitMn Mtu. ....... M:v2t
Saglliax~]%|1(:|1................. ’ ’ 19 Bull, Mieh ............. " 26 Tx%O ]lllll)l)l~, 5111111. .. 51;t%’I(; T~l%er|oll, ~hllTI ...... ~’I,tv __
" 2] B;l% Cll%. ~[IP]I May 27 28 " 23
Ahn<’l,.Mieh..................... Prl)Pl(i] ~lln]l ........ " 17 l’l’l]Ol’~ihl,l.I Mini1.... " 21 25
If’heeler Mloh................ " 22 Lharh)tte Ml(h ]~ln~ ’.)!1 .’N’Ol’t]lllind, Mltlll ...... " 1N OIlll1111D., ~|llln ..... " ¢)7 2,~
Fhnt,51r1¢11..................... " 23 Imn~m~ M;ch ..... Mny30,31 l{,q r nITln"~[1ll I| __ " 19 l’elgll~ V,ill-, Mllill May30
GENER %L CONVENTION
It 1% "wILh p]o.IMlle lh;ll \~e .llll}lillllC(J lhat l/e~ll[lilllflnS
are Hlldel’ way fol II ~elitTl’lli
Biltle Stndents Ascot)at)on
ct)ll%elltlon of the hlteln,ll;lolifil
to be he}d nbout the hi’st of III.BS’A. BEREAN BIBLESTUDIES
By"AeansoP "The Plan of the Ages"
l
~(q)fenlbel’ Two pbicos lhe ini(llo ~(.ct ,’/re llO]i}g eon-
~idel’ed, and ~is si/Oll Ii½ )Jill Clill~10nllllll Clllllnll[|120, niuke,~
Chapter VII The Permission of Evil
do.finite ,q_l’l’dilg(qll01i{s, illll)OllllCelil(qiL %%ili 11(’ lll,l(le hi
WATCH ~J~OWEtL ~iVe Illil]~e tlil~ HiillO1111co111oliI. illi% ill lll’(]~l, Week ol Tuh’ 2 ....... Q’222’q Weekof luh’ 1¢;, ......... Q 36-41
~\eek (,t Jul5 9... Q "’)35 Week ot Jt 3 23 ............ Q. 1-7
IL
that the fi’lend¢i t]li’Oll~]iOll{ the Uliiled Stal-es ,qild ();ill’l(]il Week +)t .lll]V 30 Q 8-14
may I)e ini~khlg thelP lJl.uls for the generM corl,,(q~IHIli ,tbiH_lt Questionbnuk~ on "The Dwlno Plan", 15e p0stpa|d
the time melltloned.
VOL. XLIII SEMI-I~[ONTITLY NO. 10
CONTENTS
CHRONOLOGY
......................................................... 147
ThePeriodof Captivity
.................................. 14,~
SeventyYearsof De~olation .......................... 14~
Unreliable Seculac HJ~tory ............................ 14’}
WITNESSESFORTHV TEUTH............................ ]50
Trueand Faithful Witnesses......................... 151
Satanthe Opposer
......................................... 152
Jeren3iah a Type ........................................ 15~
The Testuuony of the Hour ......................... 154
~EHOIAKIM TRIE~ TO DESTROY GOD’S ~.’ORD "1.5"3
Methods of Bible Burmng .......................... 15~;
JEREMIAHCAST INTO PRrSON ........................ 157
SomeApparentCorrespondenc~es
.................. 15S
QUESTIONSFOR TOWERBEREANSTUDY .............. 159
AN INTERESTINO
LETTER................................. 159
"r will ~tand upon nly watch a~td twll set mF fOOg
upon the Tower, and t~lll . arch to see what He will
say unto me, and what ans~ecr I shall make to them
that oppose me."--Habakkt~k e" I.
, r~~ ~ ~...~._._’-~..2~. .
.... ......
Upontile earth (lt~tress (~, IIILI[III~ ~.lIII perplexity; the sea add the ~aves (the resLle~s, dl~eOllteiqted rob.ring men’s hearts falling tllerrl for rear ~tlld for loo~blg to t~
thmg~ coming upon the earth (soelety); ~or the lmwers of the heavens (eeclesla~.lc~sm, ,halt be shaken. . Whenye. see these th~n~s begin to c,,me to
l/aen kno~ that the Kingdomof God is at hand. Look up, lift tlp your hvadi, rv]ol¢~, for your redemption draweth nlgh.--Matt. 24.33, Mark 13.29, Latka 21:25-~1L
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS SACXED MISSION
THISpresented
Journal ts ono of the prime factors
in all parts of the civilized
or instruments in the system of Bible instruction,
world by the WATCHToP. mR BIBLE & TRACTSOCIETY, chartered
or "Seminary Extension", now belnt
A.D. ]~,~4, "For the Pro-
motion of Chil~lnul Knowledge". It not only serves as a class room where Bible stndents may meet in the study of,~h,~ dlx Hie V¢ord but
also as a ch,lanct of COlUlllUnlcatlou through which they may be reached with announcements of tile Society’s con’.cations and of tile
coming of its u ax ehng rellr~sentattses, styled."Pllgrims", and refreshed with reports of its convenhollS.
Our "I:el’can ieasons" are topical rebeal ~als or reviews of our Society’s published STUDIESm0qt entertainingly arranged, and very"
helpful to all x~ha xxould meut the only honolary degtee xsliich the Society accords, ~iz., Verb* De* ~ll2m,ster IV. D. M.), which translated
into EnghMl IS Mlnl,stcr of God’s Wo~d. Our treatnlent of the International Sunday School Lessons is specially for the older Bible
students and teacher~. By some this feature Is consldeled indispensable.
Tln~ ]ournaF stands firmly for tile defense of tile only true foundation of tim Christian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
--redcnlption through the precloux blood ,)f ’ the man Christ Jesus, who gave hnnseif a ransom [a COtle~pondlng price, a substitute] for
all". (1 Peter 1.19, :1 ’7,,lothx 2 0) Ihnhhng up on tlll~ sure foundation the gohl, sdver and precious stones (1 Cormtllm.ns 3:
15; 2 Peter 1.5-11) of the Word of God, its furthermi~sion is to "make all see ~hat ~s the fellowslnp of the In~,~tery which...has
been Ind re_God, . . . to tile Intent that now aught be made known by tile church the manifold wisdom of God"--"uhlch in other ages
was not made !.no~,n unto the-sons of men as-it is now revealed".--]~pheslans 3 : 5-9, 10.
It stands free from all parties, sects and creeds of men, while It seeks more and more to bring Its every utterance into fullest
suhjotlon to the ~xJlI of God in Christ, a~ exi)rcs~ed in the holy Scriptures. It is thas free to declare bol,lh ~xilar-oe, er the Lord
hath spol~en--a(coldlnz to lhe dwme wisdom granted unto us to understand his iHterances. ]ts atlltade is not doglnaIl(_, but conndeut;
for ~e kmlw ~tlclcot ue a:.i hi, treadulg u lth imphcit faith upon time sure promises of God. ]t is held as a llUUt, Io be u~ed only lU 11i~
serxlce hell(e our (~e,t,1 -iw,~.roifltlVe to W]lAt may and y, hat may not appear in Its cohnnns must: he accotlhng lo our judgment of hl~
good plea~ule, the te,lchlng_ o[ lll~ Word, for lhe ]rpbulhhng of his peonie in grace and knowledge. And we not only lnxlte bat urge out:
readei~ to prove all its utterances by the infallible Word to ~luch referen(e ~s constamly made to facilitate such tesung.
TO US THE SCRIPTURES CEEARLY TEACH
~hat the church is "tile temple of the ]Lvlng God", peculiar]y’"]iis workmanship" ; that its construction has been in progress throughout
the ,.’o~pel age---cxcr since Chr:~t became, the world’s, Redeemer and the Chief Corner Stone of his temple, thlou’:h ulrich, xxhen
lm~Mm,l. (,oi1N II’e~’U/ r qlad come" ~o all people", and they find access to h~m.--1 Cormtinans 3 : 16, 17"; Ephe~lans 2 : 20-22."
Ccue~,.~ 2, ]4’; balatmns 3.29.
That meantmle the clnsehng, shaping, and polishing, of consecrated believers in Christ’s atonement for sin, progres~e~; and when the
last of lhe~e "]l’.lnA stench", "e ect and pyecious," uilai] have been made ready, the great Master_ Workumnufll 1,ring all loge~her
in the h~ ~t’ ~ c~urre( tion, and the temple shall be filled with his glory, and be the meeting place between God and men lhrougllout
tlle 5hllennmm--Re~elatlon 15.5-S.
’2’hat the ba¢lu of hope, for tile chorch and the world, lies in the fact that "Jesus Christ, by the grace of God, laurel1 dea)h for every
man." "a ran~oul far all " a d ~l,l be the true l~ght winch hghteth every ma~ that cometh ~nto the uorld", "in due nme".~
I|ebleus 2 9, Jolm 1.9, 1 Tunothy 2. 5, 6.
51:hat the hope of the church is lhat the may be like her Lord, "see him as he is," be "partakers of the divine nature’,’ and share his
glo]y a.- Inn jolnt-heu.--1 John 3 2, John 17.’4, Romans 8:17; 2 Peter 1:4.
~That the prcsenl n,l-~mn of tl]e church i~ the perfccung of the saints for the future work of rerwce; to develop ]n hertelf every
gla<c, to be (;o(1’~ x~t~le~ ~o the world, and lo l,lepare to be kings and priests in tile next age.--l:phe~mn~ 4 : :12, Maltllew 2-~-"
] I Rexelatmn I . b. 2o.6.
Thai flw hope for lhe x~o~hl hc~ ~n theble~sings of l, nowied.~e and opportunity to be brought to all by Christ’s 5hlienmal l}nzdom, tho
le~l~tullOll el ,~ll th,lt u,,~ ]o~t In Adam, to all Ihe \~lhng and obetllenL a~ tae hands of their Redeemer an_d ln.~ glol’med ehureh~
~hea all the ~xdlully x~cl,ed will be destroyed.--Acts 3. ]9-23; isaiah 35.
CHRONOLOGY
"But saneti[y the Lord God in your hearts; and be ready always to give aa~ answer ~o ~,e~ man lhat asketh you
a reason of the hope that is in you w~th meekness and fear.’--1 Peter 3: 15.
E HAVEno dou~ whatever in regard to the heralded far and wide with a great show of wisdom.
W chronology relatin~ to the dates of 1874, 1914,
1918, and 1925. Someclaim to have found new
Someof the discovered records give evidence of great
age, and are accordingly given muchweight as author-
light mconnection x~ lth the period of "seventy years of ity. Conclusions are drawn by comparing various writ-
desolahon" and Israel’s captlwty in Babylon, and are rags from (hfferent countries, and an endeavor made to
zealously seeking to make others believe that Brother piece together broken fragments, found here and there.
Russell ~as m error. But even after their best endeavors, they are often ~orced
The apostle James assures us that "ff any of you lack to admit that their conclusions cannot be proved. Con-
w~sdom, let him ask of God, that glveth to all men trad~ctions are often found in some, and connections
liberally, and upbra~deth not; and it shall be given cannot be made in others.
hmf’. Webelieve that pronuse and daily petition for Someof then’ best "authorities" are found at times
heavenly wisdom and grace to be graded alught. We to be unrehable ; as, for instance, Josephus and Ptolemy.
also beheve that the prayers of the saints ascend daily These men hved during the first two centuries after
to the throne of heavenly grace for diwne gmdance as Christ. They had (hfiiculty m compiling their records;
to what shall appear in THEWATC]~TOWER,and we for complete data were not accessfl)le to them. No doubt
are very apprecmtive of that fact. they did the best they could under their limited circum-
stances. They are accepted as amongthe best that secu-
An accurate understanding of chronology apparently
lar history can produce. From these and from others,
is not a necessity to sah’atmn. The subject has been certain dates have been generally accepted by historical
largely concealed during the dark ages, and doubtless
writers; but to be generally accepted does not necessarily
many saints have made their calhng and electron sure
without the aid of the chronological features ludden in imply absolute accuracy. However,to impress the weight
of their w~sdomupon their readers, these conclusions
the Bible. But they had a knowledge sufficient for
are often stated mpositive language, and the student is
their time. Even now some find it very difficult to
inclined to accept them at then’ face statement without
grasp chronology fully, and therefore depend upon the
further inveshgation.
explanations of others. Hox~ever, a fuller understand-
But why rely upon uncertainhes when the Lord has
ing of the times and seasons affords a great joy to the
provided m h~s Word a complete rehable record from
toiling saints of God, and is a stlmuhs to zeal.
Adamto the return of the Jews from Babylon, and from
Towardthe close of the gospel age, in harmonywith that time on secular records are reliable? Though to
the prophecy of Daniel, God began to open the flood- the casual reader there are apparent breaks, God has
gates of knowledgealong manyhues, in preparation for so overruled that every such break is fully bludged else-
the incoming kingdom. As people began to awake to where. Weneed not trace all the tangled and broken
the hght, they commencedto investigate and explore in threads of secular chronology when we have a straight
every direction. OKI libraries were ransacked, long- one to follow. The adversary has always endeavored to
buried cities were excavated, in search of more light deceive people. 2fro doubt he has had muchto do tox~ ards
upon the hidden past. causing the confusion in the historical records of ancient
history, where he could not destroy them altogether.
SOUGHT
TO DISCREDIT
BIBLE But in slnte of Satan’s attempts thus to break con-
The worldly-wise have always disliked the Bible, be- nections, Cod has continued to keep an unbroken line
cause it discounted their wisdom and held it up to that his people may not walk in darkness. (1 Thessalo-
scorn. They would rejoice greatly if they could prove nians 5: 1-5) HoweverGod has purposely hidden the~e
it untrue. With eagerness, therefore, have they searched from the worldly-wise, who prefer to walk in the light
long and diligently to that end. Any new discovery is of their own wisdom.--Daniel 12: 10.
148 rhe WATCH TOWER BROOKLYN,N.Y*
TRUE BIBLE CHRONOLOGY permd of 94 ~ears after the return of some in 536 B. C.
For the benefit of some wh(, may not be so famihar If we add the 10 years to that we have a total of at least
~th these &vine rec()rds and for some of the more 164 years, 606 to 442 B: C. under the king of Babylon.
recent readers of T~ WATm[Towns. and also that Wesee m a moment, then, that the desolatton and
all mayrefresh thelnselves -~lth these beautiful truths, captivity therefore could not synehromze. The Bible
we herewith epltonnze the hne of chronology. For de- teshmony is dear that the Jews first became tributary
tails as to the frst six permds here given we refer the to Babylon three years before the death of Jehomlom
reader to pages 42 to 50 of Volume II, STUDIESIN (2 Kings 24: 1) ; but Jerusalem was not captured, nor
THE SCRIPTURES : did Nebuchadnezzarappear before the mty, at thane time.
Years At the end of the three years Jehoiakim rebelled, Nebu-
From ereatmn of Adamto the end of the flood ................ 1656
chadnezzar took the city, Jehomhmdmd; and Nebu-
From the flood to the covenant with Abraham.................. 427
From the covenant with Abraham to the Exodus ............ 430 chadnezzar left Jehomehin, a son of Jehoiakim, on the
Fromthe E~odu~to the ,1~ ~-Aonof the land ...................... 46 throne. He ruled only three months and was earned
Pemod of the .ludgesof Israel ............................................. 450 eaphve to Babylon, together with Daniel and his three
Saul to Zedekmh (21 kmg,~).............................................. 513 companions and Ezekml. Zedekiah, an uncle of Jehola-
Creatmn el -~_damto dethro,~emet~t of Ze(lekiah ........... :_35"_’2 chin. uas ]eit upon the throne. The mty was left, the
The break in the Old Testamevt records as to the Temple was not destroyed, nor was the government
length of the ~:mmthe Ju(lyc~ ruled, and the length overthrown.
of the rmgn of l(mg Saul are carefully emered m the
NewTestament Evidently th~s is of God’s overruling SEVENTY YEARS OF DESOLATION
for the edification of h~s people. Wenow desire to review some positive evidence that
It is m the endeavor to connect secular records with the 70 years of desolatmn &d not begin to count from
the B~ble record at the time of the "seventy years of this capture of Jerusalem. Not until the overthrow of
desolation" that someclatm to have found the new hght. Zedekiah, 11 years still later did it count. In Leviticus
Practmally ali agree that B. C. 536 was "the first year 25 the law of the jubilee is given. Every fiftieth year
of Cyrus" mentmned m Ezra 1:1, at which time such was to be a jubilee. Jewish reckoning was thus &wded
aeu s as desired were permitted to return to Jerusalem. into semi-centuries, an easy manner of computing tram.
From thence we have connected records to the present. Every fifty-first year wouldbe the first year of another
There earl be no exception taken to the line showing jubilee cycle of 50 years. Had the Jews been obedmnt
that the last year of Zedekiah was A. M. 3522, as shown to their law, there could have been no doubt as to the
above. There is no contention about the first year of chronological record ; for they would never have gone
Cyrus being B. C. 536. It does make considerable dif- into captivity, and would have preserved their records
ference where these two records are connected as to without interference. Did their disobedmncealter God’s
what year A. M. we are now in. outhned time arrangements for the bringing in of the
antitype ? No intimatmn of such a change is found, but
THE PERIOD OF CAPTIVITY on the contrary the evidence is that he held to his
in Jeremiah 29 : 10 and 25 : 11, 12 a period of cap- original plan.
tivity of 70 years is mentioned. Whendid this permd Le~tmus 26:31 to 35 reads as follows:
begin? The Bible locates the time definitely as 3522 31 "And I will make qoar e~t~es waste..and bru~q your
A. M. (606 B. C.), the lath year of King Nebuchadnez- sa,Tetlutl t’..’s "totlo desolahoJt, and I wall not %nlell the savour
zar. Secular historians vary conmderably. The question of your sweet odorq.
32 "And I will bring the land into desolatron: find your
hinges upon the date of the commencementof the 70 enemies x~hteh dwell therein shall be astonished "it it.
years period, somecalhng it the "70 years of capt~vlty" 33 "And I ~fll scatter you ~mong the he,lthen, and will
and others the "70 years of desolation". Does the cap- draw out a s~ oral after you: and’your land shall be desolate,
tivffv synchronize~ ith the desolation ? and your eihes zcaste.
Daniel 9:25 states that from the going fm’th of the it 34heth"Then ~hall the land en~oy her sabbaths, as long as
desolate, and ye be ,n .our enem,es’ land, even ther~
commandment to restore and build Jerusalem unto Mes- shall the land ~est, and enloy her sabbaths.
siah the Prince would be 69 weeks of symbolic time, 35 "As long as it heth desolate ~t shall rest: because ~$
483 years actual time. Jesus became Messiah the Prince did not rest ~n your sabbaths. ~hen ye dwelt upon ,t."
at his baptism. A. D. 29, as shownfully in VolumeII, This is a prophetic statement, but addressed to the
page 60. 483 years less the 29 A. D. would leave 454 nation. "’It &d not rest . . . when ye dwelt [yashab]
B. C. as the date when Nehemiah received his com- upon it" shows clearly that none of the hme while they
mission from King Artaxerxes to rebuild the city and were on the land would be counted. The word here
the walls. 454 B. C. was 82 years after 536 B. C., and rendered ’dwelt’ is the same Hebrew word (yashab)
the Jews were still nnder the dominion of Babylon. that is rendered ’inhabitant in Jeremiah 44: 22. Ya-
Comparing Nehemiah 5:14 and 13:6 we find the Jews shah is rendered ’dwell’ 434 times, ’remain’ 23 times,
still under the yoke of Babylon, bringing the date down ’sit’ 25 times, ’inhabitant’ 31 t~mes, and by various
12 years later, or to 442 B. O. This would make a other rendering in the King James versmn. The natio~
MAY
15, 1922 ,rh WATCH TOWER 149
was not to he an nlhabltant; for it was to tile nation Cyrus, 536 B. C. Thus 3592 A. M. and B. C. 536 are
that the statement ~a~ made. God foreknew what course joined clearly.
~t ~ould take and so he foretold how lie would deal Note again the further statel,mnts of the Scriptures.
x~ Jth zt. The people wouldbe .sent into the land of thmr Those who returned did nat all go to ,lerusalem, but
enemm.~; thmr land. their miles and their sanetuarms "unto aeru-mleln and Judah, every one unto his own
wouhlall be lind x~ a,te and t/eeome desolate. The length c~ty". They &d. not ha~e to reconquer the land; the, r
of the tram of desolatmn is not here stated, except that mhes~ ere still x~ ailing their retur.n. Th~sshm~s ch’mly
it x~ould be long enough for the land to "enjoy her that the pre~mus order ~as restored to considerable
sabbaths’,’ There is no Sempture to prove that the land extent, the rehabitation of the country and the mt,es,
was denuded of every in&vldual. and the reestabh~-hment of the sanctuary at Jerusalem.
(Ezra 2 : 1, 70 ; 3 : 1-6) Thusthe begrimingand the end
NEBUCHADNEZZAR’S THREE MOVES AGAINST JEWS of the permd knownas the "70 years desolation" are :o
Nebuchadnezzar went agamst Jerusalem three times, dearly marked we do not see how there can be any
in person or by his orders: first, in the eighth year of qnestmn whatsoever.
Jehomklm, which was the fifth year of Nebne%dnezzar
UNRELIABLE SECULAR CHRONOLOGY
(2 Kings 24 : 1) ; second, during the three monthsreign
of Jeholachm. who followed 5ehoiakim, three years 1:tow can tills be hal’nmmzedw~th secular chronology,
later, which was the mghth year of Nebuchadnezzar (~ which states that Nebuchadnezzar began to rmgn m
Knlgs 24: 12) Apparently Jehomehin put up no de- 606 B. C., rmgned 43 )ears, and &ed in 561 B.
fence, but surrendered without a fight. At this hme We are not called upon to harmomze the B~ble ~th
(611 B. C.) l-)an}el and his companions and Ezekiel secular chronology any more than we are expected to
~ele carried caph~e to Babylon. It is from this date harmomzethe gospel of the Bd)le with secular creeds.
that EzekMdates his prophecies, EzeMel 8 : 1; 40: 1. It ~s for the students of secular chronology to harmomze
their records with the B~ble. "All Sempture g~ven by
Although Nebuchadnezzar tool; many eaphves and
insplratmn of God [and the Scriptures quoted above
muchtreasure on the second invasion, he did not remove
must have been given by inspiration of God] ts profit-
the nation. He left a king upon the throne, manypeople
able for doctrine, for reproof, for correction, for m-
in the mires, and the Temple and ~ts sanctuaries. The
struetmn m mghteousness ; that the man of God may be
gmermnentwas still recognized, and therefore the pro-
thoroughly furmshed mite all good works". The Bfl)le
pheey of Levd~cus 26:31-35 could not yet be apphed. is clear and connected, while the worldly records are
It ~as not vet flue "I will makeyour cities waste, and acknowledgedto be faulty, d~seonneeted, unrehable, and
brnlg your sanctuaries unto desolahon .... and I will
fragmentary. Daniel 12:10 foretells that the worldly-
bring the land ~nto desolatmn". w~sewill not accept God’s Word,and therefore shall not
The tlurd tram ~as 11 years later. (696 B. C.) The
understand. They will lean unto their own wisdom and
record in 2 Chronmh.¢36’ 14-21 is very explicit, making
thus be misled, and on "tins account God will send to
menhonof the Temple, the reties and the land.
theman energy of delusion, to their believing the false-
18 "And all the vessels of the house of God, great and
small. "lad the treasures of the house of the Lord, and the hood".--2 Thessalonians 2:11.
trea-,ure~ of the king, and of his princes; all these he It makes no difference to the student of the Bible
bloughl
3Ion. to ]~db whether Evil Merodaeh and Belshazzar were the only
19 "And lhey burnt the house of God, and 6false down two kings to follow Nebuchadnezzar until Cyrus; or
the ~all ol le~alem and burnt all tim palaces thereof x~]th
file, and de-n..~ed .H1 the goodly veasels thereof whether, as some elmm, there were several others also,
20 "And them that had escaped from the sxxol’d carried nor how long. each one is stud to have individualh
he "tway trJ ILH,hh,n, where the5 \~ele servants to hhn and rmgned. The permd is fully covered by the records above
luu sons untd the lelan of the kmadom of Persia, cited. Beside%the teshmonyof the larger cycles fullx
21 "q-’o [Mfill the wo,’d of the Lord by the mouth of corroborate them, thus making a cable and not a single
aeremmh, vn&l the h~n4 had enjoqed her sabbaths: for as
lony as she I the land] la~/ de.solale slee k#pt her sabbatic, to thread. Those who are humble enough to rely upon the
l,~lflll tloee~eo~e and ten yea, s." Word of God will be wise enough to understand, and
Here ~s the complete statement in a nutshell--the these are all that are desired by the Lord at the present
explanation of the desolation of the sanctuames, the time. In the near future, when all those kings and
waste of the reties, and the desolation of the land, rulers and histormns shall have returned, it will be an
"~nthout an inhabitant" nation. No nation was per- easy matter to straighten out all the snarls. There no
mitred to hold a dwelling on the land while the Jews adversary wilt be permitted to interfere.
were in Babylon. Here commencedthe fulfilling of the Recapitulating then, the B~ble record is eonehsive
prophecies of Leviticus 26: 31-35; Jeremiah 25:8-11; that the first year of Nebuchadnezzarsynchronizes with
29: 10; 44: 22; and Daniel 9: 2. This shows conclu- the fourth year of king Jehoiakim, which was the year
sively that the land was to be desolate, to rest for 70 3503 A. M. or 625 B. C. The nineteenth year of Nebu-
years; and that the desolation began at the downfall chadnezzar connects with the eleventh year of ZedeMah,
of Zedekiah, 606 B. C. and closed at the first year of and was 3522 A. M. or 606 B. C. Seventy years later,
150 WATCH TOWER BROOKLYN,
N. ~J~
whenthe Jews returned to their land, connects with the with a world-wide witness. The results following the
first year of Cyrus, and woMdbe 3592 A. M., or 536 ~lates of 1918 and 1921 indicate more and more d~stmct-
B. C. Thus 1922 is 6050 A. M., as shown on THE ly that they were turning-points or mile-stones on the
WATCH TOWER--3592plus 536 plus 1922. chronological highway, and clearly foreknown and fore-
told by the Designer of the Divine Plan of the Ages.
STAMPED WITH GOD’S APPROVAL The trumpet of hberty for the people has been sounding
It was on this line of reckoning that the dates 1874, with ever-increasing volume since 1918, and the worId
1914, and 1918 were located; and the Lord has placed is staggering like a drunken man. Never before has it
the stamp of his seal upon 1914 and 1918 beyond any been so manifest that "there is nothing covered, that
possibility of erasure. Whatfurther evidence do we need ? shall not be revealed; neither hid that shall not be
Using this same measuring line, beginning with the known". (Lake 12:2) All the signs indicate that the
entry of the children of Israel into Canaan, and count- world is in the rapids of the coming cataclysm, unable
ing the full 70 cycles of 50 years each, as clearly indi- to rescue itself, and yet unwilling to accept divine assis-
cated by Jehovah’s sending of the Jews into Babylonfor tance.--Jeremiah 51 : 8, 9.
the dill 70 years, it is an easy matter to locate 1925, It seems that Godhas permitted the adversary to dis-
probably the fall, for file beginning of the antitypical connect every other line of chronology prior to the time
jubilee. There can be no more question about 1925 than of Cyrus. No doubt Satan thought he had succeeded
there ~as about 1914. The fact that all the things that completely until God overruled that St. Paul should
some looked for in 1914 did not materialize does 1.or give just the needed information in his writings. To
alter the chronology one whir. Noting the date marked somethis is a test of faith. To the consecrated child of
so prominently, it is very easy for the finite mind to God it is another manifestation of God’s careful con-
conclude that all the work to be done must center about sideration for the needs of his children, of his provision
it, and thus manyare inclined to anticipate more than for their protectmn in matters of instruction and edifi-
has been really foretold. Thus it was in 1844, in 1874, cation. If others prefer worldly wisdom, that is their
in 1878 as well as in 1914 and 1918. Looking back we priwlege. God has promised that his instruction will
can noweasily see that those dates were clearly indi- perfect the "man of God". Weneed to put on the ’whole
cated mScripture and doubtless intended by the Lord to armor of God, that we may be able to withstand in
encore’age his people, as they did, as well as to be a the evil day, and having done all [this] to stand [hav-
means of testing and sifting whenall that someexpected ing assured ourselves of God’s full provision for our
did not come to pass. That all that some expect to see protection, we need not to worry, but to rely upon him
in 1925 may not transpire that year will not alter the fully and confidently]’. A prominent part of this armor
date one whir more than in the other eases. is the shield of faith, in his Word, wherewith we are
The preparations for the kingdom have been coming able to quench (ward off) all these darts of unbelief,
on apace, and the announcementof it is being heralded which are liable to woundeven unto death.
are we specmlly benefited by considering these texts? always been prominent before the minds of those who
Our an~er is, that transformation into the likeness think. Long ago the poet wrote:
of the Lord does not cometo us as a result of magnify- "Truth forever on the scaffold,
Wrong forever on the throne;
ing our own weaknesses or the weaknesses of others. But that scaffold sways the. fut.ure
Transformatmn does not result from parading before And within the dim unknown
the other members of the class our own importance or Stands the form of Christ the Savior
our personal trmls. T~ansformatmn comes from view- Keeping ~ateh around his own."
ing the perfect Pattern and from forgetting ourselves The triumph of truth as at hand; hence the impor-
and forgetting the things that we have left behind tance of the hour and the Important position in which
Whenthe Apostle says: "Confess your faults one to the wltne.~ses for truth are placed.
another." ~t ~s quite evident from h]s words and the In proportmn as one appreciates the priwlege of be-
context that he does not mean we are to confess our ing on the Lord’s side, mthat proportion w:ll his zeal
impel him to gwe the witness for the truth.
faults to the eongr~gation and to parade our weaknesses Jehovah ~s the attthor of truth and righteousness.
before the eongregatmn at testimony meetings Rather Satan is the author of hes and wickedness. On the one
should we speak that whmhis edifying and upbraiding; side the question is, Shall righteousness prevail, the
and the transformation of the mind results from be- seed of promise be developed, man delivered from the
holding the perfect Pattern and not from beholding the thraldom of sin and death and restored to life, liberty
imperfect one. and happiness, and Jehovah exalted in the minds and
Surely ~e could not impress upon our minds a hearts of all intelligent beings? On Satan’s side the
greater picture than that of the character of Jehovah question is, Shall evil prosper and prevail, the seed of
and of h~s beloved Son. Nothing could have such a promise be destroyed, man kept in bondage to sin and
wholesome influence as studying the character of the death, and Satan’s empire be perpetuated? Wehave
divine Ones Character means the primary attributes nowcome to the last time, the final conflict. For many
in equal and exact balanee---w~sdom, justice, love and centuries it has appeared that Satan has had the better
power. As u e look into the Word of God we behold of the conflict. God has permitted this for a purpose.
his diversified wisdom, his unhmlted power, his equal At present the mass of humanity is under the control
and exact justme, and his boundless love. Beholding of Satan. Shortly the tide of battle will be turned.
these dmly, we shall mark in ourselves a transforming The great Prince of Peace, in the name of Jehovah,
influence, and mttme others will mark a change in us ; will establish his kingdomof righteousness and restrain
and as we speak to others concerning these divine attri- the evil one.
butes and the blessings received from them, it is ed,fv
ing. uphftmg and helpful to our hearers, tIenee our A SUCCESSION OF GOD’S WITNESSES
testimony meeting~, when conducted along these lines, Since it pleased Jehovahto makeall intelligent crea-
result beneficially to all whoattend, especially to those
tures free moral agents, it also pleased him to send
whoparticipate. forth his witnesses from time to time to testify be£ore
men and angels concerning the truth, to the end that
TRUE AND FAITHFUL WITNESSES each one might have the hberty of exercising his choice
In th~s text we are viewing the character of the of good or evil. From Abel to John the Baptist came
Lord 3esus as the true and faithful witness. This is these witnesses, and gave their testimony, and passed
espeemllv approprmte to the church at this tram. It off the stage of action. While darkness covered the
is eneom’agmgand helpful, and enables the members earth and gross darkness the people, Jehovah has never
this side the vml to g~vo more faithfully the witness been without some witnesses in the earth. In defiance
whmhhas been committed to them. of Jehovah, Satan has sought to kill the witnesses for
A witness is one who gives testimony on a question truth. It was Satan’s emissaries who heaped upon the
at issue. He must be either a w~tness for or against, prophets nameless indignities, persecuted them, stoned
a witness for one side or the other. The prmelples of them and sawed them asunder.
good and evil have always existed. Evil was put into op- Then came the beloved Son, Jesus of Nazareth. At
eration by the act of Lucifer, who subsequently became the Jordan he began his testimony. Shortly thereafter
Sa|an, that old serpent, the devil. WhenGod expelled Satan attempted to contaminate and nullify the testi-
Adamfrom Eden, he declared that the seed of the monyof Jesus. After our Lord had suffered a forty-
womanshould bruise the serpent’s head and the seed of day fast and was weak and depleted in energy, Satan
the serpent should bruise the heel of the seed of the presented himself and suggested to the Lord that he
woman, and that enmity would continue between them testify of his ability by causing bread to be made of
n~t~l the end. Since then there has been a question at t~he stones thereabout and to feed upon that and thus
issue between Jehovah and Satan. Briefly stated, that appease his hunger. The Lord replied: "It is written.
igsue is this: Truth versus Falsehood. This issue has Manshall not live by bread alone, but by every word
152 WATCH TOWER
that proceedeth out of the mouth of God". (Matthew winch some time were disobedient, when once the long-
4: 4) Then Satan said unto the Lord: ’You expect to suffering of God waited in the days of Noah, while the
give a witness to the people as to whoyou are. It will ark was a preparing". His faithfulness unto death was
take you a long time to convince them ; but ff they see a more eloquent testimony to these incarcerated evil
you do some spectacular act they will be ready to be- spirits, the angels of Satan, than any testimony he
lieve you.’ Therefore "the devil taketh him up into the could have given by word of mouth.
holy city, and setteth him on a pinnacle of the temple,
and saith unto him, If thou be the Son of God, cast OTHER WITNESSES
thyself down:for it is written, He shall give his angels For the purpose of carrying out his great plan, Je-
charge concerning thee: and in their hands they shall hovahforeordained that there should be associated with
bear thee up, lest at any time thou dash thy foot against Jesus 144,000 members of his body; and that these
a stone". Thus Satan subtly misapplied Scripture and should be ca]bd and developed during the gospel age.
sought to cause the Lord to deviate from the divine These must lfl<ew~se be true and faithful witnesses con-
course. To this the Lord replied: "It is written, Thou cerning the divine plan. "For whomhe did foreknow,
shalt not tempt the Lord thy God". he also did predestinate to be conformed to the image
of his Son, that he might be the firstborn amongmany
SATAN THE OPPOSER OF THE WITNESS
brethren." (Romans8.: 29) It follows that these must
Satan was then the god of this world, and he said take a similar course to that pursued by the Master.
unto the Lord: ’I will give you all these kingdoms of Goddid not foreordain the indiwdua]s who should con-
this world if you will fall downand worship me’. But stitute these witnesses, but he did foreordain that those
true to the purpose for whichhe was sent, Jesus replied : who would be members of the body of Christ must be
"It is written, Thou shalt worship the Lord thy God, his witnesses, conforming their lives to that of the
and hml only shalt thou serve". Master.
Falling in fins attempt, Satan then sent his emis- Saul of Tarsus ~as persecuting the church. The Lord
s~qrlcs, namely, the scmbes, Pharisees and doctors of miraculously appeared unto him. Wehave the Apostle’s
tile law, m an attempt to confuse the Lord and to trap words that he heard a voice saying unto him: "Arise,
hml in his testmmny. Failing in this, he then rejected. and stand upon thy feet: for I have appeared unto then
into then’ minds the desire to kill the Lord. They for this pnrpose, to makethee a minister and a witness
brought trim before Pilate. His witness there was lust both of these things which thou hast seen, and of those
as fnJthful. WhenPilate said to him: ’Are you the things m the x~lnch I will appear unto thee". (Acts
king of the Jews?’ our Lord replied: "To this end was 26: 16) He appreciated the necessity of faithfully l~er-
I born, and for th~s cause came I into the world, flint forming that obligatmn which had been laid upon him.
I should bear witness unto the truth".--John 18:37. tie said: "Woeis unto me, if I preach not the gospel".
It will be observed that the Lord never at any time (1 Corinthians 9: 16) Each follower of the Lord Jesus
used h~s divinely-given power for his personal relief may truly apply the same words to himself.
and comfort. All of the miracles performed by him Every one inducted into the body of Christ thereby
were for the purpose of giving witness concerning God’s receives the anointing. Such anointing lays upon lmn
plan and character. It will be further observed that the obhgation to be a witness for the Lord, as it is
his witness was always for the purpose of honoring written: "The spirit of the Lord God is upon me; be-
Jehovah. He said : "I can of mine ownself do nothing: cause the Lord hath anmnted me to preach good tid-
as I hear, I judge: and my judgment is just; because ings unto the meek; he hath sent me to bind up the
] seek not mine own will, but the will of the Father broken-hearted, to proclaim hberty to the captives, and
which hath sent me. If I bear witness of myself, my the opening of the prison to them that are bound; to
x~tness is not true."--John 5:30, 31. proclaim the acceptable year of the Lord, and the day
He was a faithful witness. Faithfulness means loy- of vengeance of our God; to comfort all that mourn".
alty. His absolute loyalty to the Father brought re- --Isamh 61 : 1, 2.
proach upon him and persecution of him by Satan and Thus it is seen that the obligation is laid upon every
his emissaries. His faithfulness led to his ignominious one whois a new creature in Christ to be a ~itness for
death. Because of his faithfulness Jehovah raised him the Lord; and to makehis calling and election sure he
from death, highly exalted him, gave him a name which must be a true and faithful witness. Hence we can
is above every name, and clothed him with all power and truly say that there are two primary reasons why any
authority in heaven and in earth. membersof the body of Christ are yet this rode the vail:
He was a witness to both menand angels. His entire (1) to be witnesses for the Lord in the earth concerning
ministry was given over to testifying concerning God his great plan; and (2) thereby to make their owncall-
and his great plan. He witnessed by his words, by his ing and election sure.
course in life and by his faithfulness in conduct. By In proportion as one hn~. opportunity, in that pro-
this faithfulness "he preachedunto the spirits in prison, portion he must be a witness in order to be faithful.
WATCH TOWER
Someare so situated that they have little or no oppor- Jeremiah’s experiences well foreshadox~ ed the experi-
tunities. The Lord requires of them the use of such ences of the church in this latter hme. The Prophet
talents as they have and judges them according to the was quite a young man when the Lord called hnu to
proper use of these opportunities for service in giving send him forth as a witness. He was evidently a timid
a witness for him. The Lord does not need any of the lad, and felt that t~e was incapable of performing the
body membersfor witnesses; but it haa pleased him to service. It is written in Jeremiah’s proptmcy by lnm-
use them, thereby enabling them to prove their faith- self: "Then said I, Ah, Lord God! behold, I cannot
fulness and loyalty. speak [preach]: for I am a clnld." Here the Prophet
was making an excuse to relieve himself of the obhga-
PREACHERS tion of preaching to Israel. Then he tells what the
Each one must be a preacher of the gospel. Preach- Lord said to Mm:"But the Lord said unto me, Say
ing means proclaiming or making known. Preaching not, I am a child: for thou shalt go to all that I shall
the gospel means making known the good tidings of send thee, and whatsoever I commandthee thou shalt
the kingdom. There are more ways than one to preach. speak. Be not afraid of their faces: for I am with thee
One way, of course, is to preach by word of mouth, by to deliver thee, saith the Lord. Then the Lord put forth
making public proclamation from the platform. Not his hand, and touched my mouth. And the Lord said
all can do this. The sisters are not expected to do it. unto me, Behold, I have put mywords in thy mouth."
This public proclamation, however, is not the more The Lord then told Jeremiah how he would utter his
effechve way of preaching the truth. This is a time judgment against Judah and Jerusalem. "Thou there-
for reading. One of the most effective ways of preaching fore gird up thy loins, and arise, and speak unto them
the gospel, then, is getting the message into the hands all that I commandthee: be not &smayed at their
of the people in printed form, that it may be read. faces, lest I confound thee before them."--Jeremiah
This affords an opportumty for giving the witness by 1 : 6-9, 12.
almost all, if not quite, all Doubtless it is the most The church is now in the day of God’s vengeance;
effective way of preaching the gospel, by causing and and the body members this side the vail are comm,mn-
inducing others to read it. ed to declare his vengeance, to announce the overthrow
All of the Lord’s children can give a witness concern- of Satan’s empire and the incoming of the Messmnic
ing the Lord by their daily walk and general course in kingdom. Hence the words spoken by the Lord to Jere-
life. The apostle Paul said: "Ye are our epistle, . . . miah apply with even stronger force to those who are
known and read of all men". (2 Corinthians 3: 2) of the body of Christ yet on earth.
The world in general does not know how to read and Since the Lord has clearly indicated his purpose to
interpret the Scriptures, but they can observe the con- have the witness given by the remaining members of
duct and course of hfe of those whoare Christians, and the church, it follows that no one could be faithful to
easily mark the ones whoare pursuing a course separate the Lord whowouldrefrain from or refuse to avail him-
from the world and faithfully following the Lord. This self or herself of an opportunity to be a witness in such
of itself constitutes a tremendous witness. It is one of manner as the Lord may direct.
the most wonderful ways of preaching the gospel.
At the end of the age greater light has come, accord- TO MEN AND ANGELS
ing to the promise; hence greater responsibility rests The Apostle, addressing himself to the church, sMd:
upon each one whois anointed of the holy spirit. With- "Weare made a spectacle unto the world, and to angels,
out doubt the Lord, therefore, has arranged for an ef- and to men". (1 Corinthians 4: 9) The word here ren-
fective organization of all the Bible Students’ classes, dered spectacle means a theatre or a show; and thus the
to the end that each one may have some part in being a members of the body are made a show or witnesses for
witness for the Lord and h~s incoming kingdom. Some both men and angels. Men behold the course of the
have zealously and energehcally engaged in this work; body members, and of necessity must note the faithful-
while others have refrained from it, making to them- hess of such in their determination to continue to give
selves one or another excuse. Someare saying: ’I am the witness. This is the time of the judgment of the
merely a child; I cannot preach. There is nothing that fallen angels, and the Apostle plainly says that the
I can do.’ church shall participate in this judgment.--1 Corinth-
JEREMIAH A TYPE ians 6 : 2.
The prophet Jeremiah was used to typify Christ;
MEANS PROVIDED
sometimes the head, and at other times the body mem-
bers. Godsent him as his witness to fleshly Israel. The The Lord has gramously provided the means for giv-
testimony he delivered to Israel finds a parallel at the ing this witness. He has revealed to the church the
close of the gospel age when a like testimony must be truth concerning the angels that kept not their first
delivered to nominalspiritual Israel, those whoclaim to estate and whoare restrained in Tartarus until the thne
be spimtual Israehtes, namely, Christendom. of judgment. The Lord has caused the n ..... ~’~ of ±rz*.h
154 ’rh WATCH TOWER BROOKLYN,N Y
concerning this to be put in printed form, that his ment or ruler or king. An ambassador holds an honor-
witnesses may deliver this message to men concerning able position. Surely the most honorable positron any
the angels, to the end that the minds of menmight be person on earth could occupy ~ould be that of repre-
enhghtened. At the same time this testimony serves as sentatxve of the kingdom of Messiah. The saints on
a wmmssagainst the angels. It becomes a part of the earth are in an enemy’s country. They have their pres-
church’s testimony to make knownthe truth concerning ent abode m Satan’s empire. They are the representa-
the so-called communicationwith the dead. tives, however, of the King of glory. As the representa-
This is the time of God’s vengeance against Satan’s byes of the great King of glory, the obhgation is laid
empn’e,visible and invisible. Ite has caused to be written upon them to give a true and faithful witness concern-
and pubhshed the truth concerning Satan’s empire. He ing their King and his kingdom. Concerning such St.
has placed this at the disposal of the truly consecrated Paul says: "Nowthen we are ambassadors for Christ, as
and invited them to participate in witnessing to the though God did beseech [the world] by us: we pray
world against Satan’s empire, both visible and invisible. you in Clmst’s stead, be ye reconciled to God".--2 Cor-
Therefore the opportunity has come to all of the con- inthians 5 : 20:
secrated to do something toward making known this The one who proclmms the gospel by word of mouth
message, particularly that which is contained in the is not merely a pubhc speaker, but the representative of
literature put forth by the Society. the King, announcing the King’s message. The one who
goes forth as a colporteur or as a class worker to put
THE TESTIMONY OF THE HOUR the printed message mto the hands of the people Js not
But some ask, Whycontinue to use the subject "Mil- a book agent nor a peddler, but a representative of the
lions NowLiving Will Never Die"? Why not preach King of kings and Lord of lords, giving the testmmny
about something else? The reason is this: The Lord concerning his kmgdoril of righteousness about to be
himself set forth the evidence that wmfld be apparent established. Let each one, then, who has this oppor-
aL the end of the world. Amongitthe things enumerated tunity be not ashahmdnor abashed, but appreciate the
by lmn are, to wit: the World War, great famine, pesti- high position ~,hmh he or she occupies. Each one real-
lence, social disturbances or revolutions in various parts izes he is engaged in a great eonflmt with the powers
of the earth, the persecution of Christmns because of that be, while striving to give this witness. Naturally,
faithfulness, and a particularly trying time amongthe such feel weak and the need of aid. Do not rely upon
Lord’s people, to try the patience and love of all. These self, however, but "trust m the Lord with all throe
things have all come to pass_,’. Weknowthat we are at heart;.., he shall direct thy paths". (Proverbs 3: 5, 6)
the end of the world. Then Jesus said: ."This gospel "Wmton the Lord [that is to say, give attendance to
[good news]of the kingdom shah be preached m. all the Lord’s commands and heed and obey the same]:
the world for a witness unto all nations, and then shall be of good courage, and he shall strengthen thine heart."
the end come". (Matthew 2’4: 14) The good news here ~Psalm 27 : 14.
mentioned is, to wit, that Satan’s empire has come to
an end ; the old world has come to an end; the kingdom WITNESSES--MARTYRS
of heaven is at hand; the time for error and falsehood The word witness is derived from the same root word
to be destroyed is here; the time for truth to trmmph that is translated martyr. St. Paul speaks of the faith-
is here; the time is at hand for complete victory of ful prophets of old as witnesses whowitnessed by their
Christ and the members of his body on earth through lives, suffering martyrdom. Jesus gave witness to the
the head Christ Jesus ; the time for the deliverance of cause of truth and righteousness by his life. lie suffered
the world of mankind is at hand: hence millions now martyrdom. Because he thus proved his faithfulness,
living who will obey the Lord will not die. God has exalted him and given him a name above all
It is not what the world tb inks about us. Wemust others, next to Jehovah. To him that gains the victory
remember that we are w~tnesses for the Lord, and as in this great conflict shall be given the honor of occupy-
witnesses we are to testify the things that are nowdue ing the throne with the Lord. (Revelation 3 : 21) Some
to be testified; and since this message concerning the of the Lord’s dear people may suffer actual martyrdom
end of the world and the time for the blessing of man- because of their faithfulness in giving the witness. But
kind is ours, it is our privilege and duty to constantly even if one knew that this was to be his privilege, ho
keep it before the minds of the people. It will be ob- should rejoice in it because the Lord has said concerning
served that Jesus never deviated from one fixed course. such: "Precious in the sight of the Lord is the death of
tie constantly preached concerning the kingdom. So his saints". (Psalm 116: 15) To those who are faithful
now we are to preach concerning the kingdom and the and true witnesses the Lord Jesus said: "Be thou faith-
things that particularly appertain to its establishment. ful unto death, and I will give thee a crownof life".~
Revelation2 : 10.
AMBASSADORS OF CHRIST Let no one think that he can gain this victory, how-
An ambassador is one who represents his govern- ever, in his own strength. Knowingthat it cannot be
,rhe WATCH
TOWER 155
gamed m one’s individual strength, then, ~ e should not the victory through our Lord Jesus Christ". :Kaving
be discouraged because of our x~eaknes:es. It Js a fight been called, begotten and anointed and sent forth to be
of faith. "According to your talth be it unto you." If witnesses unto the Lord, be assured, then, that every
our confidence m the Lord is absolute, then we may one who is true and faltlfful will be rewarded with vie-
know that he will grant all the grace and .-_tlength nee- tory and with the crown of life which the Lord has
essary to enable us to overcome. Then we can with con- promised to them that love him supremely, and are
fidence each day say : "Thanks be to God, who giveth us faithful witnesses even unto death.
dora, bill tile dlqfa~or also of tile reformers of Ida (In3, (3) By neglecting it, ll’avlng it unrend, nnstudmd.
who thoil~ht lndeell that they were doing a grand ~ork, (4) By torbid(hng people to lend tile Btble, or e~en
anti ~.hotlhl be conqfllnlented thereon, and .shouhl ll:l~e lues- lnnltul, or lunderhlg Scl]ptural m~e-tlgation.
sages el (h’~llle favor. (5) B.~ persecutnlg tilo.*_e ~llo preach it conscientiously
becdu..e Ihelr itltetpretatioll,~ are eontL,try
THE ANTITYI’ICAL JEREMIAH
-A’~bJll)~ll In OUI’].1".| leS%Oll,t]lele is It I’ellhtll, llbie ~lllll (6) By nusrepresentulg the Word ot God, sub,tltUtnlg
for Its teachnlgs the tJalhtlons of men--h3nm-IIook and
larit3 ot derenliah’s position to that of tim Lord’a people
creed theology, mis~elwesenting it to be Bible theology--
today, who are enhghtened with the present truth, alnl and thus nusrepl’e,,e, nrlng God’s character and phm, while
wllo, as the messengels of God, declare tins truth. Smn-
profe,,.,,e, lly set’\lllg lnnl, ho|lorntg his \Vord.
lally, these note ~ltll pleasure the fact that tllere are many (7) B~ >kq)ping o~et and ignoring certain te’ielnngs
great l’elorms in pl’ogte~s at tim present tune, in Christen- the S(.l q~Vme,,, berauae they do not harmonize with preeon-
dom. Nevertheless they "ire obliged to speak front the Celxed Olllm(ql~, and preferences, as oil election, free grace,
divine standpoint: "He that hath my word let hun speak
the second dettth, etc., etc.
lab wind". (Jerelniah 23:28) And m thus speaknlg the All of tlle~e "ire modern metllods of fighting against God,
wind of the Lord they oppose and contradict the many
sure to bring punlshmettt--darkness, divine disfavor
fanciful (heanl~ of pie>eat-tiny refollnels v~llo ale vaunly
Those ~hose eyes of understanding are open have dnul)t-
hoping that as a result o~_ CiVlhZatloU and through huluail
less noticed a peculiar elnmge of sentiment anlong Prote~-
el(el t~, and e~pecl,tll5 llto~e ot then" parly, till the p~ onu.~ed
tilnl. ,, l’o~.peetlng lhe Bible. The dlVl~lOll IS lilt(, t~o nlanl
ble.>sings are ill)out to llow to the \~.orl(i nld llkln([, and cl,l,~e~: One repudnl/es tim Bible except as a ~ork of lit-
thus by human ellor{s e~tabilsh rlghteonsnes~ in the earth,
erittlne. These are l~.llOX~.P, a.~ lllgllet’ CrltlC~,, who con,,lller
and bless nil the he,ithen. tlleu’ ownju(Ignlent.~ le~ilecting all Biblical nl;ittel’-_ to be
The Lind’s taithlnl lnoutlqueces of today, Jeiemmh-hke,
far snpevlor to tlm opinions and testlmmnes of tim Lord,
are obliged to eo]ltlatlt(.t tllese t,umllnl (he:nns, ;llul
the np()~_tles ;in,1 the pl’(qlheeies. Egotistical and ,elGconli-
point ouL that tlle.~ tile Ullleaboll,lb[e |18 well n.~ llllb(ilti-
dent, lhlkv "l...~.nnle to I)e much~l>er than anytlllng that(
tural--that lnneh ot tile present-day piogl’e~_% Cl~,lh/~,ttIOIl,
benevolence and loxmg-klndnes> of ~hrlstendom is only ,m ~rltten, .~et hehi tllut it ]s not well to break entn’el3 ~lth
the Bihle t)ecnuse it ~till has a considerable hold upon
outward Velmel’, n di’aWttlg ilellr to Ihe l,ol’(l n ith the lips, mluly good people, and by rejecting it in tote they would
and in some o* the outward :[oilll~ ot conduct, ~lnle the
not only lille the real)eel of these good people but also
hearts of (21tri.>tendoln are far 1_rein lllm, and :till’ ll’onl tile lose then’ Suliport. The second class still holds to the Bible
law of the new covenant, perfect love toward God and to-
as a l’etlch, a charm, fl book of good hick, which they like
ward the neighbor.
to Ilaxe upon theu" parlor tables and ~ithout x~lnch m tile
Tile Jeremhth class of today is obliged to point out that
hou,e they xxouhl not feel entirely s’lfe; they regard ]t as
all tile w_l.rlou~ el(errs benlg pitt £o[ ~ (or the eOliVelsl()II
0£ the world wall hexer bring the desired results, "Tlly kmg- tim XX,(,t’d of G,td, but do not understand it themsel,ves nor
do they beliexe that ,ttlll,rs un(le]~t;ind it. They lnlxe
dolu conic, (ha will be done ou earth as it ]s done nl special interest in and l’e2,u’d for cllurchlantt3, especially
heaven"; but that on the contrary tile inele,l~e ot the for /he bl-lu~ch of it to X~hleh they imve gtven allimlence.
earth’s population is *’at" mo,’e than keepnlg p,lee x~ltll tile
and they solneh(m reahze I lmt an investigation of tile Bible
increase of even nonlln&l Clil’ibtl~ln church nlelnbel’bhlp, ~0
alight un(le~ndne the influence of ehurehlantty and make
that, as some Olie has reckoned lecently (ba.~hlg the caleu-
its s(ndents nldepen(h.nt ot tho~e s}atelllS of nlan wluch
latmn upon tile Xltl’lOUS cen~use.> from 18d3 to tile pl’e~ent
ha~e grown so grandly nHluentlal in aoclal and financnd
time), at the plcsent rate of literease of the non Christian
world over the pro*essedly Cln’i,~tmn world, CluJstmnlty cn’cle ~, Tilese w(u|ld not barn the Bible lt,~elt, but would
be in full sympathy with the burning ot the STUmES IN
would entlrel~ dl>appe;n" from the e.u’th within se~en hun-
THE ~(ILII’I’UR[,:S or any other books ~]lich ~otlld iemove
dred years. Tile e~tnnate shims ,i Io..s of about one per-
file (hl.t .unl smoke of superstition from the Word of God
cent every ten 5eal’s.
and let ltu true light and benuly shine forth. They would
METHODS OF BIBLE BURNING not hesitate to burn the~e, because riley feel instinctively
As Jeholakiln found it in the end yam to hght aganlst that such a shining forth of tile Word of God me.ln~ a
God, and that burning tile words of Jerenmth (lid not de- proportionate decline ill the luster of then’ earthly ¢,3stenls
stroy nor render null alid void Ills 1)ropheey, so others are of churchianity.
finding the matter 1]1 this day. lhnn:ul Catllohc ~, have lip-
patently long been Opl/enents nf the Word ot God, tim DESTRUCTION OF THE FINISHED MYSTERY
Bible, and under their till’co(ion considerable Blble-burnn~g The atanl features (,f Jerelni~ih’s experiences ~ere duph-
has been done. ]:hstory tells u> that the hr,>t edltmn of eared ]u 1918 l,l tile expellenee> of the Watch T,mer Bible
Tyndale’s transl.ltion of the New Testament xxas bought & Tl’aet Sot’rely in conneclmn ~x lth "Tlie Flnl-lted Ms~ter3",
Ill) ill tile I)ookstol’e> (,f I.on(lol~ I)ui nei] Indeed, ill Xel’y Volulne 7 of the STUI)IES 1N THE SCRIPTURI¢S As Jerenludt
recent years we haxe heard of SllUlhtr proceedings in Spain wrote out nl full all the Lord’s charges against Israel and
and in Brazil. Cardinal DongherI3 of Philade]plna 1)ubliely ,~ll(]ilh \X II [I X, HI hill’_d% el 1 hell lnlpel!dlllg (]00111. ~,o tile
burnell 2,000 Bibles m the ]?]lthppules Tile Bible may be Society pul,h,.hed the nlann~eript of "The Fimshed Mys-
set down as the strongest foe of ignorance, superstition and ter3", which inehldes a complete summary of the Word of
e~el~ x~ l(mg-dolng It is no wonder, therefore, that many the Lord as reel)eel> Roman Catholicism and Protestantmm,
hate tile book. which Israel nnd Jndnh represented.
It i~ still posmble to endeavor to destroy God’s Word, As Jeremiah ~It~ "qmt up", but yet withal lind a measnre
thouall all .~ltci~ eltorts will fail The Word of God xxlll of liberty, so the Seemly was in a strait place after war
eventu:lll.~ n uunph. It nla.x be attempted variously : was declared, feeling, froal the first, a measure of restraint,
(1) ]/3 reieeting the ’Wold of God, the Blble--pmverting yet was oste,/~d)ly nt liberty, and as Jeremi’di eoura~eon~ly
Its ..)l~ll;’I,_~elll~ :/lnl ]ldi(_llling them. went ahead and pat out the message even under thoue nn-
(2) By ,spt,aklng of its truths irreverently aud connect- favorable cond~tion~, tile Somety ltas pr(iceeded to preach
Ing them witii ftlnny stories, and thus vitiating its influ- the truth, knowing, as Jeremiah knew, that eel tIlln of the
e.nee upon speaker and hearers. rulers ~ofild probably take offense at ~ts enntents.
As Jeremiah’sbook came to the attentionof the king, Washuigt,m in a vain effort to prevent the complete ban-
SO in due thne, "The Finished Mystery" came to tlm a[- ning of "The Flmshed M3,tery", but as the tlwee nobles
tentlonof the authoritiesin Washington,Ottawaand other failed m thmr no,stun, so d~d the Society’s rep~esentatwes
gox ernmeutal centers.As thoseauthoritms at firstsuggested fail to accomph-h theirs.
As the burmng of Jerennah’s book was in the ninth
tlmt se~en pages (three or four leaves) be cut from the
month, and in the ~mter. ~ the bnnnm~ of "The Fimshed
book,and then followedthis by banuingthe book altogetlmr Mystery" was ni the ninth nmnth of tt~ ctlcnhttmn, and
(destroyingit for the time being), so of Jehoiaklm in a winter month (March, 1.rj18) ; and as aerem,ah’s book
read "When Jehudi had read three or four leaves, he cut was subsequently restored, ~xtth adde(l calam~tm, to Judah
it ~ tth the penknife, and cast ,t into the hre that ~as on and Israel,so the Societyhas not faile,lsincethe r, <tara-
the hearth, until all the roll was consumed m the fire that tion of the book to put it forthwith "manyhkc x~,,l(l,
was on the hearth".---Verse.23. r~l{E ~VATCH TO’WER. TIRE GOLDEN AGE. "The lI=tl’p of (l,*,l"
A.> three of the nobles made intercession with Jehoiakim and "Millions Now Living WIll Never Din". Wit,, th.’tl
that he ~()/ihl nol destroy tile whole Iiook, so three repre- ponders these thuIgs cat] doubt that the Lord is st~[l at
sentatives of the Watch Tower Bible & Tract Society visited the helm, guiding the affairs of hts church?
AN INTERESTING LETTER
UNDULY BURDENING ONE ANOTHER and two a week, and dropping tn at meal times, it may be
[Some of tile llrethl’en (to not .’,eem to appreciate their poor judgment. At the present time work is scarce with
privileges but rather abu.se them ba llnposlag upon others. many of the Lord’s people and they are trying to keep bills
It l~ unkll](l to burdeu a brother by frequently ealhng at paid up. This subject is treated on page 570 of Volume 6.
his house and increasing his expense by a.,,kmg to he fed. You may be able to offer some suggestion through the
The following letter is self-explanatory, and tlle breNn’en \VA.TCHTow}re. as you think right. I trust that I am not
who have been burdening this brother in tlle Lord thould
muI’nUu’mg in this, for I desire to be patmut and to grow
read the referenee nmde to Volume 6 and heed tim same.]
DEAR BRETHREN : Ill f,tlth.
Visits from the brethren are very good; but as to one :four brother in the Lord, ~, Ont.
ImernafionalBible Students A sociafion Oasses
I~¢cturc~dud~tudlc~buJTravelingBrethren
BROTHER R. H. BARBEI~ BROTHER B. M. RICE.
Flat River. Me............ June 2 Neelyvllle, Me............... June 9 Rapelte Mont ............ June 1 M~oula. Mont ........ June 9. 10
Farmington, Me............... 4 l’.plar Bluff, Me........... " 11 Bear Clerk, Mont............. " 2 l’ahlo, 3lent ............. " 1:1, :12
Bloomfield; Me .............. " 5 Chaoma.Me ................ " 12 B~tmlber.3lent ............... " 4 A1vRda,\Vyo............. ’ 14. 15
Clarkton, Me.............. June 6, 7 Mountain Grove, Me " 13 Bozeman, Mont ........... June 5, 6 Ra~ enna. Nebr.............. June 17
Dexter. Me ................ June8 South Fork. MO. ’" 14 Butte, Mont................ " 7, 8 Grand I~land, Nebr ..... June 18
BROTHER T. E. BARKER
Canton, Ohio ........... May 30 Westfield, N. Y ........ June 5 BROTHER V. C. RICE
AIh.lnce, Oblo............... " 31 Portland, N. Y.............. " 6 Wmnsboro,Tex .............. June ~ Alto. Te~....................... June 9
W,ameu,Oluo .............. June 1 Batavm,N. Y ................... " 7 Gladewater, Tex ........... June 3, 4 Lnkm,Tex ................... " 11
Auhtabula, Ohio .......... " Albany,N. Y~.................. " S Big Sandy, Tex ............. June 5 Hebmc. Tex ............ June 12, 13
Erie. l’a ....... 4 Bo~tou, Mass .......... 11 Atbens, Tex................. June 6, 7 Beaumont, Tex ......... June 15
Rusk,Tex........................ June8 Lake ¢.harles, La ........ " 16
BROTHER J. A. BOHNET
I.ev~ellen Nebr .... June 1 Oberlin Kflnq ......... lllile 9 BROTHER R. L. ROBIE
Bla(13, Neln ............ ’’ ’1 l~eilorfl, Kaiib ..... 11
KeRrney, Nebr ........ ’" 4 Simile3, Kans ..... 13 Cedar I/alml~, Ia ............. June 1 Omaha, ~e[) June 7,
Hastings, Nebl .............. " 6 S.dtna. Kans. 15 Ma~shailtown,Ia ............. " 2 Nebraska Clt3, Neb~-._.._June9
Bloouuligton Nebr ......... " S ltus~ell, Kans 16 Des Moines, Ia ............. " 4 Lincoln, Neb.................... " 11
Ft. Dodge, Ia ................ " 5 Wymore,Neb .................. " 12
K~rkmau.Ia .................... " 6 Bloomington, Neb ............. " 14
BROTHER E. F. CRIST
Abbot~.]tlage, hle ........... Junel Moulton~ille, N 11 _ _Juue 8
Gmlfor(l. 51e .................. " 2 Nashua. N. II ........... " 9
Blaine, Me....................... " 4 ~lllfold. N H .............. " 11 BROTHER E. STARK
Oldtown,Me.................... " 5 Manchester, N. H .... :12 Vancouver, Wash .......... June 1 Marloa, Ore ........... June 7
Portland, Me.................. " 6 PKt~field. N H ..... 13 Portland. Ole .................. " 2 Oaklaml, Ore ....... lune8,9
Doxer,N. H.................... " 7 Canaan, N. H ............. " 14 51cJhnnvllle, Ore .......... " 4 Rosebmg. Ore _ Junell
/)allR%Ore ..................... " 5 MJrtle Creel:, Ore ..... " 12
BROTHER A. J. ESIILEMAN Salem,Ore ...................... " 6 Rogue Ih~el, Ore ..... 1.3
Elmira,N. Y..................... June 1 Fall~ Creek, Pa .......... June 9
Alba, Pa ......................... " 2 Salamanaca, N. Y ......... " 10
MeClure,Pa .................... " 4 Olean,N. Y..................... " 11 BROTHER O. L. SULLIVAN
Lewluton, Pa ................. " 5 Bohvar, N. Y ................. " 12
Mehaffey,Pa ............... June6, 7 Allentown. N. Y ........... " 13 I;elvulere, Ill ................. June/ Aurora,Ill .................... June 8
" Marengo, IlI ............ " 2 Joliet. Ill ....................... ’, 9
Curr) Run, Pa ................. Juae8 FrRnl,lu~flle, N Y ....... 14 /’lg]n, Ill ................ " 4 Kankakee.Ill ................ " 11
Genexa,Ill ................... " 5 Blae I~hmd,Ill ............... ’, 12
BROTHER A. M. GRAHAM Rocbelle, I11 ................ " 6 ~=Iege~luch.I11 ............... " 13
June l Youngstown, Ohio ........ June 8 Ashton, Ill .................. " 7 Roseland,Ill ................. ,, 14
AppleCreek. Ohio ............
Woo~ler, Ohio................. " 2 Bellun’e, Ohio ............... " 9
Cleveland, Ohio................ " 4 Wheehng, West Va ....... " 11
" 5 Bartou, W. Va ............. " 12 BROTHER W. J. THORN
Elvrm.Ohio...................... "
LoiRin, Obi0 .................. " 6 Morgnntown, W. Va ..... lfl 0kmulgee, Okia ............. June 1 Wilburton, Okla ...... June 11
Garrett~flle. Ohio .......... " 7 Brandon~i]le, W. Va June 14, 15 Qulnton. Okla .............. June 2,3 Atoka, Okla .................. " 12
McCnrt]n, Ok]a ........... " 4,5 Caney, Okla .................. " 1~
BROTHER M. L. HERR _~t Smith. Ark ................ June6 Dtuaot, Okla ................ " 14
Rolhl Me ............... Junel Jasonvllle. Ind ............ June 8 ’£amuha.Okla ............... June 7, 8 Aehllle, Okla ............. " 15
Mattoon, Ill ........... 2 Lulton, Ind ..................... ,, 9 MeAle~ter, Okla ............. June l0 Bosxxell, Okla ....... " 16
Neu Go~hen, Ind. " 3 Duggel’. Ind .................. " 11
TelUa Haute. lnd .......... " 4 Sulh~an,Ind ................... ,, 12 BROTHER T. H. THORNTON
P,l:~zll Ind ............... " 5 Bieknell, Ind ................ - 13 3I,l,,,u.l.ee, XVIs.............. Junel I~IIPhlgRU City, Iud ,lillle 8
BrJdgetou. Iod ........... " 6 XVashingtou, Ind ........... " 14 I{,lcule, \VI~................... " ’2 South Bend, Ind " 9
Hammond, Ind ................. " 4 Elkhart. ln,i ................... ’, 11
BROTHER W. M. HERSEE Valparaiso, Ind ............... " 5 Go.~hen,Ind .................. " 12
Pl3moutll, Ind ................ " 6 Warsaw,Ind ................ ,, 13
Nmgnra FRlls, Ont. June 1, 2 Smleoe, Ont ........... June 11, 12 Laporte, Ind ..................... June 7 Wabash,Ind ................. ,, 14
"~ oll,u.I out ....................... " 4, 5 Ablmer. Out ............ " 13. 14
Dann~fllo Oat ’ ’ (;. St. Thoma%Out ......... June 15
Cale,hmm, Ont................ 5uneS Ridgetoun, Ont .... June16,18
Nanncohe ()nt ............. " 9 Leaaungton. Out June 19 IIROTIIER S. H. TOIITJIAN
Dallas, Ole .............. June1 Enamelau, X~,lSli Jul}e 9
BROTHER H. HOWLETT ltle~hnnvllle, Ore ........... 2 Ta(odla \ a-b .._ IX
___June2,4 l;ellevllle, Ont ...... June13,14 Portland, Ore .................. Juae4 l’llx,lllul), V,..h ...... ,, 13
Gall (ml Vancouver, Wash .......... " 5 l .i]~c’[i.I3 ~’I~’ll ....... " 14
~|illon \~ i.~t. Out .... June 5 l(~n~ut~)u. Out ............. June 15 " 6 ]He, tiei toil X\ ,tsli ..... " 10
Brflnltl~ll ()11[ " (~ { llt mll/0qlle Out............. " 16 Chehah-~.~Vasb................
Ol*lnge~ file Out .... .lt{ne 7, S Bro(’l,~ lIle. Ont............... Abeldeen. Wash .......... June 7, S Seattle. ~Xa.h ..... ’,
June 18
Toionto, Out ..... " ’).11 Preteott Out ................. " 19
Trenton. Out ........ June12 Itoqum.~, Out ................ " 20
BROTHER J. B. WILLIAMS
Tabe~.Alta ..................... Jnuel High lilies. Alta Jmleg, 10
BROTHER O. MAGNUSON Magratb.Alia .................. " 2 Calgarb. Alia ........ Jmmll
Temple. Te\ lime 1,2 Saa An~elo, Tex ..... Junel0 Lethh~dge. Alia ............. " 4 KneeHdl \ R1, AItR June 12, 13
Lanu)as~a~. Te\ __ .llllle4 Melk(q. Tex .................. " 11 Batons, Alta .............. Jum~ 5, 6 Red Deer, Alia ....... June 14
Brox~nuood, To\ ...... luneJ, 6 Alnlene, Tex ............... " 13 Maeleod, Alta ............. " 7, S Lacolnbe Alta 15
B~ook~lmth, Tex ..... lune 7 IL~ngel Tex................... " 14
Mfle~. Tex ......... " 9 Desdemoua,Tex ............ " 15
BROTHER W. M. WISDOM
BROTHER ~ON S. MOR Farmmgton. Mlnn
Plymouth, M~ch ....... Appleton. Mmn.............. June1 Jmm7
Sunfield. "~heh ___ Junel June 9 Wllmar,Mlnn................... " 2 Mal.letou, ~,iinn ....... June 8, 9
Concord, \lwh ...... " ’2 Detroit, ~.hch .............. " 11 Jasper, Mmn................... " 4 Whalan, Mum.........
Jnek.un. "Hleh ........... " 4 Windsor, Out .......... June 11, 12 June11
Montevldo. Mum............. " 5 Tunnel Clt~ Wis. June 13, 14
Adrnin Mich ....... June 5, 6 Mt Clemens, Mteh ......... June 13 MmnealmhS,Miun ........... " 6 Black River Falls, Wis. " 15, 16
~_p-~lantl. MIch .... ]uneT, S Pt lluron, Mieh ......... " 14
".,-. -
CONTENTS
SE~ENTrYZARS’ D~UOLATIO~ (Part 1) ................ 163
SeventyYears’ Desolation, not Captivity ........ 163
HistoricalConfirmation
................................. 164
NoCaptivity under Jehoiakim.................... 162
NoCaptivity nor Vassalage in 625 B. C ......... 165
ThirdYearof Jeho]akint’sVaCsalage............... 166
First CaptivityBeganin 617B. C................... 167
GENERALCONVENTION
AT CEDARPOINT ................ 168
"NoBIOR~:
UNTXL
HECOME".
.............................. 169
~UDAH’SPROSPERITYANDADVERSITY................... 171
]~ZEKIEL, THE WATCI~MAN
OF ISRAEL ................... 172
THE SETTING UP OF CHRIST’S ]~INGDOM ........... 173
Sm~tmg
tim ImageStill Future........................ 175
BEREAN QLI qI’IONS IN ~rOWER OF ~[AY I~ .......... 175
L~T~ZR
ANINTERESTING ........................................ 175
~~,~-_=_
. ,~,~-.~_~.
These events, as we shall see, actually tool< place m fine from Egypt to Babylon. Pharaoh-necho was prob-
617 B. O.--Jehoiakim’s eleventh year---and included ably three or more years on this campaign.--Compare
(1) the attack by Nebuchadnezzar three years after 2 Chronicles35 : 20 ; 36 : 1.
Jehoiatdra began paying tr,b~lte (620 B. C.) ; (2) The two dates--third and fourth years--cannot be
taking of some of the Temple vessels to Babylon in reconciled; and as the fourth year was the first year
617 B. C. when Jeholakim’s eleventh-year and Jehoia- of Nebuchadnezzar, we must conclude that the "third
chin’s three-months reigns were formbly ended by Ne- year" mentmnedin Daniel 1:2 refers to another third
buchadnezzar (617 B. C.) ; and (3) the first taking year titan the third year of Jehoiaknn’s rmgn proper--
the first captives to Babylon at the same time. Thin the third year of his vassalage to Babylon, which began
was eleven years before the final capt~vlty and the be- in 620 B. C. and ended with lns rebelhon and death m
ginning of the "desolation" of the land. 617 B. C.
The foreign relahons of Jebolakml were bn,~,flv as According to the Jewish his{ormn Josephus, the reign
follows: of Jehomhmincluded no Chaldean attack on Jerusalem
For eight years (628-620 B. C.) he was tmbutary in’the first year of Nebuchadnezzar(Jehomkim’s fourth
Egypt or at least non-tmbutary to Babx lon: "And Phar- year--625 B. C.), but the first attack came four years
aoh-neehoh made Ehaknn the son of Joqmh king m la.ter, in Nebuchadnezzar’s fifth year (Jehoiakim’s
the room of Josiah his father, and turned his name to mghth year--621 B. C.), and the vassalage of Jehma-
klm’s country dated from that or the next year (620
Jehoiakun .... And Jchoiakm~ gave the slh’er and the
gold to Pharaoh; but he tsxed the land to give the B. C.). This clarifies Daniel I: 1, 2, showing "the
money according to the commandmentof Pharaoh: he third year" to refer to the third of Jehoiakim’s relations
with Babylon, and not to the third year of his eleven-
exacted the salver and gold of the people of the land,
year rmgn. Josephus says:
of every one according to his taxatmn, to give it unto
"Now in the fourth year of the reign of aehoinkim [625
Pbaraoh-neehoh."--2 Kings 23:34, 35. B. C.] one whose name was l~Iebuchadnezzar took the gov-
In his eighth year Jehomkim was forced to begin ernment over the Babylonians, who at the same time went
pa~ ing trdmte to Babx]on. During his eleventh and last up with a great army to the city Carcbemish, which was at
x.,ar, whmhwouhll)e the th,rd year of his vassalage to Euphrates, upon a resolutmn he had taken to fight with
Neco, king of Egypt, under whom all Syria then was ....
N~,bucbadnezzar (6]~ B. C.), he attempted an alliance The king of Babylon pa~sed over Euphrates, and took all
~fh Eg3pt. and refused to pay the prmmsedtmbute to Syrm, as far as Pelusium, excepting Judea.
Babylon. This course brought upon him the wrath of "But x~lien Nebuchadnezzar had already reigned four
lX-dmchadnezzar, a Chaldean invasion, his own death, years [62l B. C.] which was the e,ghth of Jehoinkun’s
and the captivity of lns successor, aehoiaehin, many government over the Hebrews, the king of Babylon made
an expedition with mighty forces against the Jews, and
Je,,s. including Daniel (2 Kings 24: 12) Zedekiah required tribute of aehomkim, and threatened, upon his
~a.~ then placed upon the thrn,~r, ~s Nebuchadnezzar’s refusal, to make war against him. He was affrighted at his
vassal, and rmgned eleven year:, until dethroned in threatening and bought his peace with money, and brought
606 B. C. the trdmte he was ordered to bring for three years [until
Jehoiakim’s eleventh and last year, 617 B. C.]
THIRD YEAR OF JEHOIAKIM’S VASSALAGE "But o*t the third yca, [Daniel 1: 1], upon hearing that
the king of the Babylonians nmde [or probably planned]
A discrepancy in Daniel 1:1, ~ is manifest in the an expeditmn against the Eg~,ptians, he did not pay his
date, "the third year of Jehoiakim" (626 B. C.); for tribute; yet was disappointed of his hope, for the Egyptians
this would have been one year prior to the beginning durst not fight at this time."--Ant. IX, 6:1, 2.
of Nebuchadnezzar’s reign, ’which began in the fourth The Bible record of this is in 2 Kings 24: 1---25: 7.
year of Jehoiakim (6°~5 B. C.), when Nebuchadnezzar Josephus makes no mention of an attack on the Jews
defeated Pharaoh-nechoh of Egypt: "Against the army by Babylonin 625 B. C., but specifically says that Judea
of Pharaoh-necho king of Egypt, which was by the river was excepted then from the general attack. The Jews,
Euphrates in Carchemish, which Nebuchadnezzar king on account of their numbers and the strength of their
of Babylon smote in the fourth year of Jehoiakim". inland and easily defended mmmtainposition, were let
(Jeremiah 46: 2) "The fourth year of JehoiaMm, the alone for four years (until 621 B. C.), after which
son of Josiah king of Judah, that’ was the first year of their vassalage to Babylon began. There was no cap-
Nebuchadnezzar king of Babylon."--Jeremiah 25:1. thuty of the inhabitants until the fall of Jehoiakim and
Carchemish is by the river Euphrates in the land of of Jehoiachin in 617 B. O. This is according to Jewish
Mesopotamia or Babylonia. The king of Egypt had records, but the commonlyaccepted idea ignores Jewish
history for the reason that it cannot make them agree
passed by Judea and was some 400 miles to the east.
with the notoriously untrustworthy pagan records.
Babylon at this time was not a world power but this
victory by Nebuchadnezzar broke the power of the king The "tlnrd year of Jehoiakim" (Daniel 1:1)was
of Egypt, and Nebuchadnezzar was quick to follow his therefore the third full year of his vassalage to Nebu-
advantage and drove the king of Egypt back to his own chadnezzar which was the end of his eleven-year reign
mnntry, thus changing the nominal control of Pales- (617 B. C.). The Daniel 1:1 record was written in
1.,_92= WATCH TOWER
Babylon and took the Chaldean viewpoint of the third at Babylonkept the minds of the captive-~ in unrest by
year of Jehoiaklm’s relahonship with Babylon. The predmtmgonly a brief captivity. To quiet this unrest
events winch then took place agree with the Scriptural Jeremmh,in 617 B. 0., in a letter (Jeremiak 29: 1-23)
record of the taking of some of the Temple vessels and counseled the captives to settle downand make them-
of m,~ny Jex~ s caphve into Babylonin 617 B. C., eleven selves as comfortable as possible in anhmpatmnof a
years before the desolation. long period away from home, because the seventy years
--to begin in 606 B. C.--were surely to be accomphshed
FIRST CAPTIVITY BEGAN 617 B. C. at Babylon. (Jeremiah 29 : 10) No one knew then when
The record of the .historian Josephus of the eaptJvihes the ~eventy years were to begin. This was not understood
ofthe ac~s nl 617.B.C.--~he first of the captivities-- by Darnel till the first year of Darius. (Darnel 9 : i, 2)
is as follows: It is asserted that Jeremmh’sletter (617 B. C.) marked
"Now a httle time afterwards [617 B. C.], the king of the beginning of the "seventy years"; but this is not
:B,,tb.~lon made an expedition against ~Tehoiakim, whom he the case. As a matter of fact, the Prophet had uttered
lec’ei~ed [mto the mty], and this out of fear of the fore- thls very warning in 625 B. C. (Jeremiah 25: 1-38;
going predlctmns of tins prophet [Jeremiah], as supposing
that he should suffer nothing that was terrible, bec’mse he 29:11, 12), eight years before there was any captivity
neither shut the grates nor fought against into; yet, when at all ; for Judea and Jerusalem were not molested in
he was come into the mty, he did not observe the covenants 625 B. O. nor until four years later, when Jehoiakim,
winch he had nmde, but he slew such as were in the flower under fear of :Nebuchadnezzar’sthreats, becamea tribu-
of their age, and such as were of the greatest d~gmty, to-
gether with tlmlr king Jehomkun, whom he commanded to ta Wvassal to Babylon.
be tl~rown before the wails, without any burial, and made The various nations also were to serve Babylon sev-
his son Jehomchm king of the country and of the city: he enty years, but the servitude of different nations began
also took the principal persons in dignity for capt’~ves, a~ different times, from Phflistia in 625 downto Tyre
three thousand in number, and led them away to Babylon,
among whom was the prophet Ezekml, who was titan but in 606 (or 605) B. C., the latter city’s preliminary
young."--Ant. X, 6 : 3. siege beginning (618 B. C.) thirteen years before its
The Bible record of this captivity at the close of fall (605 B. C.) according to the article on Nebuchad-
Jehomkim’sreign is given in 2 Kings 24:2-6 ; 2 Chroni- nezzar in "Smith’s Bible Dictionary". The predicted
cles 36: 6; Daniel 1: 1, 2; and Jeremiah 22: 13-19. In seventy years’ servitude of all the nations was, however,
this matter manywriters on this subject have been mis- prachcally coincident with the seventy years’ desolation
led by attempting to harmonize these events with unre- of Judea, though some served more than seventy years.
hable pagan records. The pagans in all their affairs No one date prior to 606 B. C. can be set as meeting
were under demomstminfluence, and to attempt to fol- all the requn’ements of the prophecy of Jeremiah 25:
low them in doubtful matters .is to fall into error and 13-28. A seventy-year period upon Tyre had been prophe-
entanglement. sied by Isaiah (23 : 15-18) ; and as this agrees in terms
In the same year (617 B. C.), three months later, with the Jeremiah prophecy (Jeremiah 25: 11, 22), the
took place the second part of the initial caph~ty of seventy years’ servitude of Tyre to Babylon could not
the Jews, under Jehoiachin, to Babylon. (Jeremiah 52: have begun earlier than 606 or 605 B. C. Any close
28) This is described by Josephus as follows: examination then of the facts shows that not even the
"But terror seized on the king of Bob)lon, who had given prophecy of seventy years’ servitude or captivity upon
the kingdom to Jehoiachm and that immedmtely; he was the nations began to be fulfilled on all of them in 625
afraid tlmt he should bear him a grudge, because of his B. C. nor earlier than 606 B. C. The expression of
killing of his father, and thereupon should make the coun-
try revolt for him; wherefore he sent an army and be- Isaiali 23:15 is that "Tyre shall be forgotten seventy
sieged aehoiachin in Jerusalem; but because he was of a years [as an independent people], according to the days
gentle and just dispositmn, he did not desire to see the city of one lci~g [kingdom, empire]". Knowing that in
endangered on his account, but he took his mother and prophecy "king" is often used for "kingdom" (Daniel
kindred, and delivered them to the commanders sent by 11:11-1Li, etc.), the "one king" evidently refers to the
the king of Babylon, and accepted of their oaths, that
neither should they suffer any harm nor the city, wlnch seventy-year dominion of Babylon from 606 to 536 B. C.
agreement they did not observe for a single year; for the lgo other explanation of these passages meets all the
king of Babylon did not keep it, but gave orders to his condihons of prophecy and fulfillment.
generals to take all that were in the city captives, both A further dffilculty comes to light in comparing
the youth and the handicraft men, and bring them bound
to him; their number was ten thousand eight hundred and Daniel I with Daniel 2. In Daniel 1 the statement is
thirty-txxo; as also :Iehoiachm, and his mother and friends; that the four Hebrewlads were given three years train-
and when they were brought to him, he kept them in ing before presentation to the king. (Daniel 1 : 5, 18-20)
custody, and appointed Jehoiachin’s uncle Zedekiah to bo
In Daniel ~:1 it is stated that Daniel was brought
ktn~".--Ant. X, 8: 1.
The Bfl)le record of this is in 2 ]Kings 24: 10-17; before the king and revealed and explained the image
2 Chronicles 36:9, 10; and Jeremiah 52:28. dream in Nebuchadnezzar’s second year, which would
After the departure of Jehoiachin and the Jewish thus have been a year or two before they were pre-
captives to Babylon, some false proph~ among them sented to the Idng as recorded in Daniel 1:181 The
,168 BROOKLYN, N, Yo
WATCH TOWER
Variorum Bible foot-note reading for "second" is B. C.), but from the end of Jehoiachin’s three-months’
"twelfth", the "second" being evidently a slip of a copy- reign and the beginning of Zedekiah’s (617 B. C.)
ist’s pen, like the slip of the pen from eighteen to eight date which by no method of reckoning can be m,~de
in 2 Chronicles 36:9 and 2 Kings 24: 8. the beginning of a seventy years’ captivity. References
The "twelfth" year of Nebuchadnezzar agrees with to this are numerousin Ezekzel, as, "the fifth year of
the facts. It would be in the year 614 B. C. (625 minus king Jeholachin’s captivity" (Ezekiel 1: 2), "m the
11 equals 614), three years after the captivity of Daniel five and twentieth year of our caphvity" (Ezekiel 40 : 1),
and the other three Hebrewlads, Ezekiel and others, and numerous other verses. The captive Jews knew
and the expiration of their three years’ training -- nothing of a captivity begmmngm dehozaldm’s fourth
three years after 617 B. C., or 614 B. C. (Daniel 1: year, or Nebuchadnezzar’sfirst year. If there had been
5, 19) Thus the disclosure of the truth about Daniel such a captlwty it would naturally have been mentioned
1:1 and 2:1 removes the entire foundation for the elsewhere than in the doubtfully-dated Daniel 1: 1.
notion that the Hebrew captivity began in 625 B. C. These facts dispose of the assertion thnt the seve]~ty
and that 625 B. C. was the beginning of the 70 years. years’ captivity began in 625 B. C., and sho~ that ,~o far
No one knew better than the captive Jews in Babylon as the Bible and Jewish history are eonc¢~rncdour chro-
whentheir captivity began. They never dated the initial nology, which places the beginning of the "sev~.nty
captivity from the first year of Nebuchadnezzar (625 years" in 606 B. C., is correct.
in them separate tongues, addressed by able brethren in there. This year we have succeeded in getting a special
thmr respective languages. It is our hope to have every rate from the railroad companies without the necessity
Pilgrim brother in the United States and Canada at- of the certificate plan, and the /mends will be enabled
tend, and probably some from foreign countries. to buy their round-trip tickets at their homestation;
Wemake this early announcement of the convention so there will be no loss of time or confusion at Cedar
in order to enable the friends to begin to makeprepara- Point in validating certificates and purchasing t~ckets.
hen for their vacations, etc., that they mayattend this The special rate without certificate is obtainable under
general com entmn. Because of the expense, we are not rules which must be exactly observed. The rules will be
encouraging local conventions to be held between now published in detail.
and September1, but believe it would be pleasing to the In addition to the Bible Students, all Christians who
Lord for us to concentrate our efforts toward making believe in the Lord Jesus as our great ransom-sacrifice,
the Cedar Point Convention the greatest ever held. and who love the Lord, will be welcometo this conven-
The Society has provided a regular committee on tion.
arrangements, who will have charge of the details for
And now, dear brethren, let us one and all present
the convention. Those desiring special information
the matter before the throne of heavenly grace, and ask
should address the Convention Committee, 18 Concord
Street, Brooklyn, NewYork. the Lord to make this convention one of great blessing
Transportation facihtms for Cedar Point are first- to all who shall attend and a splendid witness for his
class. Three trunk railways, through Sandusky, besides cause. The kingdom of heaven is here l Let us rejoice
electric railroads and steamship companies, operate hnes and be glad, and with gladness tell it out to others.
¯ 0~¢ ninny valuable lessons in life might be learned that the Israelites would h~ve to serve the king of Baby-
| by observation! It seems to be a trait of fallen lon, but apparently Zedekiah had as tittle faith in the
himmnity to give little or no heed to the lessons Word of God, as do many today ~ne o,~,ress with their
that might be drawn from the experiences of others, no lips to be his followers, but wh,,~e aearts are far from him.
matter how mmHar the conditions may be. "Others were
foolish; I’m too w~se to be caught in that way" seems to WARNINGS UNHEEDED -, I£.~.~ER FOLLOWS
be ingrained m human nature. Many in present truth, Nebuchadnezzar besm~e,: ,leJ, ,’th.m for about eighteen
even, are slow to learn valuable lessons by observation. months before it capHub,~ed Ir’tmlne and pestilence weak-
Doubtless the adversary is quick to foster such a spirit of ened the defenders an,! the c, ty was taken and d~,stroyed.
~elf-reliance and disdain for advice. God’q time for pua,shnmnthad come a.,l n, thip~ could
stayi~ ’,cuger.(Jeremmh37: 6-10)ZedekL,::e,’d.nvc-ed
SCHOOL OF EXPERIENCE NEEDED escape, but was soon captured.He and the rm ",~md~r of
the Israelite ~- ~-ho had been left from the ~, ou~ cle-
For nearly one thousand years God lind t)ee~* deahng with
the Israelites as his people, administering punmhnients el ~.,rtat,o> ,~’ en y~,u’s before, were taken to Ea,," ., ,vith
showeimg blessings, ae,.o.:tllng to their dmobedmnee or the eyeeptm1: of a few of the poorest o~ the peGph Ged-
loyalty. Zedekiah must have been familiar with these almh wa- appointed ruler over this remnant, but im was
records of natiorml history. The recent experi~r,(.e, of his assass~n,L’ed w~thin two months by one of Zedekmh’s cous-
own brother, Jehoiakim, and his nephew, Jeho~,,chln, must ins [:e:trHig the wrath of Nebuchadnezzar, those who were
still have been fresh in his mind. Jehoiakim had broken left fled into Egypt thus leaving the land "desolate, without
faith with King Nebuchadnezzar aml btd lost both his an Inhabitant," as God had spoken through his prophets.
throne and his life. aehoiachln was then languishing in a
Babylonian prison. Yet in the face of all these known PROPHECIES FULFILLED LITERALLY
facts, Ezekiel Informs us that Zedekiah had deliberately Jeremiah had said: "Thine eyes shall behold the eyes of
broken his covenant with King Nebuchadnezzar, and that the king of Babylon, and he shall speak with thee mouth to
tlns was the immediate cause of his downfall. God would mouth, and thou shalt go to Babylon," (Jeremiah 34:3);
not hold him guiltless for breaking a solemn covenan~ even while Ezekiel had foretold: "I will bring him to Babylon,
with a heathen king. (Ezekiel 17:11-17) How deeply this to the land the Chaldeans; yet shall he not see it; though
lesson should be Impressed upon the minds of all who have he shall die there". (Ezekiel 12: 13) If he had been In-
made a covenant with Jehovah! He assures us he will be clined to doubt these prophecies at first, no doubt he had
faithful to keep his part of the covenant and expects us good reason and opportunity to remember and believe them
to keep our part to the very best of our ability--perfectly later, as he languished in a Babylonian prison. He had
In heart at least. seen Nebuchadnezzar and spoken to him "mouth to mouth",
Zedekiah had treacherously entered Into a lea~m with had seen his own sons slain before him, and then had bad
the king of Egypt with a view to throwing off the Baby- his own eyes put out. Our Lord says that there will be
Ionian yoke. When Nebuchadnezzar learned of it he deter- others who have professed to be his followers, but who.
mined to bring Zedekiah to his sen~e~. God had foretold having failed to heed his advice, will be found weeping and
1re WATCH TOWER N...
gnashlng of teeth when it will be too late to change their be no more until lie come whose right it is, and I will give
course We rejoice to know that in no case will it be an it lum."--Ezekiel 21: 25-27.
endless torment. It was not m Zedekiah’s case. Death later
relieved hnn of his sufferings. When he awakens at the call TIMES OF THE GENTILES
of the Lord he will be more attentive to admonitions. God lind foreknown what course his people would take
and had recorded it prophetically by Ins servant Moses.
CRUELTY TO PRISONERS He had even mentioned a time limit durit~g which he would
We digress a moment to notice the terrible’ cruelty to severely chastise them for their disobedience and disloyalty,
which man can descend. namely "seven times"--2520 years. In order that tus people
"In the bus rehefs representing tile capture of Lachish b3~ Sen- at this tinge might have a sure understanding of the ’tunes
nacher~b, the pilseners are shown, some pegged down to the and seasons’ he marked this feature of his deahng xxith
ground to be flayed ahve---others having thetl eves put out. In his typical people very prominently, both the begiaumg
one of the sculptures at Khosabad, Sarz, ou leple~eats lnulself in
person as holding a prisoner by a thong attached re a ring passed and the end, 606 B. C. and 193.4 A. D. Later lie had ~ent
through his under hp. The_xiet~m kneels befole h~m, while with word by Jeremiah that the land must have its appointed
a spear he pierces his eyes. Othols are Cll[Ul]O(] and, ~xitll hooks rest, viz., the seventy sabbath years that had been lnuxided
through their hps, are held awaiting their tuln Ill other cases for in the law gt~en at Mr. Sinai, to ~xhich they had agieed,
the king slays, the prisoner with |11s own spear. In another all but which they had not kept. We wall not enter into the
executioner flays a captive ehalued to a wall It was especially
in Persia that the cruel practme of bhndlng prmoners prevailed, details of these ci~ronological features here, as they are
and it is mentioned by most Greek historians. In Tmkey it was more tully covered by current articles bearing more directly
formerly the custom for the Sultan on Ills accession, rather to upon that point. We merely remark that the times of the
slaughter or blind his half-brothers that he might have no rl~ als gentiles and the seventy years of desolation of the land
or dangerous ones near his throne [n modern Persia the Shahs begin at the same time, viz., 606 B. C.
have invarmbly, even up to the present century, put out the
eyes of all their brothers whodid not escape in time to distant
provtnces."--Canon Tristam. PROPHECIES TO BE FULFILLED
The heart of man has not altered much during the past The~e records were not kept merely to satisfy curiosity
two thousand years. Modern treatment of prisoners is a or for ancient history. The Apostle informs us there was
trifle more considerate than the above; but public senti- a divine purpose in it. "All ~cmpture is given Ily inspiration
ment, not change of heart, appears to be the restraining of God, mid is profitable for doctrine, for reproof, for correc-
influence. During the World War, almost unbelievable atroc- tion, for utst~ notion in rLghteou~ness; that tile nmu of God
ities were committed against Chmstian conscientious ob- may be perfect, thoroughly furnished unto all gee(1 ~orks."
jectors. Some were subjected to semi-starvation; others to "For whatsoever things x~ere written aforetime xxere x~ ritteu
confinement in freezing cells in midwinter; others were for our learni~g, that we through the patience and comfort of
hand-cuffed with "figure-of-eight" handcuffs with their hands the scriptures might have hope." "Now all these things hap-
behind the back. Some were kicked; others were clubbed pened unto them for ensamples [types] : and they are writ-
and beaten with fists; and still others were drenched with ten for our admonition, upon whmn the ends of the we :,a
ice cold water in zero weather and were denied toilet privi- are come." (2 Timothy 3: 16, 17; Romans 15:4; 1 Corin-
leges; some were manacled to cell doors; and others were thians 10:13) There are many prophecms covering the end
swung by the feet with head down into the filthy latrines. of this age, and they are as sure of fulfillment as were
those referring to Zedekiah and the children of Israel.
According to our latest information there are still nearly Every child of God should therefore give careful attention
a hundred political prisoners in American prisons whose
"to the thing~ ~hich ~e have heard, lest at any tune we
only crime was that they objected to war. The pendulum
should let them shp". The fact tbat retmbutiou--reward
Is now swinging to the other extreme; and everybody is
or penalty--is often delayed, is fiequently presumed upon
rushing to be foremost in d~sclalming war, declaring that
by the foolish, who vainly think they can sow wild oats and
they never did beheve in it. I=Iow fickle is public sentiment! never reap a harvest. Both individuals and nations have
We recall the experiences of our Lord. One day they were
long ventured to act upon this hazardous and vain hypo-
acclaiming him as king; five days later they cried: "Crucify thesis. Well would it be if they would hearken to the
him". This will continue until "he whose right it is" shall
Apostle’s warning: "Be not deceived: God is not mocked;
have fully established his kingdom.
for whatsoever a man soweth, that shall he also reap".
The operation of this divine law is more manifest upon
ZEDEKIAH THE LAST TYPICAL KING classes and nations first, because their prominence gives
At the request of the childreu of Israel, God had told them world-wide publicity; second, because their harvest
Samuel to anoint Saul to be their king. Various ones were must of necessity be in the present life, since as nations
permitted to occupy this throne for a period of several they will have no existence hereafter. A glance at the pages
hundred years, but God claimed that the real throne belong- of history reveals the fact that all the nations of the past
ed to him. (1 Chromcles 29: 23) He would determine who have reaped a bitter harvest. They had their rise, their
should represent him typically. Both kings and people con- struggles for existence, and their periods of flourishing.
tinued to manifest stubbornness and disloyalty. God fre- Then pride and fullness of bread caused them to become
quently sent them messages of reproof, coupled with prom- careless in their fancied security, only to sink in the scale
ises of blessings if they would even endeavor to live up of morals, until decline was followed by their complete fall.
to their covenant, made through Moses. But they would All the natmns of the world are now approaching the
not listen, and persecuted and ill-treated his prophets and most terrible crisis of their existence. It is a time of un-
messengers. Finally God declared he would no longer per- paralleled and still increasing trouble. They are reaping ~ hat
mlt any one to rep.resent him as king even in a typical they have sown. Claiming to be God’s people, they have
sense. His declaration through the prophet Ezekiel was: disregarded his Word, violated their own solemn vows as
"Thou profane and wicked prince of Israel whose day is- written in their constitutions and laws. The results are
come, when iniquity will have an end, thus saith the Lord manifest. God’s sentence has been given, and step by step
God, Remove the diadem, and take off the crown; this shall the execution of it is being carried out Let every true
not be the same: exalt him that is low, and abase him that child of God lift up his head and look up, realizing the
11~ h!gh-~ )" v¢ill overturn, overturn, overturn It: and it shall dangers and the special blessings of this day of the Lord.
2UDAH’S PROSPERITY AND ADVERSITY
-- JuN~ 25--QUA~TEELy ~EVIEW -- --
F.F~’~CT OF JEREA[IAH~S I~IPRISON~[ENT- PBOLONGATION OF GENTILE RULE- THE LAND OF PEO~[ISE DESOLATED- TI~E TI~ES
THE GENTILES -- THE PROP~ET DANIEL’S TESTI~JONY.
"Blessed is the nation whose God ts Jehovah."--Psal~ 88:12.
uSecL ye dehoruh lchlle he may be foun,l, caU pc Ul)O~t hun tthdc he t~ ~tear. Let the u trl, cd fors.l,e hi8 ~t a~l, and the
ttll/~(/ht¢oIL~ ~lt(/tl, It,8 lho~tgI~’ts" (,ml let /inn rctu~n ~l,to Ichot,,h end .lEe ,cUl h(/cc ~1261cy*tp01t htltt;
und to ottr God, for lee ic?ll abllmhl~tth] lm~dom"--latltah 55: 6, 7.
lhe h:llX(’.zt xxolk l1 d the pel>,mahue~ th~ Lold ]hqq llbett :IdOl lhdt the klngd,lm -f heaven ~s at hand.
~, l iCE f oe U ~ [ o ~ il3: b
ill that \’,l)rl~: ut \ xe I _.llllll)i- d onllt,
NOT AFRAID OF THE FACE OF CLAY
and do m,t doubt i11 the leaat, that ~e a~e m lhe llal~e~t
tune .tlld that the be-l; of Ezekiel W.lb g t El:tell for title tulle Feal le.,-qle~s of lnan \\as o[/e of his marked character-
and l~w llo other, for It has 1levee i)re\loil-~ly b~ell nnder- ]..tl~.~, ;llld the bitter alld ltOl~-OIIOtlq \\ol’d’~ of his ene11/le%
stood. 11111113 of \\holll x\ouhl gladlx b txe ".o0n ]Ilia blirned ahve,
it ~e ate ll~nla in the dose of tile har~e-t pot,,,I, and Imd no \~elgllt ~l[ll hml..o’ce[,r to make Iron tile more
if l’a.btor Ilusaell \X,lb die Lord’s "f.tlthful .,rod x ,-e ser- ze,llml ¢, to 1)l’oChllnl the \\hole trlllh.
vant’" ~t \\ould he lll~-t leasonahle to find,th.lC tlus llook It ~xas his nledt to klmx~ und to do the Father’,- will;
find QUiely the food \x h~ch t he h¢ ,i x ellly Father gave to
of ’Ezekiel ~ould d~-cu-- his X~olk and lib lelaklon to O~d’s
gl’,_nt plan of the nae-, and ~o ~e hn,l al/d ~lllt:ll he ill tmn hand~MOlll tO lhe d\xaltln,g lt~’~L
’~\e do not ~ny that the pr~phet Ezekiel al~\a,~s t3plfied of f,litlt hn,~ been me,,t x~tllCll llle \~.olld l.:llew llOt of,
Pabtor Ilnbsell That ~xl)llltl l,Ot lie the lilOl)er X\A3 to ex- iile..;lae \V]lldl, tllou’~h the ill(p4t optllnlstle message that
pre~- the lnatter. Wh:lt xxe do say is th,tt Ille l,~ophet e~el t_,lllle tO hlllllalll, liid, t[~ i,lr ;is its ontemne is eon-
Ezekiel fole~_lllld¢lx%ed tlle olhce of a xxltt,.:lllll.tll ,ll .q)liitlUti celYed dl~ch>scd thdt the ~cl lptUl’nl path to those future
lsr,lel at tile end of the g~-pel ale, rile ..lille oll,(_e x\luch I)le-Mnga he.~ thloll~h the deep",t and darkest valley that
our l.m’d had Ul nlllld ~llen he nhule lnentim/ of the faith- m,mkl,ld \xlll exer lille to pa~s throu~h--a tlnle of aanrchy
fal ,tim ~ ibe sel\,lnt, and we hold that Pa%ut ltu%l,ll hlle, ill x\htqh e\my human remedy will have been proved un-
avalllllff
both offices, or, lather, that the ollice~ are one .tml the ~alne,
ryhe <er~ant ~as faithful because he was a faithful x~atcll- [’,l~_lor .Rub~ell \~,ls continually finding in God’s Wordtlle
mall treabules x~ hmh (’od hhI there f,,r th,tt very pul’p~se; and
t’aaCor Russell took a firm stand for God’g ~Vord and wharexer he foa~ld ~xtts not laelely toed for ]us nund, but
stood ate,ldfaatly :for it at all times befo,’e fewmls and meat for lus seal. That he lo\ed the truth and lived tile
befole OEelllle~. Its spirit, pox\or, iuflue.ce, v,a- the ~.plrlt, tlnth no one thnt kllexx hhu emlhl poss,I)ly qnestlon.
po~el’, nliluenee, that radiated froln his o)unten,mce alld Tile nlOtlVe ~\lnch actuated Into to travel tile lengths and
from hlb \xorl~:s bremhh~ of Chrlstendoln proelaunmg "Tile Overthrow of
Snlal~’a Empu’e." "The Battle of Armageddon," "The Oath-
"A WORK ~ A STRANGE WORK" bound Covenant," and other o£ Ills fa\Ol’lte lectules was not
that of falne; for he had more of that than any man eould
Pastor xtussell \\as called 1lot to do ,l %!Ilia \\oil(. II
vivalistic wolk, a work "mmng noniChri-tian ~ l~Ie ~as ~ll. It ~\as a incase of lo~e, a desire to reach all the
healing earl and to ble~s all the longing hearts with tile
called to do ,’l wolkm spiritual I.~rael slnnlar to that per-
me<~age of truths now due.
fornled b5 our Lord and tile ,ipostles amongJe~x lsh l ehglon-
ists in the end of the JewiMl age. HEATHENDOM WOULD HAVE HEEDED
G,M’s professed people have always been notolloUSI5 ml-
pudent. They consider that the mere fact that tile3’ are It was hterall3 tlne, as prophesied by Ezekiel, that if
profe~.~ed ~orshlpers of God slmuld be sufticlent to lilt.are Pastor I~us~ell had gone ~ lth his message to heathendom it
their bland,rig. For anyone, prophet or priest, teacher or would ha~e been received, for the reason that it ~s an
layman, to mtnna~e that they h’tve aught to learn, or any infinitely more reasonable message than anything from
steps to retrace, they eoit~ider it an insult. And as it was either heathen or Christian sources that has ever reached
foreseen by the prophet Ezekiel that those to whom he bore these unfortunates. In Japan, India, and China the natives
his message would not hear, so Christ bore witness to the were so eager to hear more that it was with difficulty he
shine fact not only as respects his own ministly but as re- could mahmun his prearranged schedule,
spects the mlnlstr3 all tile way down the age and at ~tR close It was trne al~,, that the forehead--the mind---of Pastor
Pastor Raw,ell beheld tile same lethargy But Chl’l~ten- Russell x\-ab like adanlant against the foreheads of all who
doln can never say that it knew not of the things he taught; opposed the nle~sage of the truth. No argument can stand
for dmy xxel’e tile most \\,dely spread rehgmus teachings before the truth, no answer can be made to it; for truth
1, oo= WATCH TOWER in
ts irrefutable. Like the diamond tt cuts its way through all As Ezekiel was to give warnings to fleAlly Israel, so
opposltmn; and m the end the message that Pastor Russell Pastor Russell circulated tens of m~llions of \~armngs, ~et-
bole wall be found to be tile one true ’exerla~tmg gospel tiny forth the correct Scmptural teachings on the sub3e(.t
wll~eh ~hnll be to all people~, llatlons, language% aln[ tongues’. of tile wages of sin and kindred topics--warnings which ~t
I’,l¢.tol 1,’tlS>ell’s apl)roach to those lU .>p~ritu,tl captlxlty x\ould ha\e been well for the religious teachers of our day
¯ ~a,, a kmdl5 apprna(.h, ])tit, it.\,,;is A bold one, and a folce- if they had believed and heeded. The world is madly rusl>
ful one. ][e knew that the. I,,)l’d’~ blessing xx as being pouled mg ou to\\ard anarchy because its rehgtous leaders h.txe
out upon his efforts, nnd m tile Lord’s strength and xxlth 1)tetel’i’e(l to believe a he rather than the plain statements
burmng Teal in his heart he nlade the utlnost endeavors to of God’s Word. A hmnble acknowledgement by the clergy
extend tile message by every possible means. of onr day tllat they had been misinfornied on the sub3ect
of eternal torment, would have restored tile faith of millions
THE DIVINE APPOINTMENT of men and women who now have no froth in anythulg.
As Ezekiel sat by tile river Chebar seven days wntting Tllus the truth was, in a measure, bound, suppressed,
for the Lord’s word, and was theu appointed a watchmau held back froln the people. Church members have been urged
in Islael, co we can see that there was a period of seveu to get rid of every scrap of paper bearing the message of
years, ending in 1881, during winch Pastor Rus,ell was present truth; the truth has been preached against in
waiting at,on the I,ord for tile further light winch arrived practically every church in the Enghsh-speaking, German-
in the fall of that year. That 3’ear marks his full appoult- speaking, and Swedish-speaking world. Yet it would have
ment to the stewardship which the Lord placed in his hands. saved the world from the impending time of trouble. Now
It.was the year of the publication of "Food for Thinking nothing can save the world, and the fault lies squarely
Christi’ms" (tile original form of Volume I of the Scmr- where Ezekiel placed it, and where Pastor Russell placed
TURE STL;DIISS) alid of "Tabernacle Shadows". It was the it, witl~ the false shepherds that have been more interested
year xxhen tile assocmte editors’ names were dropped from in the wool and mutton than in feeding the sheep. But in
tim WATCHTOWER, and P, rother Rusuell announced that tile end the truth \x ill prewul; and even those who have
hencefo, Ill he would recogmTe a le-.pmlstbthty to tile Lord bound, hindered, it many of them, let us hope, \~lll e-
for x~hatever appeared m its eolmnns. jozee m Its light.
set up. The reign of the Messiah is a reign of ri.ghteous- tile h~ghway of holiness, back to righteousness. He will
ness. The taking of his dominion and power might have been ope.n the great prison-house bf death and cause the prisoners
by all entirely peaceable means had the words of tile Lord, to CalUe forth and show themselves. During this wonderful
as recorded in the Bible, been heeded. work Satan shall not be permitted to deceive the nations.
Israel was a typical people, and her experiences fore- It would seem that no one could read the second chapter
shadowed the experiences of Cliristendom. Through the of Daniel, whlell constitutes today’s lesson, without seeing
prophet Jerennah (;od warned Israel of impending disaster that the tnaugnl alien of the Lord’s klngtiom means the end
unlesu she w,uld take heed to Jehovah’s admonition The of gentile dominion, the end of the powers that be, the
words of aerennnh nntltYlneall3 apply now to Chlq:tendom, end of Satan’s elnp~re. I’evh ~ps it is for this reason that
the leading part of the earthly organization of Sat-tn’s em- this most interesting aml fo~ce’~ul picture of the incoming
pire. If the power.> now operating and eontrolhng tim peo- of our Lord’s kingdom ]laq been generally avoided by thole
ples of earth \~ould heed the admolntmn of the Lord ex- who have selected the SuAda,, School les>ons The chapter
ple-sed by the Prol,het long ago, to cea.>e exploiting the should be read fl’eqtmntl.v b5 all who are interested in God’s
people, to lie content u ~th a reason.lble eompensatmn, hon- Word. It cent,tinsjust tile food needed m our day; for x~e
e.btly and fairly to lepre~ent tile l/e:,l)le, and openly and have come to the tmle wilen the china\ of history which
frankly to tell them the tluth concerning God’s plan, avoid- it portraysis here,even at the doors.
ing all x\ronI4d(~li~g , Messiah’s kingdom wouhI be nmugur-
ated ill peace But tile ln,heati(m~ ate \ery strong that HOWDANIEL’S LIFE WAS SAVED
these ealthlx pox.er~ will not heed tile Lord’s warning; 1<lng Neliuclladnezzar employed and l)erhaps Ol’tginated
hence there wall be a time of trd)ulatlon ~uch as nexer was the rule of ’~CtlOU used by the Roman and ]}rtt~sh empires
since there \\’as a nation, as Jesn~ fmetold--Matthc~ 24: In lmllnt:/ltiil~g order throughout then" reahns. His eourtims
21, 22. xxere chosen froni the various nations which he had subju-
SATAN’S UNRIGHTEOUS EMPIRE gated As Geaeral Smuts, one of the generals ill the Boer
Satan estabhshed his empire upon the basis of unright- rexolution, is now premier of South Afmca, and as w/rlous
Indian princes rule over sectmns of Indm, so Daniel xxas
eousness, and has long ruled m the minds of the people,
trained to serve in Nehuehadnezzar’s court; and when Ne-
blinding them to God’s purposes, lie has sent milhons in buchadnezzar ordered the death of all his courtiers because
sorrow (lOWl ~. to the grave. The members of the human race ti/ey could not relate to lnm Ills own dreanI, and provide
have become Ins enl)ttx’es, lie is the great, cruel prison- h~m with an explanation of its meaning, Darnel was in-
keeper. Our Lind’s kingdom, now being put into operation, cluded uI tile sentence.
will bind Satan, lestraining his power, and put him into a Acting ~x~th heavenly wisdom, Daniel gained a stay of
WATCH TOWER
execution for a night, while he Joined with his three faith- not to be served, but to serve, and to give his tlfe a ransom."
ful comrades m prayer to the great Ruler of the universe Hence, Daniel approached Nebuchadnezzar’s dream trom
that th~s dream and its meaning might be revealed so that the king’s own standpoint and declared that tim image
they m~ght not be destro.~ ed with the other counsellors, and which he had seen, with its head of gold, arms and breast
thus their opportunities of usefulness to God’s people be of silver, belly and thighs of brass, legs of iron, and feet
brought to an end. part of iron and part of clay, was a great image, e~en as
The fervent prayer of a righteous man availeth much. the gentile kingdoms have seemed great in the eyes of the
The whole matter was revealed to Daniel that same night; world; that its brightness was excellent, even as the glory
and in the morning he stood before the king, modestly and of these kingdoms has seemed excellent to those who have
truthfully disclaiming any wisdom on his own part in the borne rule over them; and that the form thereof was cal-
matter, and g~ving :~ll glory to the One who had come to culated to nmke one slink out of sight in terror. This, all
his rescue in his hour of need, while he made known to can agree, has been a marked characteristic of all the king-
King Nebuchadnezzar what had been his dream and what doms of the world which have borne Satan’s likeness and
it signified. been part of his dominion.
It will be interesting to note for a moment the setting
of this me,dent. Daniel and his eompamons had been at REMOVING THE VENEER
Babylon about four yearq. They had completed their course We do not need to remind the readers of this journal
of special instrnction mad had been presented to King Ne- that the head of gold represented the Babylonian empire,
buchadnezzar and been commended as the brightest of their the arms and breast of silver the Medo-Persmn empire, the
class, even brigi~ter "than all the magicians and astrologers belly and thighs of brass the Grecian empire, the legs the
that were in his realm". Daniel was a young man, and prob- Roman empire, and the feet, iron mingled with clay, those
ably was acting m a more or less humble court position. As governments which, in the early part of 1914, were still
this was the twelfth year of Nebuchadnezzar’s reign the king animated by the spirit of the Roman empire, were still
had not yet become the head of gold. That position was more or less under the influence of the Roman religion,
not attained until seven years later, in the nineteenth year and were all falsely claiming to be Christ’s kingdom, even
of his rejoin. as clay looks like stone but is a poor imitation.
At least three objects were accomplished by this extra- Nor do we need to point out that the stone which was
ordinary occurrence. First, it brought before the heathen cut out without hands is the true kingdom of God, which
king and his courtiers a knowledge of the true God and comes into existence not by human power but by the power
his interest in hunmn affairs and his ability to reveal of God. It is this stone which, cracking away the thin,
secrets. Second, through it God caused to be written a hypocritical, ecclesiastical "clay" from the kingdoms of this
record of his knowledge of futm’e events. Third, God used world, reveals their true origin, and causes their fall. And
it as a means to have his 1,~yai servants, Daniel and his it is the stone whmh, at God’s set time, smites the image
companions, exalted to po¢~tmn¢ of honor and trust. This suddenly, grinds it to powder, and takes its place as the
would prove to be to the Bab~-lonians a constant reminder governing power among men. The stone becomes a great
of the true God. Incidentally it brought all the magicians mountain and fills the whole earth. Here, then, we have a
and astrologers of the court under great obligation to Dan- divinely given explanation of the fact that the word "moun-
iel; for if it had not been for him their lives would have tain" when used in prophecy signifies a kingdom.
been forfeared It is not difficult therefore to imagine the
impress o~* made upon the court and all Babylon by the
DATE OF THE SETTING UP
sudde, prominence given to Daniel and the God of the
Hebrew, s by such a sudden change of affairs. Even Nebu- We make a distinction between the time of the setting up
chadnezzar fell upon his face to worship the Eebrew youth. of God’s kingdom and the time of the smiting of the image.
As Nebuchadnezzar represented Satan and his kingdom, The setting up comes first and the smiting follows, even as,
and as he fell down to worship the representative of the in the case of the Babylonian, Medo-Persian, Grecian and
true God, so shall Satan himself be compelled to fall down Roman empires, each of these was set up before it over-
and prostrate himself before Jehovah’s Son. threw its predecessor.
When Nebuchadnezzar finally became the head of gold, We date the period of the setting up, not from Pentecost,
no donbt he remembered his dream and its interpretation; as claimed by some. True, the members of the kingdom
and in his pride he ignored the interpretation. But God have been in process of preparation since that date; but
again made him acknowledge the Creator’s power to do as our Lord had not yet received for himself the kingdom,
he wills, and that, as recorded in the third chapter, he and had not returned to set it up in the earth. We do
could still precerve his servants that served him. Such noble not even date it from 1874; for, as we understand it, the
examples of faith shoubl stimulate every true follower of proper time for him to offer himself to Christendom as
the Lord to greater love and loyalty. Let the kings of earth their king had not yet arrived.
be the fearful and trembling ones. That time came 1845 years after our Lord had ridden
into 5erusalem and offered himself to the Jews as their
CHRISTIAN VERSUS WORLDLY VIEWPOINT king, in the spring of A. D. 33. And It was in 1878, then,
The Christina ideal of society and of government within that the process of setting up the kingdom began. There
the church and out~de of it i~ that of a brotherhood under our Lord raised the sleeping saints from the tomb and
the one Ma~ter, Chrtst. But, as our Lord e.x-plained, that joined them to himself, while his members upon the earth
is not the ideal of the unregenerate mind. The standards continued lhe work of making ready the remaining members
of Satan’~ imtme and of the Lord’s kingdom are as far of the body and of giving a world-wide witness of the com-
apart as the east is from the west. Our Lord compares the ing change of dispensation.
two in Matthew 20 : 25-28, saying, "Ye know that the princes Some might be disposed to think that the kingdom is
of the gentiles exercise dominion over them, and they that now all set up. But we do not so view the matter. These
are great exercise authority upon them. But it shall not would argue that the great wind which blew away the gold,
be so among you: but whosover will be great among you, the silver, the brass, the iron, and the clay, like the chaff
let him be your servac~t; and whosoever will be chief among from the summer threshing-floor, was the World War. But
you, let him be your alava : even as the Son of man came we point out that some members of the kingdom class are
¯ WATCH TOWER 171
still on the earth and that even since 1914 there is still kingdom shall not be left to other people, that it will haw
some life, a httle, m the Persian empire; some, a little, m no successors, for it will take the place of all other govern-
the Grecian emlare; and some in the reninants of the Ro- meats that have ever existed m the world or that now
man emlnre. exist, and it shall stand forever and ever.
SMITING OF THE IMAGE STILL FUTURE And finally Darnel sums up, for Nebuchadnezzar’s in-
We thereture wait until the stone ela~s is all completed, struct,on, and for outs "~ort~smuch a~ thou sawest that
and all joined to tile Lord, before we can look for a the stone w-is cut out w~thout bands, and that it brake in
coT~plctc ful{]lhaent of tins picture, although a great pre- pieces the iron, the brnss, the clay, the silver, and the gold;
hnim.i]y x~otk i~ going on, and ~e doubt ,tot that much of the great God hath made known to the king what shall come
the xeneer of eecle~m~ttcal lraud ~htch has covered the to pans hm carter: and the dream is certain, and the inter-
clarets of eartli’~ l{lng(toms to be part of Christ’s kingdom pretntmn thereof sure."
has ah’eady been l emoved. Our text is quite to the point. The kingdom of the world
It is a great comtort to know that man’s efforts to rule has been Satan’s kingdom. It ~s taken from h~,n by Messiah,
during the times ~,f the gentLles (and to a degree since) in a g~eat time of trouble; and It becomes the kingdom of
were nut m dcfillllee of .]-ehoxah. but by h~s permission until our Lord "rod Savior Jesus Chmst. There are stages m this
1914 and ~mce that time by Ins toleratmn, and that now, process. The work as a whole is done suddeuly, but not
shortly, the power which ks mghtly h~s will be exercised instantaneonsl.~ It is characteristic of tile Lord to do things
for ulan’s dehxerance from all l/is enemies. by pt’oces<es. The process of removing gentile rule is under
Unhke the gentge kingdoms, whose pox~er has shifted way, and the day of the Lm’d is at band. Would that all
from one to another, Daniel makes it plain that the Lord’s might see it and bend, as they must, to his righteous will.
AN INTERESTING LETTER
EACtl SAINT A CHANNEL Savior. I am learning to appreciate more and more that
MY ]:)I’~AR BRETHREN IN TI-IE ~&_INOINTED each one of the saints is a channel for the holy spirit of
Ju~_t ,1 hue ~f ’lpl)recmtion of the beautiful spirit manl- truth. A good channel has no stagnant water in ~t, but is
fe~ted m ’l’m~W x u ~ "l’o~ rR. I have just finished rereading ever receiving the pure water and passing it on to others
the ,lttlcle. Al,pro~ed W,,rlCmen", in the January 15 issue. to be refreshed and quickened. So all the true disciples
There ale certal,ily some ~ery helpful thoughts in that are springs of water flowing out to all. But only as we
article. I feel very grateful to my Father above for the are in close communmn with our Head can we pass the
tools he has provided, and I feel further thankful for the life-giving draught on to others. May we each one keep in
instructions lie gives us in their use through T~s WAvC~r contact with the great reservoir through humility and
TOWER and the brethren in Christ. It is my earnest and patient endurance.
sincere desire to become an approved workman. This is W~h fond anticipation for the great love-feast it~ the
also my prayer on behalf of those whom the Lord has kingdom, I remain,
placed in positions of great responsibility; and not only Your brother through the atoning blood,
those, but all those that love the appearing of our Lord and FI~NK FE~r.~ ~r go
International
Bible
Students
A sociation
Classes
BROTHER R. H. BARBER BROTHER V. C. RICE
R"hayer,Me.................. June 15 Monett,Mo.................... June 22 Lake Charles, La .........
Ozark Me ................. ’, June t6 Bogohlsa, La ................ June 26
16 Cartilage, Me................. " 23 Jennings, La .............. " 18 Wamlla.]~I)ss ................. ’,
Springfield, Me ........ " 18 Jol)hn, Me ......... June 24, 25 :Baton Rouge, La ..... June 19, 20 27
~,~h Grove, l~Io ........... " ffackuon, 5h~s................. ,, 28
19 Webb Csty, Me .... " 25, 26 New Orleans, La ..... " 21, 25 Xqck~burg,Miss ............. "
~7erona, Mo............. June 20, 21 Noel, Me.................... June 27 29
Folsom, La ............... " 22, 23 Memphis,Tenn ............... ,, 30
~.’\ .... ,:
P t
¯ , ~ [
\,A’.. /, ,"
, .. ;
CONTENTS
VIEWS FEOM~ WATCHTOWER.................. 179
Radio Tells Millennium Coming ................... 180
Millennium Near at Hand ......................... 180
"Millennium before 1924," Says Watts ..... 181
Second Advent Feared and Denounced ..... 181
TheCl~urchesin Politics ............................. 182
SEVENTY YEARS’DESOLATION (Part II) .......... 1S3
Pagan History Unreliable ......................... 183
Guessesof "Authorities" - ....................... 1S3
Suppositions. Theories, Conlectures ............ 184
Records Falsified by Kmgs....................... 185
Untrustworthiness of Arch~eologlsts ......... 186
GENERALCONVENTION AT CEDARPOINT, OtrlO .. 188
THE HANDWRITING ON THE WALL................. IS9
BI~REAN QUESTIONSON ARTICLES IN TOWERFOR
JUNI~1 ............................................................. 191
INTERESTING LETTERS ........................................ 191
"I wilZ stand upon my watch and wall set tny ]ooE
upon the Tower, and will watch to see ~,’ha? He wtli
say ~nto me, and what answer I shall ~l~ke to them
th.l c~ppose mc."--tlaba],kzl£ 2 I
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS SACRED MISSION
T HIS 3ournM ~s one of the prime factors or instruments
presented in all parts of the civilized
in the system of Bible instruction, or "Seminary Ext~on", now being
world by the WATCHTOWEaBIBLE & TRACTSOCIETY, chartered A.D. 1884, "For the Pro~
motion at Clirlstlan Knowledge". It not only serves as a class room where Bible students may meet in the study of the divine Word but
also :is a channel of communication through which they may be reacbed with announcements of the Society’s covventions and of the
coming of its tra,,ehng repiesentahves, styled "Pilgrims", and refreshed with reports of its conventions.
Our "Berean Lessons" are topical rehearsals or reviews of our Society’s published STUDIES most entertainingly arranged, and ~ery
helpful to all who would merit the only honorary degree which the Society accords, viz., Ve~bi Dei Minister IV. D. M.), which translated
into ]:iigli~h ]s Minister of God’s Word. Our tieatment of the international Sunday School Lessons is specially for the older Bible
studellts and teachers. By some this feature is considered indispensable.
Thi~ 3ournal stands firmly for the defense of the only true foundation of the Christian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
--redemption through the precious blood of "the man Christ Jesus, who gave himself a ransom [a corresponding price, a substitute] for
all". (1 Peter 1 : 19 ; 1 Timothy 2 : 6) Building up on this sure foundation the gold, silver and precious stones (1 Corinthians 3 :
15, 2 Peter 1 : 5-11) of the Word of God, its further mission is to "make all see what is the fellowship of the mystery which...has
been hid In God .... to the intent that now might be made known by the church the manifold wisdom of God"--"which in other ages
was not made known unto the sons of men as ~t is now revealed".--Ephesians 3 : 5-9, 10.
it stands free from all parties, sects and creeds of men. while it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
gubl,~ctAon to the will of God in Chrmt, as expiessed in the holy Scriptures. It is thus free to declare boldly whatsoever the Lord
hath spoken--according to the divine wisdom granted unto us to understand his utterances, lts attitude is not dogmatic, but conhdent;
for we know whereof we affirm, treading u lth ]mpheit faith upon the sure promises of God. ]t is held as a trlist, to be used only in Ins
service; hence our decisions relative to what may and wilat may not appear in its columns must be according to our judgment of his
good pleasme, the teaching of his Word, for lhe Dpbu~hhng of h~s people in grace and knowledge. And ~e not only invite but urge oug
readers to prove all its utterances by the infallible Word to which reference :s constantly made to facilitate such tesung.
TO US TtIE SCRIPTURES CLEARLY TEACH
That the church is "the temple of the living God", peculiarly "his workmanship" ; that its construction has been in progress throughou~
the gospel age---ever since Christ became the world’s Redeemer and the Chief Corner Stone of his temple, through which, when
finished, God’s blessing shall come "to all people", and they find access to him.--1 Corinthians 3 : 16, 17 ; Epheslans 2 : 20-22;
Genesis 28 : 14 ; Galattans 3 : 29.
~hat meantime the chiseling, shaping, and polishing of consecrated hehevers in Christ’s atonement for sin, progresses; and when the
last of these "hwng ston~u", "elect and precious," ~hali have been made ready, the great Master Workman will bring all ~ogether
in the first resurrection ; and the temple shall be filled with his glory, and be the meeting place between God and men throughout
the ]~hilenmum--Revelation 15.5-8.
’That the basis of hope, for the church and the world, lies in the fact that "Jesus Christ, by the grace of God, tasted death for every
man," "a ransom for all," and ~lll be "the true light which hghteth every ma~* that comcth sate the world", "in due tlme".--
I[eorex~s 2 : 9 ; John 1.9 ; 1 Timothy 2 : 5, 6.
~Phat the hope of the church is that ~he may be like her Lord, "see him as he is," be "partakers of the divine nature’,’ and share his
gloiy as his joint-licit.--1 John 3.2, John 1T.24, Romans 8:17; 2 Peter 1:4.
~l:hat the present mission of the church is the perfecting of lhe saints for the future ~ork of ~ervlce; to develop in herself every
glare, to be God’s witness to the world, and to prepare to be kings and inlests in the next age.--1.’phe~lans 4.12 ; ]~latthew 2~:
14; Revelation 1: 6; 20:6.
That tim hope for the world hes in the blessings of knowledge and opp~,rttlmty to be brought to all by Chrmt’s Millennial kingdom, the
restitution of all that was lost ]n Adam, to all the wllhng and obedient, at the hands of lhe~r Bedeemer and h~s glorihed church#
when all the wllfully wicked will be destroyed.--Acts 3:19-23 ; Isaiah 35.
- .d
or mdlreefl of church and state Thus does ~ehg,on m pohtms meddle in things that
At the hands of lovers of freedomthe prol)hc~ttc words Christ and the apostles ~ould emphatmally reaect as
are soon to be fulfilled uponall l’ehgmus.,~,tems. Papal none of the church’s business; for a unmnof church and
az’d Protestant ahke, that have intruded upon the do- state is unscriptural and unnatural, and is a perversmn
ma~n of the state: "A mighty angel took up a stone of the proper functmn of the church of God to keep
hkc. a great millstone, and east ~t n~to the sc,a [pre~ent- ~tself unspotted from the x~orld. (James 1: 27) The
da~ turbulence], saying, Thus with wolenee shall that da~k-age umon of Romamsmwith the governments re-
great city, Babylon, be thrown down, and shall be found suited m a mdlennmmof m~sery; and the well-intended
no more at all". (Revelatmn 18: 21) Nevertheless. rehgious regulations of the Pilgrim forefathers of
Slate of warning voices, the Protestant churches mthe Amermahad their outcome in the brutal burning of
United States are blatantly publishing the fact that "w~tches"at Salem, Massachusetts, during Colonial days.
they are in pohtics and propose to enter that field more However, there is great hope in the statement by
and more. This is illustrated in an item m the Pitts- H. W. D. Enghsh at the meeting that "more than fifty-
burgh Gazette Times: one percent of the populabon was indifferent or opposed
"Participation by adult B~ble class me,nbers in political to the church as shownin the church-membershipcensus
affairs, especially those having to do with the coming pri- recently made". It augurs well for religious and po-
maries in Pennsylvanm, was urged by the three principal htlcal hberty that this percentage is rising as the Amer-
mpeakers at the afternoon session of the annnnl conference ican people gain a growing understanding of the de-
of the Adult Division of the Allegheny County Sabbath termined effort being put forth by both Papal and
School Association In the Smithfield Street Methodiqt Epis- Protestant political machinesto control the country and
copal Church .... All organized Bible classes were urged in
makethe rest of the people bowto the will of fanatical
resolutions to form a committee to see that members of the
religionists. The time has almost comefor the religions
classes were properly qualified as voters, and to see that
those so qualified go to the polls and vote .... The church politician to forever cease his operation of anotherdark
and state were declared to have a commonobject, the well- age or another burning o~ witches under governmental
b~nB of the people, In an address by Dr. Urmy. They may authority.
SEVENTY YEARS’ DESOLATION (PART II)
"Them that had escaped from the sword carried he [Nebuchadnezzar] away to Babylon, where they werd
servants to him and his sons until the reign of the kingdom of Persia: to fulfill the word of the Lord
by the mouth of Jere,~iah, until the land had enjoyed her sabbaths; for as long as she lay
desolate ~he kept sabbath to fulfill threescore and te~ years."--2 Chromcles86: 20, 21.
INTERESTING LETTERS
ENJOYS MEAT IN DUE SEASON "JESUS AND THE RESURRECTION"
DEAR BRETHRENIN TIlE ANOINFED:
I)EAR BRETIlREN Loving gl’eetings in the name of our loving Father and
l~oving greetings in the blessed name of our Master! our adorable Lord nnd S.lx,,)l’, Christ Jesus. Even though
P,udan me for ii~ti’uding on your time but I just had to I know how V,lhlable is 5o111 time. yet 1 have felt con-
xXt’lte and try to express to you my gratitude for Tn~ strained to XX~lte to you, just to exp~eb ¢, appreciation te
tiara’ o~" GODand the first article in February 15 WATe~ the Lord that he is still fulfllhng lus promise of Luke
TOWEd.al.~o first article in Mal-Ctl 1 ~,VATCIt TOWER. I don’t 12:37; and th,lt [us people are still lece~xlng the meat in
see llow ~l~ Christian could obieet to THE I-~ARP; it is so due sea,ira b3 Lhose whom he has appointed as a channel
Dlam and convincing. WMIeI uas reading it I was filled of hN grace lind love.
P,lltlcul’u ly have I found tile articles very helpful and
with a desire to ha~e others read ~t, and want my precious
clnldren to sUldy it together. Stlmtll.ltmg ~e~al’dlng tim join neys and experiences of our
beloxed llrol]icr l’aul; ~tnd I am reInmded of our dear
I have hexer read :ulsIhlu~ th:lt ]lell)e(1 nle to umlerbtand Pastot"s xxor(ls in Vol l, p. 234: "The crown will be won
the significance ot the Inenl()l l,ll hke the Ul’Ucle m Fel)ruary when ue, like out" faitlfftll brother Paul, have fought a
15 WATCH ~I"o~ER (hd, and I tlo tllank the dear Lord and good fi~ht :rod filushed the eonrbe, but not sooner. Until
you. deqr hrethren, for tlmt article. I have just filliMled then, the flame and incense of our sacrifice of labor and
reading "Who i~ Wise?" in March 1 WATCHTOWEd. and service nmct ascend daily--a sacrifice of ~weet odor unto
certainly do alq)l’eclate it very much. I can testify tllat God, aecel)table through Jesus Christ our Lord."
all the truth I have was obtained hy reading the ~lltmgs The (lear Lind continue to uphold, strengthen, and bless
of "tirol faithful aim wise servant". I enjoy THE WATCH you, thqt the sqlne gl(n~ona lne-.w~ge ~hleh our brother Paul
TOWER %0 lnuch find it seeluu that each issue is belter, and preached conceriHiig Jesus and the resurrection, the Re-
that is as l.t slmuhl be, for the path of tile just "shineth deelnel and Iris klngdonL ransoin and restitution (Acts 171
more and more unto the perfect day", and xxe are nearing 18; 28: 23,31), nmy still go forth, and the standard of th~
that perfect day. Lord he lifted up before the people. "The kingdom of heaved
I desire an interest in your prayers and I pray dally is nt hand ~" I-Ience "millions now living will never die"l
that the Lord will give you wi~doln and grace to continue With fervent love in the Lord, in which Sister Spaekmaa
his work. We know you have Ills appl’owd, for if you did j01n% I aln
not you could nut x~tite such grand articles that ate in- Your fellow bondservant In Christ,
deed "meat in due season."--Mas. O. F. BROWN,Tex. (~ODFREY 8PACKMiN, LO~O~
191
International
BibleStudents
A sociaHon
Classes
drld5tudlc5b~Travchn~I
hecturc~ brethren
BROTHER $. B. WILLIAMS
BROTHER H. HOWLETT
Bmdgetown,N. S ............ Star City, Sask ............ Jul~ 3, 4 Kam,ack,Sask ........... July 16, 17
E. Hall’s Harbor, N. S. July 7, 9 July 17 Bidgedale, Sask .... " 5, 6 Bredenbur3,Sask ............. July 19
Kentvdle, N. S .......... Jul:~ 10, :11 Deep Brook, N. S ............ " 18 ]-Iumbol(lt, Sask ........ " 7, 9 ]orktou, Sank................. ,, 20
Cambridge,N. S ............. July 12 Yarmouth, N S ..... " 19 Clair. Saqk ........... July 10, 11 Mazenod,Sask .......... July 22-24
Berwmk,NS ................. " 13 B~dge~ater, N.S. July 20, 21 Wadena,Sank ............. " 12, 13 AusmlbOla,Sask ............... July 25
Mlddleton, N. S ............. " 14 I~aiffax, N. S ........ " 23, 24 Margo,Sask..................... July 14 Lueha, 8ask .............. July 26, 27
Kentwlle, N. S ............... " 16 South Rawdon, N. S ...... July 25
BROTHER W. M. WISDOM
BROTHER O. MAGNUSON
July 1, 2 Hobart, Okla ............. July 11, 12 Seymour,Wls................. July l, 2 Clintonvflle, Wm....... July 11, 12
Wichita Falls. Tex ....... G~een Bay, Wis ........... " 3, 4 Maroon,Wm.............. "
Electra, Tex................... " 3, 4 Gotebo,Okla ................. July 13 13, 14
" 5, 6 B~nger, Okla ............... " 14 Bonduel,Wls ................ " 5, 6 Oshkosh,Wis ............. " 15 16
Cluhhes-, Tex ............... Watonga, Okla .............. " Marmette,Wis............... " 7, 8 Sheboygan, Wts ........ "
Olu~tee, Okla ............... " 7, 8 16 17, 18
Rooue~elt, Okla .......... " 9, 10 Thomas,Okla ................. " 18 Appleton,Win.". ............. ~’ ’9, 10 Milwaukee, Wis ............. July 19
"I ~cdl ~tand upon nly tcalch a~d tvd| 6e1 my foot
,,port thc ’1’otter, and ~lall ~l~ttcll to see ~,’hatJle wdI
~tty tt~lto me, and l, hat a~l~..cr I 8hail ~llIlee to the.~
mC~--l/~lf,.It
l]l(l~ oI)l,I,~e / Ill
CDoll the e~,lh ,]lM,t,~ of natlnn~ wOhperple\lly, the sea and tile wswes{Ihe reckless, dlscorltenled) roarlllg, men’s ne,ll%~ ffllhng them for fear arlll for looking to tl~e
thlng~ e, lmln~ upon lhe earth (society), for the powers of the heavens (eceJeslas%lelsl~ 4nau he shaken Uhen Ye see these lhln-.s he,in to come to pass,
lllen kno~ that tile Klnglom of God la at baud Look Up, lift uD your beads, rejoice, for )’our redemption draweLb m~h--Matt 24 33, Maik 13 29, Luke 21 20-~1.
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS SACRED MISSION
THISpresented
journal ~s one of the prime factors or instruments in the system of Bible instruction,
in all parts of tile Cl~ lhzed world by tile WATCHTOWERBIBLE & TRACTSOCIETY, chartered
or "Seminary Exte~slon", now bein8
A.D. 1884, "For the PrO-
motion of Cllmstlan Knowledge" It uot ouly serves nsa class room ~ilere Bible stadeuts may meet in the study of the divine Word but
also as ,t channel at commuulcatlon through which they may be reached with anuouncelnents of the Society’s co,reaSons and of the
coming of its tla~ehug rcpre.~entatl~eS, styled "Pilgrims", and refreshed with reports of its conventions.
Our "Bereau Les~ous" are topical rei,ear~als or reviews of our Socmty’s published STUDIES most entertainingly arranged, and very
helpful to all who ~ould merit the only hOllotary dsgree which tile Society accords, viz., Ve~bi Dei Mtmster IV, D. M ), which translated
into English is Mlalster of God’s Wo~d Our treatment of the International Sunday School Lessons is specially for the older Bible
student~ and teachers. By some tills feature IS cousldetcd ludlspensahle.
Thl~ 3oulnal staEds firmly for the defense of the only true foumiation of the Christian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
--redemption through the precious blood of "lhe ]uau Cb| Ist Jesus, vtho gave himself a ransom ,Is corresponding price, a SOilStltute] for
all". (1 Peter 1 - lq ; 1 Tllnothy 2 6) P.ulldmg up on this sure foundation the gold, silver and precious stones (1 Corintluaus 3 :
15; 2 Peter 1: 5-11) of the Word of God, its furiller nli~sion is to "make all see what is the fellowship of the m~-stery x, hlch...has
been hid m God .... to tlle Intent that now might be made known by the church the manifold wisdom of God"--"whlch in other ages
was not made knox, s unto the sons of men as it is now revealed".--Ephesians 3:5-9, 10.
It stands free floln all paliies, torts and creeds of men, ~llile it seeks more ~ind more to bring its every utterance into fullest
subjection to the will of God In Chllst, a~ exple~sed lu lhe holy Scriptures. It is thus free to declare boldly ~hatsoever the Lord
hath spoken--according to lile illxlUe wisdom grouted unto us to undetsrand his utlerauces, lts attitude is not dogmatic, but conhdent ;
for we know ~hereof ~e’ag.ii m, ~readlng "~lth implicit faith upon tile sure proilll~e~ of God. ]t in held as a trust, to be used only in hl~
service; hcDce our decl~iOIl~ Iclatlve to what lUay and what may uot appear lit ItS columns nlUS~ be according to our judgment of his
good pleasme, the teaching of his Word, for the upbuilding of ll~s people in grace nnd knowledge. And we not only invite but urge ou~
readers to prove all lts utterances by the infallible Word tO which referenle l~ constantly made to facilitate such testmg.
TO US THE SCRIPTURES CLEARLY TEACH
’Ehat the church is "the temple of the living God", peculiarly "his workmanship ’, lhat its construction has been in progress throughout
tile gospel age---eter since Christ became the wolhl’s Redeemer and the Chief Corner Stone of his temple, throuch which, when
fire,hell. God s bic~lUg ~hali come "to all people", and they find access to hlul.--1 Corinthians 3: 16, 17 ; Ephesmns 2:20-22;
Genesis 2S 14, Galatmns 3 29.
~rhat nleantnne file Clllschn~, sllapln~, and poll<hlng of consecrated believers in C]lrlsr’~ atonement for sin, progresses ; and when th0
last of the~e "ilXlt,g .~tOllC~", "elect and p~c(lou%’" sllall il:l~e becu ulade leady, lye ~reat .Ma~ter Worl, man ~il brlug all together
iD the ill-st l C~tlr~c( ilOIlsilt[ the temple shall be filled with his glory, au(i be lho l’,Cetlng pi~tce between God and men throughout
the Mlllennmm--]te~elahon 15 5-b,
’That the basis of hope,-for tlle church and the world, lies in the fact that ".Jesus Christ, by the grace of God, lasted death for every
man," "a rallUOm for all," alld ~ll[ be "the true light which llghte¢h every IImll lhat comcth trite the world", "m due tlme".~
I-Iebre~s 2 9; John 1" 9, 1 TlluOtlly 2 5, 6.
5?hat the hope of the church is lllat she may be like her Lord, "see him ns he is," be "partakers of the divine nature’,’ and share hill
glory as his joint-heir--1 John 3.2; J~lln 17 .24; Romans 8:17, 2 Peter 1:4.
’~’hat the present.mid,ion of tile church ~s the perfecting of the smn~s for the flllure work of tervice; to develop in herself every
grace, to be (~od’.~ ~ltne~s to the world, and to prepare to be ~.lllg5 and plle~I~ in the next age.--Epheslans 4 : 12 ; ]~latthew 2&~
]4; Re, elation 1 . b; 20:6.
~hat tile hope for the x~orld lies in the hlessiDgs of knowledge and opportunity to be broucht to all by Christ’s 3iillennlal kingdom, th~
re~tttul~Oll of ,tl[ ~lmt ",~,l~ lost lu Adala, 1o all the wllhDg aud obedient, a~ the hands of their Redeemer aml Ills glOrlhed chtlrch$
when all the ~XHflllly wicked wfli be destroyed.--Acts 3:19-23; lsalah 35.
~¢~ IIOUPSof Bible students meeting to celebrate the ~[emorial of the Lord’s death on Aprd11, 1922, have
~J reported the numberpresent as follows. Hundredsof other groups reported less than twenty each. P, eports
frommanyforeign countries have not been received at the tnne of this writing, the countries having been
heard from including Canada,Africa, England, Scotland, Wales, Ireland, British West Indms, Canal Zone, Cen-
tral America, Cuba, Denmark,Finland, Germany,Greece, Hawaii, Italy, Mexico, Poland. Spare and Sweden.
Nexx "~ml, N Y . ........ 1064 Detrmt, Mwh ............... 345 Cmeumnt~ Ohm ........... 203 Stocklmhn. Sxxeden _ _ _151
London, 1;ngl~nd ............ q59 330 MlnnealDol~s , Mlnn .... 197 Milwaukee, W s. (Pohsh) 151
~ ;la~.’~ox; Scotland ......794 ~St Lore% 51:ln
~Vlpnlllet.
Me .........
...........315 Buftalo, N. Y .... 191 Mfl~x aukee, Wm........ 149
1 ,~- \ngeic.~, 12,]1 ............. 7,~5 |-[allll)lll Germany ..... 204 New Yoi’k. N. ’i" (Colored) ~ 185 Edlilt)ill ~tl Scotland . _ _ 147
CtH(’;lgo, 1,1 (Pohsh) ..... 6(;a Indmnapoh% Ind _lag
lh)¢ton, Mast ................. 50S LI~ ell)eel En¢land ............ 292 Tmoma\Vaah ............... 146
Chil ago, Ill ................. 505 W.n~ ~nw Poland ........... 259 Oakland. Cnl ...... -~__~ ____1S0 Rosela nd, Ill ................. .141
P~tt.,,burgh, Pa .................... 479 (’ohmlbu~. Ohio .......... 254 Manor Pail LOll(Ion. Eng. 178 San Antomo, Tex ............. 140
Clex cl.u~d O ................... 462 Manehe~te~, En¢land ....... 242 Cleveland, 0 (I’ohsh) __. 174 Kansaa C~ty. Mo .......... 137
447 Bii lnln~h~/lll, lt~ll~la.Ii | 2-t0 Portlp Ole ......... 169 Erie, Pa ......... 132
Detrmt, hhch’ ,(Polish) .....
ttel~mgfors, Flnl~.nd .... 405 S~ ,lltle \\a~h __ .... 933 Oldham, ]2n~land ....... 164 Obo. Finland ............. 122
Vancouver,B. C ................. 359 ~Vll~hlll~tOll, D 12. 23"i Toledo. 0 ............ 163 Spol, ane, Wash ............. 120
Philadelphia, Pa .................. 350 Copenhagen, Denmark 217 Denver Colo ............. 158 Vlctorm,"Wash..................... 119
~k)ronto, Ont. ................ 345 San ]:~anc~co, Cal .... 205 Leeds, England..................... 155 Gothenburg, 8wedexl ....... 117
200
WATCH TOWER 201
Peru, Ill (Polish) ............. 117 Pittsburgh, Pa (Poh~h) .51 Mtddleabot o, England ........... 34 Lew]qton,Pa ....................... 2c~
Hoaston~ Texas ............... 115 East Liverpool, 0 _50 Naul~x ]lie, Term ............... 34 Llnnelly, Wales...................... 2(;
Allentown, Pa ............... /14 I=la,d ey, England ........ 50 Brockton, Mass .................. 33 Mohne tll ........................... 2,,
Kingston, .lannuea, B. W. I. 110 lI,ff~ ttotd, Conn ...... 50 Ehvood, Ind .............. 33 Mniiele, Ind ....................... 9(;
Lmcester, EBg]and ........ 10S Miami, Florida. - 50 Greenheld, Mags ............... 33 Nelson. England................... 26
Georgetown, Dem, B. O., S I’alnes’,flle, 0 (tIung~’l-titin) Laneastm, England.................. 33 Pottstown, Pa ...................... 2(;
Amertea......................... 107 St Petersbtlrg, Fla . _ 50 Lu)i’nln Neb ....................... 33 Southampton, England ........... 26
Everett, Wash..................... 106 Cardiff, Wales ............... 19 Mode~to,Col .......................... 33 Akion, O (Pohsh) .................. 25
Lomsv111e,Ky ................... 106 St6ekton, Cal ............. _.49 ~,V lIlownsvllle, Pa Benton Harbor, Mieh ......... 25
Buffalo, N. Y. (Itahan) ...... 105 Ehzabeth, N J.- .............. 48 (Hungarian) ................... 33 Brighton, England .............. 25
San Dingo,Cal ..................... 104 Long Beach, Cal ................. 48 Wooster, 0 ................... 33 Ip-wieh, England ................ 2(;
Opelika,Ala ....................... 103 Newark, N. J ................. 48 Boul nenlouth, England ...... 32 Lansing,~ltch .......................... 25
Bmstol,England................... 103 Toledo, O. (Pohsh) ............. 48 Chase Terrace, England ...... 32 Lodz Poland ...................... 25
Oklahoma City, 0kla .......... 101 Wheehng, W. Va ............... 48 Fl eelmrt, Ill ................... 32 Loram, O (Polishl .............. 25
Chlcago, Ill, (Lithuanian) ~VoI~ erhampton, England 48 Grmibby,England.................. 32 Morgantown, W. Va .............. 25
St Paul, Mmn................... 98 Canton, Ohm................... 47 Kmgstoii, N. 7£ ................. 32 Penarth, Wales...................... 25
Sheffield, England................ 96 Dundee, Scotland ................ 47 Paso Rubles, Col ................ 32 Regina, Sask .................... 2~
Wilkes-Barre, Pa, (Polish) Kalamazoo, Mlch..................... 47 Pueblo, Col ......................... 32 Runcorn,Ellgland ................... 2fi
Worcester, Mass ................ 94 Schenectady. N. Y................. 47 Bloomlmld, N. J .............. 3]_ SiouxCity. Ia ........................ 25
Gland Itapltls, Mlch ........... 92 Duluth, Mmn ........................ 46 Colon Panama ................... 3]- Wlnklel, Man....................... 25
Rea(hng. Pa ....................... 90 Nora koeplhg, Sweden............. 46 Cm~tohal, Canal Zone Eraeeln idle, 0at ................... 24
Hull, England .............. 90 Phoemx,Amz........................ 46 ( Colored ) ................. 31 Delu~O]l,Tex............................ 24
Rochester, N. Y. (Italian) _-89 Wilmington, Del ............. 46 Curt~% Wis ................... 31 G~eensboro,N, C ................... 24
Lnnca,ter. Pa .................... 88 Altoona, Pa ................ 45 Daii~ file, Ill ................. 31 Guelph, Out ........................ 24
Akl Oil. Oluo...................... 85 Cumberland. Md.................. 45 G~ eenock, Scotland ....... 31 IIahfax, N. S .................... 24
Bn~ghunipton,N, Y ................ 85 Fall Rher, Mass ............... 45 Knkaldy, Scotland ................ 31. Jaekuon, Mich. (Pohsh) ...... 2~
l,hhnontmLAlta ....................... 85 Ft. Worth, Tex ............ 45 Titian, O .................... 31 ,Iolin~town, N Y ............... 24
]Iamflton, Ont ....................... 85 ITamnmnd--E. Chicago, Ind Z,lnesvflle, 0 .................... 31. Kain~ad¢,Sask ..................... 24
]-’.p,,ld en.t, Call ..................... 85 (Polish) ........................... 45 Alhnnee, 0 ............................. 30 Ne~ark, O ............................. 24
S,iM.Ahion,S,tqk ...................... 85 Mattoon,Ill ....................... 45 Chc>tm,Pa ......................... 30 NewBi’unskml~, N. g .............. 24
LIIICO]II, 1 ,l:~l’lnd ................ 84 GumboNch ................... 45 Ell,ha~ t, Ind ....................... 30 Parsons, Kans ..................... 24
New~ .l~tle-on-T~ lie, Eng ...... 83 Scull Ste Marie, 0nt ............. 45 Gilt, Ont................................. 30 Peterboro, 0nt ................. 24
St 3.~eph, M,) ................... Sa Sln’mgl~eld, Mass ................. 45 Joplin, Mo ..................... 30 P~ttsburg, Kans ................ 24
Ihiitaepol t Conii ............ 81 Duluth, Minn (Polish) ......... 44: Manchester, N. It. (Greek) .... 30 San Antonm, Tea. (Spanish) 2,l
KHdo\~ l’ol,lnd ..... _ _$1 E,,sex, England ................. 44 Matran, 0 ................................ 30 Tam~ol th, England .............. 24
Rwliliiond, 1 ,l ........... 81 Gilhnghnm, England ........... 44 Ne*~L~ukeard, 0nt ............... 30 Tunbrldge Wells, England .. 24
Btnl~etoxxn. l;all)ado~, B W1 79 Mobile, Ale ................. 44 New 0rlean% La., No. 2 ..... 30 Wakefield, England ............... 24
PoiV. ot Sl),Um Ttlnid,td _ 79 hit Vernon, N Y ......... 44 Peterborongh, England ......... 30 V," lkes-Barre. Pa ................... 24
Co~ enly, En~l,uld .... 78 Southend-on-Sea, England .... 44 Pl~a170V~a, Poland ............... 30 Aleksandrowkn, Poland .......... 23
Ja( k-on~ llle, Ula ...... 78 1-:~ ad ford, England.............. 43 Poughkeepme, N. Y ............ 30 AshevHle,N. C ..................... 23
lAHnlnn, ()lit ............... 76 I.:~tehermr, Ont ................ 43 Qu me.% Mass .................. 30 P, ayonne, N. ft. (Polish) ...... 23
~ii’.nl pills, TeBll .... 75 Tmte 1Lmte. Ind .............. 43 Saginaw, M]eh .............. 30 B~gSandy, Tex ................... 23
~\ li lhl,I, ]{,Ills ............ 75 W~gan England ............... 43 South Slnelds, England 30 Franlln~hanl, lllas s ........ 23
5 ¢iung~t-~x n, 0hlO ........... 75 Aulmrn, Ind ................... 42 Stottvflle, N. Y....................... 30 Kntv, l’oland ........................ 23
D,il!a*, Texas ............ 74 Pq azd, Ind ................. 42 Tonawanda,N. Y .................... 30 MeKe~port, Pa. (Colored) .
Liu que~ne, l’,t ................ 73 ][~rantfoii], Oat .............. 42 Trenton,N. a ........................... 30 0ttnxx a Ont ........................ 23
P, el tA ~t D elnnd .......... 72 Dartford, England ............ 42 Utica, N.Y............................ 30 Stratfonl, Oiit ......................... 2,}
1,h esm~, Col ................. 71- Bt eiimrton, Wash.............. 41. Yeo~ll, England.................... 30 "~V1ndsol-, Ont ............... 2,3
I’ate~,~on, 5, J .......... 70 ChanH)algii, Ill ................... 41 AlkflllqaS City, Kans............. 29 Athens, Gieeee ................ 22
lh)cheMel, N Y ........ 70 Des Moine%Ia ............... 41 Blaekl)ool, England................ 29 Bath. England .......... 22
Clobdon , l]nghmd _ _ _ 69 Lmm, Ohio ............. 41. Elgin, Ill ............................ 29 Black Rod., N, Y (Pohsh) _ _22
Chicago. III (Scandnlavtan) 6q Mansliehl, England ......... 41 Falknk. Scotland .................... 29 Bolsover, Englund .......... 22
L~nn 3last GS O\ ford, England ........ 41 Grand Rapids, Mich. (Polish) Bolton, England ............ 22
5,,tutti t)l,e Pa (Polish) .... GS Porter sburg, Va .................. 41 Hlltehlnson, Kans.................. 29 Che~terfiehl England .......... 22
T,ti,ipa I,’],1 ....... 68 l’ortsmonth, 0 .................. 41 L~tt]e Rock, Ark .................... 29 IIamilton, Enalnnd ........... 22
M o,:t i e,ql Que ........ 6G Sharon, 0 ....................... 41 Marina,Ind ......................... 29 Jfastm~s, England ............... 22
Santa "~im, (’nl ........... 6(; Warren, 0 ...................... 41 Ma~sillon,0 ........................ 29 Kentxllle, NS .................... ’22
rJ’ltll.,Iplll’,i TI llll(lad .... G(; Ba~ nol(ls~ck, England ......... 40 Ne~ Britain, Corm.............. 29 Mar~alo England .............. 2’2
, 65 New,burgh, N. Y .................. 29 Mazenod,Sask .....................
Alh i( IIAm L]l,l:iiM ..... Belhnghum, Wash ............... 40 22
l’;;tlboa lh-~hl.’- Canal Zone G5 Bm~e, Idaho ................... 40 North Weymouth, Mass ...... 29 San Antomo, Tea. (Colored)
]’],q~t Nil l. hy, England _._ 65 Medicine Hat, Alta ................ 40 Rotherham, England ............... 29 Warren, Pa ................... 22
Mmileapoli-, MilUi. (Pohsh) NmgaraFalls, N. Y .............. 40 S)raeuse, N. Y. (Polish) ...... 29 Wenatehee,"~." aq 11 ............ 22
Pot t~mouth, England ......... 65 Port Huron, Mieh .................. 40 Tulsa, Okla........................... 29 WChelmsford, Mass ............ 2’2
Phflmlelldna. l’a (Polish) 64 St. Helens, England................ 40 Barnsley, England ................ 28 Wdmlngton,N. C ................. 22
Sou Jose, Col _64 St John, N. l~ ................. 40 Berberton-Akron, 0 Bedford, Ind .............. 2t
Winnipeg, Man (I.~lilaln]-an) 64 CedarRap~(ls, Ia ................... 39 (l~ungaman) .................. 28 Belv]dere Ill ............. 2t
Bl’ool, l~n Ix Y IPohMl) 62 Chnton, Ia ..................... 39 Burhngton, Wash ........... 2,q Ch ftondale, Mn~s ........ 2l
01 ebro, S~ eden ...... 62 C~oniwell, Corm...................... 39 Calgary, Alto ................. 2S Coilg0, O (Itimgarmn) _ :t
Pnnalua Callal Zone ........ 62 Laxxrenee,hlas,~....................... 39 Califorma, Trlmdad ....... 2S l’m ~ oll P,q ......... 2l
Topeka Kan~ ....... .__62 Pa~xtueket,R I ..................... 39 Chatanooga, Tenn (Colored) (-ieni,~ n Ill ............. 2t
Ymk, Pu ............. 62 Sonth Bend, Ind (Polish) Clnmnnati, 0 (Colored) Jelhn~mi~ dle, Ind ........ 2l
Flint Mich .......... 61 Stoel, pmt, England .............. 39 Cleveland, O (Hungarian) _ _28 J,qlilestov, n N. Y .............. 2L
Gloucestm Englnnd ............ 61 Waltall, England ................ 39 Cleveland, O (Slovak) ...... 28 I<ewanoe, Ill ................ 21
pullman, Ill (Polish) ..... 61 Bexent, Wls IPohsh) .......... 38 Glace Bay, N. S ................ 28 I,on~ IIrAnch N. .I ........... "l
Wmrmgton, England ........... 61 Clucago, Ill (Colored) ........... 38 Harrisburg, Pa .................. 28 1~ [Olie%,~Olt P,1 - - ?.l
Watertown, N. g .................. 61 Crookswlle, O ................... 38 Hawthorne, Col ................. 28 Mtis],e~om M](h .... 21
Detrmt, hhch. (I-Iungarmn) Easton, Pa ....................... 38 Iola, Kans.............................. 28 New Cn~lle, Pa (Pohah) _
Melton, Sweden.................. 59 Latch ford, Enland................. 38 Linton,Ind ......................... 28 Nexx O~lcans, La, No 1 . __ 21
1Rockfm d, Ill ...................... 59 Saginaw, M~ch..................... 38 New Castle, Pa .............. 2,~ Santa Cluz, Col ....... 2I
Atlanta, (’a .............. 58 Scranton, Pa .................. 38 Port Lmmn, Costa Rico ...... 28 Stirhug, Ont ......... 2l
Ne~x lla~eo, Corm ............ 58 ~’yracuse, N. Y .................. 38 Sawtelle, Col .................... 28 Whitsett Pn (Russian) 2l
New Brighton, p~t. ........ 58 Brandon, Man ............ 37 Stockton-on Tees, England 28 Alb:mv. N 5- - .......... 2})
South Bend, Ind ........... 57 Gary, Ind. (Polish) ........ 37 Augusta, Ga ..................... 27 Anuapohs, Md .......... 20
Dubuque Iowa ......... 56 Hudderueield. England ........ 37 Blaby, England .................. 27 ~l’ld~eoort, Con}l
Buffalo, N Y. (Pohsh) ....... 55 Johnstown, Pa ............. 37 Butler, Pa., No. 1 ......... 27 (Hungnl’lan) .... 20
Chicago, Ill (Uk~aiman) .. 55 New Lebanon, Ind ............ 37 Chehnsford, England ............ 27 CheltenhanL England 20
East St Lores, Ill ................ 54 Sacrsmento, Ca] ............... 37 Caloiailo Springs, Colo .......... 27 Duquesne, l’a (Hungarm-n) 20
Nottingham, England .......... 54 Ashton-U-Lyne, England ...... 36 Danhuty,O............................. 27 Ehnsfo~d, N Y - ........... 20
Amora, Ill .................... 54 Chathnin, Ont ...................... 36 E1 l’aao, Tex......................... 27 Eme, Pa (Pohsh) ............ .20
Baoerneborg, Sweden ........ 54 Coatbridue. England ........... 36 I-lege~i~ch Ill (Polish) ..... 27 Knox’, ille Teun ................ 21)
Cape Town, S. Africa ............ 54 Det hy. England.................... 36 Mmietta, O ................. 27 Mansfiehl, 0 ............ 20
Clydach-on-Tawe, Wales ....... 54 Ft Smtth. Ark...................... 36 MeEee,po~ t, Pa ............. 27 Nashua-Milford- N El ........ "0
Detroit, Mich (Colored) .... 54 Calnia r Alto .................. 35 New Kenuington, Pa ........ 27 New PedfoH1 3ra~ ......... 2n
Wallasey, England ......... 54 C,un(len, NJ ....................... 35 N Chelm-fnrd, Mass ...... 27 5, ot 1 istox~, n, I’a ........... 2f)
Ba.~onne, N J .................... 53 Fargo. N D ................. 35 Perth Amboy, N. J. (Pohsh) Pm~’~, N Y - ...............20
Bnl,enhead, England ....... 53 Niagara Fails, Oat .............. 35 Portland hie ....... 27 Perth, Scotland .............. 2()
Norfolk, Va .................. 53 01d Hill, England ........... 35 Wooilsto,:k, 0nt ............ 27 Poznali, l’,,ln nd ..... 20
Nuneaton England ......... 53 Portage La Prairie, l~lan ....... 35 Cnhie. England _ _ 2G S,III~I0 (-~1 a,lde Trlnl(lad - 20
Passim, N J ................ 53 Springheld, Mo .......... 35 Dar]ln~t,m, End’|and 26 Se~uluTcx (Sl)nn],.h) 2¢)
Providence. R I .................. 53 Barrow-in-Furness, England 34 De~PI,t:nes, 111 26 St Paul Mmn (t’ohMQ _ 21)
:Bay City, M~ch ....................... 52 Evansville, Ind .............. 34 De~x ~hury, England 26 Svdiiev N S ............ 20
:Birmingham, Ale ................... 52 Ft. Wayne,Ind ................... 34 Dowlms,Wales .................... 26 \~h~tlcv Bas, England ........ ~0
~’aekson, Mich ................ lil Hammond, Ind .................... 34 Eagle Rock City, Col ............. 26 ~’]chlta l~,tll<, Te\ ...... gO
DANIEL CAST TO THE LIONS
-- -- JULY 23 -- DANIEL6. 1-"8 -- --
2;OB[I,ITY OF ANCIENTKINGS-- WHYDANIEL%%AS HATED -- "~RAI~IING"AN INNOCENT M AN -- "THELAWOF HIS GOD"-- CLIIV[A’K
OF THE CONSPIRACY--
T]:tE MOUTYIS
OF THELIONS SI[u’r---I’UNI%[I.’.I[..NT OF THECONbPIRATORS.
"Who thl ough faith subdued h o~gdoms, wrought i~ghtcousne~s, obtaozed prom~svs, stopped the mouths of hons."--Heb#ews
ll : 83.
in the foreign laud. The escort gr, tnted them by the king, few had seen tt~’ough the eyes of childhood, for the city had
the presents of money, and tile co~tl3 vessels of the tenlple lain desolate, according to the Word of the Lord, for seventy
service, were with them; and then" hopes ran high as years. (2 Chronicles 36: 21) The wall and the temple llad
they began their journey of nearly 800 miles, about the been demolished by Nebuchadnezzar’s orders, and many of
distance from Philadelphia to Chicago. According, to tra- the pluvate residences were also left in ruins, and now for
dition, they must have been about four months travelling, seventy years of snell desolatmns, "without inhabitant," the
whereas an e.x-press train in our day would make the place was a wilderness. Trees were growing ia what
distance in seventeen hours. founerly were streets. Everything was disorder. Any other
,the WATCH TOWER x.
clnss than tim~e full of faith and zeal, as these were, need not be mourned over by spiritual Israelites; for’ they
v¢ould ha~l, bveu tll lell.~ discouraged can call to mind that the merit of Christ’s sacrifice covers
aVe are to tt.ntctnber that the l.old thus tries our courage, all of their unwilling blemishes and nustakes. Carrying
and faith ~ll~(1 zt::tl, not to destroy these quahtles, but to with them thmr expemences they should press for~x,ud to
deepen and fix them--to ebtubhsh us, to develop us m fresh victories and tresh .loss in the Lord.
char-rater As x~th the tspmal lsraehtes there, so it is now
X~lth the spiritual Israehtes--all sucll trying experiences, MAINTAINING THE HIGHEST STANDARD
under d~xine providence, will xxork out to our advantage Th,t¢ the expressmn "w~thout an inhabitant" did not refer
if we will but persevere in our faith, and love and zeal to individuals of other natlonalitms is implied in the ex-
It required more than a year to put tlmmselves in reason- llressmn tim "people of the land," ~ho were there when the
able condition for hying, and then their atlention tinned Jew~ returned. There is no reason to believe tit,it tllme
to the ~ebu,ldmg of the temple. That they should lmve were any Je~ s whatever in tile land for the entH’e period of
begun so soon to think of the house of the Lord speaks well seventy years, as foretold by Jereminh.
of their splmtual eond~tmn They appear to have lmmedmte- These "people of the land" (subsequently known "is Sa-
ly located m their varmas mtms, which had been neither maritans) were disposed to be friendly to the returned
entirely destro5 ed nor o(-llpled by other people during their Israelites, and proffered thmr aid in tim bmldmg ot the
absence, hut m (.ondllmn to be re-inhabited They had temple But their asm~tauce was refased toe the ISlwqlteS
probably started Itom B ~b)lon early in the Hebrew year; realized that if these "strangers" were per,u,tted to bhare
and if then spent llllee or more months en route, they m the work of constructing the temple lhey could ~th
douhtlesu reached l’nh,sline ahout tim fourth month. By propmety claim a share also in dictating the character of
the sexenth llltHtlh tlle,~ assembled at aorusalem for the the worship which wout(I be established there, aml llmt
l~tl) O[ =lHinenlont ser~mes.--Ezra 2: 70; 3’: 1-7 this would open the dour to laxity m rellgmus matter% and
perhaps to the old ldolatl3, on .te(’ount of which the L.rd
MAKING MELODYIN THE ItEART had so severely chastised Israel
]’~’dl of zeql for the Lord’s cqnso, the people celebrated When "the people ot the land" found th.tt thctr money
the t’nl’ner-stollo laying ot the new temple with joy nnd zeal. and services were not at’eel)table , qnd that they couhl have
One ot the special tealures or t]lelr worship was praise; neither part mwlot m lhe construction of tlle Lord’s hoase,
,qnd ~e ilinlk it uafe to ,,:iv that ~lngmg the Lord’s praise it offended them and made them enmmes; and from that
lm: been amilng~t the ereate~t llles.>mgs and priwleges of time onward they p,;lsl~tently Oltl)n~vd the wink ol the
WOl’>hip eniosed hy the largeut nmnber of the Lord’s people Israelites. 8o it will be ~xitll SpH’ltu,lI Israel. Those ~ho
throughout this gospel age nlso Tim power tO prame God consmentiously live separate from the world m spiritual
in song h,ls been conferred upon man only of all earthly matters, and reeogmze a~ brethren in Chllst only those x~ ho
creatures, and how apprnp[late that lie should use this confess to cn’eumeision of lhe henrt und adoption 1nip God’s
power to pl,nse the King oi longs! fmmly, will find themseHe~ opposed by moldhsts, hl)er, thsts
If those l~raehte% tim house of servants, returning from and higher eritms, as well as by the nmsses, who hate the
their bondage and remembering the eovenqnt promises of hght, because it eondenms their darkness--doctrinal nnd
God to them, had cause for singing nnd .~hnlllln2 .h.hovah’s otherwise Nevertheless, tins is the only good and "qlfe
prmse, lniic]l m0re ]lave v¢e, who belong to the house of course to pursue Better fur is ~t tiMt oMy true Israehtes
sons and Ilnxe come out of Bal)ylon. gre,tt eI/ii~,e [o tell should be reeogmized as brethren, and thus the wheat be
abroad tim great thing,, whlcil the Lord hnlil done for us separated from the tares.
We weir all smx.mts of sin once, under the b(mda~e of Some one has well said: "The Christian m the wmld i~
sin, ignorance, superM~tlon nnd death, but God, lhron~h the like n ship in the oeeau. The ship is safe m the oeeal, so
Great Cyrus, has permitted us to go flee. A1)I)roprmtely, long as the ocean is not in tlw ship." One lowms the
therefore, out’ hrst step Mtouhl lie to reeogmze the .-,aerifiee standard of doctrine, also ; for the ,nmlster who reallze,~ that
of tile altar, und then o~ter praise Io him who hath willed at least three-fourttis of his co~,-~t,~atmn would be l’el)~ tied
us out of darklles,4 into his m,~rvehluS hght, for "lie hnlh by tim presentation of strong meat ot truth, w~thholds ~he
put at new ~ong into our luouths, even the loving l~lndness same, and permits those who need strong meat, and could
of our God " appremate and use it to advantage, to grow weak, to starve.
The Apostle assme~ us that, however aPlllOpmate, in- Furthermore, the worldly spirit and the fuller tre.~,~urv
sp~rlng nml lel’reMim~ nl’e the songs ot our lip% still more have attracted "str’mgers" into the profeased nnlustr5 of
allt)rollrlate and still more nppreeiated of the Lord ate our the goul)el, many of x~honl know ne.ther the Lold nor Ills
henri-songs, tim 3oy and rejmemg of the new mmd--"~mg- \\’ord, and x~ ho consequently are thoroughly unprepared
in- ,rod maMng melody in our hearts unto the Lord " feed the true sheep were they ever so well dlbposed O’n’e
(lgphesians 5: 19) And this joy and singing in the heart, of the great difficulties with Christianity toda3 ~s that it
this heart-thnnktulness to the G~ver of all good, necessarily has admitted the stranger% the "people of tlm land." and
finds expres.,,mn, not only in Christian carols, but also in roeogmzed them as Cht~stmns. It does injury, not only to
~-tll tile nets and words of hie--all of whmheonstitule the the Christians, by lowering then’ standards (for the average
hynm of praise nnd thanksgiving continually ascending be- will be considered the standqrd), but it also injures the
fore God flora his people "strangers," by causing many of l}lelU to believe thelnselves
The shouts were discordant--some of joy, some of weep- safe, and needing no eonvers-lon, Ileeause thev tire out~avdly
ing Those who looks.,1 f.rward in hope shouted for joy. re.,,peetable, and perhaps frequenllv attendants at pubhe
Those who looked b:l(’kwa rd. and pictured before their minds worship.
Solomon’s grand temple, wept as the5 thought of the ln- BUILDING THE TRUE TEMPLE
slgmhcance of the pre~ent one in eonlpamson. And so today In the light of the teachings of the apostles we see tlmt
anulng spiritual Israehleb, there {ire some who weep for the antitype of that temple was the one true ehurel af the
the past, when they should be rejmclng for the future. living God, whose nalnes are wmften in heaven (] Corm-
The Apostle exhorts us to "forget the things which are thmns 3: 16, 17; Luke 10: 20)--that it ]s a spiritual temple
behind, and to press forward to the things wluch are be- built up with living stones, of which Jesus Christ ~s Iron-
fore." The lessons we learn fronl past experiences, e~ en frolu self the chief corner stone, the sure foundntlon I-le became
adverse expemenees, while they should be kept m memory, the foundation of this spiritual house when he gave his life
auL,,
1, 19=2 ,’rh, WATCH TOWER
a ransom for Inalt.x, and thtl~ made possible the building sense regarded as the temple of God ,~o~, dlid the various
up of other hvmg .~tone.> upon this fouudatmu until the won- members as its builders, all having something to do in
dertul structure shall reach its glormus completeness.- buihhng each other up in the most holy faith, and thus
1 Peter 2 4-7 contrtbut,ng to the structure of the temple or church as
When this fotu,datiou of the spiittual temple was htid, a x~ hole. Th~s work of hu,ldmg up the church is very clearly
all who came to at realization of the import,see ol the great set fo, th in the buddmg of the typical temple; mid the
work therehv :teeOlnl)ltshed rejoiced t,]~(1 l)r,u,,ed the Lord. rebuilding of tim temple after the captivity m Babylon ~s
And thl~ rej~),eina I,, the strength and ~eeurit.~ of tile founda- very suggestive of the rebuilding of the church after the
tion ot out hoDe’~ nmer ceases Pr,use the Lot’(l~ wells up long captivity in Balt.~lon tim GreatT-X~lnch is generally
fron, e~eL~ he:at lha~ reahzes the redemptmn ,teeomphshed known as the Great Reformation. And truly there has been
by the preemus bh)od of Christ, shed for many for the a great re-formation of the church since the dark ages of
ren,,.>.~lOn ot ".m’< Upon Ibis stn’e foundation the temple bondage under the papal yoke.
The work of re-fmmat,on has gone steadily forward and,
structure ha~ been gradually "rod stead,ly progressmg. The
living stones ate taken out of the quarry (the x~orld) ; and like that of the typical temple, in the midst of the great oppo-
by the experiences and dismphne of the present life they sition. (See Ezra 4:11-24; 5:3-5; Nehemiah 4:7-23, and
are shqped "rod ein’~eled and pol,shed and thus fitted for compare STUDIES IN THE SCRIPTURES, Vol. II, Chapter ix
their places ,n the tenq,le which, durmg the trine of the and Vol. I11, Chapter iv.) From the multitudes who had
presence of the tot’d--~,z, smee 1878, when he took his been enslaved under the papal rule sons of the living
great po~er ;,~ kmg--is being noiselessly put together, as stones of the true temple were gathered out and the work
in the tMm, ~ithout the ~ollnd of a Immmei--by the resur- of setting them in order for the rebuilding of the New
re(-rmn ot the dead ,n Christ and the change of the living Jerusalem and ~ts temple began. Elistory records the op-
in a nmn,ent, In the tx~hlkhng of au eye; for "blessed are position which these re-formers or builders, encountered;
and truly, as in the type, "the builders, every one had his
the dead who die in the Lord from henceforth [from 1878] ;
¯ . . they rest from their labors [from the toil and weari- sword [the sword of the spimt, which is the Word of God]
girded by his side, and so braided." (Nehemiah 4:18) Nor
ness of 1.tbor], Imt the,r works follow with them." They
shall not sleel), but tl,ey shall be changed instantaneously may this attitude ever be relinquished until the work is all
from the hmnan to a glorious spiritual body.--Rev(qation complete and the glory of the Lord has filled his temple.
The enemies of the Lord’s people and the Lord’s work are
14 la, 1 Cor,ntinans 15: 51, 52.
always active in opposition, and none the less so when their
THE CHURCH A TEMPLE EVEN NOW methods are subtle and their course not easily discernible.
Hence the necessity ex,sts for continued vigilance against
But ~inle the ehut’(’h glorlhed w,th Chr, st the He,td ~,11 every encroachment of the adversary, whether lie come as
be the temple eoa,plete and glorious, it Is in a less complete a roaring hon or as a wily serpent.
BROTHER W. M, WISDOM
BROTHER H. HOWLETT
\lqlletou \\’l~ July 9, 10 Rneine. "tVls Jul~ 20 ,21
8outh Ritxxdon, N. S ___July 25 Mnl)onN S .................. July31 ChntOnxllle, X~\lq ’~ :1:1. 12’ Vtnukesha, \Vls .... luls 23
l~rookfiehl N S ....... " 26 l’oit Hood, NS ............... Aug. 1 ,XIarion, \iris ...... " 13 14 Gl,ltltlf, \VIs .... Jill’, 2i 25
]Iopex~ell, N S ...... " 27 I.eng Hill, N. S ............ Aug. 3, 4 O~hko~h, \Vls .... ]5, 1O Montl~ell.. Wls ’2h’27
New Ghisgow, N S ...... " 28 S~dnev, N. S ......... " 6, S Shelloygan, Wls. " 17 18 Muth’,on, \Vls July 2q
.%telhu ton. N S .......... ’ 30 Glaee Bay, N S ............. " 6,7 Mlhx uukee, WlS........... July 19 I]o,iz, \Isis ........ ;l(}
BROTHER L. F. Z[NK
BROTHER O. MAGNUSON Tazex~ell Tenn __ July 13 Wa3 leq)oro, Va luh 20
Gotobo. Okla ._ July 13 Enid. Okla ...... Mortlstown, Term ....... ’ 14 [;osee Va ..... luls 21 22
Jul3 21, 22 Bris[ol Tenu .......... " 1(] [Iagmstoxxn, Md... Juh’,23
Blngel, Okla ...... " 14 Alva. OMa " 23, 24 Wythexflle, Va .....
\Vatongu, OMa ......... " 16 Woodsxurd, ()kla. " 25, 26 17 IIalll~burg, Pa .......... " 24
Thoinas. Ol,la ......... " 18 Shattuck, Okla ..... ’, E. Radford, Va ........ " 18 OletLI1 N Y ........... " 25
27. 28 Roanoke, Va ........ " 19 NmgaruFalls, N 5; ......... " 26
Oakxxood, Okla ...... July 19, 20 V¢lclnta, Kans ........ " 30, 31
CONTENTS
~’IFWg FIIO~f TlIF ~Vh’fCII TO’~VER ..................... Oll
Anarchy nl Ihah Plnceu ......................... 211
The Coming Rexnlutlon ............................... 211
"God Doesn’t Consnlt ’Who’q Who’" . ....... 212
ObJects to Despotism of ]31~hops .............. 21’2
World POhtlCU for the Chinches .................. 213
THE TRUE CHt, R(I[ (Poeln) ................ 2t3
~’]" VOWTO BE ON TIi’E fl~LERT TO ]~E~IST" . 214
RE WILL I’4EVFR I~EAVE TIIEE (]Poem) .......... 216
TIlE ~TRO*G CABLEOF CIlRONOI OG’t" .............. 217
11)E,N’I IFIt ~TION CERTI FIE MI’FS ............ 2lS
I]%r,IER S~X’Eq THE I~EP, REWPFOPLE ........... 220
Opl)ot’tllRltles I1S ~)lilnl2 I)lOvldellces ........ 221
"lhe IIeart of the Le<son .................... 2’22
QI ~,:STIO~NS FOe TellER BEREANSTUD~ ........... 223
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS SACRED MISSION
THI~pre~ciit-d
ca,,rnsl is one of the prime factors
,n all parts of tile civihzed
or instruments in the system of Bible instruction,
world by the WATCHTOWERBIBLE &TEACTSOCIETY, chartered
or "Seminary Extension", now being
A.D. 1884, "For the Pro-
motion of C.qri~,t.~n Kno~ ledge". It not only serves as a class room where Blhle students may meet in the study of the divine Word bull
also as a cilannel ot i nmlnlmlcatton through ~hlch they may be reached with annonncements of the Society’s conventions and of the
coming of its tlavehng roi*tesentatl~es, stMed "PllgrlluS", and refreshed wzth reports of its conventions.
Our "Beiean Let-seas" ure topical rehearsals or reviews of our Society’s pubhshed STUDIZS mo~t entertainingly arranged, and very
helpful to all ~ho weuld inezlt the on]b honorary deglee which the Society accords, viz., I-e~bi Det Mmmter iV. D. M.), winch translated
into l]nghsh is Mtutstcr of God’s Word. Our treatment of the International Sunday School Lessons is specially for the older Bible
students and teachels. By some thin featRle is con~nlered indispensable.
Tills journal stands firnllv for tbe defense of tile only true foundatidn of the Christian’s hope now being so generally repudlate~l
--redenlptlon through tile prcclcm~ blood ot "l]le alan Chrl<t Jesus, ",x he gave hnnself a ~anvom [a corresponding price, a substitute] for
all". (1 Peter 1:19; 1 qhlnoth) 2 6) Building tip on fins sule fnunllatlon tile gold, slher and pleclous stones (1 Corinthians 3:
15; 2 Peter 1:5-11) of tllo Word of God, its furthernu<sion is to "mai,e all see ~hat is the fellowship of the m.~tery which...has
been hid in God, . . . to the intent that now nnght be made I, nown by the chulch the man]told wisdom of God"--’%~hlch in other ages
was not made known unto the sons of men as }t is now re~ealed".--Epheslans 3:5-9, 10.
It stands free from all partlc~ ~octs and creeds of men, while it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
subjection to the ~ll[ of God in Cblist, as expressed in the holy Scriptures. It ls thus free to declare boldly whatsoever the Lord
hath spoken--according to the divine ~i<dom granted unto us to understand his utterances. Its attitude is not dogmatic, but confident;
for we know ~hereof ~e affirm, trca,Lh_= with implicit faith upon the sure pronn~es of God. It is held as a trust, to be used only m his
service; hence our decisions relative lu wb t may sad x~hat nJay not appear in its columns mns~ be according to our judgment of bl~l
good pleasure, the teaching of his Wu ~., for file npbufldmg of his peonle ~n grace and knowledze And we not only invite but urge ouz~
readers to prove all its utterances by the lnfalhble ~oid to ~hich reference is constautly made to facilitate such testing.
TO US THE SCRIPTURES CLEARLY TEAC’It
That the church is "the ¢emple of the livlng God", peculiarly "his workmau>hip" ; that its construction has been in progress throughou~
the gospel uge--e~er slnie Christ became the world’s P, edeemer and ttle Chief Corner Stone of his temple, through which, whell
finl~lled, (,od’> ble~-ln:r <hall come "to all people", and they find’ access to him.--I Connthians 3 ; 16, 17 ; Ephesians 2:20-22
Genesis 2.~ :14, Galatlans 3 29.
¯hat mcanhnle lhe chiuchng, shaping, and poh~blng of concecratcd believers in Chrxst’s atonement for sin, progresses; and when tbo
last of lhe~e "hxlng stones", "elect and preflou%" shall ]lave been nlaile ready, the great Mn~ter Workman will bring all Iogethcr
in the fll~t resurrection ; and the temple shall be filled with his glory, and be the meeung place between God and men throughou¢
tile Mlllennlum.--Re~elatmn 15:5 S.
’r~hat the basis of hope, for the church and the world, hes in the fact that "Jesu~ Cur]st, by tbe grace of God, fa~t’,d death for e’~ery
mail," "a ransom for all," and will be "the tlue light which hghteth every marr ~.hat cometlb into the a~,-,a’, "’in due time .--
Ileblews 2.9; John 1:9; 1 Timothy 2.5, 6.
~:Ehat tile hope of the church is that ~he may be like her Lord, "gee hnn ms he is," be "partakers of t’,o ".,lee n,t=_e’,’ and share his
gloiy as his joint heir.--:l_ Jollu 3.2, John 17.24, Romans 8.17, 2 Peter 1:4.
~A~hat the present n,~ssion of the church is tbe perfecting of the saints for the future work of :’, e; % develop in herself every
glare, to lie God%X~ltne~s to the world, and lO piepare to he kings and plleSls In the next . _-- -l’,,lle.~an~ 4 : 1" ; Matthew 24g
:14, Revelation I : 6; 20:6.
That the hope for the world hes in theble%ings of knowledge and opportnmty to be brought to oil by CI,-,-~’s Mfllennml kingdom, ~_b0
rc~]ltullon OiL all that was lost in Adam, to all tile willing and obedient, at the hands of lheir l~.c,leemee and his glorihed churc%
wheu all tbe wllfully wicked will be deatroyed.--Aets 3:19-23; Isaiah 35.
of "revolution." It may come by ballot or by bullet. the thn’ty-seventh Psalm he adds that they are to have
England has had sevmal bloodless re~oluhons. In no part m the world’s conflict. They are to "fret not
Amermait as certain to come first by the ballot, and be thyself because of evil doers, nmther be thou envmus
political, and chiefly peaceful, at least until met by against the x~orkera of mNuity .... Trust m the Lord
counter-revolution of violence fostered by the cx>tmg and do good .... Dchght thyself in the Lord ....
alhance of business, pohhes and church. Tilts l~ also Rest in the Lord and ~ait patiently for hma ....
spoken of by The Searchhght m what follows. In c~ery Cease from anger and forsake wrath .... Fret not
nation, where that iniqmtous alhance exists, revolutmn thyself m any ~lse to do evil, for evil doers shall be
has come or will come, and in each country it will cut off" And again, "WaA ye upon me, salth the Lord,
assume a form peculiar to the ways of the people, vio- until the day that I n~.e up to the prey".., and our
lent m some. pohtmal in others, but in all rmtnmg Lord adds, "And when the~e things begin to come to
finally to~ard &sorder. In the Umted Stah’s the ap- paqs, then look up, and hft up )’our heads; for your
proaching retmdiahou m the 1922, and 1924 elections redemptmn draweth nigh."--Luke 21:28.
will seek to cleanse the nahon pohtmallv, but it x~lll Let every ehdd of God rest confidently, hopefully m
also endeavor to chromate other corrupting mtluences ,Teho~ah, being assured that all things are hilly undc’r
such as that of the Cathohe and Protestant churches hl~ all-powerful hand.
in polltms, and of big business in pohtma and church.
GOD DOESN’T CONSULT "WHO’S WHO"
Eventually it will result m more and more strife, and
finally in the great tm~e of trouble such as nexer was "Who’s Who" is a directory of some 20,000 more or
known or heard of before. The Searchhqht continues: less prominent persons m Amerma; and if an rod>
"Indu/na and Pelmsyh’:lula haxe d<,ln~mstrated what will wdual’s name and lustory do not appear in ats pages
ine\ltabl5 happen from Maine to Cuhlornla in the toni.if l~e Ls supposed by the "best minds" to be non-existent, or
ele(.tmns 1’he Old Guard, as fast as they "qqm:II’, xxill be
rebuked and repudiated at least a nonenhty. In rehgmn nothing is worthy of
"The political re~olunou that followed Balhngerism will notme unless It has the stamp of the Pope or some
now lle Lepeated, only it will be as inuch ram*. thorough synod; m medmme the approval of a medmal assocm-
and far-reaching as the eori’uptmns and depi’ax~ty of this hen ~s reqmstte; m financmldom the name of such as
period exceed that of those historic days. Morgan carries weight. But according to Reverend
"A comparison would not be accurate or conI1)lete, if we
did not weigh t~o other f,mtol’s: Charles Sfelzle in an artmle under the foregoing head-
"Whenthe peollle rebelled against Cannonlsnl and his re- hne in the Freeport, Ilhnms, Journal, Jehovah pays no
achonary conteinporarms, they x~ei’e fairly prosperous and attention to human repntahons in sending forth his
contented. Where then only an oeeasmnal mhzen felt a Word :
selfi~li, personal ,.retest 111 national aft’tits, nowthe struggle "There are men [oday ~xho hve so close to God that they
to hve has totted thousands sermusly to think about throe can clearly read his wall and plainly see the ’ragas of the
individual relnnons to goverlmIent. There ~s the same love times’.
of country, the same inherent, patriotic devotmn to whole- "They are not often kno~n to the pubhc--for many of
someness, and honesty ni pubhe affmrs, plus a dollars-and- them are humble toders m shops and faetomes, or in their
cents interest that the people never knew before. homes.
"Then the 01d Guard had leadership. Menof real eapaeity "God does not reveal his will ’to the x~ise and prudent’-
were in the ~addle. Aldrmh had unusual political sense; he more often speaks to the SUIlpler folks of earth.
Pem’ose and Hale and Cannon were also in their prime. "And these hunible ’fmends of God" axail w~th Ii,mwhen
Today there is not a single leader of outstanding mental the prnye~ ~ of the inigbty ne~er reach be5 end tlieit ownhps.
power. WhenPenrose (lied he left the reachonaries hank- "Meanwhile, inost of us are eager to quote ’big nanies’--
rupt so far as brains are eoneeImed. There is no pohtieal we pass by the comnIon people of earth because they aren’t
gemus among them. Only third-rate politmmns renmin.
’autliomties’ in the religmus world
They have not the capacity to weather the storm that is "But God doesn’t consult ’Who’s Who’ when he desires
bearing do~xli upon them and all their ilk. to speak through men. lle selecl~ those whose names are
"Let it eome." written m the ’Book of Life’."
DIVINELY FOREKNOWN
The Lord foresa~ that the selfishnes~ of man, backed OBJECTS TO DESPOTISM OF BISHOPS
by the intrigues of the adversary, would bring on thl,~
terrible, world-wide rehgmns-pohtmal-monctary cychme, The instruction of the Lord and the apostles was to
~hmh will wreck most of the man-erected institutums of the effect that in the true church all were to be equal
the present world, lie also foresaw that humamty "One ~s your Master, even Christ; and all ye are
needed just such a lesson, the expermnce of reaping brethren". (1Katthew 23: 8) There ~as to be a leader-
what it had sown, and therefore in wisdom per,mrs slup of some m the church, bait through service, not
it.--Galahans 6 : 7. tyranny. (Mark 9: 34:, 35) Primacy m the apostate
}Iis prophets foretold the present eon,htmns. Man church systems has degenerated into an ecelesmshcal
in his egotistical wisdom laughed. Now the current despotism, which is keenly felt by some of the lower
historian is bearing witness to the truth of God’s Word. clergy that still retain some of the spirit of Christ.
In the fort)-slxth Psalm God has told his people what An outcry against this aspect of clericalism is vmced
course to take, and where to look for their safety. In in the London Daily Herald:
rhe WATCH TOWER 213
"In a d,->ertfitmn on olhcialdom in tile chm’eh in his WORLD POLITICS FOR THE CHURCIIEB
pnl l~h l]la",l/dlu’, lhe \lCdt’ nf ~t. Matthm~’s, Pm’tqnouth,
the Rexelend E Bvu,_e C,~]’nt,~d, n]ade "llqn’ecmtl~e lefer- Not satisfied with the union of church and state in
eric,.... : ’He .ays: ’Ill 1!122 I desn-e to cut as clean as individual nahons the Proteskmt ehnrch systems are
I lllay all,~ ((qllleCIlllll XXl[[i Official(]dill til e (2h nlch Thn ty- reaching out tor a hand n~ the affa]]’s of the entne
t~+, St.’a]- .1 It mlloly O~der-, haxe utterly sickened one ~orld. Behind ~t are the poht,cmns of the Chu]eh of
Of It’a ]lOlllh,l’,IlC 1)rhle, and Itb telrlble meflmmnc’y.I~.l.lla]
England -- the P,~shop,. adej~G ltl pohtteal astutenes~
(,I ~, blH’h), ~, :llld
del,p, ~tlkllli,,iI(jOll blbhops can .nil go to--
C(i-.h,lll] go l,ll a% ] [till (’ollCelll{ad
through then’ ]neml)et~hq) as "l,o~(l~ Sp,r~tual" m
" ’~\7111i i~11’ ,,,lll~le :111d Colp-plCll()Uq eNeelJtl()ll of tile J&]tM] Houseof Lol ds. A ~ orld ga the, tug is to be sta g-
14,>.h,,p el S,,u,h.tmpt,)n, the5 lmxe invariably got 11/ tile ed In London, m lq24 x~th plehmma~3- conferences m
V,:I,~ O[ ,illXtllJl)’_’ bell*ible I exet tile1] to do, alld generally ] 922 m G~cat 1~ ~tam and the United States. The Right
nl,i(le tJlelll (-’]xc~ till ll]l(151[lg ]ILII’-,LIICI~ a COlltlllLla[ fll iX- Reverend Wdlm]nTemp]e. ]~<1]o 11 o{ Manchester, as
ier>
" ’If l]le Chlll(ll [~f ]~ollle V, ere V~Ol’th going to. I ~ouhl ~(~ sl)oke<ma], for the ] el~g ictus de l’.~l fment
ofthe tx~ o-horn-
to it All~ ](Hill (It ]-II-*ellt 1,~ l)ll/hlll]iable, so ] Hlll’-[ st,Iv ed beast (llexelahon 1.~. 11-1’}), sa)s, as repmted n]
x~herv I am IIu[ I lelu.e any Iongel to be tud~ed nJ) \\lEh recent ]~ondol] press aespateh:
Splln o’. tlOl/I tWOconvietmns. The firat
~_ ()1’
fln~ol/e 111 ~,ll[el ll)~lq_teq "The collfetet~ce
"’[ h:txo had my ~xh,~(.k, I x~lll ()bey then’ lnuful ortletu, iv that (.lvlllz;/ttoIl lb 11.,111’, ill need to (h~.eover its oxxll
ln11[-7o lily ()[]ILI,L1 letlllllS, ;lll(l there an Clio fundamental lnoral prm,_zples. To a great extent the nleth-
" ]h’-h()l,- h,l~e lm 11..o. lot llle, and [ ha~e no kind of od.. that ha~e I)rought u~ so far seem un,lble to e.lrry us
ll~,e l()r thelu, l h,txe x~dlehe(I t]lenl belllg lnade, allf] tile any ttu ther, or to mamtanl the pl’og~ess that has been wen
plo(_e,.> hll* ]lie %\lth Ciill{e[llpl ’" I),~ them.
The Bal,vlon{ql Ca].t~lt~,- e~ ,dently has not endedyet. ’"]’hele lS 110 illletltlOll to forlu a bpe(21fie C?,ltlstian l)O-
Fas.t I)ound ~1 the chaLliS and fetters of an effete and litleal part5 [n(m---Ed ]. N.thlng ,:,mid be tarther froln tile
n]]nd., ot tho-,e illtlllglll atlllg lhe Confelenee.
ewl s3:tem ~s the nnfmt-nate state of such as Vmar "We me ],),)kmg t.r the \xlll OI God We behe~e that
Co~nfmd.Manyof tins ela,~s Iove the Lord and desire pe(al)le o17 ’,,ll’led e.xpOl ltgli.e nil(1 C()llllaon {tilth \~ Ill to-
to do lus ~fll---1)~o~ded ~t does not take them out of gelher, llOt to C,)ll\lllCe ea,_h other but elnetly to lealn fl’OUl
then’ qua]{er of I{ab}lon. It would be well for them-- each other, and \~th the (leqlle and expectation that God
~ll guide then th(.ught., we shall nt the e,,d know a great
and ble%ed are those that heed the ca]l--d they ~ere de, d mole of hl~ \x~lI. xxhl,_h is another way of sa3ing the
t,~ listen to th(qr Master’s rome sunmaonmg his disci- truth nboul: the \~orld. Omnis not\ known to any group or
ples: "Comeout of her, mypeople, that ve be not l)a~- imll\ idtlal.
takers of her sins, and that ye receive not of her plagues. "XX e do not exl,eet to be graded to the reformation of an
For her sins ha\e reached unto heaven, and Cod hath ~deal state We do hope arid expect to receive guidance
xxhmh will ,hre(’t the next ~tep~ that have to be taken."
rememberedher ll~lqtllt](:,~ [reaching their ehmaxin the
Well &d the prophet Isamh speak of these modern
]’ec(.’nt war slm]t]."--]le\elatmn 18:4,
mlt~t3pes of the ant,eat prmsthood of pagamsm,who
What depth of ~eal ~el~g~on throe ~s in the twenheth through their rejeetm~t of the eounsel of the Lord have
century Prote,~tant church system may perhaps be esti- for eentu]’]es been given over to the guidance of their
mated from the following item from the 0]dtm~n, god (2 Corinthians 4:: 4); for the prophecy has both a
3Ia,ne, Enter/, z~e : hte]al and a symbohe applteahon:
"The St Patrick Night palty of the ]loberta Clab~. of the
"E~fl qmll came upon thee: thou shall not know from
]~lelllod>.t Chinch wa. a huge ¢.LICCe~.s 11 Was hn*l~atld
whence ~t )zseth. and Im.-.eh~ef shall fall upon thee; thou
~aht, and the ’llul)l.es’ wine lnlHated, nnd put the.ugh
sluuts that C,Hlle II D tO all of tllelr expeetntmns, nnd emt- sh,t/t m~t be able to l)Ut ~t off: and de~olatmn shall come
u;)(m thve sud,hmly, x~h~ch thou shalt not know [unawares].
oa,ty. It was tragedy fl_l]d comedy colnl)lned, ~nd full f~(un
Stalld i/o\v with throe enchantment% ;lnd x\ith tile multi-
I~e’.qllnlllg tO end Dellcl(~tl~. letreMm]ent~ of flint %11.o1,
tude of thy ~oreerms. ullerem thou haqt labored from thy
roll.,, cake ;lnd coffee ~ere served: nnd the tables were
5mzth: If So be their shalt be ahle to profit, if so be thou
decmated alq)toprlately to the day."
m,lye.t pre\ail Thou alt wearied Ill tile multitude of thy
It ~s not aI1 fun for the 01drown?¢[ethodtsts ; for they eOllll-¢,l-_" Let n(m the astro]ogers, the stargazers, the lilollth-
must be about their ];mg’s business, too (Revelahon ly pl,)gnostlcators, stand up, nnd save thee from those
9 : 11 ; G 1591.. in other ]mes of m~deavorno/: nmnhoned thing, that qmll come upon thee."--Isamh 47:11-13.
In the ~ ritmgs of apo~tolm trams. One can mmgme the Not all thebisllops of apo.-.fate Clmstendomcan save
gusto ~l~th which all the aetlv,hes of a "drive" are the present eiv]hzatmn--Satan’s empire--from its ap-
earrmd on, m the following from the same paper: pmnted end.
"This is n busy x~eek for the Methodists m Oldtown, as
then, budget for the 5ear is betp, g rn,>ed, and a goodly sum THE TRUE CHURCH
is needed and expected It opened Tuesday evening at tile
church vestry, ~x hen a hue banquet was served at 6 o’clock. Whene’er they meet tile public eye,
They feel the public scorn ;
Everything slatted off with enthusiasm and interest. It
will close F~utay e\ening at 7.30 o’clock, when Reverend For men their fairest cklims deny,
And count them basely born.
0all N. (J}u land of tile Grace ehureh of Bangor \~lll be the
speaker and lhe final reports of the canvass be read " But ’tis the King who reigns above
Then fallows a list of the competing teams, after the That claHns them for his own;
The layered objects of his love,
vaannerof war :’drives" for money. And destined to a throne.
"’IVOW... TO BE ON THE ALERT TO RESIST" (PART II)
Parallel dates are two series of dates a certain number one had occurred in China and the other in America,
of years apart, and marked by events of corresponding it would be nothing noticeable; but it becomes note-
character. The intervening period is usually some worthy that one was in nominal natural Israel and the
significant numberof years, such as 1845 or 2,520. The other mnominal spiritual Israel, and that the first ~s
connected events are always prominent and readily dis- plainly the type of the second.
cerned. Parallehsms of this nature are proof of divine ongm
The number 1845 is significant because it is the of present-truth chronology, because they show "ore-
number of years m the parallel Jewish and gospel knowledge. In the instance cited, the divlsmn of Israel
ages. It ~as 1845 years from the death of Jacob m and that of Christendom, 2520 years apart, are evldm:ce
1813 ]3. C. (probably Fall) to the death of Jesus that when the first &vision was pernutted, the latter
33 /k. D. (Spring). Important events which took place one was foreknmwn.This is true because of the relation-
in the gospel age, and which were preceded by similar ship between the_two events as regards both ti~ e anJ
events 1845 years before, mtke Jewish age, occur at nature.
corresponding tmles in the two ages. If the two ages Whenit is found that there is a series or system of
were la,d one upon the other, all the parallel dates would parallel dates composed of pairs of dates 2520 years
coinmdein positron. apart, the foreknowledge becomes obvious. It would
The second fall of the Jewish civilization, beginning be absurd to claim that the relationship &scovered was
in 69 A. D., is a parallel of the beginning of the fall not the result of divine arrangement. God alone has
of the Chn,tmn mvfl~zatlon in 1914; for the events such foreknowledge,and this proves that lie so overruled
are 1845 years apart and are ahke prominent and times and events that they shmfld be knit together into
readily dlscermble. a beautiful and harmonious whole too sublime to be the
It ~s not so well knownthat there are other corres- result of chance or of humaninvention.
pondmgevents on parallel dates 2520 years apart, mak- "Let them bring forth, and shew us what shall
ing a series or system of parallehsms. The "hines of happen," says Jehovah; "let them shew [even] the
the gentries" are knownto all Bible students (Daniel former things [historical events which have beconle lost
4 1G, 23, 25, 32), as markedby the fall of Jerusalem at to human knowledge], what they be, that we may con-
the beginning (60G B. C.), and by the beginning of the sider them, and knowthe latter end of them ; or declare
fall of Christendom at the close (1914 A. D.). These us things to come. Shew us the things that are to
took place 25°~0 years apart, and are parallel events on come hereafter, that we mayknowthat ye arc gods ....
parallel dates. Behold, ye are of nothing, and your work of nought: an
The &vismnof the Hebrewnation, for example, into abominatmn is he that chooseth you." "I am God, and
two kingdoms, Judah the two tribes and Israel the ten there is none like me, declaring the end from the be-
tribes, is aa event corresponding to the division of gmmng,and from ancient times the things that are not
Christendom into two great religious dominions, Pro- yet done."--Isaiah 41 : 22-24; 4G"9, 10.
testantism the smaller and purer, and Romanismthe Those that follow Jehovah’s chronology are mani-
larger and more corrupt. The first was m 999 B. C. and festly his people; for, said Jesus Christ, "The Spirit
the second in 15~1 A.-D., just 2520 years apart. That of truth.., will guide’you into all truth; he will shew
there should be twa such similar events is nothing you things to come"; and "The revelation of Jesus
remarkable; but it is extraordinary that they should Christ, which God gave unto him, to shew unto his
take place just 2520 years apart, when it is knownthat servants things which must shortly come to pass."~
the times of the gentiles are a period of 2520 years, if John16 : 13 ; Re~elation 1 : 1.
IDENTIFICATION CERTIFICATES
T WILLbe necessary for those attending the Cedar
I Point Convention to have an identification certif-
icate to present to the loom tmket-agent when pur-
ask for an identification certificate. Wewill mail these
certificates to ell then& applying for them; but we
must first kl~ow, ia ample time, to whomwe are to marl
chasing their tinkers; for without such a certificate it them.
will be impossible to secure the reduced transportatmn In the case of a fannly it is not necessary to have a
rate of a fare and a half. Ticket agents are instructed separate certificate for each member;for one certificate
by {’he railway compamesto allow the spemal rate only wall answerfor all the family, provided they all purchase
in cases x~here a certificate Identifies the party as one their tickets at the same time at the same station. If,
entitled to the rate because of their going to the Con- for example, a family of five is going, and three are to
vention at Cedar Point, Ohio. get their tickets together and the other two together at
Wedesire to knowas soon as possible howmanyv~fll another time, then two certificates are necessary, one for
attend the conventmn. Therefore we request overy one the group of three, one for the group of two. If one
whois iptendmgto go, to write us to that eft .... , and memberof the family has to purchase lns ticket alone,
he nmse secure a sepaJ:ate identification eertlfieafe. bath. etc. At th~s s~rlting ~t. is impo;sdde for the Com-
We u ~sh to know how many eerhfieates are reqmred, mtttee to send out notmes of such a-~lglllllent% but later
and lequest that tile reformation be sent us mmmchately they hope to arrive at some lnealla for a~:lgmng defimte
from each family---or separate person--how many u fit rooms m advance and for notdvmg the apphcants con-
buy hcke% together and tile names of all in such a eernmg tim, .number.> and loeatmn of rooms.
group. If the nlembers of the family will buy their There are qmfe a tew reque.-_ts for the pnwlege of
t,ckets at sep,uate tlme~, a separate certificate is nece.-.- ser~ mg m the work at the hotel, m tile restaurant, and
sarv eontammg the names of all that will buy at one on the gr,mnd,,., vlneh the Comnnttee cannot as vet
tm~e. answer deflmtel3, as at ~s too early to determine exactly
Please urde to the Comentmn Committee. 18 ~hat po.-al~ans x~fll be open and to ~hom they tan be
Concord St, l~rooklyn, N. Y., and gl~e the desired a,-.-Gned. Jt is lnObable that preference uql]. properly
reformation. 1)o not u all till tile last n~omen{ and enoll.~;]l he given to the eolporteurs first, and then to
expect to get a emt~fieafe, but wrote as soon as po~sflAe ol lv’rs as far as fea:tbl,’..
It u,l[ take considerable ~ork to get the lists made up Information > ~eqttested from many regarding the
m ]~ooklyn; and ~t is better that we should have the p~mes of tmkeis, train serx me, and other details of hans-
information r@lt auav, rMher than to have ~t coming 1,ortat~on. We shall noL attempt to answer these letters,
in at the last minute. If you think it prohal)le that you I)ut ufll g~ve all the rate,matron ~e ean through the
xx 11[ go. hut are not sine as 3eL, it is better to ask ior \,%vrc~t Tower, The ~ate-aud-a-half apphes to Canada
the eeltffiea~e ~noxv fllau to watt If not qmte certain al.~o.
as to uhmh memhers of the family will go, make re- ?.[eam~lule we repeat our request already made that
quest now for celhfieates eoxermg the ones 3ou now ~d,,nttfieation eertdicates be a~ked tO1’ ~.S ea,ly as pc)s-
think x~lll go; for it is better to ha~e {he certificate szl)le Ill accordance wffh the suggestmns pubhs_hod
emer too many than too few. If, howevm’, you find these columns. The Cmmmttee asks that the requests
after 3ou haxe reemxed your certificate that some one to~ identfl~cat~on eert~ficates be made as far as possible
else ahould haxe been mclnded, then make lmmcdhtte on postal cards for eonvemenee m fihng at the ofihces
rc, qu,~.~t for a separdh., certificate for that pe>m,beeau-.e o* the Somety.
the original emtflicate nfll eover only as many as it is I~ regard to insult ms about accommodations for auto-
ma,h~ mlt for. moMle~,there ~s ax affable, pa~ king space for 1,000 auto-
’l’hc Couxe~hon Committee has reemxed numerous mobiles, wlneh ~s fm’nished ~dhout charge. Spate for
reque.-t~ tot rooms at tlu. Cedar Point Con\ entmn from eal"~. 11l the o,~ahl~e
",, is at the rate of fifty~ cents a day,.
fr,..mL~ 1 ,,u’mg to have a.-_s~.gmnm~ts made at once. o1’ a fiat rate of $2 for the pemod of the Convention.
Some of the requests designate the desned ]ocahon of A cement road, rttns from a point a mile and a half eas~
rooms aald the aeeommodahons s~shed, such as pmx ate of Samlu~_ky&reef to the hotel.
W HII,E-the
last ]esbon,
mole fqlthfnl of the aeu~ had cone b,mk
to Pateq{llle {oit, p,lll its /~,ls{o-3 ,tad. d ~, ¢,eell ill our
\W.le ~ebuddlng the ’l~emlfle. the Lind
be,ruthful
wtlhouL
nat.re,tilts,
and aeeoml)lished
l)artieul,tr
and x~lthout
thought
EMher, a Jewess--apparently
or kncmledge rebpeetmg
knoxxing that Me, deem, one of Ins
her
x~,~a not neghaent of lho. ~emdmder of the people, uho h,td f:,~thlul attendants, :1 keeper of the palace gate, was her
ilOl beetl S/lflielentl5 ze~llous to l’ettHn to "the land of pronl- un(’le The story of Esther ~s a most temarkable one, and
lqe umler the decree el CyrllS g~,mtlng them the pt~x~le~e. e(,,h~ms the proverb that "truth ~s stranger than fietion."
r]’ltoIIbdlldS O{ ,JeWb its,deal 1II all pal’t,~ of the Pel~l,lll
elllDi1 o, \\ hleh then lllchlded Bob3 hMlla alld Pel’sh~ ,tad HAMAN THE PROUD AMALEKITE
llt’l/l’l\ all Abaft, including Ill(hll \VIHle gpeehtl lebbOl]S ’1 H:Htmn. one of the nobles of the land and a to\orate with
pecul,,~r trolls we~- gixen tO those rebmlding the Templ% the king, beeline incensed against Mordeeai because the
the Iord’s favor xx,tb /lpOll the rein,trader of the chosen latter wouhl not show him as ranch respect as did others.
prople to the extent that he pernntted to tome upon them I-hs pride exmted h~s ammos~ty to sueh an extent that
a g~cat troll, ~ex(.ue letting, \xhieh undoubtedly tanght he ~.eeured the king’s deeree against all Jews everywhere
the]t~ n valthdde ]e%bo~l it~ thmr far-off homes. It ~XdS th~ouahout the l’ersmn government The edmt was sweep-
equally a te~t to the Palestine Jews; for they, too, were lngly b~o’td, and d~reeted the people m every quarter of
in the Persmn etulu,e the Persian empire to destroy, to kill, to eause to perish,
A record of th~s areal t~ting is furnished us in the Book all Jews both 5oung and old, both httle ehtldren and
of Esther. ~the long of Persia at this thne was Ahasuerus, women, In one day, even upon the thirteenth day of the
otherwise known as Xerxes, who ehose for his queen tile twelfth month.
WATCH TOWER 221
This comm.mdluent of the king was written out ut tile to go into the kn,g’s presence uninvited, it ‘,‘,ould mean thmr
various languages of the peoples of tile real,u, sigued ‘,‘, tth death, unles.- tim ],mg chanced to feel fa‘,oral)le to them
the king’s seal, and sent opt b} special mes.bmlgers, a year and extended the golden scepter. ,She relmaked, also, that
being ailo~‘,ed to gtve ample trine tor tile informatwn to e‘,,dently tile lemg wds not teehng vmy graetous toward
reaeh even the most distant quarters of the realm. As an bet; for he lind not called her rote lus presence t’or more
ineitelnent to the doing ot tile work thorougld.~, those who titan a lnonl]L
killed tile Jews ,~ele gl~efl tim 1)livtlege of taking all thezr XERXES A DANGEROUS MAN
possessions. Haman felt that he now had aecomphslmd a That lh,t h,,trs ‘,~ese not grusmdles> l,~ evtdeut to those
great revenge against the Jew who stood "it the gate. aC(lUdi]~te(l v, ith tim htsro~‘, of those tram> For lust:thee,
Mordee,u and all tile am,.s, oil learning of tile e(het, ‘,~ele it 18 lecorded of tills VOl ~ kma that when ell route for ~ar
of course fleetly ttotfltled 92hey had lint a .~ear to hve. tie rested at ODen.e of l’l~ry,.:qa, xx here he was tile guest of
We lliKy safely uqSlllne timt sues all exl)erienee would do ]?ythlds, \\lie esstelt;lll/ed ]IIILI ILhlanlllCClltly, but x~hen the
nlore to dr, tw the hearts of the 3m‘,s to tire Lord m lev- latter bugged as a J’a‘,or th,lt of IHs axe sons ill tile king’s
erenee and .~Upldm.stion. than anything else that could have nlmv tim eldest aught be left xx]th hun in Ins old age, the
occurred to them ’lhcy lasted and prased, m sackcloth bJutal Xerxes in a sage caused IlL.it ~,oll to be slam ill
all(] as]lOS tim pre~ence of ]us lather, the hod.\ (l~x s(l(,(l LnlO two parts,
Our lesson to/wl,,s upon tile matter at this point. Tile tile one lmrt placed on one .-_~(h.’ of the ~(,,a/ ,uld the other
proehlnbltion tts~d edl~ t h,ld beeu in roree for more tlmn oil the oilier side, and tile u lm]o army nmrelw.d betweeu
a month. Queen E-thes h,ld heard or her uuele’s mourning tll c’ns
in sackcloth, and ot lt.~ c illSC, dnd felt a special intelc>t It is relah:d of tiffs same Nt,txes th,~ he nlhm,,d one of
in hun, as she had boeu HSl orphan and had been Ins Sis pievlolls qlleel)q to illliti]dte Olle (if her rl\,llb snost
sI)eelai-pro[6g6 ~Jos(l~cat a*>used her that it ,,,,’as not only Isorrlbly. "’t],q’ hieasts, leO..e, Iq~s. e.lr% Uele etst oll~ ;rod
for lslul she should IHoUlSS, btlt th,tt flus edmt included her- tllloxkn to the dogs. her tosl2no waq tOl-U out I) V the i’o(,tS,
self a> well a~ all a(,xx~; mid that slit Mmuld Im-nr l~er- UIld tlili ¢. dl>ll:~Ul’e(] Site w.ls gel~t liar].: to I/el hOl)le "’
self to b]ulg lhe matter belore tile king, and if l)O%lbh.h to Of :lnothes l’er~u/n king st is l~,lated that to show his
have another edna ]s-ued xxlnch would counteract Ihss iO skill lll aleherT he shot nn arrow lille the heart of lus "~O/lllg
SOlilO Sll(’IS¢.Ille I~Slt thole 1,,‘, tile dllheult3 The lax‘,s or eutfln.’a]er, the sea of hts greateqt ravomte, Plex,~H)es
tile .Mr,de, and l’t:lshlng alh,red not, could slot be eh.m~cd,
illllSt ~hsHdits thouah tile’, were nn,tlte]dble. .Nevertileh.,,,, SEEKING DIVINE GUIDANCE
something usubt be done. nnd the queeu x‘, dS tile only one it) I’er~uaded tlmt no othpr com>e ‘,‘,.ts open than to risk
po_,ltion to mal;e an 3 al)proaelJ to the king. For otbms to hol hie Ju nl,pioaehmg the klan, Esther then s,:nt x~ot’(I to
tal~e done so would have cost their oxxn lives. her uncle, ,uld tttrough Iron to all the .Te~s ot lhe pal.me
~ll~. that they should ta~t ~tlt her ~or lhioe d,z3S. :Hzd
OPPORTUNITIES AS DIVINE PROVIDENCES th~,~, of eolH.~e, llUl)hed l)l,l’~e.r ~.Ve e:umot SUpl)O~.e that
/boy abst’lzned absolutvl~ from food ,s;i,1 fhu,l~ for {htee
Mordee,u, muleHtly Iruslmg m the Lord that the decree d,x,, I)ut that thev w(,ut on ~Isoit ,llh)\x,lnce, a\old]ulg /sn~,-
eoahl wg (.q be :n’,’mnphMLed, called the qlleen’s ;ltteatlon to
th,qg that \~ould be ~peei,tll\ l)led.u~,,bh; ,rod ,tH luxuzz~.%
the fact that qlllte lm-slbly slid had come into her present Tlu> pra3er and fastut~ eonvsnee us lh.tt Hot all the .lews
p~.~i~lotl or laotLot ,Itl~l privilege ]or the ‘,ery pm-po~e og
‘,x ~ o had f:uth in the Lind had retmn(,d to l’,th,stHw, but
SF,IXIILg tlus ex~l ,t2,Sm-t her people, i-I~> snggestlon x‘,as
th st some of this knld ‘,\c, s e still sealttered tln’ouahont all
that qmte likely (-hld’~ provzdenee had blought hei to that
ASl.I ~’0 doubt the excclm(mal trml of flus t~me thus lwmed
pl.we Io be the divine a<eney for preserving the Jews frmn
a great bit<sing and sttvnathcnmg to the faith ot l:>lher
the evil n],dJgmry of theu’ enenHes m l)ower But he
and her llnele "lad all tile 3e\\.
mhh’d that ]17 she fnsh,d to it-pond to tile OPlmrtumty, to
At tile elo~_e of tile tlnee (ldv~ the queen, atti~(,d m her
mamicat losally to lhe I/ud’.s people, failed to llsk some-
1)e~t ro‘,al robes to nppc, u’ a~ ntt~aethe ,~ pu*,,~shle, nl/-
thing on thei,’ 1)ehLlil, it ~Ollld nlean her own loss nnyway preached the ]{lllg flirts bhc u*ed wlgdoln ,lad SOll’..’llt tO
shin fly; and lhaI he Schemed that God would psovide some
eol)peldte ‘,vlth ]lei pl ii,~cl % for di\ lilt gllld;lnc’e alld hh,s.qiLg.
means for tile dehveranee of the people in general. It was 92]1e king was verv grw. mT~sto 7h’-’r and extended file aolt]en
hm opportunity, it was her duty to act; and the responsi-
seeptL’e, w]uch she to/lehed: and then, perem\ulg that only
/Hhty he east upon her. SOllle urgollt luatteT. Of JOqll~ "~t ]safl tllUg brougllt her solo /uS
Throe is a benuhful lesson of faith here that should l)re-nol,ee, tie inqlIited ‘,x]ldt he could (to for her, assuring
nppe.tl to all of the Slmitual Israelites Whatever we llave, her that it should 1)e done ev(m lo tim extent of l~alf of lus
whatever posttiolls ‘,~e oecllpy of inlhlenee or power or kingdom--the latter exp]’u.-~mn, however, being donbtless a
wealth or eontideuee it, the esteem or others, is so ninth of mere rOl’lUal[ty indicating gl’e:lt mt~,re:t.
a Ste,.al’dslnp granted fo us by the Lord, re%)eehng width The queen’s pl.llV, v~ele evld(..Hlly all well thought out.
‘,‘,e shouhl expect to give an account; and if the ace, rant Doubtless the Lord gl.mted the \xm{lom nce(’.s%lr) for
xxouhl be rendmed with Joy, we mu.>t be fmthful e~cn to oeca,,qOll
the ltsklng of our hve~ in the interests of the Lord’s people She did not communicate her ~equest, bul ruther led oa
and in Ins cause Let li8 lav this feature of E~ther’s ex. the ksng’s expectancy by mxitmg lmn ht’~_t to co)he to
perlenee to heart, that ‘,‘, e may draw valuable lessons there- b,mquet w]lieh she had arr:ma’ed in h,s hol~Or and ~o "~xhleh
from, helpfal to us m the spmtual way. The suggestmn also his most trusted oltieer, Ha,.n,,n, ‘,~,q~ m\Jted The np-
that she had not come to a llhtee of honor and psw,lege by pomtmenl WdSkept, and at Ib.,t I),tnquet th(, queen a~.ann
aemdent, but that the Lord lind overruled in the matter, palrmd the inqmw ns to her real desire hy a.M~mg tlmt the
is one that should appeal to all Israehtes indeed. Whatever s,tme t‘,\o should honor her 1).~ attending a banquet on the
we have is of the Lord’s providence; and let us use it /~D.’~ fOIIowJDg also: and th~s was agreed to
faithfully and ns xx]sely as possH)le for him and his. Thus Some of the Lord’s dear people of spmtual Israel are a
oar own blessings and joys will he increased as well as our lithe iueTmed to go to extremes and, trusting ul the Loed,
favor with the Lord. to do nmhmgto forward the great cause they wish to serve.
The queen’s answer was that Mordecai, as well as all Woheho~ e tisat Esther’s course is a good e-~amp/e of prO-
the people, knew that if she or anyone else should attempt t)~’~ W,. qmuld both watch and pray, labor and wait, I~
,the WATCH TOWER Y.
wise as serpents and as harmless as doves. ~Ve should do all upon which the queen was reclining at the banquet, wl.on
in our power, while trusting to the Lord for the results, the king re-entered, noted the s~tnatio~, and xxas indlgn;~’,t
assured that he is able to make up for all of our deficien- beyond bounds. Ascertaining about the gallows, lie ¢om-
cies, but at the same time leaving as little deficiency as nmnded that Itaman should be hanged at once upon the
possible. scaffold he had prepared for Mordecai.
XERXES SUPERNATURALLY INFLUENCED Haman’s estates were conferred upon the queen by rnv~tl
Meantime the Lord worked upon the king from another decree; and then the queen, explaining that Mordecai, who
direction, we know not how--d~vine providence has a lind once saved the king’s hfe, was her uncle, requested
thousand ways for its operation. the royal interposition to counteract the effect o£ the
The king passed a sleepless night, and seems to have pre~ mus edict for the extermmatmn of the Jews.
inferred in some manner that he had been derelict to some It was well undeIstood that no decree or edict of the
obligation--that some one who had done him a favor had Medes and Persmns could be altered, amended, or with-
not been smtably rewarded. He called for the reading of dra~ n--once issued, it must stand; but the king gave per-
the court records as to various incidents, and amongut these mlssmn to Mordecai to arrange the matter w~th the w~se
noted an oeeasmn on which two of his trusted palace ser- men of the palace, so ttiat anotlmr decree might be issm,d
vants had conspired to take his life and had been frustrated which would be equally binding, and which would in some
by the exposure of their plot by Mordecai. measure, if not fully, offset the first decree.
No doubt the king was guided to this matter in some way ’£his was done by formulating a decree permitting the
by the Lord’s prowdence. He inquired what recompense Jews throughout the entire reahn to defend themselves, and
had been made to Mordecai, what had been done for him, to do to their enemies all tlmt their enemms were permitt, d
how had he been rewarded for this faithfulness to the king. by the fi~t decree to do them Th~s last decree was similarly
Finding that no special reward lind been given, he called sent by messengers under the king’s seal. to all parts of
for Haman to offer suggestions. the empire; and as a result, x~hen the fateful day came
The latter had been grieving over what he eonsidered ~hich was to have meant the extermination of all the Jex~ ~,
l~Iordecai’s insult to him in not bowing to him; and fechng the Jews were commanded by the second decree to defend
very confident of his influence with the king, he had already themselves, were prepared, and armed, and had favor with
erected "t gallows in the court of his own house, purposing tim magistrates of all the hinds;for the s(,conddecreew~s
to have Mordecai hanged thereon by the king’s decree be- understood to be a measurable offsettQ the in’st,and ~t was
fore another day. He had come to the palace for the very known that Mordecai, a Jew, was now the Ring’s clnef
purpose of requesting Mordecai’s hfe, when he was inquired counsellor,or, as we wouldsay today,prinlenlmister,or
for by the king, and asked to suggest what would be suit- s(.cretary of state.The resultwas the sht3mgof thousands
able honor to be done to a man whom the king desired throughout the realm, not c]nefiy Jews, but their opponent%
to honor. their enemies, including some eight hundred slam in the
Thinking that he was the person to be honored, he sug- palace city.
gested the king’s horse, the king’s robe, the king’s crown, "DO GOOD TO THEM THAT HATE YOU"
and one of the king’s chief men to lead the horse throughout We are not to look back to this record of the sla3ing
the city proclaiming in a loud voice that the king was thus of enemies as an illusll’atmn of what spiritual Israehtes
lmnoring the one who rode. To his surprise the king are to do. We as Israelites indeed, begotten of [l~e holy
directed him to carry out this program with Mordecai as spirit, are to love our enemies and to do good to thn~e
the honored man, and himself, the king’s representative, that hate us and despitefully uqe us and persecute us ~\
leading the horse and proclaiming the king’s favor. The are to bless and injure not We are to remember that at
king’s word could not he disputed or even questioned, and this time the Lord had not revealed his own love. He had
the matter was carried out in every detail; but Haman, revealed his justice and i~is power, but not his love, 1or
covered with shame and mortification, returned to his own the Scriptures declare; "He,reim was manifested the love
house for consolation from his friends for his wounded nf God, m that he gave his only begotten Son," etc. (l John
pride. g) It was never manifested before.
In the afternoon the messenger arrived to escort him to It’s this great l~,ve which God has manifested, and ~,hich
the banquet with the king and queen. Thither "~e un- he b,’,d inculcated for those that appreciate his love and
happy man went, little surmising what more there was in tt,~t have been benelJr(,d by it, which appeals to us. We
store for him. love him because lie l~rst loved us; "rod we love others
In the midst of the banquet the king again pressed the because, ha~ing learned first to love tim Lord, we ha~e
queen to know the important thing she had to request. Her experienced an enlarge,meat of heart, and a broadening of
time had eoine ; and she besought the king for her own life and sympathies. And tlns breadth of sympathy and love, which
the life of hm" people, telling him that their enennes had ~s a continual growth in tim Christina in l~qationship to
inveighed agMnst them for tlmlr utter destruetmn. The o~hers, is proportionate to its exercise toward God. He
king. evidently falling to comprehend, asked who was the that loveth God, loveth also his brother and his neighbor.
wicked per(on who had thus plotted to kill his queen and
all her family connections; and she replied: "This wicked THE iClEART OF THE LESSON
Haman, who ~s with us at tim banquet hoard." The king The heart of this lesson is respecting divi,ne providence,
was perturbed in mind, and walked from the banquet room the Lord’s divine care over his people. True, God’s provi-
into the garden to meditate what course he should pursue. dence had not been manifested in favor of the Jews for
more than 1,800 years, until 1878 and again m 1918. They
THE WICKED CAUGHT IN THEIR OWN TRAP ha4 been cast off for a time, rejected from the Lord’s favor,
Meantime, Haman perceived that everything was going their house left desolate because of their rejection of
wrong with him, that his life was in Jeopardy, and that Messiah.
only tim queen’s word could spare his life; and so, when We can now plainly see divine favor returning to the
the king had left the apartment, Haman made every appeal Jews. We are glad that the Lord through the Apostle has
to the queen for her forgiveness and her intercession on made clear that this blindness on their part and his rejection
his behalf. In his frenzy of fear he forgot the circumstances of them are not to last forever--that in due time all their
and surroundings, and was partly stretched upon the couch blindness is to be turned away, and the good promises of
WATCH TOWER
the Lord are still thmrs and are to be fulfilled to them. care in the interests of tim tspical people, he is both able
The Apostle assmes us that their e’tstmg off is merely until and wllhng to do as much and more for his spiritual
the *ulness el the gentiles shall ha~e been brought rote Israel--Israehtes indeed, m whom ~s no guile--those that
divine favor, until the full number of the elect church have entered rote emenant relatmnslnp ~lth him and are
selected froln tile gentiles shall have been gathered, lV,th seeking to walk, not after the flesh, but after the spiral.
the completion of the elect spiritual Isr’iel, the Apostle The Golden Text is in accord with thin thought: "The
n>sures us that heavenly favor will again return to Lord preserveth all them tlmt love him." True, he lms a
natural Israel, who are still beloved for the lathers’ sake. sympathetic love £o1’ the wolld which has led him to provide
These soon shall obtain mercy through the church’s mercy a redemption for all, to be oltered in due t~me. All the
--through the mercy of the glorified Chrlst.--l/omans 11 ’2-5- redeemed ones wll~ have a manifestation of divine love and
32. care over their interests; but now, dmmg the Gospel aae,
When we note the divine providentml care over God’s d~vme blessings are eonfemed upon those who wall (’ongti-
typmat people, it increases our faith and trust as Ins lute tim church, tile body of Christ, ~ho love him more
spiritual clnldren. "With the Apostle we rea.~oa that if, than they love houses or lands, llatents or clnldren or
while we were yet stoners, God so loved us as to give his self. All who can thus al~lnl Go their own hearts thmr com-
SOIl for us, ninth more does he love us no~ that we are no plete loyalty to tim Lord, their faltll and trust in hllu, may
nlore sinners, d’Aens, strangers, formgner~, but consecrated be assured that all tldngs are suI)erx lsed for thmr good and
t," Into, nn’.l seeking to ~xalk m Ins steps. are wolMng out ior thmr ~xel£ale, m matters temporal and
i..kewise we Jeason that, ~£ God exercised Ins providential in aflairs eternal.
BROTHER B. M. RICE
BROTHER J. A. BOHNET Clncn~o,Ill .................... July 30 Maleollii~ "Hleh ............. Aug 6
South P, end, Ind ............. " 31 Battle Cleol,, Mlch ......... " 7
Winside, Neb ....... Jul3 20,27 Chq,~eellol’, S Dak ...... Aug 7,8 Nlles, 3Tieil Aug 1 Ostc:zo. 3~icll - -- ........ " 8
Cieaix~ater, Neb 1 .... " 2q, 30 Pai’l.er, S Dak ............ Aug q irienl,tn Tlarlior fllcil:":.:: " 2 Gland ILl, I% l~Iich ...... " 9
Srmlx City, Ia~a ............ Aug 1 Uticn, S Dal ................. " 10 .qOllth Ila~en. MlCh......... 1’ 3 SDfll ta, ~’1~ ]1 ........ " 10
Vermflmn, S Dak ........... ’’ 2 Mitchell, S link ............ " 13 Kalamazoo, IHlch ............ " 4 ~lll~le~on, 51]ch ..... Aog 12, 13
Yankton, S Dak ............ " 3 llartford. S. Dak............. " 14
Irene, S Dak................ Aug. 5, 6 5a.per, Mmn................ " 15
BROTHER V. C. RICE
Clinton, lo~a ............. Aug 1 Ch,qlItCh, Iowa............... Aug 8
Cedai Ral)ld% Iowa .... Aug 2, 3 lled Oak, /ov, a ............ " 9
BROTIIER E. F. CRIST ShelIMmI-g.to~a ............... Aug 4 (JielI~ coil. 1,i ~a’,t .......... " 10
M,uengo,Ionia ................ " 5 Nebia~k,t City,lo~a ...... " 11
Tnnumr N S ........... Aug. 2 SI(lne~ N S .......... Aug 13 Des Molne, Iowa ............ " 6 Onl,tha, Neli .................... " 13
Plctou, N S __ _ " 4 (’.lace I~av. N. S ___Aug. 13,14 lndiahola, Iowa................ " 7 Logan, Ionia .................. " 14
(hnllottetol~ll P H I Aug 6.7 "WlHtno3 Pier, N. S Aug 15
StelI,H Ion, N S .%ng 0 S~dne~ N S ......... Aug 10, 17
iN)it llax~l e~tiui v, N S- " 10 Trnl¢t, NS ............... " 18, 21)
Noitli S3dney, N S .... " 11 Ouel)ec,Qne..................... Aug 22 BROTHER R. L. ROBIE
Deliver, Cole................ Aug 2 (’heat Fall% Mont ..... Aug 1S, 20
Cheyenne, Wyo........... Aug. 5, 6 ~lllllle0 , ~illlit .............. ~.llg 2t
Ca,~liel, Wyo............. " 8, 9 1"1 old, MOllt ............. ’ 23
Butte, Mont............. " 11, 13 Itenet~e, 3hint .......... Aug 24, :25
BROTIIER A. .l. ESHLEMAN 5h~oula, Mont ........ " 14, 15 Olltlook, MouL........... " 21,, 27
]%lallCltn Ohio ..... IIIIt 25 Mt Lo¢lkoul, W. Va.. Aug 1.2 l’ablo, Mont.............. " 16, 17 Da~e,N-l_l,[k ................... \llg 29
]’all, t,l~h,li", V, %.t 2Ll SlhtWXOt, %~. Va " 3.4
)’.lllolo~, (thlo ...... " 27 )luniu]glon "~%. Va --:_:__Aug
~lllil %.{ %.It ............. " 2~ II (inlon. Ohio, ....... " 7 BROTHER O. L. SULLIVAN
ClII (l:l %% % it ......... " 2’) .%~hlaull,T(’," ........... ~’ 8
Challe~to/~n, /\: Ya ...... " 30 P.ttlick, Ky. ............ Aug 10,11 Terie Haute, Ind ........... July 31 1,’reneh Lick Ind ............. Ang 7
Biazil, Ind ................. Aug. 1 Boonvllle, lnd ............. " 8
.Sullivan,Ind .................. " 2 E’~ansville, I.d " 9
Dugger,Ind .................... " 3 "~ia-lungton, hid.’.[[:::::’: " 11
Lnltou, Ind ................... " 4 ~[Olll-gonlei.).]nil ............. " :13
BROTHER M. L. HERR Bedford,Ind ................... " 6 Spaik~llle, Ind ............ " 14
V~n Welt, Ohm.......... Jnl~ 31 1,’lenient. Ohm ................. Aug 7
I.illi:l, Ohio ........ Aog 1 llellex.e, Ohio................ " 8
DefhlnVe, Olllo ........... " 2 S,infhl~]~i, ~)]11o......... tl 9 BROTHER W. J. THORN
] O~llll I,I, ()hie ............. " 3 ]lilllbIH’t, (Ihlo ............... " 1(l
" 4 VclnIIhOll,(-)lllO ............. " Red Rock, Okla. July 31, Aug. 1 Sl)Ilngdale, Alk ............... Aug 9
l’indlax, Ohi’o.................. 11 Dl’unlright, Okla ........ Aug. 2, 3 Mnnett,Me...................... "
Tiffin, Ohio..................... ’# (3 Elylla, Ohio................... " 13 10
Tulsa, Okla.. .................. Aug. 4 Jophn.Me....................... " 11
Sl)etry, Okla .................. " 6 Noel, Me...................... " 12
SluM.ogre,.Okla ................ " 7 Salonle, Ark............... " 13
leolt Smith. Ark............... " 8 Lamal, Azlc .............. Aug 14, 15
BROTHER W. M. HERJEE
Otta~xa, Ont _.%lt~t q. 10 Oananolltle, 0nt ........... Aug 21
]l,)lllit’.il I,i (, __Alia" I1, ]3 KNm~ton, Ont ........ Aug 22, 23 BROTHER T. H. THORNTON
Norilifiehl St,i, Olit ..... Aug 14 ]~elFexllle. ()lit .......... Aug 24 July 28
" lb ~telllng, 0nt ........... Aug 25,27 Wythe~llle, Va ........ Meadwlle,Va................... Aug 4
Ii Ollhl)l~ Ii,l[ ............ E Radtord, Va ................ " 30 Chatham,Va..................... ,, 6
Pi~iott, II it............... " lb l,’lankfoid. O" . ........ Aug. 28 " 31 DryF.lik, Va .................... ’, 7
Bio~k~llle, Ont.............. " 20 -Trentol!, 0nt ................ " 29 lh~.u,iI,e, \ a ...................
L3mhburg,Va ................. Aug. 1 DanvilleX a ...................... 8
liar t, \a ........................ " 2 SouthIhll, Va................. " 9
Jata, Va ........................ " 3 KeYsvllle, %~. ........... Aug. 10, 11
BROTHER H. HOWLETT
St. John, N B ....... Aug 18, 20 BROTHER $. B. WILLIAMS
VCliitney Pier, N S. - _A,1]g 9, 10 ]gvandale, N B .......
I’l( to,i, N. S ....... ii " 21, 22 Moose Jaw, Sask .... Aog. 3, 4 SnMmtoon,Sa~k ........... Aug 13
Sl,)l~lmln, N ~ .... 12 Ftedeilctoo, N B ........... Aug 2J Beglna, Sa~k ........ Aug 6 Cadogan,Alta ................. " 15
J>l~ ton, N B - 13 Mllvllle, N B ............. " 24 Earl Gra3, Sask .... Ang. 7, 8 Hnrdh~ty,Alia ............... ,, 17
Cllall,~tte~tmxn, PE-( " 15, 16 Wood,~t~el~.N.B ............ 25 Cyunic, S,l~k ........ kug 9 Sedg~lck, Alia ............... " 18
Amhel~t, N S ..... Aug 17 Moutleal, Que ................ " 27 Aug 10, 11 Camose,Alta ................ 20
Viscount, Sask .........
BROTHER W. M. WISDOM
BROTHER O. MAGNUSON
]Ha(h~on,V¢is.................. Aug. 1 He~exx]~eh Ill ........... Aug. 7
Ail../n%i~ Cit’~, Ark. Ang 1, 2 ,~ahn,l Nan ............... Aug 8, 9 " 2 l{,tnlnl01id, Ind .......... " 8
" 3 (i S(’d(Iiil+lll, Kan............. Aug 10 l’ieepoi t, Ill .....................
ilnl(hlli~llli, I{Itn ...... A~lltOn,Ill ...................... " 3 ]Michigan City, Ind ........ " 9
l l,’ll, l’.,"l .............. Allg 4 Abllefie, Kan................... " 11 " 4 LaPorte, Ind ................ " 10
" 5 M,ulh,tttan, Kan ............ " 12 Auiora,Ill .......................
AI Illl:~/I)ll It,ill ............... Chicago,Ill ...................... " 6 Plymouth,1rid ............... " 11
l~le~ ha,- 1(an ................... " 7 Cl’ty Center, /(an ......... " 13
¯ ° , .
CONTENTS
EUROPr,AN TOUR-- PARTII ............................... 227
In Denmark................................................. 227
The Work ]n Sweden ..................................... 228
"Mtlhons" for Scandinavia ............................. 229
EUROPEAN TOUR-- PARTIII ................................ 229
Berhn, Dresden, Stuttgart .............................. 2"~0
Conditions 111P~oumanh’t................................ 221
Adventist Persecutors ................................... 232
Pubhc Meeting in Vienna ............................... 232
Escape from Persecutors ............................... 233
A W~tne~sto Austria ..................................... 233
CEDAR POINT CONVENTION -- IMPORTANT ........ 234
Howto Procure Accommodations
.................. 235
BAC]~. FROM~AD~tLON TO GOD’S TEMPLE.............. 236
QUESTIONS FOR TOWERBEREAN STUDY .............. 239
"I w~ll stand upon my watch and woll se¢ roll loot,
upon the Totter, and w~ll watch to ses what He will
~{ly unto me, and what answer 1 shall make $o thorn
~httt oppose me"--Habal~uk ~" 1.
i]’pon the earth ~z,r t. ) )l,~[i’Uh ~llh [le ph’\Ll~ 1he -’ t an(] the waves(the re~t.lc~, dlseontented~ tea)rag, men’s hearts falling
When ye them for
see these fear and
things begmfortolook|rig
come to l}a~
things coming upotl the earth (society), for the po~ers of the heaven~ (etcles]astlclsm =uau be shaken
then kno~ that the Klnglom of God Is at hand Look up. lift up your heads, re~oice, for your rsdem0tlon draweth nigh--MutL 24.33: Mark 13 29, Luke 21"25-81.
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS SACRED MISSION
HIS Journal is one of the prime factors or instruments in the system of B~ble instructmn, or "Seminary Ext0ns~on", now beTng
T presented in all parts of the elvlhzed world by the ~VATCt~TO%ER BIBLE~ TRACTSOCIETY, chartered A.D. 1884, "For the Pro-
motmnof Christian Knowledge". It not only serves as a class room where Bible students may meet in the study of the divine "Word but
also as a channel of communlcatmnthrough which they may be reached with announcements of the Society’s coDventlons and of the
coming of its tra~ehng ~elnesentatlves, styled "Pilgrims", and refreshed with reports of its conventions.
Our "Berean Lessons" me topical rehearsals or reviews of our Society’s pubhshed STUDIESmoqt entertainingly arranged, and very
helpful to all who would mmlt the only honorary degree which the Society accords, vlz., Vc~b~ De~ Minister IV, D. hi ), which translated
into 14ngh~h ]s M~mster of God’s Word. Our treatment of the Internahonal Sunday School Lessons is specially for the older Bible
students and teachms. By some this feature ~s conmdered indispensable.
Tins journal stands firmly for the defense of the only true foundation of the Christian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
--redemptlon tluough the precmu~ blood of "the man Chrmt Jesus, who ga-,- himself a ransora [a corresponding price, a substitute] for
all". (1 Peter 1 : 19 ; 1 Timothy 2 : 6} Bmldlng up on tins sure foundatlo~ the gold, silver and precmus stones (1 Corinthians 3: 11-
15, 2 Peter 1 : 5-11) of the Word of God, its furtlmr miasma is to "m_k~ all see what is the fellowship of the mystery whmh., ha~
been lad m God, . . . to the intent that now might be made knownby the church the manifold wisdom of God"--"which in other ages
was not made knm~n unto the sons of men as ~t is now revealed".--Bphesmns 3:5-9, 10.
It stands free from all parties, sects and creeds of men, while it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
subjection to the ~111 of Godin Chrmt, as expressed in the holy Scriptures. It is thus free to declare boldly whatsoever the Lord
hath spoken--accor/hng to the divme wisdom granted unto us to understand his utterances. Its atUtude is not dogmatic, but confident ;
for we knowwhereof ~e aflnm, treading ~lth imphclt froth upon the sure prom~es of God. ]t is held as a trust, to be used only m his
service; hence our decisions ]elati~e to what may and what may not appear m its columns must be accordmg to our judgment of hi~
good pleasure, tile teaclung of his Word, for the upbuihhng" of los people in grace and knowledge. And we not only invite but urge ou~
readers to prove all its utterances by the lntaihble Word to ~h~ch reference is eonstanIly made to faelhtate such testing.
TO US THE SCRIPTURES CLEARLY TEACH
That the cbureiI is "the temple of the living God", peculiarly "bis workmanship"; that its construction has been in progress throughou~
the gospel age--e~er mace Chrl~t beoame the world’s Redeemer and tile Clnef Corner Stone of his temple, through whmh, whe~
fim~hed, God’s blessing ~hall come "to all people", and they find access to him.--1 Cormthmns3: 16, 17 ; Ephesmns 2:20-22 ;
Genesis 2S : 14 ; Galattans 3 : 29.
That meantime the chiseling’, shapmg, and poh~hing of consecrated believers in Christ’~ atonement for sin, progresses ; and when the
last of these "hying stones", "elect and precious," sball have been n:ade l eady, lhe gl oat Ma~ter Workmanu Jll bring all together
in the first ]e~urlectmn, and the temple shall be filled w~th his glory, and be the mcetmgplace between God and men throughou~
the 1Mlllenmum--Revelatioa 15.5-8.
¯hat the basis of hope, for the church and the world, lies in the fact that "Jesus Christ, by the grace of God, ~a~ted death for every
man,’ "a ran~onl for all," and will be "the true tight which llghteth every mat~ that cometh ~nto the eyelid", "in due time’.-
Hebrews 2:9; John 1.9; $ Timothy 2:5, 6.
~£hat the hope of tile church ~s that ~he may be hke her Lord, "~ee him as he is," be "partakers of the diwne nature’,’ and share his
gloiy as hm jomi~hen--1 John 3 2; John 17.24, Romans 8:17; 2 Peter :1:4
That tile pre~ent n,~--mon of lhe church is the perfecting of the saints for the future woik of ~erwce; to develop ]n herself every
g~ace; to he Go(l’~ wltne~s to the world, and to prepare to be kings and p~msts In the next age.--L’phe~mns 4 : 12 ; Matthew 24 :
14; Revelatmn 1: 6; 20:6.
That tile hope for the world hes in the b]eusingu of knowledge and opportumty to be brouzht to all by Chrmt’s 5hllenmal kingdom, ~hO
reM]tutlon of all that x~,~s lo~t lu Adam,Io all the willing and obedient, at tile hangs of their Redeemerand ins glorlhed chl2r.,~
when all the wllfully w~cked will be destroyed.--Acts 3:19-23, lsamh 35.
’~ ~bl$ HED BY
CONVENTION --VACATION
WATC/-i TOWEI~BI 5L5 ~TRACT SOCIETy
Readers of THE WATCHTOWERwill please take no~lce
18 CONCORD
STEEET
0 0 5P,.OOKL’YN,
D Y. U.S’A that the office and factory of the Watch Tower Bible &
Foumor¢O~FICnS: British: 34 Craven Terrace. Lancaster Gate, Tract Society at ]S Concord Street, Brooklyn, and the Be~:l(,l
London W. 2; Coloradoan. 270 Dundas St, W, Toronto, 0ntamo;
AusDala~um 495 Colbns St, Melbomne. Austraha; South Afri- Home will be closed for two weeks from September 2 ~o
can: 123 l’leln St, Cape To~n, South Afmca September 16, mcluulve, this will be a vacation period to
PLEASE ADDRESS TYIE SOCIETY IN ]t~VFRY CASE.
enable all of the Bethel Family to attend the conventl~m.
YEARLY SUBSCRIPTION PRICE: UNITED STATES, $1 f]0; CANADA AND Do not expect orders to be filled from Brooklyn dmmg
~ISCELLANEOUS FOREIGN, $1 ,~0 ; GREAT BRITAIN, AUSTRALASIA~
ANDSOUTI~ AFRICA,Ss American remlttance~ should be made those dates. We ~u~gest that orders be seat m before tiLtt
by Express or Postal .Money Orders, or by Bank Draft Canadmu, time for anything tlmt may be needed. Urgent matters that
British, South African, and Au~traln~Jall remittances should he
made to br¢tnch o~cev only. Relmttances from scattered foreign mu~_t be attended to by wire or special delNery may be
termtot5 may be made to the Brooklyn office, but by International
Postal MoneyOrders only. set~t to The Breakers Hotel, Cedar Post, Sandusky, Ohio,
(Forelq~t tranMatioas of thfs ]our~al appear ~n severa~ languages) between lhe dates of September 5 and 12.
Editorial Committee: Thi~ ~ournal iu publiuhed under the supervision
of an edltollal conmnttee, at lea~-t tlnee of vdlom have read and REPORT OF CONVENTION
aplnoved as truth each and every a~ tlele appealing Jn these columns.
Tile names of tile edltollal eomnnttee are : J ]7’ RUTIIERFORD,
~V E VANAJIBURGH,J I*LJIERY. G 1~ FISHER. E.W. BIIENISEbVo Friends everywhere are looking forward with great
Tern~.~ fof ":e J~ord’s Poort All B~Ie ~dents who, by reason of old age or other in- expectancy to the Cedar Point Convention. Having m mmd
fir--l.~y or aA~e~ty, are unable to pay for thts journal, will be supphcd free ff they send
¯ postal car:l each ~ay statmg their ease and requestmg such pro~u~xon. We are not tile blessmgs enjoyed at the former convention there, ue
only ~flhn% but amxlotm, that all ~uch be on our lmt continually and m touch w~th the
Boreas studies. are expecting even greater blessings at this one. There will
~ot~cefoZubscribers° w’e do ~ot, as arttle, sendacardofaeknow|edgmentfor~rene~tvr be many of the dear brethren throughout the ~orld ~ho
wl’~ln a monthby change~u "ezglratlon
for a new subscr
~s s ~oo~.
lot n Eecc pt and entry of renewal ~r~ mo~cated
date, on wrapper
label.
r will have no opportunity of attending this convention. We
f-stored ~ Sec~d CTa~Matter af Brookl,m, 1~ Y, Posto:~c~~nder th~ Act of March$rd. 1875
are sure that their prayers w~ll daily uscend in behalf of
those who do go We feel that those at home will be pleased
HYMNS FOR OCTOBER to have some detailed report of what transpn’es at the
convention, that they may enter mine fully into tlle spout
SInld,l.~ ............ 1 198 8 SO 15 304 22 325 29 43 of it. This ~s to advise th’tt THE ~VATCI:I TOWER will nml:e
Morals5............... 2 ]50 9 301 16 106 23 277 30 177 such a report, and it is our preuent intention to issue a
’l’m,~dm~ ............. 3 300 10 125 17 120 24 188 31 19 specml ed~tton immediately following the convention, proba-
~’(~dm’s(’ 15". ....... 4 2S5 11 290 18 24 25 321 bly the issue of October 1. giving a report of the eonventmn.
Thul~d,,~............ 516S 12 292 19 254 26161 This will be free, of course, to the ]egular subscribvrs.
Fr]d,t~ ........... 6 297 13 70 20 74 2"/1S6 Extra copies may be ordered at ten cents each, provided the
S,ttu,(la5 ............ 717S 14 89 21 45 28173 order m sent in by September 15.
Vol. XLIII August1, 1922 No. 15
the fact that we are at the end of the world and that nameof Christ is heard; for "this gospel of the kingdom
things have come to pass as the Lord said they would. shall be preached in all the world for a witness unto
Christians, therefore, take courage in continuing with all nations, and then shall the end come," said the Lord.
zeal and earnestness in making proclamation of the "This gospel" clearly means, from the words of our Mas-
message of the kingdom, whmhholds the only solution ter as shownby the context, that it is the messagecon-
for the ills of humankind. Of course not all will hear cerning the world’s end, the incoming~of the Messianic
now; but many are hearing, many of whomdoubtless kingdomand the blessings of restitution. It is gratify-
will shortly profit by their hearing when they have a ing to report that the message is being widely spread
clearer view of the Lord’s plan for blessing mankind. to the Lord’s glory.
Before starting to Sweden it was necessary to have Brother Gonx addressed the public meeting at Nor>
our passports vls6ed at London. Brother Goux called koping. Sweden, at the conclusion of the Scandinavian
upon the Swedish consul for that purpose and the vls4 conventmn, at which there were about one thousand
was refused, although the passport was regularly issued present. Muchinterest was manifested, and we have
by the United States govermnent. An excuse for refus- hopes that much good ~,11 result.
ing the vis6 was made that not sufficient evidence had On Saturday night we journeyed to Malmo, Sweden,
been produced that we were going to Sweden for tho arr,vmg there on Sunday morning. A one-day eonven-
purpose indicated in our passports. The next day we tton had been arranged for the friends in southern
both called on the Swedish Consul-General; and after Sweden. A very happy day was spent at Malmo. About
some conversatmn and the productmn of other docu- two hundred of the consecrated had assembled, all of
ments, he secmed qmte anxious to visfi our passports whomgave evnlenee of being thoroughly devoted to the
and relieve the embarrassing situation. On being press- Lind and anxious to do his will. The friends here are
ed, however, for an answer as to why the vis& were tho~ oughly and fully united in heart and in action, and
refused the day before, he dechned to answer the Presi- stri:,mg to serve the Lord to his praise and glory. About
dent of the Somety m the presence of any one else, but one thousand attended the public meeting Sunday af-
agreed that ff others would withdraw from the room ternoon.
he would answer the questmn. His first excuse ~as that The Swedish people, like many others, are given to
he was fearful lest we might be Mormons; but when outdoor recreation on Sunday afternoon; and this kept
pressed for the real cause, he admitted that S~eden manya~ ay from the lmhhe meeting, doubtless, although
feared Bolshewsm and was trying to safeguard tins the hall was ~ell filled. Sou.thern Sweden, in the dis-
in every respect. Of course Sweden is not be blamed trmt of Mahno, is the most prosperous part of the
for this, and the inmdent ~s related as a further proof country, and therefore the public manifest the least
of the fearful con&tlonthat has taken hold of the rulers n~terest as compared with any other part of Sweden.
of the earth. These things are strengthening to the This is further proof of the wisdom of the Lord in
faith of the consecrated, because they are a clear ful- permitting the trouble on the earth, to put the hearts
fillment of the Lord’s words relating to the tnne of the of the people into the condition to receive the message
end. of the kingdom. "Man’s extremity is God’s opportunity."
"MILLIONS" FOR SCANDINAVIA Somepa~ts of the earth will need more trouble before
While in Scandinavia, contracts were let for the puh- they are ready to heed the Lord’s message; and the
lieatlon of "Harp of God" in the Dano-Norwegmn, Lord ~fil see that such things transpire as are needed,
Swe&shand Fmmshlanguages, and arrangements also and ~ill overrule them all to his glory and to the good
made for the pubheatlon of the "’h’Illhons" book in Es- of tho~.e wholove h~mand his cause.
peranto. A convention of the Esperantlsts is to be held At the conclusion of the Malmo meeting we took
in Helsingfors, Finland, in August, to ~hleh speakers ship for Denmark,a large number of the friends ha~,ing
of this tongue will come from every part of the world; congregated on the pier, and as far out as could be seen
and it ~as tllought well to have the me~sageof the hour they were wawngus good-bye. The same love and spirit
in that language for the purpose of g~vmga witness as should he expected is found amongst the dear breth-
during that eonvent~omSoon we hope that the message ren there; for all are one in Christ, and their love for
of the kingdom ~,tl be m every language where the every one else m Christ is true and sincere.
I T IS of utmost importance that all, ~ho expect to vantageous than the cerhfieate rate of a fare and one-
attend the Cedar Point Convenhoncarefully study half above mentioned.
and closely follow the instructions given below:
Ignore all m~,truchons g~en m former ~ssnes of TJ~E SPECIAL TRAINS
WAwcJ~ TownmThe lnstruehons in this Issue are based The "Bethel Speeml" will leave NewYork over the
upon latest mformahon. Baltunore & Ohio tracks from the Pennsylvania Statmn
at 7:50 am. (8:50 a.m., Dayhght Sawng’lhme), l~Ion-
RAILWAY SERVICE day, September 4; leave Phdadelphla (24th and Chest-
All railroads in the Um~edStates and Canada have nut Streets) 10 : 10 a.m. ; leave Baltimore 12 : 10 pm.
granted a rate of one and one-half fares for the round- arm, e Washington 1:30 p.m ; rest m Washington unhl
trip, tickets to be obtained upon certificates presented 8:00 p.m., and arrive at Sandusky, Ohio. about noon
at the time of purchase. These certificates are furmshed Tuesday, September 5. This ~fll enable the passengers
by the Somety from Brooklyn. It is deemed most ad- to spend half a day m Washington, resting or sight-
vantageous for classes to handle this matter throl~gh sect,g, ~ they maysee fit. The eonvenhonof the colored
the Director of their service department. The D~reetor brethren m session at Washington at that tmle will be
should canvass the class, ascertain the number who addressed by the President of the Society at 3 o’clock
anticipate going to the convenhon, and then ~ rite this Mondayafternoon, and he will then join the special
office, marking his envelope "Convention Committee", train for Sandusky.
giving the number who expect to attend; and ~e will Sleeping ears will be attached to the "Bethel Special"
send certificates to him for that purpose. Where the at Washington for the benefit of all those who desire
head of the house attends he maysign the eerhfieate and sleeping-ear aeeommodatmns.
insert the names of other members of the family who All friends journeying from points south of Wash-
will accompany him. One certificate will do for the ington, x~ho expect to join ttus train at Washington,
entire family. Whereone person travels alone one cer- should ha~e their tickets read from Washington by way
tificate is required. It is better to order more blank of the. Baltimore & Ohio Railroad to Sandusky.
certificates than actually needed, because at the last All persons traveling by this tram whodesire sleep-
momentsomebodyelse may wish to go. ing-ear accommodations from Washington to Sandusky
Whenthese certificates are received by the Director will please notify the Society’s office at Brooklynas soon
he will dehver them to the persons respeetrcely who as possible, and not less than five days before starting
require certificates and keep a record of such certificates the journey, in order that proper equipment may be
so dehvered and to whomdelivered, this record to in- procured from the railroad company. The rate for a
elude the serial letter and number marked on the left- lower berth from Washington to Sandusky is $6.38;
hand ln.~rgm. This record of certificates dehvered must and for an upper berth $5.10. Berths will accommodate
be safely kept by the Director who makes the record, two persons. The rate is the same, whether oeeupmdby
until called for by this office. one or two persons.
Tickets will be on sale at all railway stations begin- ALl persons, whodesire to join thzs train and whoex-
ning September 1 and until September 7, inclusive, for pect to travel, either by day-coach or sleeper should
the going trip. No tickets can be purchased on the notify the Society’s office at Brooklynnot less than five
certificate plan after the ;th. Whenpurchasing ticket days before the beginning of the journey, in order to
purchaser will present certificate to ticket agent and enable the committee to make necessary arrangements
buy a round-trip ticket. To protect oneself in ease of for rathvay equipment. This notme may be given by
a lost ticket it wilI be advantageous at the time of the Director or one appointed by the class for that
purchasing ticket for the purchaser to enter in a memo- purpose ; or where there are isolated frmnds, in&wdually.
randum book the number of the ticket bought and the Other special trains will be run from different parts
amountpaid for it. All tickets should read from start- of the United States and Canada. and we advise that
ing point to Sandusky, Ohio, which is the railway ter- the friends take up this matter w~th their local railway
minus for Cedar Point. representatives and arrange for the speeml trains and
As to isolated friends where there are no classes, each send the schedule and other informatmn to us as qmek-
one individually should write to this office for certificate ly as possible and we will try to put it into the next issue
or certificates needed. of THEWATCVr TOWER. For the information of friends
For information of friends in Los Angeles, San Fran- desiring to arrange for other special trains, we are ad-
cisco, Portland, Seattle, and other Pacific Coast points, vised that the railroad companieswill furnish a special
we advise that a committee be appointed to confer with train for 125 passengers or more. Local classes desir-
local railway officials with a vmwof obtaining special ing to make such arrangements should appoint a com-
summer excursion rages to Chicago or Sandusky and mittee to confer with local railway officials for the pur-
return, and it may be that such rates will be more ad- pose of arranging for any sl3ecial trains desired.
WATCH TOWER
AUTOMOBILES making assignments if you will state whether or not
Our Association will have exclusive possession of you can occupy a roomwith several others.
Cedar Point during the time of the convention; hence The assignment to rooms will be made by the Con-
it will be necessary for all persons travehng by automo- vention Committee and a card specifying your aSSl~a-
bile to go first to the Association’s headquarters at the merit will be mailed to you in ample tinm. Be sure to
dock at the foot of the mumstreet m Sandusky, where keep tlus card and bring it with you to the convention;
the boat starts for Cedar Point, and there obtain from and as soon as you arrive, prese~t the card at t the head-
the ones m charge the proper certJ(icate which will quarters of the Assocmhon at the dock m Sandusky.
entitle them to enter the grounds in an automobile. Upon presentation of this card you will receive m ex-
Suffiemnt space is provided at Cedar Point for the change therefor another card showing the amount you
aecommodahon of 400 ears m garage, at a rate of $2.00 have paid and the days yon expect to be there, whmhwill
each for the full time of eight days; and ample space be your idenhticatmn both for room and meals while
for free parking of ears. at the convention.
For convenience all will be required to state at the
ACCOMMODATION RESERVATIONS time of arriving howlong they expect to stay, and will
On Cedar Point proper are the Breakers Hotel, Cedars pay tc the Boeekling Companymoneycovering the tmle
~otel, dormitories, and a few cottages. After all space they expect to stay. If for any reason they are compelled
on the Point has been assig-ned, accommodationsare pro- to leave the eonvenhonbefore the time is expired that
vided m Sandusky for others who cannot be taken care has been paid for, the BoeeMmgCompanywill refund
of at Cedar Point. Those who have accommodations in the money for the unexpired term. Do not send any
Sandusky will be charged the same rate as those at the moneyin advance to this office or to the BoeckhngCom-
hotels at Cedar Point, but will be provided with free pany. All money must be pa~d to the Boeeldmg Com-
boat transportation to and from Cedar Point daily. pany at the Associahon’s headquarters m Sandusky on
All accommodationsare provided by theG. A. Boeckling arrival.
Company, whether at Cedar Point or Sandusky. There Rememberthat our Assoemtmndoes not take posses-
will be an advantage to those who take accommodations sion of the grounds until noon Tuesday, September 5,
in Sanduskyin this, that they will be less crowded and and that no one can occupy a room unhl the afternoon,
will have the privilege of a free boat ride morning and and that the first meal whmhwill be served will be
evening. supper the evening of September 5. Any one going m
Every one should bear in mind that accommodations advance of this tm~e will be reqmred to look after hzs
cannot be selected at this eonvention to suit one’s own own accommodations, as these rates do not begin until
convenience, but each must be content to take such as the hour above mentioned.
he gets. Everybody will be made comfortable, but we An Informahon Bureau will be provided at the As-
shouid bear in mind that we go to the convention to give sociation’s headquarters at the Sanduskydock to advise
a blessing as well as to receive one. To handle a crowd and direct any friends arriving before the above hour.
as large as is exTected at Cedar Point, it is necessary No one can occupy a room prior to noon on September
to handle ~t systematically; and therefore each one 5 and expect to hold that room thereafter. The Boeck-
should be glad to accept the accommodations assigned ling Companyhas contracted with the Assocmtmnto
to him or her. deliver possession of the entire property to us at noon
on September 5, to be assigned according to the as-
HOW TO PROCURE ACCOMMODATIONS
signments previously made out; hence the necessity of
As soon as possible after receipt of this issue of T~E adhering strictly to this rule.
W~tTC~Tower write the office at Brooldyn, marking
your envelope "Convenhon Committee," and state in RATES
your letter practically the following: Roomor sleeping accommodationsand three meal~ per
I expect to attend the Cedar Point Convenhonduring day will be provided at the flat rateof $~.00per per-
the cnt~re sessmn, or days, and will arrive son per day, payable in advance, two or more m a room.
I am roamed (or single), and speak the - This will work advantageously to those attending; for
language. I will be accompanied by my wife and - should one lose h,.s pocketbook he will still have his
Wecan occupy one double bed and a cot each /)lace to sleep and something fo eat and a heket to
for the oilier membersof the family. return.
If you are single, state sex, color and nahonahty. Fmends attending for only a part of the tune of
Information ~th reference to nationality or language the convenhon will be required to pay in advance only
spoken is necessary because the eonventmn will be at- for such time as they designate they intend to stay;
tended by many foreign brethren, and we desire to ac- and if at the end of that time they desire to prolong
commodate them together as much as posmble. their stay, further arrangements can be made on the
Someof the rooms are equipped for from four to ten same terms at the office of the Boeckling Company.
persons, all blothers or- all sisters. It will help us in Friends residing nearby who will attend the convention
WATCH TOWER
during the day and go to their homes at night can vice rendered such will receive their sleeping accom-
procure their noon and evening meals at 50e per meal. modations and meals free of charge. All brethren desir-
Do not come with the expectation of procuring your ing to avail themselves of this opportunity should write
m~n rooms and then eating at Cedar Point at the above th~s office as qmcklyas posmble. All persons contemplat-
rate; for tb> would be a violation of our agreement ing such service must report the first day of the con-
with the Boecldmg Company. ventlon at the In£ormatieu Bureau and be asmgned to
CAMPING PARTIES duty.
MUSIC
Some have required about camping nearby. There Those whoplay well on the violin, cornet, and other
are no (a>npmg grounds at Cedar Point. In Sandusky, orchestral instruments, who desire an opportunity of
ho,re~ or, the c’,,~y preTties campinggroundsfor a hmlted
eervme in this behalf, please come and bring your
nmnb~r of lo~mst automobile partms. Such camping instruments and report to the Chairman on arrival.
ground_- tire free, but are maintained solely for the con
venaenee of ureter, st campers The grounds are provided PURPOSE OF CONVENTION
~,lth all samulrv eonvemenees. For further reformation Let ns remember,clear brethren, that the purpose of
inquire .it the Information Bureau above mentioned. this convention is to encourage and strengthen the
FEEDING TIlE MULTITUDE fmends and to build each other up on our most holy
froth. ]’;very one should attend with a view of being
Ample provision has been made to feed w~th three
a blessing as well as to reemve a blessing. Remember-
good meals per day all whocome, up to 10,000 persons.
mgour privilege to present our petitions to the throne
All servme will be on the eafoterm plan. By this means
of heavenly grace, let all the deal’ friends everywhere
the hotel people are enabled to serve better food, a
unite m prayer to the Lord for his blessing upon the
greater variety, and greater quantity m much qmeker
eonvenhou,that it mayresult to the benefit of his people
hme: and it will not be necessary to stand in hne a
and to his own glory and praise.
long ~lnle to wa~t for meals. Information has already reached us that friends are
HALLS
coming from all parts of the UmtedStates and Canada,
Seven separate and &street halls or meeting-places and some from other foreign eountrms. Weare looking
are provided; and ff neees~_ary, as many meetmg~may forward to rids as the most blessed eonventmnyet held;
be nl progress at the .~,~me tram. Amplespeakers will for we are nearer the kingdom than ever before and
be prowded for all meetings. There x~l11 be no evenm~ the Lord’s children ahould be more thoroughly develop~d
service, but the evening ~lll be glxen over to rest and than at any time in the past. All of those who are
personal fellowslup. trusting m the preemus merit of our Lord and Savmr
SERVICE Jesus Christ x~dl be welcome. Let us eome, dear
As heretofore stated, arrangeme,~t~ have been made brethren, with a sincere desire and with the prayer that
with the Bocekhng Cowpany for a linuted number of the l,ord may bless our fellowship together and send us
brothers and sisters to serve m taking care of the rooms back to the field ~lth renewed energy and enthusiasm
and eahng department. Those who render this servme to be his faLthful and loyal ambassadors to bear the
will be reqmred to work l~ot to exceed six hours per message of reeonmhatmn to the world at tMs time of
day, and not at any time to ~nterfere with meetings as great stress. If we go vqth this sincere demre in our
spemfied in the program. In eonmderatmufor the ser- hearts ~ e shall receive the great blessing we deare.
foretold in tlm Law and were the result of a failure to great hardship upon the wives thus put away and upon the
keel) the Law; the proper course now was not to have children fihtls ahenated; but much the same course is pre-
rebmlt tile Temple, as they had done, but to go b’tek to sembed now by law against Mormons, and tile w~ves of
the Law and seek to keep ~t inviolate to the best o£ their l)lurlll marriaaes and of blgalnlsts, and m tile case of
abthty. adultery "lad the illeglmnate offspring thereof. The east-
He pointed also to the fact that they had made unlawful mg oft ot such wives and such children is considered the
umon~ w~th the trihes and natmnahtms surrounding them, proper thing toduy, indeed the only course to follow, how-
and that the only eoures remaining was to separate theln- ever sharp the sullmmg entmled upon tile victims.
seLes frmn all the heathen people. Tins mxolved Spl.,Cl,tl A les~on for spiritual l>z,telltes may be found hereto,
trouble and trial iu cases where Jews had married heatheu though not according to the letter of Ezra’s teaching or of
wives. Ezra’~ eourse wodld he roundly denounced today by the tSllW,iI l-row. The slmltual I~raelite is du’eeted by tile
the entire mvdJzed ~Sol’hl and would not be a proper course Capt,un ot ollr salvallon, thtotlgh the apostle Paul as the
for Chnatians; tor tile antit.~pe ~s not literal w~ves but divine mouthpmee, to he not unequally yoked together with
pagan religmns, to ~xhieh protessing Chnstmns by milhons unbelm~t,rs m marnaae, und to hnxe as hLtle to do as
are ~ edded. po%~ble v,~th worldhnl ,s and nothing xxlth its s_ptrit. Ne~er-
Under the tspleal law tile Jews did the proper thing at thelesa the ,,pirltual I,,r:tehte ]s enjoined that if the un-
the proper tune, m God’s estnnatmn. Ezra was the divine behe~ mg Jlt’%)~tnd or wile le.nl,tin and Jt be possible to live
instruInent in sharply separating between the Jews and together exln under trims elieumstanees she or he should
other peoples. Tills faithful spirit has persisted amongst do it; lint if the mgmlle~mg one depart, the behewng one
the Jews exer since; and tile elleet has been ~hat tile Lord is to let hml or her depart, considering it to be of tile
designed--the keeping of that nation and people eompara- Lord’s prm ulenee that the Istaehte indeed should be freed
tixely separate and distinct from all others. It wrought from a vex-ttious alliance, though not free to remarry.
BROTIIER B. M. RICE
BROTHER J. A. BOHNET Malcelhm, Mlch ...... Aug 6 Halt, hhch ................ Aug 14 15
~attle Creek, Mlch ......... " 7 Mamstee, Mlch __ Aug 1~,
~i OU X (’]t~ ’ ] 0 ~’ n ...... Aug ] Utica, 8 Dak................. Aug. 10 0~tc~o, .Mlch 8 Tlaverse C~ty, ]~hch. Aug 17 1,
Vermihon, 8 Dak .......... ’’ 2 ]Mitchell S Dak ........... " 13 Gl.,nd Rnl,td% Mlci~-::: "" " 9 Ke~adln, l~Itch ........ AIlg P0
Yanktoa, S Dal ............ " 3 Hartford S Dak ............. " 14 S" ’lt,q. ~lwh ........... " 10 Mldlqnd,Mich ............... " 2[
Irene, 8 Dak ....... Au. ~ 5.6 Ja. pcl, Mmu............... " ]5 ]~Iu~kegon, 5hcb ...... Aug. 12. 13 Ilay City, 5hch ............ " ’2;
Chancellor, S Dak . _Au~ 7, 8 Wlnte, S Dak ................. " 16
Parker, S Dak ............. Aug. 9 Hulon, S Dak .............. " 18
BROTHER V. C. RICE
ChalltOn, ]o~a .......... Aug 8 Little Smux, Iowa .......... Aug ]5
Ih~’dOal,, lo~a ....... " 9 Walt L,ll~e Iowa .......... " 1(,
BROTHER E. F. CRIST Glenx~e..(I. Jo~a __ i0 Gaha, Iox~a ................ ]7
Nebla~k,t City, Neb ....... " Ii SIO[1XClI3, IO%VR ........... " ]q
Tangier, N. S ................. Aug 2 S~dne~ N S ........... An~: 13 Omdha,Nell ............. " Ig Alton, ]0\ca .............. " 20
Plctou, N. S ............ " 4 Gluer RaS, N. 8 ...... Au~ 13,14 ]~0gatl,Iov, a .................. " 14 Superto*, Iowa ....... Aug 21, 22
Charlottetown. P E. I Aug G, 7 ~Xhttne:y Pro1, N. S - .\llg ]5
Stellarton, N S .... Aug 9 Sxdnev, N S .... A.g T(I,I?
Port 1-Iamkesbury, N S. " 10 Trmo, N S ........... " 1S, 20 BROTIIER R. L. ROBIE
North Sydney, N. S ..... " 11 Quebec,Que................ : _Aug 22
Den’,el, Co]o .......... ~-ll~ 2 (he,It 1,’all~, Mout.... Aug. 1S, 20
Chc3eune Who ....... Atl~ ~, b Taii,ptco, Moot............. Aug.2’1
C,t-I)cI, \V~o .... - ........ " % 9 ]"1 old, .~lollt .............. " 2,{
J3’NtCMoot .......... " 11, 13 Re~ctxe, 51,rot ......... Aug 24, 25
BROTHER A. J. ESHLEMAN .Mts.oula, Mont........ " ]4 15 0t’Alool, 3hint .......... " 26727
Mt LookoRt, W. Va ..... Aug 1 Patmck, K) ............. Aug 10, 11 ]’ablo, Mont............ " 36, 17 Dole, N DAk................. Aug 29
Shaw~er, W Va ........ " 3,4 P,untsvdle, KV............ Aug. 13
Huntington, W. Va ....... Aug 6 t’ott~mouth, O1.o ............ " 14
Ironton, Oluo, . ............. " 7 Chllhcothe, Ohm ............ " 15 BROTHER O. L. SULLIVAN
Ashland,K.y ..................... " 8 Nelsonville, Ohio ............ " 16
I,hench lack, 1rid .......... Aug 7 Otlcans. ]nd ................. ADg 15
I~oonx file, Ind ............ " 8 MJt,’llell, lnd ............... " 16
]~2~a uq~ lllo. Ind ............. " 9 SMem Iml ............. " 17
BROTHER M. L. HERR Wn~hulg~on,Iad ........... " 11 Jeffol¢omlllo, ind ....... " 1S
Montgoalel3, Iad ............. " 13 De]’auw, lnd ................ " :19
Defiance, Ohm............ &ug. 2 Bellevue, Ohio................ Aug 8 Spall,sv]lle, Ind ............ " 14 Ne,,x Albdl~3,lnd ............. " 20
Fostorla, Ohio................ " 3 Sandusky, Ohio ........... " 9
Fmdlay, Ohio .................. ’’ 4 Daaburx, 0I]~ O ............... ’’ l0
~lffin. Ohio.................. " 6 Vemmlton.Ohio.............. " ll BROTHER V¢. J. q HORN
Fremont, Ohio ............... " 7 Ebrm,011,o, _ ................... " 13 Slnm,~dale, Ark ............ Aug ,9 Do~et’, Atl ......... Aug 16
MoRett.310 ..................... " l0 L~ttle Rock, Alk . -.Aug 17,20
Jophn. Mo....................... " 11 Redt~el(l, Atk ... Atlt; 1S
Noel, Mo...................... " 12 Fot~e~t C~ty, Ark ......... ’ 21
BROTHER W. M. HERSEE SMome, Ark.................... " 13 Helena, Ark ................ " ’22
Lanmr, Ark.............. Aug 14, 15 Memphis,Term .............. " 23
Ottawa, Out .............. Aug. 9, 10 Gananoque, Ont ............ Aug 21
Montreal, Que .......... Aug. 11, 13 Knl~slon, Out .......... Aug 22, 23
Northfield Sta, 0nt ......... Aug. 14 Bello~ llle, Ollt .......... kug. 24
Stmhng, Ont ............. Aug. 26.27 BROTHER T. H. THORNTON
Iroquol%Out ................ " 16
Prescott, Ont ............... " 18 Franl, tord, Oat ............ Aug 28 Ke3svflle, ¥~1 ...... Aug. 10, 11 Petersburg, Va .............. Aug 18
Brockvflle, Out ............. " 20 Tlenton, Ont ................ " 29 North l~mporla, Va ........ Aug. 13 O1chtd, Yh ................... " 19
Suffolk, Va .................. " 14 CImrlottsvllle, Va ......... " 20
Norfolk,Va.................... " 15 II, a~lc, Va...................... " 22
Newport News, Va ....... " 16 Chiton Forge, Va ........... " 23
BROTHER H. HOWLETT IhchmoDd,Va................. " 17 Winchester, Va ......... Aug. 2L 25
Whitney Pier, N. S .... Aug. 9, 10 St. John, N B ......... Aug. 18, 20
Pictou,N. S ................. " 11 Evandale, N. B ....... " 21, 22 BROTHER J. B. WILLIAMS
Scotsburn,N. S ........... " 12 Fredetlcton, N. B ........... Aug 23
Pictou, N. S .... " 13 Mtlville, N. B ................ " 24 Moose flaw, Sask ....... Aug 3. 4 Sa~katoon, Sask ............ Aug. :13
Charlottetown, P.E.I. " 15, 16 Woodstock,N. B ............. " 25 Ileuma, Sask ................ Aug. 6 Cado~an,Alta ................ " 15
Amherst,N. S ................ Aug. 17 Montreal, Que .............. " 27 Earl Gra.~, Sask .......... Aug 7, 8 Hntchsty, Alta ............... " 17
~nulc, Snsk..................... Aug. 9 Sedgwlck, Alta .........." 18
Viscount, Sa~k .......... Aug. 10, 11 Camose,Alta ................ " 20
BROTHER S. MORTON
BROTHER W. M. WISDOM
Urichsviile, Ohio .......... Aug. 8 Wooster,Ohio.................. Aug, 14
Tippecanoe, Ohio ........ " 9 Coshocton,Olno .............. " 15 l~Iadlson, Wm.................. Aug. 1 Hegewmch, Ill ............... Aug. 7
New Philadelphia, Ohio " 10 Dresden, 01no ................ " 16 Freeport, II1 ................. " 2 Hammond,Ind .............. " 8
Dover,Ohio................... " 11 Newark,Ohm................. " 17 Ashton,Ill .................... " 3 M~clngan City, Ind ........ " 9
Bowdfl, Olno................. " 12 Columbus, Ohio ........... " 18 Aurora, 111 .................... " 4 LaPorte, lnd ................... " 10
Canton,OIno.................... " 13 Cincinnati, Ohio ........... " 20 Chicago, Ill .................. " 6 Plymouth,Ind ................. " 11
and the
I.B.’3’A BEREAN
BIBLESTUDIES
October 4:
hfe"---John 11 25. ByMeansof "The Plan of the Ages"
October 11 : C~R~ST THE RANSOM.""Christ Jesus . . . gave him-
self a ran~om for all."--I Timothy 2:5, 6. Chapter IX" ]Ransom and Restitution
October 18 : C~RIST THE i%]ED1ATOR:"There is . . one medmtor weekof Oct. 1 ............ Q. 36-42 Weekof Oct 15 ............ Q. 4-10
between God and men, the man Chmst Jesus."-- Weekof Oct 8 ........... Q. 43-3 Week of Oct 22 ........ Q. 11-17
LL
I Timothy 2 .5 Weekof Oct. 29 ........ Q. 18-25
October 25: CHRIST MY ADVOCATE". "We have an advocate xxttb
the Father, Jesus Christ the R~ghteous."--i Jobn Question bookson "TheDivinePlan"15c postpaid
2:1.
VoL XLIII SEMI-MONTHLY NO ]6
I
~(~~ ©~m~TS- -.~
~~ ~ 4~ ~_~...
Upon the ealLh dl~l,~ el Illll*lllb ~l[h perplexity, the sea and the waves (the test.less, dl~eoniented) roaring’, men’s hearts falllog them for fear and for looking to the
things coming upon tile earth (society); for ¢h~ powers of the heavens (ecclesia~lelsm~ ~nall be shaken.... When yc see these things begin to come to ~tstb
then know that the Kingdom of God l~ at hand. Look up, lift up gout heads, re,oleo, for your redemption dmweth nigh--Matt. 24:83; Mark 13 29. Luke 21"~5-3L
THIS JOURNALAND ITS SACREDMISSION
T HIS ~ournal is one of the prime factors
presented
or instruments in the system of Bible instruction,
in all parts of the civlhzed world by the ~,VATCH TOWERBIBLE & TRACTSOCIETY, chartered
or "Seminary Extension", now be|n~
A.D. 1884, "For the Pro-
motion of Chrtstlau Knouledge". It not only serves as a class room where Bible students may meet in the study of the divine Word but
also as u channel of comlnun]catlou through which they may be reached ~lth announcements of the Society’s covvenbons and of the
comlngof its tlavehngrepresentatlves, st}led"Pilgrims", and refreshed~ith reportsof its conventions.
Our "BereanLe,sons" are topical rehearsalsor reelersof our Society’spubhshedSTUDIES m0ut entertaininglyarranged,and very
helpfulto all ~Iio~xouldnlemtthe onlyhonorarydegree"~hlchthe Societyaccords,viz.,Vet bt Dei Minister(V. D. M ), whlchtranslated
into lhIgllsh is M~m$ter of God’* iVord. Our treatmentof the InternationalSunday School Lessons is specmlly for the older Btblo
studentsand teachers.By some this featureis consideredindispensable.
Thls journal stands firmly for the defenseof the only true foundationof the Christian’shope now being so generallyrepudiated
--redelnptmnthroughthe preciousblood of "the man Chmst Jesus, who gave h~mselfa ransom [a eorreupondlng price, a substitute]for
all". (1 Peter 1.19 ; 1 Timothy 2 G) Buildingup on tins sure foundationthe gold, silver and preciousstones (1 Corinthians3 :
15 ; 2 Peter 1: 5-11) of the Word of God, its furthermlssion is to "make all see what is the fellowshlpof the mystery whlch...has
been lad In God .... to the intent that now might be made known by the church the manifold wmdom of God"--"whlchin other ages
~as not made known unto the sons of men as it is now revealed".---Ephesmns 3 : 5-9, 10.
It stands free from all parties,sects and creeds of men, while it seeks more and more to bring its every utteranceinto fullest
subjectionto the ~ill of God iu Chrlst,as expressedin the holy Scriptures.It is thus free to declare boldly ~hatsoeverthe Lord
hath spoken--according to the divine wisdomgrantedunto us to understandhis utterances.Its attitudeis not dogmatic,but confident;
for we knowwhereofwe aflirxn,treadingwlth implicitfaith uponthe sure promisesof God.It is heldas a trust,to be used onlyin hls
set,ice; hence our demslons relaOve to ~hat may and what may Rot appear m its columns mus~ be accordingto our judgment of hi~
good pleasme, the teaching of hlq VCord,for the nphuild~ngof hm people In grace and knowledge.And ~e not only iuwte but urge ou~
readersto prove all its utterancesby the infallible\Vord to which referen(eis constantlymade to facihtatesuch testing.
TO US THE SCRIPTURES CLEARLY TEACH
That the church is "the temple of the living God", peculiarly "his workmanship" ; that its construction has been in progress throughout
the gospel age--ever since Christ became the world’s Redeemer and the Chief Corner Stone of his temple, through which, uhen
fimshed, God’s blessing shall come "to all people", and they find access to him.--1 Corinthians 3 : 16, 17 ; Epheslaus 2 : 20-22 ;
Genesis28 : 14 ; Galatlans 3 : 29.
That ineantilnethe chiseling,shaping,and polishingof consecratedbelieversin Christ’satonementfor sin, progresses;and when the
last of these"iivlngstones","electand precious,"shallhave been made read}, the great .Ma~lerWorkmanwlll bring all together
in the first resurrection; and tbe templeshall be filledwith his glory,and be the meetlngplace betweenGod and men throughout
the ]~Iilleonium.--Revelation 15 : 5-8.
That the basis of hope, for the churchand the world,lies in the fact that "JesusChrist,by the graceof God, la~ted death for evcry
man," "a ransom for all," and will be "the true light which ]lghte th every ma~* that eometh ~nto the world", "in duo tlme".~
tIebrews 2 : 9 ; John 1 : 9 ; 1 Timothy 2 : 5, 6.
~rhat the hope of the church is that she may be like her Lord, "see him as lie is," be "partakers of the divine nature’,’ and share his
glory as his joint-heir.--1 John 3.2; John 17:24; Romans 8:17; 2 Peter 1:4.
That the present mid,ion of the church is the perfecting of the saints for the future work of ~ervxce: to develop in herself every
grace ; to be God’s witness to the world ; and to prepare to be kings and priests in the next age.--Epheslans 4 : 12 ; Matthew 24"-
14; Revelation 1: 6; 20:6.
’thai the hope for the world lies in the blessings of knowledge and opportumty to be brought to all by Chrmt’s Millennml kingdom, fhO
restitutmn of all that was lost in Adam, to all the wilhng and obedient, at the hands of their Redeemer and hm glorified church~
when all the wllfully wicked will be destroyed.--Acts 3 : 19-23 ; Isaiah 35.
~U[~LA S H~D SY
REPORT OF CONVENTION
WATCFITOWER.
BI BEEb- TRACTSOClET,,V
18 CONCORD
STREET
a i~ BROOKLYN,
~I V. U.S-A Friends everywhere are looking forward with great
FO~EIO~ OFFICES : Br{tish: 34 Craven Terrace, Lancaster Gate, expectancy to the Cedar Point Convention. Having in nlmd
London W. 2; Canadtan: 270 Dundas St, W., Toronto, Outamo; the blessings enjoyed at the former convention there, ~e
Australasian" 495 Collins St, Melbourne, Australia; South AJri-
van: 123 Plain St, Cape Toun, South Africa. are expecting even greater blessings at this one Ti~ere x~ Ill
PLEASE ADDRESS THE SOCIETY IN EVERY CASE.
be many of the dear brethren throughout the world who
YEARLYSUBSCRIPTION PRICE: UNITED STATES, $1 00 , CANADAAND will have no opportunity of attending this cimvention We
},{ISCELLANEOUS FOREIGN, $1 50 , GREAT BRITAIN, AU~TR’,LASIA, are sure that their prayers will daily ascend in behalf of
AND SOUTFI AFRICA~ Ss American remlttance~ ~hould be made
by Express or Postal Money Order% or by Bank Draft Canadian, those who do go. We feel that those at holne will be pleased
British, South African, and Australasian remittanceq ~hould be to have some detailed report of what transpH’es at tile
made to branch offices only. Remittances froln scattered foreign
territory may be made to the Brooklyn office, but by International convention, that they may enter moie fully into the spirit
Postal Money Ordms only. of it. This ~s to adwse that THE WATCII ~O\VER will make
(Foreign translations o~ th{~ ]o,trna! appear ~n several languages) such a report; and it is our pl’ebent intention to issue a
Editorial Committee: This journal is pnblithed under the supervlulon special edition immediately followiug the conventmn, l)roha-
of an editorial comunttee, at least lhtee of ~hom have read and bly the issue of November 1, glwng a report of tlm conven-
approved as truth each and every article appealing in these columns.
The names of the editorial colnmlttee are: J. F RUTV[ERFORD, tion. This will be free, of courue, to the regular subscribers.
W. E. VANAMBURGI-~, J IIl’Xl FICt. (]. 1:]" FIqIKER, ~]. W. BRENISE~*. Extra copras may be ordered at ten cents each, provided the
Termsfo f/ze J~ord’sPoor: .a.il B~le studentswhoby reasonof old age or other in- order is sent in by September 15.
fir.~u~yor adversity, aro unableto payfor thin ~ournal:will be suppliedfree if they s~nd
a postal card each ~*.ay stating thmr case and req, mstmgsuch pro~n~ton.Wesro not
o~ty willing, but aaxmus,that all suchhe on our hst continually andm to~chwith the
]Berean studies.
~° " vie donot, as a r~le, send e cardof aeknowlodgment
~of[ce tO ~Hb~ib foe ~e@
a rene~I o~
~’~ofor a newsubscrt tmn. Receiptandeat.IT of renewal Ino~at~
~thln a month
bychange Inexp]mt]on date,
ass~own eta
wraoper label. CONVENTION NOTICE
~’--E~tterad
~ ~eeondCla~~at2erat ~rookI~n.N.Y.. ~o~to~oo~nd~rtheAct of MareA $rd. 1870.~
The Committee is ral)idly a.~sigming hotel accommodations
for the Cedar Point Con~entmn in the order in which ap-
I.B.S’A.
BERAN BIBLE 11
STUDIES plications are received. If you have been assigmed accommo-
EUROPEAN TOUR--PART IV
SERVICE ESSENTIAL
"Whosoever wi~ be chief among you, let him be your servant; even as the Son of man came not to be ~in~s-
tered unto, but to mb~ister, and to give his life a ransom for many." Matthew20: 27, 28.
T HE September 1, 1921, issue of T~]~ WATCH time and an elder to give a thirty-minute discourse at
Tow~a, page 265, dealt with the question of the the same meeting ?
duties of elders and deacons. Someof the dear Such a course would seem unscriptural. If the dea-
friends, however, seem to m~sunderstand this and ask cons arc qualified to instruct the class mspiritual mat-
for further exprossmnon the question. ters then the class should reeogmzethis fact by elect-
A deacon of the class is requested by the class to give ing them as elders and remove all questmn. If not
a &seourse and he asks whether or not tie should re- qualified then of course the class wouldnot expect them
spond, since he is not an elder. Our reply would be to assume these duhes. Some classes make the great
that he nnght be entn’ely quahfied to g~ve a discourse mtstake of thinking they must elect as ehlers only those
as an eider, but m order that the Scmptural rule be who have been long in the serwee and have had much
obser,ed, we suggest that he say kindly to the class: experience. It is quite often true that some younger
"I should be very pleased to serve, but smee the Serip- brother possesses the Scriptural quahfieattons and is
tm’es designate the elders as the ones whoare to teach, better equipped for teaching than some of the older
it would be more consistent first to select me as an ones. Difficult problems could often be solved by elect-
eider, or that at least I be elected as an elder for a short ing the quahfied ones and let them do the service as
period of t~me, during which I might give discourses; elders and elect the others as deacons and let them do
but as long as I hold the office of deacon it would seem the service as deacons. The Apostle admonishesthat all
inconmstent to give a &scourse before the eeclesm." things should be done decently and in order. Order is
Where the ecclesia has one Sundaymeeting especially heaven’s first law. Since the divine order is set forth
for the instruction of the consecrated only an hour of in the Scriptures, viz., that the elders are made the
which is devoted to that meeting would it be proper for spn~tual overseers of the church the eiders must be
three deacons to fake up each ten minutes or half of the qualified to t,aeh. Then the elders should be requested
to do this and should do it; whereas the deacons would intervals, those who see that this is not Scriptural
perform the service appointed for them by the Scrip- should calmly yet firmly state that they beheve th~s is
tures. Such a procedure being the Scriptural one would unscriptural and out of order, and leave ~t at that. Do
be tile right one, of course, and wouldremoveall cause not be eontentmns. If the majority resist on taking
for dlsagl’eement, ttowe~er, we should not qmbbleabout an unscmptural course, the Lord wall m due £nne reveal
techmcahtles, nor should we be too cmhcal; yet we all fins wrongful course to them. It may rest~lt m some
should want to ~ollow as nearly as possible the d~vinely severe trml, but the Lord will take tare of his people
prescribed order, that we m~ghtbe pleasing to our heav- in h~s own good way. Rememberthe admomtmnof the
enly Father and the Lord Jesns. apostle Paul, to dwell together in peace, and holiness,
In this connectmnwe ha~ e been asked, Is it not true without which no manshall see the Lord.--lIeb. 12 : 14.
that the Somety sends brethren to serve and give &s- ]f an eider whosees that the course of the Glass is
courses to eeclesms, which brethren are nmther eiders unscriptural ~s called upon to address the class, as one
nor deacons? Such ~s not the case at all. On the con- of the overseers of the class he should take occasion to
trary, every one that is sent out as a Ihlgrim by the tell them plainly that they are takm~ an unsc~Jptalral
Sometyis ex-officm chief of the classes he serves. Broth- course, and with firmness. )el cahnly and m love, ad-
m Russell ah~ays held the view that the Somcty’s send- vise against such a com’se. He should net rcGlse to
ing out of a person to preach the gospel made hnn an serve, but keep on trying to help the erring o,-cs by
elder the same as ff elected by some special ecclesia. teaching t]~em the Wordof the Lord in the splat of
Fm this reason those ~ho are sent out by the Somcty to love.
give discourses to the classes have the Scriptural quali- The qnestmn may be asked then, I{ow ~s a class to
ficatmns. But huthcrmore, the brethren who are sent knowwhether or not the younger brethren are qnabfied
out from the Bethel Hometo teach, and who are mere- to be elders? Tlns can be determined by g~vlng the
bers of that Homeare the &fly elected elders of the deacons an opportumty to lead a Bercan class at braes
NewYork Congregation. At times deacons are assigned as a subshtute for an cldm. If they are apt to teach
to lead a Berean study merely as a substitute for an and have the other Scriptural quahfieatlons, then they
elder who cannot be present. No deacon has ever yet should be elected as eldm-s and given a hml at *peal<-
given a discourse to the NewYork or Brooklyn Con- n~g. If they do nell, give tl>m further oppoJtumty.
gregation. In Brother Russell’s time he designated only If they show they are unable to speak, then let the
certain of the elders that should be permitted to speak class hmlt the speaking elders to certain ones. Some
before that congregation; and since the affairs of the brethren are fully quahfied to be ehlers and to lead
church have been in the hands of the executive com- Berean lessons and yet are not able to g~ve an address.
mittee, this committee being clothed with authority so It does not necessarily follow that every elder must be
to do has designated a certain nnmber of the elders a public speaker. But public speakers should he elders.
who are to speak before the congregation, and none
others. It will therefore be seen that the pohcy followed Some way shmfld be found to have every quabfied
by the Society where its headquarters are situa’ted hmits brother in the GlaSS active in the serwee. If he has
the discoursing to certain elders whoare understood to the qnalificahons of an elder, elect lure to that place,
be better qualified for this purpose. even
T though there are many elders m the Glass. The
Suppose an ecclesia should insist on ignoring the can take their tm’n in service. Elect those with less
Scriptural direction and still have deacons to address qualifications as deacons and let them perform their
the ecclesia. What shmfld be the athtude of tl~e other service. Aboveall, let love prevail, and everything be
membersof the ecclesia? Our thought is that in such a done in the spirit of Christ. that the peace of Christ
case, where a majority of the ecclesia votes that it maydwell in every healt richly and each one may grow
will have the deacons to address the class at regular in the image and hkeness of our Lord and l~’[aster.
INTERESTING QUESTIONS
DEACONS ADDRESSING MEETINGS to the elders : "The holy spuqt hath madeyon overseers"
Question: At a tmle ~hen the Lord’s people are of the church, and one of the qualificahons of an elder
engaged in giving a general witness throughout the is that he must be apt to teach. The presumption here
land on a day certain and a class arranges for a number is, of course, that he must be apt to teach the conse-
of public meetings, and there are not sufficient elders crated. Hencethe teaching of the consecrated as a gen-
to serve those p~fl~he meetings m giving puhhe address- eral rule should be done by the elders; although a dea-
es, would it be proper for the class to a~,~gn a deacon con may be substituted for a Berean study when an
to address such public meeting, assuming, of course, that eider is not available.
lae has the abihty to deliver a &scourse? A public di’scourse is not teaching the ecclesia, but
Answer: Have in mind that the apostle Paul .-aid it ~s a proclamation of the divine plan for the enlight-
AucusT 15, 1922
WATCH TOWER 249
ment of those who have a desire to know something elders. A clear distinction should be made between the
about God’s great arrangement. We answer the ques- teaching of the consecrated and the g~ving of a publio
tion, then, m the affirmable, that it is entnely proper ad(h’ess to those whoare unconsecrated. As soon as
for an ecclesia to assign a deacon to address such pnbhc brother shows that he has the quahlications for elder,
meetings when there are not a suffiment number of then it wouldbe entirely proper to elect him to that po-
elders to ,~erve such pubhc meetings. Where a deacon slhon. Let no one fear that there will be too manyser-
has the quahficatiou to address the public he should be vants of the Lord m the field. Truly now great is the
encouraged to do so; and ff he proves that he has the wink to be done and few are the laborers. Let us there-
ahfllty to cleazly and orderly present the truth, this fore play that the Lord will send more laborers into the
maybe a good reason to, a(h’anee tnm to the position of field, and as ~e pray, watch for OlOportumties to co-
elder m the church. The apostle Paul says: "If a man operate with hun.
desn’eth the office of a lns]mp, he demretha goodwork".
(1 Tmmihv3 : 1 )This must refer to one whohas not yet DEACONS AS TREASURERS
been elected to the office of bishop or eider. If a brother Question: Would~t be proper for the office of trea-
who ~s a deacon has the desire to ser~c, he should be surer or secretmy {o be filled by a deacon in tile class
encouraged by the class to serve; and we know of no x~here there are a numberof elders ?
bcttm ~ a~ to encourage than to give him an opportumty Answer: Such is unto’ely proper and ~ithin the
to addlcss a pubhc meeting on an occasion such as above Scriptural duhes of a deacon. The secretary of the
mentmned,prm Jded, of course, that he manifests some elders or the ecclesia merely records the business trans-
ability mtins behalf. athens; whereas the treasurer keeps the books and ac-
Let this always be the rule amongst the Lord’s peo- counts of the ecelesm and is custodmn of its hmds.
ple, to encore’age the brethren to serwee and give them Nmther of these offices requires the qualifieatim~s of
an opportunity to develop. But whenthey are given an elder, and it is often better not to burden the elders
servme to teach the consecrated, then the Lord’s way v~th such dutms where there are qualified deacons to
should be followed and they should be first elected as do them.
reeolded m the book called by his name ~s th,it of a USlntl eustoul, he Is 1)ermitted to serve ill tile presence of
strong man dolermmed m his was% who ~ow.ht the wel- the queen, ns chapter 2 verse 6 shows. "Scest thou n man
fare of Iqr,~el. YIis recm’d sho~s tlmt he wa~ true to his (hligent in hm business? he shall stand before kings" (Pro-
name he bolh needed .rod reemved, as he also ga~e, tile veths 22:29), was surely true in Nehemiah’s ease It was
eomlort of Jehovah. And 11o niau can he fully satisfied such a man that God eho~e for the partmuhtr need he had
apart f~,)m God God’s servant~ have always realized tlus, at that time God ehoo~es those who have proved them-
and have sea-.hi and del)onded upon hlln Each has known selves to be of an emnest, active disposltmn; idlers and
that hinderer strong he may have appeared in the eyes of self-seekers he does not choose for serwee, but he does
lus felh)ws, or even for a time ha~e felt strong in himself, make use of them as they oll’er themselves to lmn. These,
he has alunas found his need of the comfort of Ilia God. houever, sooner or later find his service too ~rksome and
Soon the hunmn fnmil5 will discover tl~e same truth; will leqve it.
find its need tutfilled m its benefietent Creator Then it Nehemmh was comfortable enough in Persia, but he
will dl~eoxer his gracious pl’O’~l,-.tou for it. and will find longed for the prosperity of Jerusalem and for the welfare
eteim/l sat~sfaetnm in the Colnfort of his love. of Ins peol)le, l:[earing of tile desolations of Jerusq!erl he
was thrown rote sqdness. The mty walls were broken down,
A FAITItFUL MAN and his people ~xe.re in great affliction and reproach. The
Nehen]mh w’is a n]an ot quick percel)tlon and quick reforms under Ezra had had some effect on the people,
action. For him to see a need was to seize the first op- hut there w’is a lack of security, and the desolated ap-
portunity to fill ~t. Nevertheless he was of a singularly pearance of tile city had a depressing effect on the people.
dependent disposition "Think of me, my God, for good." As Neimmlnh heard of this he was strongly affected. He
is his repeated prayer. This cry is not of one who is sat dean, he wept, he mourned, lie fasted, he cried to the
filled w~tl~ self-assur-mee, lint of one who, having served Lord. It was no passing feeling of sorrow w1Heh touched
faithfully, yet feels los need and cries for sympathy lVe him; he was moved m h~s heart, and in his distress and
know little of Neimnnah’s family. He amy have belonged solitude he drew near to God. It is here that our Golden
to the royal family of Judah, as some have suggested; Text applies: "Tim supplication of a righteous man availeth
but it is by Ins personality and ability that tie is brought much in its working."--James 5: 16.
into prom,nence. That he was a faithful servant to the All of God’s people who figure in prominence haxe been
,rh WATCH TOWER BROOKLYN,
N. Y.
men of prayer. This does not mean that they spent a great with Nehemiah’s desire to serve, yet kept him waiting from
length of tram in rather silent or audible prayer to God; three to four months, as is clear from the account. On a
but it does mean that the life was lived in a prayerful certain daj, perhaps a day when his desire was strong upon
attitude, and that they called upon God in every time of him, and feehng the need of Jerusalem keenly, he showed
need. ~hanksgtvnlg is airways in order; indeed, it is es- his mental suffering in his face. The king noticed immedi-
sential to spuitual life, and it ~s m that atmosphere that ately, and asked lure the reason. Nehelniah was sore afraid;
requests are best made known to God. But what requests for no courtier or servant must be sad m the king% presence.
should be made9 I{especting anything and e~erything which He tells why lie is sad: The city, the place of his fathers’
passes through our life? All prayer should be for the sepulchres, is waste; and its gates are consmued with fire.
furtherance of God’s interests and of our instructions re- Evidently iNehelnlah manifested a demre to inake a request
garding his will for us. Our life is covenanted to lure, our of the king; for the king says: "For what dost thou make
powers are his, all we have is his; and our privilege of request?" On tins the man of pra:er vnmedlately lifts up
prayer is from him, and, like our life, is given for the end Ins heart to God, exidently exl)eeting the opportune nmment
tie has in view. The sons of God, then, must pray for those has come, nl~d that God will grant his Iu’ayer. There is
things which help God’s kingdom and glory. no questron with lure as to lapse of time in healing and
ans~el’mg pra3er. The l;lng waits, he needs to answer iln-
NEHEMIAIt’S PRAYER mediately, and lie expects God wall hear and answer as
Tim Golden Text is connected with tile fervent prayer quickly as his need demands. He tells the king lris desire.
of Ehjah, a pruyer whieh sought the good of Israel. Per- The king i.> gracious, inqmre.s how long Nehemiah pro-
sonal l)rajer ought to be guided by the same desire. This pose~ to be nuns, and is pleased to send him. Nehemiah
is pra3mg ~,th the word of Christ in us--his teaching; reemved more than he e, pected; for letters to the varmus
and this is the prayer which is answered. Our Lord gave governors en route and ill the land of Israel were given
us ansi the inst~uetion ~e need as to how to pray when he to lmn by the kln<, in wluch the governors uere mstrueted
stud: "After this alanner pray ye" There should be ac- to gl~e hlnl tile neeec>,lry help, nnd to let lure have freedom
knoxxledgement of God and of ln> glory; of our dmly need-- for the nmterials that he should need. Further, eapt.uns
"Give us this day our dally bread," and for his forbearance of the "trmy and horsemen ,vele ~ent with lnm The good
--"Forgixe us our trespasses as we forgive those who hand of the Lord wa> upon hun.--Nehennah 2: 18.
trespass against us."
All prayer should acknowledge God, his glory, and our A PRAYER PLEASING TO GOD
need of eonung to hini m his own appmnted way, and with As hefore stated, it had pleased God to have Nehemiah
a contrite spirit. And all prayms should be for the further- pray lor some tune, prob-lbly neally fern’ months, before
anee ot God’s interests, exeu though ~t may be that there the e~entful day e,lme. Prolmhly God wanted to test and
is a personal interest torched m the matter prayed for. develop Ills faith God would know his lllHn and that Nehe-
God ~s always pleased when Ins prmse is sought, and lie miah uould be strengthened and helped by constancy in
is as truly pleased when there is a desue to seek the good wamng; and prohably God knew that tile tram of Nehemiah’s
of his people. But the praJers of the Old Testament are arrival in Jerusalem would be more plopmous for him than
also models by ~hieh tile saints may guide themselves in if lie had been permitted to go earlier
prayer acceptably to God. Thin e ",x a,~ also another reason. This In’ayer of Nehemiah’s
Nehemiah’s prayer is not so full as some Old Test,anent and tile u oi’k lie was to do ~ere in God’s 1)hm, as Brother
prayers, hut it is a model in brexity. (1) He reminds God P~lissell has shown us The eonmmnd of King Artaxerxes
of h~s glory, and of what lie has said of hhuself. He was to restore and rebuild Jerusalem had a place in God’s scheme
the God of heaven that "keepeth covenant x~lth them that of prophecy. It was the beginning of the "300 days of
love him." (2) He makes a confession of sin, (a/ of Daniel 8 14; it was also tile beginning of the "seventy
sins of Israel, (b) of his own and those of Ins father’s ~ eeks" real ked off respeclmg Israel and Jerusalem (D.miel
house If the children of Isniel are in all]ictmn, both he 9: 24), the prol/hec.~ which is the keystone of the piophetm
and his father’s house have been shalers w,th the nation arch of chronological ulterprelatmu, and lln.u’efore tlle com-
in that sin which brought the punishment of captivity alien mand to reljuild must be L~-ued exactly on tune
them Here is tmnnlity; tile confessmn of sin is not me~ely Nehenuah, lllq heart bum~mgfor Ills people and for the
fornnd. (3) He appeals to God, he beseeches, and thai con- honor of his God, little reahzed the mqmrtance of his
tinually. (4) He pleads the pronnses. God had said. "But ptajer. Wh, it faithful to that xxluch God llli.b placed before
if .~e turn unto me, and keep my COlUmandments, and do as, he fits our x~orl¢ rote Ins great plans Even our pra~eI’S
them. though there were of you cast out unto the uttei- are so iqtled In, and oar httle is made to have "l grand
most part of the heaven, yet will I gather them from thence, place m Inn pmpo.bes; our serxice ~s -lol’~fied It ~s very
and ~ill bring them unto the place that I have chosen prolmble tbat some ot the lnfluen/.e ~xhn:h Qaeen Esther
to set my name there." (5) He remmds God that the had m the I’eisian Court still r(’mamed, and that Nehe-
lsraehtes are ins servants specially c-tlled to Iron "Now allah’s long was affected in some l.ueasure by it. That
these "ire thy servants and thy people, whom thou hast strange (h.hveiance of Ihe ae,,.~ m Esther’s days must
redeemed by thy great pmxer, and by thy strong h,md." ha~e mnh’r~.,ll5 hellmd to l)r(.liare the nay tor Nehennah;
(Nehemiah 1:10) So, then, we have here an acknowledge- and the l)l’oxed loJalty of the Jews to the Persian throne
ment of God’s glory, a confession of sin, supphcatlon, a would eertaiuly help In these things we have wonderful
pleading of the promises, and a reminder that Israel ~s God’s fllustratmns of tim divine m’demng of hulnan affairs God
own chosen people. as certainly provided the cu’eumstanees for this very im-
The request of the prayer is that God would grant him portant happening as lie provided those whmh previously
favor with the king. tie does not ask that God would do had caused Cyrus to take the very unusual course of giving
something to relieve the mtuatlon in Jerusalem, or cause thousands of captives freedom to go back to their own land,
the city to be built; nor does he ask directl.y that he may
be the broider. But, feehng strongly within himself the SERVICE AND PRAYER
desire to serve, he asks for favor for himself: he requests In this account there are important lessons and guidance
that God ~ould work upon his master the king; for he for us both as to service and prayer. The Lord has shown
Was tl,e king% eupbearer. Quite evidently God was pleased us a great privilege of service, Like Jerusalem of old, so
The WATCH
TOWER ,5:t
the Lord’s city now (the true worship and service of Je- all God raised np l~ehemlah to rebuild the city, and to
hovah) is dishonored in the sight of the nations. It is our consolidate the reformation, and to establish tile people
work to set forth the truth of the coming of the kingdom, in their land. Probably all this is intended as an illustratmn
and our privilege to have the honor of God so much on otLr of the reform work done since God raised: up Brother
mind as to work and pray for the prosperity of his cit.v. Rus,>cll.
Brother tlussell w’ts surely guided of the Lord when by Tile wall’ rebuilt around Jerusalem was a protection to
the Vow he brought the Lord’s people into one real union those inside and a notice to those outside that God had
of prayer, praying daily for tile Lord’s guidance and blessing a people, Israel, with whom his favor still remained. The
on his people at the Bethel and everywhere. Lord foreshadowed an.~oflice tllat would be filled by a
Probably we are to "take these narratives as instruction special servant, and he selected Brother Russell for this
for present work. 5Iehe,niah’s work has a correspondency pro]lose. Brother Russell under tile direction of the Lord
with that winch the Lord’s people are called upon to do reest’tblished the truth in the minds of Christian people
today. The original return from Babylon was in three in Christendom, which served as a protection to them from
phases: First, there was the return under the leadership the enemies of the new creation and at the same time gave
of Zerubbabc], when the people laid tile foundatmns of the notice to those on the outside that God has a people in
house of the Lord and began again a measure of national the earth.
life. Then, after a long interval, there was a second return God’s servants are privileged to do a twofold work: one
under Ezra. Zerubbabel’s work was not permanent in re- tim reestablishing of tile truth, and the other a witnessing
sults; and ~hen Ezra returned, he found a sitxmtion in against the Bai)51onish systems that have destroyed tim
Israel which made iron weep sorely. Ezra was a reformer truth. We seem to be warranted In the conclumon from
and accomplished a great work. the Scriptures that before the end of the church’s career
But Israel needed something more than reformation; this side the vail there must be given such a clear witness
something more than a setting forth of the truth of right concerning the Lord’s kingdom that tile people of Babylon
liwng, just as now more. is necessary than doctrinal cor- will know that God has a people in the earth bearing his
reclness Tim city needed rebuilding, and the national re- message, as surely as the people of the land knew of the
quirements of a people representing God demanded atten- rebuilding of the city of Jerusalem ; and now, as then, those
tion. The status o£ the people needed raising. So last of in high places will be maddened by the fact.
INTERESTING LETTERS
MISTAKES OF PTOLEMY, THE PAGAN HISTORIAN 49 years was unmedmtely followed by another 49 years;
[A private letter from Brother Morton Edgar addressed and so on. This does away with the special 5Oth year of
to a roster in CIIIL>t has been handed to us u ith request Jubilee, pronounced hy Jehovah to be both "hallowed" and
to publish; and Mnce it deals with subject-matter of par- "holy". Then they Cay that the land had its "sabbaths of
t, eul-tr interest to the clmreh at thin thne, we take pleasure rest" eve,i when the people were in the land for about 16
in pubhsh,ng it, as follox~s:] or 17 years, ham the first of Cyrus till the second of
DEARSISTER" Darius. How could the land rest when the people tilled it
I am real Mad that my noteq which I sent you have proved dumng about 16 or 17 years?
helpful. I found the thoughts helpful myself, and so be- Note how they misunderstood Brother Russell’s state-
l,eved I should pass them on. ls ~t not shange that the ment, tlmt zf nothing transpired by the end of 1914, then
Hc~rthl brethren sheuhl no~ be throning doubt upon the we might consider that we had been expecting "the wrong
correctness of tile "tlnies and seasons"? thu~g at the r~gh, t ttm.e". That is, the tzme was right, but
The Hclald quotes Brother Russell as saynig (at the be- the expected event m,ght have proved wrong. Why, then,
ginning of 1914, or 7 months before the great war broke do they lmmedmtely proceed to change the tnne, seeing
out) that if everything went on much as u~ual, and no that the time IS mght? It seems strange. Of course, as
t,me of trouble wa~ m sight, tlI’tt is, no trouble happened everyone now knous, expected things did indeed happen in
in 1914 at all, then we wouhl zeqtnre to look into the pro- 1914 as predicted. The great time of trouble broke out
phecle~ once niole and see if xxe had nlade m]y error in and is shll raging. The nations are endeavoring their ut-
ore’ leckonmg; for it might be that ue had beea looking most to regain their lost pov er, lint have not succeeded.
for "the wrong thing at tim r~ght l,me". Brother Russell Too much of the poor old world hes prostrate to say truth-
hexer doubted the tr,J~e. But tlie~e Hcralg brethren have fully that things continue much as they were before 1914.
proceeded to ehnnge the t~me, and not to change the th,ng To say that gentile hnles ended in 1914 is also to say that
wluch was expected to happen. They say that all our ex- the Lord tumse]f is amy reigning (according to the Semp-
pectation regarding ]9t4 "utterly furled". I wonder if the tural deelnrahon). Therefore, the Lord now reigns, the
people in Russia, in Austria, in Germany, etc., etc., think genhle times having ended, as foretold in 1914. It may be
that nothinq ltappened in 1914. smue years yet before the last member of the body is
Tim Herald brethren are anxious to throw doubt on the glorified but the re,gn of Christ has now begun, and the
chronology for some reason, and they make some strange menfllei’s on tlILS side of the vail are doing kingdom work
changes in the "times" to s-~t their views, l~or instance, with him The feet members are in contact with the earth,
they say that there were no Jubilee years at all; that eac~ wlnle the llead and the body in general are now "in th¢
~54: ¢I’he WATCH TOWER Y.
air". All are doing kingdom work together. The Lord be year of reign then lands in 606 or 607 B. C. "Seven tunes"
pt:nsed for this assurance! The Herald writers are quite or 2520 years from this ended in 1914 A. D, Autumn, wlnch
wrong m very many of their interpretations. They are is corcect. The Bible demands tins, and tile Bible will have
cm’tamly not safe guides to the Lord’s people. my vene,’-lt,on and respect before any mere profane docu-
Tlmre is one strange point in connection with tt]e "As- ment, houever supposedly accurate.
tr.nomical Canon of Ptolemy", which list of kings ~s much Then we have the explicit declaration of Daniel, the in-
venerated by the He~tlld According to this list, Naboko- spired prophet of the Lord, who says: "I Darnel under-
lascar, said to be Nebuchadnezzar, began to reign m 604 stood by books the number of the years, whereof the word
B C. (some copies say 605 B C.). But the name of tl~e of tile Lord came to Jeremiah the prophet, that he would
king wtlo comes before tins is spelled practically the same: accmnpi,sh seventy years in the desolation of Jerusalem".
"Nabopolassar". There is only a difference of one letter be- (Darnel 9: 2) The Herald brethren, like the higher critics,
tween them, as you will see "Nabo-po-lasuar" began to say that Darnel was all wrong’ It was not, they say, seventy
reign, according to Ptolemy’s hst. in 625 B. C., or, more yeacs in the desolatmns of Jelusalem, but hfty-one years
probably, as some have it, in 626 B. C. Therefm’e the 19th only[ "Daniel in the critics’ den" ag’ain T And Moses, the
year after the beginning of Nai)o-po-lau°-~ ’~ reign is 606, inn,] of God, said: "And your c,t,es [Jerusalem, the city
or 607 B. C., tim very date required for the beginning of the of the hmd] shall lie waste .... then shall the land enjoy
"great seven tJme¢ of the gentiles", ending in Autnnm, her ~abl)dths, while ye be in your enemies’ land"; etc And
]914 A. D. It is qmie possli)le, and may even be probable, Jm’emlah sqys that when Jerusalem was destroyed at tile
that Ptolemy, or some of lu~ interpreters, has mixed up dethronement of Zedekiah, Judah’s last king, then the land
these two names, names of two men who are said to be (and Jerusalem, the great eli-y) would lie desolate for
father and son. Nabo-po-lassar, ttle father, is very hkely seventy years to fulfill her sabbaths of rest. All these
mixed up with Nabo-ko-lassar, the son. Scriptures are very plain, and all go to show that Brother
It is just as likely as not that histormns made a mis- Russell’s interpretation of this feature of God’s Plan of
take here; and that both names are really the names of the Ages was correct, and that such writers as the writers
e~w king only, and not two. There is nothing improbable of the Herald are quite misleading.
in this; for such mistakes are not by any means infrequent. It was in 1904, or ten years before 1914, that similar
For instance, it is through a mistake of this very kmd views to those expressed by the Herald first came forth.
that Ptolemy made another well-known mistake in his list So their views are by no means new, but have bee,] seen,
of kings, namely, by mixing up the names of two kings and refuted, long ago. And Brother Russell himself was
called Xerxes, and Artaxerxes. Ptolemy’s canon makes a one of those who pointedly refuted the xxrong viex~s now
mistake of ten years in the reign of Xerxes, saying that he so boldly brought forx~ard by the Herald, au if they were
reigned for twenty-one year% whereas reliable history expressing something startling, and most unexpected new
proves conclusively that Xerxes reigned for eleven years facts. There is nothing new about them; and they are
only. This is important to notice; for if Xerxes d,d reign certainly not 1acts.
twenty-one years, and not only eleven, then the twentieth Have you ever noticed that Nebuchadnezzar is sometimes
year of his successor, that is, Artaxerxes, would then be also called Nebuchadrezzar? Just as Nabokolassar may also
ten years later than we understand it to be. And if Arta- have been known as Nabopolassar. Note the spellln~ in,
xerxes’ twentieth year is ten years later, then Danml’s pro- say, Ezekml, and contrast it with that in Daniel. But Jere-
phecy of the seventy weeks, at the end of mxty-nine of miah spells this name both ways. Wily this peculiar change
which weeks Messiah was to come, would not have been of a letter? Needless to say, the testimony of the Great
lulfilledl But Ptolemy made .,t mistake here; and rehable Pyramid, the Lord’s "stone witness" in which Brother Rus-
history, quite apart from the Scriptural requirement, proves sell still declared his implicit faith in his last notice of this
that Ptolemy was mistaken to the extent of ten years in monument, in his new preface to Volume III just about a
the reign of Xerxes, and hence, also, of ten years in the month before his death--is quite against the new (?) chro-
reign of Artaxerxes. nological views of the Herald. But of course the Herald
This is really more than one, or even two mistakes of w~iters have no use for the Pyramid’s testimony now. They
Ptolemy, for not only are his stated years for the reigns have thrown that aside, just as Brother Henninges of Aus-
of two kings ten years wrong each, but the date for the tr:dm did before them, and under somewhat similar cir-
death of the first, and the date for the accession of tile cumstances. The Great Pyramid substantiates the views held
second, are also, necessarily wrong. In other words, Ptolemy by Brother Russell bea ond all doubt.
made a bad blunder in his history of this period. Wliy are the Herald ~x riLers so anxious to discountenance
If Ptolemy made a mistake of ten years during the fifth the chronology of Brother Ru~selt, which is the true chro-
century B. C. (he himself lived during the second century nology of the Bible and the testimony, corroborative of
A. D., or several hundred years later), is it unreason- the Pyramid? They desire to throw disered,t on tim "d~s-
able to say that he made a mistake of twenty-one years dur- pensational" work now carried on under the WATCH TOWER’S
ing his history of the seventh century B. C.? The Herald supervision. That is the reason. They say, bluntly: "There
writers ask if it is reasonable to suppose that Ptolemy is no evidence ef any new war:. being carried on". Well,
made such a mistake. Well, apparently it is reasonable to there ~s at len,t no evidence that they are themselves en-
so suppose; for he Is now abundantly proved to have made gaged in tlus yew work which, in spite of them, is being
a bhmder in his history of the fifth century, when one carried on! "lULllions now living will never die!!" Halle-
wnnhl have expected that he should have been more reli- lujuh !
able, ~eeing it was about two hundred years nearer to the With love in Him as ever, MOt.TOre EDU~.
A D. date.
l~nt. as I say, it is not Improbable that the interpreters ANOTHER HUNGRY HEART FOUND
of PIolemy made this mistake, and net in this ease Ptolemy
h,mself. These later interpreters, as likely as not, have DEARBRETHREN:
mixed up Nabo-po-lassar and Nabo-£o-lassar, just a~ many I am writing to you at this time seekiu,~ information
histnrians mixed np Xerxes "rod Artaxerxes. According to concerning the STUDIES IN THE ~CRIPTURES. 1 have in my
Ptolemy’s astronomical list, or canon, of kings, Nabopolnfsar possession the first three volumes of tins splendid expo-
began his reign in 625, or 626, B. (3.; and his nmete.:nth sition and would like to know if I can get the other-n
alluded to in the front of the book, if they are still pub- But we know that it has been the means of enabling many
hslted. I would like to obtam the rewsed set complete. dear people to get their eyes open.
I have made several stuthes and sur~eys of the prophe- I want to go out in the work if I do nothmg but let the
cies. I knew {hey contained a world of reformation. But people know where I stand. And I want to go forward in
tim studms heretofore m’tde have left me and the prophe~ the ~o~k tf what comes from the "storehouse" comes sealed ;
rues so far "~part that I could not feel any blessing for for I know that it is used of the Lord, find that he has
my eftorts I-Io~evel’, such \~fls trot the ease, praise God, placed such ones at the head as will perform their duties
wJlh these three books It seemed that God purposely put well. Our table is so bountifully spread with everything,
tlmm rote nly hand.>. :ks I w,t~ in a second-hand ~tore one just ready to eat. All that we have to do is to sit down
day I x~as looking at book>, xxb(,n I Saw one of these. and e-it tt. We do rejmce for such precious things prepared
a-Ated tim clerk the price atttl he said 15c each. I bought for us !
all three and, pJ a t-_e God, that l~ the mo>t knowledge I ever Dear bretlu’eu, when we trove out’ trials and tbey seem
exl,eet to get ~o cathy. I-Jo~x tlue t~ Peter’s sajmg, that the so h.trd to beat’, our minds and he-u’ts go out to you, know-
girt (,.unlot be bought for a l~tlce (luoney). ing that your responslbdity is muclt greater than ours, and
17 ~as preaching m a couple of rural churches at the ttme tlmt tberefore your trhds must be more severe. But we
and (hd not h:txe much trine to delve into the books. But know that our Lord is able and wilhng to keep you stedfast
I ,tin flee noxx and have gone through all three and have unto the end When G. A. _No. 27 came, we went forward
been wonderfully bles~e(l. Howexer, ]7 am starting through and did not read it until we were all done; and theu how
tltem again rot’ further blessings. we did rejoice that ~e were permitted to put such a mes-
If you ha~e "my otl,er stu(lle~, I wotthl hke to have sage be*me the people! Our first work was the petition
hst of them, and when I am better situated financially I work, attd then No. 27.
will l)tllclhl e ~,l,llte Thanks for the new Tabernacle booklet; for it is gotten
I behe~e ] \~otlltl be nnmen>ely tuterested in T~g I~VATCI~ up nt a way that hits made me work harder to get the
TOXXEI~.publie’ttton too, aml x~ottld hke to have lny nanle lesson% and it luts been a great blessing to me; for you
[)laced u.pon the ...ulo,~crJptton h~t, and I will send }OHthe know that the Tabernacle is hard for a "b’tbe". Also thank
pl ice as soon as I can. I It.rye not recmved any salary for my you for the cover tot’ out’ Zg’s. Just what we needed! So,
pre:lchm’.r la>t summer, and xe~ httle gift, but, pl’Itt~e God, you see, tim Lord in due tune always sees to our every
]7 am able to help proelanu the message to the world. I need. Pra) for us, dear brethren, that we will not murmur
was preaching in Baptist churches, but not being hnked nor repine at whatever tlte Lord is pleased to do, but
up ~lth tlten’ tot,aS and methods I did not receive any be wilhng ~md ready to serve him and his dear flock until
of then- nnsstonary help. I am poor in worldly goods but death. Far be tt from me to want to boast, but I can truth-
rich in the grace of God. fully say that not one thing you dear ones lmve done has
been d~<pleasmg to Brother Dixon attd ntyself since we
Yours m Christ, LEwrs H. h’I’ILLI,:R,--1VJs.
have seen this great truth. We can find fault and we might,
dear brethren; but by God’s grace we do not want to do
HUMILITY MOST BEAUTIFUL ORNAMENT so. Why should we? We could not manage the work as
~)I’.’~R I~IH]L’HRJ,.~N IN (JlqRI~T you do, aud the Lord does not wish us to do so, or he would
l’le’tse hnd enelo,~ed chl)pma,
which I thought might be place some of us at the head .... Wepray the Lord’s rielmst
~, that we d,llly bleusin~ on yon and on all that you may do that is pleasing
Of ll,Ne t() you. VVe \xaltt you to I-r.llO’, rementber
the dear /~etltel family at tlte throne of grace, and that we in Iris sight. Pray for ns, that we nmy be faitltful unto
nz e ~t lull ]ml mony\~ ltlt your every eflort to serve tile Lord death, ahvnys ready to follow our Guide; and that we may
ill ql)ll’lt and in t~nth P, tother Dixon and I have been in at all tHnes be humble; for the most beauttfut ornament I
p~e-ent truth since the spring of 3918, and greatly rejoice have ever been able to see on the Lord’s people is humility.
ntme al~d more to thnd~ llmt the dear heavenly Father has Tbe first truth hteratule Brother Dixon attd I ever read
pe~m~ll(:d us to see his great plnn and to have a hand in had on it Brother Russell’s p~cture, tie looked so kind and
tim ,me are,~t wo, lc! You ~11. no (]ottbt. be pleased to know good that we decided to read the trnct. Tlmt x~as ten years
that tlHm,gh ~-’tJ],: Got.ltE~ AGE magazine three dear ones i~go, near Siloam Springs, Ark.
]rave come rote pre-eat truth as a result of the Lord’s May lhe Lord keep you fatthful unto the end and give
ltaxm~ pommelled me to ltave a lmnd m his most precious you more of his holy spirit, and wisdom from above, and
work. and thcv have fully eonqecr.tted all to the Lord. It grace, and ~trength
seems to me~ ~le.~, b,eflnen, to know that just three have Your brother and s,~ter in him,
taken tins step lms fully paid you for publishing the O. A. Buo. and Su. J. F. D~xc~, Wash.
St. Johnsbury, Vt ........ Aug. 20 Ft. EdwardN. Y ............. Aug 29 Bay City, ]~hch .......... Aug 23 Fenton, M.fi ............ " 29
Ne~polt,Vt .................... " 22 Glenn’s Fall~. N. Y ........ " 30 Saginaw,,~Iicll .............. " 24 Lansing, Ml(h ............. " 30
MorrzswtleVt ................ " 24 Greenwich, N Y ......... " 31 Ahna,l~hch.................... " 25 Sunheld. 5lnAl ......... 31
Bulhngton, vt ................ " 25 Meehatucsvllle, N. Y ...... Sept. 1 BnchRun. l~hch ............. ’’ 26 ~’Voo(ll&nd, Ix|lob ._ Sept 1
" 27 Granville, N Y ........... " Flint, l~heh.................... " 27 Charlotte. Mich " 3
Rutland, Vt ............. " 28 Cedar I’omt, Olno :;ept 5-13
~iconderoga, N. Y ........... " 28 Cedar Point, 0hto ....... Sept 5-13 Durand, Mlch.................
BROTHER V. C. RICE
BROTHER J. A. BOHNET
Superior, Iowa................ Aug. 21 Dubnque, Iowa ............ Aug 29
Conde,S. Dak................. Aug. 21 lXhlwaukee, Wis ............. Aug. 30 Esthervflle, Iowa ............ " 23 Freeport, Ill .................. " 30
Ipswich, S Dak ............ " 23 Racine,WJs..................... ’ 31 LakeMills, Ionia ............ " 24 Rocktord, 111 ............... " 31
]~hnneapohs, Mmn........ " 25 E1],ait, Ind ................... Sept. 1 Waterloo, Ionia ............. " 25 Plymouth, lad .......... Sept. 1
St Paul, 5hnn ........... " 27 Toledo,Ohio...................... " 3 Oelwem,Iowa ........... Aug. 26, 28 :Ft. Wayne, Ind ...... " 3
Rochester,]~l] ll Ii ............. " 28 Danbury,Ohio ................. " 4 Ehna, Iowa.................... Aug. 27 Cedal Point, Ohio .. bept. 5-13
~TunnelCity, \Vm............ " 29 Cedar Point, Ohio ........ Sept, 5-13
BROTHER R. L. ROBIE
BROTHER E. F. CRIST
Butte, Mont............... Aug 11, 13 Reserve, Mont........... Aug. 24, 25
Sydney, N. S ............. Aug. 16, 17 Brockvdle, Ont. .............. Aug. 29 Mtssoula, Mont ........... Aug. 14 Outlook, Mont .......... " 26, 27
Truto, N. S .............. " 18,20 I~:lngston, Ont................. " 30 Pablo, Moat ............ Aug. lfi, 17 Dote, N Dak ............. Aug, 29
Quebec,P Q ................... Aug 22 Bellevllle, Ont. 31 Great Falls, Moat ..... " 1~, 20 Bonetrall, N, Dak ........ Sept 1, 2
Montreal, P Q ........... Aug. ,,,
°3 24 Toronto, Out .................. Sept. Tampico, Moat ............... Aug 21 Zahl, N Dak ............ bept. 3
Ottaxxa, Out ........... " 25, 27 Tonawanda N. Y .......... " 3 " 23 Cedar Point, Ohm........ Sept. 5-13
Aug. 28 Sept. 5-13 Frold, Bloat .....................
Carleton Place, Out ...... Cedar Point, Ohio .....
BROTHER O. L. SULLIVAN
BROTHER A. J. ESHLEMAN
Newcomerstown, Olno . _Aug. 23 Gahon, Ohio ................ .Aug. 30 Aug. 22 Elwood,Ind .................. Aug 29
" 24 Marina.Oiuo................... " 31 Madison, Ind ...........
Port Washington, Ohio .. Green.-burg, Ind ............ " 23 Rlclunond,Ind ................ " 30
Ne~mk,Ohio ............... " 25 VanWert,Oino.................. Sept 1 " 24 Da.~ton, 0hlo .............. " 31
" 27 Wapal,oneta, Ohio............ " 2 Kmghtstown,Ind ...........
l~Iansfield, Ohio............. Andelson.Ind ................. " 25 Springfield, Ohio ..... Sei,t 1
Shelby, Oluo ................. " 28 Columbu%Ohio ................ " 3 Muncie,Ind .................... " 27 Delaw,ue, Ohio ___ 3
Cresthne, Ohio............... " 29 Cedar Point, Ohio ...... Sept, 5-13 " 28 Cedar Po:at, 0hlo Sept. 5-13
Alexandria,Ind ...............
Iroquois,Out.................. Aug. 16 Sterhng, Ont ............. Aug. 25, 27 Charlottsville, Va ....... Aug. 20 Hagerstown, Md ............. Aug 29
Prescott, Out ........ " 18 Frankfort, Out ................. Aug. 28 Bame, Va ............... " 22 Fro~tbutg, ]~I¢| ............. " ;tO
" 20 Trenton, Out ................. " 29 Clifton ForTe. Va ........... " 23 Lonacomng,Md .............. " 31
Broekville, Out............... Aug. 24, 25 Cumberland,Md.............. Sept. 1
Gananoque, Ont. " 21 Orono,Ont ...................... " 31 Winchester, Va ........
Kingston, Out .... :[[:Aug, 22, 23 Woodstock, Ont ........... Sept 3 RockEnon, Va ................. Aug. 27 BrandonvHle, W. Va.. " 3
Bellevflle, Ont ................. Aug. 24 Cedar Point, Ohio ...... Sept 5-13 Boyee,Va......................... " 28 Cedar Point, Ohm..... Sept. 5-13
Aug. 18. 20 Smith’s Falls, Out ......... Aug. 28 Weston, Ore ................. Aug 17 Nampa,Ore ..................... Aug. 29
St. John, N. B ......... I-Ietmtston, Ore ....... " 18 Melba,Ore...................... " 30
Evandale, N. B .......... ’’ 21 22 Havelock,Out ................. " 29
Pendleton. Ore .......... " 20 l~m’,e Ida ................... ’ ’ 31
Fredelicton, N. B ......... Aug 23 Peterbolo, Ont ............. " 30
" 24 Clalemont, Out ...... " 31 Joseph, Ore ............ \ug. 22,23 Hazelton, lda .............. Sept. 1
]~,llbllle, N. B ................. 25, 27 Pocatello, lda ........... " 3
X~oodstock, N B ............. " 25 Hamilton, Ont ....... Sept oo XXelser, Ida ..............
" 27 Cedal l’omt, Ohm ___Sept 5-13 Ontario, Ore ................ Aug. 28 Cedar Point, Ohio Sept. 5-13
1Hontreal, Que ................
Wheeling, Mo .............. Aug 21 (_,lnmte City, 511 .......... Aug 2S lndlanapohs, lad . _. Aug. 20 We~_tMilton, Ohio ......... Aug. 29
Hale, Mo ................ " 22 Pana, 111 ............... Aug 29, 30 Martln~xllle, Ind ...... " 22 Dajton, Ohio ................. " 30
Boynton, Mo .......... " 23 Mattoon, Ill ...... An~ 31 Na~fixllle, Ind .... Aug 23, 24 Sptmgheld, Ohio ......... " 31
Sept Bl
Hanmbal, Mo ........... " 24 :Brazil. lnd... Sept 1 GteellM)urg, Ind ......... Aug. 25 Lima, Ohio......................
East St Louis, Ill ..... Aug 25, 27 Terra Haute, Ind " " 3 CmcmnntL Ohio ........ " 27 Tiffin, Ohio.......................
Bt. Louis, 5Io ................ Aug. 27 Cedal Point, Ohio . Sept 5-13 Plqua, Ohio ................ " 28 Cedar Point, Ohio ..... Sept. 6-18
Anno Mundi 6050--September 1, ]922
CONTENTS
EUItOI’EAN TOUR --- ]’ ~RT¥’ ................................... 259
’J_’l’otzlcy Pl.OaO|le,~ I:Itlllgl.q" (~l’ll~-p(lo. ............... 261
~q2uropo. ,"t P, oihllg Cnuhlv.n ......................... 2~;2
A ]{I,:I, III:SIIILX(I ..~IL~.SON.................................... 2(;2
INTEIIEST[NC. QCEqT[ONS .................................... 26;~
If One Lacks Zeal .......................................... 263
Christendom Not l)esolate 70 "leals .............. 264
:BIBLE SCHOOLE~;TXlLr.I.%1II:D ........................ 2G-I
Suggestions for 1"ibis Study .............................. 265
]7~]ERYTEN’PINGS ]"O1;l.qll,~.DoWl:l ~ ........................ 267
I’rieuts Ledthe PeopleA~tra3~........................ 2(;7
~.’OI{I,D~RDISIN’I’EGI~*,TION
]"c)IIlTt0LI) ................... 2(J9
T~oPha~(,sof Tnday’sW,~II.......................... 270
Tim (2hui(:lt’s Ple£ent Exl)ermnce .................... 270
QUESTIONSFOR TOWER]JEItEAN ~TUD~................ 271
l
,, ,,s:,
,+@~_~+ @,,,,~=.~T.-s __
~~~- ....-~.+
",<~~..~ ~-.~::+4...
L<~Z~_-.::
:’:...’-’::=.-....~.f -
~p011 th0 earth distress of nations with perplexity; the sea and the waees (the rest.less, discontented) roaring; men’13 hearts falhag them for fear and for looking to tl~
things coming upon the earth (society); for the powers of the hravens (eecleslasLlelsro) S|I~LI he shaken .... When ye see these things begin to e<)me to pass,
then know that the Km~clom of God is at hand. Look up, lift up 2vur beads, rejoice, for your redemption dr~weth ntgh.--Matt. 24:33; Mark 13.29; Luke 21:25-31-
THIS JOURNALAND ITS SACREDMISSION
THISpresented
Journal Is one of the prime factors
in all parts of the civilized
or instruments in the system of Bible instruction,
world by the WATCHT0WERBIBLE & TRACTSOCIETY, chartered
or "Seminary Extrusion", now b~Yn@
A.D. 1884, "For the Pro*
motion of Christian Knowledge". It ]lot only serves as a class room where Bible students may meet in the study of *.he divine Word but’
also as n channel of (’onununication through whh-h they may be reached with announcements of the Society’s conventions and of the
eomiug of its h’aveling rcprc.~onlatives, st~lctl "lqlgriins", aml refreshed with reports of its conventions.
Our "Berean Les~ons" are topical rehearsals or reviews of our Society’s published STUDIES most entertainingly arranged, and very
helpful to all x~ho would merit the only honorary degree which the Society accords, viz., I’c~bi Dci Minister (V. D. M.), which translated
Into I,’ngli.-h is Mimstcr of God’s Word. Oar treatment of the International Sunday Seimol Lessons is specially for the older Bible
stmtents and tcachcls. By some this feature is considered imhspeasable.
This journal ~tamls firmly for the dcfenqe of the only true foundation of the Christian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
~redenlption through the precious blood of "the man Christ Jesus, who gave himself a tansora [a corresponding price, a substitute] for
all". (1 Peter 1 : 19 ; 1 q2imothy 2 : 6) Building tip on this sure foundation the gold, sih’er and precious stones (1 Corinthians 3 :
15; 2 Peter :l :5-11) of tile Word of God, its further m~ssion is to "make all see what is the fellowship of the mystery which...ha~
been hid in God, . . . to the intent that now might be made known by the chnrcll the manifold wisdom of God"--"which in other ages
was not made known unto the sons of men as it is now ~evealed".--Ephesians 3:5-9, 10.
It stands free from all parties, sects and creeds of men. while it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
subjection to tim will of God in Christ, as expressed in the holy Scriptures. It is thus free to declare boldly whatsoever the Lord
hath spoken--according to the divine wisdom granted unto us to understand his utterances, its attitude is not dogmatic, but confident;
for we know whereof we afllrm, treading with implicit faith upon the sure promi,cs of God. It is held as a trust, to be used only in his
service; hence our decisions relative to what may and what nay not appear m ~ts columns must be according to our judgment of his
good pleasure, the teaching of his Word, for the upbuild4ng of his people in grace and knowledge. And ~e not only invite but urge oul"
readers to prove all its utterances by the infallible Word to which reference is constantly made to facilitate such testing.
EUROPEAN TOUR--PART V
class of Bible Students has never been established. The
T ojESDAY
¯ los morning,
of the multitudinous
June 6, with blessings
lingering
received
mem-
at thought ~as expressed that the Jesuits would be able
the Leipzig Convention, and with many of the to keep the people away from the meeting; but not so.
Lord’s dear ones waving us a fond good-by, our train The priests of Baal cannot deceive the people always.
began the journey to Switzerland. The next day brought Whenthe hour for Lhe meeting arrived the people
us to Lucerne, the most picturesque place in the Swiss cameen masse and quicldy filled the hall, every available
Alps, where a public meeting had been nrr,qnged for the standing space being occupied. It was noticed that the
evening of the seventh. Having a few hours before the audimmewas a representative one. It had been reported
time of this meeting, our part}’ took boat and traveled that tim Jesuit sympathizers would probably attem14 to
the full length of Lake Lucerne. Its beauty ~s beyond interrupt or break up the meeting, but nothing or this
description of human words or pen. The body of water kind was done. The subject here, of course, was: "The
is an indescribable blue, with its shores bounded upon World has Ended--Millions Now Living WHI Never
every side by lofty mountain peaks. With every turn Die." The speaker opened his address by s.aying that
of the winding course new scenes of beauty rise to greet the peoples of earth are in distress and that he wanted
one’s vision. to have a hea,’t-to-heart talk with those present as to
BEAUTIFULLUCERNE the reason why and the remedy. From the very begin-
The Prophet declares that the earth is the footstool ning the audience listened with the keenest interest as
of Jehovah, and in due time he will make it glorious. point after point was brought forth to establish the tact
As one views the grandeurs of Switzerland in this sec- that the old order of things has come to an end; that
tion he can but exelnin~ : ’Surely the Lord has nowmade the day of God’s vengeance is upon the powers that be;
a part of his footstool of surpassing beauty and glory !’ that the kingdomof heaven is at hand ; and that millions
Evergreen trees cover the monntainsides, while a vcivet of people nowliving on earth wmddhave an opportu,ity
green carpet of ~ass extends from the water’s edge to for life everlasting; and that those obeying the laws of
the perpetual snow line. This green is sprinkled with the new order would be restored to perfect conditions
ttowers of many hues and colors pemdiar to the moun- of body and mind and dwell in peace and happiness on
tainous region. The herds of the mountaineers graze earth forever.
peacefully while their bells join in the music of nature ; Because of the opposition it was thought well during
and evmything seems to praise the Creator. Indeed, the course of the lecture to speak in plain terms con-
t lmre cerning the clergy and their opposition. The speaker
"Every prospect pleases, told the audience that understanding of the Bible was
And only man is vile." not limited to a few pious-faced hypocrites who try to
impress the people with their o~mlearning and impor-
As one views these wonders of God’s creation, he tance and to keep the people in ignorance, who wear
rejoices to knowthat we are now entering upon an age long robes and assume an air of wisdom; but that the
of restoration, and that ere its completion the whole Wordof God is intended for the comfort of those who
earth will be glad and sound the praises of the great seek to knowGod and his ways; that the commonpeople
Giver of every good and perfect gift. can understand the Lm:d’s Wordif the mind is applied
Lucerne has long been a Catholic stronghold. It is to that purpose; that the time has come for people to
priest-ridden ; and the priests are allies of the politicians understand; and that the Lord himself will make it
and financiers whojoin together in controlling things plain to all those whoseek to knowthe truth.
politically. Naturally it would be expected that they Not one person left during the lecture; and at the
control most of the halls for public gatherings. The conclusion the audience manifested its undoubted ap-
brethren had had difficulty in securing a place for the proval by lengthy and continuous applause. Even after
meeting in Lucerne, and the only available hall was a the spea.kcr had left the platform, the audience would
moving picture theater with a capacity of 850. The not cease applauding until he returned again and J,ade
Jesuit opposition to the truth is strong here, and a them "’Aufwiedersehn". ]~Iore than half the audience
,the ¥:/ATCH TOWER ""Y"
bought the books, and it is hoped that nmch good was usual proportion bm@~tthe books and seemingly went
done at this meeting. away rejoicing that they had heard about the kingdom.
Switzerland kept out of the World War. In this it A two-d,~y convention was held at Zurich, attended by
has profited. Of com’se just why that land of beal~ty, about 1800 of the consecrated. The convention was ad-
roma~mcand song was spared we eammt.~urely say. For dressed by Brothers ~fartin, Goux, Binkele, Zaugg,
more than six centuries Switzerland has been a repub- Rutherford: and others.
lic, during which time the. mailed fist has not been There had been some attempt here on the ])art of one
permitted to rule. Before thn.t time the country was brother to di.q.urb the friends, especially on the question
ruled by a harsh and arrogaut aristocracy. WillmmTell of chronology a.nd the lxork of the Society; hut near the
was the leading spirit that broke that fyranny. On the conclusion of the eonvcnliml all present, with the excep-
banks of Lake Lucerne is pointed out a mountain upon tion of the one, tumultuously expressed their harmony
the side of which Tell and three other men held a and determination to work together for the spreading of
conference at night .and pledged themselves to destroy the messageof the ldngdom.It was a happy convention ;
the tyrannical rule. Success crowned their efforts and a most blessed one indeed. It was recounted at the con-
soon thereMter a relmblie was established. Near this ventmnthat five years ago, when the then representative
spot and upon the shore of the lake, the people, in of the Society became hnbued with the thought that he
commemorationof ’Fell’s heroic efforts, have erected a was the angel-eternal to whomwas committed the duty of
monument known as Tell’s Chapel. The opinior~ is looking after the things of earth, showeddisloyalty and
ventured that the Lord may have spared Switzerland the began opposition to the Society, such a disturbance fol-
trouble of the World Warbecause of her love for free- lowed that shortly thereafter there were not more than a
dora and for long maintenance of a free govermnent. hundred people in the truth in Switzerland. Today there
The same might have been said of the United States are more than three thousand, fully consecrated and de-
had the spirit of liberty controlled. Alas ! alas ! religious voted to the Lord’s cause. The Lord has greatly blessed
liberty and freedom of speech received a terrible Mow the work in Switzerland. The friends are zealous,
in America and she has suffered ~or it. But front all hunHde-minded, and show that they have developed the
these experiences the people learn lessons that will be fruits ofthe sl)irit.
profitable when they -know that the Prince of Peace A day was spent at Zurich in examining the affairs of
has established his government and that righteousness the o.~iee and making further arrangements for extend-
has cometo stay forever. ing the work in Swltz~:rland and other Central Euro-
pean eountries.
BERNE AND ZURICH BARMEN, GERMANY
Berne was our next stop. That city, built in the days From Switzerland we returned to Germany to make
of Rome, takes its name from the fact that bears were contracts for the publication of books for the work and
slain at that spot by noblemen. Even today live bears to address meetings that had been arranged. Arriving
are kept in a pit. where they m’zy be easily viewed by at Barmen, the Soeiety’s headquarters in Germany, we
the public every day. Berne is the Swiss for bears. The found about 700 of the friends assembled, in keeping
name being in the phlral suggests to the Christian that with the admonition of the Apostle. It was a joyfN as-
it is always well to have two "bears": To bear the bur- sembly of the saints. During the past eight years they
dens thug cometo him ; and to forbear with others, as the have endured manyhardships, but amMstall these vicis-
Apostle admonishes. situdes have grown both in numbers and in the fruits
Berne is the headquarters of the French work of the of the spirit.
Society. The greater part of the two days there was The discourse was a.long the line of encouragementto
spent in going over the work of the office and arranging the brethren. It was pointed out that we are now new
for the publication of hooks and other literature. The creatures in Christ Jesus and that it is the newcreature
class at Berne tonsil, is of about 150 consecrated. A that must grow ; that our Father knowswhat experiences
meeting was hdd with the class, addressed by Brother we need for our developmentand overrules all things for
Rutherford, on the evening of the eighth of June; and our good because he has called us according to his pur-
the following evening a public address was given to an pose and because we love him; that in the family of
audience of approximately 1800. The interest here, as in God there are no Germans, English, Americans, or
other places, was markedby the fact that the audience French, but all are one in Christ, our citizenship is in
listened closely and manyof them took books away with heaven and we are privileged to represent the Lord on
them. the earth and to give a witness in his nameto his in-
Zurich is the place of the Society’s Central European comingkingdom; that our Father is pleased to have us
Office, having jurisdiction over the seven countries of behold his character and the character of his Beloved
Switzerland, France, Belgium, ]-Ioltand, Germany,Aus- Son, and now with open vision we can look into the
tria’ and Italy. Sahlrday evening, June 10, a public Word of God as tho,gh into a mirror and see there
meeting was held there, attended by approximately 2500. reflected the perfect character of our Lord and Father ;
The attention was splendid, the interest good; and the that the mind is the battleground; that it is the mind
¯ WATCH TOWER 261
that is being transformed; that as we behold the Lord That Prophet of the Lord foretold conditions arising
and meditate upon his character and serve him with in the north country (l{ussia) ; a.nd these are held forth
joyt’ul hearts we are changed from one degree of glory as a warning to odmr nahons, indmatmgthat the course
to another, even by the spirit of the Lord; that it Js taken by Russia is lmble to be followed by manyothers.
not for us to meditate upon the trials and tribulations Andtins Is the very th,ug that has put fear mthe hearts
we have had, nor upon our o~m weaknesses, nor to re- of the rulers of the p,’e~ent order, lht.~sia was the first
count the sorrows of the past; but that our transfer to mobilize her a.rmy for the World War. The revo-
mation wi]l progress in proportion as we keep the nfind lutions IMJowingbegan in J¢uss]a: Bo]stmvism a~:nd a
fixed upon the Lord and his glory, and that tins we can reign o[ terror have followed, l’estilence and faminehave
best do by being engaged in serving lmn and in pro- swept the land, from whmhmillions have died. The
clamling his kingdom. people of ]{ussm are still starving to death. On June
11 the European I’~ditlon of the NewYork Herald,
MOST BLESSED PRIVILEGE published at Paris, printed the following:
IL ~ as fnrther pointed out that our privilege of service
"TROTZKY PREACHES qlUNGER CRUSADE’"
is the most blessed ever accorded {o any creatures; that
the angels of heaven never enjoyed such a privilege; "News of Smiet doings transpiring through Reval show
that x~ hfle exercising this privilege we should not permit Trotzky in the role of a modm’,Jized Pclm" the Hermit,
preaching to lhe ianfine-SLrickm~ mob and the lled AI’Illy,
the adversary to discourage us by holding before the which sees ~tself also starving in the near fulure, a bread
mind our own weaknesses and imperfections, nor the el’USade againsl Weslern ]gurope. American flour intended
sorrows, troubles, and mistakes of the past, but that we for famim., relief i8 beiltg commandeered I)y the Red Army
should keep otu’ minds tixed upon the Lord; and if and shipped to Vitebsk, the headquarters of the Red Army
cQlnnlissal’i;tl.
because of weakness or imperfection we make mistakes, "In .’~ fresh proelammtion to the Red Army, the People’s
we should go at once to him as our Advodate, that we Komisar for \Vnr directs sl)~’ei:d nttenlion to France as lhe
might be cleansed and presented to the Father without arch-enemy of Russia. I:Ie declares that ]{ussia cannot be
spot or wrinkle or an), such thing; that our Father is fed wHh tim IIour sent from America, and that the ltussians
just and faittfful to forgive us our sins if we confess must go -rod fetch what they require. The million-strong
Red Army, he dcehtreg, is to form the. advance-guard of the
them; and that we have the sure promise of receiving Host of Famished Ilussians, which is nmking ready to
help in every time of need when we apply for it ac- overrun the West of Etlrope.
cording to his appointed way. The meeting was a very ’"rrotzlqv held forth in a shnilar strain in addressing the
happy one. It was a joy to be with these dear ones. Petrograd workmen some days previously."
The office of the Society in Germanyis in good con- Germany is almost certain to have another revolution,
dition. Every available space is occupied in some part or what might be tin’reed a counter-revolution, because
of the work; and tim members of the family are joy- she has had one. The radical element is in control. The
fully bending their efforts to send out the truth to those eonsm’vative party is smarting under the present condi-
who are anxmusto have it. tions. The conservatives own most of the real estate.
At Cologne a public meeting was held, attended by ’.l’he present government of Germanyhas enacted a law
about .1500. This is in oceupmdterritory, and Lhe troops whmhgives the govermnentcontrol of prix ate property.
o_[other nations occupy and control most of the halls, As nn illustration: If a manlives in a house that the
so the only one available was on the third story. Not- gove-rmuent inspectors think is too large [or him, even
withstanding, the people climlmd the stairs and filled though it is his own private resMencethey can movein
it to Jts nh’nost capacity. The interest was good and ot[ter families and fix the prme of the rent; and the
many took away ~.th tbcm the books. This meeting ou her is powerless to do anything, q’he rents are fixed
ended our tour m German)’. at such a low price that they areinsulficient to keep up
Now we are leaving GermaJu, the country whose the rclmirs, muchless the taxes and insurance, and bring
people are industrmus, orderly, and peace-loving. It any profit to the owner. One owning property and
seemsa great pity that, such a p,ople mu.,.t be subjected desimngto sell it cannot get its wflue, 1)eeause it is im-
to the horrors of the worst war oE nil the ages and the possible to lint the tenants out and surrender possession
other troubles incident lhercLo Lo satisfy tim smhition to the purchaser.
of n few poliLicians aml I’a~tl/l(~,~ and &shonestclergy- Poor (lermany is in a bad way. The conmaon people
men. B,t the Lord lnlous ~hai is best and will over- are industriously striving to get out from under their
rule M] lhings to his own glory and for the good of load by labor. Everybody is at work, but their work
those who are properly exercised by these experiences. brings them no real results. What they make nlnst go
to the nation of France and others. France is acting
WHAT OF THE FUI’URE? very unwisely. She is oppressing her neighboring people
As we view the situation now existing in Germany in compelling them to pay the cost and damages of the
and other European countries, the question comes to war; and in this she is aided and abetted by the Brttish
the mind, What will the future bring forth? The empire and others.
prophet Jeremiah seems to foreshadow what will result. 31utterings arc heard throughout Germany, that m
WATCH TOWER Y"
desperation lhev will seek vengeance against the French. The date 1925 is even more distinctly indicated by
It is a detfloralde state of affairs. the Scriptures because it is fixed by the law God gave
to l~l’ael. Viewingthe present sihlatinn in Europe, one
EUROPE A BOILING CAULDRON wondershowit will be possfi)le to hold back the explo-
A,slria is panic-stricken, and another revolution is sion muchlon.~er ; and that even hcfore 1925 tlle great
expected any ,Inv. In Italy the. revolutionists threaten to crisis will be reached and probably passed. The present
mm’L,rn the go\~:rmnent, and fear has taken hold upon eonditmns are strengthening to the faith of the Chris-
every one ~ho is in power. In fact, all Europe is ]ike a tian. tlis heart groans ~ith others of the groaning
boiling pot, w,th the intensity o[ the heal ever in- creation, anxious to see the Prince of Peace bring order
creasing. ]f any one whohas studied the I.~ible ea.n tra.vel out of chaos and hlessings to the people.
through Era’opt and not be convinced that the world What a priwlege is now accorded the followers of
has ended, that tlle day of god’s vengeaneeis here, that Chri,,.tt Wha.t a blessed opportunity of holding aloof
the M:essianie kingdomis at the door, then he has read from Lhe strife and turmoil ofearth and bringing to the
the Bible in vain. The physical facts show beyond people the message of peace and salvation and saying
mfi;o lhc~se of nominal Zion who ]lave been looking for
question of a doubt that 1914 ended the gentile tim,.,s;
th,,; I,nrd: ’llchold, the I~ord is here; behold thy (and
and as the Lord foretold, the old order is being de-
reiglmth!’
stroyed by war, famtue, pestilence, and revolution. (To I)e eontimmd.)
A REFRESHING SEASON
"And Jesus said unto them. Comeye yoursel, ves apa,rt iTH, o a deser?, place, and, test a while; for there were many
coming and going, and they had no leisure so nTuc£ as to eat."--3farl~ 6: 81.
}IE wm’dsof this text were spoken by, ilesus to
T his dism pies shortly n tier the hehending or John
the llaptls.t. The d~sciplo, s had taken the, body
]7-[ow lfl~e the Lord to provide a little season ofrest
and refreshing h&ore engaging in a more active eam-
paig’n ! l law appropriate that we eomeaside fro" a while
and buried it in a tomb. It was a trying and strennons in a qui(et and isolated spot, such as Cedar Point is,
tin, e for these dear men. The forerunner of Jesus. who ard thure, have some rest of body and mind and sweet
had honored him by annomminghis eoming, had been fellawshtp tu the Lord [ The peninsula and its appoint-
imprisoned and then beheaded. Doubtless there was naents will all he ours for eight days. Beside the waters
nn~eh excitement in Jerusalem. :Many people were com- ef beautiful bake Erie we may sit dow~ and rest a
ing and asking the distil)los the meaningofthese things, v, hilt and sil,g t%ether songs of praise to Godand to
m’([ the disciples had 1,ten l)usy explaining and teaching c,r Lord an([ oll’er our thanks and c.lmer each other
the doetrines which they had learned. They were so by recounting the blessings or the past and pointing each
busy and so wrought up by the conditions that they had other to the precious promises contained m his Word.
no time for leisure, ~mt so nmch as to eat. They came Mayit be a real season of rest to the soul and joy to
to Jesus with flmir harden, repe~ing to him what they the heart of each one ~ho comes.
had done and taught. :[-Te saw that they had need o1: Let us, therefore, dear brethren, for a time leave be-
some quiet rest and fe]low~.hip together, auay from hind us the rush and turmoil, the co,ffusion of tongues
the strife and tin’moil of the disordered con&flora Lov- and the d~sturbanee resulting from a d~sordered world,
ingly he said to them: "Comeye yourselves apart rata and in quietness and con fidenee comeaside for a season o1~
a desert place, and rest a while." refreshment and blessing sneh as the Lord has in store
REFRESHING FELLOWStlIP for all who love him supremely and come with a sincere
q2he quiet fellowship together of those of like pro’elm,s desire to glorify his name and to build each other up
faith is alwaysrefreshing, pal’timflarly after a strenuous ~1 our most holy faith. The Lord has promised that
season of effort put forth to accomplish a. purpose. where two or three agree upon a thing and ask it in
The people of God for some time have been pn~.sing his name he will grant it. Let manyof us agree, then,
through trying experiences--just such as .Icsus had that we will constantly present the matter of this con-
foretold would come to his followers at the end of the vention before the divine throne, that the Lord may
worhl. During the great sorrows resulting from the war, open the wtudowsof heaven and pour out his blessings
famine, pestilence, revolutions, distressed conditions of upon the eoming assemhly of his people.
the people, the wicked perseeution of Christians, and
()t her trying experiences, the truly eonsecrated have beml The convention will open Tuesday afternoon, Septem-
answering questions and teaching those who have been ber 5. it will close at noon Wednesday,September 13.
d.slm’bed in mind and sad of heart. ThW have been For f~fll information as to how to procure transporta-
cheering many by words of comfort. The excitement tion, reserve aceonmn)dations, etc., see T~rEWa~ovr
and turmoil of the world increases. Tow~.a of August 1.
INTERESTING QUESTIONS
IF ONE LACKS ZEAL to the meeld’. (Isaiah 61:1, g) To preach means to
Question: If the only motive for entering the ser- proclaim tim message in viu ious ways. One way is by
vice and putting out the literature is love for Godand word of mouth, another is by placing literature in the
a burnfiig zeal for doing it, and that zeal is lacking hands of the. people to read. l-Iow, then, is this show-
or is cold at present, should one enter the service any- ing our love for God ? If we love him we shall want to
how and work up a zeal or ~ait until he gets it? magnify his name and tell others what a loving, right-
Answer: The ScnpLures show tlmt all of our motives eous God he ~s and what a great pl’m he has for the
in service must be promptedby love. This is represented sah’ation and blessing o[ nlankiltd. Whenwe come to a
by the term ]mart used ill the Scriptures. The heart is knowledge of God’sil ri’a iig’cnient for blessingthe human
that faculty ofthe being by which our motive foraction race l.llld rely upon the revealed plan, thou we have
is determined; that which induces our action. It is the faith. Wcare creatures of faith. Wewalk by faith.
seat of affection. The l_,ord invites us after we make a No Christian should be controlled by feeling or senti-
consecration to giv, our ]marts uholly to him, saying: mentality. Zeal does not meanfeeling, emotion or senti-
"Myson, give me thine heart;’. (Proverbs 23: 26) The mentality. Faith is the basis of our whole Christian
apostle Paul gives the santo thought in Colossians 3 : 2, chm’aeter. First we knowof God’s provision, then we
3, saying: "Set your a.ffection on things above’, not on rely upon it. That constitutes f’lith. As our faith grows
things on the ca,th. For ye are dead, and your ]ire is stronger, our love will increase and also our earnest de-
hid with Christ in 0od." Again the proverl) says: rare to glorify the Lord and magnify his name by giving
"Keepthy lwavt w~thall diligence; lot out o£ J~ arc the o~hers a knowledge of him; and hence we will be in-
issues of life". (i’roverbs 4: 28) Any motwe such duced to engage in his service.
ambition, de.,h’e to shine, or pride, inducing our action Ans~ering the questmn, then, if one’s zeal is at low
could not be plea~_ing to £he Lord. Service for the Lord ebb what should he do? li’irst, he should apply himself
must be induced by the ntott\e Or love. Love means to the study of God’s Word. It would be well for him
worslnl)£ul adora|,mn for Jehovah, having in mind his to read the STUDIES IN TB;E SCRIPTURES, a certain por-
greatness, his ,no.testy, Iris loving kindness, what lie hastion every day. Read the Bible in connection therewith,
done for us, the provision for our saflvalion; and then proving the. texts a.s he goes along, thereby increasing
a jo3ful submissmnto his holy will. The beginning of his knowledge; and as he increases his knowledge, he
such love ix grat,tude. One uho really has gratit,tde in will increase his faith as he relies upon it; and this
his heart and app.’eciates what Clod has done for lmu knowledgeand [mth will incre’lse his love for God and
will u ant to do sonlething in rcturu; and the morehis his cause o2 righteousness. As he reads he should pray;
appreciation of God’s Idndness to him increases, the not only pray once in a while, but frequently ask the
greater will be his line; alnd the greater his love, the I.,ord to increase his knowledge, unde,’standing and ap-
greater u Ill be the desn’c to serve lure. preciation of and love for his Wordand to increase his
Jesus said: "He that hath my commandments, and desire to make it known to others. Then such a one
keepeth them, lie it ix that lovcth ale: and he that loveth should avail himself or herself of the opportunity to
me shall be loved of my Father". (John 14: 21) St. attend the class studies as often as possible, and attend
John writes: "This is the love of God, th’lt we kee9 his the praise, prayer and testimony meeting every week;
conmtamhnents; aml his commandmentsare not they- and this coming together with others of like precious
otis". (1 John 5: 3) Then i~ we really love the Lm’d, faith will increase the glowing zeal for the Lord and
that will be the indueentent to serve; and the greater lus cause. The Apostle points out that it is absolutely
our love, the greater will be our zeal. essential for the Lord’s people to meet together, espe-
LOVE IS ESSENTIAL dally as they see the end drawing near--and we are
Zeal may be very well pictm’ed by glowing coals of there now. (I-[cbrews 10:25) It is likewise essential
fire. I£ one of these coals is ]aid out by itself it gradu- that each one engage in the Lord’s service to the en-
ally cools off and (lies out. ttcnce the necessity o2 keep- tent of his or her opportunity, in order to show his
ing it with other coals. This illustrates the necessity of loving zeal for the Lord and thereby to keep his corn-
Christians assembling themselves together, associating mandmeats.
themselves together, studying the Wordtogether: and Study, prayer, assembling together and activity in
being active in giving the message to others. Love be- the Lord’s service will without a doubt bring a blessing
gets love; and the more one becomes active the more to every one who put’sues this course. Let no one de-
will love increase. ceive himself or herself that he can sit downand wait
Since our love is measuredby our willingness to obey until he works up a zeal. Zeal does not come in this
the Lord’s eomman(hnents,we shall desire to knowwhat way. Inactivity will lead to spiritual atrophy. Activity
his eomman&nents are and then to do them. One of in the Lord’s service, movedby aa honest and sincere
the specific commandments that applies to all the new desire to glorify the Lord,will lead to spiritual develop-
creatures is: "The spirit of the Lord Godis upon me, ment, contentment, and that peace of God that passea
because he hath anointed me to preach the glad tidings all human understanding.
263
"r e WATCH TOWER
CHRISTENDOMNOT DESOLATE 70 YEARS blessings. This wmfld ,~lso include that class that follow
O~.~estwn: I)o the Scriptures indicate that Christen- the admonition of the Prophet to seek meekness and
don, will be htvrnlly desolated, without inhabitants, as righteousness, and who because thereof may find a place
wa.-. the ease in the seventy years’ desolation of Pales- of refuge aud escape in the time of trouble.
flue? SI’IRI’i’-BEGETTINGSINCE1918
.4~swer: The Scriptures do J,ot so in,lieate. On the Ouest’io~: ])Jd spirit-begetting cease in 19187
co,Jlralt’3" , there will be many inhabita]~t~ in the land. ,-Ins,we,r: No. The best evidence that it did not is
While dmfl)tless the time of trou’ble will cause the death ll~e fact that some have come to a knowledge of the
of great multitudes, yet the Lord .:lesus plainly said truth since 1918, made a full consecration, and show
tha’c runny would be brought through the trouble and every evidence of having been beg,qtten of the holy
saved. (M:atthew 24: 9,1, 22) This is eorrohor~lted spirit. At a recent convention at Los Angeles thirty-
the prophet Zechariah stating that two parts shall be four symbolized their consecration. Amongst these was
cut off: and die and the third part shall be brought an old man who said he had l)een for seventy-eJght
through the trouble. These parts evidelltly do not mean years without a Bible, and who since ]918 heard the
equal divismns; nor could the ~,wo imrts thn.t are cut truth for the frst time, consecrated and symbolized his
off mean the little flock and the great company class. eonseerqtion, manifesting the faith and trust of a child
On the contrary, it seems reasonable to conclude ’dmt of God and the evidences of one who has been accepted
the two parts that will be cut off represent two clnss(:s, of the Lord. Thm’e are maW instances of those coming
namely, one a class that willingly perverts the tl’tJill to a knowledge of the truth since the above date. No
when they know better; and the other class, those who one is warranted in saying that spirit-begetting ceased
e.’,ploit the people and prey upon them to gratify their in 19].8; nor is there any evidence yet apparent as to
o~mselfish desires. The Psalmist indicates the class that just when it will ee,%e. It seems quite reasonable that
will be brought through the trouble, saying: "Blessed as long as there is an opportunity for any one who is
is he that considereth the poor: the Lord will deliver running for a crown to fall away there would be some
him in time of trouble. The Lord will preserve him, one begotten of the spirit to take the phce of such a
m)d keep him alive; and he shall be blessed lqmn the one. Any one who comes to a knowledge of the truth
earth." (Psalm 41: 2) The class of people hi Chri~ten- now should proceed to consecration; for eonseeralion
dam who are now hearing the message concerning the is nhvays in order. We do not eonseer’fl, e to get a eer-
Lord’s kingdom and who are striving to do right, deal Lain prize, Inlt our consecration is to do the will of
justly with their neighl)ors, sc’e.m to be indicated l)y the God: and we shmfld joyfully leave to him to g,’aut
above Sc,’ipture as the ones who will be brought through x~hnfsom’er reward and blessi,g he sees is for our good
m~d the first ones hawng opportunity for j’estoration and to his glory.
there was no advantage to them in all they were doing for ment folloxxs ilulaediutely, as the context shows. Verse 3
God. They said, thel’erore, that he was not ;t God of right- tells th;tt he shall ~tt as tile relim.’r of silxer; that tlmll
eou,m.ss nnd judgment, and thqt those who did evil pleased shah be disclosed true sons of Le~i; that these shall be
him helter than lhose who conducted thelu~elve~ as lU’ol)erlY I~Ul’gc(I ill order Ihalt :t Irue offering ill l’ighleoH..,lless may
as they did.--Mahlehi 3: t4,15. be presented to the l,ord.
To ~tll apl)enranees it would seem as if the ealhng ;rod
BLIND TO TIIE TRUTH selection of Israel according to the flesh had been a f;lilure.
rEh~:y forgot the obligations of their covenant. :l:hey were Their hal:ion fell from ils high estate; their prieslhoud
glad Io have all the bh,s.~ings it bronght, lair no! il8 with- into degradation st) deep that -’tt the ti,ne of our Lord’s
holdings, its cilastlsen)ents and cnrses. They forgot, too, al)l~eur:mee alnongsr them he ch:trged their leaders ~il.h
tirol h/ek of favor did not mean lhat God had forsak’.:n being whiled sepuh:hres full of eorruption; and said that
them. lint, on the contrary, th:lt he was by these eireum- their very endeavors to proselytize only sm’ved to make
stam:es seeking to draw them aga[ll LO himself. I t was converts who hecame twofold more children of Oehenna
because God was righteous that lhese unloward providences than Ihey themselves. But the coming of the Lord served
eanle upon them. Here is an awful example oe sell-satis- to discover some ~llose hearts were right towards hiHt;
faction, of worship which has no heart in it. Indeed, true some sons of Levi were found worlhy to be called to be
wov.-hip of God is never imssible to the self-sntistied Ileart; I)rm~(s iu the higher order of Melehisedee.
for suel, will bring offerings to the Lord, but will not
worship in fl contrite spirit. TWO FULFILLMENTS
The Golden Text is very pleasant reading in this con- But Malachi’s prophecy looks beyond tile p,lrli;ll ful-
nee(ion. It is a pleading word from him who h’ts been fillment nt our Lord’s lir~l :ldvent, and forward lo tile time
wronged: "l{eturn m~to me :rod I x~ill return irate yon." when MPssiah should conic in glory and strength, and wllen
gilt once again conies the Sltllle lUmu~r of rejoinder, "Where- he should .judge nnlongst his people. ’12he lnessengcr, .John
in sh:tll we return?" They were ahnost hopeh.,ss. Now the the :Baptist, who preceded .Tesns, the Me~s,:nger of the cove-
Lord touches the weak spot: "Bring ye all tin., tithes into mint. l)religure.s a gre’tter messenger [the church] preceding
the .-.torehouse, that there may be meat in mine house, and the Lord in power, and the work which was then done in
prove me now herewith, saith the Lord of hosts, if I will Israel represents a greater work to be done In Christendom.
not open you the windows of heaven, and pour you out at We know lhe Lord is now present, and we know ulso th;tt
blessing, that there shall not be room enough to receive it." he has had his nmssenger preparing the way for hinl. Now,
(Chapter 3: 10) They were holding something back! Let once again, the time of judgment Ilas eolne; again his pro-
them bring tlmir dues to hitu and they should soon prove fessed people are tried as by fire, and the tr.ue-hcarted sons
hinl ; and he would bless them as his people in the sight of of Levi are I)eing gathered together for service. The day
tim nations. that barns as an oven is upon tile worhl; the fierce heat is
1-1ere is a lesson for spiritual Israelites. Does there seem eonsmning the proud things of the earth and all the insti-
to be a lack of heaven’s blessings, a want, almost a barren- tutions of this present evil world.
ness in experience? ’£hen first of all let us see if we are
But tile heat of this day is to Some ns the Sun oC l¢i;~ht-
withholding anything from the Lord--something of our
eonslless rising with healing ill his wings: and thos(., who
conseeration. I£ not, then our experience is only a test o£ are able to stand the fierce heat of testings find themselves
faith which will be productive of further spiritual blessings. very specially blessed of the Lord: they "grow up as calves
’~lle prol)heey intimates that Isr-tel was not prepared to of the slall." (Chapter 4:2) These are to I)e nsed of
obey. They said it was useless to serve God; ’for the proud
Lord in his work of judgment. The l’rophet says of thelu,
were happy and those who worked wickedness were set up’ "Ye shall tread down the wicked; for they shall be ,sims
In power. nnder tt,e soles of your feet in tile (lay that I shall do this,
"I WILL SEND MY MESSENGER" saith the Lord of hosls." (Chapter 4: 3) ’l’h’is seems clearly
But ffehovah will not forsake his people, nor his temple, to show the triulnptl of the righteous over the wicked in
but will himself undertake their salvation. "Behold I will tl,is d:LV of judgment.
semi my messenger, and he shall prepare the way before The Lord says that not only will he distinguish I)(.’tx~een
me: and the I,ord, whom ye seek, shall suddenly come to those who serve him, and those who serve him not, but that
his temple, even the messenger of the covenant, whom ye his people shall discern these facts. God wilt not only
delight in: behold, he shall come, saith tile Lord of hosts." vindicate his people, but he will give them the work of
(Malachi 3:1) Did they really seek the Lord? Did they smiting the things that are wicked in his sight. This is a
really delight in the Messenger of the covenant? No douht phase of the work which, till recently, has not been fully
this is writlen ironically; for the Prophet intinlates lhis disclosed. This passage is in hal’n~ony with tnany other
will be a time of judgment, and he a~Rs: "Who In;~y abide scriptures, ns for instance, Psahn 149: 8,9: "To bind their
the day o[ his coming, nnd who sh-tll stnnd when he ap- kings with chains, and their nobles with fetters of iron;
peareth?" (Verse 2) The people have questioned the way to execute upon thenl tile judgment written: this honor
of God; they shall then question no longer, lSut, in mercy haxe all his saints." How sweet to us who live in these
to th(.q,I, a messenger shall be sent to prepare the way for strenuous days is Mnl:tel’ti’s word that tile Lord has a
the presence. Because the name Malachi me;ms nlessellger record of those that fe;tr him, aud that think upon his
critics have suid lhat Malaelli is speaking off himself. There name! (Nehenliah 3:1G) There is so much profession
is no need to think this, though it may be MIowed that serxiH,__, him, so milch outward show, that those who are
Mahmhi, the Lord’s, messenger, was in some respects typieal real in their heart-service to the lmrd have their names
of Ihe Messenger who was to be sent; even as we amy recorded in heaven. This is not the Book of Life, bnt a
properly consider Nehemiah as a figure of tim one who boor of relnemhranee which God keeps, and in which are
should saddenly come and work swift reforms. recorded tile nHmes of those who are loyal in heart to hhn.
Th,tt this w;~s prophe.tie of oar Lord’s day is shown very (l:slher 6: 1) The sin of hypocrisy, of nmRing mere pro-
clearly by our Lord himself, who declared that to a certain l’essmn to serve for reality of love "rod service, has ever
extent John the F,;tptist fnllilh’d the oilier of forerunner. been u troubler in Israel. The human heart seeRs its own,
John, the Lord’s nmssenger, prepared the way for Jesus, mid it has been content if it eouhl "~ppear to worship. The
the more glorious Messenger. Whenever he appears jude- only cure 1or tl~iS is to heartily seek the Lord.
¢rh, WATCH TOWER
There is a close correspondencybetween Malachi’sdays and all those who make professionof service,but who are
and ours. Thosed:lys when he wfls sent fls a messengerto not truly his, will sm’elyfind themselvesscorchedby the
a hypocritical pcoph.’, and our days, correspond: Th(. ]na]’l{ed fierce heat.
fe~lttn’cs ~l]’e Lhose of ],:mdiec;i --ln,Ic}l ])l’OfeS...i~H, litIle IVe lank be.~nnd this time el" jmlgment ll})l}ll the church,
rcalily; SO l,l,,eh so lhnt pt’(ffcssi,m ]m¢, been Si(’l{,q}Jll~ to real ;lll(l llro/,’~sed. ~lnfl bey,fin] Ihe llnlc {if ll’{)l, hle ,lpOU
God, and c;nl-:’d him (to uge the vivid words of Scripture) tile "~ol’l(l to lhnt d;ly when l,he Slln of lIJghte(tltSlu.ss will
to spew his false church out of his l, iOl,lh. shine with hea’lin~ up, m nil, ;roll the pure offering o1~
Elijah has given his warnh~g nlessage, and the church Mulnchi’s e:l]’licr x~,,,’(l (Chapler 1: 31) will ascend to
gave little heed. Nowtim time of fierce judanlent has c, mm; praise of Ihc G~),I Of heaven.
the systems of" error are being consumed I)el~ot’e out’ eyes; Our privileges tire gre:ll, both of knowing and doing.
Calm in tim imur of buoyant he-tlth, Calm me, my God, and keep me e’tlm,
C’dm In the hour of pain. Soft resting on thy breast;
Cahn in my poverty or wealth, Soothe me with holy hymn and psalm,
Calm in my loss or gain. Ala(I bid my spirit rest.
--Bonar.
271
International Bible StudentsA sociation Classes
and5~udic5
I~cdurc~ b~Tr4vclincj
Br~rca-~
BROTHER M. A. HOWLETT
BROTHER T. E. BARKER Dayton,Ohio.................. Sept. 14 Jefferson City, Me......... Sept. 21
Knightstown, Ind .......... "’ 15 Sedalin, Mo.................... 22
Newcaslle. Pa ............... Sept]4 Oil City, Pa..................... Sept. 21 Danville,Ill ..................... " 17 Kansas City, Me ............. 24
West Middlesex, Pa ......... " 15 :~amestown,N. Y ............. " 22 ])ecatlir, Ill ..................... " 1S Leavenworth, Karts ......... " 25
Farrell, Pa....................... " 17 Warren,Pa ..................... ’ 24 " 19 Lawrence,l,~ans ............. " 26
" 25 East St. Louis, Ill .........
Silaroll, Pa .................... " 17 Salamanca.N. Y ............. St. Louis,]%io................. " 20 Topeka, Kans................. " 27
Youngstown, Ohio .......... " ]8 Bradford,Pa ................... " 26
Meadvlile, Pa ........... Sept. 19, 20 Olean, N. Y .................... " 27
BROTHER S. MORTON
Zanesville, Ohio ............ Sept. 14 Morgantown, %V. Va ....... Sept. 20
BROTHER E. F. CRIST Cambridge, Ohio ............ " 15 Brandonviile, Vtr. Ya. Sept :2i 22
Bellaire, Ohio................ " 16 Fairnlont, ~,V. Va ......... Sept. 24
Sept. 15 Port Dover,Ont ............. Sept. 22 Wheeling,~V. Va............. " 17 Clarksburg. ~:. Va ......... ’" 24
Wel|and, Ont ................. " 24
Niagara Falls, 0nt ......... " 17 Simcoe,Ont ..................... lhn’ton, W.Va................. " 18 %Vaihlee,V¢. Va ............ " 25
St. Catilcrines, Ont ......... " 18 Tilsonburg, Ont ............. " 25 Reevesville, W. Vn ......... " 19 Parkershurg, W. V,h. Sept 2(;, 27
Bcamsville, Ont ............. " ]9 Ay]mer,Ont..................... " 26
])unnville, Ont................. " 20 St. Thomas,Ont ............. " 27
" 21 Bridgetown,Ont ............. " 28 BROTIIER G. R. POLLOCK
Caledonia,0nt .................
Windsor,Ont ................. Sept. 14 Kitchener, Ont ............... Sept. 22
Chathanl, Ont ................ " 15 Toronto, Ont ............... "’ 24
J. ESHLEMAN London,Ont ............. Sept. 17, 18 Trenton,Ont ................... " 25
BROTHER A. " 26
Stratford, Ont ............... Sept. 19 Belleville, Ont .................
Muneie,]nd .................... Sept. 14 ClayCity, Ill ................... Sept. 23 V¢oodstock,Ont ............... " 20 Kingston, Ont ................. " 27
Anderson,Ind ................ " 15 Flora, Ill ........................ " 24 Galt, Ont........................ " 21 Gananoque, Ont ............. " 28
Indianapolis, Ind ............. " 17 East St. Louis, Ill ..... Sept. 25, 27
Terre ~laute Ind ........... " 18 St. Louis, Me................. Sept. 27
Sept. 20.21 Flat River. Me............... " 29 BROTHEl{ V. C. RICE
Sullivan, Ind .............
Bobinson,Ill ................. Sept. 22 Farmington, Me............ Oct. 1 Cincinnati, Ohio ........... Sept. 14 Melnphls. Tenn ......... Sept. 22, 24
Louisville, Ky ................. " 15 Forrest Cily, Ark ........... Sept. 25
E,vilnsvllie, ]nd .......... 17 Little Rnck. Ark ............. ’" 26
BROTHER A. M. GRAHAM Bchnont, Ind ............. 8el,l IS, 19 Cal)in Creek, Ark........... " 27
]~Iounds.Ill ................... Sept. 20 I,’ort Snnih. Ark. Sept. 2S, Oct. 1
Sept. 14 Olean,N. Y..................... Sept. 24 Anna.Ill ........................... 21 T.tnlaha, Okla ................. Sept. 29
Mansfield, Ohio.............. "
Youngstown, Ohio .......... " 15 Allentown. N. Y ............. 25
Jamestown, N. Y ............ " 17 Bolivar, N. Y ................... " 2G
Sept. 1S. 19 Elmira,N.Y ..................... " 27 BROTHER R. L. ROBIE
Clymer, N. Y .............
Salamanca, N. Y ............. Sept. 20 Ithaca, N. Y................. " 28 Sepl 14, I5 Warren,Olfio .................. Sept. 2-}
Cortland, N. Y ................. " 29 Lorain, Ohio.............. " 25
FrankHnvllle, N. Y, Sept. 21, 22 Elmirn, Ohio ............... Sel,3t. 17 Nilcs. Ohm...................
Wellington, Ohio ........ 18 Youngstown, Ohio ......... ’" 26
Akron, Ohio ............ Si;I,I. i9, 20 Colniilliiltml, Ohi. ............ " 27
BROTHER J. HEMERY l(ent, OlilO................... Sept. 21 East ]’;tie,fine, Oliio ...... " 24
Freedo.I Sta. Ollio ...... " 22 Lisbon,Ohio.................... " 29
Brooklyn, N. Y ......... Sept. 3, Indianapolis, Iml ........... Sept. 22
Cedar Point, Ohio .... " 5-12 Cincinnati. OIH0...... Sept. 23.24
Detroit. Mich............. " 14, 15 Cohlmlms. Ohio ........ 25, 26 BROTIIER T. 1t. THORNTON
Chicago,1]1 ............... " 16, 17 PittMmrgh, Pa ............ Sept. 27 Sept. 14 Lexington, Ky ............... Sept. 21
" 18, 19 Cumlmrlal.I, Md............. " 28 Marion.Ohio.................. "
St. Louis, Me............. l~amillmLOhio .............. " 15 Jeffel’~on, Jnd ................. 22
Louisville, Ky. .......... " 20, 21 l’hihuleiphia, Pa ............. " 29 Louisville, ](y ................. " 17 NewAll.my, Ind ............. " 24
Jeff(,.rsonlox~ n. Ky ......... " 18 Sonora,Ky....................... " 25
Slmlb.wille, KS’............... " 19 Elizabethtown, Ky ......... " 26
Franktort, Ky ................. " 20 B.ine5,Ky......................... " 27
BROTIIER M. L. tlERR
Auburn,Ind ................... Sept. 14 Gillespie. Ill ................... Sept. -°2
" 15 St. Loui.~. Me................ " 24 BROTHER S. H. TOUTJIAN
Garrett, lnd ....................
Chicago,II1 ..................... " 37 East St Louis. Ill ......... 24 Smith lgond, Ind ............. Sept. 14 IowaCity, Ia ................ Sept. 21
3eliot. Ill ......................... "’ 18 3effer~on City, Ma......... " 25 " 15 Marengo,Ia ..................... " 22
" 19 Sednlia, M~.................. " 26 Michigan City, Ind ........ " 24
Blm)mington,Ill ............. Chicago,Ill .................. " 17 Des Moine.~, Ia ............
Springfield, Ill ........... Scl)t. 20, 21 Kansas City, Me ........... " 27 " 18 Indianola,Ia ................... " 25
Ashton,Ill ....................... Charitoa, la ............. Sept. 2(;, 27
Chnton,In ...................... " 19
Davenport, Ia ............... " 20 RedOak, Ia ................... Sept. 28
BROTHER W. M. HERSEE
Woodstock,0nt ............. Sept. 17 ]’eterboro, 0nt .............. Sept. 26 FOR TIlE BLIND
]]nnlilhln, Ont................. " 20 ilavelock. 0nt ................. " 27
]Hlltan West. Ont ........... " 21 Ca,’lelnu Pl:,ce. Ont ....... " 28 A linlited number of copies of the "Millions" book in the ]iraille
" 22 Ottawa, Ont ..... Sept. 29, Oct. t for tile blind are now eli hand :it the Sticioty’s oifice. Thc,~e are
]IV,~lnl,ton, Ont ..............
’j’otienlmm, Ont ............. " 24 ]~lonh’enl.Que................... Oct. 2 not for satle bat will be loaned to tile blilld to read and ]):l";S on
Claremont, Ont ............. " 25 Cranby,Que....................... " 3 to sonio one else. ’J’lie numlmr is so linlited llmt we cannot distrib-
life tilenl genernlly
PRAYER MEETING TEXTS FOR NOVEMBER, 1922
I.B-S’A. BERE’AN
BIBLE
STUDIES Novmnber 1: CIIRlSq2 I~IY CAPTAIN; "II became hilu . . . to nlaka
the captain of their salvation
ferings."--Hebrews 2 : 10.
perfect through suf-
ByMeans0F "The Plan of the Ages" November 8: CHRIST 3IY YOKEFELLOW : "Take my yoke upon
you."--Matthew 11 : 29.
Chapter IX: Ransom and Restitution November 15 : CY~RIST MY EXAMPLE: "Leaving us nn example,
that ye should follow his stepu."--i Peter 2: 21.
Week of Nov. 5....Q. 26-33 Week of Nov. 19...Q. 41-47 November 22 : Cmtls’±, MY,~HEPllERD : "Now . . , that great shep-
Week of Nov. 12....Q. 34-40 Week of Nov. 2(;...Q. 48-54 herd of the sheep . . . make you perfect."--Hebrews
Question beol~ on "The Divine Plan", 15c pastpald. 13 : 20, 21.
November 29: Cmt~sT l~IY JUDGE: "~V0 shall stand before th0
Judgment seat of Christ."--Romans 14 : 10.
., ’,,.’.’! :if: -.
CONTENTS
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS SACRED MISSION
T H/Spreseuled
Journal =7?. one o~. the prime factors or instruments in the system oE ]Stble instruction or "Seminary Extel~slon".
in all parts of tile eivdized worhl b~ tie ~VA’ICII ’~’OV~EIL £~II;LE ~: ¢~nACT SOCIETY, chartered A.D. ]8S4, "Eor the Pro-
now being
motion of Cbrislutu Kuowledge". It not only serves as a cht.~s room whcrn ]:lille stuOents may meet in tile study of tale divine Word but
also as a channel of Ct)mlllanlc:ltiOU through which they imi~; be reached with announcements of the Society’s eoDventions and of the
coming of its tr:tvchng representatives, styled "J_’ilgrizns’*, and refreshed with reports of its conventions.
Our "V:erean Lesson,," are topical rehearsals or reviews of our Society’s published STUDIEDmost entertainingly arranged, and very
helpful to all who wnnhL memt the only lmnorary degree which the Society accords, viz., Vcrbi Dei Minister iV. D. M.), which translated
into English is Minister of God’~ 1Vmd. Our tL’eatment of the International Sunday School Lessons is specially for the older Bible
students and te:tchers. P,y .~ome this feature is considered indispensable.
Tills journul stnn(is firmly for the defense of the only true foundation of tile Christian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
--redeml)lton throu’=h the precious blootl of "tile man Cinist Jesus, v~’ho gave himself a ranso,~ [a corresponding price, a substitute] for
nil". (l J_’eter L:].’): I ’£intotliy 2. (;) F, tfilding up on this sure fmmdation the gold, salver and precious stones (1 Corinthians 3
:]5; ’2 :peter Z:5-11) of tile Word of God, its further mission is to "nlake all see ~hat is tile fellowship of tile lnystery wltich...ha~
been hid ill Cod .... to the intent tlmt now might be made kaown by the chnrch the manifold wisdom of God"--"which in other ages
was not nmde known unto the s,ms of men as it is now revealed".--]~phesians 3 : 5-9, 10.
It st;in,Is free from all parlics, sects and creeds of men, wlule it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
subjection to the will of God in Christ, "Is expressed in lhe Italy Seriptures. It is thus free to declare bol.,lly whatsoever the Lord
]lat]l spol~en--according to the tlivine wlsdoul granted unto us 1o nnderstand bis utteran(’es. Its atlitude is not dogmatic, but confident;
for we know whereof we affirm, treading with imphcit faith upon the sure promises of God. It is held as a trust, ~o be nsed only in his
ser,,lce ; hence our dent,inns reluh~ e to Wll.qt nmy llllfl v,’llfl[~ may not appear ]n its coJulnns lnaSl; he according 1o oar judgment of lli~
good pleasure, the leaching of hl,~ 1.Vord, for 1he npimihl4n~" of ]ds people in grace and knowledge. And we not only invite but urge our
readers to prove all its utterances by the infallible Word to which referen(~e is eonstanl]y made to fac]htate such testing.
TO US THE SCRIPTURESCLEARLY
TEACH
~hat the church is "tim temple of the living God", peculiarly "his workmanship" ; ~hat its construction has been in progress througbouC
the gospel age---e~er since Christ became the wo:hl’s Redeemer and the Chief Corner Stone of his temple, througlt which, wheh
tiniMmd, God’s blessing shall come "to all people", and they find access to him.--1 Corinthians 3:16, 17; Ephesians 0:’)0-’)9;
Genesis 28 : :]4 ; Galatians 3 : 29. - - -"
That meantime the chiseling, shaping, and polishing of consecrated believers in Christ’s atonement.for sin, progresses; and wt~en the
last of the~e "li~ ing stones", "elect and precious," shall have been made ready, the great .Muster Workman will bring all logether
in the first resurrection ; and the 1staple shall be filled with his glory, and be the meeting place between God and men throughout;
the Millennium.--Ile~elatioa "15 : 5-8.
"-£hat the basis of ]lope, for lhe eburch and the world, lies in the fact lhat "Jesus Cbrist, by the grace of God, ~atte(l death for every
man," "a ransolu for all," and will be "the true light which lighteth epery ma~t that cometh Into the world’s "in due time".--
Ilebrews 2:9; J-ohn 1:9; 1 Timothy 2:5, 6.
~hat the hope of the churclt is that she may be like her Lord, "see bm~ as he is," be "parlakers of the divine nature’,’ and share his
glory as his jolnt-betr.--i John 3:2; John 17:24; Romans 8:17; ’2 I’erer 1:4.
tl.’hat the present mission of the church is the perfecting of the saints for 1he future work of service: to develop in herself every"
grace; to be God’s ~itness to the world ; and 1o prepare to be kings anti pl’leNls ill the next age.--l::piteslaus 4 : 12 ; ~latthew 24:
"14; Re, elation :1: it; 20:6.
~£hat lhe hope for the world lies in the blessings of knowledge and opportumty 1o be bron’-’ it to all by Chri,l’s .Millennial ~ ngdom, the
restitution of all that was lost ill Adam [o all tile w ing d o|,edmnt, at tee bands of t }eir Reueen er and his glorified churehs
whcu all the wd’ully wicked w l be destroyed.--Acts 3:19-23; ]sarah 35.
WATCH
TOWER.
B I B LEG- TRACT
SOCIET/Y The Coavention Colnmittee is doing everythilig iio.~ihlc
18 CONCORD
STREET
~ I~ 5ROOKLVN,~I.~.
U.S’A" to comforhlbly assign those who will attend the convenlion
at Cedar t’oint. Some have writlen eolaplaining :tbout their
FOaEIO,N" OFFICES: British: 34: Craven Terrace. Lancaster Gate,
Lmnlon W. 2; Canadian: 270 Dunda~ St., w., r~orouto, Ontario; assignments. We regrel lhis. No one sltould attend a
Australaslatl" 495 Collins St.. Melbourne, Australia; South A]ri,- convention like this with the expectation of getting every
can: 123 l’lein St., Cape Town, South Afri(’a.
acconmiodaiion to suit his liking. Let us be willing to
~I,E~SE ~*~I)I)RESS TfIE SOCIETY IN EVERY CASE.
nlake the best of everything that we may have tlm greater
YEARLYSUBSCRIPTION PRICE: UNITED STATES..,~1.00 ; CANADAAND blc-sing in our own hearts. Tile ConlmiLlee will not find
~IISCI,:LLANEOUS FOItI,IGN. .~,1 .~0 ; (.~aEAT BUITAIN, ADS’FRALA.NIA,
AND SOUTIt AFRICA~ 88- AlllCrl(’Itll remitt:Ll/(’es shnu|(] be imlde time to answer these letters, as it is a tremendous under-
by Express or I’o~tal Money Orders. nr hy Bank Dri,ft. Canadinu, taking to lllake Lile assigllnlents and oLlter arrangenlents
British, South African, and Australasian remitlnnces should be v.ilh,mt tulnuccssary correspondence.
ola(le to bratlch of)qfJc,~ ollly. I{el|litt.qn(’t~s frg)nl s(illtrere(l foreign
territory may he nmde Io the :Brooklyn oihce, bat by htterna~ional :\ssi~lllHenl’S have been elude for all aeeolnnlodaJions on
:Postal bloney Orders only. Celh, r feint and a great many over in Sandusky; but tile
(Foreion tran~latfons of thi,¢ ]ourn~ll appear in several languages)
:u:(:mnu~o(l~ltions iu Sandusky are e(ln~lly as good as
Editorial Committee: Tbi¢ journal is published under the snpervision Cedar Point. Let us unitedly ask the Lord’s blessing and
of an editoriul COlUnlittee, at least three of whom ilave rend :lnd
appro,, ed as truth eaeb and every article appearing in the~e cohuaus. be content with such things as he gives us, rejoicing in our
r~lle nltnles of tile editorial conunittee are: 3. :F. RUTFIERFORDt privileges.
W. E. ~,’AN AhI.BUREE,J. ITItMI.:IC~-, G. 1~. 1VISITER, E. ~V. BRENISEE.
Terms gO fho~,ord’~Poor: All Bible student8 whoby ree~on of old age or other In- JAMAICA CONVENTION
firmityor adversity,are unableto payfor this journal’will be supphed free if theysend
e, postal card eachl’,~ay stating their ease andrequestingsuch provision. Weare not
onlywilling, butanxious, that all suchbe aa ourhat continuallyandin touch withthe The International Bible Students of Jamaica will have a
Boreasstudies. Convention at Kingston Tabernacle ~oveinber 24 to 2S, in-
~otiee to ~ubscriber8 ¯ )re do not aa a role, send n card of acknowledgmentfor n renews!e~" elusive. For further information please address P. H.
¯ xor ~ ~ew m~b~ri¢~on onne~e pt ~nd entry of ~e~ew~axe I~di~t~d
r-within a monthby ehengoIn expiration date aa l~OWn wraope~ babel.
Davidson, P. O. Box 257, I(ingston, J-amaica, B. W. I.
En~rlda~ .S~¢~ndClamMatter at Br~kllm, N. Y., l~Ito.~l~* und~tat Act ~ Mar~ha~,~. 1$7~.
are exactly as foretold by the prophets--"every man’s Surely one who views conditions in Europe at this
hand against his neighbor." As an illu~.h’ntion: one time can see evidences on every hand of the fulfilhnent
man determines that his neighbor must leave the town of prophecy; that the world has ended; that the ohl
o2" his homein which he lives. He finds five others who order i~ heine destroyed: that Ood’s \-ellgCa.lme is upon
will agree vith him that this man shouhl leave. The the l.’osent order; that the kino’dom is at hand, and
sLx" together go to the markedman’s house a.d g i\ e hm~ the tLmeis he,’c for the people of Godto makeproclama-
so many hours to Dave. 1-[e is not permitted to take tion ol: these facts. Let the I~ord’s dear ehild,’en every-
awayeven his property; and if he does not leave at. the wherebe eneou raged boca use they a re tile o~dyones who
ap]minted time, his homets burned and he is shot. have the messageof pe’.:e aml eonsolabon, the only ones
There is in Ireland an organization known as the ~ h. arc lmhlishiug the me.-..-_age of salvation. Let them
trmlsport workers. They serve notice on the employi,g be earnest and zealaus, then, in continuing the procla-
class as to how much work shall be done and how many mation until the boMsays, "]~nough."
menshall be employed; and these rules must be obeyed. TII’E WORK ABROAD
A few of the men determine that a sh’d<e shall he
called for a certain day. They arm themselves, wait Webelieve the vistt to (h’eat l)ril.ain and Continental
on the employer, and tell him to stop his men Europe has been pleasing to the Lord and has his
workingfor a eel"taht time ; and he is compelledto do it. smile of. approval. The frieml., have been greatly
Manyhomes are being burned and property destroyed, strengthe,ed and. united in action everywhere. They
and many people murdered in cold blood. Because of have expressed the determ~nabon to put forth every
these conditions manyin North Ireland are leaving and possib]e effort in giving the witne.~s of the kingdom.For
movinginto Scotland. It is a veritable reign of terror. some time, however, they have heen short of books; bttt
The spirit of 14olshevism and anarchy is taking hold of nowthis shortage i.~ being overcome.During the l:;tu’o-
the people. While these conditions obtaiu in North pean ~isit co,tracts ~ere ma<h., with \arious publishhlg
Ireland, in South Ireland a guerilla wa_rfare is carried firms for the printing and manufacturing of 1,100,000
vohlllleS o[ ~TUDIES IN THE SCL[IPTUBES, THE ]-[AIIP O1,"
on and M1business is su.~pended. Should this guerilla
warfare eontflme, it is easily seen what will follow. Gin), etc., and now seven pl’intiug establMnnents are
England will be compelled to interfere ; and to put down raphlly turning out these books, and the classes every-
the trouble it will be necessary to conscript her young where are organized for unzh?daction. :i-lad more money
men for military duty. Conscription under present been aw~.ilabb;, a greater number of books would have
conditions is almost certain to produce revolution. It been eontl’mA.ed for. l~,ut we look forward with COllfi-
looks as though it may be the beginning of the breaking deuce that the Lord wilt supply the money as needed
up even in England. Conditions are alarming. It is and will open the way for his people to proclaim the
further evidence of the disintegration of the old order. message of the kingdom as the thne draws nearer to
the dose.
TURMOIL IN EUROPE Twoda.ys at the Lomlonoffice nt going over the details
Smnmingup the situation fll Europe at the present of the work and the organizat..m in Great Britain com-
time, we find the spirit of unrest ever on the increase. pleted this ]hlropcan trip. A happy season of fellowship
In Germanythe two contending parties are at daggers’ was enjoyed with the B,thel Family at London. They
points, w]fite both sides are smarting under the lmrdens are thoroughly united in heart and in action, and possess
imposed hy France and her allies. In Austria and Italy that hurlmlg zeal peeulia.r to the Lord’s house; and we
the mtuntion grows more alarming every day, and a take this occasion, at their request, go conveytheir love
revolution is expected momentarily, in P, ussmthe starv- and be.-.t wishes to the brethren everywhere who read
ing hordes are threatenfllg to SWal’mthrough other ’_I/HF, W.VrCHTOWER. They w~th numyin other parts
paris of Europe. In France and in Roumaniaarrogance are a.pl)reeiating the fact Lhat it is a privilege and not
reigns; while the muttertngs of d~scontent are heard a right to engage in the service o~ the Lord; and that
by those in less favored places. In Great Bl’itain turmoil as ttus appreciation of the privilege increases, joy in-
increases. ’l’hroughout the F;m’opeaneonhnent fl’OllS. creases. The once f.oree, the Bethel Family, and a
time to t.ime arise false Christs, each claiming to be the number of others bade us a loving good-bye at Waterloo
Savior of men; while many other deeep%ive things are Station Saturday morning. M’ter a brief journey to
brought forth to mislead and confuse the people. Indeed, Southampton, the shi 1) was boarded. Another company
it is the time described by the Lord Jesus, ~ hen Satmf,s of brethren had assembled there to express their parting
methods and operahons would be so subtle that they words of love and good cheer; and as our ship steamed
woulddeceive, if 1)ossMe, the very elect. Weaa’e sure, out of the harbor there was a eOltStant waving of hand-
ne.verthelesz, that the elect will not be deceived. The kerchiefs and cries of "good-bye" and "God bless you."
inference must be drawn, however, that there arc some These meeth~gs and partu,gs remind us of the happy
who have walked in the hght of the truth but who wilt thne that will be e.qmrieneed when the Lord’s dear
be deceived by turning their eyes away from tim lighk children have finished their course on this earth and
278
WATCH TOWER
are assembled in heaven with their Head anti ~Iaster has the poet expressed this thought in these lines:
a ltd presented faultless before the throne of God. There "Oh, that glorious heav’nly city l
is now, we feel sure, a closer bond existing between the Oh, tlmt NewJerusalmn!
consecrated throughout the world than has existed for :[low ’twill shine in all its beauty l
a long while, due to the fact of increase([ zeal and love ’Twill be gorgeous as a gem.
for ~l~e Lord and his cruise and for each other. It is Weshall meet in that fair mty;
a blessed thing for them to meet together now. tlow Weshall meet in that fair eity~
much more blessed will it be in the kingdom l Well In the NewJerusalem."
presence; and the time prophecies showed themGod’s llussell for the fur(herance oi’the Lord’s work, has been
],re’pose of gathering his people into unity. These have manifested as clearly as it was previously upon him.
~,ot been disturbed in mind by any of these things. Satan has attempted by many attacks upon this h:ut
The church, the faithhfl, joined heart to heart, said: to break it down; to cause the Lord’s people to believe:
"~’[v tinles are in thy hand; my God, I wish them (1) that Brother Russell was not the only chat,nel by
there." The church realized God had begtm a work, which the Lord would lead his people; and (2) that
and that he would care for it and them; and they OmS(cietv in its organized capacity could not be
waited for the manifestation o£ his will. All such were channel for the l.o,’,l. If Satan could aceoml,hsh his
made stronger in faith by reason of the tests which the object, he had a great ehnuce of leading a large mtmber
loving Father permitted to come upon them, or into o[ the bord’s people aside from their path, and away
which lie brought them. And this will contimm until front the work of. the Lord, whmhhe bates so much
the end of the way; for it is by sttch exercise of faith since it tells of. his o~nl dethro,mment and the o\m-
that the faithful are strengthened. The lnanil~estation throw of his kingdom.
of God’s favor is not seen through ever continuous Somehave allowed themselves to he t,.’ml~ted astray
outward blessings, but in growth of grace, in clarity of on the plea of liberty. This is Sahln’s own cry. With-
understanding, and in strength or character. ottt doubt he was the first whocalled out I’o,’ liberty.
During this time of specml favor to the ehurch Satan }It has always wanted to make out that God’s laws are
has had tavorable oppm’tn,dties and has mingled among a restraint oj2 the proper l,l,orty ot~ the subject. ’t’he
law of love makes11o al)peal to him, nor does it to aa/y
the sons of God. Naturally he has made use o~ the
tests which Godhas permitted to come upon the church, who seek to break away from arrangements made by
and has endeavored to turn them into temptations. We God. For thirty years this cry has been raised in the
church. But those who have accepted the Lord’s ar-
regret to say that he has had a certain measure of
success, l~e has succeeded in beclouding the eyes of rangementsfeel no bondage; they are the 12rcest, happi-
some and in leading them astray. ]n some cases he has est people on earth. ’.l’hclrs ix the liberty of the King’s
had so muchsuccess as to ma.ke his dupes believe that high-road. Those who leave the Lord’s work on the
plea of bondage, t,e themselves up in their o~mideas:
the whole ehnreh has gone wrong, and that the Lord
was no longer in control. No elnld o[ God should allow they become bottnd hand and foot, having neither work
himself to believe such a thing could be possible or that t6 do llor place whereinto labor.
(~od would cease to lead his people. It is not a proper TESTS ’rtlROUG}I FALSE LEADERS
nor a reasonable expectation. Sttch a thing would mean
that Satan had becomeh.’ader o1~ the Lord’s hosts; that Again, bcc~usc the witness of the church in this day
the ohm’oh had £orgotten the voice of its Master, and is to the downfal[ of his empire and the establishment
was listening to that of a charmer. But aesns said: of the kingdomof righteousness, Satan hates both the
"My sheep lmow mv voice, ,lad they follow me." The message and those whodeliver it. J:te seeks to destroy
Lord would not permit Satan to become leader of his both it and them by every means in his power. He has
people, nor could he afford to do so: they must be sure pm’suadedsome that persmmlholiness is the end of all
of their Guide. All ~ho succumb to such temptation desire, and that love for the brethrell is ~che final test.
either have not understood or have forgotten that God In England a holiness movement, which became
is gat.hermg his people together in order that lie may associated ~ ith lVeswiek in Cumberland,led manypro-
do a g,’eat workon c:l rth, "rod that they maybe ready for
fessing Christians to feel that they had at last obtained
an entrance into the kingdom. the acme of Christian experience; but we do not know
of any who were associated with that movementwho are
’FILE TEST OF LOYALTY not in some measure opponents of the truth. They
One of the chief temptations to the dmrch has been sought a mystic union with Christ, but would not listen
in respect to loyalty to God’s arrangements for it. Since to their Master’s voice through his messenger. Some
the days whenin the providences of Godour late beloved who have been persuaded to this idea have separated
leader cameinto prominenceas the chief representative themselves from their brethren. Little companies meet
of the Lord’s people and stood be£ore them as "that together to build up cadl other in love! Self predomi-
servant" who had charge of his Master’s goods, every nates; the true labor of the church is lost sight of;
indmation of the Lord’s providence has shown that tlte unity of fellowship is gone. Such forget the purpose
God gave Brother Ilussel[ to the dmreh to be as a of God, and ignore the fact of the Lord’s providences
mouthpiece for him; and those who clainl to have and of Jesus’ presence in the harvest field as Chief
learned the truth apart from Brother Russell and h,s l{eapcr. Thvrc is no real difference between their posi-
writings have been manifested by the Lord as deceivers, tion and that of those wholived in the days ln’eeceding
ready to lead the tlock of Godin their ~av. ihe ln’C.~C,CC;and. indeed, the darkness of the dark ages
Since Brother lluss(:lt’s death the evidence of Clod’s begins to creep over tlmm.
favor upon the Society, which was organized by Brother Of late some have been led astray from tile Lord’m
WATCH TOWER Y.
work by follox~ ing the teaching of a ])r..Bu]]ing’er of was the test of all doctrines. In the same way we can
London. Weplainly mention this name because or the truly say that the fact of the Lord’s presence as Chief
clear evidmmes that Satan has attempted to use this I~eaper is tim test of all works. Whatever is ~,ot in
man and his teaching to take attention away from the harmony vith thin fact is not in harmony with fl~e
LoMand his wm’k. ’_l’he rexerend gentleman Lad a will of God. This has been abundantly demonstrated
great store of Bible knowledge, but he was bound with by facts both outside and inside the harvest work.
many of the fetters of mfllc<loxy. A non-believer in Since 1878 the nominal church has mtdeavored to raise
eternal torment, he was, ajq)arently, afraid to proclaim manyrevivals o2 religion, but every e~ort has been a
the truth. Indeed he was an opponent of ]~rotbe:’ failure. The a%resaid Keswick movementto holiness,
llussell’s work, and did not hesitate to spen,k evil of it. and kindred movementselsewhere, have failed to bring
l~ublisher of a. paper devoted to proloheey and Bible live to lhc cast-off church. Let every doctrine be t.’.sIed
knowledge, he led ma,v into his views. Seeing clearh by the ransom; every direction of the Lord’s work hy
the union of the church with the Lord, as &~r as tha~ the fact of the parousia, and by the eognat.e fact that
is possible to one whoholds the doctrine of the trinity, the Lord Jehovah has revealed his purposes through a
he nevertheless held to the trinity. Fre believed that set means or channel; and there will be desh’e m.lther
the Lord would return in bodily form. for fresh teachers nor for fresh facts of knowledge.-ave
Those who have lef~ the truth and taken him as as the Lord may fm’ther open his Word. Newlenders
ga~ide of necessity must give up the truth respecting will not be sought for, nor will self-appoi.ted ones be
the Lord’s return: There could be no return in 1874; able to tempt the ,-.heep astray. If anyoneallows himself
therefore there has been no harvesting, and it hollows to think that he can make progress while going back
that Brother Russell was altogether mistaken in his to the ohl teaehi,~gs of orthodoxy, it is manifest th’4 he
work, and that the church has been misled respecting has lost his sense of progress and is in danger ot be-
Brother Russell’s position as the Lord’s messenger te cominglilind. Godis em~stantly manifesting hi.-. 1 h,ss-
Laodicea. ings upon M1whofollow in his clearly marked~ uy ~ ith
Brother Russell used to say the doctrine of the ransom ]lumility and grace.
GOOD SOLDIERS
"Thou therefore endure hardmss, as a good. soldier of Jesus Christ."--2 Thnothy 2: 8.
A CHRISTIAN must follow an active course. ~e the "m~k of the beast in their foroln’ads." Those who
emmetbe lukewarmor indifferent. I-Iis course are active in giving their best endeavors in support of
nm~t not be negative, but positive. All the il- Satan’s organization have the mark in their hands.
lustrations given by the Apostle lead to this conclusion. These are his active soldiers.
The i]lustration here is that of a soldier who renders The Lord’s organization is made up of those who
service acceptable to his captain. have volunteered to put themsehes nnder the ]eadership
Throughout the gospel age this rule of activity and of Christ Jesus, the Captain of our salvation. This they
loyalty has obtained, but it is partimflarly emphasized did by an mleonditional consecration. At the thne o~
at this time. The reason is, we have reached the end of making their consecration the full duties to be per-
the world. The new order is here; the kingdom of formed were not knm~m.As each one thus enli~t.-d has
heaven is at hand. The King of kings is present, di- increased in knowledgeand the graces of the Sl,,’it. he
recting his forces. The final conflict is on betwe~t has had a keener appreciation of the Lord’s organization.
the devil’s organization and the Lm’d’sorganization. Nowlie sees that this organization of the Lord is made
up of Jesus Christ and the membersof his body, those
ARMIESOF DARKNESS AND OF LIGHT whohave joined him in glory be>ond the vail nnd those
The devil’s visible m’ganization is composedof three whoare yet on this side. The3 see that because o[ his
dements, which constitute the kings of the earth. Kings presence and because he is beginning his reig’n and over-
thus used in the Scriptures do not mean the men who throwing Satan’s kingdom, Satan’s organ izatio, is mak-
wear crowns upon their heads literally. The term refers ing a desperate eonnter attack. It is a war hetween
to the ruling class factors, made up of three elements, two mighty forces; and every lmmanbeing is hein,a’ en-
to wit~ big business, big po]iticians, and big ecclesiastics, listed in the battle on one side or the other--m~ ,%tlnn’s
mdted for the purpose of controlling mankind. The side either actively or sympathetically, or on the L,u’,l’s
nmster-mind behind this organization is Satan. He has side either actively or sympathetically. ’Phe victory will
subtly induced many of the masses to believe in and be with the Lord. ’_Phi= is plainly recorded; for he is
sympathize with his organization visible. This they do Lord of lords and King of kin,~’s, m.~d the time has come
because they have no knowledge that it is Satan’s or- for his kingdom. Whenthe battle is over and the vietory
ganization. Because of this s)nnpathy with the visible won, there will be certain victors ~,th Christ Jesus;
loart of his organization, namely the "beast," they have and these will be not only the called and chosen, but
WATCH TOWER
the ones who have stood the final test of faithfulness These questions each one who l~ows the truth must
by proving their loyalty. answer £or himself; and by the Lord’s standard it is an
The text likens the one who will be approved to a easy matter for each one to determ;ne.
good soldier. The inference to 1oe drawn is that there
MUCH TO ENDURE
arc some soldiers who are not good; therefore do not
measure xlp to the standard. The latter will be those The inference to be drax~ n f,’om the wordsof the t~ex"t
who sympathize with the Lord and his cause, bat who is that the goodsoldier will ha,re lnueh tO endure ; hence
for fear or indifference or someother excuse .Nil to he he must not only be active 1)ut must develop fortitude.
active aim zealous. A good soldmr is not only o.e who The new creature who is a soldier of the Lord has a
has enlisted and, started in the warfare on the m(le of the fleshly organism which wars against the mind of the
Lord, but one x~ho is also active and zealous, and joyful spirit. Satan attempts to fight hinl through his fleshly
in his activity. organism. ]t therefore requires patient enduralme to
keep oneseKactively engaged in the Lord’s service and
WHAT A GOOD SOLDIER MUST DO resohitcly endure tile hardships of the warfare. Nat-
The soldier of Jesus Christ is not left in doubt as to urally the body becomes tired. Naturally one shrinks
what hc nmst do. First he has a description of the from ridicule and persecution, taunts and join’s; but
armor he must wear, as given by the apostle Patti. all these thi,gs must be endured cheerfully. This en-
(Ephesians 6:10-18) l{e nmst not only be fully armed durance mns~ conbnue not just for a while but unto
but ];r’/incd in the use of his arms, and he must be a the end. It will ~ot do to say that we have been active
soldier of the truth and the truth only. lRis weapon in the service for a few or many years and may quit
o1" warfare is the messageof truth, designated the sword now. In diseussi~g the same matter in connection with
of the spirit. the end of the world and what should be done at this
Satan with his organization ~s dospcratel 5 striving time, Jesus our Captain said: "I-Ie thai, endureth to
to keep the masses of the pcolJJo in his service by fraud the end shall b, saved." By that we should understand
and deceit and by keeping them in ignorance of the that i,he good soldier must endure, and endure cheer-
1ol,..ssing’s to be secured through the Lord’s kingdom. fully, until the end of his racecourse; hence to the end
’the method of attack by the soldiers of Christ Jesus of the battle.
is to enlighten the people coneel’ml~g the presence of Dear brethren, the o3 es of the hosts of heaven are upon
tlw I< t~g, and therefore the end of Satan’s empire, and us with promised assistance for every actual need, de-
the gl’,at blessing tb, at shall follow shortly: whenthe siring our success ; the enemyhost are against us, desir-
Lord will grant unto them a full opportunity for lib- ing our defeat. Let each one of us, therefore, gird up
erty, etol’nal ]ire and happiness. the loins of our mind; see to it that our armor is in
The soldier of ..Tesns Christ, therefore, is engagedin good eondition, that we are tr, iued in its use, and go
a joyful work because he is doing good to his fellow forth to battle with joyful hearts, remembering the
creatures; and this work under the leadership of our Apostle’s admonition: "In due season we shM] reap if
captain, Christ Jesus, will lead to a complete deliver- we relax not." Rememberthat our method of a,ttaek
anee of the masses of manldnd and the complete de- is by putting the truth into the minds of the people.
stroction of Satan’s um’ighteous organization. The good The Lord has provided that this may be done by tlle
soldmr, therefore, will actively and zealously engage in printed page, by word of mouth, and by personal in-
availing himself of every opportunity to make known thtenee. Let us lose no opportunity to give this witness
the messageof truth, declaring the da.v of (lad’s ven- to our neighbors, and to those in the district which Js
geance, pointing to the presence of the new m’der under atssigned; and even though it entails nnleh hardness,
the glorious Xing, and binding up the ln’okoll-hearted remember the words of the Apostle and of the Lord
by showingthe waythat leads to life and hal,l~ilws,: Jesus, and endm’e eheerhllh’.
Are you a soldier? You mu.-.t answer this question There is not a possH~ility of a doubt as to the result.
in the affh’mative. Youare a sohlicr on one side of this Blessed is our portion nowof being soldiers of the I,m’d
eonfliet or the other. There is no mnldle ground. Either Jesus Christ. Great will be our joy when the lmttle is
actixely or syn,pathetieally you are on one side. Are ended and when, by his grace, we may stand victorious
yon a sohher of Christ Jesus? If so. what Idnd of with him and be counted as amongst those who were
soldier are you--a goad soldier m" an indifferent one? faithful and loyal to the end..
spi,’Lt hath made yon overseers, to feed the church of that each one will have a sincere desire that the Lord’s
God which he hath purchased with his own blood". will be done; that no one will electioneer for his side
(Acts 20: 28) Whereveran nnscripLural course has been or against the other side, because they will have no
taken with i’cferc,~ce to class studies t,’oublc has re.-.ult- s~dcs. F.ach one will come with an open nfind and an
ed. St. Paul says: "I suffer not a womanto teach, nor honest heart, praying the Lord to direct. Eadl one
to usurp autho,’ity over the man, bat to }m in silence, thus acting according to the Lord’s spirit, tl~e vote of
[or Adamwas ffirst formed, then Eve; and Adams~as the clas~ Lhen should be taken as the voice of the Lot4.
no~ deceived, ]ml. the womenbeing deceived was in the and the minority shotdd readily acquiesce.
transgressimt". (1 Tintothy 2:12-1-1)This Sempture I t mayl-,e that the election wouldresult in the choice
st,’icilv construed means, of course, that H, wouldnot of some one lhat the mi~aority would think should not
be proper for a womn.nto tcaeh a re.an or to teach a he elected. Probably the Lord has permitted such a
class ~,t which i,hete are brothers. ];urthermore, it would thing to happen for the very purpose of testing the
not },~: proper in the church for a womanto lead a class membersof the class. Instead of becoming obstreperous
where there are elder brotlmrs elected fro’ that purpose and causing trouble, the proper course would be to wait
to do the tead~lng, pal’tmularly ¢_inee it has been seated upon the Lord, which means to give attendance to the
by St..Paul, qs above quoted, that the holy spirit has Lord and wait to be guided by his providences. In due
made the chlers overseers, to feed the flock. Time and time he wall mMcemanifest the p~lrpose of permitting
qg’atn instances have oeenrred where a sisters’ class has such an election. The Apost!e pialnly says that all
lu.’e, formedi13 all ecclesia a~ld led by a sister; not that things wm’ktogether for good to those who love the
it ~as reaUy necessary, but because the sisters desired Lord and are the called according to his purpose. Then
it thus to be; and as far as is nowln~own in every in- if each memberot7 the class is called according to God’s
stam-e trouble has resulted. The adversary especially pro’pose, is a lmwcreature (and none other are entitled
thrm~s temptation in the way and induces the sister to vote), and each one loves the Lord and is movedby
whol,’a,ls or teaches to becomeheady, and since she is love ill his actions, then it maybe eonsidered that what-
pro’suing an unscriptural course the protection of the soever is the result of the election the Lord will over-
Lord could not be guaranteed. Therefore it is m~ nn- rule for the ultimate goodof the class. Difficulties often
v:ise ,-.’om’se for sisters to lead evena sisters’ class where res,flt because of some trying to have their own will
ttlm’e are brethren in the class available for that pur- done anc~ not ~he Lord’s will. This is not the proper
pose. ’.l’he excel)Lion to this rule wott]d be in a elass course.
whm’ethem are no brethren at all and where all are SPIRIT-BEGETTING IN THE CHURCH
sisters. In such an instance, as Brother Russell often Question: We understand that the nominal system
advised, a sister may be a leader and propound the was east off in 1881. This being true, have any indi-
Berean questions and let the other sisters in the class viduals within the confines of Babylonbeen begotten of
answer the questions. Because no elder is available, the spirit since that date ?
this is ~lot an nnseriptural course; and since the course Answer: It is reasonable to presume that some in
is proper, then the divine protection from the wiles of the nominal systems have been begotten of the holy
the adversary would be expected. Where a different spirit since that date. It is not essential to cometo a
course is taken the ~lsual result is that the sister who full kmowledgeof present truth in order to be begotten
is the teacher becomesheady, wise in her own conceit,
of the holy spirit. If one realizes he is a sinner, that
overreached hy the adversary and goes out of the truth. I
Jesus is his ltcdeemer, and then exercises raith in the
wouldstrongly advise, therefore, that a sister, for her great ransom saerifiee and surrenders himself wholly
ow, pvotc.etion, decline to teach a class raider the cir- to the Lord, he might be assoeiated with some nomimfl
cumstances nlentioned where there are eiders in the church and that wotfld not prevent the Lord from he-
class whoseduty it is to teach. getting him of the holy spirit. It would be reasonahle
TIlE VOICE OF THE LORD to expect tile Lord to bring such a one to a knowledge
of present’ truth thereagter, that he might mine fully
Question: Should we accept the voice of the class appreciate the Lord and his eonsecration to the Lord.
as the voice of the Lord in the election of oMcers as Sometimes we fmd one who is in the nominal system
well as in other nmtt,m’s? comingto a -knowledge of the truth and quickly accept-
Answer: lra class meets together and there are ing it a.nd saying in substance: ’I have always known
factions in the class and each faction is eleetioneering that tile Lord was good, that he had some ldnd of a
for its side and ma:ti{esting the fruits of the flesh, the })lan [or blessing mankind, and :[ have heen waiting for
voice of such n clue., could hardly he considered the a ]o11~, time to hear about it, and I kllOWthis is the
v~’fee of the l~ord. It is presmned,however, that Chris- truth’. Such a one mayhave been,begotten of the.ho]~"
finns comin.., tovother will come in the spirit of the spirit and waiting until the Lord’s ([ue time to .gi\e lmn
Lord ; that th,:v v,Jll first ask the presence of the ]~ord; a fuller knowledgeof the truth-
BIRTH OF JOHN THE BAPTIST
-- -- OCTOBE~
1 -- LXJXE
1 : 8-22 -- --
ETUD57 OF OUR LORD’S LIFE----GOSPEL VIED,’POII~:TS -- FORETOLD BY ).IAI~ACIII--A FAITHFUL COUPLE -- ANNOUNCED BY AN A’NGEI-.--A
17ATHElt’S IJNBELIEF--EDUCATED IN ’rll~ DESI,:IlT.
"He shall be great in the ~lgll! of the Lind, and he shell drink no ~cnlc nor stro~g drink."--L~tke 1: 15.
F OB. the next six months tim Sunday School lessons take
us through the life of our Lord, and we look for a
time of refreshing; for there can be no sweeter study,
fashion. 9:here is >ur(.,I.v
than theirs. ]hit lh()llgh
deavored to live so blamelessly
no sw(.e(er record in the ]liblo
they sought the I,ord and en-
before him, they h’ld no
nor one more protital)le to us in respeet to our conduct (:]nldrell. Very probably they o~ten wondered why this
tow:u’d~ God and man, than tile study of our Lord’s li£e. favor was withheld fronl Lhem since they had tile eonseious-
Even as a Illall he wus the center" of truth; for lie has m~ss of li~es well ordered in his sight. Luke says that
alw;tys been God’s channel; and as a nmn he was at once Zaeln’d’ias hull ()fiel) prayed. (I.uke 1:13) Some
the ide’ll man, as lie was the ideal servant and lover of God, suggcstol that Z;u:harias prayed for the kingdom; but as
and company with Ilizn should be sweet to us. his l)l’;13cr ib linked wilh Ihc I)ivlh of his Son, it is ahnost
The course of the hz’-3sons takes us througlt Luke’s gospel. (:cl’lallh Ill,it lie lull1 (::trried l],4s re;tiler to Godin prayer,
Ea(:h of the gospels ]ms its own parlicular viewpoinl, and evidently (lesiril,g th;tt a son sh()uhl be l)orn to
each is ~riltel) according to tile general pUll)OSO ol Go([ parLicuhlrl.v in view of the fqet that l.he withholding of
8ec(I D, HS ill ISl’m.q conSldel’ed [t IIlill’l( Of disfavor fr()lll God.
through the holy spirit operating upon the minds of the
wrlle)’s. Each writer in his a(.connl of oar Lord’s ministry lhlr God ~ns withh()hling lhis fever until the gift should
conforms to a gener-tl eontrolling thotlght. Mat|hew tells be peculiarly his; mid. very i)rol):lldy, ill order lhnL tim
us of Jesus as the king of the Jews, ’rod as the son of lives of the~e I~o ~orthy peoph: might nmtnre still more)
Abraham, father of the chosen p(;ople. Mark concerns him- for the (-hild whieh should be born would need special
self with the ministry of Jesus, and not aL all with his qualifications ,ml a sterling dibl)nsiLion ot mhld to enable
birth or childhood. Luke connects Jesus with A(hLm, show- him to (hi Lhe Imrlu:ular xx()l’l( to which he was called.
ing that our Lord is in this sense of tim hunmn family; (1o(1 noted the Ihhqit.~ ol Za(-harias and ]~.liTaheth. Perhaps
¯ rod it is Luke who reoords the parable of the rich man there was no olll~:r (’()tli)le in ]st’ill21 ill their Cil’ClllUSlltnces
and Lazarus, revealing, as we know through thaL p’u’able, So ft~ithful as these, or So titted to be the p-lrents of the
tile wideness of tim mercy of God in the salvation of tile forermmer o1’ God’s .>ervunt; and they were blesse, I ac-
gentiles. Luke’s gospel gives wh’tt may be called the htnnan cordingly. Thus the lmr(’ntal influences were all in favor
asl)eet of our Lord’s life, and the fullest account of his of the chiht The e(mlul(.~me in fled which is proved
ministry of healing. It takes a wider view of his ministry God’s confidence in them made them s))ceiatly fitted to
thnn that taken by the others. It is Luke who relates the the lmrcnl.~ ()f themcssel,gt:r of lh(’ Mvs~inh. In this respect
p:trtienlar incidents of 3esus’ babyhood, who records Llle they did noL lose, lint gained by llm wMtmg. God often
only incident we know of his boyhood, and who gives nlost keeps those waitiug, and sometimes for ninny years, to whom
de(all of the miracles of healing as would be expected in he purposes to give a special work; but the tests of £aith
fin a(x.onnt written by a physician. which conic do not idnder such ; r.tthcr in the wail.ing Lime
The gospel is written by Luke to Theophilus. As fhe they matnre, mellow, and g:lti~er rich experiences. There
name Luke means light, and g.’heophilus means lover of eould not have been nntny in Isl’;wl :it lhat time really
God. it is an easy transition to say that here is light for faithful to God, "waiting for the sMxa(i,m of Israel." That
the lover of God. Ialke was a Grecian or Hellenist with a there were some we know--Za(:haria>, Elizabeth, Joseph,
wide. kindly outlook; a physieian by profession, but not ]~[ary, SJl[let)n -tnd Anlm--(hese were fuithful and true, a.nd
merely n good doctor; he was beloved in the Lord. These their names are enrolled in Ihesaeved records. This faithful
sin(lie’s l)ring before ns both the Messenger of the Covenant little company, all :La’ed ex(:op( M;~vy, wove God’s remnant
and his forerunner, according to ]~[~lbtchi’s prophecy. Thus by whom hc aeeOml)li.qmd his lmrl)oses. The mighty ones,
the lessons of the past three months and our present lessons file flllnous teachers, the great professors, were lefL on one
are connected. side as unfiUed for the 1)urposes of God.
JOHN THE FORERUNNER
It is helpful to ns that onr review of lhe Lord’s life and TIlE ANGELIC ANNOUNCEMENT
wol’k silould COllllllcnce with some account of his fol’ernnner But nl(h,)u~h Zaehari;)s was a good man, he was taken
John. and ~(~’ are therefore well pleased that our lessons by SUll)l’ise whel~ the 1)romise wus made. ]-[e lind prayed
(’Olmn(m(:(’ with the hirlh of John. It wouhl be natural for a SOil ; perimps he imd some exl)ecl:dion llmt his
prayers ~A(.)ll](| bc ,ql~ 4 ’,1’1’1’(1: but he did nOt expect 11,;)I. au
lhinl~ llml lhe chief priests and scril)es would be convers-mt
with ?,hlh,chi’s l)rol)ho(’y, bnl it is certain thqt its fulfillment angel ~Aollh[ ilppt.’ilr I() hilll I0 ;lllllOlllU.’e Ihe birth of :l <ol),
(2111110 hi)Oil |iloln as II Slll’i,l’iq(;. 14lid IIH~.se h,illlCl’S o[’ the llor that lhis wollhl I)e i1):)(1(, in lh(! holy l)lac(. ~ of the ’i2eml)h.’.
l)e()l)h, been in the ri)ht (:ondiliol) o[ heart tlwy would fie had m) Ih()ughL nf (;(,1 nnuliCt,.~ling hinlself lhronM,
been l)rcpnred to receive tile ieslhnony of Z:i(zharifls, and ange] to one who was but a humhle member of :/ 1)ranch
t]lerefo|’e to ree(2ivc his son John : nnd thus /h(.y would have of Anron’s family. As he mini~leved "tL the golden altar,
I)cpn lUel)ared 111 due ti;Im to l’ec(:ixe Lhe ch~hl .](:slis, for a th(’ angel (hd)rh.q apl)c;,vc(I Lo him and told him thaL
(’hihl ill)I’ll lo be a forertl)uler wouldSlll’el.v indi(’alo timt (he prayer was ,’mswered, and that he should ]lave a soil.
(:olnill~ of hinl who followed weald lie in sHnil’H" nl;inller. Fenr fell on him; lie wa~ (roubled, and when the joyfld
The I)irth of Jolm the Baldist was of God, and it nl)])e)tls llllllOnllC(2111(,lli, "¢~’;lS lllHd4., ]1(, :dlowed n laeaSllre of doubt.
to us as very fitting that this should be so. An mmsual He said: "How aln I to lie Slll’e of Ibis?" For, as he said,
work was to be done, and an unusual kind of nleb.~(.,nger I)oth tHs x~il’(; ;rod himself were past the age when they
was necessary, and would need to be prel,,gred. The uccount lnight expect chihh’en to be I)orn to them, as If his prayer
of Zaeharins and E]izqbeth is idyllic. These two now elderly had bc~n long, ;rod God had not heard in time. To assure
people who lived in the hill country of .Iudea lived blameless him the angel announced who he was, "I am Gabriel, that
before the Lord: tile record is that they kept both the :’.and in Ihe I,r(’s( m:e of God." ]’[ow ne’tr to God Zaclmrias
eolmnandnlents aim the ordillanecs of the law ill bhuu,’l ,.emcd to be, and with what wonder he heard the message
283
2s4 "the WATCH TOWER ,,,.
of love, and thnt he xxa8 invohed ill lhc purposes of God. like Zaehat’ias, gone deaf and dumb for n ~(’:lson--not ready
q_2hose scarer l’evehllioll< of Ill(; lle!’~OllllO] of I-he Ileuvenly to take up tile gift of serviee whieh God offered.
host are in(el’e..lhlg. They l’evta] gill m’dm" of service. It Zneharias eontinned to minister in the Temple until his
W,qS Gabriel who came with eonll’ort Hlld instruction lo course of S~,l’vi(.e was completed. ’±’hen he went home, l)ut
Daniel. (E.)amel S:17; 9:2.1,22) Such service seems his. the Jo3 of his heart was minimized solnewhnt by his ill-
Mieh:lei, lht only oilier ont personally rtvealtd, is Ill.’ who ;LMliI.x m share with his xxife in his expressions o12 joy.
bears tile sword, xs h~, "S[iln(]s i11)" for God’s Imol)le, nnd who Elizab(.,lh r%joi(:ed in spirit, but kept herself as to the Lord,
toIMutts the h,’a~el,b hems lo I,atlle. ]’etiring liw. moot hs into a quiet life. After about six niolll hs
But tile failure to believe and to receive cost Z;teh;tei;ts she w’ls visil(.,d hy Mary, the xirgin chosen to be the nloiher
lllueh. I{e got his .-_~glh but ;ll. wh,II (.’(~st! ~-[e w;ls SIl’Uel-: o£ Jesus. Ehzaheth’s lmmility was heautiflfl to llehold;
dunll) and deaf, and his dlllulHwss, was I.o he the .bign that she tells how she was moved at lhe sight of Mary. Pilled
the pronfise was sure. The people wilhout whited ~/11(1 wilh tile holy alnrit slit broke forlh in praise of God and
wondered at his tarr}ing. \Vhen he came out he could not his goodness. Indeed, both lhe fuith and tile fidelity o£ this
speak with tl,en,, but he mode s~gns that gave them to grand eldtrly couple ore beautiful; and wt may truly say
tmderstnnd thut he had seen u x isicm. Nor could garb’trios i-hat just as tile thild .lohn w’ts to be a forerunner and a
eommunieute with his loved ones: nor could he hear any prtlmrer o12 tile way for the greater child to rome, so lhe
other message. :[’uilh aud loyal love of Zaeharias and Elizabeth served as
ASKING FOIl SIGNS pre.par:ttion for the faith and love of .TOStllh zmd Mary in
Out of this wt may take sonlt instruction. Do we ask for their still greater exllcrienees.
a sign about SOlnething ~xhieh ought tO l)e tl-,_ iflain to us
as if deelared by an angel from htaven? Many o12 the Lord’s A CtIILI) OF TIlE RIGIITEOUS
people do usk for a sl)eeial sibm for themselvts when ready On [he. birth o12 lhe. vhild there was much rejoicing. On
aecepl:mee of the declared will of God is the only thing the eighth day, whtn it was eir(:umeised, Zntharias nmni-
desirable to God, or reasonable to ourselves. Assurunte ftsted his al)iding faith and fidelity. Ele would not haw;
is sometimes gained at grtat cost, and we tan never rise tile child n:mu,d rifler hinl ns was suggested, hut insisted
to our privileges if we qutstion God’s providences. Some that it should I)e nauled John, ne(-ording to the word of
tlsl<, for HSSllrtlllCe :lhout a strviee which is l)lainly the will Gabriel. hnnmdialely oil his (h.’(.l:lralion by writing (aml
of the T,or(I, and they someliules get a sign--often to their fact thut lhe coral)any Iliad(., sigms to him to get him
hurl: lhough if the heart bc right God will bring his child understand showed thnt he ~xas deaf as well as dentil) his
I)aek to hunsclf. ~Vell for us if nny distiplint such us that tongue was loosed, and his deafness was renmved. "He
which came upon Zaeharias.e;u]ses us tol)rnise (loci. In his spoke nnd praised God." (Luke 1: 64) l-lis rejoicing shows
period of xxalling he was filithful to the Lord; Ills heart he was moved by a right spirit. His thoughts were not of
praised God, ;rod WIl,.Hl :i:rtedoul eulue he ustd his mouth himself, but for God, and for God’s people Israel. He saw
tO lhe praises O1 (’h,I. that the Iong-dela3ed promises were not forgotten, hut were
We know of sonic h’.’ethren who, when No. 27 GOI,DEN A.GE about to be fulfilled, lle saw delivermme coming from tile
was prepared fl)r the .%,rxiee o12 the truth, I)egan to pray bondage o12 error and of Sill, from all goes, and full deliver-
ai)oul i(; insttnd of goin;z Io the work, failing to pe,’eeive that ante into tile will of God, that Israel might serve God in
the T,ord’s providenets had ah’tgdy indieated his will. righteousness nnd true holiness. To such lUu’cnts ns these,
Solnt e(mlinued to pray tmlil all the work was done--they Ilud under suth eil’cun,stnnec, s wns this thild born.
were dumb. l’rayer is not nlwnvs el)portent or in order; ".Tohn was ill the deserts till the day of his showing
(.~,o/I clots not undcrt:lke to gi~, us spteial or individual unto Israel." (Imke J:S0) There, almrt from tile crowd,
guitlanet about church affairs. Ilather he guides his church. and like lhe l{ew,httor, x~ho in sDirit was carried into the
And sintt 187$, X~llell he began Io galher his people into a wilderness to get a Irue vitw o£ Babylon (Revelntion 17: 3),
unit, he hus guided them hy his :ll)pointtd ulenns, first John S:l’~V the eorrulPtion which had eaten inlo tile life of
13rother ]lussell, and lhen by the Sotiet.v org;mized by his i)tople. IIe saw thut tim nluth profession of Ihe priests
Brother I~.llssell; aud if rely individmll member is iiot fully and h,adtrs WaSnot of Gad, was enrthl.~, .,.ensuul ; un(1 that
:lSSllred ill his ov:n llHnd ;the(It ~lll,’( iililtters which eOlllt lille Clod’s time to destroy it had come. It is only ns we
the ehtlreil life, either into the ecologies, or Ihe (-hureh ns "t Stl)arnte ourselves absoluttly to tile strviee uf God that we
whole, he shouM subnfit to the I,ord’s g-uid:mte throu:,q~ his can gtt a true view of tile inherent emnity I)etwten the world
appoinl(.’d ehmmel. ~tlth may rest :lssured that Gotl’s will mid God, and that the great religious organizntions o12 our
will l)t llutde elear to all the {:lilh12tll. ~’[ally brethren have, day are an integral part of tile world system.
very lnoderute eireunlsl:tnces. IL’erhnps Mary’s espousal to forsakeu his l)eople eve,] though for re:Lay eentut-ies he had
Joseph was an act o1’ failh and love to God, as well as of apparently shown uo special interest in them. These two
love to each other, w,th the thought that the royal line women were tl/e only two who knew lhe sem’et purpose ,,?
should be preserved in ordcr thai it might be ready for the God, ligurative of tllose who in tlmse lasI days, wheil the
promise of God whenever he should make that promise good. Lord wits about to be reve:,led in gh)ry, knewof thai ’~ l<lllr~
Whether this be tile case or not, we know that they were donl and rejoiced togetller. (Malachi 3:16.17) Now rim
hoth faithful to the Lot’,] ; and it is pleasant to find these last kingdom is making its al)l)ro,,ell felt, nnd t+he I.ord’s p(.otde
two recorded members of the family in such loving assort’t- must he out with him a~serting the presence of the King.
lion. Israel ought to have watched for the interests of The two cousins renlained together for three months, lmtil
David’s line, and lmve cared for the family which God had the time came for Eliz:,beth’s child to IJe born. ~l;,ry then
said should produce the Messiah ; but Israel was too mindful went home to Nazareth.
of its own vested iutel’ests to rememberGod’s. l:~ncot, raged I)y her visit to Elizabetlh and by Z;tcharhlS’
Probably ]~fary did not know of what had happened to fidelity, even though they could commune with him only hy
Elizabeth and Z~eharias (Luke I :36), and it is therefore writing and si~mls because of his deafness and dural)hess,
probable that Gabriel’s message came upon her without any Mary was flow strong enough to tell ,Toseph and to rest m
such preparation as knowledge that her eousiu Elizabeth God though Joseph sbouhl not believe her. a.seph rett his
was to have a son would have afforded. G’d)riel saluted honor involved "tnd was nli]lded to put her axxqy, privalely;
~lal’y: "And tile angel came iu unto her, and said, Hail, but in a dream God told him of his purl)ore, am1 .Toseph also
thmt Ihat art higltly f:~vored, the. Lord is with thee: blessed accepted tim ntessage nnd was ffl:ut. ~oxx" they were to
art thou among ~o,nen."--Luke 1:28. settle down at the ea~rpenter’s shop. Nazareth was to be
Mary was troubled, hut Gabrml comforted her whh the their heine. The time drew on fo," Mary’s child to be horn;
qssurance that she bad lomld favor with God. God himself hut tile Scripture had foretold lhat the Messiah should he
had lakcn note of the cue who was to be mother of his Son horn in 13ethlellem, the town of David. Evideully they had
Jesus. Mary must have been ;t true, holy young v¢oul~lll, no thougllt of this, "tud were uot expecting to move from
loyal in heart to God, sweet in disposilion, fitted to be the ~’aZal’elh. T-Iow then, ill)girt f]’onl sl)eeial revel’ltion f,’olu
nlolher of the ehihl who was to represent God amongst men. heaven, would tile l)rollheey be l’tl llilled?
Tlmt .qhe lind learned self-restraint and reserve is certain. It ht/l)pened l.llflt in ]tome, then 1.he capital o17 the world,
Gubricl fold her of God’s purpose. Puzzled, she asked how pohti,.’al and military :tfr;lirs were such th’tt it was deter-
it could be that she conld conceive and bear a child, since mined to enroll ;and tax the whole world, nnd "tbe dot:vet
she was not married. The answer was the power of God went forlh fl’onl O:us~l]’ Augustus that nil the world shonld
should oversh:tdow her, and the child wlfich was to be born I)e lglxed." (Luke 2:3.) In dale time this order got
should he called the Son of God.--Luke 1 : 35. Palestine, moved the ;tuthorilies there, and through them so
moved the various eiremuslnnees in the family lire of [srtu.I
WOMAN’S HIGHEST HONOR lh;it .Toseph and Mary were Slldl]cnly thrown into tim
To (.,neourage h[ary to accept this wonderful re]ationshil), neeessily of a jonrney to lqethlehem. The traveling must Imve
sl,e was lold thtLt her cousin Elizabeth was soon to bear a been a concern to them both. They arrived in Belhlehem
child, horn to Zncharias and her in their old age, a gift of just in time for the prophecy to he fulfilled. (Micah 5:2)
God Io then,; und that "with God nothing shall be impos- No word of God ever failed, l-It would, if need be, move
sible." (Luke 3_: 37) Mary obediently aeeel)0-d this truth mountains in order to 1)ring about his purposes. Iu this ease
suymg. "Behold [he h,qndmaid of the Lord; be it cute me and in order that his people at all timeg, ourselves amon~-st
accm’din~ Io thy word." (Luke ]_: 38) Her acceptance meant tile number, should learn to have fnilh in him, he dircele,l
receix ing thai which was the higllest honor a woman could the whole world into movenmnt that these t~xo sllouhl bo
have. but at the same time that which under tile peculiar made to travel, and his word be fulfilled apparently in the
eir,ums[auees would bring tile sharpest test a woman could mttural order of events.
be~r. Her suhmission is grand; here is a fine consecration THE HOUSE OF BREAD
or hon,u’ ,’md repule. ISelhlehem means "house of Iwea(l"; tJut there was no
51~r.~ went ,qt once from her home in Nazareth to her room ill the inn for the Bread wIii,-Ii came dowtl fl’om
con.sin Elizabeth in the hill country of .Tuden ; for she realized heaven; and heaven’s Messenger was l)orn not in a home.
Ihat Elizabeth was the only one wilh W]lOnl she con]d have but in the general e’travansary attached to the in,). Mary
eolnnHmion. A stlrln’ise aw:tited her as they met; for would have. a little place where she would be shielded from
l£1izabetlt greeted her sa.vh)g, "Bles-:ed art thou aamng the general gaze of lhe many who were coming nnd going in
WOl,lell, Hu(.[ bles’,ed i:, the ]ruit of thy woml). And whence this eonll)aratiwdy open place. Surely she would wonder why
is this h) ii,e, lhat lhe luotller of my Lord should come to the child she should hear, the Son of God as she knew, shouhl
meT’ (l,uke 1:42.43) This nmst hgve been a great en- be brought forth in such a place, nnd why she, its mother,
eO]l]’;igcnlent Io ~l;ll’y. OHI’ gracious God alw;13q helps lhose shoul(1 he so hardly put to it for the necessary atttention and
to x~hom hn ~i~,,~ lmrticular service. ;rod who through that eoln~orts. It is e’tsy Io unde,’stand how lhe eireumslances
serx ire Intlsl hear shall) tests, by giving just sue]l encourage- wouhl be a lest to hm’. There was no provision made by
nlent llS will ;isbnre I]1(2111 el hiq ea]’e. Tile {we wonlen re- heaven for tllis eventful ]mppening though God had used tlle
joiced {ogelhe.r in the I,ord’.> favors, nud Mary by the spirit ]~onrtn Gove.vnment [o get them there: apparently God was
poured forth her heart m .~ong, in words grand and noble in doing nothing specially for her: bat, noble wonmn as she
ecru’el,Iron. She realized her high Imsitmn :mlong women, was, she waited "rod trusted iu faith.
and in wondeA’ment and praise acknowledged the goodness Earth was not moved at the advent of tlm child born to
of God in choosing her when there were iuany of high be its Savior. But heaven wus. In the iiehls not far away
degree who w(2re Im.~sed by. a light from heaven fell upon some shepherds ; au angel voice
was heard, and soon the whole arch of heaven was filled
TIME FOR NATIONAL DELIVERANCE wllh nngelie music. The shepherds were instructed ns 1o tile
But that which gave them the greatest rejoiciug was that meaning of. this, and they said one to another, "Let us now
tim time of deliverance was coming for God’s people. .q.’hey go even unto Bethlehem, :tad see this thing which the Lord
saw the salvalion of God, and rejoiced bee;~n.~e he had not halll re;rite Rnown unto us." (Luke 2: 15) Tim coming of the
=s6 WATCH TOWER 2. Z
Shel)herds, some time after the child was I)onl, was God’s the promised land. After the danger was over Xoseph,
first assurance to Mary, that he was watching over her, directed in a dream, returned to Nazareth, and there the
knew she was there, and had witnessed to these men of the family settled; Joseph at his carpenter’s shop, and Mary to
bh’th o~ her son their Savior. bring up the children and take care of her precious son.
In the circle of evenls it has come about thai he xxho was Jesus aS a boy was protected by his heavenly Father, else
born in Bethlehem, and is now Lord in Glory, has again come Sahm would have destro.~ed him; and his innate purity
to those who ought to be ready to receixe him. 1;ut now, as preserved him from inward evil, and he "grew in wisdom
then, his advent is unknown to the many. To those who will and stature and in favor with God and men." At twelve
]mar, angel voices are singing; and to those who desire to years of age there came the outstanding event of Jesus’ boy-
see. the heavens are aglow with tim light of the present hood, his first visit to Jerusalem. We can easily imagine lhe
Lord. "Lllssed is the people tlmt know the joyful sound: eager anticipation of the young, active, and already well-
they shall walk, 0 Lord, in the light of thy eountenance."-- informed child when he was to see the walls of that won-
Psalm 89: 15. derful city for the first time, and to see his Father’s house.
On the eighth day the young child ~lesus was circumcised, ICnowing the Scriptures he would surely say: "I was glad
the parents indiealing their poverty by the fact that they when they said unto me, Let us go into the house of {he
were able to orfcr only the least costly offering allowable. Lord." (Psalm 122: 1) In Jerusalem all the wondermeat
Of tllis Ceremony one h’ts well s.fid of Jesus that "in his of the city would come upon hhu: he would be interested in
eh’vumcision he sul)scribed his nmue on hunmnity’s roll in its very siones, for it was his Father’s city. ]-low much his
blood." When the days of Mary’s purilieution were ended, young mind grasped is difficult for us to tell, but tile nar-
¯ rod she was again in tile ’£enlph: courts, the aged Simeon rative shows that he was very wide-awake.
came to her and look tim young child in his firms and blessed
bolh the child and its mother. And Anna, u prophetess, came "ABOUT MY FATHER’S BUSINESS"
and together they blessed the Lord for lhe manifestation of lie was so uhsorbed in :ill that he saw, mid heard, nnd +n
his favor to his people, rJ2he few fnithftll souls mentioned in his desire to learn, that tile day for the home journey slipped
these l’eeords, nil of them old except Mary, were the ones by unobserved. Joseph and his nmther started for home,
specially blessed of God. They remind us of Malachi’s but the boy was not with tlmm. He w,’is ever so dutiful
~’ords: "They lhat feared the Lord spake often one to an- a son that his motl,er and Joseph thought he was somewhere
other." There were only a few in Israel "waiting for tile amongst the company, and, of course, quite able to look
eonsolati0n of Israel" and to these the I)h~shlgs of the Lord ulcer himself. When at lust lhey really awoke to the Iuet
came. The majority were wrapt in fornl;tlism, and had no they had not seen him on the journey, they were greatly
time to see wlmt God w-mted, or whether or not they could perturbed. They sought him sorrowing (a tormenting sor-
serve him. row). Wh;tt if some e’tlamiIy had hefallen the precious one
TIlE SERPENT ALERT TO DESTROY entrusted to l.heir etlre? l’~irst they went to their" kinsfolk
The p;trenl~ sta.~ed in B, ethleheul l’or some tinle; and and acquaintances, then back t<, Jerusalem, and it w’ts not
Satan,who ever sought to destroy the Seed, sougllt to destroy until after three days lhat they found him. lie was in
the young child’s life. lie directed attention to the child the Temple sitting in the midst of the doctors both hearing
through the star and the wise men. This attention on the and asking them questions. The mother rebuked him--lhe
part of these men brought catastrophe on Bethlehem; for usual way when there has been luck of care. In Jesus’
]7[erod, to make sure of destroying tile child Jesus, slew all rel)ly Ihere is perhups an intended relmke for his mother
the children up to two years of age. The parents lind been and Joseph: ’Why need ye seek me? You might haxe ex-
warned in a dream and had gone down to Egypt, and Satan pected to find me in my Futher’s house.’ They ought to
nnd his agents were foiled. The mothers of Bethlehem have made certaln tlmt he was with the,n when they started
would feel very bitter towards this stranger who had come for home, and failing that, not to have presumed that he
amongst them, and whose coming lind meant such a e’tlamity was running about with a hoyish inlerest iu every new thing
to them. Satan never makes an attempt on God’s people he saw, careless of anything but pleasure. And, too, there
without hurting his own subjects. T-Tere tim poor people wqs surely a reminder that tie had obligations towards God
suffered ; while Herod, who w’ts led on by Satan, Is execrated which they had not yet discerned. The child was preparing
by men for his abominable act. liow glad we are to know for his manhood.
thqt these little ones, and all others smitten by the powers From then until Jesus was thirty years of age we have
of evil, whelher directly by evil men, or indirectly by the no record of him, save that he was sul)jeet to his parents.
forces of evil, are yet to be delivered, nnd to come back into and lind God’s blessing upon him. Also that as he was
fnlness of life under the kingdom of him who was born known as a cal,)enter (Mattlmw 13: 55), and that he labored
in I?,ethlehem ! as others did for the support of himself und the family;
No doubt the gifts of the wise men helped ,Toseph and and tlmt his afterilife reveals the fact of much siudy and
l~Iary to bear tile expenses of the traveling and of their meditalion during the days of patient wailing for the lime
sojourn in Egypt; yew much as in the old days the gifts of when lie should enter into a closer relationship with his
the Egyptians helped the Israelites as tlmy left Egypt for Father in heaven.
WhenI feel the cold, I can say, "tie sends it," Small were my faith, should it wealdy falter,
And his wind blows blessing, I surely know; Whenever tile roses may cease to blow:
lyre ’ i’venevera wantbut thathe attendsit, :Frail were the trust that soon should alter,
And my heartbeats warm thoughthe winds may blow. Doubting his love when storm-clouds bl0w;
The soft, sweetsummerwas warm and glowing; If I trust him once, I must trust him ever.
Bmghtwere lhe blossomson everybough; And his way is best, thnugh :I stand or hill;
][ trusted him when the roses were blowing ; Through wind and storm he will leave me never;
I trust him now. He sends it all.
INTERESTING LETTERS
THE WORD 1N NYASALAND operaticms. Thi~ eonstt’uetion, e0usi.lting of two ~ohohu-mo-
]DEAlt P~I{(). I~UTI~IFRI"URI). tors of 75 horse-power each end one ptuHInng nptehine, has
Ivm very content to write you this note to let you know now been taken over by the Palestine govel’nlnent und is to
that we have the General Meeting at Chipira. Many people be ereeled at the £alnous ponds o£ Solomon, near Bethlehem,
c;inle to hear the truth me~sage; but in the 24th 499 men to pu,np the water from there to Jerusalem.
,nd women came to hear the good tidings, and on Snnday The work of taking down, transporting, mounting, and
morning 1,281 including tile Christians e;lnie to hear the getting the machinery in working order at the new station.
\Vord of God. I holm timt you will huar some report after has been given by the Palestine govermnent to our firm tly
this o£ the meeting o17 a,225 including the C]lristians who contract. The taking down in Egypt has alre’tdy been ac-
canle to lieflr the Word o17 God, and three were b:tl)tized, complished and the different parts have arrived in fferu-
but of the people 797 saw the ~ll)tism. salem. I am glatl that we got this job, ior it also is li~trt
1 have wril.len to ]~rother 1713’ Anekl.,lell to let hun know of tile restoration of Palestine alld because ~ e two lnounters,
that I had tile general meeting, l’lense ~xrite hint to come who do all the work. are brothers ill Christ. 14oth Bro.
here. Tell him to h.’t me know lirst that lie will come here. Eusenlmeh and myself e&lne here frolic Gernmny to set. n~
Now lhe l.~(:(.’lesi~i in ~Nyasahind is very strong indeed. anti ]fruitage the newly-built nlne]lilte shop of Mr. SMzlmmlu
Trust to me Ihat yell will he’tr daily report trent inc. Everything here progresses ’very ,~lowl!], and hi;lily thinga
l’leatso write to Brother Aneketell to come to see me here are so different front what ~e expected ten years ago; as
l.lb bOOltaS lie Cttll. we expected at that tithe that by now Abrahanl would be
Your brother in his grace, ft. ~VILsO.X, Nyir(n~da, Africa. here, ruling and blessing. ]tut as we now recognize tlmt
it is the Lord’s will to do e~ery thing at h, is ow~ right tim(:,
WATER FOR JERUSALEM we are glad that we are permitted to rest in his provideuees,
DEAR13tHTI’111~.ll’v iN CHRIST: knowing lh:lt he will at’range everything for the best for his
1 was three weeks on a demounting-of-lnaehines trill in true children, and we are also glad that we still have it
Eg3 pl, where I had a bad frill ,qn(1 h’td to be brought b:lek to little lime to make ourseh’es ready, and to further proclaim
.lerusalem. My work is o£ greatest interest to me, viz., the the glad tidings.
water supply £or Jerusalem. in the neighborhood o1~ WishiNg for yell the Lord’s richest blessing upon all yet’."
Kant;H’a. EgyI)t, in tile midst of the desert is n ntighty l)tlmp- work, I remain, wilh hearty greetings of love to all tim
ing station, which was erected there (luring lhe war by the beloved in Christ,
English in order that they might eal’ly out their milit:u’y ~TOllr br(~ther ]ly his gr:~ce, I~OLF ~VI,.’I’Z]qL, .lerusele:
Bul’t.Mich...................... Sept. 26 Traverse City. Mich ..... Oct. 3, 5 Sherbrooke, Que .............. Oct. 4 St. John, N. B ......... Oct. 13, 15
" Oct. 4 Woodstock, N. B ......... Oct. 6, 8 Evandale,N. I3 ............... Oct. 16
Birch Run, Mieh ............. 27 ~:ewadin,Mich................... Piercemont,N. B ............. Oct. 9 ~ioncton,N. 13 ................. " :17
Saginaw,Mich................. " 28 Empire,Mich................. Oct. 6, 8 " 10 Canaan,N. B ............. Oct. :IS, 19
Ahna,Mich..................... " 29 Manistee,Mich................. Oet. 10 Millville, N. B .................
,, :1o Fredericton, N. If, ......... " 11 Amherst, N. S ........... " 20, 22
]’ay City, ]~hch................. 0el 1 Hart, Mich.................... Gaspereau Sta., N. B ..... " 12 Athol, N. S .................. 0ct. 23
~hdhln(1, 1Mich................. " 2 Muskegon, Mich ....... Oct. 14, 15
BROTHER H. HOWLETT
BROTHER T. E. BARKER
St. Catharines, Ont ......... Oet. 8 Simcoe, Oat .................. Oct. 15
Shinglehou~e,Pa ............. Sept. 28 Carry Run, Pa ............... Oct. 6 *’in~al’a ]?alls, Ont ......... " 9 Port Dove(’, Ont ............. " :1(;
..........
Mnhaffey,..........
Pa ’ ’8 Welhtnd, Out ............. " 10 Aylmer,Ont ..................... " 17
Cyclone,Pa ..................... " 29
DeYonng,Pa ..................... Oct. 1 Altoona,Pa ....................... " 9 I’orI Cnlt)orne. 0nt ......... " 11 Tilsonburg. Ont ............. " ]~
l;roeP.wayvllle, Pa............. " 3 Alexandrm, Pa. ¢-’t 10,11 Dunn~ille, Oat ........... " 12 lngcn’s, dl, Ont................. " 19
DIII)ois,Pa ......................... " 4 (’OIC~Sunllnit, I’a. _. O,-t. ]2 Nanticolc, Oat ............... " 13 Woodstock,Ont ............... " 20
t)unxutLiwney,]’a ............. t, 5 Johnstown,l’a ......... (;,’t. 13, 15
BROTHER S. MORTON
BROTHER J. A. BOHNET Marmtta,Ohio ................ Sept. 28 Shawver, V,L Va ............. Oct. 6
(hd]ipoh~ Ferry, W. Va. " 29 Mr. Lookout, "W. Va ......... " s
Noath Bend, Ind ............. Sept. 28 :BlueTsland,Ill ................. Oct. 5 Hnntnlgton, W. Va ......... Oct. 1 Clifton Forge, Va ....... 0cl.9,:10
IZankakee,II1 ................. " 29 Chicago Heights 111 ....... " 6 Nitro, W.\’a ..................... " 2 Roanoke,Va..................... Oct.:11
Chieago,Ill ........................ Oct.:I Joliet. Ill ......................... " 8 Coco. WVa .............. Oct. 3,4 I71. Radford,Va................. " :12
lhunmond,Ind ................... " 2 Anl,b,a, Ill ....................... " 9 Charleston, W. Va. . . Ont. 5 VCythevillo,V~. ................ " 13
llegewisch. Ill ................... " 3 C, elm~a,Ill ....................... " 10
I¢oseland,Ill ....................... " 4 Elgin,III ......................... " 11
BROTHER G. R. POLLOCK
~lontreal, Que............... Oct. 1,2 Be~Lmsville,Ont............. Oct. 9
BROTHER E. F. CRIST Oct. 3 St. Catharines, Ont ......... " 10
Otta’,~:t. Oat.....................
Pelerboro, Ont................... " 4 Nmgara Falls, Oat ......... " :11
Y, leTIhoim,Ont............... Sol)t. 29 L¢)ndml,Oat ..................... Oct. 8 Oshawa,Oat ..................... " 5 Dunnville, Ont ................. " 12
Clutlh:ml Ont ................... Oct. 1 Th.q llle~ ford, On{.......... " 9 " 6 Sbneoe,Ont ..................... " 1.3
’" 2 Ing(,r-oll. Ont .......... " :10 Toronto,Ont .....................
~VI:ldS()l’. Ollt ..................... Hamilton, Ont .............. " S ~ranttord, Oat ................. " 15
:1A,IlltlingTOll,()lit ............... ~’ 4 W(md~lo(’k. Oat ....... (~,’t. 11,:12
YVnlhtcclnu’g, Oat ............. " 5 Stratford. Ont ........... " 13, 15
Sarnia, Ont....................... " 6 Seaforlh, Ont .................. Oct. 16 BRO’i’HER B. M. RICE
Panther,Okla ..................... Oct. 2 Achille, Okla.................... Oct. 10
Quintml,Okla ................... " 3 :Bns~ell, Okla ................. " 11
BROTIIER A. J. ESHLE’IAN " 12
lqeAlester, Olda ............. Oct. 5, 7 Y’alhant,Ol,:ht .................
VCnll)llrtotl, Okla................. Oct. 6 l%Iedfll. Okla..................... " "13
];’lat ll]ver, 5lo ............ Sept. 29 l’.pl:(r I;luff, 510............. Oct. S Leon,Olda....................... " 15
],’;it’lllingtoll, ]~lo ............... Oct.:1. ]-]:ll.Xroll..Me..................... " 9 Ahdca,Okhl...................... " S
I)(irllll(, Okla..................... " 9 Ardmore,Okla ................. " :16
]H(-,mheld. ~Io ................ " 2 (’h;l,~ilt:l ?,1o.. " 10
¢ ’l.tFkIoll MO................. Oct.,~I, 4 Mounfam(,,.to. Moi"..’.’.’." :11
] )cktc, F ~lf) ...................... Oct. 5 Smith I,’onk, 3Io ....... Oct. 12, 13 BROTHER V. C. RICE
Stele3 ~ ille. 5[0 ................. " 6 TIm.ver, Me............... Oct. 15 Tnl~lo, Ohio.................... (k t
Omd(l,LN. "~ .............. 0(3.
I~..hoMer, N.Y. ..... " .2 l~dgerton. Ohio................ " 10
.N, iiilh ’l’l)}l:lX~qll(],(, t, 4 ],’,lkharr, ind ..................... " Jl
BROTHER A. M. G RAItAM ],:rl(L I’a .......................... ~’ 5 L;IpOlt0, Ind ..................... " "12
l’H~rm, Ohm.................... " G Zion Ciiy, Ill ................ " :i.2
Utica, N. Y....................... Oct. 1 I~o(’he.~tcr, N. Y ............... Oct S 19 8 hliiwaukee, Wis ............. " ]5
" Sll ( t.Z.V, (.) .. ..............
]hmlcN. Y ......................... " 2 .?t ul~lll’ll, NY................... |)
M;i,in.~ilh~. N. Y ............. " 3 .i¢)hnslov.’n. N. \’. ............ " :10
~V;IIQVI,IWIL. N. Y........... OCI.’t, 5 (H,)vers~ille, NY. ............ " 11 BROTHER R. L. ROBIE
OIIQJda.N. ~" ..................... OC|. (1 One(rain. N. Y. .............. " 12
Ssracu-e, N. Y................... ’" S S:il’;}h):4fl Slwings, N. Y-. " 13 F.ast IAverpool, ()}l o ..... O(’t "1 Canlbridge, Ohio ............ O,’t. S
St. Clair, Ohio................... " "2 Zane.~wlle, Ohio ......... 9
\Vcll~ville, Ohio ....... " 3 \VIHte Cottage, Ohio ....... ~ " 10
Steubenville, Ohm.............. " 4 Cn’.rfl,.~]lle, Ohio............ " 1:1
BROTHER J. HEMERY Wheeling. W.Va ............... " 5 ])to~dcnl. Ohm................ " 12
]~eIl:urc. Ohio.................... " (; Co!,hoct.m. Olu0.............. " "13
(’llh.ll(nK|i. Oldo .... Sepl. 23. ’-’4 l’",,’,klxl) N. Y............... Oct. 1
t’,fimnl)ns OhLo........ Sept 25, 26 ]~’)qI’~ll,’~I;l.¢,q................. (’}ct :l, 4
lqt IMnirgh,l’,l ............. SL’,~L27 lIIlfl;llo t~ Nut *..lid [":IH " 5, I; B’.tOTIlI~lt %1,:, J. TIIORN
Cuudlcrhind, Md ......... " 28 Toronto, Ont ...... "’ 7, S
l’huladelldd.% l’a. Sept. 29 Brooklyn, N. Y ............ Oct. 9 Oct. 1 \\’nierlmr3, Conn........... Oct. 8
New London, Corm ..........
lwep l’,nver, Conn............. " 2 Soulh Co~entry, Conn. " 9
Croulv.’(fl[. Cona................. " 3 FAliott, Conn.................. " 10
BROTIIER M. L. tlERR IT:n’tford, Colin ................. " 4 Woonsocket, R I ..... Oct. 11, 12
New Britain, Conn ........ " 5 Fall River, Mass ....... " 1";, 15
Sept. 2,~ O1Hnh,mla City, 0kla ..... Woodbury, Corm............. " (i Now]’edford, Mass ......... Oct."16
l):mla, Kans................... Oct. 5
] ’it ]’S()]]S, I{ it]IS ................. ’) ’ 2! Electra, Tex..................... " 6
..X.:al:l. Okla..................... Ocl 1 XVJclnta Fails, TCx......... " 8
(’]:11(2111or0.Okla................. " 2 ]:owie, Tex........................ " 9 BROTHER T. I1. TIIORNTON
q’ Iq;I C)khn....................... " 3 SIOllA’})’II~ TeN................. P~ 10 Di’,:nn. I{y........................
~randenburg, ](y .... ,’4el,t. 2S. 29 ()[i
[.’h.I lid hW, ...............
erie ’’ 4 X\t’ltilit.’l’fOl’(l, Tex............ " J2
Magnet, Ind .............. Oct. 1 M:t) hehl,1(5". ............... " 1:1
0wensboro, Ky .......... Oct 2, .2 ]h.luoalk l’:y .................... ’" 12
Beech Creek, Ky . ........... Oct. 4 ]:ig Sandy, Term............ " 14
2\dH/IP’:,rl.’4~nl)................... t, ~[5
Guthrie, Ky...................... " 6
PILGRIM VISITS Hopklnsville, Ky .............. " 8 Nashvdle, Tenn ............... " "16
CONTENTS
~rIEWS FR01~$ THE WATCY[TOWER
........................ 29]
Labor-Shying
Machinery
....................................... 29]
¢"*
Strikes Brmwht on by Big ]~,tlSillt~s ........... ’2
A ~IllLtary Dictatorship ................................. 293
The Churches Called On ................................ 23.:
’~hc Church’s NewDay . ................................ 2,%1
I3onest Ministers in ]revolt ............................ 294
Churches Rel)udiated ...................................... 294
A Brighter Side ............................................... 295
Stepping into .More Light ............................... 2!h,
¢~/~g ~[[NISTRY OF 3OHNTIIE BAI’_VlST ................ 2!)7
,]’ES U S TEMPTED ................................................... ’")9
WORLD-V,’I DErJROtlI I:[T1ON................................. [~()1
]:NTERESTI NGLL~’t’1 E R H........................................... ~l)’-)
QUESTIONSFOR ’~OWlSl{ ]~FREANSTUDY................ 3(J3
I
!.’~5 ~’--- , ..... ~ ..... _
~. .~ .,..-~ ............ ~--"...~.~
~2..,~.~ .~-:.
UIIOII ~hc 0a’lh distress t~f nations ~lth 1161’l)]ex ly] the sea t e ~a~es (tht., leslacss, (]lSCOn?.elllL ~(] roaring; mel]’~ hearts failing them f~r fe.r and for ]ot,khlg to the
s c sty foF e paws ~i .f the heavcrts (ctc[e~lastlcl~ln) shah be shaken . VOlenve see these thltlg~ begin to ~’~tll~ to p.lss,
thwg~ e~r"~17, IL~ok I e callr~
rlh
ihe up,
~..llg.]Olll o[ up
(]ud IS}our
~.~ heads.
-hand. ~cJoiee, for your redemption drsweth mgh.--Matt. 24:331 Mar*, 13: 29; Luke 21.25-3L :?’c~ i’.,
Id[lc~l[llluv[ ttl:~
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS SACRED MISSION
THISpresented
5ournal is one of the prime factors or instruments in the system of Bible instruction
in all parts of tm civ zed world by the WATCHTOWERlJillLE
or "Seminary Extension",
t~ TRACTSGCIETY, chartered
now being
A.D. J884, "For the Pro-
motion of Christian Knowledge". It not only serves as a class room where Bible students may nisei in the study of tile divine Word but
also ,as a channel of comnlunieatlon through which they may be reached ~ltll announcements of the Society’s copventions and of the
coming of its traveling representatives, styled "Pilgrims", and refreshed with reports of its convcofions.
Our "Berean Lessons" are topical rehearsals or reviews of our Society’s published STUDIES most entertainingly arranged, and very
helpful to aiI wile would merit the only honorary degree which the Society accurds, viz., Vobi Dci .~hnister IV. D. M.), which translated
into l’]ngti.ql is Minister of God’s Word. Our treatment of the International Sunday School Lessons is specially for the older Bible
students and teachers. By some this feature is considered indispensable.
This ]ourn&l stands firmly for the defense of the only true foundation of tile Christian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
--iedemption through the precious blood of "the man Christ ffesus, who gave himself ,’1. tunsom [a COl’responding price, a substitule] for
all". (t Peter Z : :19 ; 1 Timothy 2 : 6) Building up on lllis sure foundation the gold, silver and precious stones (t Corinthians 3 :
:15; 2 Peter :1:5-11) of the Word of God, its further mission is to "make all see ~hat is the fello~sllip of tile mystery which...has
been hid ill God, . ¯ . tO the intent that now alight be made known by the’ cburch tile manifold wisdom of God"--"which in other ages
was not nmde known unto the sons of men as it ts now revealed".--]~phesians 3 : 5-9, 10.
It stands free from all parties, sects and creeds of men, while it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
subjection to the ~ill of God ill Christ, as expressed in the holy Scriptures. it is thus free to declare bohlly whatsoever the Lord
hath spoken--according to the divine wisdom granted unto us to understand his utterances. Its attitude is not dogmatic, but confident;
for we know whereof we ailirra, treading with implicit faith upon the sure promises of God. it is lmld as a trust, to be used only in his
service; hooce our decisions relative to wbat may avd what may not appear in its co|unlns muss be according to our judgment of his
good pleasure, the teaching of bis V¢ord, for the ellhuHd4ng of his people in grace and knowledge. And we not only invite but urge our
readers to prove all its utterances by the infallible Word to which reference is constantly made to facilitate such testing¯
BIG POLITICIANS ASSIST BIG BUSINESS 600,000 men, an expanded n:ltiotml guard about 500,000
and l’CgUl;ir nrllly Ilnits eXlumded by volunteers to
President1-[a,rding, by virtue of his office tile leading strong,
about 175,000 men, couhl be made quickly :t~ail’tble, it was
politician of the country,~rged the coal operators to re- indiealed.
open their mines, and wired the governors of twenty- United States Senator Pepper, of l’eunsylvama, in-
eight sta,tc~ to protect the operators. The Nat;on, com- timates that prior to the execunonof such a plan, the
mentsas follows: press would be lttihzed for propagaudato exmte the
We wish we could believe tlmr President l:Iarding had
people and gel them into a state of mindready to ac-
the v, isdoin or" Camite, lind that his htvitation h) the coltl
operators to reopen their mines regardless o[ the strike quiesce in anything :
WnSHtlellded Its ;l wise and gentle lesst)tl to tim shrill :tql- That the President has eonsidered ts.-_u:ume of a call for
risers who assured hhn that the way to end strikes was volunteers w’ls indimLted by Senator Pepper of l’cnnsyl-
to eall out the troops und sturt mining .... Mr. Harding ~illl];[, ~]10 lifter at conference with the chief excc.utive
must. have known that l,is appeal to the operators to reopen recently pointed out th:lt b!l !letting iJublie OlH,imt 1Jael;. o/
thei," mines x~as an appeal to reopen on their own te,’ms, h.,,nz Herding believed llmt filling up I:he bl{eletonized reg-
without agreement with the miners, anti th.tt his elabor;tte ular arlny :lit(1 national guatrd an(I recruiting to wur strength
hivitation Io lhe Slale governors to protect them in such the "paper army," or orgqnized reserve, with volunteers,
;I l’,~.MitHplhJn WaSall invitation to the Staten to take rode would be eoml)aratively simple ....
ill file ilispnlc. He richly deserved the rebuke given hhll ’"]-’he mitiomll defeuee atct of ]920." the statement de-
by (lo~ernor llitchie of Mnryhuld: elured, "preserihes that the org,mizetl peace esl:d~lishment,
including the regular army, lhe n:Hiomtl gunYd. ;uld the
"1 feel that tit this time I should no[ suhscribe to Ihe
or.b’mHzed reserves, shell imtltnle nil of tho.-.e dixisions nnd
tlsSlllnpli~)n thut till things else Imve failed aim tlmt the other mililary ,met:ss:try to form the basis for a complete
varlotis States nltlbt give assuram.’es which might lead
end immediale mohilizntion for lht: mttional defense [11 lho
them to take up arms ngainsi lheir o~n people .... The
evenl of a llatinlm[ emergency deehtred by Congress."
presence of troops is 01ten not the ;t’~sU)’;tliCe 0{ security
"Before lhe V:orhl War such a delinite and eon~prehen-
Itut the provocation of serious trouble.. . I renter(, to urge sire phm wa.b ilnl)Ossihh.’," Pershing said. "Our military
wilh lhe greatest re~l)eet that 3’mi renew your clhu’is to
renourees ~ere too limited, and there ~c(t,~. *to ldy(tl .sanuI, io~,
mljust in u pl’op(,r end peaceful way ho/h the raih’.ad btrike
for develolmlent o£ such ;t system. Since the World \Vat,
:ltld the Co:tl sll’lke." witlt more "ttlequale sources of military equipnmnt :Hid
The Sll~j£t.~,dlJon of llooding Iht’ co;tl-lw, Mueing regions lmtterial ~ind ,tt,illt .~e, llled lcyot .~(tltcD, ol~, for developnmnt
with troollS wus not only tin attt’llllH 1o projlld.~e lhe dis-
and training of our tr:tditiomtl citizen fll-nly in tinle of peace,
l+ute; it x\’:ts llOt Ollly a dHIigtlrous pI’<~WJCHtlOIL ;1"~ (llJVCl’nl)r we are able to prepare delinite plans."
RJtchic’ Stl’:gested; it was utterly futile. ~\’llell )tmn Hre
tmorganizcd nnd un(:erl:lin of l.heir rights, they (:nn I)(.* THE CHURCHES CALLEDON
cowed by the list,, o[’ ~Ol’et! : bill Ilion like Ihe Illiln;rs,
orgill[]zqql, delernlillell, skilled W(WklIIGql, Now come the churches. Ostensibly they are deeply
who calm.i- he
rel)laeed by the ofT. seouri]u4s of tim lint’Is Or’ by Negro fronds interested in the welfare of the "public," and more or
imported from lhc SOlll]l, c’ln less igqmrethe life-and-death struggle for existence tha~
only be ex:lspel’ated 1)y such
bullying lmrtiz;ulship. ’J~lle.v yielded Io brute force once,
has heen forced upon the miners and public by the coal
three years ago; they will u.t (1o so ugain.
operators--alias ]fig business--by low wages, and op-
A I~IILITARY DICTATORSIIIP pressive and intolerable working conditions. ’l’he Fed-
Perhaps ~he people of America are not aware that in cral Council of the Churches of Christ ill Amerle;b
1920 the Congress of the United States passed a /aw jointly with the Roman Catholic National Wel[are
which, ha time of l,:aee on t,hc ~ ill of the President ap- Council and the Social ansi:me Commissionof the Cen-
proved hy Cc~,,.-’ress, transforms the govermnent into a tral Conference of Amerman l~nhhis, step in, in effect,
rail ira ry d.ctatorshil~. Thisis part o1’ the legal nmehinery to the rescue of tile operators, whowould like above
determined upon hy big husiness immediately after the all else to have things fixed for the miners so as to
close of the World War and created for use in the stop all economicprotests ’against oppression:
struggle to destrov the organizations of working men. WeI.:heve Ih:lt thc lllUjor[ly Of lhe l~ecq~le of l]lis COUll-
Whenevera "national e)nergeney" is dee]a, red to exist, try "ire unwilling to have ils ~iiallv imlmrtnnt industries
suh.jeet to economicconll)o_t FIS It nlelili,~ o[’ >ettlil~g di.’slHIles
the lq’esident is antomativally given powers which in
effect make him a military dwtator. In pul’~uanee of The NewYork press owned "lad controlled by Wall
such a move,an item in the Des 5[OllleS lte:ltster is of Street has consistently avoided g~vhlg its readers 1.he
mterest~: real viewpoint of the menon .,.trike, .r any ade, lnai.e
All tqrnly sizable ellOllL,~h to gu;Ird every (:l)all lnllle lind conception of what they have had to endure at the
cve,’y import:mr railway termimtl conhl be phn:ed ill the ha, rots of the ]’wh; but its attitude has heen full~ saris-
field on short notice by the United States govermnent, factory to its owners. In praise of the new.-.pal,~,rs, the
General Pershing disclosed in a stntentent issued today,
telling whet could be done if the United St,tIeq x, ere invaded. united ehurehes--the third partner with big business
an:! big polities---chime in:
In order’not t., a,’ouse tile suspicions of the popular,.,, We huve ... been ~’ratilied lo nnle tlmt the press has nmde
the persons hehiHd the seheme eamoufhtge their intent ttll u))usually .>uceebsful effort to ~’c~:or(l the fael-s of lhis
hy prating aloout foreign invasion., in order to conceal eonHi(.t.
the intentimt of keeping organized labor in sub.iection : The ecclesiastics who prepared a paper on bringing
Eighteen war-strength infantry divisions of reserves, ahout the stakes to aa early end and who sen~ i~ ~o {he
294 ,the WATCH TOWER
President are the ones who rely upon the wealthy all awry, there is something the matter with the church.
profiteers amol~g their membershipto supply the funds It has, to a great extent, lost its life and vigor and lost its
influence and is no longer functioning along lines for wlHeh
for httle church charities which keep kindly-disposed it was instituted.
membersbusy and afford jobs for professional charity "It has become an object of contempt, and rightly so.
workers. Never is a profiteer, and seldom is a pro- The heart has been taken out of the gospel. Preachers are
fessedly "Christian" crook, reproved by a church; for presenting things that tickle the palate of the flesl% m~d
the moneyfrom such wolves helps the ecclesiastics to are by their flatteries and moralizings training a generation
of self-satisfied pharisees.
keep the thing going and enab]es them to affect a pious "Having abolished its real object as a soul-saving agency,
posture of liberality to the oppressed poor and to the tt has constituted itself a watchdog over and regulator of
destitute, who unfortunately hawe been stripped of public morals, and has presumed to become a dictator of
earnings and savings by the church members in the legislation.
"The pulpit has degenerated into a lecture forum. The
world banldng systenls that precipitated the hard times. cross is gone, the spirit o£ God has departed. As a natural
in commenting upon the united message from the result, the church has lost its influence."
religious errand-boys of big business to the :President, Consequently it is with a spirit of bored impatience
the Chicago Daily News unctuously declares: that newspaper readers scan such a prmmnneeme]~tas
THE CHURCH’S NEW DAY the following by the "Right ].~everend" Bishop James
DeWolf Perry reported in the New York Times, who
Many changes that profoundly affect tl~e well-being of
mankind come silently. One such change, of vast sig- would institute a prolonged research into the textile
nificance because of the far-reaching potential benefits that strike, during which the workers might incidentally be
it foreshadows, is the new emphasis given to its message driven by starvation into submission to the Bishop’s
by the ehtlrch at large. It is not stressing the future life mill-owningassociates :
the less, lint the present life the more. The chief opportunity nnd responsibility of the church
This is shown, for example, by the recent joint appeal in the situation here is a careful and sympathelie sludy
of Catholics, Protestants and Jews, through their national of the entire l)t’oblem. The right is not all on either side.
official agencies to President Harding to make an effort For the church the duty is to sit down with the represen-
to settle the coal strike .... tatives of both sides "rod get the fuels; 1o learn from the
The church collectively and churches Individually are manufactures why they take the st’rod they have taken,
proving themselves mindful of tl,ose golden admonitions, and then to sit down with the intelligent lenders of the
"Bear ye one "mother’s burdens," and "Thou shalt love thy unions, and learn from them the living coudilion~ they face.
neighl)or as thyself." Whether it be in efforts to better the Then it will be possible to try to intelligenlly interpret
condition of children In city slums through providing gym- one to the other with truth and sincerity. Then may we
nasiums and club rooms [from funds contributed by re- ]mpc to 1)ring. about a restoration of peace upon the prin-
ligious profiteers], extending playgrounds and carrying on eil)les Tor which the church stands.
vacation selmols, or to make social (.enh.,rs of rural churches Trtdy the so-called Churches of Christ seeking to
while working for good roads and improved melhods of
sit in judgment on an)%hing and ever34hing , lmve de-
agriculture, the church is showing itself increasingly faith-
ful to its task of bettering conditions here on e:~rth, a task parted far from Christ, who queried, "Mnn, who made
as necessary as that of preparing people for the great me a judge or a divider over you?"--LM~e12:14.
adventure that lies beyond this life.
CHURCHES REPUDIATED
There never was seen a time equal to the middle ages
for the doing of "uplift" work by the monksand priests The commonpeople are coming to see more clearly
of the RomanCatholic Church for the good of the serfs the alh:lnce between big church nnd 1)lg business, and
and slaves of Europe; but this work played into the are repudmting the churches and their hypocrit,eal pre-
hands of the robber lords and kings in whose courts tensions of friendship for working people. This is
bishops and cardinals showed their actual colors as going on most rapidly in regions where big business has
friends of the oppressors of the people. :History re- openly showed its hand, as it has in the West Virginia
peats itself. coal fields. There, according to press despatches hke
HONEST MINISTERS IN REVOLT the following from the bTewYork Call the workers are
No wonder that honest ministers in some of the turning their faces away from ecclesiastieism. The
church pulpits are in revolt. At Ocean Grove, New report is of an interview with Lawrence ])wyer, member
Jersey, the truth was told about these nests of hypoc- of the international executive board of the United Mine
crisy by one of the Reverends, as reported in the ~ew Workers:
"In the unorg~,,]ized fields the miners don’t pay nmch
York Daily News, under the headline, "ChurchEarns atlention to the ,’egular preachers because they are paid by
But Contempt, Pastor Asserts": the operators," Dwyer asserled. "Then the operators nmke the
Asserting that the church has become an object of con- ministers preach against unionism, in the Senate investigation
tempt and has been preaching little less than dressed-up the operators testified under oath that lhey p:~id the preach-
"heathen morality,"the Rev. Dr. I’aul Lindem’mn, St. Paul, ers and told them what to preach, and discharged them
Minn., editor of the "American Lutimran Mag,qzine," ad- If they didn’t preach according to instructions."
dressed a large audience in the Ocean Grove Auditorium. For this reason the church, the authentic established
"Wbat is to be done?" asked the Rev. Dr. Lindemann. church, has fallen into disrepute among the miners, accord-
"The church has been appealed to; but in a world that is lng to Dwyer. But in its place there has arisen the miner-
WATCH TOWER 295
preacher, who works in tile mines all day with the other Christ crucified, and by their utterances and political ac-
men and at night preaches to little groups of the mine tivities get into the newspapers, from which the man on tim
peol)le in some miner’s home. Someti,nes not more than street generally derives his impressions of tile church as
dozen people gather for these simple services under the a whole.
harsh light of oil i-imps. The great apostasy in which even the best ministers of
And these services are different from those held in tile
(:hutches in more ways l]lall Olle. For, while tile employer- the churches are involved, and to which most honest men
paid ministers preael~ the open shop along with the gospel, are still blind,.was prophesied by St. Paul as due to come
tile miner-preachers do not preach the doctrine of tmionisln. before the rise of the Papacy: "That d’ly [Christ’s day]
There is no propaganda in these services. shall not come, except there come a falling away [apos-
’"J_’llt,.v are just sincere in their religion," is the exlilan- tasy] first, and that manof sin [ Papacy] be revealed,
alien which Mr. Dw.ver gives to this fact.
Anothe,’ reason which has caused the miners to regard the son of perdition." (2 Thessalonians 2: 3) qPhis apos-
the regular church with suspicion is that the ministers not tasy took definite feral in 3~5 A.D., in the time of
only preach the open shop, but try to help put it into Constantine the Great, whodestroyed the faithful prim-
l)raetiee. He declared that in their visits to tlle homes of itive church and forced the faithless ecclesiastics, who
the miners the ordained ministers urge tile women to in- assumed the places of the former ministers of God, to
fluence lheir husbands against tile union.
Tile miner-Iweachers are nol ordained ministers, and they submit to him and to transform the church into the re-
re(.’eive no sltlary. Not only that, but they are the victims ligious department of the government, subject to it and
of an unscrupulous and far-reaching discrimination on the to big busmcss, where the churches have remained ever
part of tile operators. Miner-preachers are given the worst since.
phleeS in tile mine in which to work; "rod Mr. Dwyer toh], Not a few of the ministers sense the fact that some-
in addition, how a _Negro prealeher in Mingo whose serlnous
were drawing attention w:ls talcen out into the woods one thing is the matter with the system with which they
night not long ago and severely beaten by "a eoul)le of are conm’ctcd. One pastor says: "There is something
deputy sheriffs." radically wro,g with our church." The New .York
~[ost of these ])reachers c]ainl connection with one World publishes an item under the headline, "Dr. Walsh
or another of the church systems. This is a class which urges ~{oral Standards of Early Church," illustrating
is just beginning to appear to view, but which is des- the vague desire of some to get back to "the simplicity
tined to become quite nmncrous as ccclesias~ieism that is in Christ" (2 Corinthians 11 : 3)
hastens to its fall from power, and thereafter. It was
concerning themthat "The Finished 5lys’ccry" said: PLEA FOR CHARACTER
EzeRiel 3q : 23, 24 .... While the revolution overthrow- Isaiah told the people that ceremonies and incense and
ing ecvle~iasti(.ism will Ill:IRe (ltliie It tie:ill .>weep, there will "so]cHin uleetitlgs" and "’~;lill obliltiol/s" were all flbonlilla-
lion to the Lord. ]-le made a plea for the Rind of religion
still remain some of the more lowly adherents of ecclesias-
tical systems, who wilt imagine that they and their ideals that aims at the building up of moral character.
are to prosper and spread even to tile eoutrol of tile revo- The early morality was not a merely personal and private
lutionary order of things. thing. :It is astonishing how they engaged in what we call
33: 25, 26 .... But God knows their hearts, and is social service, hell)inS strangers and 1)risoners and the sieR.
against them, for their conlinnanee in tile evil ways of Pithy the Younger [62-110 A.D.], investigating Christi’ratty
eeelesiasticism. for the Eml~el’or Trajan, rel)orted that the Christians as-
selnbled and sang hynuls and then bound themselves by an,
33:27 .... A sad ’twaRening awaits thenl. AS Jehovah
lives, those tares then surviving the ravages of revohltion oath not to slca, l, cheat, lie, 1,,all, vommit ad~dtery, or dv-
shall be slain by lhe sword of anarchy, and shall have fra.ud (t, ny one. This was part of their religion.
taRen away all pretense of 1)eing Christians. Those that Supl)oSe that part of our religious service today were
have tile spirit of earthly nn,Ijilion shall be given to be the taring of "m oath to do whatever the highest moral
destroyed by the savagery of anarehy.--l’ages 5.-20, .531. slandard wouhl demand. The emlblo3cr would take oath
to pay the highest s~lhtl’ies he possd,ly eouhl. The employes
would swear to give a full, honest and hearty day’s work.
A BRIGHTER SIDE
Of course, while the ecclesiastical system itself h,qs HUSBAND AND WIFE
been cast off fronl Cod and mauifests manyplato evi- ’-Pile wife, the ]lnSb;llH1. tile yOIlllg IIIHII filial the y,,ung wo-
nlan, ]-:llowing v¢]tat telnlltallOnS alld dangers lnetl and wonlea
dences of final disfavor, there are manygood men~znd faced ill the dq.ys of tile early Chrislians, would ask them-
womenstill emneshed in its web, including thousands selves: "Can I tttke my stand again.>t the ties, the con-
of the clergy who are ministers of Christ, woefttl]y ventions and the customs of the world ill this, my day,
deceived. Cmmnentingon the foregoing ~ltteranees or as they did in theirs?" F.aeh of us would look at his own
P, ev. Paul Lindemann,the editor of 13rool,;lyn Lq’e says: life and ask, "What oath ought I to tare?"
If all the churches, with their numbers and their organ-
ization and wealth, were to get together in a programnle
This is pretty much wh:lt we have been thinking for a something like this and maRe an effort Io rttise again tile
long time, though of cour.-e the implications qre too sweep- old nloral standard, lmowing that it saved the world once,
ins; for there are re:my pulpits that have not degenerated
and kno~lng ]I0W ne(’essary it is to save tile world today,
into lecture platforms aml thousands of churches that are
what might we not accomplish?
sticking by the teachings of Jesus Christ.
O~fly, nnfortmmtely, the lWe~ehet’s who have a~u,m(:d the Many "nlourners in Zion," like Rev. Dr. WaNh,
role of wateh(h,as over l)ublie nlorals and tli~:tators earnestly desire to live the true Christian life, but fail
leg~.~l’ttion attraet far more attention than those who pre:teh to see tlhfl the very things they consider strength effect,-
296 rhe WATCH TOWER BROOKLYN, N. Y4
ual]y hinder them--"numbers, organization and wealth." defeated and cast out. And with this elimination of the
The day is not more than a very few years in the future devil from the affairs of earth, all the sin and suffering
and sorrow which he caused will disappear. Every plague
when the members of the great company must take the spot of sin and inf;imy will be blotted out; all the marshes
stand they now say they wish to take; for they will and bogs of crime, all tim gambling dens and drinking hells,
have to choose between that and the second death. It and haunts of slmme, all lhe loalhsome pest holes of hideous
is of this host, nowin the churches, that the Revelator disease done away forever.
said: All the depraved enhino’ls nnd the vain-glm’ious eom’ls,
and the self-seeking legislatures of |he worhl adjourned.
"After this I beheld, a.nd, lo, a great multitude, which All rotten rulers and corrupt public olh(-ials, who use their
no man could nmnber, of all nations, and kindreds, and oIliccs for private gain through public phmder -rod to serve
tongues, steeds before the throne, and before the Lamb, the. advaneemcnt of their own political forlunes, I)anished
clothed with white robes, and palms in flmir hands .... in utter disgrace from before the eldldren of men. All the
These are they which came up out of great trihulation, cannon melted into church bells, and the swords I)eal-cn into
reaping hooks. All the emptiness and vanity which now
and have washed their robes, and made them ~l:;te ih clmrncterizes social life exploded, and true brotherhood
the blood of the ]~amb." (Revelation 7 : 9, 14) A mighty and hmnan sympathy smiling in their stead. Every impure
time of trouhle shortly awaits this great company,when picture and every line of lust on every printed page, and every
the church systems now dividing them will he gone, and levherous playhouse and every lie of yelh)w journalism
C:l.bI, out forever.
in which they will gloriously overcome as did those All the selfish and infamous cliques, and combinations
that died for the ideals of the early church. and rings--political rings, and whiskey rings, and vice rings,
Incidentally it should be no small encouragement to and society rings, and rMlroad rings, and mercantile rings,
the true church today to know that the Vowunto the ¯ rod bankers’ rings, and labor rings, and building-contractor
Lord which they have taken is but another bit of evi- rings, and walking-delegate rings, and d:m(.i~’z-masler rings,
and Bolshevistie rings--yes, and preachers’ rings and a
dence that the ehm’ehof the twentieth century is walk- thousand other rings--broken up, and in their place fra-
ing in the footsteps of the oathbound chm’eh of the ternity, love, and a sweet fellowship oslabhshed.
tirst century. Every jail emptied, every penilenlial’y in the h:mds of
STEPPING INTO MORE LIGHT a receiver, every judge given "l 1)crmanent vqeation, all the
Scarcely a week passel that neus does not come of forces thqt have to drixe and rest]’:dn and coerce the sons
of men, and all those who work iniquity in any form, put-
clergymen stepping more and more into the light, and ting through rotten laws, crippling lmnest industry, cor-
preaching muchthe same, if not the identical message rupting the press, exploiting the poor--whatsoever maketh
of the true church. A special despatch in the Philadel- tat(laity or workelh a lie---ended by the power of the
phia P,ublic Ledge, r, appearing at greater length in other Almi~hly, and a clean, honesl, heahhy, pure-minded,
papers, depicts some truth about the ca,’thly phase of strmght-liml)ed, rcd-hlnoded, home-loving, woman-honoring,
God-fearing race of men walking in the midst of a redeemed
the kingdomof God. The hea.dlines a re c r se to present creation, lighted with beauty and blessed I)y the smile of
truth: ".Evangelist Paints MillmmiumPmture. Eal~h an approving God !
Won’t Disappear"; "Straton Foresees H(’aven on Earth. Yes, soon will come that glorio~ls day which this
Norristowu llaptists Are Told Earth Will Not Be Wiped manin eloquent words proclaims. :Dr. Straton is not
Out." Dr. Straton is a well knownvice-fighter, and one far from the kingdomof God. lie is one of the fore-
of the more prominent of NewYork city eler3ymen of runners of an army of honest, God-fearing ministers,
the Baldist denomination. Wequote, in part: whoare destined soon to take up the song of the ]dng-
(h,d’s original plan WaS ’l l)c’rfc(-t world dowered with
dora of God at hand---when the divine prophecy of two
Iml,piness and blessed with peace .... The tired re.-.!ilution
of the hum:mrace and its pe.rl)eta;Ition in a lmr)lie(I told millenniums ago finds its mate: "The Lord gave the
perfected world is necessary, therefore, if God is really word: great was the companyof those that published
to win eoml)/ehqy in the age-long contest between himself it. Rings [political, financial, ecclesiastical] andtheir
aim Ihe devil. [Jnless the earth is to be reslored :rod God’s armies did flee apace: and she [the true ehureh] that
l.hlqn l)hln is finally t. I)e vi(’lomous, then he h;ts only tarried at homedivided the spofl."--Psalm 68:11, 12.
partly Silccee(led in his wise and loving efforts toward
l’edelllption. In patient expectation the church awaits the nearing
Scripture tem’h(’s clearly that in the fllhless of God’s hour when all of the spirit-begotten shall be one in
time, the devil, the author of all evil, is to be completely heart and one in voice.
SOME ONE
"Some One a crown of life will have "Some one will shout the victory
ICy and by: By and by;
Some one the glorious King will see, Some one will join the heavenly band,
From toils and pains of earth be free, Some one be found at God’s right hand.
And evermore with Christ will be; Some one with overcomers stand;
Shall you, shall I? Shall you, shall I~"
THE MINISTRY OF JOHN THE BAPTIST
-- Oe’rom~,~15 -- LUI,:E 3. --
ANUNUSUAl*
PREACI]ER--UNDER
GOD’SPIlOVII)L~NCI~S--RAI.’TIS~M.-OF]H~PENT.XNCE--PROI)FIET ANDlqlIEST--GREATnUT TIIUL)." HUI~fBT.~
--TIB[ES OF JUDGJtENT--FA]TIIFUL WITNESS.
"Repe~zt ye; 1or the ki~,gdom of hcavc~ is at lirl~z(l."--M~tttl~ctc 8. 2.
14. XVhntcircumstances afterwardscausedJohn’sfaithto falter 19. £1ow did the work of PastorRussellcorrespond to thatof
a little? ¶ 10. Johnthe Baptist? ¶ 13.
15. llow did Jesus show John that he (Jesus) was the l~Iessiah? 20. Show.~omeolhercorrespondencies in the work and message
¶lJ. of ,l~dln grid l’ttstor ltussell. ¶ 14.
16. lIow and why was John’s work a fulfillment of ~Ialachi’s 21. \Vh;tt II~ e aspects of Xohn’sworkare lncntione(l ? ¶ [1.5.
words? ¶ 12.
17. What greater fulfilhnent did the words of Malachi look forward 22. \Vhat two tasks did John aceomphsh? ¶ 16.
to?¶ 112. 23. What Jale came to those Jmxs that failed to heed John’s
18. Whendid ]~Iessiah’s judgment specially descend upon the me~s:lge? ¶ 16.
antitypical temple, the church? ¶ 13. 24. What were the lehttions of John and Igerod? ¶¶ 17,18.
JESUS TEMPTED
-- OCTOBER 22 ---- LUKE 4 :.1-30
d-FSUS’ CONSECII.ATION-----OTJIDEDBY TY[E SPIRIT -- TE~[PTEDBY TY-[E I)EVIL--THREE LINES OF TEJtPTATION-- TILE WE2~PONOF
DOUBT.
"In lhat he himself h.ath say.feted being templed, he is able to succor t.kem that are tvmptcd."--llebrews ~: 18.
What a strange
into the wilderness;
forly d~l.vs, he "was with the wild beasts."
opening for his mini.~try!
and there,
(Mark 1: 13)
Why must he
for
and his bretln’en. Without doubt the purpoae of his life have this c.M)er,ence? Evidently it was necessary for the
began to dawn upon him; for although he could nol yet purpose of meditation; for though he had meditated all
understand the deep spiritual meaning of the Scriptures his life---even at twelve years of age we find him deeply
with which he was so familiar, it is certain that he knew studious--the newness of life which now came to him
suilicieut of their teaching to guide him to a consecration. neceasitated a re-adjustment of all his thinking; not in-
dc, ed to unlearn, but to add the fullness of the new light
l-lence when Jesus went to John we do not think of him
to that which he had already received.
as going up for immersion only, to conform to John’s
baptisln, or to signify and symbolize Iris consecration to :But it was also necessary that he should have this
God, and then to return home. He went to place himself wilderness experience in order "to be tempted of the devil."
at his Father’s disposal. Why did he not go to John The baptism of Jesus was the outward beginning of those
earlier, when first he heard of John’s ministry? The purposes of God which ultimately resolve into a warfare
answer must be tlmt he realized that his time did not against Satan, and which will bring about his destruction.
come until he should be thirty years of age. And he need- The baptized Jesus was God’s challenge to the devil. ~_p-
ed no cleansing; for he was pure and spotless, having pa,’ently in God’s plan it was necessary that it should be
escaped the corruption of nature; also both by disposition proved to the devil, and to those sl)irit beings who were
and by the power of God, he had escaped contamination more or less under his control, that God could produce
with the world. a man who would resist temptation.
It was a considerable distance that Jesus traveled in And so before Jesus had developed in spiritual life he
order to symbolize his consecration ; for John was baptizing was subjected to the temptations of his great enemy and
in the Jordan near to Jericho. As Jesus presented himself rival. God would prove that Jesus had the love of God in
he was received by Jolln as his superior, and John sub- his heart; and that ]te was so truly unselfish that he would
miLted only after Jesus had reiterated his desire to be not take his own way, but seek his l~’athet"s praise, how-
hnmersed. To those who m’~y lmve been witnesses Jesus ever keen and subtle were the temptqtioa~s put into his
would appear as presenting himself to John for the wash- way. Furthermore the experiences x~hich he was to get
ing away of sins. Here he was first numbered amongst in his temptations were intended to prove his fidelity to
the transgressors. God before he began his ministry, and also th:tt out of
On Jesus’ coming up out of the water, John saw on him them he migl,t gain such lessons of experience as would
the sign which God had given to him when he was com- help hint in his life’s work.
missioned: he saw the form of a dove resting upon Jesus, The period of temptation was forty days--a symbolic
the symbol of the holy spirit. (John 1:33) This con- number. During those days Jesus ate nothing. Wrapt
firmed John, and caused him to bear witness to Jesus. in meditation he fed on the word of God. l)erllaps he might
There was also a voice from heaven for the benefit of them have found in the wilderness some of the kind of food
I)oth, and probably no one else he’trd it, saying, "This which John had, locusts and wild honey; but tl,e record
is my beloved son, in whom I am well pleased"--the Is clear that he did not eat, and that when the days
wmmss tllat Jesus was accepted of God. (Matthew 3:17) were ended he was hungry. At this juncture the devil
Then, ’rod as he prayed, the heaven was opened (Luke abpeared to him. :How we do not know, nor are we
3:21) and in spirit he entered into a new realm of life. specially concerned; but we see no reason for thinMng
The power of the spirit came upon him; he discerned that the devil nmnifested himself in any form. Pe,’haps
spiritual things; the high calling opened before him, and there was at the end of his period of meditation some
he saw and felt himself a son of God begotten to the relaxation on the part of Jesus; he was not now so ab-
divine nature. It was in this w’ty that the consecration sorbed. He found himself hungry and probably faint.
and anointing of onr Lord took place: it was also the It was just at this point the devil came to him, not as an
beginning of the new priesthood. enemy, but as a friend, and said: "If thou be the Son
JESUS GOES INTO THE WILDERNESS of God, command that these stones be made bread." The
It could easily be inmgined that .Tesus. having realized suggestion would seen] a re~onable one, as if the devil
himself as one sent from God for a ministry, would wish would say: You are faint, and you cannot work in that
1o enter immediately on his life’s work. But the spirit he condition; your Father could not wish you to be weak;
lind received guided or even Impelled him away from men and if you be tne Son of God what could be more reason-
3OO rho WATCH TOWER BROOKI’,N. N. Y,
able titan you should use your power aud turn tlmse have these things, if lie would worsltip Sat’tu. But Jesus
sloules into bread! x~ith vehemence replied: "Get thee I~t~hind hie, Sutau; for
Here is tile iirsl, temptation and at ~ub|le one; for why it is writteu, Thou shalt worship the Lord thy God, and
slvouh.l the su~e.,,.tiou llOt be acted up<,u? Jesus knew 1.lute him only shalt titou serve."--Luke 4:8.
tilt.’ sugge~,li<m was u temptatiou to hiul; for filly sugge.stion,
however apparently hell)ful, from one who is not in tmr- A SUBTLE TEMPTATION
lUOny wnlh God is sure, if followed, to lead one uway from The devil was again rel)utted ; but he did not leave Jesus;
God. If we may ~o luit it, Jesus used eo]mn(m sen.-_e. :ln(l for lie had still another shaft and Jesus must still be
g;lve fill his fothm’crs a lead which tlley do xxell Io follow st,b jetted to feral)ration. 1Kis trial was not yet fiuished,
very cMsoly. ,Now the devil had another helpful suggestion. Since Jesus
I)OUBT AND ]’liE DEVIL wa., proving himself so faithful to his Father, ihe devil
would imlp him ill his work. Ue made a l)roposal satanic
~rhaCever was lho ]nmnmer Jn which the <levil nl)proaehed
and devilish in its culudng and malignity. He approached
aesll% the fli<:l Ih;tl in his sugge,;lion he sought to .lesus after this fnshion: You ore "lbout to start your
inq)hlnt :t dollld x~<n]ld he suflieiet~t for Jesus to know
ministry, and you have heen anointed for that service;
lhat lie wa,¢ an t.nomy. ~ro :logo[ of God wouhl eOlUe tO
h, ut the peei)le do not know as v,’e do of your appointment
him sug~osling a <hmbt. ]-lul the devil said: "If thou be."
lllid ill ~;lyilLa 1hat he provell himself an enemy. This is by your le:,l.her, their God, and it will lie mo’.l h(’lp’.’ul
:llwnys 1he (h, vil’s xx~lj: doubl is his lirst illstrumt,wl. It to you if they are prol)erly ndvised of it. I suggest ;t
way hy which you cuu show tlmt you are one sent "fronl
was go to nmlhor Eve in the .’.,:laden. "]qath God said?"
heaven. Let us uo la the l)inu:tele of tim temple; and .x’qbll
was his lir.,,t x~on’d to Eve. as uf he would instil a douht
enn 1)egin your ministry from there by casting you]’self
as to God’s goothmss ;llld sincernty.
down, and thus prove you are sent of God. I suggest lhi.~
This firsl ienipltitioll to .]o.,./i.> xx:ls intended to cause him is not ,-ut anreasot]’tble proposal, htdeed, lvrobably this
to I;ll<e hill~Solf Ollt of his I’alhel"S rare. He knew that it was inlentled _for }Oil; for what other thnn this eouhi the
wa,~ el his lCalh(.r th’tt he ]1~1(1 ~Olle into the wihlerlaes’s alld I’salm u/ean which says: "He shall give his angels charge
wa~, 3oi Ihm’(,: ;tnd if his l’~alher +:hose that lie should re- over thee, to keep thee’i"--Luke 4: 10.
maim he would Iv’list thnt Fie eould end would preserve
:l.’he devil would suggest Io Jesus that there could be no
him. I,~r "man Sh:lll itol live I)3" bread ah-me, but by every
other meaning for that word than the one lie now ofl’ered;
xx(~rll llltll pl’ol.oelh,lh .tit of the month of God." (Matthew
and tim lemptution would have some point in tile mind
4:4) In Hlly ~qlSe his life was in his Father’s hamlg, ,qnd
of Jesus because of tim strange way in which his leather
he xx’4)uht ]e;ivt: il there. Also the tenipiaiion to Jesus to
was introducing him to his ministry. If God really wunled
saiisfy his mltttral "tl}l)etite w’ts a subtle attempt to get ilint to get to lhe peol)le to tell them the trttths tie .had
him I~ iul.x allenlion to his llosh, nnd our Lou’d would do
to declare, wio’ did lm not provide some means of ready
nolhinta’ of the kind. Eve ate because the fruit wns good
access to ihenl? .Testis w:ts u lonely man, brought Ul) ill a
and pleasant; she indulged. But even wlmn hungry Jesus
despised phtee: bud walked alune to ,3ohn; no one else saw
w<mhl nol eat at line devil’s suggestion, life would eat only
iris anointing, "nnd now for forty days lie had been away
in the will of God.
from tim ]l:lunts of niezL "What a strauge opening for
The devil, foiled, now in spirit tool{ our Lord "into an
sueh at ministry as his! ’£he devil suggested a better wary,
ex-eeeding high mountain, "rod showed him all tile 10ngd<mas
end hoped to deceive Jesus into mismierpretatio,~ of tile
of the world nnd lhe glory of lhem." (Matthew 4:8) 13y
Scripture mul into pride of heart in showing the people
stl~gesliol~ or a vision he gave ,Tesus a mental view of Ihe
he hall come from heaven. And the devil would have been
world filled with 1he glory and glamour of earth’s great
king(louis; of kilngs and the glory of their retinues; and his :ttlverlising nmnager, alul would httve gotten lhe crowds
out to see Jesus leap down--and destroy himself, liut
he nm(le manifest to Jesus’ mind something of the glory
again Jesus saw an ene]uy; for aguin there was the "if
which would be his who w-Is thei," overlord. Then he suid
thou be the Sou of God." Here was doubt again thrust
to Jesus: "All this power will I give thee, and the glory
into his mind. Jesus saw the foolishness of this course---
of thenl; for that is delivered unto rite; avid to whomsoew-~r that it would not be failh in God, but be presumption und
I will I give it. If thou therefore wilt worship me, aii
would be temt)tintg God, would be forcing the hand of God;
shall be thine."--Lul~e 4 : 6, 7.
mid he s’tid: "It is written, Thou shalt not tempt the Lord
I4ere wns a bold bid, and a trunk declaration of his thy God." (Luke 4:12) The devil now left him for
lmrlmse. If Jesus would worship him, that is, acknowledge season, foiled, and full of malignity.
him "is overlord, lie lmdertook to give Jesus qll this glory
which in menial vision i]e had seen--the glory of all lhe SATAN’S THREE AVENUES OF ATTACK
l{lllg(lollls of 1he e:lrlh. The temptatiou was u keen one; In these lhree tentptatioqs we see agaiu the original
for ,lesus knew that Sqtnn was "tim god of this worhl," teull)Iation’, in the Garden of Eclell. Satan has lhree
¯ llld lhe Wtll’lll heart of aestls was filled wilh desire to "tvenues by wldeh lie can approach the citadel of the Inunan
bless Ihe l’alzdlies of the enrth. If he were in position of heart--the lust of the eye, the It]st of the th.,sh, and the
i’lller, how quickly he could bring inlo operation such legis- pride of life. It was "wheu the woman saw that the tree
htri(m "rod direction us would help the world I)ac’k into was good for food, and that it was plensant to the eyes,
sotm; sort of hnpl)iness of life] He did not know I)ow and a tree to be desired to make one wise, she tool< of the
long a time would elapse before his Fatiler would establish fruit thereof, und did eat." (Genesis 3:6) Jesus was
him in his ldngdou]. He did know that trial and difficulty, teml)ted (1) a(-eording to the flesh--"uutlm tlieso slontes
and misunderstanding and suffering at the hands of wicked bread"; (2) according to the (mental) eye---Satan "showed
men would he his lot, "tnd llmt he had much imrdship to hint all the kiwgdolus of the world and the glory of them";
undergo befol’e he could have even the prospect of the and (3) to pride of heart, for Sqtau wanted Jesus
kingdom. And here was a ready and easy way to power thiuk of magnifying himself before the people.
und to lU’omim.’nee? ]tut his course was straigiLt; and Eve was tempted while in a beautiful home gat’den, in
thougit he sufl’ered in being tempted, not for a moment did the midst of comfort and euse. of life; but .lesus was
he hesitate. Saiun’s "I£" would not suit Jesus. lie could tempted in the wilderness, aud when hungry, and in lone-
Oc’lonnn1. 192_2
WATCH TOWER 301
liness eli iife. But his absohlte fidelity to God saved him, the statement of the Scriptures respecting tile pride of the
and his ready knowledge of tile Scriptures enabled him to greatest of these systems.
cause each attack to fail suddenly. Loyalty would prob- But the true followers of Christ, the saints, have followed
llhly have saved bin], but had he not known the Scriptures the lowly way. They wait God’s time, well knowing that
tile fight would probaldy have l)eeu prolonged. The sword it is only on their Lord’s return that the church can be
of tim spirit cuts quickly and decply. organized, and they enter into their glory.
Every true follower of lhe lowly Son of God must go
through shnilar experiences. On our consecration and be- BEREAN QUESTIONS
getting into newness oF life each is sooner or later brought 1. Wily did Jesus prepare to leave home as he became of age? ¶ 1.
2. V~hy did he wait till he was thirty Years of age? ¶ 2.
into the wildernes.-, oF lemplalion; and it is a great honor 3. Whenand llow WaSJ~us first llUnlberell alnong tile tr;Ins-
to thus follow our Master, to be tempted as he was. As gressnrs? ¶ 3.
certainly as the heavenly Father knows each consecrated 4. Howwa~ Jesus’ appointment to office miraculously confirmed?
¶ 4.
one who comes to him, so surely does Satan lmow, and 5. Ia what strange way did Jesus’ great work begin? ¶ 5.
6. Whywas it llec(.~sary for Jesus to be teanl)ted of tile devil? ¶
seeks by subtlety to deslroy tltem. He knows, too, that 7. What was to be pro~ed by God through Jesus’ temptation? ¶ 7.
the.~e whomhe cannot allure ~rom their fidelity, and tlluS 8. What was the ell~iromllent of his temlltatiou? ¶ 8.
9. Under Wllllt natllrlllly unfavorable rend]lions did the devil
deslroy, will be his most determbmd foes. Perhaps he begin to teml)t hml? ¶ 8.
sometimes thinks: "If these live I die." He certainly 10. In ~llat gmse(lid the devil first present himself to Jesus? ¶ 9.
11. Wily was lhe first temptation a subtle one? ¶ 9.
makes [heir destruction one of his chief ;fiats. 12. What (Ioul)ts did tile devil suggest to Jesus and to Eve? ¶ 10.
The treat ehurelt systems have beeu templed as the Lord 13. How(hd tile llrst tenlptation affect J-esus’ relationship to the
was, and ll’tve succumbed. They have taken Satan’s bait. Father? ¶ 11.
14 What was tile second temptation? ¶ 12
They llave aecepted rule over the kingdoms of the world, 15. Why was the second temptation a~ee~" one? ¶ 13.
notably so in the ltoman, Greek, and Anglican elturch, and 1(;. What was tile third teanptation preseated to Jesus? ¶ 14.
17. Why dill the third teulptation appear to present a better
have clothed themselves in glorimxs apllarel suited to their way for Jesus to inaugurate his ministry? ¶ 15.
nutlmrity. They h’tve nsed llm things of God for the in- 1S. Tell the three ways in winch Jesus was lmnl)ted. 11 16.
19. Contrast tile teanptations of Jesus and of Eve ¶ 17.
dulgenee of their lleshl.v imture; lhc good things of this 20. Into ~hnt condition do all the true followers of Jesus enter
world have I)een lheirs in l)hmly. And pride has lilled for their testing? ¶ 18.
21. Flow have the church systems stood their temptation? ¶ 19.
their lteart. ’I sit a qut,en ;rod . . . know no sm’row’ is 22. HowInlve the fully consecrated stood their temptation? ¶ 20.
for this day slmll be on ~om D-WIDEI’ItOIIIBrFION ; a[Id riley thing for men to set intoxicating liquor, and who have
have ch,)sen the am.M; Ile;liHil’nl imss;ige (Isaiah 01:1-9) Imeolne enriched thereby, can be e-nsidered as no other
as the one h, be ;t.~bocinled witll their (,h.iect. thnn vampires fattening t]pou their human vietilns an,l
We lmve s.~ miml hy Wltll any movement which is intended draining tlleir life blood. Now in these lust days vice, which
to be lmll)ful to mnnkind, nnd wilh every desire of genii nten del)ends largely upon alcoh,lie drink, is organized, and
to itlleviate .Slll~_erings brought aln)ut by indulgence in nleo- there are those now in all parts of the worhl whose business
llolie liquor; and also with every effort for tim repression of it is to trade in the bodies and souls of their victims.
that abominable trade in Ille lives and souls of men. We (B.evelatiou 18 : 13) We lhnnk God thltt tl~e dtly is at han(l
therefore express syml)atlty with tile object which temper- when me,t will be free fr(,m the bondage o£ these terrible
ante reformers set before them, though we luily not agree org;miz~tiuns, wlliefi are used by wicked and unholy me)),
with their nlethrals, mul tie not thiuk tlmt these are o1~ and which "ire surely go]tied by the counsels of the devil
real veins ill bringing men into the ways of righleousness. him.>clf.
One does not need to have tile spectacles of the temper- Our text says: "l~.igllteousness exalteth a nation." The
ante reformer to see thai ~lc, dlol lnts become one of the drink trade deluoralize> it nation; nnd perhaps tile fact of
curses of the world. \Vhal.,...xcr opinion be held respecting a liquor trade fastened upon ;rod eutrenclmd in the ltome
a Inoderttte or l’t.hlS(lnlllde n>e of lIlcohoi, tllere olin be 110 life of a people, as that trlule Ires been in Great Britain,
question as to the evil of its imlaoderate use, nor of the evil is a greater blot allen the c.untry’s name than the fact
of the trade in it. More Uldlapl]inl2SS and nlore devast:tting that the people tlmlnselves silent in 1920 £469,713,000
ruhl llave come through intemperance than through all the ($2,348,565,tl00.00), a sum rel)resenting (1) tile squan-
wars wlliel~ have ever been waged, l,ust -tnd ghlttllny and dering of their wealtlt (2) t~ the ruin of their homes, and
in]laoderate drinking are always in asq,)l:il~tion. Perslmified, (3) at tile cost of family Imlqdne.~s. The sante can as truly
they are ns Vllmpires which feed upon the human family, be s;lid of otlmr countries; for all hitve been more or less
and are tim readiest agents o[’ the devil for breltldng down involved, tim United Statl:s of America being now a notable
the hnman will m~d bring’ing men un(ler the power of evil. excl-ptiun.
INTERESTING LETTERS
IMPOSING ON OTHERS ~)I,:AR ]]RITI’I[REN
on lhe day of his journey to Emnmu%after his rl,surrecth,,, this brother and another young man, who is not in the
he x~as inviled Io gel in to dine he did not do so until lrulh. (The above claims to he in the truth.) They came
pressed hy those with him. The following letter is self- to our home at noon yesterday (August 1(;). Sister Condart
explanatory. We pulllish it for tile benefit of the friends gave them lunch, then dinner at 6 P.M. They said that
throughout the country. We eonsider it a great imposition they had heard o1: me at l’ortlaud and wanted to see me,
for nny one to travel aimlessly about the country nnd write and then I questioned lrAdridge (the other yotmg man did
nhe, td to the brethren to prepare for his or her entertainment. not talk much) and I found that he did not seem to be
We wish the brethren eveL’ywhere to know the facts, that clear in the truth. 8o I then asked them their mission;
they may avoid all such impostors. We demn it a dnty of nnd they informed me that it is merely a pleasure trill, and
T~II,.; ~VATUII TOWER to thns pl’oleet tile brethren in any w-ty that they have been on tile road for nearly two mo,~ths.
we can; hence we publish this letter in full. ~ldridge has the names of class secretaries all over the
¢ho WATCH TOWER
United States and is writing ahead, requeating some one I have experienced many things. I was exiled, robbed, beaten,
to meet and take them to some one of the friends where tortured, and my house and furniture burnt, and after
they can be entertained Iree. They did that with tile many difli(:ulties I escaped to here. There is no other God
Porthmd friends, and those at San Francisco, San Jose; wile could save thus, praise be to his name for ever and ever.
and of course they were directed here. At present there are 7,000 Armenians in Cyprus, who I
Nowwe have ’ttway,~ (.’,ounte(I it a gl’t,nl privilege to enter- know ;Ire in a very uufortunate condition. Besides the 800
rain the Lord’s children, ;rod wotzld, e.ven to sllaring tile Armcn]ttlas living in Nmosia, there are many Greek Chris-
lust crumb or giving up our bed ;tad sleeping on the floor; tians and many church buildings here. But there is no
hut not to 8po~ffmr,s. So when ] fotlnd out for sure timt sl)iritual life : it has loug been dead. The clergy live a much
they are just traveling ’‘~ilil no purpose in view, I shnply nlore degraded life than tile eomnmn people. There is
told them niy wife had h) ’‘’‘-t’l¢ very hard doing her house nothing else left for me, but to lalnent, weep and ors’ out like
work and coll)o~tcuring two d:os per week. so I would t;tke Jerenna]l.
tl,em to where they could get a room. (if course Eldntlge Irr~dl trying to the IJ(.’st of my ability to give the Inilk of
put Ul) a kick, but I m,’u’ehed lhem right down town in my the truth to Greeks, Armenians. Turks, and Jews. r pray,
e-tr and helped tlmm get :t ]’com. Besides, I told him Ilmy read, sing and give his message to whomsoever his .,,pirit
were doing wrong to burden tim frim,ds. I also wrote to directs nte.
some of the scerehu’ies in advance in regard to them. Did r am glad that I have found you brethrcn acknowledge ate
I do wrong or should I have kept them and sent tl,em along as one of 3’our :~ellow servants. If l)ossihle send me "The
to the other friends for a burden? Photo Drama of Creation," "The Divine I’hm of the Ages,"
Your brother ill heart harmolly, by his great mercy, find "’~]le Hynlns of Dawn" in Arnleuian attd other Armenian
CHas. F. Co.Dam’, 8eabright, Calif. and Armcno-Turldsh booklets; for we are in great need of
them here. I am also in much need of your fervent prayers,
FROM TIIE ISLE OF CYPRUS so thaL I Ill y be used in his service. ’£he Lord gives me
DEAlt BRETIIllEN : whqt I ask in prayer. I prayed: "O Lord, if I nmy be of
L)n lhe evening or tim l,’ourth of .March. I saw some of your greater service to you"; and he showed me a way.
papers, and the booklet "Does the Soul Die?" I wistt to ex- 5Ifiy God help, bless and keep you; Amen. The members
l)ress my deel) gralitude for these, and also introduce myself of nly family greet you in love. My wife also has some
to you. women Bible students.
I was born in Marash (Cilicia) -tnd when I was sixleen I remain with deep respect and gratitude in advauce,
years old, the spirit of God awakened me, and after educa- Your brotimr and fellow servant,
ting me under his hand, called me to his Ininistry. Thu< q~r (Rev.) :H. ]::l. M-aNOOSHAOLtX,Cyprus
CONTENTS
BAp’rls~t
............................................................ 307
Real and Symbohc ....................................... 307
Israel Paptized .......................................... 307
What Is Real ~B~U)ii.~m? ................................ 30S
Covenant to Do What? ................................ 310
I>reviotls Immersion ...................................... 311
Broken with Jesus .......................................... 311
"I :HAVE NOT FOUND,~O GREA’I F,~,ITR ~ ............ 313
Accustomed to Autho~ily ................................ 314
’£he Lowly-MindedGre~tt ................................. 315
JEsus T~Ig GREATPHYSICI.~,N ............................ 315
Nazareth Tested ............................................ 315
~’ESUSTFIE GREATTEACIIEIt................................ 317
~:0rld War ~tnd the Chllrches ......................... :]18
Jesus and Church Doctrine ............................ .319
Upon the earth dlstle~s of nations with perplexity; the sea and the waves (the rosters, d~.,contemed) roaring, men’s hearts falling them for fear and for looking to
thmg~ coming upon the earth (society); for the powe ~ of the heavens (ecc]esiastlclsm} shall be shaken .... When ye see these thlngq begin to come to pasa,
then know that the l(lilgllem o! God 18 at hand. l.~ok u~, lift up your heeds, rejoice, for YOUrredemption draweth aigh.--Mat~. 2~:33; Mark 13:29; Luke 21:25-3L
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS SACRED MISSION
T HIS Journal ts one of the prime factors
presenled in all parts of the civilized
or instruments in the system of Bible instruction,
world by the WATCHTOWERB1BLE & TRACTSOCIETY, chartered
or "Seminary Ext~ns~0n", now be~n.;
A.D. 1884, "For the Pro-
motion of Christian Knowledge". It not only serves as a class room where Bible students may meet in the study of the divine Word bu~
also as a channel of communication through which they may be reached with announcements of the Society’s eopventions and of the
coming of its traveling representatives, styled "Pilgrims", and refreshed with reports of its conventions.
Our "Barton Lessons" are topical rel, earsals or reviews of our Society’s published STUDIESnlost entertainingly arranged, and very
helpful to all ~h~ would merit the only honorary degree which the Society accords, viz., Verbi Dei Minister iV. D. 5I.), which translated
Into Engli,~h is 3liaister el God’s Word. Our treatment of the International Sunday School Lessons is specially for the older Bibla
students and teachers. ]~y some this feature is considered indispensable.
This journal st,~nds firmly for the defense of the only true foundation of the Christian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
--redemption througlt the precious blood of "Hie man Christ Jesus, who gave himself a ransom [a corresponding price, a substitute] for
all". (1 Peter 1:]9; 1 Timothy 2:6) Duilding up ou this sure foundation the gold, silver and precious stones (1 Corinthians 3:
15; 2 I’cter I :5-11) of the Word of God, its further mission is to "make all see what is the fellowship of the mystery which...has
been hid in God .... to the intent that now might be made known by the church the manifold wisdom of God"--"whlch in other ages
was not made known unto the sons of men as it is now revealed".--Ephesians 3:5-9, 10.
It stands free from all parties, sects and creeds of men. while it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
subjection to the wilt of God in Christ, aa expressed in the holy Scriptures. it is thus free to declare boldly whatsoever the Lord
bath spoken--according to the divine wisdom granted unto us to understand his utterances, its attitude is not dogmatic, but confident;
for we know whereof we affirm, treading with implicit faith upon the sure promises of God. ]t is held as a trust, to be used only in hie
service; hence our decisions relative to what may and what may not appear in Its columns must be according to our Judgment of hie
good pleusure, the teaching of his Word, for the npbuild~ng of his people In grace and knowledge, And we not only invite but urge oul"
readers to prove all its utterances by the infallible Word to which refereD(.e Is constantly aiade to facilitate such testing.
TO US THE SCRIPTURES CLEARLY TEACH
That the church is "the temple of the living God", peculiarly "his workmanship" ; that Its construction has been in progress thronghou~
the gospel age--ever since Christ became the world’s Redeemer and the Chief Corner Stone of hts temple, through which, when
finished, God’s blessing shall come "to all people", and they find access to him.--1 Corinthians 3 : 16, 17 ; Ephesians 2:20-22 ;
Genesis 28 : ~,t ; Galatians 3 : 29.
That meantime the chiseling, shaping, and polishing of consecrated believers in Christ’s atonement for sin, progresses ; and when th0
last of these "living stone~s", "elect and precious," shall have been made ready, the great 51aster Workmanwill bring all together
in the first resurrection ; and the temple shall be filled with his glory, and be the meeting place between God and men throughou~
the Millennium.--Revelatiou 15 : 5-8.
"]:hat the basis of hope, for the church and the world, lies in the fact that "Jesus Christ, by the grace of God, ~a.cted death for every
man," "a ransom for all," and will be "the true light which lighteth every man that oomcth tote the world"~ "In due time".~
Ilebrews 2:9; John 1:9; 1 Timothy 2:5, 6.
"That the hope of the church is that she may be like her Lord, "see hlm aa he Is," be partaker of the divine nature,’ and share his
glory as his joint-heir.--1 John 3:2; John 17:24; Romans 8:17; 2 Peter 1:4.
~hat the present mission of the church is the perfecting of the saints for the future work of service; to develop in herself every
grace ; to be God’s witness to the world ; and to prepare to be kings and priests In the next age.~Ephesians 4:12 ; .Matthew 2-t $
14; Revelation 1: 6; 20:6.
That the hope for the world lies In the blessings of knowledge and opportunity to be brought to all by Christ’s Millennial kingdom, the
reslitutmn of all lhat was lost iu Adam, to all the willing and obedient, at the hands of their Redeemer and his glorified chureha
when all the wllfully wicked will be destroyed.--Aets 3 : 19-23; Isaiah 35.
WATCFITOWER.BI BEE b- TRACTSOCI ET.,V .4. local convention will be held at Baltimore, Md., October 28th
and 29th, which classes in the immediate neighborhood will have
18 CONCORD
STREETa 1:1 BIZOOKL"/N,/~I.Y.U.S-A an opportunity to attend. A public meeting ~ill be held Sunday
afternoon, to he addressed by Brother Rutherford. Other speakers
FO~EW, N OFPICES: Br~tish: 34 Craven Terrace, Lancaster Gate, will be present. For further information a(hh’~s Dr. Chas. A.
London W. 2; Canadian: 270 Dundas St., W., Toronto, Ontario;
Australasian: 495 Colhns St., Melbourne, Australia; South A.fr~- Schaefer, 53 South Fulton Ave., Baltimore, Md.
can: 123 I’lein St., Cape Town, South Africa.
PLEASE ADDRESS TOE SOCIETY IN EVERY CASE. SCANDINAVIAN CONVENTION
YEARLYSUBSCRIPTION PRICE: UNITES STATES, $1.00; CANADAANI) A Joint convention of the Swedish, Danish and Norweman
MISCELLANEOUS]POItEI[.N, $150 ; GREAT BalTA1N, AUSTRALASIA, friends has been arranged to be Imhl in Brooklyn. New York,
ANI) SO[J’I’II AI~RICA, SS. &mericnn remittances should be made October 14th and 15th. The program will include discourses in
by Exl,re~s nr Postal Money Orders, or by Bank Draft. Canadian, the various languages by brethren of ab,htv. All believing in
British, South African, and Australasian remittances shouhl be the presence of our l,ord and the l=larvest work are cordially in-
made t,) branch offices only. Remittances frmn scattered foreign vite([ to altend. It is rcque~tcd that each one attending hring a
territory may he made to the Brooklyn office, but by International singing book. Meetings will bc hehl tn the South Reformed
Postal Money Orders only. Churcit, 4th Ave. and 55th St., Brooklyn. For further p:u.tie-
(Fnreio~ translations o~ th~s ]our~a! appear in severa~ languages) ulars in regard to rooms, etc., address Scandinavian Convention
Committee, 124 Columbia ~Iuights. Brooklyn. N. Y.
Edlfdriai Committee: This journal is published under the supervision
of an editorial committee, at least three of whom have read and HYMNS FOR DECEMBER
approved as i.ruiii each and every article appe,~ring in these columns.
The mimes of the editorial celnmittee are: 3. F. RUTI/ERFORDp Sunday 3 282 10 20 17 255 24 22t 31 32
W. E. VANAMaURGH~ 3". Ttl.~511illV. G. ]~’. ~ISI~ER,
7"armsto t.’~e Lord’s Poor: All B~]estudents whoby re,on of old age or other la- Monday 4 91 11 224 18 33t 25 16
flrml.~yor a’]ver:i~yare unableto payfor thin journa]: will be suppliedfree if they send Tuesday 5 45 12 198 19 ]83 26 57
¯ po~ai car4 each ~lay sta~ing their case and rcq, m3tlngsuch provision. Weare not
amywflilng, but anxious, that all ~uchbe on our hat continually and ia touch ~ the Wednesday 6 140 13 212 20 75 27 269
Berc~..~
StU~.~eS.
Thursday T 308 14 324 21 59 28 148
Noticeto ~bscriber-o we~*do
f~rnot. aa aBubscr.
a ~cw r~ e send
Jan aRecc
card
ptcfm~,
aelmowledg~ent for aare
entry o~ reac~wa renews! o~
n~ ca~4
withina monthbyehang~ In exp,rationdste. aa a~wnonwrapperlabel. Friday 1 218 $ 222 15 258 22 52 29 311
I Saturday 2 14 9 152 16 299 23 116
Entered~ ~omldC~~l faftal" aS Broaklim,N. Y.. Po~$~c$ under~ Act of LfarchSrd, 1#7#. 30 237
ANNUAL MEETING
No~ice is hereby
Watch Tower Bible
given that
& Tract
the
Society,
annual meeting
as provided
of the
by law
Jl I.B.SA.BERE’AN
BIBLE
STUDIES
lJ
and the charter
Pittshur..Wh,
of said Society,
Music Hall, corner of Federal
Pennsylvania,
1922, to transact business
\rill
at 10 o’clock
be held at Car~mgie
and Ohio Streets,
as may properly
~.~t.,
North Side,
October 31,
come before
II 8yMeans°le
Chapter
Weekof Dec..2 ..........
Weekof Dec. 10 ..........
"The Plan
Q. 62-6s
of the
IX: Ransom and Restitution
Q. 55-6l
Week of Dec, 24 ........
Week of Dee. 31 Q. 13-19..........
Ages"
BAPTISM
"Knowye not, that so many of us as were baptized into Jesus Christ were baptized into his death f Therefore w6
are buried with him by baptism into death: that Zike as Christ was raised up from the dead by the glory of
the Father, even so we also should walk in newness of life. 1,’or if we have been planted together in the
likeness of his death, we shall be also in the likeness of his resurrection."--Romans 6: 3-5.
caused to be pictured in the sacrifice of animals on the stands the mystery of God and appreciate,_’, it until
typical atonement day. This perfection of the anti- first he has been accepted and begotten of the holy
typical sacrifice could not exist except by being justified,spirit.
as stnted by the Scriptures above; and this justification Jesus, when he came to the Jordan, was a natural
could not come to any one until he first made an man, a perfect man. It does not seem reasonable to
unconditional surrender of himself to Jehovah in con- conclude that he understood at the time he thus pre-
sccration. Godjustifies such a one for the purpose of sented himself to John the Baptist that he was to die
making him acceptable as a part of the sacrifice of a sacrificial death. This conclusion is based upon two
Christ; and from the momenthe is justified and ac- reasons: (1) As St. Paul states, "the natural man
cepted as a part of the sacrifice such a one is counted receiveth not the things of the spirit of God, ...
dead as a man, and being there begotten by Jehovah neither can he knowthem" (1 Corinthians 2: 14=); and
becomes a new creature.--Colossmns a: 3.4; 2 Cor- (2) for the further reason that the Scriptures plainly
inthians 5 : 17. state that after Jesus came up out of the water the
This covenant entered into by sacrifice ,’on~titutes hcavens (thereby meaning the higher, the heavenly
Honest Heart’s real baptism. It is being buried with things) were opened unto him. That was the time he
Christ Jesus into his death. ]=[onest ttcart does net was begotten to the divine nature; for we read: "He
offer himself as a sacrifice. :No one can offer a sacri- saw the spirit of God descending like a dove, and
fice except the priest. Christ Jesus is the great High lighting upon him: and lo a voice from heaven, saying,
Priest; and when the Father accepts and justifies one This is my beloved son, in whomI am well pleased."
for sacrifice, then Christ Jesus offers up such a one as (Matthew 3: 16, 17) It was thereafter that he stated:
a part of his ownsacrifice. 0nly self nowcan separate "The spirit of the Lord is upon me, because he hath
such a one from the Lord. If he remains faithful to anointed me to preach the gospel to the poor." (Luke
his covenant, the great High Priest will complete the 4: 18) It was after he was thus baptized that he spent
sacrifice and make him ultimately a member of his forty days and nights in the wilderness. Whywould
glorious body. he be there except to learn of God’s will? And by
The real baptism is therefore, as St. Paul states, applying the types properly to himself as the antitype
being buried with Christ into death, a sacrificial death. hc could readily determine that in them was his death
This sacrificial death takes place (so far as the man foreshadowed.
is concerned) at the time he is justified, accepted as Plainly, according to the Scriptures, Jesus’ covenant
a part of the sacrifice and begotten to the divine nature. was "to do thy will, 0 myGod." Likewise plainly, the
covenant of each of his footstep followers must be "to
COVENANT TO DO WHAT?
do thy will, 0 my God," unconditionally. It is only
Wesometimes hear the expression that one "conse- after one undergoes the real baptism into Christ that
crates unto death." Is this a proper expression? It his mind is illuminated and he begins to see that in
seems to be quite improper and unscriptural. It would
order now to have life on the divine plane hc must go
seem rather presumptuous for one such as Honest Heart into actual death as a part of the sacrifice of Christ.
to come to the Lord and say in substance: ’Lord, I Neither does one who thus makes a covenant with
want to consecrate myself unto you with the distinct the Lord sacrifice his will. He retains his will, agree-
understanding that I am to be put to death as a part ing to use it in harmony with the Father’s will; and
of the sacrifice of the Lord Jesus and have a part with he studies God’s Wordand his providences, and thereby
him in his kingdom.’ To say the least of it, this would transforms his mind in order that he might ascertain
not be an unconditional surrender, but would be in the good and acceptable and perfect will of God.
the nature of a conditional bargain. The Scriptures (Romans 12:2) Real baptism into Christ, therefore,
show that one coming to the Lord must come giving means that one has unconditionally surrendered himself
himself wholly to the Lord and leaving it with the unto the Lord to do the Father’s will; that the Lord
Lord to do with him as he sees best. It would be quite
Jesus, as his ttigh Priest, has presented him to the
beneath the dignity of the Lord to enter into a con- Father; that the Father has justified and accepted such
tract with a sinner. The covenant, however, is one a one as a part of the great sacrifice and begotten him.
that leads to sacrifice and is completed in death; but Thus he is baptized into Christ’s death and becomesa
death is not made a part of the agreement at the time new creature in Christ.
of consecration. In fact, we believe that every Christian
honestly examining his own experiences will not be able MOSES’ANDCHRIST’SBAPTISM
to say teat he understood at the time he made a con- St. Paul states that the nation of Israel was bap-
secration that he was to be put to death and have a tized unto (into) Moses and that Christians are
part in the sacrifice of Jesus and a part in l.he glories baptized into Christ. The baptism of the nation of
that shall follow. This knowledge constitutes a hart Israel showed the full consecraticn to follow Mosesat
of the deep things of God’s Word; and no one under- God’s representative and their deliverer. The baptism
WATCH TOWER 311
into Christ shows that the Christians are fully conse- water, which immersion I understood to be for the
crated to do the will of God, following Christ Jesus as remission of sins. Was that immersion correct and
their deliverer. It will be observed, however, that there sufficient?" The proper answer is that it was of no
is quite a distinction betweenbeing baptized into Moses avail because not performed for the Scriptural purpose,
and into Christ. In both instances it shows a full as we have heretofore stated.
consecration; but with reference to Christians, these Another says: "When I united with the Baptist
are baptized into Christ’s death; that is to say, their nominal church I was immersed in water; and since
real baptism consists in being joint-sacrificers with that organization practises the proper symbol, should
Christ Jesus. Here is where the confusion probably I be in~mersed again after having come to a knowledge
has arisen with reference to the expression "consecration of present truth?" The proper answer to that question
unto death." Our part of the consecration is to do is: If when immersed in the water, as stated in the
God’s will; his part of it is acceptance and setting question, the one so immersed had prior thereto fully
aside for sacrifice, which means death; consequently surrendered himself to the Lord in consecration and
the baptism is into the death of Christ. A faithful understood he was being immersed as a footstep fol-
performance of the Christian’s side of the covenant lower of the Lord Jesus, then there would be no neces-
leads to a complete annihilation of his humanity and sity for repeating the symbol after coming to a knowl-
to his birth uponthe divine plane. edge of the truth. On the other hand, if at the time
of water hnmersion he had not previously fully sur-
SYMBOL
Symbolic I)aptism is performed for the purpose of rendered himself in cousccration unto the Lord, then
the water immersion was of no value. The controlling
showh~gthat tile reality has been performed. It fol-
question is, Had the person so inunersed fully sur-
lows that the symbol must be in keeping with what
constitutes the reality. Some Christians practise rendered himself in consecration before performing the
symbol?
sprinkling a few drops of water on the person, desig-
nating that baptism. The apostle Paul leaves no room Another says : "I have doubt in mymind as to whether
for doubt as to what is tim proper symbol. Concerning or not I had in fact made a consecration at the time
the reality he says: "We are baptized into Christ’s of my water immersion. What course, then, should I
death. Weare buried with him by baptism into death." pursue?" Answering tl’at question, the doubt should
The sprinMing of a few drops of water does not even be resolved in one’s own favor and all doubt removed
,u,,,o~¢ the thought of being buried, submerged or from the mind by performing the symbol again.
interred. This is accomplished only by a complete
NECESSITY
immersion. Therefore being pu~ out of sight in the
water properly pictures the reality. Is there azly real virtue in water immersion ? There
In addition to this direct Scriptural proof, we have is no virtue in the water of itself, but the real virtue
the experience of our Imrd, who went down into the arises front obedience to the Lord’s arrangenacnt. If
waters of the Jordan, ~as immersed by Jolm and was we see that Jesus was immersed in water in order that
raised up out of the water. I-Iere was a beautiful picture. all righteousness be fulfilled and that we are called to
The one who administers the water immersion for renew in his steps, then we see what a privilege it is
that particular purpose pictures the Lord Jehovah. to take the step he took in symbolizing the real con-
The one being immersed, completely submitting himself secration by water immersion. It would seem that after
to the administrator, illustrates howhe has consecrated one came to a knowledgeof the reality and the purpose
himself whoUy,submitting himself completely to an- of. the symbol and such person would then fail or
other; thus shm~qng the complete m~bmission to the refuse to perform the water symbol, such a one would
Lord. The administrator raising the immersed one up show a disregard of the Lord’s provisions and probably
out of the water beautifully pictures how the Lord would be greatly retarded in gaining a knowledge of
raises up those immersed into him to walk in newness the truth. It is better to obey than to sacrifice. A
of life. Complete immersionin water is the Scriptural sacrifice is madeat the time of the consecration or real
symbolic Imptism. baptism. Thereafter it is more pleasing to the Lord
The proper and Scriptural time to perform the synl- for his children to be obedient to his will as they come
bol is within a reasonable tinle after having surrendered to "know it. It is the obedience in performing the
oneself to the Lord in complete consecration. In fact, symbol when it is seen and appreciated that is really
the one whoappreciates ±he privilege of following the pleasing to the Lord.
Lord will give diligence to follow his course in the BROKEN WITH JESUS
performance of the symbol. Looking forward to the conclusion of his baptism in
PREWOUSIMMERSmN death, Jesus said: "I have a baptism to be baptized
One inquires: ’qVhen I became a member of the with: and how mnI straitened until it be accomplish-
Christian denonrinational church I was immersed in ed."(Luke 12: 50) He had entered into a covenant
WATCH TOWER
with the Father at the Jordan, and nowhe fully appre- Jesus stated at the institution of the Memorial. The
ciated the fact that the provisions of that covenant cup was filled with wine. Wine is not drunk for the
meant the breaking of his humanity and the pouring purpose of making one sad. It is usually indulgcd in
out his life-blood; and this he completed when upon for the very opposite purpose--to bring good cheer.
Calvary he cried: "It is finished." Each one who pre- Jesus clearly shows it means good cheer in the kingdom.
sents himself in full consecration to the Lord, is accept- A proper, keen appreciation of the privilege of par-
ed, justified and begotten of the holy spirit, has entered ticipating with our Lord in sacrifice should bring joy
into a covenant with tile Lord; and he afterward learns ~o the heart of the one invited to participate and who
that this covenant means his death as a humanbeing, does so. The joy is in anticipation of being associated
to be broken with Christ Jesus and to pour out his life with the Lord in his glorious kingdom.
with the Lord. When all the body members have finished thei~
At the institution of the memorialof his death Jesus course and all are united together with the Lord in the
showed this fact. TaMngthe bread and blessing it, he kingdom, what a wonderful time of joy that will be l
broke it and, giving it to the disciples, said: "Take, And so Jesus states, that when that time comes then
eat, this is my body. And he took the cup and gave "I will drink it anew with you in myFather’s kingdom."
thanks,.., saying, Drink ye all of it." Discussing this Looking forward to that happy time the Psalmist wrote :
same matter, St. Paul says: "The cup of blessing which "In thy presence is fulness of joy; at thy right hand
we bless, is it not the communion[commonunion or there are pleasures for evermore."
participation in] of the blood of Christ? The bread
which we break, is it not the communion [conunon BEREAN" QUESTIONS
union or participation in] of the body of Christ? for 1. Why are the ordinary delinitinns of baptism incorrect? ¶ 1.
2. Wimt does baptism really Sen t"3’9 ¶ 2.
we bcing many,are one bread, and one body; for we are 3. What is the difference between real and symbol c baptism? ¶ 3,
4. Was baptism foreshadowed in the [~ible? ¶ 4.
all pal~akers of that one bread."--1 Corinthians 10: 16, 5. How did the exodus of the Y=febrews from Egypt foreshadow
baptism? ¶ 5.
17. 6. Did it typify the baptism of the church into Christ? ¶ 6.
7. Explain bow Moses fore~hadowed the Messiah. ¶ 7.
The completion, then, of the contract entered into 8. In what conditions were the Jews that they required the work
by each body n~elnber at the time of consecration must of .John tim Baptist? ¶ 8.
9. Why is John’s baptisan for remission of sins Inappropriate far
be in actual death, in order to participate in the glories gentiles? ¶ 9.
10. Was John’s baptism Intended to aetnally take away sin? ¶ 10.
of the Lord. The words of the Psalmist apply to tl,~ 11. How was sin to be taken away? And how does water baptism
portray this? ¶ 10.
new creature, as it is written: "Ye are gods [mighty 12. Why was not Jesus baptized for remission of sins? ¶ 11.
13. Is there any Bible authority for Infant bapti-m? ¶ 11.
ones] ; and all of you are children of the most High. 14 What conversation took place between Jesus and John al:
But ye shall die like men, and fall like one of the Jesus’ baptism? ¶ 12.
15. For what purpose did Jesus become a man? ¶ 33.
princes." (Psalm 82: 6, 7) Thus each member must l(k To what extent did Jesus surrender himself to God? ¶ 13.
17. From what time was Jesus counted dead a,~ a man? ¶ 13.
fall like Prince Jesus, participating in his death. "For 18. What did Jesus mean by the baptism tlmt he boiil was and
was to be baptized with? ¶ 14.
if we bc dead with him, we shall also live with him." 19. What did the water baptism of 3"esus signify? ¶ 15.
(2 Timothy 2: 11) While our consecration is not unto 20. Wimt d.i his burial In and rising from the water signify? ¶ 1[~.
21. IIow did Jesus proceed after baptism to learn the will of God
death, the fulfilling of that covenant leads to death. for hhnself? ¶ 15.
22. What Scriptures show that the baptism of Christ’s body mem-
:Hence it is properly called a covenant by sacrifice. bers is the same as his own baptism? ¶ 16.
23. Are repentance and conversion the only steps requisite to
become a Chrmtian ~ ¶ 17.
BLESSED INVITATION 24. Wlmt is it to deny one’s self? ¶ 18.
25. What kind of self-surrcuder mnst be made to be accepted aa a
The greatest honor ever conferred upon mortal man Chri.qian? ¶ 18.
2(i. Does jastiiicatmn alone sa~e one? ¶ 19.
is the invitation to pa~gicipa{e in the actual and com- 27. Exl)lain tim iatpatation of Chri.~t’s merit. ~ 19.
28. Who is it that justihe% and how? ¶ "0.
plete baptism of Jcsus Christ. Why?Because here is 29. For what purpose does God :lustily one? ¶ 20.
an invitation to join the Lord Jesus in suffering even 30. What is it that constituleS one’s real bapii-m? ¶ 2l.
31. Explain how real baptisn) is a sacrificial dealh. ¶ 22.
unto death; and proving faithful therein, to receive 32. Is it proper to say that one consecrates unin death? ¶ 23.
33. To what (loe~s a person consecrate Iron,elf ~ ¶ 23.
the crown of life. To such he says: "Be thou faithful 34. Does one usually understand that consecration will eventuate
in death? ¶ 23.
unto death, and I will give thee a cro~rn of life." The 35. What two considerations show that Jesus did not understand
keener appree;ation one has of this privilege, the greater that his own consecration xx,’ls nato deaIll? ¶ 24.
86. When and how did Jesus tome to understand ihe deep things
will be his joy in performing his covenant. of Cad’s Word" ¶ 24.
37. What was Jesus’ covenant with God, and what ts our own
WhenJesus instituted the memorial of his death he coxcnant with God: ¶ 25.
7,8. l)~*es a consecrated person give up big will~ ¶ 26.
said concernfilg the cllp: "I say unto you, I will not 39. \VImt is the difference between Israel’s
and the baptism of the consecrated
baptism into MOS~
into ChriSt? ¶ 27.
drink henceforth of this fruit of the vine, until that 40. l:low did eonfusloa arise concerning consecration unto death~
27.
day when I drink it new with you in myFather’s king- 41. What is the purpose of symbolic baptmm? ¶ 28.
dom." (l~[atthew 26:29) It has been rather a habit 42. Why Is sprinkling not tt’ue symbolic baptism? ¶ 25.
43. How was Jesus baptized? ¶ 29.
to look with sorrow upon real baptism and upon the 44. In water baptism whom does the administrator representl
¶ 30.
Memorial. It should be an occasion of joy, because of 45. Explain how water baptism symbolizes real baptism. ¶ 30.
4~. When is the proper time to observe symbolic baptism? ¶ 81.
the opportunity to participate in the greatest thing 47. When is it proper for a person previously baptized to be ball}-
tized again in water? ¶ ¶ 32-34.
offered to man. This thought is warranted by what 48. Is there real virtue In water baptlsm7 | 35.
WATCH TOWER 313
49. ~Thy ought a consecrated person to observe symbolic baptism? 53. Quote Scriptures showing that the fulfilling of consecration
¶ as. Is unto death. ¶ 38.
50. What {lid Jesus mean when he mid of his baptism : "How am 54. Why is real baptism the greatest possible privilege? I 39.
I straitened mliil it be accomplished"? ¶ 36. 55. Why is this a real occasion for great joy? ¶ 39.
5l. How (loe~s 1his apply to us? ¶ 36. 56. "What at the Memorial shows this? ¶ 40.
52. How was this shown in the Memorial celebration? ¶ 37. 57. In what :joys does real baptism terminate? ¶ 41,
THE LOWLY-MINDED GREAT the differences in fidelity here ~o Godand to his Word.
There is no dignity so impressive as that of the Let us not forget this brief Biblical story of a soldier
lowly-mindedgreat. Howkingly, withal howbrotherly, whose faith was notable above others. Let us remember
will be that of the high court of the world I Howsuper- that it is possible to each one in the church now to
honorable their station! But its memberswill not be becomethe greatest in faith, if he but lays fast hold of
alone in honor; for they will welcome others. Great Christ--if, in another figure, he follows hint with all
menof meeknessand humility, just, wise, lovers of the his heart unto the end. Let the example of the Caper-
people, will be found in every nation that ever was on nauru centurion be an incentive to us, the membersof
earth. As they develop under the radiant love of king- the church of God, that whatever be our place and work
domdays, their true worth will shine forth; and they in the visible church, we may become so pleasing to
will be accordedassociation with the great overeomers the Lord through our implicit fidelity, that of us, too,
of the Jewish age and earlier. As "sons of the prince" the Master can say: ’Werily . . . I have not found so
class (Ezekiel 46: 16, 17), they will receive an inherit- great faith."--Matthew 8 : 10.
ance hke that of "the prince." BEREAN QUESTIONS
In the gospel age, too, overeomersare personsof great I. Whatkind of placewas Capernaum? ¶ 1,2.
and proven faith. God seeks for his kingdom class 2. What had Jesus been doing .lust before the incident of this
study? ¶ 3.
those that will manifest a faith like Abrahanl’s. Few 3. l:low did the RomanEmpire hold subject territory? ¶ 4.
4. What was Ihc attitude of the Jews toward the Capernaum
of them have enjoyed, or do enjoy, honor or preferment centurio,a? ¶ 5.
5. What change took place in the attitude of the Romansoldiery
amongthe children of this world. Even in the church toward Jews? ¶ 6.
6. What was the usual characier of Romanarmy officers? ¶ 7-9.
this side the vail, the places of honor maynot always 7. ]-low did this centnriou Mmw a loving and humble disposition?
¶ 10, 11.
be apportionedexactly according to real heart faithful- 8. Wlmt was his attitude toward Jesus? ¶ 12.15.
ness unto God. But it will be different then. There it 9. Whatwas ti~ere about the centurion’s position thatcaused him
to believe in the power of Jesus over disease? ¶ 1G-18,
will be to every one of the little flock accordingto his 10. Wlmt reward nmy be g~ven to this centurion ]n tim kingdom?
¶ 19-21.
faith here. Star will differ fromstar in glory, and the 1:I. What quality is the crown of kingliness? ¶ 22
12. Will |he divine killgdoln honors necessarily be awarded accord-
differences in brightness there will be proportional to lag to present prominence in the cimrch? ¶ 23, 24.
their fellowship with him was to train them for that second presence, anti many have enjoyed it. Its sweetness
putjaose. Our Lord’s method of teaching was unusual. He and freshness have been specially acceptable, and the knowl-
made no attempt to set before his disciples any scheme of edge of the kingdo’a makes ghtd the heart. But, as at the
doctrine, not’ did im egttegorically exphtln to them his mis- tlme of the first presence, the Lord has something more
sion or purpose. Indeed, it was not until lute in his min- for his disciples than the diffusion of truth; he has his
istry that he plainly told them about his death, or brought sl)ecial reasons: there is a work to be done.
to their knowledge that he was the Christ. (Matthew 16: The Lord also has his special means whereby he dis-
15-20) These are no human ways, but he knew he had closes his designs, hi’my who are called to t,ave the sweet-
divine mission, and he worked according to his Father’s ness of the words of our Lord and the truths of the king-
leading, as he said; "I can of mine own self do nothing."-- dora do not like to be directed into the Lord’s way by
John 5 : 30. unacceptable means; but it is as unreasonable to think that
,Nor could Jesus have given thmu instruction--not because the Lord would diffuse truth at his second advent and not
of inability on his pqrt, but because his doctrine was spirit- have a particular channel by which he would guide his
ual, and could be received only by those quickened of the people into all that was necessary for their instruction in
spirit. Therefore he was limited till tlle spirit should be doctrine and service, as it would be unreasonable to say
poured out; and in order tl,at this might be, he himself that tim apostle Paul was not the chosen means or channel
must first go to heaven, that he might receive tile spirit to to determine tile doctrines of Eesus.
give it to his disciples. "It is expedient for you that I go Probably all unconsciously Luke gives a cameo of the
away: for if I go not away, tile Comforter will not come entire plan. He tells of Jesus selecting his disciples, and of
unto you; but if I depart, I will send him unto you."--aohu his coming down from tile mountain with them to the plain ;
16: 7. of the nmltitudcs of people wile were gathered, not only of
Part of the work of the holy spirit was to bring Jesus’ Israel, but from the coasts of Tyre and Sidon ; of how virtue
words back to their remembrance; and it is evident that went out of him as tl,ey touched hinl, and that he healed
tills was done, for we know that we have as full a record them all, casting out all the unclean spirits. This beautifully
of Jesus’ sayings and doings as is necessary for the devel- represents lhe call and selection of the church, and their
opment of the church. There is no Bihle rcco,’d that Jesus final union with him--how together they will come down to
wrote anything, save perhaps in tile sand of tl,e temple court the waiting multitudes, and how that then those blessings
(John 8 : 6---probably spurious) ; but Ilis words live by tile for which he died wilt be given to them. His life (his
power of tile spirit, for they are life. (John 6: 63) When "virtue") his merit, will be given to them that they may
exalted he resumed guidance of his church, being made its be healed. And the devil’s power will be destroyed; and
Head; and through the apostles he guided the church into all unclean splrltJ will be forever banished In eternal de-
his truth. struction.
JESUS AND CDURCIt DOCTRINE AND ORDER BEREAN QUESTIONS
But it was tlle apostle Paul who was made tile great 1. To what does this lesson draw attention? ¶ 1.
expounder of tile teachings of Jesus. This arrangement by 2. What parables did Jesus utter to silow that his teaching couhI
not be n red,imping of tradition? ¶ 2.
tile Head of the church must have c-rased some smorise, 3. Whywas Jesus’ teaching entirely of new material? 23.
and have 1)fought a considerable test upon some in tlm 4. Contrast the sermon on the mount with the giving of the law
early church; for it was contrary to all expectation that a at Mount Sinai. ¶ 4.
5. Show how the words of Jesus cut deeper than the Law. ¶ 5.
late comer, and even a persecutor as was Saul of Tarsus, 6. Howhave tile churches misapplied tile sermon on the mountt
should he made the chiefest spiritual expounder of our ¶ 6.
7. Howdid the churches meet the crisis of the World War? ¶ 7.
Lord’s teaching. Paul always had this to meet, and no 8. Why does God have a controversy with the nations, if they
doubt it was a continual means’ for keeping him ,tear to are actually l,agnn? ¶ S.
9. How will the law be magnified during the Millennium? ¶ 9.
llis nm~ter in spirit. 10. Vthat three great principles are found in Jesus’ teachings?
To ;t considerable extent the s’]me thing obtains in ¶ 10.
11. Howwill all ecclesiastical systems be tested, and with whae
Christendom today. There are many wtm say they are result? ¶ 11.
willing to be followers of the teaching of Jesus of Nazareth 12. Howdid Je.qus teach his disciples? ¶ 12.
13. Why~as Jesns unable to give his disciples spiritual Instruc-
its Ihis is exemplilicd in his parahles and miracles of heal- tion’.~ ¶ 13.
ing--lhe Christian Scientists for instance--but who ab- 14. l’y xxhat means did Jesus finally give the needed spiritual
SO|lllely ,,l)je~.[ I,, t:ll.:ill:: d()ctriHHI IllSlrllClil*ns i’rolu Paul. lnstru(’tion? ¶ 14.
15. What kind of man did Jesus finally use for this purpose?
Jesus, they say, was genial, tolerant, very broad; while ¶ 15.
Paul.they say, is particular, intoler:mt, and narrow in his 16. Howwa.~ Paul’s teacldng first received by Christians? and
what parallel exists now? ¶ 16.
do(:Irines. AS for himself, Paul was assured. [-Ie said: 17. Howwas Paul to handle Jesus’ teachings? ¶ 17.
"]hll though x~e, or an -mgel from heaven, preach any otl,er 18. Is the work of the church now merely to teach? ¶ 18.
19. Howdid the Lord purpose to convey his teachings at tha end
gospel unto you than which we have preached unto you, let of the age? ¶ 19.
20. Relate howLuke outlines a miniature of the divine plan. ¶ 20.
him be aceurued."--G’tl’a.ians 1: 8.
CILn one he a disciple of 3-csus, ;uld not of Paul? Every
true follower of .Tesns answers: No! The true disciple
BEWARE OF DOUBT
knows that Jesus meant them to expect explanation and
expansion of his words after his death, and it is quite Beware of douht--faith is the subtle ell’in
apparent that Paul is the chief one who fulfilled that Which binds us to the Infinite: the voice
expectation. Peter, the foremost of the apostles, refers Of a deep well within, that will remain
with deference to Paul’s writings, acknowledging him as Unless we crowd it hence.,
their teaeher--"Even as our beloved brother Paul also ac-
cording to the wisdom given unto him hath written unto ’Tis better to be glad for what is,
you."--2 Peter 3 : 15. Than to sigh for the things which are not;
Perhaps it has not been so generally discerned that a ’Tis better, braver, to reckon the joys
somewhat similar condition obtains amongst the Lord’s Than the troubles that fall to your lot.
people at the present time. Truth has come by our Lord’s --Selccte~
InternationalBible StudentsA soeiation Classes
h¢ct.ure~andsS(udic8btj TraveLing
Brethren
BROTtlER G. R. POLLOCK
BROTHER J. A. BOHNET
Rapid City, Ion ............. Oct. 20 Shollhrool~, Sask ............... Nov. 8
Bloomington, Ill ........... Oct. 27 ~Iartinsx illo. Ill ............... Nov. 3 Shoal Lake Man............ " "31 Etlmouton, Alta ......... Nov. 10-12
Decatur. III ............... " 29 Vandalht. Ill ................. " 5 ]4redolfl~u]’y Sask .......... .~’ov. 1 l?o~sington, Alto ............. Nov. 13
Champaign, Ill .......... " 30 Patoka,]11 ...................... " 6 ~Ol’l~toll, ~u,~k................. " 2 l;.H’rhe.ld, Alto ............... " 14
Datwdlc, Ill ...... .. " 31 Ahna,111.......................... " 7 Saskatoo~, S:tsk ......... Nov,-l-6 Cahuar, Alla ............ No~r. 16, 19
Clinton,’ Ind ...... Nov. J. Mattoon, Ill ................. " S Prince Albert, Sa~l; ......... Nov. 7 Bnlord,’ Alta ................. Nov.1"/"
Terre Haute, Ind ........... " 2 Areola, Ill ................... " 9
BROTHER B. M. RICE
BROTHEl{ E. F. CRIST
Norman, Okla ................ Oct. 31 OI, mulgec, Okla ............ Nov. 7
Mount Forest, Oat ......... Oct. 25 P, rantford, Oat ............. Nov. 2, 3 ]~dmoml, Okla ............ ov. I Muskogee,O],l:t ............... " 8
Pahnerston, Ont ........ ’ ’ 2 {; ]q’mnilton. (’bit .......... " 5, 6 Chiekasha, Okla ............. !’ 2 Pryor, Okla.................... " 9
Guell)h, Ont ............ " 27 Milton :\e,t, Ont ........... Nov. 7 Mince, Okla ................ " 3 I3ixby, Okla..................... " 10
l~.ilchener, Ont. ..... ~, t 29, 30 Tottenhant. Oat, . . " 8 Druluright, Okla .......... " 5 Tulsa, Okla..................... " 12
Gait, Ont ................... Jet.:]t Barme, Onl ....... ...... " 9 8apull)a, Okla .............. " 6 (21aremore, Okla ............. " 13
Preston, Ont ............. Nov. 1 Orillia, Oat ................ or. 10, 12
BROTIIER V. C. RICE
BROTIIER A. J. ESRLEMAN
Huron,
S.l-~.,k Nov. 7
................ Chaucellor,
S. Dak .........
Nov. 14
Eldorado,Me..................... Nov. 1 Fort Smith, Ark ............. Nov. 8 White,
S. l’).fl............." ,q Irene,S. Dak.................
" 15
Carthage, Me ........... " 2 Fayetteville, Ark ........... ’" 9 J’asI~cr,
Mira’. ........... ", 9 Mcnno,
S. Dak ...............
" 16
Webh City, Me ........ " 3 Sprlngdale, Ark ............. " 10 lqartford,
S. Duk .........." 10 Yankton,
S. Dak............." 17
,]oplllL ,MO.................. " ~ Monett,51o ..................... " 11 Mitchell,S. Dak .........." 12 /rene,
S. Dak.................
" 19
Noel. Me................... " 6 Tnrkey,Ark..................... " 13 Parker, " J:5 Vermillion,
S. Dak............... S. Dak ........." 20
Siloam,Me....................... " 7 Flippin, Ark..................... " 14
BROTIIER R. L. RUBLE
BROTIIER A. M. GRAHAM Oct. 20
Shelby,Ohio.................... Lancaster, Ohm.............. Nov. 7
East lhtmpton, Mass ..... Oct. 30 Morrlsville, Vt................. Nov. 6 ]~lansheld, Ohio ............ " BL Nelsonxille, Ohio ........... " 8
Greenfield, Mass ....... Oct. 31 St. :lohnsbury, Vt ............. " 7 Gallon, Oltio .................. Nov. 1 ]ronlon, Ohio.................. or. 9
Or:iDle, Mass ............... Nov. 1 Newport,Vt ..................... " 8 "Marion, Oh~+.................. " 2 Ashlaml,l(y ................... " 10
Pox~nal,Vt ...................... " 2 Hanover,N. H................. " 9 Delaware, Ohio................ Nov. 3 Portsmoutlt, Ohio ........... " 12
Rutlnnd, Vt ................... " 3 Pittsfield, N. H ............. " 10 Columbus,Ohio ................ " 5 Chillicothe, Ohio............ " 13
Burlington, Yt ................... " 5 l~Ianchester, N. 1: ......... " 12
BROTHEl{ O. L, SULLIVAN
BROTIIER M. L. HERR Wilson, N. C................... Oct. 2S Sanford, Fla .................... Nov.
\Vihnington, N. C ............. " 29 Or’laurie, Fin ............. " fl
Hlllsboro, Tex ............ Nov. 3.4 ~[cKinney, Tex ............... Nov. 10 Charleston, S. C ............. " :31. Apopka.Fie ................... Nov. 7
Cleburne, Tex................... N~v..5 Dcnison.’l’e~ .................... ,, 12 [~av.’l]~nall,(’,a .................. Nov. 1 New Smyrna, Fie ........... " 9
Egau.Tex.......................... " (; Sherman. Tex ................ " 13 J’acksoavilh,, Ha ............ " 2 Miami,Fht ................ .r,o, I0, 12
Fort Worth, Tex ............... " 7 Roxton,Tex..................... ,, 14 Palatka, Fla .................. " 3 Key West, Fie ............. Nov. 14
Dallas, Tex........................ " 8 Bogota.Tex.................... ,, 15
Plane, Tex......................... " 9 Dike, Tex..................... " 16
BROTHER W. J. THORN
Beverly, Mass................. Oct. 30 West Chelmsford, Mass. Nov. 0
BROTHER W. M. HERSEE Newburyport. Mass ........ " 31 Concord .lunctioa, Mass. " 7
Byfield, Mass.................. Nov. 1 Saxonville, Mass ............. " 8
North Sidney, D. C ...... Nov. 6 Port Williams, N. S ....... Nov I 15 :Haverhill, Mass................. " 2 Leominster, Mass ..... " 9
Stellarton. N. S ...... N,~v. 7.8 l(entville. N. S ............ Nov. 16 Lawrence, ,Mass ............... " 3 Oraz~ge, -Mass .............. " lO
Hopewell, N. S .............. N,~v..q I,; II:lll,: [Iflrbor, N. S. " 17, 19 " 5
Lowell,Mass..................... Greellfield, Mass ............ " 12
TrurC,, N. .g ........ Nor. a0, ]2 Water,file, N. S ............. Nov. 20
South Rawdun, N. S ..... Nov. 13 ]~er~ick, N. S ................ " 21
Windsor, N. S ............... " l,I Auburn,N. S ................... " 22
BROTHER T. H. THORNTON
Decatur,Ala..................... .Nov, 1 Poll City, Ala .......... Nov. 8
CONVENTIONS
1"0 BE ADDRESSED
BY BROTHEH
RUTHERFORD Tm,,combia,Ale ................ " 2 River,~ide, Aht ................. ~’ 9
Alh:tny,+’tin ....................... " 3 Lincoln.AIR..................... *’ 10
WOrCI~Sl’ZR,M^SS., Oct. 1; ....... David Peterson, 5-t Ah;H:tdo Ave. Ct:llm:lll. AI:I. ................ " 5 ]-:;ll’l]]lnghaol, Ala ........... " 12
P,c-semer. AIa................ " 6 Bouz, Ala...................... ~’ 14
CINCINNA’rI,OHZO,Oct. 8; ............ G. M. Meister, P. 0. Box 754 Yolande, Ala.................... n ’/ Piedmont. Ala ...... ~ 1111
,-r"
..o:$.
CONTENTS
CI,’DAR POINT CONVENTION .............................. 323
The Resolution ............................................... 32.t
li’riemlly Newspaper Comment .................. 325
-Prayer and Thanksgiving Day ............... 325
Comfort ~,nd EncouragoJnent Day ............. 326
Peace and Holiness Day ........................... 329
TheDay......................................................... ~31
Discourse by Brother Rutherford .................... 332
Consecration Day .............................. 33S
Activity Day ..................................... 340
Service Day 343
Vic tots" Day ......... 344
Question Meeting ......................... 346
Report of Service V¢orkers 348
Trust and Confidence Day ......... 349
"’I will stand upon my watch and ioill 8c$ ray foo~
Tipon the Tower, and w~ll watch to ace what He will
mt~] unto me, and what an.~wer I shall make $o them
thttt ozlz)ose ii~c."--Habakkuk £: 1.
I/Irontlae earth dlstrcss of nations with perplexl~ I the sea and the waves (tile w.~,.e,~. 0~scontemed) roaring, men’s hearts falling them for fear and far looking to tl~
earning upon tha earth (society): foe the powers of tha heavens (ecete~nl~tielsm) shall he ~haken .... When ye see these th~ngs begin to come to
~ know that the Klngdora of God 15 at hand. I.~ok t~. Lift up your heads, rclo~co, /or ~au~ redemption dr~weth nlgh.--Matk 24:83; Mark 13:29" Luk~ 21:25-31.
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS SACRED MISSION
T HIS ~ournA1 is one of the prime factors
presented in all parts nf the civilized
or instruments in the system of Bible instruction,
world by the WATC~TOWEaBIBLE & TRACTSOCIETY, chartered
or "Seminary Exte~.~ion", now bolus
A.D. ]~$4, "’For the Pro-
motion of CllrisLian Knowledge". It not only serves as a class room wllere Bible students may meet in the study of the divine Word bus
also as a cim.nnel of cmIinlunlc:ttiul] through xxhich they may be reached with announcements uf the Society’s conventions and of the
coming uf its traveling Iupre~entAtives, styled "l’iigrim~", and refreshed with reports of its conventions.
Our "Bereau Le~sons" are topical rehearsals or revie~s of our Society’s published STUDIES most entertainingly arranged, and very
helpful to all x~ he would merit the only honorary degree which the Society accords, viz., Verbi Dei Minister IV. D. ALl, which translated
into Engll~ll is 3Haister of God’s Word. Our treatment of the International Sunday School Lessons is specially for the older Blblo
students and teachers. By some this feature is considered indispensable.
This journal stands firmly for the defense of the only true feundation of the Christian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
--redemption throEgh the precious blood of "tile man Christ Jesus, who gave himself a ransom [a corresponding price, a substitute] fol~
all". (1 Peter 1 : 19 ; 1 Timothy 2 : 6) Building np on this sure foundation the gold, silver and precious stones (1 Corinthians 3:
15; 2 Peter 1:5-11) of tlle Word of God, its further mission is to "make all see what is the fellowship of the mystery which...ham
been hiii in God .... to the intent that now might be made known by the church the manifold wisdom of Ood"--"which in other agU
was not made known nnto the sons of men as it is now revealed".--Epheslans 3 : 5-9, 10.
It stands free from all parlies, sects and creeds of men. while it seeks more and more to bring Its every utterance into tulles|
subjectmn to the ~’ill of God in Christ, as expressed in the holy Scriptures. It is thus free to declare boldly whatsoever the Lord
hath spoken--according to the divine wisdom granted unto us to understand his utterances, its attitude Is not dogmatic, but confident|
for we kuow x~ hereof we affirm, treading with implicit faith upon the sure promises of God. It is held as a trust, to be used only in his
service; heuce our decisic, ns relative to what may and what xp. ay not appear in its columns must be according to our judgment of hl~
good pleasure, the teachhlg of hi~ Word, for the nphnihl4ng of his people in grace and knowledge. And we not only invite but urge olll
readers to prove all its utterances by the infallible Word to which reference is constantly made to facilitate such testing.
TO US THE SCRIPTURESCLEARLY
TEACH
That the cl~urch is "the temple of the living God", peculiarly "his workmanship" ; that its construction has been in progress thrt~ughout
the gospel a~e--ever since Christ became the world’s Redeemer and the Chief Corner Stone of his temple, through which, when
tinselled, God’s blessing .~ilall come "to all people", and they find access to him.--1 Corinthians 3:16, 17 ; Ephesiaas 2:20-22 |
Genesis 2S : ]-i ; (;ala~mns 3 : 29.
That lneantLme tim clnseling, sllaping, and poliqhing of consecrated believers In Christ’s atonement for sin, progresses ; and when thg
last of these "]i~ ins stones", "e’,ect and precious," shall have been made ready, the great Master Workmanwill bring all together
in tile hr~t requrrcction ; and tile temple shall be filled with his glory, and be the meeting place between God and men throughout
tile MillenninnL--Re~elation 15:5-8.
~hat the lille,S of ]lope, for the church and the world, lies in the fact that "Jesus Christ, by the grace of God, tasted death for every
man, .... a ransolu for all," and will be "the true light which lighteth every mau that eometh into ths world", "In duo time".~
]~lebrews 2:9; John 1:9; 1 Timothy 2:5, 6.
:that the helle of the churcti is that she may be ~;l:e her Lord, "see him as he is," be partaker of the divine nature,’ and share hi~
glory as his j01nt-llcw.--1 John 3:2; John 17:24; Romans 8 :]7; 2 Peter 1:4.
:Chat tile present luission of 1he church is the perfecting of the saints for the future work of service; to develop in herself every
grace; in lie God’s w~tncgs In the ~vorid ; and to prepare to be kings and priests in the next age.--Epheslans 4 : 12 ; 31atthew 24~
14; Revelation :l : (i; 20:6.
That the hope for the world ties in tl~ blessings of knowledge and opportunity to be brought to all by Chriqt’s 51111ennial kingdom, th~
re.~tltUtlon of all that was lost in Adam, Io all the wilhng and obedient, all ti~e hands of their Redeemer and Ins glori~md church$
when nit the wilfully wicked will be dcstroycd.--Acts 3:]9-23; lsalah 35.
BALTIMORE CONVENTION
~fATCFI J OWEI~I~I 5LE C-TRACTSOCIETy A local convention will be held at Baltimore, hid., October 2Sth
and 29th, which classes in the immediate neighborhood will have
18 CONCORD
STR.EET
g c~ BROOKLYN,
AI.Y.U.S’A" an opportunity to attend. A public meeting will be held Sunday
FOREIGN OFFICES: British: 34 CrAven Terrace, Lancaster Gate, afternoon, to be addressed by Brother Rutherford. Other speakees
Londou W. 2; Canadia~: 270 Dnndas St., W., Toronto, Ontario; will be present. For further infurmation address Dr. Chas. A_
Australasian: 4:)5 Colhns St., Melbmlrue. AustrAliA; South A.fr~- Schaefer, 53 South Fulton Ave., Baltimore, Md.
©an: 123 Plein St., Cups Town, Soutll Africa.
I’I,EASE ADDRESSTHE SOCIETY IN ]~,VERY CASE. CANADIAN CONVENTIONS
YEARLYSUBSCRIPTION PRICE: UNITED STATES, $].00 ; CANADAAND N¢.w L~SKEARD,Ont., October 20-22;
~IISCELLANEOUSFOREIC.N, $1.50 : (~REAT B[LITAIN. AUS~ RAI,ASIA~ A. H. Brown, Drawer 23, New Liskeard, Ont.
ANDSOI/TII AFRICA~ 8S American remittan(:es should lie luado WINN~PE0, MAN., October 27-29;
by Express or POStAl Money Orders, or by Bank Draft. Canadian, L. W. Burgess, 539 Newman St., Winnipeg, Man-
:British, South African, and Australasian remittanee~ should be SAS~rgTOON, SASK., November 4-6;
made to branch offices only. ReaAlttances from scattered foreign G. P. Naish, 115 Main St., Nutana, Saskatoon, Sask.
territory may be made to the Brooklyu office, but by International EDMONTON,ALTA., November 10-12;
Postal Money Orders only. Gee. A. Ware, 12321 Stony Plain Rd., Edmonton, Alia.
(Foreign translations e~ Shis ]ournal appear ~n severaZ languages) VANCOUVER,.B.C., Nove~nber 17-]9;
3T. Sibley, 1687 Fifth Ave. W., Vancouver, B. C~
Editorial Committee: This journal is pAbllshed tinder the supervision CRANBnOOK,B. C., December 2, 3;
Geo. Holmes, Box 19, Cranbrook, B. C.
of an editorial committee, at least three of WllOm have read and R~OINA, SASK., December 8-10;
approved as truth each and every article appearing in these columns, M. T. Catton, 1835 Connaught St., Regina, Sask.
The names of the editorial committee are: J. F. ROTHI~Rg0RD,
W.E. VANA~IBURG[-[~J. I]I:.MI:RY, O. H. FISHER. SAN FRANCISCO CONVENTION
~erlrla fo flie ~ord’aPoor." AI1Bible stoden~who,by reason of old age or other in-
firmity or adversity,are unableto payfor this journal,will be suppliedfree if theysend The International Bible Students will hold a convention at
¯ p~tal card each ~,Iay stating their case and requestlnff such provision. Weare eel San Francisco Saturday and Sunday, November 18 and 19. The
erdywilling, but anxious,that all suchbe oa our IS:at oantinuall7madin touchwithtl~
Bereanstu~:ies. President of the Association will he present at the convention.
For further particulars write J. L. Seer~:, Convention Secretary,
.lVOti~fO ~U bw*~4/~"
.......... Wedo
for mnot, mmrule. mind
newsubscription. ¯ card
R~mpt ofent~’
~nd aeknowledlrmeutfor
ox r~newla~z~¯ Inddc~ld
~nm|ol" 701 Post Street, San Francisco, Califorma.
~thJna month by changeIn expiration
data,aa shown
Onwrapperlabel,
E~t~r~da~ ~ ~ Matter ~$ Braoklv~. N. Y., P~ ~md~~h~Act of Maee~Srd, 1171, CONVENTIONS
TO BE ADDRESSED
BY BROTHER
RUTHERFORD
CON~TENTION of Christians drawn together brethren conducted their meetings in different halls
A by the influence of pure Christian love is al-
ways helpful. The day is approaching for the
and in different parts of the grove. There were as
many as eleven meetings in progress at one time.
general assembly of the church of the firstborns; hence There was one spirit prevailing, the spirit of Christ.
the greater desire for closer fellowship and activity Everywhere were happy faces and joyful hearts. Every-
of the brethren this side the vail. To all such a where it was heard said: "This is the most wonder-
convention is a special blessing. ful convention yet held"; and doubtless there never has
Believing it to be in harmony with the Lord’s will, been another convention on earth attended by so many
a genera[ convention of Bible Students was announced consccrated Christians.
to be held at Cedar Point, Ohio, September 5 to 13, The feeding of the multitude was a problem. But
inclusive. From every quarter of the land there was the proprietoi’s of Ccdar Point had arranged that thin
a joyful response by the brethren. As the day ap- shouk[ be done in the cafeteria style; and by the spirit
proached, it was evident that there would be a great of cobperahon on the part of the brethren this feature
number present. Even more came than was antic- was quite rcadily taken care of, and all were supplied
ipated, with a great desire for fellowship and building with reasonable food.
one another up on our most holy faith. The brethren Mondaywas "Service Day", and on Tuesday morning
came from all parts of the United States, Canada, and several hundred automobiles, each car loaded with
quite a number from Europe. Those who could not workers and books, canvassed the northern part of Ohio.
come sent telegrams and cablegrams of greetings and
A report of this appcars herein. 0n Tuesday evening
best wishes. Such were received from Great Britain, following this canvass a testimony meeting was held,
Scotland, Australia, South Africa, Sweden, Finland, and every one present agreed that it was the most
Winnipeg, Man., Saskatoon, Sask., Medicine Hat,
wonderful, heart-inspiring testimony meeting he had
Alia., Boston, Fall River, Mass., Roseburg, Ore.,
ever attended.
Spokane, Wash., San Jose, Calif., St. Louis, ]~’Io.,
Baltimore, Md., Terre Haute, Ind., Passaic, N. J., The convention concluded Wednesday forenoon. It
Richmond, Va., Tampa, ~arianna and Zephyr Hills, was thought because of the great number present that
Fla., Raleigh, N. C., Richmond Hill, N. Y., and it would be beyond the capacity of any to stand shak-
other places. ing hands with everybody; hence the love feast was
On Tuesday the brethren began to arrive in special conducted by the friends engaging in singing songa
trains, boats, automobiles, trolley cars and, in fact, while standing and giving the Chautauqua salute. It
every kind of vehicle except airships. On Sunday more was a most in~prcssive scene, a most happy one; and
than 5,000 people came by automobile alone. All hotel every one departed from the place, realizing that the
space at Cedar Point was occupied, while thousands Lord was present and had opened the windowsof heaven
were domiciled at Sandusky and Lakeside. The audi- and poured out a blessing upon his people.
ence reached its greatest number on Sunday, at which
time it is estimated by the Sandusky Press that be- "WITHTEN THOUSANDS OF HIS SAINTS"
tween 18,000 and 20,000 people were present. It is interesting here to note the words of St. Jude:
The convention opened Tuesday afternoon, according "And Enoch also, the seventh from Adam, prophesi~!
to the program. Brother Van Amburgh was chairman, of these, saying, Behold, the Lord cometh with ten
the assistant chairmen being Brothers Graham,Salter, thousands of his saints, to execute judgment upon all,
and Pickering. The English-speaking brethren held and to convince all that are ungodly among them af
meetings in the large auditorium and also in the grove all their ungodly deeds which they have ungodly com-
at the same time; while at the same hours our foreign mitted
7 and of all their hard speeches which ungodl
BROOKLYN’,
N. ~J~l
WATCH TOWER
Binners have spoken against him." (Jude 14, 15) the public meeting. At the conclusion of the public
has been suggested that the words of St. Jude are address by the President of the Society Sunday after-
significant here in view of the adoption of a resolution noon, this notable assembly composed of consecrated
which forms a judgment and warning to all the nations Christians speaking many languages, to wit, English,
of earth. It is quite singular that the average attend- German, Polish, Greek, Scandinavian, Ukrainian, Lith-
ance at this convention was approximately 10,000, uanian, Hungarian, Slovak and Italian, unanimously
while on Sunday afternoon many more were present at adopted the following resolution amidst great rejoicing:
RESOLUTION
(Adopted by the lnternatio~a~ Bible Students Association m Conv~tio~
at Cedar Point, Ohio, Sunday, September 10, 19~$)
HE II~ternational Bible Students in convention as-
T sembled deem it a duty and privilege to send this
message to the nations of earth.
parts of the earth exactly as foretold by the Lord;
2. That 1914 marked the legal ending of the old world
and there Christ the rightful King took unto himself his
As a body of Christians consecrated to obey and follow power as king;
our Lord and Savior Jesus Christ, we are opposed to en- 3. That the Lord Jesus Christ is now present, invisible
gaging in war, revolution, anarchy, or violence in any to man, and proceeding with the work of establishing his
form; and we are opposed to ft’aud and deception being kingdom, for which kingdom he taught his followers to
practised upon the people by tim misrepresentation of the pray ;
Word of God or otherwise. We earnestly desire peace, 4. That Satan, long the god of this world, h’ts deceived
prosperity and the blessing of the people with life, liberty the statesmen, financiers and the clergy, by inducing them
and happiness; and we hold th~lt the oply means by which to believe that by international agreement or other com-
this can be accomplished is by and through the reign of bined efforts they can bring the desire of all nations;
Christ. 5. That all of the world’s present organization consti-
In the light of the Word of God, and particularly of tutes the visible part of Satan’s empire or organization,
fulfilled prophecy, we submit the following as a true state- and that Satan’s empire must now fall before the forward
ment of the facts relating to present conditions: march of the King of glory;
1. That the rulers of earth have frequently boasted that 6. That all international conferences and all agreements
the World War was fought to make the world safe for or treaties resulting therefrom, including the League of
democracy, which claim has proven to be a delusion and Nations compact and all like compacts, must fail, because
a snare ; God lms decreed it thus;
2. That the International conferences at Paris, Wash- 7. That all efforts of the denominational church organi-
lngton, Genoa and The Hague, participated in by the finan- zations, their clergy, their leaders and their allies, to save
ciers and statesmen and approved by the denominational and rot!stablish the order of things in the earth and to
clerg.~ of the world, held for the purpose, as announced, bring peace and prosperity must of necessity fail, because
of establishing peace on earth, have failed to bring forth they do not constitute any part of the kingdom of Messiah ;
the desired result ; 8. That on the contrary, during the World War the
3. Tlmt all of the nations of earth are now in distress clergy of these various church denominations were dis-
and perplexity, as the Lord foretold they would be at this loyal to the Lord Jesus Christ in this, that they wrong-
time, and that the entire social and political structure is fully united with big business and big politicians to further
threalened with complete dissolution; and the leading the World War; they preached men into the trenches and
statesmen and rulers of the earth being aware of this falsely and blasphemously told them that their death upon
fact and of their inability to establish peace and prosperity the battlefield would be counted as a part of the vicarious
are frantically c~llling upon the denominational churches atonement of Jesus Christ;
to save the world from disaster; 9. That they further repudiated the Lord and his king-
4. That it is the desire of all the nations and peoples dom and showed their disloyalty by voluntarily uniting
of earth that they might dwell in peace and enjoy life, themselves with Satan’s organization and boldly announc-
liberty and happiness; ing to the world that the League of Nations is the political
5. That the people are being misled by those who are expression of God’s kingdom ou earth, which announcement
attempting to bring about this desire through international so made by them was In utter disregard of the words of
conferences and agreements in the form of the League of Jesus and the apostles.
Nations and like compacts. 10. We further hold and testify that this is the day of
Wetherefore call upon the nations of earth, their rulers God’s vengeanceagainst Satan’s empire visible and invisible ;
and leaders, and upon all the clergymen of all the de- 11. That the rei!stablishment of the old world or order
nominational churches of earth, their followers and allies, is an impossibility; that the time is here for the establish-
big business and big politicians, to bring forth their proof ment of the kingdom of God through Christ Jesus; and
in justification of the position taken by them that they that all the powers and organizations that do not willingly
can establish peace and prosperity on earth and bring submit to the righteous reign of the Lord will be destroyed ;
happiness to the people; and their failing in this, we call 12. That if the politicians would faithfully represent tho
upon them to give ear to the testimony that we offer as people, and big business would cease exploiting the people,
witnesses for the Lord, and then let them say whether and the clergy would tell the people the truth concerning
or not our testimony is true. God’s arrangement and the people would cease from strife,
Relying upon the Word of God and his providential the kingdom of Messiah would be established by him with-
dealings with mankind through Christ Jesus, we as his out further trouble or distress; but failing thus to do,
witnesses hold and testify as follows, to-wit: greater trouble must shortly follow;
1. That the Worhl VCar came in 1914 and was followed 13. That for this reason there is now impending and
by great famines, pestilences and revolutions in various about to fall upon the nations of earth, according to the
WATCH TOWER 325
words of Christ Jesus, a great time of "tribulation such truth, and we publish to them his message of peace and
as was not since the begDming of tlle world to this time, everlasting salvation, to wit, that the King of glory, the
no, nor ever sh’fll be" [again], and it is this impending Deliverer of man, is invisibly present and has begum his
trouble that tile rulers and mighty men of earth see coming. reign; that tim old worhl, under the control of Satan. has
e,lded nn(l is being rapidly broken in pieces, to make way
Btlt we hold and declare that Measiah’s kingdom is the
for the everlasting kingdom of righteousness now being
COlnplete panacea for nil tile ills of lmmankind trod will set up, and that millions of people now living on earth, If
bring peace on earth and good will to men, the desire of obedient to the laws of that righteous kingdom, will con-
all nations; that those who yiehl themselves willingly to tinue to live -rod never die; and we call upon all nations,
his righteous reign now begun will be blessed with lasting
peoples, kindreds and tongues who love righteousness and
peace, life, liberty and endless happiness. hate iniqnity to recognize a,nI freely acknowledge that
Therefore we bring to the peoples of earth God’s mes- Jehov~th is the only true God and that his beloved Son
sage of good tidings contained in the Bible, his Word of Christ Jesus is King of kings and Lord of lords.
A FRIENDLY COMMENT
The Bridgeport (Conn.) Herald editorially, October 1st, said of the Resolution the following:
BIBLE STUDENTS SCORE ~VORLD’S STATESMEN
With ~[nsl;qdla l(emal thundering at the gates of Con- are disgusted with the morals and spirit of our world,
stnntinople, denmnding the return o~ the D,H’(lanelles con- statesmen and even the ways of the League of Nations
trol to ’.l’urkey, while lhe ]:;ril,ish lion is rm~hing her warrior is ol)vious in their unanimous resolution on world affairs.
breed to tile Golden 1:fern, x~ ith the revohitionnry spirit of We submit that, regardless of what the individual reader
"red" Russia tlu’ealening to Bolshevik’ize all Europe, with may think of its philosophy, the ensuing resolution de-
the American public niurniuring fiercely -it atrociously serves incorporation in history as a vivid reflection of
high prices of coal and other necessJlies caused in part by what many of our churchmen think o£ these times.
two costly national ~rrike% it ~s interesting to note what What a documeuta,-y study it affords for psychologists
one of the l.tvgest and most "retire Christian organiznlions --this modern discourse on that eternal duel between God
in the world thinks of this crisis in history. and Satan !
Upwards of 20,000 ardent churchmen .tttended the meet- How we would like to note the expressions of Lloyd
Ings of the International Bible Students Association at George, Clemenceau, Venizelos. Lenin, Hughes or Root
Cedar Point, Ohio, during its recent convention. That they could we but see them reading the resolution.
We will not attempt to give in the WAwc~TOWER air auditorium seated several thousands of people.
any review of the addresses of the foreign-speaking The main auditorium, after the first three days,
brethren nor even to give their names, but the reports was equipped with a splendid sounding-board pattern-
which have reached us show that these addresses of ed after a Victrola horn, which workedso perfectly that
the foreign-speaking brethren were noteworthy for the a speaker with even a moderately strong voice could
high degree of spirituality which they manifested. At be heard distinctly in the remotest parts of the great
one and the same thne eleven meetings, m ten differ- auditorium. An admirable orchestra made up of
ent languages, were in progress in different places twenty-two brothers and sisters supplied excellent music
upon the grounds. throughout. Amongthe instruments thus employed to
The main auditorium, the Coliseum, never before the Lord’s praise were the piano, two baritone horns,
used by the Bible Students, was equipped with five three cornets, two saxaphones, a flute, a bass viol, and
thousand seats; and these seats were filled at almost a dozen violins. One of the players was heard to re-
every session and man), stood. Besides this, English mark: "The time set for this convention is too short;
meetings were conducted in the park, where an open a convention of this size ought to be here all summer."
gredients which enler into tim formation of the hardest assure us that every promise which God has made can be
rocks are held together by some adhesive force. Mutual fully relied upon.
confidence would in time beget love, which is the strongest Tlle touching story of Job shows that the devil has not
moral cohesive power known. Could the world at once power to even toucl~ one of God’s people unless God may
enter into a condition of mutual confidence and trust, the temporarily permit it; and if he does permit it and the
social cyclone now threatening wouhl rapidly disappear. tested one proves faithful, God doubles his previous bless-
Can such n condition ever be broffght about on earth? God ings unto him.
has promised that it shall be. The fascinating story of Josel)h tells that he was hated
God has permitted mankind to take its own course for by his brethren, who with mnrderons hearts sold him as
a while, that it migllt learn its inability to save itself. It a slave; his thirteen years of bondage, part of which was
has demonstrated that sin and selfishness cannot cement spent in prison under false accusation; his release by the
society into u desirable condition. Dnring the permission of power of God, who raised him next to the throne of Egypt
sln God arranged th’tt a record of his dealings with his in one day, thus making hint the savior of the very broth-
people should be kept, and gives as one reason therefor ers who had sold him, and also of iris entire family, as
that the Christian of today might have a knowledge of well as the savior of the entire nation of Egypt. God
how firm a foundation of divine wisdom, love, justice, and pictured thus Ins own Sou, who would l.tter be hated by
power he has upon which to build his faith and hope. his brethren, murdered by them, only to be ex:dted later
What comfort and patience this knowledge gives him to to the throne of the heavens that he might become the
endure the terrors of u collapsing world! I-Ie knows that Savior of his brethren, the Jewish n’ttion, and also of
ffehovah is preparing for tim est:lbl,slunent of his kingdom his family, his joint-heirs, and incidently of all the world,
on earth. The sand fmmdations of sin, selfishness, and typified by the nation of Egypt.
Injustice must all be cleared away, that the rock founda- The exl)eriences of the warrior David, takes from the
tion of justice, righteousness, love, and mercy may be laid. sheep-cote and placed upon the throne of Israel that he
Tile Apostle assures us that "whatsoever things were might deliver his people, give another picture of the coming
written aforetime were w,’itten for our learning, that we Savior as a warrior who would dehver his people from
through patience and comfort of the scriptures might have bondage to sin.
hope" (Romans 15 : 4)’ ; and that "all these things happened Tim children of Israel during their captivity were en-
unto them for ensamples; and they are written i~or our couraged by the deliverance of the three Hebrew children
NOW~nZR
1, 1922
WATCH TOWER
from the fiery furnace of the enraged Nebuchadnezzar, known is soon to dawn; and that singing, joy and h:mppl-
and by that of Daniel from the lion’s dell, where he had ness in abund’tnee will replace the sighii)g, sorrow and
been cast at the behest of his enemies. God had not for- distress of the prc~,eut.--Luke 2:1.: 28.
gotten timm, even though they were in captivity. The Christian therefore has a stability of mind, faith
So the Christians of today "upon whom tim ends of the in God, a glorious hope for speedy deliverance which gives
world ]lave come," as they find themselves in the vortex him p:)tience in tile present turmoil, alld u comfort of heart
of hmuan passions and terror, are nssm’ed that their God
and luiud which nothing can slmke or br¢:ak. He is sup-
whom timy serve can and will deliver them in hiu own
time and way. Their eyes have been ope.ed by the Word ported by tile mi,ghty God of tire universe, and thus he
of God; and they know that these distressing co~)ditions "dwelleth in the s~,cret [)lace of t~e Most High [and] shall
ere but evidences that the king,lore of God is at the door, flbitie under the shadow of the Alnlighty." What .~:ffer
and that the era of greatest blessing the world has ever place could he be in? What could give him more comfort?
Brother Crist delivered a discourse on the same subject at 11 a. m. Weinsert herein a syl,opsis of it:
DISCOURSE BY BROTHERE. F. CRIST
"Great peace have they which love ti~y law, and ,mthing shaU offend [stun~bte] thera."--Psaln~ 119:165.
E VERYONEdesires
lmppiness.
hnportant
happiness. Peace is essential
In Ps.uhn 119:165 we are told how this
ingredient of joy may be obtained,
to willing child of Adam to become perfect and happy ultl-
mutely. As we, too, learn to love that law, peace increases
proportionately.
Primarily God’s law is his own rule of conduct. As a God showed his love for the law of holiness when he
loving Creator he delivers it to man, that the latter may condemned the race In Adam. He would have a clean
be advantaged. Throughout the six crea.tive days God universe; therefore every evil thing nmst be destroyed.
obeyed the law of thoughtfulness in creating conditions ].’euce was inspired as he looked forward to a glorious
that would en’tble melt to be lmppy, l=[e caused trees to culmination, when evil will be destroyed root and br-tnch.
grow for" luanber, that men might buibl houses and other When we love that law, and have determined to eradicate
conveniences. I-Ie placed coal, oil and gas in the earth every evil desire and practice front our lives, we shall feel
for fuel supply, that men might ruu trains, steamboats, swecet peatce while anticipating the fruition of such hope.
aml automobiles. Had God made only two kinds each of Having condemned his disobedient creature, God next
vegetables, fruits, and flowers, life wouhl have aft’orded far proved his love for the law of mercy in that he decreed
less pleasnre than it does. God having titus thoughtfully a provision for the nltimate recovery of unworthy man
used his creative power, peace resulted from the realiza- through the giving of his own Son to suffer, to die and to
finn that he had done his best. become the restorer. How sweet must have been his peace
Bec.luse of failure to love that law of thoughtfulness, as the sense of such nobility swept over his soul! As we
peace is l’tcki,~g ill many lives. Husbands permit wives to learn to love mercy, even toward those who seem not to
struggle unnecessarily with inconveniences that make life merit it, we add to our peace. If we think mercifully of
a dull drudgery, when a few paltry pennies and a few our fellow man, a more kindly feeling toward hi,n is gen-
minutes of time would make life far brighter for them. dercnl and it becomes easier to speak and act considerately.
Trouble with neighbors is often traceable to the same It is obvious that greater peace must result from such
cause; whereas thoughtfulness would have yielded an in- course.
terehange of kindly acts productive of much pleasure. I:htving planned for the restoration of all willing one~
Many parents suffer disappointment and u,pleasantness during Christ’s kingdom God next evidenced his love for
because of failure to reason from the viewpoint of their the law of magnanimity in arrangi,rg for the selection from
chihlren. This does not suggest harmful indulgence, but among the human race of 144,000 who are to be highly
such wise and loving thoughtfulness as will convince the exalted to the conditions now enjoyed by his Son, if they
child that father and mother are endeavoring unselfishly faithfully emulate him. This is a condescending favor
to serve its highest interests. Love for this law will pro- almost beyond conception. How sweet must have been his
mote peace in our lives. Many stumblings can thus be peace when this decision was reached! When we love that
avoided. Real happiness cannot be enjoyed otherwise, htw, and are willing to do for husband, wife and others
When during Christ’s kingdom now being established man- far more than duty would demand, we are planting seeds
kind comprehend and apply this principle, the human race that will bring fruition in peace.
will thereby elimi,tate a large part of their trouhles. God has through the centuries demonstrated ]]Is love for
:Next, God proved his love for the law of self-forgetful- the law of meekness (which implies a readiness to receive
hess and self-denial in that he permitted Lucifer to take suggestion) and for the law of perseverance. Both are
charge in Eden, knowing that he would lead men into sin essential to a broad peace. God has not dealt harshly
and destruction. God foresaw that for centuries he must when unreasonable and ridiculous suggestions have been
behold the sad spectacle of a race rushing madly down the made to hilt] in prayer; neither has he been dismayed
decline into more and more of evil; that selfishness would because in six thousand years the human race has not
lead to injustice, hate, murder, war, and other terrible con- become free from sin and its terrible effects. He has de-
sequences; that his own loving purposes would be mis- termined to persevere until that end is attained. The love
understood, and his name be blasphemed; that he would of these features of God’s law will contribute to our peace.
send his own Son to redeem men, and that this Son would Unwillingness to receive a suggestion or criticism will
be rejected and crucified. Yet God obeyed his law, that cause peace to be an absent quantity in our lives; and
thus mankind might learn lessons that would enable every vice versa.
From2 to 3 o’clock in the afternoon was devoted appreciation of the Lord’s goodness to them. At 3 p. m.
to praise and testimony, and manyof the friends had Brother]~’[. A. :Kowlettspokeor~ the subject of the day.
opportunity to give aa expression of their love and A synopsis of his discourse follows:
DISCOURSE BY BROTHER M. A. HOWLETT
restless musses of hnmanity are surging as angry billows; When the Jew is referred to in prophecy he is often
the storm clouds of trouble grow blacker; men’s hearts spoken of as Jttcob. lie takes this name from the father
fail them for fear and for looking after those things of his nation--JacoD---whose name was changed to Israel.
comi,g upon the earth. Hence his children are called the children of Israel. The
Wimt should be tile attitude of the Christian in regard affairs of the people spoken of as Jacob, are to play aa
to tlmse things? Should he be perplexed? Should he be important part in the establishment of the new order.
afraid? The assurance of God’s Word is that these very The Jewish hope is running high. He is anxiously looking
conditions would exist at the end of the age, and that for the fulfilhnent of the long-deferred promise to Abra-
they would mark the passing away of the old order of ham: "In thee and thy seed shall all the families of the
unrighteousness and lhe coming in of the new "wlmrein earth be blessed." To the Jew this means the re~stablish-
dwelleth righteousness." meat of a polity in Palestine through which the nations
Bible students are looking for the near establishment of of earth will be bl~-~ssetl. His one great mistake is his
this kingdom of peace. This being "Comfort and Encour- relying upon the wrong agencies for this reestablishment.
agement Day," what comfort can we get from tire reali- Instead of looking to his God, he is leaning upon an arm
zation of tlmse troublesome conditions? If it can be proven of flesl~; he is leaning upon the gentile nations and par-
that the present political situation in Europe and else- ticuk~rly upon the League of l’4ations.
where; the existence of a league of nations; the coming The Almighty has authorized none of the present nations
into 1)eing of F, olshevism; the unrest among tlle Moh:tm- to assume authorLty iu Palestine. The power that is ex-
medans are all conditions related to the est.thlishment of ercist,d in that country by the Leag~ue of Nations through
the kingdom of Christ, would this not be a matter of great its representative, Great Britain, is an abomination in
comfort and encouragement? God’s sight. This assumed authority is to be overthrown
The Christian’s commission at this time is to prochdm in a great time of trouble, (luring which the Almighty will
the "day of vengeance of our God," and how could this manifest his power aml show himself to be fighting for
be done were he not fully satisfied that the day is the Jew agaiu.--Ezekiel 38:21.
Is mightier than he that taketh a city." Bravery in natural Master, who was tempted in all points as we, oat over-
warfare is most commendable; but earU~’s really mighty came;so may we, by his grace.Let us put forthevery
ones are the heroes of faith. Shortly their names will be efI:ort to ~ervetileLord’scause.Soonthe fightwillbe
engraved upon the hearts of all mankind, as the "joy finished, the racerun,the victorywen;and the eternal
of the whole earth." Meanwhile let us look unto our joys will be ours.
The evenings were spent in social fellowship about was the crowd that it was impossible for every one to
the hotel and in discussion by the friends of what ~hey meet every one he knew in one day, and the evenings
had heard during the day. It gave opportunity for were well occupied in visiting and in Christian fellow-
renewing acquaintance one with another. So great ship together.
This was followed at 11 o’clock by Brother R. It. Barber, who also discoursed on the subject as follows:
From 12 to 2 o’clock each day was occupied in The program that was carried on in the main aucli-
laartaldng o£ refreshments. Longqueues of people wait- torium was duplicated as to subjects by the other meet-
ed for their turn to enter the dining room, where ings held in the park, addressed by different brethren.
each served himself in cafeteria style, at the same time
having opportunity to visit together. At 3 o’clock in the afternoon Brother ]~iacmillan
At 2 o’clock on this day a praise and testimony meeb- spoke on the subject "Peace and Holiness." Weinsert
ing was enjoyed by the great number that attended. an outline of his discourse as follows:
how
of God ever went to the throne of grace in the proper
attitude of heart and mind, ~md failed to receive the de-
sired blessing. Our dear Redeemer assured us: "If ye abid~
to grow this flower and our dear Lord helps us to carry in me, and my words abide in you, ye shall ask what yl
~llt those instructions. will, and it shall be done unto you."
Peace is calmness, mental quietude, tranquility of heart This privilege of pr.qyer is ours, that we may individ.
and mind that comes to the faithful child of God because ually closet ourselves with lhe Lord to comlnu,m with him.
of the blessed realization of all of our aff.Lirs being under It is because prayer admits us into the presence of the
the supervision of our he~’tvenly Father. It is a peace that Lord thai it prepares us for the blessing of divine peace,
Implicitly trusts in divine wisdom and love, justice and by developing in us mare of the holy quality of reverence
power, a peace that remembers tile gracious promises left for tim merciful and holy character of our God, as we
to the faithful children of God, that nothing shall by any eontimm to realize more fully his goodness to us and hi-q
means hurt us, but that all things must work together for willingness to hohl us by his right hand as his children,
our highest good, as long as we are delighted to let him But while rejoicing In this blessed privilege of prayer
have tim chief place in all of our thoughts and words we are not to overlook the rich blessings to be derived
and doings. This peace can accept by faith whatever divine from the daily study of the divine Word. Every devoted
providence permits, looking with joyful expectancy to the Christian delights to meditate upon tile Word of God, and
blessings promised us. as we let our hearts and minds rest on tim many rich
’]?his is not a worldly peace, but "the pc’me of God th:tt promises that have been left for our encouragement, and at
passeth all understanding," and Is a combination of knowl- we call tc~ mind the many instances in which God wonder
edge, faith, reverence, and wisdom. A knowledge of tile fully guided, protected and delivered his faitllful and
gracious plans and promises of God; n hearty appreciation loyal children, the result to us is a mental poise, a peace
of those rich promises inspiring us to such reverence for ful cnnditmn of heart and mind that the world can neithe]
the give,- of those promises tlmt we delight to follow his give nor take away.
instructmns; we thus sl]ow our wisdom by putting into Our mimi is like a garden, tim will ts the gardener
practice the tldngs that we are daily receiving from the the tlmughts are the seeds that are planted, daily conduct
storehouse of truth. It is of this class of people that we is the blossom, and the developed flower is character. Thq
read: "The Lord will give strength to his people; the Lord character will be weak and sickly, or strong and health3
will I)less his people with peace." in p,’oportim.l as our thoughts are weak or strong. Weak
Prayer is essential in developing this gracious element puny, irritable thoughts will produce weak, puny, irrltabR
of character. Prayer is communion with our heavenly characters; strong, noble a,~d positive thoughts will pro
Father seeking his guidance, counsel and blessing. In some duee strong, noble and positive characters.
of the most eloquent prayers ever reaching the "throne of Let us be determined to think strongly, attempt fea~
grace," not a word was uttered by you; perhaps only a lessly, accomplish masterfully; at the same time remem.
tear roiled down your cheek; the Lord read your prayer in bering that self-control is strength, right thought is mastery
that falling tear or aching heart. No truly devoted child and peace--love in repose--is power.
The speakers in the park on this day inehtded and F. T. l_torth. Want of space prevents the publi.
Brothers J. A. Baeuerlein, W. L. Pelle, G. H. Fisher, cation of these discourses.
This was followed at 11 o’clock by a discourse de- paring in announcing that his kingdomis being set up.
livered by Brother Sullivan, who reviewed the fact of Brother Hemery, of London, who for many years has
the King’s presence--that his presence had dated since been the Society’s representative for Great Britain,
1874 and that in 1914: he took unto himself his great attended the conventiou throughout. In addition to
power and now reigns. ]~e emphasized the fact that representing the Socicty, he cameas the representative
all the fulfillment of prophecy shows that the Lord is particularly of the ]3r[tish friends, bringing the love
exercising his great power as King, that the nations and greetings of the dear friends in that land to the
are being dashed to pieces, that the saints are being brethren in America. Several other friends from Eng-
tested, that his kingdomis being set up, and that this land also attended the convention. Manyof the Amer-
should be the greatest encouragement to the brethren. ican friends remembered Brother Hemery’s former
At 2 o’clock a praise and testimony meeting was visit in 1910, and were dclighted to renew their ac-
participated in by the friends, manystanding and wait- quaintance with him and he with them. At 3 o’clock
ing for their turn to testify. It was a happy season in the afternoon of Friday Brother Hemery spoke on
indeed. Joy was expressed by every one who testified the subject, "The Day." His discourse was very help-
of the privilege of living in the time of the presence ful and encouraging to the brethren. Wegive an out-
of the King and of having the opport~mity of partiei- line of the salient points of his discourse as follows:
"What doth the Lord require el thee but to do justly, and to love mercy, evnd to walk humbly w~th tky God?"
--Micah 6: 8.
At 11 o’clock a discourse was delivered on baptism when the door is closed and no one can properly make
and its import by Brother Rutherford. At the conclusion a consecration. In fact, it wolfld not be proper for any
of this discourse 361 signified that they had made a one to make a consccratiml with a view of getting into
consecration to the Lord and desired to symholize that any particular place in the Lord’s great arrangement.
consecration by w~ter immersmn. The immersion was It is proper at all times for those who so desire to sur-
then conducted in the lake. It was a very impressive render themselves to the I mrd in fttll consecration to do
ceremon)- indeed, long to be remembered by those who his will, and to symbolize that consecration by water
immersion. This matter was discussed by Brother
viewed it. \Ve are glad to see some still coming to the
Rutherford in his discourse. We do not set i’orth here
Lord, making a full consecration and symbolizing that
the discourse ml baptism; for the same subject is given
consecration. Some have suggested that the opportunity
in a recent issue of T~: WATCIJ: ~[~OWER.
for entering the high calling is dosed an4 that no one From 2 to 3 o’clock in the afternoon was a praise and
can be encouraged to make a eonseeration. We think testimony service, and at 3 p. m. the congregation in
this is an entirely erroneous view. God is selecting the the main auditorium was adrcssed by Brother F. W.
bride, not we, and it does not behoove any of us to say Franz. We give below the salient points:
lnen or women,
that
A life-long Nazarite,
God’s man. His abstention
tian non-indulgence
with uncut locks, was marked tu~
from wine foreshadowed
in tile wine of worldly intoxicating
Chris-
subject to the following xow, self-imposed for a stated pleasures and doctrines. His cleanness from dead bodies
period of time: To abst-tiu from every product of the pictured Christian separateness from the orgmlis,u of thQ
grape; to let the hair grow long; and not to defile himself spiritually dead worldialoorness from every department
by touching a dead body, even th’tt of the nearest relative. of Satan’s enrthly empire, political, llnancial and religious.
There were l~aza,’ites of days and Nazarites for life. Hence I~evel’ttion pictures faithful Christians of out" day
Samson was one "from the womb to the day of his death." as not having the mark of the devil’s beastly arrangement
A Christian is not a Nazarite, but a :Nazarite’s consecr’ttion either in hand by active coJperation or in forehead by
even until death illustrates Christian consecration, in which mental sympathy and approval.
Jesus bids his disciples to be faitlfful unto death. While not marked with these stigmas, still the Christian
The consecration of the Christian finds its highest ex- is distinguished by his loyal testimony for Christ’s coming
pression in Jesus. At thirty years our Lord was ilnmersed kingdom. As it is written in Isaiah’s prophecy: "Behold,
in water to symbolize his consecration, his complete burial I and the children whom the Lord hath given me are for
o£ himself into God’s will. There the prophetic words signs and wonders in Israel." In Hebrews 2:13 St. Paul
applied, "Lo, I come (in the volume of the book it is applies this saying to Jesus and his followers. How fitting
written of me) to do thy will, O God." After Jesus’ baptism this application, especially today[ For the Lord Jesus Is
God’s italy spirit or power came upon him, illuminating now invisibly present on earth, establishing his kingdom.
the words of tile volume of the book and fully revealing All his wide-awake, active disciples are fulfilling his pre-
God’s will for him. As his knowledge thus enlarged, his diction: "This gospel of the kingdom shall be preached In
consecration enlarged.
In this course Jesus left his disciples "an example that all the world for a witness unto all nations, and then
shall the end come." Their witnessiug marks them out as
they should follow his steps." Like him they take up their
crosses daily and ’present their bodies a living sacrifice.’ "signs" pointing to our Lord’s kingdom. Their sufferings
In what service do they employ their bodies? In laying incidental to witnessing turn to them for a testimony and
down their lives for their brethren and in witnessing for make people "wonder." As in Jesus’ case faithfulness in
God’s truth. The same anointing to preach has come upon testifying will cost them their lives, but then only "he
them as came upon Jesus their Head. that endureth unto the end, the same shall be saved."
This was followed at 4 p. m. with a discourse on the same subject by Brother J. A. Bohnet, u ho said"
DISCOURSE BY BROTHERJ. A~ BOHNET
"The righleoze8 6,h~zlg flourish, lithe the pal~ tree: he shall grow like a cedar in Leb,J~o~." . . . "I saw the wicked ~
great power, a~d spreading himself like ~ green .bay trce."--Psalms 9P~: I°; 37: 85.
now
cellent grain, a costly material,
of Soloman’s ten,pie.
and furnished the wood
It admits of a splendid
has an aromatic odor that is offensive to insects;
polish,
is of
living who will never die must all consecrate to do the slow gro~ th and long lived. The tree trunks are stout and
will of God, most be overcomers of evil inclinations, for its roots go deep down into the rocks. It cannot be swayed
a thousand years under an iron rule, and then have lnerely by the winds nor uprooted therel)y. The branche.~ inter-
earthly possession. But we speak today particularly of twine with neighboring branches and afford good shelter
the saint whose consecration fulfillment nssttres a heavenly from wind and storm. There are now only a few of the
home and bliss throughout eternity. Lebanon trees left. These cedars grow mostly in clusters
The pahn tree is peculiar; grows high and straight and along the snow line.
heavenward; is alway~ evergreen and softest at the heart; Likewise the saints occupy a high place in God’s esti-
of all trees it has the fewest and smallest roots--least mation ; are esteemed as pure of heart, and of the kingdom
hold on earth--and casts the least shadow; hears early class, from whom eventually the holy river of life shall
and late, and the older the tree the sweeter is its fruit. It flow unto the sea, emblematic of the world of mankind.
will not be repressed or hindered in its onward, upward (Revelation 17:15) Red is emblematic of the blood
course; keeps itself free from the desert dust that accu- Christ; and we are designed to become meml)ers of the
mulates on all other trees, and resists the deadly "tree- antitypical Solomon temple, highly polished and of excel-
killer"--(a poison vine that kills all other varieties). lent grain, a costly material.
"The righteous shall flourish like the palm tree," i. e., Like Lebanon cedars we are offensive to the :~gencies of
we are a "peculiar people." (1 Peter 2:9) We have single- destruction (insecls), who like us not. Sturdy are we and
ness of purpose straight heavenward attd stand exalted in well rooted in the Rock Christ Jesus, not to be uprooted
the sight of the Lord. The evergreen palm illustrates our nor overthrown and cast to the earth to die. We delight
ever liveness and activity in God’s service, not like others, in intertwining with other brethren of like precious faith
seemingly dead or inert half the time. even as Imre we are now assembled in the grandest of all
The saint has a soft heart full of compassiou and sym- conventions. And as ot’ the Lebanon cedars, there are now
pathy, and like the pahn tree has small hold upon earth. only a few of the 144,000 saints left on the earth. These
All we get out of earth is used for our upward heavenly few are found mostly in clusters (classes) scattered here
attainment. We cast no shadow or rellection upon others and there, and all on the snow line of purity. These are
to retar(l or hinder their growtlt. The longer we are con- in another ligure "well springs" from which the river of
secrated the sweeter are our fruits of the spirit, and we life soon shall flow in blessings to all the nations of earth.
beat" fruit early and late--all the time. This is consecra- The wicked spreading himself is like a green bay tree,
tion. wlfich has a hard heart, casts a deep shadow, and has
~Vo are not repressed nor swerved from our onward many and far-reaching roots and wide-spreading branches.
course. We keep ourselves free from the filth of the It shuts out the sunshine and turns aside the rain. Nothing
earth, cleanliness being next to godlirmss. Purity is our can grow under a green bay tree. Its wood is tough, and
aim. We resist the poisonous influences which overcome its crushed leaves give forth an offensive odor which
others af less power to endure har(htess, and which tend instantly produces a sharp penetrating headache that lasts
to crush out life and vigor. No tree except the l)nhn tree several minutes.
lives after the tree-killer once envelops it. "The righteous The wicked people are disposed to hard-heartedness and
shall flourish like the palm tree: he shall grow like a a turning aside of the rain of truth and heavenly sunshine.
cedar in Lebanon." They hinder others from growing in grace. The wicked arc
The cedars of Lebanon grow on a mount--the Syrian a totLgh proposition, and when bruised by attyone become
ranac~6,500 feet above the sea level. Lebanon signifies very offensive. They reach out for more possession of
white. Mountain means kingdom. Syria signifies high earth, as illustrative of the green bay tree roots. And If
land. Kedesha means holy. rul)bed hard they give you a headache. And truly they
Lebnnon wood is red, fragrant and very durable, of ex- do spread themselves.
After tlle discourse on baptismby BrotherRutherford, scene was a most impressive one. The immersionwas in
and x~hile the discourses o{ Brothers Franz and Bohnet the care of Brot,her l:[arry Ward.The beach was ideal
were being given, and indeed, throughout the whole :[or the purpose, and the water and weather were thor-
afternoon, from 2:00 to 6:00 p. m., 217 sisters and oughly enjoy~tble to the participants as well as the
144 brothers symbolized their consecrations to the hundredsof bathers whoclustered aroundthe edges of
Lord by immersion in the waters of Lake Erie. The the roped-off enclosure.
At 11 o’clock the convcntion in the main auditorium discourse ~’as along the same lines of activity, and
was addressed by Brother W. F. Salter, the Society’s stirred the fricnds to a determination for greater zeal
representative at Toronto, Canada. Brother Salter’s in the Lord’s service. We give here a synopsis:
At 2 p. m. a praise and testimony meeting was held he offered a resolution, and read it from the platform
in the grove. All the brethren of the various meetings and moved its adoption. The great audience without
desiring to attend the public meeting addressed by a single exception arose to their feet amidst tremendous
Brother Rutherford, the meetings elsewhere were ad- applause, endorsing the resolution. The resolution is
journed and a]l the people went to the park. Brother set forth in full in preceding pages of this issue. It
Rutherford addressed the vast multitude at 3 o’clock, is the purpose of the Society to print this resolution
using the magnavox.It worked so perfectly that people in many languages and thoroughly to distribute it
half a mile awayreported that they could hear distinctly. amongst the peoples and nations of the corth.
The address was reccived with enthusiasm by the great At the conclusion of Brother Rutherford’s discourse
audience. A brother who checked the automobiles which the audience remained in their seats and listened for
came in reported that upwards of 5,000 came by auto- one hour to a discourse by Brother G. R. Pollock, which
mobile. There were a grc~t m~nv strangers present. they received with much enthusiasm. Weappend hereto
At the conclusion of Brother Rutherford’s address a brief synopsis of Brother Pollock’s discourse:
Up to Sunday night the weather, although warm, had use the outdoor auditorium. Hence on Monday the
been otherwise ideal for outdoor meetings. Whi]e some meetings were held indoors only. It had been arranged
suffered from the heat. there were no complaints. On for a large nunlber of ,~utbmobiles to go out on Monday
Sunday night there was a sudden change in the tern- to canvass various eotmties nearby.: })at due to the
perature, and a copious rainfall made it impossible to inclement weather this was deferred mltil Tuesday.
SERVICE DAY, SEPTEMBER11
Arrangements were made for each automobile to carry
M ONDAY,September 11, was "Service Day."
Some time prior to the convention, arrange-
ments had bcem worked out in detail under
five or more passengers with a good supply of books.
For several days in advance the friends were preparing
the supervismn of Brother Richard Johnson of Colum- for this work; but it was deferred on accotmt of rain.
bus, Ohio, and under the advice and direction of the In the auditorimn a testimony meeting was held from
office at Brooklyn, for field service. %rolunteers were 9 to 11 o’clock. At the latter hour the convention was
called for ; and several hundred automobiles responded. addressed by Brother A. M. Graham.
DISCOURSE BY BROTHER A. M. GRAHAM
J’IIe that believeth o~ me, the works that I do shall he do also; and greotcr works ~l~an these shall he do, 7Jecau.~o I
°.
go to my I,’ather."---dohn 1.~ : 1
At 2 p. m. another praise and testimony meeting was the Lord has provided the means with which to do this
participated in by a large mldience; and at 3 o’clock, great work.
according to program, Brother Rutherford addressed the At the conclusion of Brother Rutherford’s address
convention on "Service," his text being taken from practically every hand was raised, expressing a desire
Revelation 3:14 "These things saith the Amen, the to be actively engaged in the service, and manywho had
faithful and tam witness." not heretofore engaged in active service expressed a de-
In closing, the speaker pointed out that the prophet termination to do so insofar as the Lord opens the way.
Ezekid clearly indicates that there is a work for those The program announced that Brother Thornton would
membersof the body remaining after the taking away of speak on the subject of the day at 4 o’clock in the after-
Brother Russell, and that this commissionis laid upon noon ; but by unanimous vote the great congregation
them to declare the day of God’s vengeance, to do a adjourned, and came back at 7 o’clock to li.~teu to
slaying work with the message of the truth; and that Brother Thornton’s discourse.
DISCOURSE BY BROTHER T. H. THORNTON
down; Midianite
The
two-thirds of the entire number. Next the eaters
out, too, those who thougl~t that they had receive~i all the
food there was and that the work was completed.
fell
The
means brawling, contentious. Gideon was to destroy or Lord could use neither chl~s in this part of the service;
overthrow those brawling, contentious ones.--Judges 6, 7. he couhl not -tff~ord to give the victory to any army of that
After God had assured him of victory, Gideon called the kim_l. Only one chtss could he use---those pictured by the
armies of Israel together. Four tribes were calico] from 300 equippc~.l with pitchers, torches, and trulnpets.
among the twelve, in all 32,000. Time followed the fleece The antitypical Midianites lie asleep in the valley (en-
test, with the assurance of victory from the Lord, who gaged in politics); they have their watchmen (spies), lest
inspected the army thus gathered and pronounced it too they should be taken unawares. Soon they will be roused
large, although from the world’s standpoint it was too from their slumbers by the Seventh Trumpet, the kingdom
snmll--32,000 against 135,000. More than two-thirds proved message. Looking around in their confusion, they will see
to be cowards. Again the Lord thinned out the ranks, this the light of God’s truth shining from throe sides, and will
time leaving only 300 men to proceed against 135,000. These hear the shout of the Lord’s army. Then in their con-
800 were divided into three companies; and taking their fusion they will kill (reveal the truth on) each other (the
places and carrying out their instructions, they were vic- two factions of Midianites). When their followers learn
tors in the light. the true state of affairs, they will withdraw their support;
In autitype the Lord called his army during the harvest and thus the two factious will have killed each other.
of [his age, Gideon being a type of our Lord Jesus, who After the victory has thus been won, the cowards and
spoke through his voice, or representative, Pastor Russell. the caters will be recalled, to pursue the retreating army.
As foreshadowed in the names of the tribes called by Then the great company (Ephraim) will be called, and
Gideon, all the called ones must have been members o£ will take before the retreating Midianites the "waters"--
the church of the first-born (]:lebrews 12:23), must have message of truth. They will also behead the two antlo
possessed one or more of the characleristics suggested by typical princes, the two false systems--the "beast" and
the mm~es of the tribes called into the typical army. the "false prophet." Then the victory will be won.
When the army was gathered and all the tests were Dear Brethren, to which class do you and I belong?
made, the Lord inspected his forces. First the cowards Our Lord knows; and doubtless we shall soon find out, by
fell out; and according to the picture these were about the attitude we assume toward the work now being done.
"To hi~ t.hat overcon~etk ~v~ll I grant to sit w~th me on my throne, even as I overcame and am set down with my
Father in his th.rone."--I~evelatio~ 8:21.
tween him.-.elf and the great adversary. He tells us that erations." Though this is a "mystery," still we read that
if we overcome--are victorious--in a like manner, we sh’tll the secret of the Lord is with those who reverence him.
be ex-qlted with him. In the finality much depends on When we consider what superlative exaltation is pur-
individual ..ffort, COOl)crating with Jesus’ assisting power. posed for the church should we be surprised to find that
Victory i~ certain for the church as a whole. Through- the standard of qualification is very high, the requirement
out the age.s Jehow~h’s steppings have been stately and great? We should be surprised were it otherwise. In the
orderly. Time has always been an element in his plans, moulding and developing process throl~gh which this class
and In thfAr accompllsllment there has been no occasion must pass, we should expect that the tests applied would
344
be severe, the examhmtion most searching. The purpose that ruleth his own spirit is far greater. And none will
of our being in the school of Christ is to receive proper be crowned with the victor’s laurels who is not an over-
instructions and the necessary ex’perienees to qualify us comer in finis respect.
for exaltation. Through these our characters must be de- Besides this the candidate must qualify for a priest, a
veloped along the lines of justice and crystallized in love, teacher, instructor, comforter. How shall we know to in-
otherwise we shall not be counted as victors through Christ. struct and comfort others unless we have bern prepared
The Scriptures show that tim ollice which the church has for such service? By instructions and through experiences
been called to assume after their victory is of a three-fold we must develop fully the graces of mercy, patience, for-
character and the candidate must qualify in all branches. bearance, kindness, love. We should not mistake either
This office is that of kings, priests, and judges. Specific- our calling or the conditions thereof. We must become
ally a king Is a ruler, Invested with much authority. While Godlike in character--breathing epistles of Christ.
he is supposed to rule over the people for their common Perhaps the most exacting qualification for the exalted
good, yet this power is generally exercised in a selfish position to which the church has been called is that of
and "mtocratic manner. Jehovah is the King of the uni- judges. To be a judge one should have a keen sense of
verse, and rules over all for the good of all. His Sou is justice, be of a judicial turn of mind, leading to great
to be the King of earth, to rule in Jehovah’s name. His carefulness in forming conclusions. He must also have a
power will be exercised justly, tempered with mercy. There clear knowledge of all tim facts bearing upon the case
are to be associates with him upou his throne who must
under consideration, else he could not determine responsi-
be like him in character. These must be qualified through bility, deal with equity. It is Jeltovah’s justice that gives
previous experience in ruling, so are given just one in- us such confidence in his decisions. He purposes to Judge
dividual to practise upon--and this one ~s himself. Ac-
the world in the new ~ge through Christ and his associ-
cording to his success or failure will he be ju([ged as
ates. These must be qualified by special training and in-
fit or unfit for such omce, as victor through Christ. Hence
structions, in order tlmt they might learn how to weigh
we read: "He that ruleth his spirit is greater than he
that taketh a city." In man’s sight taking a city might be carefully all evidence, discern wlth precision the facts, and
regarded as a mighty deed, but in God’s estimation he then render decision without prejudice.
At 2 o’clock in the afternoonthere wasa praise and ing was conductedby Brother Rutherford. Weappend
testimonymeeting.From2: 30 until 4 a questionmeet- hereto a partial report of the questionsandanswera:
QUESTION MEETING
Quesl~on: Are the dates 1874 and 1925 beginnings of the united method of acting In carrying out the Lord’s purposetf
two times of restitution? of holdiug property and complying with the laws of the
Answer: Yes; that may be regarded as a proper thought land. :In conducting tlle affairs of the Bible Students. It
---one the beginning of rcstorati.on of rim great lruti~s long became necessary to form a corporate organization; and
hid from observation; the other the beginning of the anti- this was done. This is not a sect in the sense tlmt that
typical jubilee for the restoration of that which man lost, term is used, but It ~eans merely that the Bible Students
na,nely, life, liberty and imppiuess. Jesus’ disciples said are endeavoring to carry out God’s purposes and doing it
as the Lord does everything, in an orderly manner.
to him: "Why say the scril~es that Elias must first come?
And .lesus answered and said Lint0 them, Eli-is [Elijah] QuestioTt: Is it correct to refer to brelhren in Christ as
"Brother Doctor So-and-so?" Do you commend tile use of
truly shall lir~t come, and restore all things." (Matthew
17:10,11) As we have hereiofore observed, Elijah was the word "p’tstor"?
Answer: The apostle Paul states that because "he that
type of the churcll doing u work under its Head, Christ
sanetifieth and tbey who are sanclified are all of one,"
Jesus. John tile B-iptist was a continuation of that type.
therefore Jesus is not ashamed to call them brethren. There
In Jesus’ time John lind come and tile i’hariseeS knew him
couhl be no higher term applied to Christians than that of
not. Elijah pictured the work of tim church under the
brotkcr. Surely there could be no more appropriate one.
supervision of the Head, the Lord .Tesus Christ, from the
time of his presence until the end of the Elijah work. This Because u person in a congregation happens to be a doctor
began in the year 1S74; and during the years following, the or lmld some otlmr title from a worldly standpoint is no
reason why he should be addressed in the class "is such. In
church, under tile Lord’s leadership, acting p.~rtieularly
fact, it hardly seems proper. The better way to do would
through his chosen servant Brother Russell, and tl~ose wllo
be to use the Scriptural term and Sl)cak of him as brother.
were in full harmony with him, proclaimed the message of
truth to those who were hungering and thirsting for truth. Let the world have all the titles, but let us use the term
that the Lord approves.
Prior to that time in the church some of the great funda-
mental truths had been so obscured that they had been As to the use of the term "pastor," flint properly applied
to Brother :Russell because be occupied the office of special
lost sight of; but during the period from 1874, particularly
serwmt of tile Lord to the church. But it hardly seems
to 1916, all the great ffindamental truths were brought proper to apply tlmt term to other brethren, e~pecially in
clearly to light and particularly made clear in the STUmES a general way ; for it tends to get hack into the rut followed
IN T]-[E SCB.I]’TURES "Hid THE ~VATcI:I TOWER. That was the
by Babylon and to create a clergy class as distinguished
fulfillment of the words of Jesus: "Elijah truly sh-fll first
from the laity. My opinion is that it is advis’lble not to
come and restore all things." It was a restoration of all
use the term as applied to any one in the churel~ now on
the great fund,mmntal truths. We understand that the
this side of the vail.
Jubilee type began to count In 1575 B.C. ; and the 3,500-year
period embracing tim type nmst end in 1925, and that there Question: :Is it wise for elders to arr:mge a circuit so as
to en.Lble all elders of a cluss having speaking ability to
should begin the operation of the antitype. :It follows, serve all the classes and the public in such a circuit?
then, that the year 1925 will mark the beginning of the res-
Ans.wer: Erother Russell ahvays advised against such a
toration of all tlfings lost by Adam’s disobedience.
"circuit" urr’mgement as implied by tile question, and his
Questim~: Will consecration be symbolized by water im- reasoning seemed to be sound. We believe that everything
mersion after the kingdom is set up? should be done in an orderly way. We believe tlmt the
Answer: It seems entirely rc~asonable to conclude that Lord is present, and that he is conducting the harvest. We
water immersion may be practised far into the Millennial believe that he appoiuted ]:~rother Ru.~sell as tile special
age. Water immersion symbolizes n full surrender of one- servant to the church of Laodicea. We believe that Brother
self unto the Lord, thereby agreeing to be obedient to the :Russell, acting under the supervision of tlle Lord, organized
Lord. The whole world of mankind must make this sur. the Watetl Tower Bible & Tract Society to carcy on in aa
render or consecration before entering upon tile highway orderly manner tbe work which he began; and under that
of holiness looking to restoration. :It would seem entirely arrangement Pilgrim brettlren are sent about to serve the
reasonable, then, that some outward symbol should be given classes. If the elders of a class in one community form a
before witnesses that a person had taken the step of circuit to send speakers to other neighboring classes, then
consecration unto the Lord, tlle Christ, to do his holy will; there would be no reason why there should pot be such
and there could be no more beautiful symbol than water circuits all over the land, and the reason for the Society
immersion. ]Hence it is reasonable to conclude that it may exercising any authority to send out speakers would be
be practised for some time. absent. It is easy 1o see that soon there would be many
Question: As a Bible Student am I a member of an circuits, which would have a tendency to create rivalry and
organization? If so, in what sense? jealousy. Elders are elected for the purpose of serving the
Answer: An organization is an association of persons class of which they are members at their place of residence ;
for the purpose of carrying out a formed design. :It is aa and when a class has no elders but desires service it would
arrangement for carrytng out a systematic course of action. seem both proper and In order to make such request of the
The apostles organizc~l the early church by causing the Society.
election of elders and deacons. Every ecclesia is an organ- Suppose a class has a number of elders able and willing
Ization. It lms order in its formation and in the carrying to speak, and desires to serve neighboring classes. It would
out of its work. The Bible Students at large throughout seem enti,’ely proper that a list of such elders be filed with
the world have an arrangement for the proclamation of the the Society at Brooklyn, together with a list of classes
tmltb, which arrangement ts orderly. Everything with that they might serve; and the Society could select from
,Jehovah is orderly. Therefore it is proper for Bible Students this list speakers to serve such classes from time to time.
to be orderly. Every one, then, that is associated with that Such a course would avoid confusion. If a Pilgrim were
work is in that sense a member of that organization; not assigned to a class on a certain day and a "circuit’*
that their names are enrolled and that they must comply committee had assigned another speaker for the same da$
with a certain ritual, but they recognize a harmonious and at the same place, there would be confusion.
1, lo22 WATCH TOWER
In some places classes desiring speaking service invite arrangement made by the Corinth Class, for instance, to
elders of another class to come and serve them. There seems assign speakers to other clas.ses round about.
to be nothing improper about this whatsoever, but it is Any class inviting aa individual brother to come and serve
entirely proper. The arrangement then is between the class them on a special occasion or other occasion would he a
served and the individual brother. Objection would be prop- matter between tile class and the brother and entirely
erly raised where elders form themseh,es into a committee proper. We suggest, however, that elders who go out from
and act as such to assign sl)eakers to various nearby classes. one class to render service to the weaker classes would do
In the event of a world-wide witness tile situation is much better by org’mizing a Berean study and aiding some
somewhat different. !’o illustrate: Suppose Corinth has brother in that class to qualify himself to lead tile study,
twenty elders ahle to speak and fifteen other classes in the
vicinity lmve no elders bl, t wisl, a l)ublic wilness. Corinth and thus developing into a more able servant of the Lord.
might advise the other classes that she has surplus speakers It has been found also that where a class has speaking
and wonld be glad to serve ou this occasion, and any class every Sunday. tlmt class does not make the progress that
desiring a speaker would have the privilege of requesting it wouhl make if Berean studies were had more often and
a speaker. Tile objection arises where there is a regular speaking less often.
conflict has been on between the two ctmtendiug forces-- vessels, the spirit of truth in their hearts, enabling them
right and wrong, truth and error, light to endure and continue their study of the Word of God.
and darkness;
and only one of the contestants can come forth victorious.The fullilllnent of this parable started with the Miller
iNeal’ly nineteen ]lundred years -tgo, Sahtn’s doom ~qs movenmnt in :1844, in which year the return of the Lord
sealed x~llen C.hrist conquered death hnd brought life :lml was expected by many earnest children of God. While
immortality to light through the gospel. Now tile decisive some of these seemed to lose courage when tile Bridegroom
battle is on, and the victory is certain; tarried,
for it is only a others studied the Word with increasing diligence,
matter of a few short years until S:ttan will be bound. and in due time tile Lord actually returned and was dis-
Beholding in the garden of Eden the perfect pair with pro- cerned with the eyes of faith by the wlse virgins.
creative powers, Satan set about to transfer their qf[eetions At tim same time it was revealed to those faithful ones
from their Creator to himself, that the object of our Lord’s return was not the burning
that he. too, might have
a kingdom cOral)used of subjects obedient to his sovereign of the world but the restitution of all things. By and by
will He ~pparently h.ul succeeded thus far ill his plot the whole plan of God was unfolded in the various volumes
but realized that God had determined to bruise Iris head; of STUmES IN THE SCI~IPTURES, written by the faithful
therefore he planned to destroy all whom God favored. servant, of whom the Lord made special use.
Althongh Satan has succeeded in wrecking tile hnnlan On the other side of the vail those who have been fool-
race, mentally, morally, and physically, through his many
ish virgins in this life will compose the great company,
ehannelu of deception, both religious and social; while the ~’ise virgins of these days will become the little
yet he
fears the hrilliani- flock reigning
li:~ht of pre~ent truth which is exposil~g with Christ for a thousand years. Do not
these deceptions from every standpoint and is breaking to believe that every Bible Student is of necessity a wise
pieces every system of error trod injuslice. virgin. The question is whether you have kept your sym-
The question of our Lord’s return is of p-tramount ill- bolic clothes unbesmlrched. A root of bitterness against
terest to the Christian. In this parable tile Lord is set-
your brother will constitute a spot on your clothes. Let
ring forth the condition among his followers at his return. us beware lest by negligence we lose our crown.
DISCOURSE BY BROTHER V. C, RICE
mA new commandment I give unto you, That ye love one another; as I have loved yau~
that ye also love one another."---John 13: 3~
and election sure; for if we do, we shall be with him in Moreover, we should keep ourselves in tile love of God.
the ldngdom.--3ohn 14:21-23 ; 15 : 9-13. (Jude 2:1) If we do tills, our Lord will keel) us from
How can we know (not guess) that we are in tile truth? failing and will present us ~’aultless before the presence of
"’~Ve know that we have passed from death unto life, be- his glory with exee~ding joy. and we shall be overeomers,
cause we love the b,’cthren." (1 Joi,n 3: :14) OTte of the shall receive the crown of life.
final tests upou the church will be love for the brethren; In the Manna Text comment for March 16 our dear
and no one ever went out of the truth who truly loved Brother l[ussell says: "One of the fia’tl tests wilt be love
for the brethren." But some one will say: ’Is not the
the brethren. ’Vo do so would be impossible. The very
final test love for our enemies?’ No, for when your brethren
reason why many have gone out from us is that they become your enemies, then love the, n with a pity love, and
did not love the brethren fervently.--1 3ohn 4: 8. be willing to help them to see the error of their ways and
HOWdo we know that God Is love? Because he made to come back into harmony with the Lord.
V ICTORYimplies conflict.
triumph. The Christian’s
Victory implies more, 1. e.,
victory implies still
i. e., reward. What a wonder~ul conquest is ours, in
more,
told: "~Nothi,lg shall pluck them out of my hand." "Who
shall separate us from the love of God?" ~one. Can Satan
or tile wo,’ld? No; nothing except OUl’seives. We see then
that if we light tlle good fight to the finish we are botmd that the battle is ~itil ~clf and the wctory is there. If
to be victorious and beat" away the unfading crown. we do not succeed there, we shall soon have Satan and
What is t.he good light we are engaged in? It is the the world in the battle.
conflict with self, self-will, that we m~Ly do God’s will. Victory depends on co,~queri,~g sin nnd its te,nptations
]~Iow different is this conflict from all others which are in their incipiency. Keep on and persevere in spite of our
fights against the other fellow! He tllat conquers self is failures to bring perfect victory. St,’c:ngth comes to the
the greatest victor. But are there ,~ot other foes, the world Christian in sneh victories by pcvse~erix~g in well doing--
and Satan? Yes, but if we conquer self, these others are "if we faint not," the Apostle adds. Victories in little
disarmed, as they operate tl~ronglt our fallcd~ flesh. It is matters lend to victories in greater conflicts.
only as these Can obtain self-will as their ally that they Victory bri,~gs peace, joy, confidezlce, inspires hope and,
can have any power over us. Therefore, we are ad,nonished sweetest o~ all, God’s approval, now a,nl hereafter. Victory
to "keep our hearts with all diligence," "love not the world likewise dispels fear, condem,mtion, doubts, etc. Victory
neither tile things that are in the world," "set your affec- means service in "presenting our bodies living sacrifices,
tions on things above," "draw nigh uuto God and he will holy and acceptable to God, which is our reasonable ser-
draw nigh unto you." If our strivings are along these vice." Fim’tl victory brings the great Christ-like clmracter,
lines and to this end, we are assured victory, as we are tile greatest thing to be desired.
Tuesday evening at 7:30 o’clock the convention as- for the testimony meeting. After a short devotional
uembled to hear the report of the service workers and service the report was madeby Brother J ohuson:
machines and 2,000 workers for the five counties adjoining One lady said: "~ ha~e he’trd so many bad reports about
Cedar Point, at a radius of about forty-five miles. Territory the Bible Students that I will now buy the books and see for
was so arranged that everyone in the rural routes and the myself."
city would be called upon, so that not one square mile One lady gave us a basket of grapes and a basket of
would be left uneanvassed. cookies for the books, as she had no money.
DETAILED REPORT Another lady had bought the "Harp," and as we were
Nt,,nber of automobiles in the field returning came out to the road to secure another.
on "Service Day". .................................... 263 Found a minister reading "those red books" and also
~umber of volunteers for service ............... 2,000 preaching what he had learned.
Numberactually in the field at work ........... 1,644 Lady disgusted with preachers always comes from church
Number unable to go for lack of hungry. Does not want funeral preached by preachers.
transportation
...................................................... 176 Will now attend the class in Sandusky, Ohio.
(Others went to near-by towns by trolley cars.) Found many people who had heard Brother Rutherford
Tottll number of books taken into the on Sunday, and who were glad to receive the hooks. 0ue
field bythe workers........................................ 10,872 slster, while canvassing in the rural ronte, asked a gentle-
In addition to tills, orders were taken to man: "Have you read the book ’Millions Now Living Will
be delivered in Sandusky for 184 Never Die? .... I am reading it at the present time," he re-
plied, "I am now over to page 90. Sunday morning I started
Total 11,056 to church; but before going in a thought struck me and I
$48
l, 1922
NOVEMBER 349
WATCH TOWER
said to myself: Relieve I’ll go over to Cedar Point and and those who have not enough money to buy the books.
see what’s going on. I attended two meetings in the What the Convention meant to one sister: TMs sister
morning, then heard Judge Rutherford in the afternoon. came from Newark, Ohio. She did not have the means
I bought the ’Millions’ book and sat up until midnight to pay her expenses all through the Convention, but she
reading it." The sister then exl)lained many scriptures had strong faith, so she asked if there might be some
to him; and after each explanation he would say: "Why service she could do. At the time she asked, all of the
how dumb I lmve been ! Really I am just now beginning to service was taken; but after a re-scannlng of the whole
know something." As the sister was about to leave he told place a vacancy at the electric iron in the laundry rooms
her he was going to take the book and talk it over with hls was found. We remember that it was very hot then, too.
preacher. Tim sister told hin~ not to do that, at wtHch he She immediately accepted it, no doubt cast down but not
replied: "Oh yes, I think I’ve heard him preach on ’Millions discouraged, and at the same time she began to let her light
now living will never die’ before." shine. In the room with her were the matron and a young
The last car to leave for service worked the Cedar Point Catholic girl, neither one being acquainted with the truth.
road. returning at 10 a.m., having sold 24 books. Eight The matron would not listen, as the dear sister told of the
wor]~ers were in tile ear; each sold 1 combination. 22he kingdom blessings; but tbe girl heard every word. The
number of the auto was ]44,00,9. sister patiently and lovingly talked on; and the girl finally
The Army and Navy were represented In the drive In told her story of how she was saving her money and send-
1914 Ford. Sold 23 books. At this point we listened to a ing it home soon to be educated as a nun. But she said:
testimony frolu Gen. I:[all. "You are a wonderful woman; your message sounds good
Wife away, talked to hushand, would like to buy the to me. I’ll take the little book [Millions], if you will give
books, but did not dare. Suggestedhe get the hooks and it to me, and I’ll read it. Also I want to tell you that 1
hide them in the barn. He bought the books. have given up my plans of becoming a nun, and I really
Canvassed:.t man s,ttingon ct]rl);when he learnedthat believe I can be one of those millions now living who will
Judge Rutherfordwas here, he jumped up and started to never die." We are glad to say, too, that the matron was
see him at once to inquireabout some scripturesthat had also listening to the sister before the Convention was over.
beent,’oubling him. We were all delegates to the Cedar Point Convention.
VCe found those that mourn, those that have a hearing You are the delegate to return home and witness the
ear, those who are not able to come out to the meetings, message of the kingdom in your territory.
The testimonies that followed this report were par- mansalvation; and the Hebrewunconsciously became
ticularly along the lines of the experiences of the day. muchinterested. Afterwardsanother automobilereturh-
Every one who attended rejoiced greatly and counted it ing from its route stopped at the same corner, and the
one of the most wonderful testimony meetings ever held. Hebrewbought a complete set of the books with the
One of the most amusing and interesting testimonies understanding tha~ the commission should go to the
was of a Brother whohad tried to ialtcrest a Hebrew. Brother who had first canvassed him. The Brother
The Hebrew excused himself on the ground that he naively stated in his testimony that this was the first
could not read English. Not having anything else to do time he had ever helped a Jew to learn the English
u~til his automobile came to pick him up, the Brother language in two hours, although his regular colporteur
continued talking about God’s wonderful plan for hu- territory is in a Hebrewsection of Greater NewYork.
"Trust in the Lord with all tM~z~ heart, ¢nd lean not to thine own ~tnderstanding." "Cast not away your confidence,
which hath great recompense of reward."--I’roverbs 8:5; Hebrews 10:85.
and commnnion of
The great Jehovah,havingtlm best interestsof his crea-
tures:~t heart,desiresthat all shouldhave confidence
trustin him.
and
In these trying days of distress of nations, "men’s hearts 50:1,2), says: "The mighty God, even Jehovah, speaketh
failing them for fear and for looking after the things [through the glorified church, the Christ, Head and body]
coming upon the earth," how comforting to know that and calleth the earth tall mankind] from the rising of
Christ Jesus has taken his great power and reigns. Satan, the sun [the Sun of righteousness, with healing In his
the wicked invisible ruler of this world, shall be bound, wings--Malachi 4: 2] unto the going down therof."
that he may deceive the nations no more. (2 Corinthians In other words: From the beginning of Christ’s one-
4:4) Sickness, sorrow, pain, and death shall flee away.-- thousand-year reign Jehovah, through his Anointed, will
Revelation 21 : 1-6. be calling all men to repentance, to righteousness, and
Associated with Jesus In reigning power will he his eternal life.
bride, the faithful church, the overcoming little flock to Verse 2: "Out of Zion, the perfection of beauty [the
whomit is the Father’s good pleasure to give the kingdom. true church exalted and glorified], God shineth forth."
(Luke 12:32) All earth’s troubles will vanish under tills That is, God’s glorious character and plan will be made
righteous rule. known to all the world. Then every knee shall bow to
in view of the nearness of the kingdom blessings, it Is J’ehovah’s will (Isaiah 45:23), and all who become obedi-
reasonable to believe that millions now on earth will never ent, learning to trust and confide In God, shall be blest
die. Jesus died not for the church only, but for the whole with everlasting life. The willfully disobedient shall b~
world. (1 John 2:2) This assures us of God’s purpose destroyed with Satan at the end of Christ’s reign.--Acts
give life to all the obedient--perfect earthly life under 3 : 21.-25 ; Hebrews2 : 14.
conditions and surroundings favorable to righteousness. The Prophet declares (Isaiah 65: 21, 22; 33:24) that
Jesus said: "Marvel not.., for the hour is coming then "they shall build houses and inhabit them, and they
¯ . . in the which all tlmt are in the graves shall hear his shall plant vineyards and eat the fruit of them. They
voice, and shall come forth." "Whatsoever liveth and be- shall not build and another inhabit, they shall not plant
lieveth in me shall never die. Bellevest thou this?"-- and another eat .... The Inhabitant [of the land] shall
John 5:28, 29; 11:2(~. not say, I am sick; the people that dwell therein shall be
The prophet David, writing of that blessed time (Psalm forgiven their iniquity."
This was followed by a b~ief discourse by Brother Hemeryon the subject of the day, which we here insert:
dence, and good reasons for our trust. We do not trust in perfect peace.
circumstances, for there is no personality there, but we We are doubly assured on this; for here is a new name
trust persons. We do, however, properly say that we have revealed for Jehovah. He is the Rock of Ages. Whenever
confidence in persons because we know the true basis of God made a change in his dealings with his people, he
character. Having confidence we trust them with our always gave with the change a new name for himself,
goods or with our persons. something which would emible his people to live according
Towards God we have both trust and confidence. He to the name or covenaut given: as when God gave Abra-
has proved himself to us so often, and we have proved ham his covenant lie gave himself the speci’tl name El
him so frequently, that we have confidence In all hls ar- Shaddai. When he made the arrangement with Israel which
rangements, and we trust all we have to so gracious a God. euhuinated "it Sin.d, lie gave them his name Jehovah
There has been no more trying time in the history of When the kingdmn of Israel was to be established, he
the church than this present time, and therefore never a gave the name Jeimvah Sabaoth, or Jehovah of hosts~
time more necessary that God’s people should have their he would be the army in his people’s battle. When Jesus
confidence firmly established, and never a time when they came with the covenant of grace and sonship, he revealed
so much needed a leader in whom they can trust. We can God as "Our Father"; and that was the last revelation
thank God that we have in him a true basis for our hope, of the name of God to any special circumstance.
and a sure guide in our present Lord. We might say of Now the time has come when this word of Isaiah be-
the church that "days are dark, and Its friends are few." comes meat in season. God now reveals himself amidst
But she is not in darkness, and she cares but little for earth- the wreck o£ worlds and the dissolution of the present
ly friends, because she has a sure hope, and is confident In order as the Rock of Ages ; not as we ,have it In our hymns,
her guide. "Rock of Ages, cleft for me," but a solid rock which stands
The faithful of the chm’ch are In a unique position. firm and cannot be moved. (Isaiah 26:4, margin) Here Is
Every circumstance of our activity leads us further away a place of refuge for God’s people. And those who are hla
from organized religion and from the arrangements of are found on the Rock of Ages, contident that it will never
this world, and sets us apart, not only as individuals who move from under their feet, and with God’s assurance that
have a heavenly hope, hut as a community, from every they shall have no fear of being swept from it.
other phase of Christianity. Even many who have walked What special ground for confidence does the church need
and worked with us are now leaving us, refusing longer to at this time? God’s chihlren have always known hlm un-
continue in the work. blow comes our text with its com- changeable in his grace, and his promises were ever sure.
forting exhortation. If it is seen that it is meant for our In these days of lack of faith, the church needed to know
day, it comes to us as a direct word from God. We are the divine plan in order to be established. But now that
conlident that it is so meant; for the setting of the text it is nearing the end of its way, there Is even more than
shows this. This is the time when the fenced city (which this needed: it must know that it is at one with God in hia
is Isaiah’s way of describing the great establishment of work, and that he is particularly its caretaker. To this
Christendom) is beIng broken down, Is being made a ruin. end and that there may be this confidence God hti~ ~-
NOWBMBER
1, 1922
~ WATCH TOWER
vealed himself both in his plan and In his work. We have Jehovah; there must be no doubt. We must be as definite
ellscerned him in the storms of heaven, in tile rumbhngs in our consecration and trust as he is certain in his prom-
of earth, and, too, in the happiness which his children at ises. All such will continue to realize the peace of God
this time realize in their service for him. As trials come which passeth understanding, though the waves roar and
the assurance of faith and joy of service incre’tse. But In the thunders crash, and though the kingdoms are swept
I~rder to get this confidence the mind must be stayed upon away into the seas of anarchy.
Convention closed Wednesday morning with aa address by Brother Rutherford, who said:
The convention then by unanimous vote agreed that s]ogan : "Advertise the King and the Kingdom:"
it wmfld omit handshaking at the love feast and adopt As a sample of the expressions of appreciation hy the
the method of giving the Chmltauqua salute while Smldusky eltizens, we append hereto a letter from the
hymns were being sung. Then came the dosing moment Editor of the Sandusky Register.
of the convention, a scene indescribable in bureau words. Simdusky, Ohio, September 16, 1922
~Led by the orchestra, the great muttitudc stood m~d
My den)" amlge ~utherford:
feelingly and with joyful hearts engaged in singing
I am sorry that I did not have the opl)ortunity, because
some of the precious h)qnns. The last of these was, of l)u,,in(:’,s pressu)’e qnd certain fqmily nmttera that pre-
"God be with you till we meeL again"; and ever and vc’:)te(I. ¢)f Iln2Cllllg yell while yon Welt,. HL the (Je(lar Point
anon they greeted each other throughout the great hall Convenlion, :rod t<) stly to you per.~)nqlly what I want you
with the Chautauqua salute. Every heart was filled to k))ow and which follows:
with love for the Lord and the brethren; and every It falls to our lot e’~eh summerto handle the news end
of manyconventions of variou.~ kinds. Su)ne of these con-
mind, deeply centered upon his cause, wiflldrew from ventions we hqve dire(’t 13ubine.~s 1-eh~ti()t~s with and our
the hall filled with th:.. determination to stand firmly experiences with them ),ave been wi,le n,nl varied. Never,
with the Lord aaul with his brethren until the victory however, since I lmve been eonneeted w~th the paper, and
is won. And as they wen~, throughout the audience that is for thirteen y(’:ll’S, have we h:ld lhe pleasant exo
could be heard the expression, "Cod bless you." perienee we Im(I with (he I. 13. S. A. I take this oppor-
tn,nty to relleet not only wlmt I have heard from many
Shortly speeial trains were made up, and these began hundred ~an(hlM-:iilns hut wh.tt we fOll)l(l tO be a personal
to be filled with parties returning to their homes. Many experience---that tim thousands of delegates who attended
of the citizens came out to the dock and to the stations tile I. B. S. A. meeting here creqted more favo)"fl,le com-
to pay their respects to the departing Bible Students. ment and a more fav()ral.)le impressic)n o)1 lhe pal)lie
any (,ther ol’ga~/iz:ttion which htls ever met locally.
~Iany were the expressions of kindness and apprecia- I came in direct contact, of course, with your hit’. G. O.
Lion on the part of the citizens toward the Bible Stu- Smith in connection with the printing of (he thousands of
dents. It was a precious thing to lnmw that the convert- papers you procured from us and also with some of the
Lion had had a good mid x~holesome mlIuelme on the news pul)licity. Several of our representatives came in
direct contact with other rcpreselffatives of yottr organi-
comnmnity. These people could see flint the taffy zation and were all of like mind.
consecrated had walked with Jesus and learned of him. Welike to do l)usiness with you, It was a pleasure to
The "Bethel Special," with 550 or more aboard, left give you service and when The 1register can be of any
the dock and slowly journeyed through the city; and use to yon I want you to feel very free to call upon us.
Its it went~ many of the citizens standing along the way Sincerely yours, E.H. MacK.
Lad from the windows of their houses waved their hand- We believe that much good was done by this conven-
kerchiefs in a kind and loving good-bye. tion, not only to the brethren and to file community
Thus ended the most blessed convention of God’s where it was held, but that its influmme will extend to
people on earth; and they departed for their respective all paffs of the earth. Happy are we ~o continue saying:
places of temporary abode, there to again take up the "The kingdom of heaven is at hand.:’
Mine eyes can see the glory of the presence The seventh trump Is sounding, and our King
of the Lord; lmows no defeat;
He is trampling out the winepress where his lie’s sifting out the hearts of menbefore his
gn’apes of wrath are stored. judgment seat.
I see the llaming tempest of his swift descendlng Oh, be swift, mysoul, to welcomehim, be Jubilant,
sword: myfeet !
Our King IS marching on. Our King Is marching on,
-.(,.-::..
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS SACRED MISSION
T HIS Journal ts one of the prime factors
I)resenled in all parts of tile civilized
or instruments in the system of Bible instruction,
world by tile WATCl~TO~Ea BIBLE & TRACTSOCIETY, chartered
or "Seminary Extension", now b~n~
A,D. 1884, "For the Pro-
motion of Christian Knowledge". It not only serves as a class room where Bible students may meet in the study of the divine Word but
also as a channel of cmnmumcatlml through which they may be reached with announcements of the Society’s conventions and of the
coming of its Uaveling representatives, styled "Pilgrims", and refreshed with reports of its conventions.
Our "Bereall Lessons" are topical rehearsals or reviews of our Society’s published STUDIES most entertainingly arranged, and very
hell)fill 1o all ~llO would merit the only honorary degree which the Society accords, viz., Verbi Dei MOlister (V. D. M.), which translated
into Engli.~h i~ Mi.aister of God’s Word. Our treatment of the Iuternational Sunday School Lessons is specially for the older Bible
students and teachers, l:y some this feature is considered indispensable.
This jourlml stands firmly for tlle defense of the only true foundation of the Christian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
--redemption through the precious blood of "the man Christ Jesus, who gave himself a ransom [a corresponding price, a substitute] for
alP’. (1 Peter 1 " 19 ; I Tiiuothy 2 : 6) Building up on this sure foumlation the gold, silver and precious stones (1 Corinthians 3 :
15 ; 2 1’eter 1:5-11) of the Word of God, its further mission is to "make all see what is the fell0wsllip of the mystery which...has
been idd in God, . , . to the intent timt now might be made" known by the church the manifold wisdom of God"--"which in other ages
was not lnade known unto the sons of men as it Is now revealed".--Ephesians ;3 : 5-9, 10.
It stands free from all oarties, sects an8 creeds of men while it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
subjection to the will of God in Christ, as expressed in the holy Scriptures. It is thus free to declare boldly whatsoever the Lord
hath spoken--accortling to the divine wisdors granted unto us to understand his utterances. Its attitude is not dogmatic, but confident;
for. we knosv whereof we affirm, treading with implicit faith upon the sure promises of God. It is held as a trust, to be used only in his
service; hence our decisions relative to what may and what may not appear in its columns musl; be accortling to our judgment of his
good pleasure, the teaching of his Word, for the npbulhidng of his people in grace and knowledge. And we not only invite but urge ouI’
readers to prove all Its utterances by the infallible Word to which reference is constantly made to facilitate such testing.
TO US THE SCRIPTURES CLEARLY TEACH
¯hat the church is "the temple of the living God", peculiarly "his workmanship" ; that its construction has been In progress throughout
the gospel age--ever since Christ became the world’s Redeemer and the Chief Corner Stone of his temple, throuzh which, when
finished, God’s blessing shall come "to all people", and they find access to him.--1 Corinthians 3 : 16, 17 ; Ephesians 2 : 20-22
Genesis 28 : 14 ; Galatians 3 : 29.
~:hat meantime the chiseling, shaping, and polishing of consecrated believers in Christ’s atonement for sin, progresses; and when th0
last of these "lh.ing stones", "elect ami precious," shall have bees made ready, the great Muster Workman x~ fll bring all togethe~
In the first resurrection ; and tile temple shah be filled with his glory, and be the meetiug place between God and men throughout
the Mlllennium.~Revelation 15 : 5-8.
’~hat the basis of hope, for the church and the world, lies In the fact lhat "Jesus Christ, by the grace of God, ~nsted death for every
man," "a ransom for all," and will be "’the true light which hghteth every ma~ that come~h tats the world", "in due time".~
I-Iebrews 2 : 9 ; John 1 : 9 ; 1 Timothy 2 : 5, 6.
~That the hope of the church ts that she may be like her Lord, "see him as he is," be partaker of the divine nature,’ and share his
glory as bis joint-hmr.--1 John 3:2; John 17:24; Romans 8:17; 2 Peter 1:4.
"/’hat the present mission of the church is the perfecting of the saints for the future work of service: to develop iu llcrself every
grace ; to be God’s witness to the world ; and to prepare to be kings and priest~ in the next age.--1,:phemans .t : 1:2 ; Multhew 24 :
14; Revelation 1: 6; 20:6.
’Xhat the hope for the world lies in the blessings of knowledge and opportunity to be broucht 1o all by Chri~l’s .M’illenmal kingdom, tho
restitutmn of all that was lost in Adam to all the willing and ohedtcnL at tl~e hantls of their Be0eemer and his giorihed ehurchj
when all tile wilfuily wicked will be destroyed.--Acts 3 : 19-23 ; l.~a ah 35.
ing of the gentiles from their long and cruel dominion. TABLE OF "SEVEN TIDIES" AND ’tSEVEIW TIDIES ~IOIIE’"
This is the celebrated "seven times" of punishment of 4126 B.C. Beghmingof the
the Jewish people, with which Bible students are 1000-year day of
faroaltar. the first Adam.
In the first prediction of this chastisement for "seven 3126 B.C. Endof the :1000-
times" an expression was employed by Jehovah which year day of the
first Adam.
implied a previous "seven times" of some kind: "And 3126 B.C. Begilming of the 606 B.C. Beginning of the
if ye will not for all this hearken unto me, then I will first"sex ell times," "SeV(211 times lnOl’e,"
punish you seven tim, es more for your sins."(Levitieus or 2,520 years. eL’ 2 520 years
26 : ] 8) On its face this utterance speaks of a final and inert.
complete dlsciplimng, additional to the other castiga- 606 B.C. End of the first 1914 A.D. l’~nd of l.he "seven
tions predicted in Leviticus 26:14-17 while they re- "seven times," or I.illleS lllOre," Or
2.520 years. 2,520 .veqrs more.
mained an independent nation. The &vinely employed 1914 A.D. B~ginnmgol~ the
use of the word "more," however, suggests a preceding 1000-year day of
"seven times"; and the reverent student of the Bible lhe Second Adam.
will not ignore such a hint proceeding from the great 2914 A.D. ]~;nd of tile 1000-
Time-Keeper. Whmtthe intimation is heeded, and the 5ear day o{ tim
chronological periods are explored prior to 606 B.C., Second Adam.
whcn the "seven times more" began, a marvelous view
The first of these long ages of 2,520 years was less
of Bible chronology is obtained, which at a glance covers
fallen, far more desirable for humankh~([tha.. the "seven
the entire 7000-year seventh rest-day of God, with the
times more." ]4tunau govermnents were h>.s depraved
addition of a final judgment period of forty years, or
at first; there were less pride and in.~ane ln~lessp.ess
7,040 years in all.
The previous interval before the "seven times more" amongthose in attthorlty, and the poor nnd low 13, were
much better off. Durh~g the first "seven t.mes" the
is examined as follows: Going back from 606 B.C. and
govermnents, so to spe’fl% had a man’s heart, a measure
counting 2,520 years, the date obtained is 3126 B.C.
This is not seen to be anything unusual until 1,000 years of humanity. But concerning the all ,red heart of the
ruling po~er in the second 2,520 years it is written:
are counted back from it, when the date is found to be "Let his heart he oh’raged from man’s, and let a beast’s
4126 B.C., whmhreverential discernment recognizes as
the date of the fall of Adanl and the beginning or the heart be given unto him .... The Most High... set-
6,000 years of sin. Then, going forward from 606 B.C. teth up over it [the dominion-I the .basest of men."
(Daniel 4: 16, 17’) The annals of earth’s kingdomsfor
for 2,52.0 years, the date 1914 A.D. is reached. This is
the "seven times more," just ended in 1914 A.D., have
the date when the Second Adam,Jesus Christ, as King
not been records of kingliness, klp.dness, and of love
of earth, and Lord of lords, began to exercise his
of man for man, but--under a (lia’,)oiieal alliance
mighty power against the kingdoms of Satan’s empire,
religion, business, and state---a chronicle of beastly
this ])resent evil world. After 1914 A.D. will be the
rapine, exploitatmn of the helpless, lust, abandoned
1000-year day of the Second Adam, reaching to 2914
wickedness, m~ddepraved viciousness, even on to this
A.D. in which the Lord will reign in might. "Then
very day.
comcth the end, when he shall have delivered up the
kingdom to God, even the Father; when he shall have It is noteworthythat the date 606 B.C. is exactly half
put down all rule Mad all authority and power. For way between the fall of ±~damand the end of the forty-
he must reign, till he hath put all encmies under his year judgment after the l\lillennium--/)etween Para-
dise Lost and l:ara&se Restored.
feet."--1 Cormthmns15 : 24, 25.
Thus the "seven times more" of punishment upon the An interval of "seven times," when divided in two,
Jewish nation are seen to have been preceded by a prior makes two periods of three-and-a-half times, or 1,260
"seven t,nes." The first seven times, or 2,520 years, years, each. Seven symbolizes d~vine completeness. }Ialf
were preceded by the 1000-year day of the first Adam of seven represents incompleteness,evil, trial, suffering.
(Genesis 2: 17); and the 2,520 years "more" are For example, the 1,260 years preceding the beginning of
be followed by the 1000-year day of Christ, the Second the Time of the End (1799 A. D.), are characterized
Adam.~Zechariah 14 : 9 ; ]~[atthew 12 : 8 ; Luke17 : 24 ; by the Lord as fallows: "The same horn made war
John 8:56; 1 Corinthians 15:45. with the saints and prevailed against thenf’; "A king
The harmonioussuccession of these chronological per- of fierce countenance . . . shall destroy wonderfully...
iods maybe illustrated in the following manner: and shall cause cra2t [diplomacy, Jesuitical deceit] to
10o0 years: 2520years: :2520 years: 1000 years prosper in his hand"; "Shall take away the daily sacri-
-Total, 7040Years. fice, and place [set up in power] the ~omination that
Arranging the periods in the parallel-column form, maketh desolate [the mass]"; "Shall speak great words
with the dates, this grand panorama of humanhistory against the Most Nigh, and wear out the saints of the
appears thus: Most JSigh"~truly a forecast of the dominion of in-
NOVEMBER
1~, 357
~922
WATCH TOWER
iquity and of the sufferings of the righteous during the son]. Notwithstanding in thy days I will not do it
"time, times and the dividing of a time."--Daniel 7: for David thy father’s sake; but I will rend it out of
21; 8: 23-25; 11: 31; 7:25. the hand of thy son. I<owbeit I will not rend away all
Thus the two "seven times" may be seen to be di- the kingdom; but will give one tribe to thy son for
visible into four periods of 1,2,60 years each, in an ever David my servant’s sake, and for .)erusalem’s sake which
mounting tide of wickedness, distress, and misery, until I have chosen."--I Kings 11: 11-13.
the thousand-year clay of Christ is reached, with its This was accomplished in the year of Solomon’s death,
release from the thralldom of evil into the perfect h’ee- 999 B.C. hi the severance of the Hebrew tribes into two
dora of the kingdom of God. "For the creation itseLf also kingdoms, that of the ten tribes in the larger northern
shall be delivered from the bondage of corruption into realm of Israel, and that of the two tribes in the smaller
the glorious hberty of the children of God."--Romans southern natron of J-udah, the tribe of Levi being scat-
8: 21. tered among the others.
In these marvelous discoveries in chronology and in The Protestant Reformation, which split professing
those yet to be described, four things are disclosed: Christians into two hostile parts, was foretold through
]?~rst, that so symmetrical and exact an arrangement the prophet Daniel in these words: "Now when they
of stupendous ages betokens foreknowledge of all fea- [true Christians of the dark ages] shall fall, they shall
tures from the beginning to the end; bc holpen ~ith a little help: but many [professedly
Second, that the overruling of these great times and Protestant rulers and others] shall cleave to them with
seasons was by none other than ]:Iim who alone has flatteries. And some of them [Protestant leaders] of
foreknowledge, Almighty God; understanding shall fall, to try them [the true ones],
Third, that a chronological system which is knit to- and to purge thenl lot the evil ones], and to make them
gether in so amazing a fashion has the internal evi- white, even to the time o£ the end [1799]."--Daniel
dence that it is of God and is the correct chronology ; and 11 : 34, 35.
Fourth, that this system reveals the foundation for The regenerative work of Luther was also outlined by
the true science and philosophy of history, which must the glorilied [,ord in his Revelation : "The first [Refor-
ultimately be taught everywhere and to everyone. mation] angel [Luther] sounded [his trumpet message
of truth], and there followed hail [sharp, cutting, hard
THE 2520-YEAR PARALLELS
truth] and fire [destructive judgments upon papacy]
The far-seeing prescience of the Creator is impress- mingled with Mood [truth mingled with death-dealing
ively exhibited 13y parallel dates within the two "seven error], and they were cast upon the earth : and the third
times." These correspondencies clearly" denmnstrate part of the trees [prominent men] was burnt up, and
Jehovah’s foreknowledge, and cause the truth that this all green grass[bather’s teaching had the effect of trans-
chronology is divinely shaped to beam forth brightly. forming many of the order-loving German people into
The ascertainment of these things by Pastor gussell and anarelnsts."--[O146-8]--Revelation 8: 7.
Brother Edgar Js one of the important discoveries of the Divine foreknowledge is displayed hi the striking par-
conchding days of the age just ended. allelisms, as shown in the following dates in the two
By parallel dates are denoted in this instance dates "seven times": Each second date follows the first by ex-
2,520 years apart, at the same time in each age, and
actly 2,520 years. Could this be aecidental’.e Nay, verily I
of corresponding character.
For example, as exhibited in the ensuing table, two TABLE OF 2020-YEAR PARALLELS
of these appointed times are 999 B.C. and 1521 A.D.
Events in the First Events in the
The first is the clcaving of the Hebrews into two king- "Seven Times" "Seven Times More"
doms: Israel the larger and more corrupt, and Judah
the smaller and less depraved. The second and parallel 312GB.C. Beginning of the 606 B.C. Beginning of the
date is the sqmration of Christians into two religio- first seven times, or "seven times lllOre’~
2,520 years. or 2,520 years.
political dominions; Romanism the more numerous mid 539 A.D. Counterfeit fulfill-
1981 B.C. Marrint,.e of ]sm~e
vicious, and l~rotestantism the less so. and Rebecca, typi- lnent in the mar-
The time between 999 B. C. and 1521 A. D. is 2,520; cal of the coming riage of the pagan
so these events took place at the same times in the two union of Christ ~lnd stale with t, he apos-
ages. The occurrences are momentous and of the same his bride, the true tate church of
sort ; so these are parallel dates. church. Rome, the "whore."
999 B.C. Division of the nom- 1521 A.D. Division ofnonlinal
Both events were foreknown; for they were foretold. inal Hebrews into Christians into two
The prophecy or the coming division of the Hebrews was : two religio-politienl religio-l)olitieal do-
’%Vherefore the Lord said unto Solomon, Forasmuch kingdoms ; Israel minions; Roman-
as this is done of thee, and thou hast not kept my the larger and more ism the larger and
covenant and my statutes, which I have commandedthee, corrupt, and Judah lnor(2 corrupt, lind
the smallerand less Protestantism t he
I will surely rend the kingdom from thee, and will give corrupt. sraatler and ross
it to thy servant [Jeroboam, who was not Solomon’s corrupt.
WATCH TOWER
731 B.C. Sickness unto death 1789A.D.Sickness unto death will shew thee . . . the great whore . . . with whom
of FIezekiah, the of France and of the kings of the earth have committed fornication ....
Jewisll church-state Christcndom’s
ruler, from a boil. She saith in her heart, I sit a queen." (Revelation 17: 1,
church-state ruling
powers, from the 2; 18:7) This iniquitous sham was also pictured in
French revolution the misalliance of the abandoned pagan, Queen Jezebel,
social eruption. with Ahab the king of Israel (1 Kings 16: 26-33), and
721B.C. End of ten years 1799A.D. End of ten years
after Hezekiah’s doubtless in the divinely condemned union of the princess
after the beginning
sickness; the date of the French revo- of Egypt with Solomon, the king of the Lord’s holy
is a chronological lution, and be~n- people.--1 Kings 11 : 1-4 ; :Exodus 34 : 14-16.
nlarker character- ning of the Time of This ascertainment of the 2520-year parallelism of
ized by no event, the End o£ the pres- the Isaac-Rebecca type, and the Roman-Empire-Papal
but designed to ent evil order of
point totheparallel. caricature of the approaching nuptials of Christ and
things.
716 B.C. End ofthel5years’ his bride, is a no¢abIe verification oE the heavenly source
1804A.D. End of 15 years’
added life ; death of added duration to of present-truth chronology.
I-Iezekiah, the Jew- tim ancient religio-
ish religio-political political order in THE HEZEKIAH PARALLELS
ruler. France, marked by In the two accounts of }Iezekiah’s reign, in 2 Kings
tim establishment 18-20 and Isaiah 36-39, Judah and Jerusalem had been
of the Napoleonic seriously threatened with desolation and captivity at
Empire and the
the hand of the Assyrians, but had been delivered.
abolition of the
medieval order. Shortly afterward King :Hezekiah was sick unto death.
606 B.C. The end of the first 1914A.D. End of the "seven The inspired account runs : "And the prophet Isaiah...
"seven times," or times more,"or 2,- said unto him, Set thine house in order; for thou shall
2,520 years. 520 years. Begin- die, and not live." (2 Kings 20: 1) This was in the year
Overthrow of the ning of the over-
l:.ingdom of nomin- throw of nominal 731 B. C. Then in answer to the king’s desperate prayer,
al Ileshly Israel. spiritual Israel.:Be- Jehovah sent the word: "I have heard thy prayer . . .
Beginning of tile ginning of Christ’s behold I will hem thee . . . And I will add unto thy
period of gentile reign over the days fifteen )’ears." (~ Kings 20: 5, 6) The death
dominion. eartlL :Kezekmh took place tlfteen years later, in 716 B. C.
ISAAC AND REBECCA When the king was sick God also gave him a sign
Isaac, as the chi]d of promise, was often representative that he would recover and have the prmmsed fifteen
of Jesus Christ ; and llebccca, as Isaac’s bride, was a type years of life. This token was literal for lmn but also
of the true church. Their wedlock was a type of the symbolic for the admonition of the church at the end
coming union of Christ and his bride, to take place of the world (1 Corinthians 10: 11): "And I-lezekiah
before the full inauguration of all features of the 5til- said unto Isaiah, What shall be the sign that the Lord
lennial reign of the Lord. will heal me ?... And Isaiah said, This sign shall thou
]~fany are the counterfeits which have been made by have of the Lord, that the Lord will do the thing that
the evil one, both of the truth and of the details of the he hath spoken: Shall the shadow go forward ten de-
divine plan--false gods, false messiahs, false saviors, grees, or go back ten degrees ? And Hezekiah answered,
false churches, and counterfeit SO-Galled "Christian" It is a light thing for the shadow to go down ten
governments. In every instance the pure and true of degrees: nay, but let the shadow return backward ten
the things o£ Jehovah have been obscured by the vile degrees. And Isaiah the prophet cried unto the Lord:
and bogus things of the devil and his demons, which have and he brought the shadow ten degrees backward, by
been palmed off on the cred~flous and unsophisticated which it had gone do~m in the dial of Ahaz." (2 Kings
as though from God, when actually from the vain- 20: 8-11) The ten degrees signify ten years, and the
glorious enemy of God, the devil. Before the institution ten years expired in 721 B.C:
of the spurious Papal millennium (799-1799 A.D), the This gives the three dates: 731 B.C., l:Iezckiah’s sick-
demons, through their tools, the ecclesiastics and lower ness; 721 B.C., the end of the ten years; and 716 B.C.,
clergy, worked ont a sham similitude of the marriage the end of the fifteen years and of the kin~s life.
of Christ and the church. This was the unhallowed The antitypc, or parallel, of the Jewish ruler’s sick-
union of the apostate church of Rome--the "whore" ness is seen in that extraordinary outburst of outraged
(Revelation 17: 1)--with the government of the ten-toe and tormented hmnanity in the French Revolution,
decaying Iloman Empire. This took place in 539A.D., which shook to its foundations the religio-political
just 2,520 years gtcr the nuptials of Isaaac and Rebecca order of things in France, and finMly eventuated in the
in 1981 B. C. termination of that order and its superscssion by an
Even this counterfeit was foreknox~m and foretold. empire wholly different in character and personnel. Not
Concerning the unholy union of church and state, and merely France, but all Europe and the entire ancient
the imitation queen of heaven, the Revelator says: "I order of the world, was mortally sickened--dismayed
WATCH TOWER
at the shadow of approaching dissolution--through the of the true church in this matter, but rather of th{
trouble in France. l~’[edieval France besought Godfor nominal regnant powers of Europe. That he was king
healing, and for the time was delivered, but ultimately of Judah--which sometimest)Tflies Protestantism~doe,,
came to its end--the shadow of the nearing end was not detract from the thought that he represented th~
set back for ten years, from 1789 to 1799. Papal-Protestant-royalty alliance, rather than Protest.
France was prophetically cMled the tenth part of the autism alone; for as a rule Judah symbolizes Protestant,
city--of the then ruling powers of civilization. A tenth ism alone, when Judah and Israel are mentioned i~
part pictorially represents the whole; for as ten sym- the same connection, l~oreover, at this time the king.
bolizes the whole, so does a tenth. Thus the tithe of the dora of Israel had been overthrown and taken captive
I-Iebrew pictured the dedication of his all, and typified by the Assyrians--in 739 B. C.--and no longer wa!
the mltire consecration of all by the antitypical spiritual in existence.
Jew, the true Christian. THE END OF FRENCH FEUDALISM
The Lord foretold the French Revolution in these Fifteen years after the deadly sickness of the Eur~
words: "And the same hour there was a greafi earth- pean church-state civilization (1789 A. D.), there cam~
quake [shaking of. the social order, revolution], and the the end of this medieval order of things in France
tenth part [France] of the city [the rcligio-political In 1804, fifteen years after 1789, Napoleon abruptly
world] fell." (Ileve]ation 11: 13) The sieldy dismay terminated the power of the hitherto ruling feudal
the entire Papal-Protestant-business-political alliance of aristocracy and of the lordly Papal ecelesiastieism, tt~
that day is portrayed in the remainder of the utterance established the Napoleonic Empire in its place, and in
front the. lips of the ]levelator: "The remnant were &at year, as recorded in "The Americana":
atfr@lted." (l%vclation 11: 13) As put by Brother "The [French] legislative bodies were now completely
ltussell, "Their [the revolutionists’] God-dishonoring subservient to Napoleon, and the conspiracy of Cadoucal
and heaven-defying work filled France with such scenes was made a pretext for offering him the empire, in order
to assure tl,e Imrnmnenee of the government by giving It
of blood, carnage, and horrob as madeeven the infidels a hereditary bead. Tim senate addressed him by a deputa-
thenrsclves tremble, and stand aghast."--G 179. tion and, on being invited to express their opinion, voted
Just as I-lezekiah had cried unto God for succor (2 the horedilary empire .... The ’senatus eonsultam’ for the
Kings 20: 3), so the Reve]ator prophesied what the regulation of the empire, drawn up by Napoleon bin]self,
was passed May 18, 1804. The empire was eovfirmed by a
nominal Christian rulers would do: "The remnant... popular vote of 3,572,329 against 2,569. The empire was
gave glory to lhe Godof heaven." (Revelation 11: 13) nmde hereditary in the male issue of Napoleon and his
An identifying phrase is added to the passage, fixing it adopted sons..,.. A new ariMocracy, not yet hereditary, was
upon the evo.nt: ".And by the earthquake [revolutmn] created. After the emperor came the grand dignitaries of
were destroyca seven thousand names of men." (Rev- the empire. The senate, besides eighty members elected by
itself, was to comprise the six grand dignitaries of the
elation 11: 13, ])iaglott) In fulfillment, in that dis- eml)ire, mid the i)rinees of the blood after eighteen years
tracted country, "France made war, in her revolution, "tge .... The I’ope was invited to the corougttion of Napoleon,
¯ . . on all titles of nobility. It is said by those who which tool; pl-tee tit ,Notre Dame on December 2, 1804. The
have examin@French records, that just seven thousand Emperor, after receiving tim sacred unction from the Pope,
crowned himself, and afterward the enlpress."
titles of menwere abolished in that revolution.--Smith."
Thus was blazoned to the world the fact that the
~G 179.
The French Revolution began July 14, 1789, with dominion had departed from the medieval church-state
conspiracy against the commonpeople, which for cen-
the storming of the dreadful royal dungeon, the Bastile,
turies of darkness and cruelty had violently domineered
in which for centuries had languished and died many
over the populace. In France the death of the ancient
true lovers of liberty and many true Christians. On
regime was definite]y marked, in 1804, just 2,520 years
October 6, 1789, the ldng and the queen of France were
brought prisoners to Paris. "On this occasion," says after the death of King :Hezekiah in 716 B. C.
"The Anlericana" in its article on France, "as on the THE TIME OF TIlE END OF THE WORLD
taking of the Bastde, the ferocity and bloodthirstiness King k[ezekiah, while sick, had been given the
.of the more lawless portion of the mobbegan to be singular sign of the ten-degree recession of the stm’s
fearfully manifested." This was the "sickness" of shadow on the dial, the Scriptural account of which
France, and of the Papal-Protestant Europe. It is an has been recited.
outstanding event in history; and the date, 1789, is The ten degrees signify ten years. On the date ’;21
exactly 2,520 years after the sickness of King J=Iezekiah, B. C., ten years after IIezekiah’s siel<ness, there was no
in g?lB. C. Thus 731 B. C. and 1789 A. D. meet all event; the date was a mere marker, because the mo-
the conditions, and are parallel dates. mentous occurrence to which it pointed in antitype
While King I-Iezekiah was a worshiper of Jehovah camet,~n years after 1789 A. D.--in 1799 A. D., ¢.520
and measurably faithful, for a king, he was not an over- years after 721 B. C.
comer like the prophets o{ God, whoendured such great It appeared in 1789 as though the sanguinary Revo-
things for the Lord’s name’s sake. ]de was typical, not lution in France was the beginning of the end of the
300 WATCH TOWER 7.
old world; but not so, for the commencementof the closing with A. D. 1799, marked by Napoleon’s Egyptian
campaign, sealed and defined the limit of Papal dominion
Time of the End of the old order of things was post-
over the nations. There, the time appointed (1260 years of
poned ten years, until 1799 A. D.; and then began power) having expired, the predicted judgment against that
the Time of the End of the world which came to its system began, which must finally ’constnne and destroy
end 115 years later, in 1914. it unto the end.’--Dan. 7 : 26.
Those ten years, however, did an hnl)ortant work. ’"_this date also cle,’~rly nmrks the beginning of the new
During the Revolution the utmost hatred was mani- era of liberty of thougl~t, and the realization of individual
rights and privileges and Ires already been distinguished
fested for the Christian religmn as exemplified in the by its rapid strides or progress toward the /:(ill accomplish-
apostate ]~omanist and Protestant churches, but nmnt of the work m:~l)ped out for this Time of the End.
especially the former. Prudent priests and ecclesiastics, As it single illustration, notice the rise and work of the
foreseeing the evil, hid thcmsdvcs (Proverbs 2.23) by various Bible Societivs--’pestiferous Bibie Societies’ Rome
calls tllcm, though it ennnot now binder them. And the
fleeing the country tho~e that remained were ~rtured, sacred volume which once. she confined in elmins, kept
and slaughtered whcrecvcr found They were tied back covered in dead langnngeg, and forbade her deluded sub-
to back and thrown alive into rivers; the)" were tried-- jects to read, is now Scattered by the million in excry nation
in manycases, very possibly, equitably enough as con- and langtmgc. The ]¢ritish and Forei.’vn Bible S-ci~,ty was
cerns their attitude toward the new government--for estqblished in 1S03; the New York Bible Sociely in ]804;
the Bcrlin-Prussi:m Bible Society in 1$~5: the l’hil:ldclphia
sedition, spying and treason, and executed. It is ~n’itten ]¢ible Society in 180S; and the Americall Bible Society in
of the clergy that prior to the bloody outburst "they 1817."
had attempted to reform France without first reforming Howlong was the time of the end destined to be?
themselves"--as may be said of the American clergy "The Time of the End," ,¢ays Pastor Russell, "is a
today. In just retmbution for their iniquities, divine period of one hundreda:~.d fifteen years from A. l). 1799
vengeance operated against them through the instru- to A. D. 1914." ("Thy Kingdom Come," p. 23)
mentality of a nm.ddencd populace. So fierce w.as the 1914: camethe (lefinit:~’ end of the ancient or(Ior
wrath against ccelesmstJcism that it seemed as thon,,h thi~:gs. When,on Au,~ust 1, 1914. the crack of the first
1789 would signalize the complete end of the Papacy; rifle-shot inaugm’atcdthe WorldV.a r. old ihh~g~ passed
but the beginning’ of this end was put off for ten years. away, and the dispossess proceed,ngs of Jchov~fll were
(1a,merning the year 1799, Pastor l{ussell write,~ in made effective against the kings el the kmg’domof
"Thy Kingdom Come," pages 49, 50: daHtness. On that date the King of kings a.ssumcd his
"If we are correct in placing the beginning of the Time
of the End at 17DD, we should expect tlmt there the falling throne over the earth, and thm’e were realized the
into error of church and stale union would measurably "great voices in heaven," ~hich said: "The kingdoms
cease, though it might require long ye-trs for the full of this world are becomethe kingdomsof our Lord, and
recovery out of that snare of the devil. Looking back, we of his Christ, and he shall reign for ever and ever."--
find that facts exactly correspond with this. Since that Revelation 11 : 15.
date there have been separations between empires and
ehurehes, but no new unions. Really, this date marks a Since 1914 the message of the true church has been,
new reformation on a more substantial basis. The influence in part, that "the wor]d has ended," that the kings of
of Papacy over the kingdoms of Europe had previously earth have bad their day, and that as national kings
been so great that its curses were dreaded by the nations fell in 1914:, soon will have fallen all the ldngs of the
as a withering blight, and its blessing desired for national
prosperity. When Protestants separated from Papacy, they empires of finance, politics, and eeelesiasticism.
~’ere received by the world as being merely a less corrupt In a memorablemanner the year 1914= signalized the
substitute for the Papacy; and their favor, advice or sane- end of the "seven times more" of gentile dominion. It
tmn was often very similarly sought. But when Nqpoleon was the 2520-year parallel date for 606 B. C., when
boldly ignored both the blessings and the curses of Papacy, ended the first "seven times."
and yet prospered phenomenally, his course not only greatly
weakened the Papal influence over civil governments, but With exactness, in 606 B. C., the dose of the first
also weakened the influence of the various Protestant sys- seven times was distinguished by the fall of the Hebrew
tems, im matters civil and political--which influence had religio-politieal polity; and with like divine precision
grown very strong in two and a half centuries.
"The new refornmtion, which dated from Napoleon’s day, in 1914 there ended the sway of the church-state com-
was no less thorough than the reformation brought about bination of Christendom, and the beginning of the pro-
by Luther and his colleagues, though it was not a religious tess of its extinction. As 606 B. C. began the age-long
movement, nor in any way animated by religious zeal; nor interval of the world-wide reign of the most mighty and
were the actors in it aware of the fact that they were merciless of the kings and emperm’sof this evil world,
accomplishing a work marked out for them in prophecy
centuries before .... so 1914 inaugatrated the eternal period of the sway of
"Napoleon’s work, together with the French Revolution, Christ the Lord, and his kindly and benignant kings,
broke the spell of religious superstition, humbled the pride of whomit is written, "He shall raign for ever and
of the self-exalted religious lords, awakened the world to ever"; and "They shall reign for ever and ever."--
a fuller sense of the powers and prerogatives of manhood,
Revelation11 : 15 ; 22 : 5.
and broke the Papal dominion against which the religious
Reformation had previously struck a death-blow, but which In a succeedingarticle the 1845-yearparallelisms will
its after-cour~a had healed. (Revelation 18: 3) The era be taken up.
"the WATCH TOWER 361
DIVINELY-GIVEN CHRONOLOGrCAL PARALLELS (PART I) 11. How were tile dlxlsions of Jews and Christians prophesied
and fulfilled’, a ¶ 27-3{~
Why is it ilnl)ortant to know that present-tret]l (.’hroet)Jogy 12.. Evl)itlln tim Inble,ol. 2520-.~ear p:tr+lllels. Tnble after ¶ 3L.
not an invention but a discovery? ¶ 1-,t. Ja. ]’]xl)hiin Ille p~u’ltllel dates of the Illilrl’i,’ll~e of ]seal(: and
2. ihm’,(lo(,s file i)nvnllelisnl of tim two ".~even tinles" show dh’ine l,’l.~llel.’l~;i. ¶ a2-:15
foreknowledge? ¶ 5. 14. ~Yh:ll ~aere Ihe lhree illlllOl’tnlit eveili~ nllll daiies ill lIo:*elel~t|l’S
il; ~t!,’llllt l~ao ldeils tire conveyedill tile i)redietion of seven l.lnles of life ’a ¶ ;;(i-/t~.
l,llnl~llnlellt? ¶ t;, 7. 15. I’,11l{ ~,:~i’, l]le l;llnllol of [io.zeklil]l’~i sllsi;ness? {[ .~.q.-IO.
4. lilt’lint is illtl)iJell DI" tile word’¢111o1’1,:’ill "’se’t:en tinle.~ Inore?" ¶ 8. IIL Ih},w v’crt~ tCrnll(e ,lihl ]2tlrolle SICRIllllll ltenlh froIli lhe l’~relleh
li. lgxlllaln tile (.’llro]lOlogieal ~ylllllietry ill tim two set~e]l tllnes." P.c ",,i" :i~,ll’a ¶ -’, ".4:;
¶ 9--12. 17 el Ivil(~lli ‘’~,::1"~ ],0,;’(9:.,lh Iv’,ie:ll7 ¶ 44.
6. Wily were Ill~ flr,~t "seven times" better for mltllkihd tha~l the ] ’. \Yh:l{ ,v.’lls lhe i:;ill,ll’:l /,I {I:e de;llh i)f l-lezekinh?¶ -t5.
seemld? ¶ ]J. J9 ll’ow ’lIlll .Nltlloleoll I)i,Jlig J,’l’eli~:li fOlili:ilisln to Its elid7 ~l ,iC~,47.
7. ~lVhat date i.q rn]d~ng bet~een tile f:lll of Adam anti the end ~L, ,4i ,111:]1}(I IJy lllg2 tt.,ll-(.eglc~.’ gOilig-bltl.’l{ ()f lhe~iii][].
o] the ~lilh*nn]al:judgment.? ¶ 1:I. dial ¶ 4S, 49.
8. %Vllat live thlng.~ nre disclosed by tile paralluh,~ms’, a ¶ 17-2l. -.2t "~.’h,lt,V,:is tile l)tlralleI of lIle rei.’essiOll of tile Slln-dllll7 ¶ 50.
’)’) l]-ow did It S(~ln fls though file old l’OJi,,ielus order of things
8a.l-low do the l)arallellsnls SIlOWtliat l)l’(.~e,~t trulh ,dll’Olll)JO~y iS %,:119,tit el’l~J i11 (lie l"letleh ll.evl) tltiell ¶ 51.
of,brine re]gill? ¶ ’-°2 93. l-low does 1770 ill/Irk file I.~egilinhig of tli~ end of relillO-
~0. l_)ellne i);ll’nilel dilteq, ¶ i}OJlti(-,rtl dlllililillnl ¶ .5’)-.5(}
10. Give i]lustraltio]l of the l)nra[lel dates of die division of the 24. D/hilt ,,Ills tile Ie~iglR] of tile time of the elld? ¶ 57.
Jews and the Christians, ¶ 24-26, :25 lt~tlat tlnngs were nl~lrked by 19147 ¶ 5S-60.
J-olnl lhlJ IJ:llltisf, or Jl.~us with the l’harist,es, fllltl of his its evil eirenlli,~{;tilees, It will ilot be mitil nieil li~o,e l e;tliz(,~l
(’:oulil~lS’_;!()ll (el’ [lie IIOllllln IVi;(.I W~iSil Sllllli.’r. l~’l’ielid tiieir ~onl-sll:l.;I,(.’,~s that {he bh.~sshigs of Godeali (:Oll’,e i,pou
siilnel’S is ;t ll’lle lille for Jl.<SU,%e~en .[hollgli it c;iltle f]’oln tliein. ’l’lie lrouhles which tire [low tlpol/ the world art., in-
the , ;il,lS,(,,,.. : ,ill <is ~l torlll of derls]Oli and eOlltelllpt; and {ende(l to nl;il.:e ineii see th:ll all evil i~i theiiiselvcs is the
lie did liot r(l)u(liaie rest]It or ,,iri, lind t]iat ht.,;lllh (..:ill eolne o]lly as lihlli iic-
’L’I is elnlpter showshhu ’is "t friend or tile pUlllic.lilis liild knowledg(;s his wl’ollgqlt’S8 alld s(=t¢l-:~ h~ll’]noliy ~,t itli his
sinli~.q’s, but in the l;l’tleSt sense, a l’e~tdy helper. It lwi,J Creator. And when nleii accept [lie rigiiteous liiw of tile
because God loved till; world of shiliers llHlt Jesus wits liew order "eal~lnlities" iu nature will eense,--][sahill 11:9.
folnid in it; ;llld thel’(.,fore his ;illlic, arilnee unloiigsL nlen
sigiiilh.>8 frh,it (7od iilso is tile frielid of shnicrs, lye praise JESUS NEVER DISTURBED
hini tor this, ;iil(l our ]ieari-s go out to hilu in gi.atilude, Our Lord’s ministry was varied: indeed, it was ever
bec;illS(J ~e who ]iilV,j lie~ll’d his iileSS~lge of gl’a(_’e llil’ou~h ehal~gin~, depending greatly upon the demands made upon
Jesus ]iltve realized his friendsllip, and because we know hi,n. There was It gener, ll purpose in his ministry, and
lie inleiid~ to ni~ike his friendlilless kiio’wn to all nien that without doubt he was working according to a general plan,
all niay (;liter into this sweet rel;ttionsldp. but it is very clear that lie held his life at the disposal
%\,’bell ,Jesus I)reselil-ed ]ihnseir {o his people, the Jews, of ¶hose who would put a claim upon him. He was always
the leaders stood alot~t’, just as riley bad doiie front John ready to turn round to meet a call from whatever qunrte~
tile ]];iptist. I£ tlley did (’onlo iiear, it was lit;it they nlight it ea nle.
look with euriotls eyes Ul)Oli whet WilS being dolie, and to In this lie was never "disturl)ed." It might be that tli~
see how niueh these lliOVenlOlitS of Johli ail(l Jesus iirPeeted roof would be taken from the house where he was preach-
tileir position; and {o pour eOlitelilpt upoii these ilnioval;ions tng, and a sick man let down at his feet while in th~
and, if possible, to hinder Lhe work. But the eoinnlon midst of a discourse; or that Jairus might come, and, wlth
people, who It:l(1 no such ilitoi’*’sts to eoii~erve as their an urgerlt e-ill, interrupt our Lord in an address; but ll~
leaders hIld, received Jesns Iiiore ghidly, aiid were very allowed none of these things to disturb either his innez
willing to receive the benefits lie hnd to give. or outward calm. He was always the master. Full ot
I:Int those who l-eeei~ ed llis words lllid person lilOSt gladly, service he was ever at ease in it; and as the needs of thl
and who ils a elltss calne lleilrest to hiln, were tim pllblicans people were many, and his compassion was unbounded, ther~
and sllillel’,;. Tl;ese, wlioll they Wel’e inured, sought Jesus was always much for him to do.
for biniseir rnihcr lhali for wli~lf llll,V eonld get from After our Lord’s preaching, as recorded in ehnptor six,
hin]i and his own tesl.iiilo]ly w;is "flint the pnl)iieilnS and he went again to Caperu’tum. As soon as he renehed
harlots go into the khigd(ini of God I)c, foi’e you"--the chleP there a l~oman centurion sent a request to him by th~
priests lind elders. (Matthew 21: 77,-?,1) There was ab- elders of the synagogue, beseeching him to come and heal
solutely notlting iu our Lord’s life which would give the his servant. The elders sqid, in presenting the eenturion’.~
slightest thought that he condoned sin, or looseness of con- request, that lie was a lover o~ their nation, and had built
duct, nnd it is aplmrent that however friendly ollr Lord them a synagogue. It was prohably out of htHnility that
was to these *fllien, he was never fitmiliar with them, nor the centurion took this course of approach to Jesus; and,
they with I~im. The fact is thnt they were the sick ones who perhaps, because of having an urgent request, he took this
realized it; wt,ereas the people generally, and t’helr leaders means as presenting some advantage to him. 1gut before
in pnrtieular, did not realize their sielmess, and did not call Jesus could arrive, the centurlon sent some ol} his rriend~
for any pliysieian’s help. to meet him, saying that he was not wo]’thy thqt the
As it was then, so is it now. The world does not reallze _Master should cnte,- his house; and .,,nggested that the
that it is stele It knows indeed that it has much trouble, Lord should speak the word of healing; for, said he, "1
r.
’he WATCHTOWER
also am a man under authority, and say unto one, Go, lag more particularly of Jesus’ doings, he sent two of his
and he goeth."--Luke 7 : 8. disciplc.s to Jesus, asking, "Art thou he that should come?
~ere was an acknowledgement of the true posilion of or look we for another?"(Luke 7: 19) /:[e had no (loubt
Jesus such ,{Is had not been accorded by any in Israel. abont his own mission, but .Jesus’ course caused sonle
An outsider, a gentile, perceived the truth more quickly questioning abot, t him. Jesus’ answer was, by action. He
than Jesus’ own people. Jesus was taken by surprise. kept John’s disciples near Imu, and that same hoar worked
Luke says that he marveled. The incident made Jesus many miracles. (Luke 7: 21,22) John had exl)ected
turn ronnd m~d say to the people who followed him: "I kingdom to be set up in power, and that Jesus wotdd take
say unto you, I have not found so great faith, no, not steps to that end; but Jesus, enlightened by the holy spirit,
in Israel." (Luke 7:9) And ~[atthe~" adds here: "A1~d knew that there was a minist,T of the lclngdom to be
I say unto 3ou, That many shall come from the east and aeeon]plished before the kingdom could come in power. So
west, and shall sit dowu with. Abraham, and Isaac, and J’esus worked miracles that same hour in order that John’s
Jacob, in the kingdom of heaven." (Matthew 8: 11) Jesus disciples might see them and report to him what they’ li;ad
did not proceed to the house; but the servant was healed, seen and heard.
and the centurion got his reward. Did they afterwards The important point to note is that the ministry of
meet? Wc think the suggestion that this centurion and Isaiah 61:1, 2 was in process of fulfillment. John did not
Cornelius are one and the same may be a good one. That know this; he had not understood the ministry of the
this was a good man is certain; for only a good man suffering servant, the Christ. This new view and opening
would have been so considerate for a servant; aL, d Luke of the Scriptures would satisfy hi,n; for there is no assur-
says the servant was "dear unto him."--Luke 7:2. ance for the Lord’s people like that which conies from
seeing the fnltillment of Scripture prophecy This min-
RAISING THE WIDOW’S SON istry of our Lord, continued through his church, is in
preparation for their exaltation in kingdom power and
Leaving Caperm~um, Jesus next day visited Nain. As
glo’y. This ministry is a true, integral part of the king-
l~ain V¢~ls a long distant(. ~ :froln Capernaum, we may Sllppose
dora at" God.
that he took an early sail down the l’tke in order to get
there. Gl)ing up to Nain a considerable company followed Jesus’ ministry of heavenly blessings was a proof that
him. As they al)proaehed tim gate of the (.’it5, a ftmeral the kingdom in its incipient stage was present with them.
procession was caroling out. The two processions must (Luke ll: 20) The kingdom nmst first he presenled and
meet. It seems ahnost like a challenge! Here is Jesus, entered into while yet it was but in an embryonic condition.
the one who is to be the Lord of Life; and here also is a The l~Oyltl Majesty of the heavens had appeared. (Matthew
symbol of the power oil death. 4: 17, D~aqlott) The Jews rejected Jesus as king; but that
Tim funeral was thltt of a young man, the only son of a does not mean, as some say, that all he said about the king-
widowed mother. 1:ler sorrowful condition had drawn the dam of heaven in Ills parahles and g~,,nernl sayings hod to
Symlmthy of th(.. tmvl~’s people, and a great nnn]her (Jl’ them be held up till such a time as the kin:~dom shouhl come in
were with her going to the grave-side. As the two pro- power. I-lis words and teacl{ings respecting the kingdom
cessions met, aest,s did not move aside, hut stoPI)ed the have been and are meat and drink to those wile have by
funeral, and going to the molher bade her slay her we~p- faith entered into and lived in time klngdom.--Colossians
lng. Then, without regard to ceremonial law, he touched 1:13.
the coffin, and said : "Young man, I say unto thee, Arise." Jesus witnessed to John’s fidelity, and declared that there
(Luke 7:14) And the dead sat up and beg,’m to talk; and had been no greater prophet than he. Nevertheless, he
added: "He thqt is least in the kiugdom of God is greater
Jesus delivered him to his mother.
Yes; Jesus is the friend of sinners, whether of those who than he."(lmke 7: 28) Luke says that the people and the
are caught in sin and who show contrition of heart, or of publicans justified God, accepting John’s baptism; but ti~e
those who are the victims of the power of sin, as these Pharisees and the lawyers rejected the counsel of God,
were; and in his own due time he will speak the word being not baptized.
which will bring life and resurrection and freedom for Then our Lord said that the men of that generation were
all sin’s captives. like children calling one to another and saying, "We have
When the young man and his mother met he had no piped unto you, and ye have not danced; we have mourned
tales to tell her of either the bliss o£ heaven or the pains to you, and ye have not wept." (Luke 7:32) The same
of hell: he had fallen asleep, and now was awakened. words can be said of the religious world today. We who
And so will it be with all earth’s millions who have been have a message for them have piped unto them; we have
victims of de’tth. They are asleep, waiting awakening by told them of the joys of the kingdom; but they would not
their Redecnmr. Great fear came upon all the people who dance to the music. We have mourned to them, telling
saw this wonderful thing, and they glorified God and them of the time of trouble and of the calamity coming
said: "God hath visited his people." (Luke 7:16) This upon Christendom; but they refuse to weep. The truth
was the end of Jesus’ desire; he always sought the glory is either too narrow or too broad, and it can again be
of his Father. It is interesting to note that in each of the said : "Wisdomis Justified of all her children." (Luke 7 : 35)
miracles of resurrection wrought by Jesus the dead were The few take the message and are made happy by it; the
given back to their loved ones. Surely this is confirmatory vast majority "pass on and are punist*ed."--Proverbs 22:3.
of the suggestion that in the resurrection the dead will be
bronght back in answer to prayer, and will be given again THE WOMANWHO WAS A SINNER
to loving hearts. 2xt this time one of the Pharisees asked Jesus to eat
with him, and he accepted the invitation, which was to the
JOHN THE BAPTIST AND JESUS house of Simon, the Pharisee. This invitation introduces
The rumor of this miracle went through the whole land: us to one of the sweetest incidents of our Lord’s life.
it reached Judea, and John’s disciples told him of It. John ’~here are two anointings mentioned in the gospels, and
had then been some time in prison. Evidently he was some have thought that tlmse accounts are of the same in-
somewhat puzzled about Jesus’ ministry; and now on hear- cident; but the time, place, circumstance, and persons differ.
Luke takes us to the table. A woman of the city, a dims the eyes, but love opens them. Simon’s pride p,’evented
sinner, heard of Jesus being In the Pharisee’s house. Evi- him from getting joy out of this woman’s repentance ; pride
dently she had been touched by something that Jesus lind indeed dries the heart. Simon was left at home high and
said; and now an uninvited guest, but using the liberty dry; his righteousness stale, his hospitality a failure. I=Ie
which open houses of the East often afford, she stole into was a loser. The woman went home enriched and happy,
the roonL She was unusually moved; it was a time of and Jesus left Simon’s ]louse with the Joy of a healer and
stress of mind and of much emotion. She brought with blesser in his heart.
her an alabaster box of ointment which, without doubt, As tile incident closed, Jesus said to the woman: "Thy
she had intended for her own person. She would anoint faith hath saved thee; go In peace." (Luke 7:50) These
the Lord with it. Stealing behind him as he reclined, her words show that here was a complete work of grace; that
tears began to flow; they fell fast and on his feet. She henceforth the ~vomnn was saved from her former life,
bent down and wiped them with her hair; then she kissed and privileged to lfve in favor with God, and to be rein-
his feet, and poured the precious ointment on them. stated in favor with her neighbors.
Jesus did not move, but let her continue; for com-
passion and tenderness accepted the penitent’s gift. Simon BEREAN QUESTIONS
watched the wonlan; her actions riveted his gaze, He 1. Tell what the seventh chapter of Luko shows About Jesus. ¶ 1.
watched .Jesus, too. He thought: Why does Jesus allow 2. What is the proof that God is the friend of sinners? ¶ 2.
this? Y=[e surely does not know the character of the woman, 3. Showthe contrast between the attitudes of leaders and people
or he wouh[ send her away from hi,n immediately; and toward Jesus. ¶ 3.
4. Whywas Jesus friendly toward publicans and sinners? ¶ 4.
if he does not know, he is up prophet. Jesus was watching 5. Howdoes the world’s Attitude hinder the healing of its ills?
Simon watch the woman, and he spoke. IRe said: "Simon, ¶5.
6. WasJesus above giving attention to casual calls for help? ¶ 6.
I have somewhat to say unto thee." (Luke 7: 40) Then 7. i-low did Jesus show that he was always Master? ¶ 7.
our Lord gave a parable of two dehtors: one owed much 8. ’/’ell something about the character of the centurion at Caper-
the other but little, and botl~ of them were frankly for- nauru. ¶ S.
9. Wlmt was there about the centurion that surprised Jesus? ¶ 9.
given their debt. Jesus said: ’Tell me which of them will 10. What does this suggest about the relative Millennial greatness
love most?’ Simon answered: ’I suppose he to whom of the now despised and of the "bc~t" classes? ¶ 9.
11. What ~as symbolized in the meeting of the companies of
much was forgiven.’ Jesus said: "Thou has rightly Jesus and the funeral? ¶ 10.
judged."--Luke 7 : 41-43. 12. What did Jesus do when he met the funeral procession? ¶ 11.
13. Of what classes of sinners is Jesus the friend? ¶ 12.
’/’hen turning to the woman, he spoke to Simon and told 14. Why(hd not the reanimated youth tell something about whera
him that he had htcked in ordinary courtesy to his guest. he had been? ¶ 13.
15. "What does this ndracle suggest about the circumstances under
Simon had provided no water for his guest’s feet, had which the reanimated will be brought bgck? ¶ 13.
given no kiss of salutation, provided no refreshment, no 16. llow was John the Baptist then feeling about Jeuus? ¶ 14.
17. Iluw did Jesus simw John that Jesus was lHessmh? ¶ 14.
nnointing oil before partaking of the meal ; but this woman 18. Of what aspect of /Hcssiah’s work was John the l:apttst
of the city had provided these things at the east of her ignorant, and wily? ¶ 15.
19. flow must the kingdom of heaven be first presented and
heart’s emotion, and withal had anointed his ~eet with entered into? ¶ 16.
precious ointment. Jesus showed that he had missed the 20. Is it a I)r0p~’ haudling of Scripture to say that Jesus’ parables
apply to Jews only and that their interpretation must wait for
ordinary courtesies due to a guest. Still speaMng to the return of the Jews to favor? ¶ ]G.
Simon, he said: "Wherefore I say unto thee, Her sins, 21. Howgreat was ,loire the l~aptist COmlmredwith the prophets,
which are many, are forgiven." (Luke 7: 47) What won- and eon,l)ared with the coming kingdom class? ¶ 17.
22. Ilow did Jesus speak of the attitude of tho religious world
drous grace is here, what forbea,’ing love--love that will toward hiln and his followers? ¶ 18.
reach out to the sinner and, venturing much, gains its end, 23. Tell the story of the Anointing of Jesus by a womantlmt was
a runner. ¶¶ 19, 20.
the capture of the heart! It was In this way that Jesus 24. !~ow did the wealthy and respectable Simon regard the woman’s
was the friend of sinners. act? ¶ 21.
25. What lmrablo did Jesus utter to exhibit the true standing of
Simon’s pride prevented him from seeing the penitence the respectable Simon and of the sinful woman?¶ 21.
of the wanton. He saw what she had been, but failed to 26. How did Jesus reprove Simon? ¶ 22.
27. Howand why are sinners to be reached? ¶ 22.
see what she was then. Jesus’ love enabled him to perceive 28. What did Simon’s attitude cost him? ¶ 23.
the things that were beyond Simon’s sight. Self-righteousness 29. Whatdid the woman’sattitude gain her? ¶ 24:.
LMOST immediately"rfter the events narrated in the commerce. Both ]lomans and Greeks in considernMe num-
A precedingc]mpter,our I,ordenteredinto a definite
plqu for proclaiming lhe Idl~gth)m. Circumstances
bers were attracted there, partly heeause of the ltoman
occupation of the land, partly because o17 its commercial
had indicated that for the present Galilee should be the qctiviI.3, and for heal{h’s s’lke; for the country was beauti-
sphere of his h}bor; but probnl,ly our Lord, w-’rs guided ful and he:dthful. Indeed Galilee of the nations, and
to a conclusion hy Isaiah’s prophecy that Galilee of the particularly the sea of Galilee with its storms, its fishing,
nations, the people that walked in darkness, should see a and its borderi.ng industries,, and the multitudes which
great light, a word which evidently referred to his ministry. dwelt on its shores, the scene of so nlany events in our
--Isaiah 9 : 1, 2. Lord’s life, seem almost a picture in miniatm’e of the
In Jesus’ days Galilee was very thickly populated; for nations of the world during the gospel age.
there were many industries in its valleys, and it had much Jesus had now chosen his disciples, and was ready for
WATCH TOWER B=OOKL
N, *.
the wider ’rod more public work which was to be the second and loyal heart, and seeking with patience to bring forth
phase of his ministry. It was missionary work, but not fruit unto God (Luke 8: 12-15) We do not believe that
in the sense now generally understood; for the common is possible for anyone to go out of the truth who keeps
people of Galilee were Jews, Jesus’ own people, and i" such a loyal heart, seeking only to bring forth fruit unto
was to these that his me~sage was to go. He nmde no God.
attelnllt to mare proselytes from amongst tile gentiles. As The receiving of the truth is as tile lighting of a candle.
he went forth with his disciples, there accompanied hiai Jesus said that no man lights a candle and then puts it
also certain women who ministered to him of their sill)- under a bed, but sets it where it will give light around.
stance. (Luke 8:2,3) Little is said of this millistry; hut (Luke 8: 16) Many have .had their candle lit with the
tt must have made a great difl’erenee to .lesns "tnd tile truth, ~md have been afraid to show it arid to give light
disciples in the very husy times that he had, when owing to others; and the light has been dimmed or lost. Jesus
to the pressure of ti~e claims made upon Iron. he had not said: "’Take heed therefore how ye hear." (Luke 8:18)
time so much ns to eat. ’ahoy ministered to hhu of their He who holds fast that which is given him slmil receive
substance, "rod gave him of their strength; ’and their record nmre; but he who pretends to have something, and who
is surely wrtlten tn heaven. has not the love of the truth within him, "from him shall
Luke tells us of Jesus giving the parable of lhe sower. be talmn even that which lie seemeth to have."
~latthew says that when Jesus spoke this parable he
was seated in a ship, and that tim whole multitude slood NOBLE EXAMPLE OF OUR LORD
on the shore. It may very easily have been that our l,ord At this time Jesus was so pressed by the calls made upon
as he spoke could point to a sower on the hillside then ]tim for healing, and with the desire of the people to hear
scattering his seed. Ill any ruse this illnslralion would what he had to say, that his mother becanm, distressed
be quite familiar to all his hearers. ’l?here was the field, about him, and came with his I)rothers to seek him; for
with soil but lhinly covering some portions of it, for tile our Lot’d was so busy that he had not time even to eat.
ground was very stony; and there were lhorn-huslies not Probably his mother thought her son was not p’tying suf-
removed, and there was the rough road going over the hill. ficient attention to himself, and perhaps she would gently
As the sower casts his seed some of it falls oil the ro;tdside, restrain him. On being told of their call (they were outside
and tile birds immediately seize it. Some falls a,nong the on the edge of the crowd) ffesus took opportunity to say
thonls, where it will spriqg up, I)t,t the thorns will choke that those who hear the Word of God and do it are his
It. Some falls on stony ground; and tills will spring lip kinsfolk, bound closer to him than by natural ties.
quleldy, but not having sullieient root will be scorched by The Lord’s work today sometimes hardly permits those
the sun. ’]:hat which falls on tile good ground will lie who are out whole-heartedly for [lilll sullicient time for
productive, and bring forth thirtyfold, sixtyfold, a hundred- the natural refreshment of the body; and now, as then,
fold. their loved ones sometimes think they are beside tlmm-
Why did our Lord give this parable? Surely it was selves. (Mark 3: 2:1, 31) And, indeed, some who know the
to urge his hearers to Imy attenlion to the t,’uths he was work of the Lord say that they have a fear that the Lord’s
proclaiming, and to warn tlmm of their resl)onsibility ill people are being kept too busy in work. and that there
hearing (Luke 8: 18) ; also that his word alight lie received is not sufficient time for meditation, "rod what is called the
into a good heart, that neither tim devil himself, nor develoliment of tile inner nmn; and they fear spiritual
temptation through riches, nor the cares of this ~orld, nor deterioration for these busy people. The XVOl’k .~et by the
fear of consequences should deprive them of their rewa(d, providences of God for .Jesus demanded all his time, hut
nor defraud God of the right he has lo expect a sufficient it found hinl .~ullicient experience and instru(:rhm to give
lmrvest; and to show that prodnetiveness depends in eon- lille all the devclopnmnt necessary. Satan would stop Jesus’
siderqble measure upon the receixers of truth. And without work by any nleans--by opposition, by te,nptation, by tile
doubt the Lord intended this lesson to be phteed on l)er- friendly (:oueern of loved ones, even by the symp.~thetie
manent record to guide his followers into the way of life; concern of a mother. No earthly ties whether of family or
so it served both an imxnediate, and a deferred purpose. affection must he allowed to conic between phi’selves -lad a
APPLICATION OF THE PARABLE ministry clearly discerned to be of tile Lord. .lesns was
Tills parable has been a guide to tile Lord’s people ever qs dutiful and as nl’fe~:tionatc as could lie possible, lint he
would l)ertnit neither his mother nor Ills friends to regulate
since it wqs spoken. We do not, however, for a moment
agree that this is a parable of the kingdom that has not his service for his Father. He was responsil)le for his
applied to the church (as some would say), we do believe ministry.
on the other lrtnd that it hfts a very special application to us It had been a tiring day, and Jesus sought rest from
who live in the time of the Lord’s presence. Present truth the crowds. J-[e h,.d his di:~mples into a little ship, pl’ol)al)ly
came to as through Pastor Itussell as heavenly seed. Some u hired one, to go to the other side of the Ihke. They had
received it; but before it was allowed to take root, the no sooner cast off for the few miles s’lil than Jesus, wearied
devil came and took the word out of the heart. Some wfth his labor, laid his head upon the steemnnn’s hard
who have rejoiced in the truth for a while received their cushion and fell asleep. One of the sudden storms for
seed as on stony ground. They really did not give it heart which this lake is known came alien them. ]t was so vio-
room; and when alllietion or persecution on account of lent that tile disciples became alarmed, even ~hongh re’my
the truth came, they become offended--stumbled--and gave of them were accustomed to tile lake. Jesus slept or/, so
it Ul). And some who have been associated with us in the tired that though he must have been getting wet from tile
truth have received it and seelned to make progress, but spray, and from the water which ca,he into the I)oat, he
have allowed worldly prosperity or the pleasures of this life was undisturbed by it. The disciples’ fear overcame them,
to choke the growth; and there was no fruit to perfection. and at last they awoke tile Master saying, with an implied
These are they who received the truth amongst thorns. rebuke, "Carest thou not that we perish?" (M:ark 4: 38)
Without doubt tile secret of bringing forth fruit to God, Then Jesus arose, and rebuked the winds and the waves;
and of abiding in the truth is in having an honest, good and there was a great calm. lie then mildly rebuked
’he WATCHTOWER aa5
them : "Why are ye so fearful? how is it ye have no faith?" On the way a poor woman who had been afflicted for
Their faith had gone with the wind. twelve years with a distressing trouble, and who I,ad spent
"Give to the winds thy fears," says our hymu; and it all her living upon tl,e physicians without any relief, e.’tme
ts better to give our fears to tile winds rather t.han our behind him. She bad said, "If f nmy but touch the hem
faith. It was a common mistake into which the disciples of ]its gal’n!cnf, .l Slnlll be l,lade v,’hole." She ventured into
fell when they rebuked Ihe Lord. We are all apt to blame the throng and surreptitiously, but in wondrous faith, touched
him for l:tck of care when circumstances seem lmrd; where- his garment. She ,nletliately felt the healing power; and
as ir we had kepl lhe rest of faith we slmuld not be Jestts [Is quickly perceived that virtue had gone out of him.
perturbed. The dis,,iples ought to have recognized that 1-Jr stopped "rod asked who had touched him; for eompas-
Jesus was in his Valher’s care, and that they could not $ion:tte as Jesus wn.% he did not choose h) have the blessings
perish while they were with him. Let us learn a lesson l~e was able to give taken froln him in lhat way.
here. However strong the wln(ls of impending troable nl’ty It was not lat:l( of coulpassJ.o.n v,’Jii~:h caused him to act
rage, ~hile we are with the Master it is impossible that thus, but it was for l.lle woman’s sake, as well as for his
we pevish. Out’ Lord promises a safe landing, not an easy work’s sake. The woman, seeing that she could not .hide,
voyage. It is by dark providences tlle Lord tries his came forward "rod trembling fell down at his feet, and
people: even as tim l.’salmist says, ’%Its eyelids try the before all the people told for what cause she lind touched
elHhlren of nmn."--Psahn 11: 4. him. 21.’he woman would gain strength by this self-dis-
When Jesus and all his disciples were in the little ship, closure, and the Lord compassionately said ; "Daughter, be
no doubt Satan saw an ol)portunity Of attempting tile de- of good comfort: Thy f’tith lmtlt made thee whole; go in
slru(.iion of the little company of the elect. The raging I)caee." (Luke 8:48) Here is a lesson for
stol’m x~as one more of the nnmerons attempts that tile Let none o1~ us think that we can privately--that is
adversary made to destroy tim Seed. lie failed. without open confession both of our need and of oar faith--
draw blessings from Jesus. The purpose of God in sending
DEMONS YIELD TO THE LORD Jesus would not be accomplished if he,tliug could be gained
When they landed on the other side, they were lmmediale- in this fqshioa. There must be both faith in the heart, and
ly in the midst of anotlle," stirring affair. There they the confession of tile mouth, if healing is to be gained
were met by a raving maniac, a u)an who had for long time from tile Lord.--Romans 10: 9.
been afflicted with demons, and who made his abode in the We can easily imagine that Jairus, while feeling compas-
tombs, the cavities of the rocks, and who was so badly sionate towards tile woman (even more so for hintsolf),
obsessed that he would wear no clothing. So strong and would not like this delay. And tile delay scented to make
so wild was lm that none of the chains or fetters which had a difference in his case: for even as they were going, word
been put npon I,im could restrain him; he broke them all. was brought to him that ills daughter had died. :But before
As he appro’lebed Jesus bade the evil spirit come out of his faith could wane, Jesus immediately said: "Feat’ not;
him. The man cried: "I adjure thee by God that tllou believe only, and she shall be made whole" (Luke 8:50);
torment me not." (M.u’k 5 : 7) For some reason, not "~l)par- and he continued to go with JMrus.
ent, Jesus asked tim name. He answered, "Legiou; for Arriving at the l,ome the Lord cleared the house of the
we are many."--Mark 5: 9. noisy mourners who were already gathered; and putting
It is evident Jesus was speaking not so much to the man them all out save his three disciples, Peter, James, and
as to the dominant spirit within; for the poor man was John, and the father and mother, he bade the maid arise.
afflicted with a multitude of demons. The demons realized She arose; he gave her back her parents, and said: ’Give
in Jesus one who had mastery over them. Evidently misled her something to eat,’ so unpretentious, so real, so careful
by their overlord, S’lt:tn, they expected at some time to was Jesus. Father and mother in their excitement might
be finally east out of the presence of God into the abyss, easily have forgotten this apparently small but very impel
oblivion. This crowd of spirits now voiced their cry that rant thing.
they might not have this doom meted out to them; and VARIOUS MIRACLES
also desiring that they should not be sent back into that We may not stretch these pictures too far, but it seems
restraint from which, in solne measure, they had broken legitimate to say that in tills chapter we have at least an
away, they requested that they might enter into the near- illustration of haPl)enings during this present time---the
by herd of swine. .h-sus granted tbeir reqnest. The demons time of the Lord’s return. The wild storm on tile lake, and
immediately entered into tlm swine; and at once the swine, Jesus rebuking both the winds and the waters, can readily
about 2000 of tlmm, were siezed with madness and became be seen as a pictorial representation of the Lord rebuking
as uneontrolable as the poor man out of whom the dentons tile storms which are now coming upon the sea, the nations.
came. The herd rushed down the steel) place into the lake, The incident in the country of the Gadarenes, our Lord’s
and were choked. The owners of the swine, and all the conflict with tile evil spirits, and their banishment before
people on that cotst, more. mindful of their loss than they him, nmy be viewed as an illustration of the final destruc-
were glad to lmve the maniac restored to his right mind, tion of the evil ones; and the fact that the people did not
or Io know th.tt here was one who lind mastery over the wish him to stay can easily be seen as a representation
evil spirits came with one mind to Jesus, asking him to leave of the present cool reception of the Son of Man. He comes
their coasts and to go away from them. Jesus went, never with power to Ileal, bnt the people prefer their swine to him.
to go back there. Our Lord’s welcome reception on the other side of the
On his return to tile other side crowds were waiting for lake; his healing of the woman with an apparently incur-
aim, and gladly received him. And now two beautiful able trouble draining her life away, the raising of tile dead,
incidents of healing are recorded. As Jesus is speaking and giving the young child back to life---all these may also
to lhe people, Jairus comes to him, probably pushing be easrdy seen aa pictures of the later effects of his work,
through the crowd to speak with the Master; for Ills young when the people will desire him and wlmn our Lord will
daughter aged twelve is at the point of death. Will Jesus heal the sick, and raise the dead, and bring comfort and
come at once? And Jesus immediately left what he was happine.ss to poor suffering humanity. Then our Lord will
doing or saying to go with him. have sougllt and have saved "tlmt which was lost."
WATCH TOWER B,oo=,,,. Y
BEREAN QUESTIONS 10. Wlly did tile disclples become fearful? ¶ 10.
11. What lesson for the Christian ts in thls account? ¶ 11.
1. What gmided our Lord to Galilee? ¶ 1. 12. Why has Satan always attempted to de~troy the elect? ¶ 12.
2. l=l’ow did Galilee picture the world during tlle gospel age? ¶ 2. 13. Whomdid the Lord meet oil the shore? ¶ 13.
3. How did his missionary work diffm’ from that of today? ¶ 3. 14. Why (lid the demons yiehl to the Lord? ¶ 14.
4. llehtte tile ilarahle gtven hy tile Lord. ¶ 4. 15. Why did Jairus seek Jesus? ¶ 15
5. Wily was tile p:u’able approprmtc ~ ¶ 5. 16. Ilnw did tile poor woolen show her appreciation?
What l(~on can we learn from this ? ¶ 18.
,¶ 16.
6. Why is hlyalty of heart necessary? ¶ 6, 19. What dlRorenee did the delay make to aairus? ¶ 19.
7. W’hat lesson is ill lhe lighted candle? ¶ 7. 20. What huracle did Jesns l)erform at the hmne of Jairus? ¶ 20.
8. Sliould relatives swerve one from serving the Lord? ¶ 8. 21. Wily should we rejoice ill the tim Lord’s return to ~lrth? ¶ 21.
9. What are tile benehts of service? ¶ 9. 22. What did the miracles of the Lord picture? ¶ 22..
AN INTERESTING LETTER
~)E.’ti"~. BRETIIIIIgN with clearer vision ; the path grows brighter and brighter.
I reeeive the GOLDENAOE with the gre’ttest Dleasure. I h,lve no work i]ow, but if I were offered thousands in
It is me,.( wopile.rfnl; I am surely proud of it. I am hal)py inone.v in exch’m,~l, ¯ for the truth I would not part with it.
with all my studies. I pray the Lord’s blessing Ul)On you If I do not have hread, let me at least have these STUI)IES
nil ;rod esl)ecinlly Ill)On tlem’ l~rothl:r l{utherford. I for they fill my hearl with joy and nmke the Seriptures
th:lnklTul I he;ird him on 3:munry 22nd, when he was at phlinfor me to understand.
the B,’ond Street Theatre. It was lira lil.Sr time I hail ever I fill) thankful Io the Lord for Brother Russell, now
met one of the P, ible Students, and I did enjoy it. I do not changed to glory,and for his voice speakingthrough his
know a brothel" or a sister wt~h whomI eould meet ; and so works today. I would like to meet and talk with sortie
I stay nt home nnd pray, and study the Word of the Lord. orofher or sister. I got into touch with the WATe~ Towvm
I have :lust’ re,Ad this month’s WATer~TOWER ; and the more throughseeingsome of your literatnre.As, soon,asI can
I read, the sweeter it seems. I read the "Views from the I will fielpwith some money.
Tower," :rod they are grtmd. T also read nnd greatly enjoyed
"The Parenthesis o£ Sin." Praise the Lord I can now see Your fellowservant, T.A. ARNOLD~ N.J.
International Bible StudentsA sociation Classes
Lecture6
and6tudic~
bUTraveling5rethrc.n
BROTIIER R. H. BARBEI~ BROTHER S. MORTON
I,[ennsha, Wis................... Nov. 3D If, lack Rivcr Falls, Wis...Nov. 29 Raleigh,N. C................... Nov. 12 Y(ighpoint, N. C ............ NOV.28
|I,atAlld. \.l.~ ................. " 14 O’~.~e¢). %Vl.~ ..................... " 30 F;Lvettevtllc, N. C ......... " :13 Salisbury, N. C .............. ~0
Oshkosh\Vis ................... " 15 St. l-:ml, M]nn............. Dec. l. 3 Hayne,N. C ................... " 14 l’[antt~Ll~Ohs,N. ~ ............. Dec. 1
Al~l)lOtoll, \\’ix .............. " 16 Cellllll’i;t, \Vis ................ Dec. 4 Selma,N. C ..................... " ]5 Ch:u’lotte, N. C .............. " 3
MartnoAle,\V[s ......... Nov J7,]9 Ogll~lc. Minn................. " (i i)It]hant. N. C ................. " l(i (_,;iSl Cilia, N.C ............... ~’ 4
Se3mour. Wis ............... Nov 20 ])ca,e. \|inn ................... " 7 Stem,N. C ..................... " 17 Hlckor~ N: C ........... " 5
I~lack, Cruek. Wis ......... " ’2[ l’rlln:etl)n, ?qlnn ............. " 8 (’halml IIill, N. C ......... " :1!) LIn(:olnton, N. C ............. (6
l%,[;Irlo]l."~\ i~ ................. " ’2’2 C:|l:lbrid’~e ,.~[lllll ........... ~ 9 (,’reell.’~l)()ro, N. C ........... " 20 Silclby, N. C ................ " 7
Clintellvillc, \\’ix ............. " ’2:J 1%Iili...e,llm hs. ,Allan ....... " l0 Stale3, N. C ................... " 2:1 SJ);Irt;tllt)ltl’~’, N. .. ......... ~’ 8
Plover, Wis ................. " ~-[ I;arnunL 3hen ............. " II l)nu~tllo, Va................. " 23 (h’ocnvil]e, S. C ............. " 10
Marshhehl, Wis ............. " 211 Suimrm]’,\\’is ................. " 12 l~c:d:~villc. N. C ............. " 24 (~toe.r,S. C........................ " 11
Unil’y, Wi~................... " 27 TwoHarbors, Mllln ....... " 14 Wilt~ton Salel,, N. C ..... " 2C: ]~,ock 1-ill], S C............... " 12
Withee, Wis ................. " 2~ Proctor, Mira, ................. " 15 Stateroad, N. C ............ " 27 " 13
L~eLshaw, S. C .................
BROTHER J. A. BOIINET
F[ammoed, I11 ................. Nov. 10 l~lounds,Ill .................... Nov. 27 BROTIIER G. R. POLLOCK
Pan:t, Ill ......................... " 12 Thebes,ll[ ................. Nov. 23. 29 Lacombe,Alta ................. Nov. 20 ]lerbert, Sask................... Dec. 5
ClayCity, I11 ................. " 13 Dexter. Mo ........ Nov. 30, Dee. 1 I~uubey,Alta ................... " 21 C|l,lldltl, Sagk................. " 6
F]oru,Ill ......................... " ]4 Chu’kton,hI(i .................. " 3 Fed Deor, Alta ........... " ’2’2 l{egma,S:Lsk ............... Dec. 8 10
Rinard.Ill ....................... " 15 l~loomfiehl. Mo................. " 4 Knee Hill V:tlley, All " 2:~ iMoo~e.law Sask ......... I l, 12
Cisne,Ill ....................... " If; l’ol,lar till]if, hIo ............. " 5 Calza]’y,Alia ............. Nov. 24, 26 S~ iftCurrent, Sask ....... Dee.]3
Dix,Ill ........................... " 17 I-lar~ lel, Mo..................... " 6 I-I]~h River, Alia .............. Nov. :27 Lethbrtdge, Alta ............. ’ 14
Marion,Ill ................... " 19 Nee]yvtlle, Mo................. " 7 Lcthbrid,’e Alia ....... Nov. 2S. 29 Mac[cod,Alta ................. " 15
V,~ite Ash, I11 ............... " t20 Clmolna,Mo.................... " 10 Bow Island, Alta ......... Nov. 30 Calgary, Alla ........... Dec. 17,18
Carbondale,Ill ............... " 2t MomKain Grove, Mo. Dec. 11, 12 Medicine flat,Alta .... De(. l-3 lllicillcwaet,. B. C ....... Dec 19
Motropolis,I11 ........... Nov. 22, 23 South Fork, Mo......... " 13, 14 lquple Creek, Sask ............. Dec. 4 Kamloops,]3. C ............. " 20
Anna,Ill ................... " :24, 26 ’£hayec,Mo..................... Dec. 15
¯ : ....
¯ .... ’ ..t"
",’.f,’ . ":’. "¢i..,.,
CONTENTS
PROVISIONS FORHISOWN.................................. 871
SpiritualFood ............................................ 372
TheEnemy. ................................................... 373
Private Interpretatm-i ........................... :~7;~
WhoMayUn{lerst;tml .............................. 37:{
Satan’s] }url}o.qe.......................................... 374
God’sMethod ................................................. 374
TheBride .............................................. 375
Ingratitude Dangerous .............................. 376
JI:sus SENDING-OUTMISSIONA................ 378
Conflict with the Demons................................ 379
~’I’ORY" OFTIlE(;nODSAMARI’I~AN ........................... ,qS0
True MisMon of the Church............................ 381
.IE~USz~IhlONCST FRIENDS AND I"l.il:.q ..................... 382
~ign Given the Present Generat on ............... 383
"’1 will stetnd upo?t .ly u,¢ltch and will set my .foot
,,’port the To.:cr. ..st 10111 ~:¢ltch to see what lie will
st~j .llto vte, ~llt(l H.hett oJl~me)" [ ,uhall make to them
fTJIIt (.’,P~)0%C
Plt~?’--I[(l?J(l[,],?l]~
~ the earth distress Of natlon.~ wlU~I~er~lexit~; the ~ slid the waves(the reskle~s, tll~(ml,tented} roaring;men’shearts failing themfor fear andf,}l l,.’~llLg IU till
~h|ngs coming ulmnfile varth (Ioclety); for the ~o~mof the hea~er~ (eccleqia~tlelsm) shaU be shaken.... When)’e see these things burn I(~ ,, m~ l.,
[l~en knowthat the Kingdome! 0mi ~11 at hznd. ~ ~, llf~ ~ 7at~ beads, rejoice, for 7our redemption drawethalgh.--Matt 91:83; Ma~k13:29; Luke 21..~3-dL
THIS JOURNAL AND ITS SACRED MISSION
THIS
8 Journal
presented
Is one of the prime factors
ill all parts of the civilized
or instruments in the system of Bible instruction,
world by the WATCHTOWERBIBLE & TnACT SOCIETY, chartered
or "Sem;nary Ext0nsfon", now be;n
A.D. 1884, "For the Pro-
motion of ChrlsLmu Know, ledge". It not only serves as a class room where Bible students may meet in the study of the divine Word bul~
also as ~t channel ef conn,mmcation through which they may be reached with announcements of the Society’s coDventions and of th6
coming of Its traveling rei)reseat.ttives, styled "Pilgrims", and refreshed with reports of its conventions.
Our "Berean t.essons" are topical rehearsals or reviews of our Society’s published STUDIES most entertainingly arranged, and very
helpful to all ~ho would merit tile only honorary degree which the Society accords, viz., Verbi Dei Minister iV. D. M.), wbich translated
into English is 31iai, Icro] God’s Word. Our treatment of the International Sunday School Lessons is specially for the older Bible
students and teachers. By some this feature is considered indispensable.
This journal stands firmly for the defense of the only true foundation of the Christian’s hope now being so generally repudiated
--redemption through file precious blood of "tile man Christ Jesus, who gave himself u ransom [a corresponding price, a substitute] for
all". (1 Peter 1 : 19 ; 1 Timothy 2 : 6) Building up on this sure foundation the gold, silver and precious stones (l Corinthians 3:
15; 2 Peter 1: 5-11) of the Word of God, its further mission is to "make all see what is the fellowship of the mystery which...has
been hid in God, . . . to the intent that now might be made known by the church the manifold wisdom of God"--"which in other ages
was not nmde known unto the sons of men as it is now revealed".--I~phesians 3:5-9, 10.
It stands free from all parties, sects and creeds of men. while it seeks more and more to bring its every utterance into fullest
subjection to the will of God in Christ, as expressed in the holy Seriptures. It is thus free to declare boldly ~hatsoever the Lord
hatll spoken--according to the divine wlsdola granted unto us to understand his utterances. :Its attitude is not dogmatic, but confident ;
for we know whereof we affirm, treading with implicit faith upon the sure promises of God. It is Imld as a trust, to be used only in his
service ; hence our decisions rehttive to what may anti wllat may not appear in its columns nuls~ be according to our judgment of hie
good pleasnre, tile teacldng of ills Word, for the npbuihi4ng of his people in grace nnd knowledge. And we not only invite but urge ou~
readers to prove all its utterances by the infallible Word to which reference is constantly made to facilitate such testing.
S T. PAULaddresses this epistle to the "beloved of goes, the Christian father is more particularly interested
God, called saints." Saints means the purified in teaching his children the higher principles of right-
ones. This purification comes only through the eousness by making them acquainted with the Lord.
merit of Christ Jesus. These are justified by Jehovah, It is regrettable to see some who have embraced the
accepted as a part of the Lord’s sacrifice, and begotten Wordof Ood conclude that theneeforth they must look
to membership in the new creation. The text suggests out for themselves and let their children drift and just
the loving provision that God has made for his oral "come up" without any proper attention and education.
beloved ones. Such a person is worse than an unbeliever. By his
The father of a family of children, desiring to do cond ,~ct he denies faith in Godand the precious promises.
right, makes a reasonable provision for his ehildren. It is pleasing in these days to note that consecrated
If a loving parent, he makes a reasonable provision parents bring their infants before witnesses and conse-
according to his ability. The Scriptures recognize this crate them to the Lord. This is a step in the right
as a proper course of action, tIaving the mind of the direction. It impresses the parent with a greater re-
Lord in the matter, St. Paul said: "Provide things hon- sponsibility of providing the spiritual as well as the
est in the sight of all men." (Romans12 : 17) "If any temporal things for the children and of teaching them
provide not for his own, and specially for those of his the way that leads to life and holiness. The parent
ownhouse, he hath denied the faith, and is wo~’se than feels a greater responsibility of inaugurating a home
an infidel." (1 Timothy 5: 8) Otherwise stated, the study of the divine plan. If this is found not practical,
Apostle means that a father who is a Christmn will then he sees to it that tlae child attends someclass pro-
provide the necessities for his own, eespecially /hose vided for juvenile instruction. To aid in such work
of his own house; and if he pretends to be a Christian was the primary pro’pose of publishing "The Harp of
and does not make such reasonable provision, then he God."
is worse than an unbeliever. I~eahzing that the great King is present and has
The attribute of justice requires manto m;~kereason- begun his reign, and that soon the anointed now this
able provision for his dependent ones. ’J:he proper s~de the vail will ~e gathered home to meet the Lord,
degree of family love induces him to take such action. what greater heritage could such a parent leave to his
l~Iutual family love binds together the membersof that children than a knowledge of the divine plan! Let
family and causes each member to look out for the parents see to it that their children do not idle away
interests of the other, while the father has a special their time now, but spend it in a useful manner. Keep
regard for the welfare of all the family. Such provision thew. busy with the proper duties of temporal affairs
embraces both temporal and spiritual things. A good at proper hours, and see that they get a goodly portion
father endeavors to see that his children are prowded of instruction in things pertaining to the kingdomnow
with good, wholesome food and proper clothing. Even being put in operation.
more important than this, he gives attention to the It is well for each conseerated parent to consider the
instruction and education of his children. He teaches provisions the heavenly Father has made for his own,
them the right and proper use of such things as they and then insofar as it is possible to follow such examplo
have. Tie points out to them that to be lazy or slotlfful concerning his own.
is equivalent to being a great waster and displeasing to
the Lord. He finds "employment for them and teaches GOD’SFAMILY
them to be industrious. He shows them how to apply The family of God consists of those who have fully
properly their time and energy, tie looks after their surrendered unto him in consecration, and through the
general education. The worhlly father is particularly merit of Christ Jesus have been justified by him and
interested in educating his children in the ~ay of begotten to the Father’s nature. Such have been adopted
malting money. While this is very good as far as it into the family of God through Christ Jesus. (Romans
8: Jh) Seeing that it is pleasing to God that earthly TEMPORAL PROVISION
p~rents make provision for their own, we may be sure Jesus taught his followers to pray the Father for
that our heavenly Father is far more particular to daily food. Therefore we may be sure that the Father
make provision forhis o~n~. If every one who comes is pleased to have us ask for such things as we heed.
o the Lord could fully appreciate this fact and continue But asking, we must also c.xercise our faclflties with
in that appreciation, he wouhl continue to enjoy that which we have been endowedto provide such things as
peace of God that passes all humanunderstanding. In arc necessary. No one should think that he can sit
proportion as we do appreciate our heavenly Father’s dm~mand idly fold his hands and expect the Lord to
provisions, in that same increased proportion shall we put into his lap just such things as he may need. God’s
be thankful for all things provided. wav of providing is by giving us an opportunity of
co6perating with him in acquiring the things needed.
HIS LOVE I:lis child, t.hen, will pray and diligently act in harmony
God unselfishly exercised his love toward manldnd with his prayer. The same rule of action applies to
in providing redemption. (John 3:16) Tie sacrificed spiritual things. "Ask and ye shall receive." But act
the dearest trea.s, re of his heart to provide a way to in harmony with such asldng. Having acquired the
knowledge by which we may know the will of God, then
lea([ man back into harmony with himself. As a means
we must diligently endeavor to emfform ourselves to
of leading the world back into harmony with himself,
God provided a house of sons and made his dearly that will. Following the divine rule, the child of God
need not want.
beloved Son, Jesus Christ, the .l-lead of that house.
(I-[cbrews 3: 6) While it is true that "in the dispen- SI’IRITUAL FOOD
sation of the fulness of times God will gather together E:tving predestinated his house of sons, the Father
in one all things in Christ, both which are in heaven, long ago made all provision for the members of the
and which are on earth," yet in a special sense Christ household. Spiritual food is the chief thing required.
Jesus and his bride constitute the membersof the be- He lZ~sl)ircd his faithful servants of old to write things
loved house of God. For such he made provision before in his word that tl,e sons of God wotfld need, thus
tho t’oul,dation of the world, lie appointed Jesus the providing the spiritual food. Those holy men of old
chief one over tlmt house and prearra.~]ged that all the wrote as they were movedby the spirit of the Lord.
mcmborsor that house should be adopted as children (2 Samuel 23:2; Luke 1:70; 2 Peter 1:21) These
by .le~us Christ; and this is to the good pleasure of men understood not what they wrote, but were inspired
Oehovah.--l:]l)lmsians1: 5, 6. to write things that would be a provision tor the new
TI,, rio tlmt binds together the membersof this house- creation. They did not understand the mystery of God,
hold is that heautiful family love, pure and holy, from yet they wrote about the mystery. (Colossia,,s 1 : 2,6, 27)
above. Jehovah is the Father of that house. He ex- And to this house of sons now Jehovah speaks through
crci.-es the family love toward the membersofthe house. his inspired witness, St. Paul, the words of our text:
"The, , Falln~:r lovefh the Son ~md showeth him all "Whatsoever things were written aforetime were writ-
thl~,~s." (John 5: 20) "The Father himself loveth ten for our learning, that we thro.gh patience and
you, because ye have loved me." (John 16:27) The comfort of the scriptures might have hope." It was the
ime here mentmnedis that philia, family love. It is love of God that caused him to make this provision.
th,: ~nmelove that Jesus exerck, ed t~w~n’dhis disciples, lie did not provide that all the food shonld be served
the ~.arly membersof that house. Jesus asked Peter: to the household at one time. He provided it as it was
"bovest thou me ?"--inca,ring, Do you possess that fa~m- needed. In due time Jehovah has unfolded his plan.
ily love for me as a memberof myhouse’? If so, feed "Thou givest them their meat in due season," wrote
my sheep. It is the love of God that causes him to his Prophet. (Psalm 145 : 15) Muchof this food was
makeprovision for the family ; and it is this same fam- long hidden under dark sayings; but as the sons of God
ily love that draws them together. developed, leading on to the perfect (lay, he caused
Faith means to knowGod’s Wordand to rely upon it. greater light to shine upon his Word, thereby increasing
A living faith should forever settle it in the mind of the provision for his children.--Proverbs 4: 18.
the child of Cod that our great loving Father has made Through whomshould we expect the food to be given
all necessary provision for the memberaof his household. to the household? Through the Head of the house, of
’]:he one whobegins to doubt should ask himself, }[ave course. All things are of the Father and all things
I been adopted into the house of sons? Have I the wit- by the Son. bet no one flatter himself into believing
ness of the spirit that I a.m one of his? Andif answer- that the Lord has specially authorized him to provide
ing these questions in the affit~mative, then why not food for the household of faith by interpreting the
exercise the proper confidence in the Lord and know Scriptures; for the Scriptures are not of private inter-
that he with loving care toward me, is providing just pretation. The Lord reveals his Wordthrough his ap-
sLtch things as I neeed? l~ointed means.
DECEMBER], 1922 ’rh WATCH TOWER
The Lord Jesus makes it clear that at his second and faittfful steward of the Lord has not been made
appearing his true followers would have a deeper ap- manifest ; that there is no proper s)nnbolie interpretation
preciation of the food provided. He promised that "he of Seriphtres, but that the Scriptures must be inter-
shah gird himself, and make ttlem to szt do~n to meat, preted literally as we find them, hence no deeper or
and will come forth and serve them." (lmke 12: 37) hidden meaning is contained therein.
Then with clearness he states that at that particular ttow wily is our’ enemy Satan! :Fie uses the same
time he would appoint one as his faithful and wise old trick of fraud and deception in his attempt to lead
steward, making him ruler over his household, to serve the sons of God astray that he has heretofore used.
them their portion of meat in due season. (Luke 12:42) But we are not ignorant of his devices. Satan tried a
Our Lord did not say that he would have a learned and like schemeof literal interpretation on the Lord Jesus
egotistical servant, but one who would learn to apply himself. (Luke 4: 11; Psalm 91:11, 12) He did not
his knowledgeaccording to the divine standard in meek- succeed then. Ire will not succeed now. If it is true
hess and humility. that we a.re not to look for any hidden or symbolic
The thought, then, is that Jehovah makes the pro- meaningin the Scriptures, but that they must be inter-
vision. The Lord Jesus comes forth and serves the t)reted according to their face meaning and to the
membersof the house and appoints one wise and faith- meaning of the original words, then the college-bred
ful steward to bear the food to them; or, stated under man woukt have the advantage over the ordinary man.
another figure, to point GUt tO them the Lord’s table, Exactly this has long been the elninl of the nominal
where they may feed. clergy. God’s Wordand the physical facts show that ex-
THE ENEMY actly the contrary is the rule ; for a true followerof Christ
Satan the opposer has at all times resisted the devel- can easily confound the wise.--1 Corinthians 1 : 27.
opment of the house of sons. (Zechariah 3 : 1-7) From It has been long understood by Bible students that
the time the apostles fell asleep until the return of the Psahns 120 to 134, inclusive, described as "Songs of
Lord, Satan suceet~ded in blinding the minds of many Degrees," pertain to the time of the second presence of
to the truths of (lod’s Word. (2 Corinthians 4: 3,4) our Lord. Relating to that time the promise is: "For
With the precious food of the Lord’s provision Satan the rod of the wicked shall not rest upon the lot of the
mixed the doctrines of inherent immortality, eternal righteous; lest the righteous put forth their hands unto
torture, trinity, and other like false things. Whenour iniquity." (TPsMm125:3) The Lord did not pronlise
Lord came again, he sent forth his faithful steward and that Satan shouhl not again attempt to deceive, but that
provided him with the means to removethese falsehoods. the rod (Satan’s attempt to deceive and coerce the house
of sons) should no longer continue amongst the right-
PRIVATE INTERPRETATION
eous. The same thought is given to the church through
Satan now must attempt some other medmdof decep- Isaiah’s prophecy: "l-Ienceforth there shall no more
tion. One of these methods is to inject into the minds come into thee the uncircumcised and the mmlean....
of some who have believed on the Lord t.he thought Thv wa*ehmen. . . shall see eye to eye, when the Lord
that the food placed upon the table by the Lord through shall bring again Zion."--]saiah 52: 1, 8.
his chosen steward is improper food. Satan has induced Be assured, then., that Satan shall not succeed. Our
some ~co believe that to them has been committed the Father and our Lord, whohave so lovingly led us thus
priwlege of a prwat.e interpretation of the Scriptures, far, will lead us on unto the perfect day.
and that they should spread their thoughts far and wide
amongst the household of faith. Weshould expect such WHO MAY UNDERSTAND
attael, s as this, but no one xxith a true and thankful The Lord’s Word was not written for the worldly
hemt would he deceived by such. wise. if so, there would be no need for the giving of
Nowwe find comingfrom diffe,’ent parts of the field the holy spirit. To his disciples Jesus said : "It is given
simultaneously prl~ate and individual i.tcrpretation of unto you to knowthe mysteries of the kingdom of hea-
Scr~,,tures, of which the following is a brief epitome: ven." (Matthew 13: 11) When were they to know it?
That [he ehu/’eh ~ not contemph~fed in the promises After the giving of the holy spirit. (John 12: 16)
of the 0hi Te.~tamm,t Scriptures; that the four Gospels "Whenthe spirit of truth is comehe will guide you into
rela.t.e not to the church hut to the Jews; that the Acts all truth." (John 16 : 13) "Nowwe have received, not
of the Apostles and the epistles of James, Peter and the spirit of the world, bnt the spirit which is of God;
Jude and the Revelation do not pertain to the church but that we might knowthe things that are freely given to
to the Jews, and that the promises are earthly; that us of God." (1 Corinthians 2: 12) It is manifest that
only the epistles of St. Paul relate to the church; that none can understand and appreciate the Word of God
the hride of Christ is not spiritual but will be an earthly except those who have received the holy spirit and who
class; that the Lord is not present and hence there has abide ~n the spirit and walk in humility, and who ap-
~ot been and is not nowa harvest, and that the wise preciate ~he food which the Lord has provided for us.
WATCH TOWER
SATAN’SPURPOSE us exceeding great and precious promises, that by these
Weare now in the evil day. The fight is on between ye might be partakers of the divine nature." (2 Peter
Satan’s organization and God’s organization. It is a 1: -4:) This means that all whowill maketheir calling
desperate fight. Satan is attempting to destroy the and election sure must feed upon the great and precious
morale of the Lord’s organization and, if possible, to promises of God, not seeking only a few and ignoring
destroy the membersof the house of sons. To this end other precious promises. The principles of Jehovah are
he resorts to every possible scheme. :He does not con- eternal. These are found in various parts of the Bible,
sider it a wise policy to attempt a complete repudiation here a little and there a little. ]~iany of the precious
of all the Bible at once. He concludes first that it promises to the church are found in the Old Testament.
would be better to induce some of the Lord’s little The same fMthful Apostle again addresses the "elect
ones to believe that the food for them is found only nceording to the foreknowledge of God" and then quotes
in one part of the Scriptures, and that hence they literally a precious promise from the Old Testament,
should not waste their time in considering the promises to wit: "It is contained in the scripture, Behold, I lay
contained in the 01d Testament, the four Gospels, nor in Zion a chief cornerstone, elect, precious; and he that
in the Revelation. bclieveth on him shall not be confounded. Unto you
Succeeding in this, Satan would have such east away therefore whichbelieve he is precious. Ye also, as living
muchthat the Lord has provided for his people and has stones, are built up a spiritual house."--I Peter 2:5-7 ;
brought forth upon his table through his wise and faith- Isaiah 28 : 16.
ful steward. He would cause them to cast away God made promise to Abraham, saying, "In thy seed
"Tabernacle Shadows," the greater part of the STUDIES all the fmnilies of the earth shall be blessed." St. Paul
I~ T~ESC~IeTU~ZS, to disregard all the evidence of the quotes this promise, applies it to the church, the body
second presence of the Lord, and to deny, of course, and bride of Christ, and says: "If ye be Christ’s, then
that Brother Russell filled the office of the wise and are ye Abraham’sseed, and heirs according to the prom-
faithful steward; to disregard the evidence, Scriptural ise." (Galatians 3: 8, 27-29) Again, St. Paul says
and otherwise, of the harvest time and the harvest work ; the house of sons that Abraham’s wife Sarah pictured
to put aside all proof of the parallel dispensations and the great covenant and that her son Isaac was a type of
ehronolo~j, and hence to refrain from announcing the Christ. (Galatians 4:: 22-28) Again, the same Apostle
end of the world and the beginning of the reign of tells us that the law foreshadowedgood things to come,
Christ. Succeeding in this, he wolfld deprive such of and that the sacrifices of the animals under the law
the greater portion of the food which our Father has covenant were patterns o~ things in the heavens, and
lovingly prepared for his saints to strengthen them in that Christ has entered into the heavenly place to appear
this hour of great conflict. Yielding to this influence in the presence of Godfor us, the membersof the Christ.
of the adversary, soon such would be lulled to sleep --Hebrews10 : 1 ; 9 : 23, 24.
while he binds them hand and foot. Webelieve in the divine inspiration of the Scriptures
But no true child of God will be thus deceived. Such (Old and NewTcstamcnts), aad that these were speciM-
will remember the words of St. Paul addressed to the ly prepared for the householdof faith. Writing to these,
saints whenhe said that whatsoever things were written St. Paul again said: "All Scripture is given by inspir-
aforetime were written for our learning, that we through ation of God, and is profitable for doctrine, for rcproof,
patient endurance (of the hardships and trying ex- for correction, for instruction in righteousness; that
periences while contending for the faith) mayhave hope the man of God may be perfect, thoroughly furnished
of attaining the prize set before us. unto all good works."--2 Timothy 3 : 16, 17.
you the bread of adversity, and the water of affliction, speaking to the church, says: "I am jealous over you
yet shall not thy teachers be removedinto a corner any with godly jealousy; for I have espoused you to one
more, but thine eyes shall see thy teachers: and thine husband, that I may present you as a chaste virgin to
ears shall hear a word behind thee saying, This is the Christ." (2 Corinthians 11:2) The Prophet pictures
way, walk ye in it, when..ye turn to the right hand, and the Bridegroomspeaking to his bride thus: "I will be-
whenye turn to the left." (Isaiah 30: 20, 21) The great troth thee unto me forever; yea, I will betroth thee
Teacher is the Lord Jesus, whois nowpresent and con- unto me in righteousness, and in judgment, and in
ducting his own work in his own good way and who is loving-kindness, and in mercies. I will even betroth
making dear his Word to his people; and these are thee unto me in faithfulness: and thou shall know
instructed that they shall hear the Wordof God, writ- the Lord." (Hosea 2: 19, 2.0) Jesus, praying to the
ten in tim past by his holy prophets, directing the right Father for those whom the Father had given hhn,
way to go. namely, his faithful disciples, whoare the very pillars
And aa God’s sons in course of development journey of the eMrch, and for all of those thereafter whoshould
along the way though they may hecome tired and weary, come into like precious faith, prayed: "That they all
by feeding upon God’s Word and waiting upon him may be one, as thou, Father, art in me, and I in thee.
they will renew their strength. "They that wait upon that they also maybe one in us.’~--John 17: 21.
the Lord shall renew their strength; they shall mount The bride of Christ then necessarily must be a heaven-
up with wings as eagles; they shall run, and not be ly class. To these same ones our Lord said: "I go to
weary; and they shall wall<, and not faint."--Isaiah 40: prepare a p]aee for you. And if I go and prepare a
31. place for you, I will come again, and receive you unto
Anoflmr. precious promise written aforetime for our myself; that where I am, there ye maybe ,also." (John
benefit is, "Delight thyself’ also in the Lord ; and he shall 14: 2, 3) Thus the Lord himself definitely estab]ishes
give thee the desires of thine heart." (Psalm 37:4) the fact that his bride, the church, his body (meaning
"Trust in the Lord with all thine heart; and lean not one and the same thing), shall be associated wdh him
unto thine own understandiflg. In all thy ways ac- i]~ the heavenly kingdom. And this is the thing for
knowledge him, and he shall direct thy paths."--Prov- which we hope; and for this cause the Father provided
erbs 3:5,6. all things written aforetime, that we might in patience
The Scriptures, both Old and New Testaments, a- and comfort have our hope made bright. These are
bound with promises to the church. God has provided some of the precious promises.
for his sons in a very particular sense. All their steps Aeeording to all the Scriptural evidence, Jesus was
are ordered of him (Psalm 3? : 23) ; the very hairs due to make his second appearance in 187,1. Since then,
their head are numbered(Luke 12:7) ; his eyes are upon fulfilled prophecy furnishes the evidmmeconclusively
the righteous and his ears are open unto their prayers showing his presence. A~’eeable to his promise, he
(1 Peter 3:1~); his angels are ministering spirits in comes to claim his bride, and in due time to take her
their behalf, eneamping round about them, proteeting where he is. tits first work is a preparatory work; so
and delivering them (:Hebrews 1: 14; Psalm 34: 7); he began to gather unto himself those who have made a
he eauses all things to work together for their good covenant with the Father by sacrifice. The time or his
(Romans 8: 28) and no good thing will he withhold prese,ee would be "due season" to give the membersof
from them who walk uprightly before him.--Psahn the bride class their meat, that they might be encore’aged
84: 11. and strengthened. The Apostle shows that greater
THE BRIDE
understanding would come at the tinm of our Lord’s
One of the most beautit’ul pictures under which the presence. Therefore it is to be expected that the church
church is shown in the Scriptures is that of the bride would have somespecial food; that is to say. a clearer
of Christ. Satan would delight to destroy the comfort understanding of what the Father has prepa~’ed for her.
which the church receives [rom this precious promise. Agreeable to his promise, our Lord has girded him.-elf
In&reetly he would succeed in this if he could induce and made the church to sit dou-n to meat and has come
the church to believe that the bride is an earthly class forth to serve the members; and during his presence
and not the body of Christ. But he cannot succeed; for these have been bountifully served. True to his pro-
the Lord will not permit his ownto be deceived. mise, he appointed a faithful and wise steward through
Jesus is designated as the Bridegroom, the one who whomhe has given this meat in due season.--Luke 17:
has the bride. (John 3:29; Revelation ~l: 9) The 42 ; ~{atthew24 : 45.
Prophet pictures the Bridegroomrejoicing ovm"his bride. For whomcan this claim be made of all the men that
(Isaiah 62:5) The Bridegroom and the bride of ne- have been on earth aside from Brother Russell? In
cessity must have the same nature, otherwise there could due time came forth TJ~E WaTO~Tmwnannouncing
be no close and joyful relationship between the two. the presence of the Lord. In due season the church was
The bride is pietm’ed as a chaste virgin. St. Paul, given the ’"]’abernacle Shadows," picturing how God
876 The WATCH TOWER
has foreshadowed the great sin atonement by the sacri- designated the Queen of Jesus Christ. The Prophet
fice of hulls and goats under the Mosaic law. Likewise was given a vi~non of the calling and the preparation
in due time came "The Divine Plan of the Ages," for of the bride and her union with the Bridegroom, and
the first, l,nne since the apostles’ day beauhfully harmon- he described if, thus: "Kings’ dau._,,hters were amongthy
izing the great fundamental truths contained in God’s honorable x~omen:upon tby ri;~.ht hand did sta.nd the
Word which had long been hidden by the wrongful queen in gold of Ophm Hearken, 0 daughter [of
machhmtions of Satan. In due season followed each Jehovah]. and consider: and incline thine ear; forT, el
of the other ~olnmes of S’rum~.:s IN Tl-Tg SCRII’TURES, also thine ownpeople, and thy lather’s house; so shall
elueidm:ng these great fundamental truths and throw- the king [Jesus] greatly desire thy beauty: for he is
ing more light upon them. thy Lord; and worship thou him .... The king’s
Whomhas the Lord used to thus serve the church daughter is all glorious ~ithin: her clothing is of
meat in due season? Every one who desn’es to state wroughtgold. She shall he I)rought n~sh~tim loin..’., in
the facts must answerthat he used Charles :raze ]~us,,.ell. rat mel~t of needlework: t-he vi rg ins her compan io~s that
Not that Brother ]tussell himscl~ discovered the truth, follow her shall 1)e 1)rought unto thee. With gladness
but that in harmony with divine arrangement, the Lord and rejoicing shall they be brought: they shall enter
now present directed him in bringing together the into the king’s palaee."--Psalm ,15: 9-11.13-15.
fundamental principles of the divine plan, that the con- This is one of the things writteu aforetime in order
secrated, spirit-hegottcn ones might have a view of the that the church, while undergoing trials m~dtrdmla-
beauty and harmony of that plan. Others then, in con- lions, might endure them wdh patience, while at the
neetion wffh Pastor Russell, have worked on the details same tram feeding upon these precious things and re-
and for the church the light has continned to shine joicing in the hope of that glorious union which shall
more and more as we near the perfect day. take place whenall the membersof the bride class have
Keep in mind, then, that these truths have not been been selected. Thus we see the aSundant evidence that
brought forth by private interpretation, but that the the foui Gospels, the Revelation, and the Old Testnment
Lord hin~seIf, acting through his duly appointed way, --and in fact all the Scriptures, as the apostles state--
has done so. Let all those, then, whoinsist on a private were written that the manof Godmight be made perfect,
interpretation prove that they have occupied or now tha.t the church might be developed and that she might
occupy a special position of servants of the Lord to be comforted while the developing process is going on.
flRerpret his Word; and f~iling in this proof, let them What a wonderful ]~aflher we have! What a great,
keep silent. kind and loving God[ Foreknowing all the experiences
It was Jesus himself x~ho said to the church: his bride through which the church must pass, the manyvicissi-
in course of devglopmcl~t:"l?.c thou faithful unto death tudes to which she would be subjected, the trying times
and I will give thee a crown of life." "To him that of her faith, he has embodmdin his Word line upozl
overcometh will I grant to sit ~ith me in my throne, line, precept upon precept, here a little and there a
even as I also overcame, and am sot doun with my little, promise upon promise, to comfort and strengthen
]"afher in his throne."--llc~elation 2: 10; 3 : 21. the membersof his house while traveling the narrow way.
St. Paul uas one of this class; and he says that his
hope ~as to be forever with the Lord when he ~rote: INGRATITUDE DANGEROUS
"I l~n~e fought a good fight, I have finished mycourse, ]:Iumility is an essential attribute of the Christian.
I have kept the faith ; henceforth there is laid up for me :Humility leads one to be submissive to the Lord’s way.
a crownof righteousness, which the Lord, the righteous Concerning this the Lord announces his law thus:
judge, shall give me at that day: and not to me only, "Whatdoth the Lord require of thee, but to do justly,
but unto all them also that love his appearing." (2 aanl to love mercy, and to walk humhly with thy God?"
Timothy 4:: 7, 8) Surely no one would love the Lord’s (Micah 6:8) To walk humbly with God mea.ns to
appearing whoat this time fails to recognize his presence God’s way, not man’s way. Wedo well to ask ourselves,
and who repudiates the great anaount of evidence show- AmI sincerely trying to ascertain the Lord’s way, or
Jng his presence. am I endeavoring to find some new interpretation of his
St. John was of the sameclass, and he wrote to those Word? Do I study the Bible for the purpose of build-
of like precious faith: "It doth not yet appear what we ing up my own faith and that of others, or really to
shall he: but we know that, when he shall appear, we show wherein others have been wrong?
shall be like him; for we shall see him as he is." (1 St’. Peter shows that to be pleasing to the Lord we
John 3: ~) These likewise are some of the precious must go his way. "Be clothed with humility: for God
promises to comfort God’s people. resisteth the proud, and giveth grace to the hmnble.
Jehovah is the great King. Jesus, his beloved Son, :Humble yourselves therefore under the mighty hand of
is King and Lord of the church. The bride of Christ God, that he may exalt you in due time." (1 Peter 5:
Jesus, then, is the daughter of Jehovah and properly 5, 6) If Godhas provided l~recious promises in the
inspired Scriptures for the feeding of the church and continue to guide us or would he let us take our own
we should assume to say that only a part of tile Bible selfish ways?
is intended for the church, wonld that be submission 1),rotlld not such a course show an unthankful heart?
and walking humbly with God? If we believe that the Let us beware of flus da.nger. God ha~ing made ablm-
apostle Paul is an insp red witness of the Lord, then dent provision for his own and having been pleased to
we must believe ~llat he says, that all which was written send forth his beloved Son in due time, and the Lord
aforctime was written for the comfort of the church, having been pleased to appoint to the office of steward
that the church might have hope; and upon th~s we one faithful man, let us then beware of disregarding
should feed with joyfttl hearts. But if we dl~r:’gard the way the Lord has chosen and beware of the danger
a great portion and disregard the way the Lord ha~ pro- of seeking some other way.
vided, wouhl this show a thankful and submissive heart? Wetherefore earnestly urge upon the friends not to
Andif untlmnkful and proud, would we expect the Lord forsake the Berean studies, but to eontinue them regu-
to add his favor or to let us drift? larly. The Lord provided his people with the STUmES
To illustrate : kssmuethe position yourself of a father IN T]:tE SCRIPTURES and kindred publicatmns put out
who has provided well for his children. His table has through Brother Russell and his assocmtes in service.
been bOUldlfully laden with good and wholesome food. He has blessed abundantly this provismn to his people.
I-Iis sons have eaten at that table to their satisfaction Nowinstead of having too much preaching service,
for some years. After a time one of his sons conies to let us have more individual study and Berean lessons.
the father’s table and, lookin~ it over. says in substance: This will enable every one to feed more directly upon
’I do not believe the food that you have provided is that which the Lord has provided for us. To grow to
proper and adequate. I have found sonlethi,g better,’ the i,est adwnffage each individual nmst apply himself
and then turns away to feed upon food prepared by to feeding upon the food provided by the Lord and to
another. You would at once say: ’h[y son does not %’- exercising himself in harmol:y v,i~h such provision.
preeiatc what I have done for him. I shall let him Be of good courage, dear bre.thren. Our Father made
take his owncourse and suffer the results.’ abundantprovision for his house o[ sons lo,...; before the
What Christina today who has a knowledge of the foumlatiou of the world. _bin has protected and shielded
divine plan, who understands the philosophy of the the fadhful, humble ones a.ll the way.. ’.l:hus far he
ransomsacrifice and the sin-offering, the covenants, the has led us and he will lead us on. If, therefore, we
Abrahamic pro,nise, the mystery, and the restoration walk humbly with him sublmtting ourselves under his
blessings that will come through the seed of promise, mighty hand, gratefully receiving what he gives us and
has gotten that food anywhereelse their front the table holding fast our confidence a.nd rejoicing of hope unto
prepared by the Lord and which the Lord has caused the end, we shall reap the great and eternal reward.
his faithful and wise steward to serve during the past
BEREAN QUESTIONS
forty" years or more? Whol)rought forth the evidence
of the second presence of the Lord? Whogave Scrip- fro whom are these words addressed? 4 1
What obligations has an earthly father toward hisehihlren? ¶4 2-4.
tural proof of the time of the harvest and actively I-low will the ehihlren thus be benefited nnder the kingdom? 44 5,6.
Who conutltute God’s family? ¶ 7.
engaged in that harvest? Whomade clear all the ten How has God denmnstrated his love toward us? 49 8,9.
great fundmnental doctrines of the truth bidden from What Is faith? 4 10.
view, illustrated by the tea strings of the harp? Who I-law can we show sincerity in prayer? ¶ 11.
What arrangement has God for dispensing spiritual food? 49 12,
above all menhas been used of the Lord to gather to- 13.
Can we have a deeper appreciation of the truth now during the
gether Christians from all parts of the earth and from Lard’q presence? 4¶ 14. 15.
Why has Satan resisted the development of God’s ellihlren? 4 16.
all denonfinations, enabling them to see eye to eye con- What are tile dangers of private Interpretation ~ ¶9 17, 18.
SUlllnlal’ize the errors Satan IS nO’,’,’ en,ph;,sizmg? 4 19.
cernmg the divine plan? There is but one answer to IS God using the worldly-wise to hlterpret hiq Word? ¶ 20
this question, and that answer is, Charles Taze Russell. V,’l15 must Satan fail in deceiving tim Io3nl sons of God? 9¶ 21, 22.
Who only may understand the Scriptures? ¶ 23.
Whenthe physical facts so clearly and completely Explain Satan’s subtle tactics. ¶4 24-26.
Why must the new creature rely upon tile precious pronlise~?
show fulfillment of our Lord’s promise co,iccrnnlg his 44 27-30.
Why do we believe in the tnspiriatlon of both New anti Old Testa-
second presence, a servant, and the food for the house- nlents?44 31,32.
Who ~s the great teacher? ¶ 33.
hold of faith, who will attempt to gainsay that this is Whal i~ tile danger of ignoring certain parts of God’s Word?
the Lord’s way. ? If, then, we have been feeding at the ¶¶ n-l-aa
Why i~ tile bride of Chr,st a heavenly ela~? 9¶ 37-39.
Lord’s table these years past, have found the food satis- What evidence ele:u’ly ind.’ales the l,ord’s return in 18747 4 40.
Wily was Brother Russell tiler wise and faithful servant? ¶4 41,
fying and ha~ e received blessings in our hearts, and then 42.
Why is it a favor of the Lord to knnw tim truth ? 4 43.
should find ourselves later turning awayfrom that table Why should we rejoice in the Lord’~ second prc~enee? 44 44-46.
and seeking sustenance from some other, or assuming Why ,qre tile nanle~ queen and do,lahter allpliealfle to tile ebureh?
9¶ 47.48.
the role of a self-appointed interpreter and instructor "~V|ly sllolll(I lye apprel’iate the~e farm’, af Cod? ¶ 49.
What is tile danger of imrralilmln? ¶¶ 50-52.
of God’s Word, or following some other such private What truths did the Lord reveal througl~ his wise and faithful
interpre{atmn, should we expect that the Lord would servant? ¶ 53.
What safe plan can we follow? ¶¶ 54-57.
JESUS SENDING OUT MISSIONARIES
-- -- DECEMBER 3 -- LUKE9 : 1-62 ; 10 : 1-24 ---
SPHEREOF OPERATION WIDENED--RESULTSOF FIRST )IISSION----OUI~ LORD’SO~,VN]~I1SSION--CONFLICTWITHTEE DE’~[ONS-----T~’~O
MISSIONARY
TRIPS CONTRASTED----~OSIPELAND.~.FILLENNIAI, AGEWOR],7..
"The harvest indeed is pier,teens, but the laborers are Jew; pray ye there/ore the Lord of the harvest, that he se~zd
]orlk laborers i~to his harvest."--Luke 10:2.
sending out tile twelve apostles, and later tile seventy Jesus had now seen th’tt Jerusalem was against him, and
disciples, it includes such notable events as the miracle t]ad no plm-e for him; and also just about this time
of feeding 5,000 men, Peter’s confession of faith, the trans- Herod had put Jotm tile Baptist to death. It may be that
figuration, and many important sayings of our Lord. Our the mission of tim Twelve had been received by the people
space does not, of course, allow us to deal with all these. ill et, nlparativc silence; for there was aa ever-growing feel-
We are pleased Ill’it our lesson combines the accounts ing of suspicion about our Lord, Chilly.lied assiduously by
of the sending out of the twelve apostles and the seventy the leaders of tile people. Perlmps for the disciples’ en-
disciples; for though these events were not actually related couragment, and that he might give them more 1)ersonal
in point of time, and might have been included in separate instruction, and in the general interests of his mission,
lessons, they are related in a tigurative way, being illus- he now eall(~,d tllem to come apart and rest awllile. They
trative of the work of our Lord and the churcl] during took ship to go to the northeast side of tile lake; but their
both gospel and Millennial ages. going was noticed : and the crowd, who had not seen Jesus
for a time, went round ttm head of tile lake and met Ilim
SPHERE OF OPERATION WIDENED on tile other sid(,. There Jesus talked with them, telling
tllem of the kingdoln, and of the love of God, and "healed
After Jesus lind given the disciples llraetieal instruction theln that had need oI: henlmg."--T,ul;e 9: 11.
gained by their traveling with hin], lie llUrposed to widen
A~ the day wore on, the dls(-q)les ealne to ]linl, urging him
their experience and his sphere of operation by sending
them out two by two into the towns and villages of Galilee. to send the hi(ilL)tilde aw~|y in order that they might g,~t
It seems probable tllat lie intended to go alone to Jerusalem something to eat. l’er}mps they knew tlml to suggest to
him Ilia( he slmuld get something would be useless. Our
while they were thus engaged. He had now been in Galilee.
Lord replied: "Give ye them to eat" (Luke ;]:13); and
for a considerable tilne; and it would be wise for him
there is a mild rebuke in llis anawer. The disciples had fal-
to go back to Jerusalem for the encouragement of any there
len into a very common error, one into which the Lord’s
who had believed in him, and to continue Ills witness, that
disciples have since those days frc~lncntly fallell--tllut of
it might not appear tim( he had stayed away from Jeru-
attempting to direct llim, al](l to say how lie shouhl conduct
saleul out of fear og the Pharisees and chief priests.
his work. Surely it is better to consult the Lord than to
l’rollably our Lord thought it wiser to go alone than to suggest to him, to follow rather than to direct.
attract attention ~:o hilnself by taking t)is company of
twelve disciples wilh hin). Notoriety and the attraction of Finding th’tt tllere were in the eonLl)any jUSt five loaves
and two fishes, Jesus caused the disciples to m~d(e the
attention to a work are not always in due season; and
multitude sit down in order, in companies of fifty. Then
apparently the Lord judged so for hin).~elf on tllis occasion.
looking up to heaven, he blessed tt~e bread and the fislles,
In the meantilne his dice)tiles could be continuing bis work
and brake them; and they multiplied in Ills Iliads. Next
in Galilee and gaining experience. It is very probable that
he gave them to the disc)IdeS to set begore tile people; and
the events recorded in Jolln 5 took place on that Journey.
all ate and were satisfied. [’erhaps this object lesson taught
When Jesus was ready to send the Twelve out on their the disciples more of their true place in tile Master’s service
mission, lie called tllcm |ogetlmr and gave them power and and of their need of dependence upon llim. and of how they
authorily over all denmns, and diseases; to heal the sick; were to be carriers of the bread of life, than they had
and to preach the kingdom of God. This does not mean learned in their recent itinerary. Tids is our lesson: He is
that our Lord indued tlmm with the power of the holy the great multiplier: we are 01c channels of blessing, but
spirit: that could not be until later. It was an outward privileged to serve hilu in giving out that which he has,
power wllieh, as God’s representative, he could transfer to and to serve the multilude in conveying to thcnl tllat which
them, and which enabled them in his name to do the work the Master has to give.
to which riley were appointed. They were to go out, not Luke (loe~s not tell us of the SUb.~CllUellt events of that
so n]ueh to teach (for the time at their disposal did not night--of how Jesus, after the multitude had been dis-
allow of that, nor were they equipped for that work) but persed, told Ills disciples to go to the other side of the lake,
to preach; that is, to proclaim the fact of the kingdom, and of how he retired to the moulmdn to pray. it was on
and in the aforementioned way to manifest its power. It this occasion, owing to a storm on the lake, that the dis-
was to be a quick work; for Jesus wanted the people to ciples were unable to get across to the other side, although
mtve that witness given while there was an open door. they ]’owed all night; and that Jesus in the dawning light
of the morning apl)cared to then] walking on the w~ttcr.
RESULTS ~F THE FIRST MISSION When our Lord ~as here upon earth, he I)roke the bread
Lillle is said of the results. I~erhaps little was accom- of life for the lleOl)le. Then he g-ave his little band
plished, and very probably Jesus did not expect that much commission to meet him on the other side of the sea, and
would be accomplishc~. Also, as tlley had not the steady- he hinlsel£ went aw;~y up into the mountain--heaven. The
ing influences of the holy spirit, they might, had their churcl]rowed all night over the stormysea of the gospel
eommissiol] attracted much attention, have taken the glory age, and strength and faith were well nigh gone. In the
to thenlselves r’ttller than have gi.ven it to hit)]. Their work dim lightof the morning,in 1574,he "Uplleared" to the few
was to amplify Ills work and personal service, not to act faithful souls who desired him tO return, coming on the
Dgcm~fnF,R 1. 1922
me WATCH TOWER 379
troubled waters. But even his own were at first afraid. had, during their ministry recently accomplished, east out
Timy wondered whether these grand truths then being man- evil spirits according to the commission which was given
ifested were of the Lord till the Lord made his voice heard. to them. Why then were they unable to do this now? IS
"It is I," lie said, "Be not afraid." Then, as with the the answer Indicated In verse forty-six? Apparently the
disciples of old, they received him gladly; and since then disciples were too busy considering their position tn re-
the Lord’s people have never had the slightest reason for lation to each other, to allow his words to have due effect,
doubting his presence with them. Perhaps it was for this reason that tim Lord said, as if
speaking with emphasis, or a measure of rebuke: "Let
OUR LORD’S OWNMISSION these sayings sink down into your ears." (Luke 9:44)
These many calls upon our Lord and upon the disciples-- In any case we know that those who are absorbed with
for they of necessity would be kept busy along with him-- questions about their relative position amongs~ the brethren
prevented them from getting tile quiet he desired. As It are unable to do the works of God; they are like the nine
was now necessary tllat the apostles should be more fully apostles, impotent In the face ol evil.
Instructed concerning his plans and his personal mission
and his relationship to them, he took them away northward, TWO MISSIONARY TRIPS CONTRASTED
going as far as the coasts of Cmsarea Philippi. It was there It was after these things that the seventy disciples were
that what is sometimes known as Peter’s great confession sent out. Our Lord’s ministry was getting limited; for he
was made, and there for tile first thne that the disciples was not welcome in Jerusalem, as we have seen, and he
saw something of Jesus as the Christ. (Matthew 16: 13-20) lind already gone over Galilee, in great measure personally,
It was there that he first mentioned the fact of’the church, and then by the twelve apostles; and the allotted time of
and then told them plainly about his death. Peter, in the his ministry was nearly expired. But there was still a
impulsiveness so common with him, dreading the thought considerable district on the east side of Jordan, in Perea,
of the Lord being hurt and taken away from them, urged where but little witness had been given; and in order that
him to consider himself, and not to allow such a thing to everything possible might be done, the Lord now gathered
haplmn. And then, so soon after Peter had been honored seventy of his disciples together, and sent these into the
with this blessing from the Father, Jesus spoke to him towns and villages whither lie himself would go. He said :
sharply, saying, "Get thee behind me, Satan: thou art an "The harvest truly is great, but the laborers are few." He
ofi:ence unto me." (Matthew 16:23) Our Lord took occasion gave them a commission, very fully related in Luke 9 : 1-16.
by this incident to show the cost of discipleship; that for Indeed, according to Luke’s Gospel, lie appears to have
the disciple, as for himself the Master, the only way to life given more particular detail to the Seventy than he had
was through death, I)y sacrifice unto death to glorious fnture done to the Twelve. But Matthew’s account of the com-
service (Matthew J0 : 25-27) ; and that he who would "save" mission of the Twelve shows that our Lord saw In it a
his life as Peter suggested should surely lose it. miniature of the true witness through the gospel age.
After they had spent some time In that neighborhood they Generally speaking, the commission given to the Seventy
c’tme south into Galilee; and Jesus took Peter, James, an~.l corresponds to that given to the Twelve. But there is one
John into tim mmmt, nnd was transfigured before them; hnportant difference: the Twelve, according to Matthew’s
a representation of lhe honor and glory that were to be his account, had commission to raise the dead (Matthew 10:8),
in the glorious nmjesty of the kingdom. (2 Peter 1: 17, 18) though there is no record of their having wrought any
On coming down from the mount a strange scene met the snch miracle. The sending out of the Seventy may be
eyes of Jesus and the three apostles. At the foot of the considered as the opening of the last phase of our Lord’s
hill a great crowd had assembled. Hearing that Jesus had ministry. When sending them out Jesus took occasion to
returned, a father had brought his boy who was grievously speak concerning cities which had seen so many of his
afflicted with an evil spirit, that he might be he’tled. When marvelous works. Over Bethsaida and Chorazln he pro-
he arrived Jesus was away; and apparently he had asked nounced woes, while Capernaum, which "had been exalted
the apostles to cast out the evil spirit; but they were to heaven," should be brought down to Hades.
impotent. It turned out to be one of the worst, if not
Our Lord himself continued his ministry while the Sev-
actually so, of the cases of this kind that Jesus had. He
enty were away. In due time they returned with their
called for the boy to be brought; and while he was yet
hearts filled with joy because, as they said, "even the devils
coming the demou "threw him down and tare him." But
are snbJeet unto us through thy name." (Luke 10: 17) TImt
the unclean spirit was cast out and the boy was healed
same hour our Lord was exalted in spirit. He had a vision
and deliverc<l to his father.
of the downfall of Satan and Satan’s empire, and of the
exaltation of righteousness, and of the earth freed from the
CONFLICT WITH THE DEMONS
oppression of evil, and of God glorified.
Probably there is something significant in this incident.
At the thue of our Lord’s first advent, as now in the time BEREAN QUESTIONS
of his second, there was a gre*Jt deal of demoniacal obsession ;
and it almost seems as if after any special time of man- What does the l~son Include? ¶ 1.
The lesson is illustrative of what work? ¶ 2.
ifestation of divine pleasure, or any special circumstance, What purpose had Jesus in sending out missionaries? ¶ 3.
the Lord was immediately met with this kind of obstruction Whydid not Jesus go along with one of the parties? ¶ 4.
VChat instructions did the Lord give to his disciples? ¶ 5.
from the devil And it may be that these Incidents are W’hat was accomplished in the first missionary trip? ¶ 6.
brought into relationship in this chapter in Luke’s gospel Whomet Je~uus on the other side of the lake? ¶ 7.
Into what commonerror did the disciples fall? ¶ 8.
that the church, represented by the apostles, might get those What object lesson was given to the disciples? ¶ 9.
lessons which are necess’lry for its fullest service. The What ~et’e tho subsequent events of that night? ¶ 10.
Howwere the events of our day foreshadowed? ¶ 11.
church’s way now is in conflict with the powers of evil; What .things did the Lord nowrelate to his disciples? ¶ 12.
and only as we keep near the Lord can we hope to get What d~(l the transfiguration scene represent? ¶ 13.
mastery over them. How can we overpo~’er Satan and his demons? ¶ 14.
Why is whole-hearted service necessary? ¶ 15.
We may reasonably take It that the nine apostles, who Into what region did Jesus send the sm, enty disciples? ¶ 16.
in this case were quite unable to exorcise the evil spirit, Contrast the two missionary trips. ¶ 17.
Whywere the returning disciples fired with ;joy? ¶ 18.
STORY OF THE GOOD SAMARITAN
-- --- DEcE,MBERX0--LuKI~ 10: 25-37.----
Ol:1’, I.OI:D’S ’]’I]AeHING AI~LLITY--STORY OF TIlE GOOD SA~JARITAN--0UR RESPONSIR[L1Ty AS A ~,’E[GIIBOR--AN INCORRECT CON-
CLUSION--’rHE C]IURC/-/ IN POLI’I’ICS~£RUE MISSION OF TME CI-IURC]-/--’I’J{E GOLDEN RULE IN PRACTLCE--1LLUSTRATION Og
PI’ESENT-I)AY CONDITIONS,
"Thou. Mtalt low lh, y neighbor as thyself."--Levitieus 19:18.
BROTIIER a. A. BOHNET
BROTHER G. R. POLLOCK
Springfield, Mo............... Dec. 17 Ash Crove, Mo............... Dec. 24
St ,Tames, 31o ................. " 1~ l:.hvar. Mo.................... " 25 V;~neouver, B. C ....... Dec. 22, 24 Nanaimo,B. C ................. Jan. 7
](olin. .Mo...................... " 39 Chnton, Mo................... " 2G Victoria, B. C ..... Dee. 31, Jaa. 1 Matsque,B. C ................ " 9
Loh.qI’eOn. .~I0 ................... ~’ ’)0 Coal, 5b~ ...................... " 27 3inlahat, B. C .................. Jaa. 2 Clayl)urll, B. C .............. " 10
~.’el’olla, .~[o..................... " 2I De(q~walt.I, M0.............. " 28 I,ml3smirh, B. C ............. " 3 Sardis, B. C ................... " 11-
MonetL M~..................... " 22 Chilho~ic, MO................ " 30 Port AII)erni. B. C ........... Jan. 4 Chilhwael~, B. C ..... JaN. 12, ],4
Courtenay, B. C ............. " 5 Agassiz,B. C.................. Jam 15
BRO’I’IIER E. F. CRIST
Jh’ockville, Ont ........ Dec. ]5, 17 St. 3ohn. N. B ............. Dee. 24
11 oq(1Ol~.0111................... Dec.1 .q ]q’,nndate, N. g ............... ’" 3t BROTHER B. M. RICE
M(mtrea]. Qua ............... " ]9’ T’lai.m. Me........................ J~LII.3
Sherbvool~e, Que............. " 20 Lincoln, Me.................... " 5 Terrell, Okht................... Dec.15 Plallo, Texas.................... Dee 22
W..drtnek, N. It .......... " 21 OhRowlL 3Ie ..................... " 7 W~ehitrt ].’alls. Texas .... " "17 Dallas,, Texas ............ Dee. 24 25
Fredericton. N. B ......... " 22 lMngor.51e ....................... " 8 Electra, Texas ................ " 18 \~ e:,l herford, Texas ..... Dec. "6
]3owie. Texas.................. " 19 l:;~.MJal,d, Texas............. " 27
Stoneburg, Texas ............ " 20 Abchnc, i’exas ............. " 28
BROTIIER A. J. ESHLEMAN l"ol’t \~’01"th, Texas........ " 21 Metkel, Texas ................ " 29
3-ennings, La ................ Dec. 17 Bot:ah~a. La ................. Dee 2(;
C’nx~ ev, La ................. "’ 18 Zona,I ,a ..................... 2S
]Lttnn Rouge, I,a .......... " 19 ]’icayu’.e. La ................. " 29 BROTH ER V. C. RICE
]-’.l.~om,La.................... " 21 HalllO:’)lll ff Miss ......... " 31
Sidell, La .................... " ’2’2 Gulfpo.’t, Mi~u................ Jaa. 1 ¥irgelie, Moat................. lice. :19 Casper. Wyo .............. Jan. 2
New Orleans, La ...... Dec. 24.25 Laurel. Miss..................... " 2 Gt’eat Fall.% Mont. Dee. 21. 22 C]leyell lie, XVyo ............... " 4
l’utte, Moat..................... Dcc. 2-t (;~e(:ley, Colo................... " fl
Deer Lodge. Moat ......... " 25 I ~O(llder,CO]O ................... " 7
BROTIIER M. L. IIEltl’, Mi,~uoula, Moat........ 27 1;erthoud, Cola ................. " 8
l’ablo, Moat............... Dec. 28,29 Denver,Colo.’ .................... ~ l~
Pale~tine, Texas ......... Dec. 2l Tarplej. Texas ............... Dee. 29
Austin. Texas ........... 22 1~:1a(loA’:t. Texaq.............. " 31
San Antonio. Texas Dee 2,1.25 ]jtnlllA. Te.x;Is .................. JIln. 2
Dee. 26 Sill) .,~I.al’ci)q, TeKas .......... " 3
Kerrville, Texas ............. BROTHER O. L. SULLIVAN
Comfort, Texas .......... 27 ’l’emi ,hL"l’e.’xll ~ .................. " 4
Pipe Creek, Texas ....... " 28 lies(1’o[), Texas.................. "
De 17’umak Spring% Fla. Dee. 17 VVayne.sboro, Mis~ ......... Dee. 24
"1’e:lsneola, I, 1,1 ............ " 1S Mc,’ulian, MIss............... " 25
Bay Minette, A ............. " ]9 Seh’,1. Ala..................... " 27
BROTtlER W. M. llERSEE Sdverlull. Ala ................. " 20 M,)utgontery, Ale .......... " 28
Mobile.Ala.................... " 2L UmonSprings, /tl;t ..... 29
Woodstock. Oat ............. Dec. 2-I Sa1"Ilia. Ol~t.................... ’In ~] l ] 0 " 22 Clayton, Ale ........ " 31
ChalhanL0nt ................. " ll liter Park, Ala .............
]nuersnll Oat ................... Jan 3
Tl[ame-ford, 0at ............. " 4 Windsor. On( ............ Jail 1-.2, 14
Nile~town.Oat ................. " 5 Lelllllillgl()l|, (Jilt ..... " ] 5, 1G
Londoll.Ollt ..................... " 7 IHenheim.Oat ................. Jaa.]7 BIIOTtIER W. J. THORN
Petro]ia, Ont ................... " 9 Ridgeton.Oat ................. " 18
Rome,N. Y..................... Dee. 13 Loekport, N. Y ............... Dec. 20
iMannsville, N. Y. .......... " 14 Nia~::H’a Falls, N. Y ....... " 21
BROTIIER B. HOWLETT Waterlc~un. N. "~ ........... " J5 TOII~LV~;III(Ia, N. Y ........ " 22
Gloversvllle, N. Y ......... " 17 l:m]Hle. N. Y............. Dec. 24, 25
Elko,B. C......................... Dee. 4 Shellbrnok. Sa~k ........... Dee. ]3 ]¢ort Johnson, N. Y ....... " 18 We.~tlield, N. Y...............
Cam~uood.Sa~k ............. " 14 Dee. 26
Fernie,B. C..................... " 5 Rochester, N. Y ............. " 19 Erie, Pa........................... " 2"/
MaeLeod.Alia ................ " 6 Prince Albert. Sa~’k ....... " 15
Regina, SaCk............ Dee. 8, 10 Dedholm,.~:u-’k ............... " ]
Blad~ordL Sask ............. Dee. ] l N.rlh Battleford, Sask. " 19
Saskatoou, Sask ............ " 12 Edam,Sask .............. Dec. 20, 21 BROTIIER T. H. TtlORNTON
Mariamm,]0a ............... I)ee.]4 Tamp,q,Fla ................. ].’)ee. 22
Monticello. Fla .............. 2’ 15 St.. l’etersburtL Fla. Dee. 2,t, 25
CONVENTIONS
TO BE ADDRESSED
BY BROTHER
RUTHERFORD Jacksonville, Iela .......... " 17 lh’ad(mlowH. Fie ........... Dec. 26
CLEVEL;~ND,O., Dec. 10 ; IIJ~ttt W. Mathews, 752.l llarvard Ave., S.E. (.;1’eel! Co’.e SIlt’HIgh. Via " lS .,\ rcall[:l, l’h| ................... " 2"/
Palatka, Fie .................. " -19 ]~lllltH I~Ol’(la, ~la ......... " 28
BOSTON.ASS.. Dec. 17 ; Alexander Ogston, 4~ Wyllis Ave., Everett. Waldo, :Fla ..................... " 20 Lake]and,Ha ................. " 29
BROOKLYN, N. Y., Dec. 24;
T. M. P, edwin, 8118 Chiehester Ave.. Woodhaven, L. I.
DAYTON,
0., Dee. 31; ........................... P. D. Pottle. 36-½ E. 4th St.
IIYMNS FOR JANUARY
I BS’A. BEREAN
BIBLESTUDIES Sunday
Monday 1
...........
34
7 130
8 136
14
15
13
R15
21
22
279 28 44
57 29 292
ByMeansoF"The Plan of the Ages" Tuesday 2 191 9 t77 16 29~ ~3 180 30 330
Chapter IX: Ransom and Restitution Wedn,,sday 3 1 10 83 17 217 24 45 31 21
Weekof Jan. 7 .......... Q. 20-24 Weekof Jan. 21 .......... Q. 8-14 Thursday 4 313 11 18 18 309 25 363 ...........
Weekof Jan. 14 .......... Q. 1-7 Weekof Jan. 28 .......... Q. 15-21 ’~
Quemtlonbooks on "TheDlrine Plan" 15¢ poetpaid. Friday 299 1 52 19 114 "~6 149 ........
Saturday 6 74 13 304 20 163 27 150 __ --
\
". , .." ;’
.’....:’~
,, ¯¯,
~.’~, %:,;,
°~.::. ¢.
CONTENTS
\NNUAL ]~.EPORT FOR 1922 .......................... 3~7
l-’r] n ted ~Vi t ne.~s ........................ 38:4
Field Ol’g;tnlz:tt mn ................. 11.~!)
Coll)ortetlr l)epfl;’tlllt:lH ...................... 3S9
I-Ionor Roll ........................................ 3: (
VO]tllli(~el" ~el"~ ice ...................... :~[)()
P]Igruu Service ................................ 3q0
World-WideWitneSs .......................... 391
Foreign Work..................................... :~!]2
Ct)nt cottons ...................................... 3!)2
Organized Action .............. " ................... 392
Financial Summary .................................. 3!)::
:\DVERTISI~ THE ]~ING AND KINGDOM............. 394
l~E~SO,’q IN TIIU,C~T AND ~*REPARED~ESS............. 394
TIIE SPIRIT OF SERVICE
...................................... 397
is the new nation that is coming into power. Such at ularly interested in the report based upon these two
this time is the only nation whose God is Jehovah and general points.
whomJehovah hath chosen for his own purposes. It St. Paul points out that we are ambassadors for
will be observed that the above rendering of this text Christ, as though we speak in Christ’s stead; and that
shows that God has selected this people for a purpose; God is speaking by Christ through us, that we might
and his purpose is the reconciliation to himself of the bring to the world his message of reconciliation. (2
world. Corinthians 5:20) An ambassador is one who repre-
While the nations of the old world are rapidly dis- sents his potentate. As ambassadors we represent the
integrating and are desperately seeking some means to Lord azaongst the people of the calChly natmns; and
establish themselves, it is the privilege and duty of we can with propriety apply the words of the Psalmist
God’s chosen people, tile holy nation, to point out to to ourselves: "Blessed is the nation whose Godis the
Lord; and the people whomhe hath chosen for his
the peoples of earth that moneyis not the God, neither
own inheritance."
is might nor earthly w,sdom; but that Jehovah is the
only true God, and that Jesus Chris~ is the King of Wetake great pleasure in acknowledging before men
kings and Lord o~ lords. It is the privilege of the that we recognize Jehovah as the only true God and
Lord’s people, as well as their duty, to advertise to the Jesus as his long-promised King. Never was a greater
new world the new King and his kingdom and to com- honor conferred upon any creature than to be the am-
fort men’s hearts by showing them that this kingdom bassador of such a King. And since we are commanded
is the remedy for the ills of humanldnd and that it to do with our might what our hands find to do, we must
will bring peace and lasting blessings to mankind. do this in order to be ~aithful and true witnesses of
To educate the people concerning the divine plan is this great kingdom.
the purpose for which the Watch Tower Bible & Tract To this end the work of the Society at headquarters
Society was created and orga~ized. For thirty-eight is organized, insofar as we are able, on a basis of
years it has been in existence as an incorporated body, efficiency. It is d~vided into forces, and each one is
but existed prior to that thne as an association of expected to do his i)art in the place where put; and
Christians under the leadership of the Lord’s wise and we believe that all are doing it to the best of *heir
faith[u[ servant. Those who love the Lord Jesus’ up- abi]ity, by the Lord’s grace.
pearing, and who love him and the heavenly Father
PRINTEDWITNESS
supremely, who recognize the presence of the Lord and
whoave trusting in the merit of his sacrifice, are fully 0~e of the most effective ways of g~ving the witness
consecrated to do God’s will and are heartily engaged to the Lord’s kingdom is by inducing others to read
in doing it, are properly considered membersof this our literature in connection w~th their Bibles, thus
Society. Certain qualifications have been fixed as to proving that the things taught are true. Experience
those who shall vote; but this does not preclude others has shown that where a person buys a book he is much
from being classed as members of the Society who are morelikely to read it than if receiving it as a free gift.
in full heart harmony with the Lord’s way aml whoare Of course our real purpose is to get the message into
working together in harmony with their brethren to his hands. Where one has not the money to buy, how-
carry out the purposes for which this Society was cre- ever, and desires to read, the rule of the Society is and
ated and organized. always has been to give them free reading matter; and
Wethink that we can say with propriety and with to this end muchliterature has been given away during
proper modesty, that the Watch Tower Bible & Tract the year.
Somety is the only united body of Chrishans on earth Those having the responsibility of managing the
who joyfully acknowledge Jehovah as God and Jesus work at the headquarters reasoned that, as the time
as [hng ~mdwho, believing in the presence of the ICing of trouble increases, strikes and labor difficulties would
a~,t his kingdom, are unitedly making proclamation of render more uncertain the procurh~g of manufactured
thc.~e great truths to mankind. "~q~at a blessed privi- books when printed and bound by worldly concerns;
lege it is. then, that as followers h~ the ~fastcr’s foot- that the enemy, would certainly take advantage of
steps we are permitted now to be members of his an every opportunity to hinder and if possible to stop
W
this side the vail and to be used of him in earwing the Society’s work; but that if some arrangeme.t might
out his purposes l As his followers there are two prin- be made whereby the books could be printed and bound
cipal things for us to do at this time: namely, (1) by consecrated hands, we would thus be indcpemlcnt
be faithful and true witnesses to the Lord; and (~) of much of the labor trouble and difficulty and more
see to it that we are being transformed hlto the like- likely to get the witness to the people; that in addition
ness of our Lord and Master by feeding upon his Word to this, in time we cmddproduct the books at a saving
and permitting his spirit to control us, looking forward of cost and soon be able to put them into the hands
to that happy time when our hopes will be consummated of the people at a cheaper price.
and we shall be forever with the Lord. Youare pattie- Several difficulties, however, confronted us; among
re WATCHTOWER am
others, Could the machinery and other equipment be OTHERLANGUAGES
bought on time? The Society has no legal power to This printing, of course, includes printing done in
borrow moneyfor procuring machinery or for any other languages other than English: naancly, Arabic, Ar-
purpose. What, then, could be done? The result was menian, Armeno-Turkish, Croatian, Czechoslovakian,
that an arrangement was made by which machinery for German, Greek, Hungarian, Itahan, Lithuanian, Po-
printing and binding the books was bought in the name lish, Russian, Ukrainian aald Swedish.
of private parties, brethren in the truth, on time pay- In addition to the English headquarters at Brooldyn,
ments, so that the debt could be paid off in monthly during the year there has been removed from Detroit
installments. I-Ience instead of a profit being paid to the Polish headquarters and united with the office at
worldly institutions for making books, this amount Brooklyn. Wehave thus been enabled to reduce the
could be applied monthly to reducing the debt; and operating cost of the Polish wor to some extent, be-
whenthe debt is cancelled, the plant will belong to and sides hawng all the work under one managemellt. For
be used exclusively for the benefit of the Society, and the various domestic foreign branches and their or-
then we shall be able to reduce the selling price of all ganization, which is operated from the main office at
the books we publish. Brooldyn, we refer our readers to the report ol 1921,
By the Lord’s grace such an arrangement was made where the details are set forth.
and is being carried out. A maxmfacturing plant was
FIELD ORGANIZATION
equipped with the latest presses, typesetth~g machines,
electroplating outfit, cutting, folding and binding ma- The efficiency with which the witness must be given
chinery. The task seemed almost impossible; but our of necessity depends largely upon tim organized efforts
brethren, trusting in the Lord, put forth their efforts; made in the field. Weexpect, of course, the number
and the Lord has added his blessing. engaging in this work to be small; for it is only a
The establishment of this printing and binding plant little flock who love the Lord supremely, and by this
has in no wise interfered with the use of the voluntary small band he is giving the witness.
contributions to the tract fund to carry on the work; During the year, 980 classes in the United States
but in course of time it will be a benefit to this and, we have reported as fully organized and engaged in the
hope, will enable us to enlarge the work and especially work, and 8,~70 persons reported as working. Their
to help peoples who cannot help themselves. Already work consists in calling upon the people, canvassing
advantage has resulted; and we now see the way clear them for the books, and inviting them to the meetings,
to reduce the selling price of T~E HaRe o~ GoD, thus giving a personal face-to-face ~4tness and induc-
beginning with December 10, to 35c. As soon as pos- ing others to read the message.
sible the price on all of our other publications will be There have also been engaged during that time 531
reduced. Wefeel very grateftfl to the Lord for malting sharpshooters, who devote such thne as they can to
this work. Including th~.e in the list o~ workers of
this arrangement, and feel certain that it has been
done with his approval and that it will result in gtving class organizations the total number amounts to 8,801
a wider witness to the truth. workers. The wecldy average of those engaged in th~s
achvity has been 2,250 workers. They have arrangc,l
Manydifficulties having been overcome by the Lord’s for mauy meetings and have organized many Bible
grace, the plant was started in ]~arch of this year. It study classes; and thus they have done a work that is
is mannedin e~ery department by consecrated brethren. impossible for rely one this side the vail to describe in
Th> affords more brethren opportunities of service
detail. Its full effect will be known in due time when
where they otherwise m.ght not have it. Not one cent we see our Lord face to face. While we realize that hr:
of profit resulting from this plant has been used or does not need any one to work for him, it ~s a blessed
will be used for any private individual, but every part privilege to knowwe have a part in the wo,’k.
of it for the purpose of spreading the message of the
Lord’s kingdom. COLPORTEUR DEPARTMENT
Someidea can be gathered as to what has been done During the year there have been 2,6!) pel’sO,lS actively
by tMs plant since its starting by obse,’ving the follow- engaged in the colpo,’teur ~erwce, and 193 persons in
ing figures. It has published and botmd the following, the attxiIiary eolporteur service. The eol porteurs really
to wit : bear the brunt of the battle in the fieht. Their noble
Handbills...................................................... 806,200 example is an inspiration to every one who is striving
Books
.......................................................................... 623.620 to give a witness to the truth. Weverily believe that
Copies of T~ Wa’rc~rTower............................ the eolportears accomplish really more good than any
1,204.4.50
Copiesof TI-tE GOLDEN A0E.................................. other one branch of the service; for they are eonstanth’
2,0"46,320
Window cards, o-talogs, etc ............................... 41,Z50 coming in contact, face to face, with the people; and
Free tracts ........................................... 10,085,000 their earnest, zealous method of telling others about
the Lord’s kingdom leaves an hnpressiou that is last-
14,806,840 ing. Wewould that more could actively engage in the
1190
WATCH TOWER
colporteur service exclusively ; but not every one is able Some of these classes have given a wide witness in
to make expenses in that work, and others are hindered the rural districts in mid about the cities mentioned,
by some influences not subject to their control. organized meetings in schoolhouses and vacated
During the past year this noble band of workers has churches; an([ thus they have accomplished a tremen-
placed in the hands of the people a large number of dous amount in advertising the King m~d his kingdom.
books and other literature. There have been sent out Several of the classes had a large stock of the
from this office for this purpose the following: Combinations on hand at the beginning of the year.
STUDIES ~r~w~aEScnlI~rly~ns,Scenarios,etc ........... Someof these classes have disposed of all of their stock,
125,060
"Millions"
books
.......................................................... 11S,,f59 while others have nmeh of it on hand; and the ones
"Call tile Living Talk with tile Dead?" books .... 66.016 who have disposed of their stock have been the ones
"Hell," "%’al~ern,’tele Shadows,"& other booklets 30,:268 who are more active in getting everybody in the class
Tr~E
][.~RL"
OVGee.......................................................... 2qO.:l(;:q
WATCH TOW]~]:Peprints ............................................
who possibly can do so to engage in the work.
10.378
Zgs.................................................................................... 7,947
VOLUNTEERSERVICE
Total
............................................................................648,49t The distribution of free tracts does not afford the
Sales by classes from their stock on hand far exceeded opportumty o[ so much person,~[ witness as by can-
this nnmber. vassing for the books. Besides, as above observed, one
Mm is more likely to read a book when purchased. We do
U workers are reporting sphmdM success in or-
ganizing Berean Bible studies, ushlg TJ-FE HAIIP OF not wish to be understood, however, to say that the
GODas a textbook. It is understood that Tltr. tla~r volunteer work is not profitable; for the Lord has
OF GoD does not in any wise supplant the S’ruDIl~s blessed it in times past and he still blesses it. As here-
iN T~E Scnr[,munxs, but is merely an epitome, stated tofore stated, all the plates for the free literature hav-
in simple language, for the benefit of be.gimlel’s; and ing been destroyed dttl’tng the trouble of 1918, such
it is hoped that classes started in this study may soon free tracts have not been used to any extent since. TJ~
GOLDE~, ~ AO~was intended largely to take the place of
take up the entire set of STUDIESIX TILE Sclm>’ruaES.
such, and dm’ing the year 687,320 copies were given
HONOR ROLL away free.
While we do not wish to make comparison of the The resolution passed at the Cedar Point Convention
efforts put forth by the workers in various parts of later was embodied in a tract for wide distribution.
the field, yet it seems that some of the classes are Ten million of these tracts were printed for the United
entitled to special mention because of their zeMous States, with another million for AustrMia and Canada;
efforts put forth in giving the witness. Brother Russell and October 31, the anniversary of Brother Russell’s
always held that a class which devoted itself largely change, was set for a general distribution of these
to Berean studies, canvassing for the books and organ- tracts in the United States and Canada. In addition
izing new classes, made greater progress and did more thereto the same tract is published in the following for-
really effective work than where there is so much eign languages for distribution in the United States:
preaching done. The reports in the office show that
the classes whose ciders go out every Sunday to preach Arable
.............................................................................. 6,000
to some other class, and who give less attention to Ariilenian
....................................................................... 20,000
Arnmno-Turklsh
.......................................................... 10,000
Bercan studies and to placing of the books in the hands Bohelaian ........................................................................ 40.000
of the people, have not made great progress. German ........................................................................ 25o,000
Amongst those who should be favorably mentioned Gi’eek ............................................................................... 200,1 i00
are the following classes: 1-Iunga rian...................................................................... 30.1)00
I taI i an..............................................................................
100.1100
Watertown, N. g. SprilJgfield, Me. Lithuanian ...................................................................... 20Ai00
Tulsa, Okla. 1~3. St. Louis, 111. I’olisli..............................................................................100,000
Charlestown, W. Va. San Jose, Calif. Itussian ............................................................................ 10,000
Norfolk, Va. Seattle, Wasl~.
E-tston, Pa. Chaltcellor, S. D. 786,000
Philadelphia, Pa. St. I,onis, MO.
Portland, Ore. Baltimore, Md. In addition to the above, more than $20,000 have
South Norwalk, Conn. Newl~fll’t ~?%rews, Va. been sent to Ioreign~ countries to be used ahnost ex-
Buffalo, N. Y. Cill(:illu/tli, O. (colored) clusively in printing this tract in different languages
Tacoma, Wash. £’%~aSll%illo, Tenn.
Pitlsburgh, Pa. Petol’bl)ll rg, 1,’1/. for free distribution. The hope is that within the nex-t
Greensboro, N. C. New York, N. Y. (color~) few weeks every part of the earth where the truth is
Lancaster, Pa. Topeka, l(ans. known will be reached with this free tract. Up to the
Boise, Ida. Oakland, Calif. time of this report something above 35,000,000 copies
Stevens Point, Wis. Washington, D. C.
Columbus, O. Spokane, Wash. are either printed or in course of printing for free dis-
Kansas City, Mo. tribution.
DECnMnE~15, 1922
WATCH TOWER
BULLETIN United States and Canada. The number of public
There are issued monthly from this office 10,000 cop- meetings held by the brethren in the United State.,
ies of the "Bulletin" to the classes in the United States during the year is, to wit, 3,648; the total attendance
alone. These arc sent to the classes for distribution at these public meetings, 645,804, the numberof visits
amongst the workers, so that each worker may have a made by the brethren, 6,367 ; the numberof class meet-
personal communicationfrom the office for his encour- ings held, 7,880; the total attendance at the class meet-
agement and direction in the work, as well as the gen- ings, 373,207. The total number of miles traveled by
eral "Bulletin" that goes to the Director. The classes those engagedin the service is, to wit, 488,738
through their chosen servants make regular reports to In ad&tion to this work brethren from the United
this office, so that there is a well-organized, systen~,atic
States have visited foreign countries in giving the wit-
effort in carrying on the activities in the field. ness for the truth. Brothers Rutherford, Gouxand Mar-
tin were in Europe something over two months, a full
THE GOLDEN AGE report of which visit has heretofore appeared in T~E
The work done by TI{E GOLDEN AGEmagazine during WA~c,<Towel~. Brother ttemery of the British office
the past year has been very gratifying. Readers of this madea brie[ tour of the United States, visiting a re:m-
magazine commend it from every part of the field. It is her of classes. Brother hi. A. Howlett is nowin Aus..
necessary, of course, to carry some worldly news and tralia, and will work out both Australia and NewZea~
secular matters in order to get this publication into the land. Brother Gem’ge Young has made an extended
homes of those who are not in the truth. Wefeel sure t,’ip through the British West Indies, British and Dutch
that it has a place in the Lord’s work and that he is Gttiana, and other pa~{s of South America; and the
blessing it. During the past year the copies of T~E reports h’op., his meetings show that the Lord has
GOLDEN AGEsent out to subscribers and for samples bh’~sed his work abundantly. During the latter part of
have been 2,046,320, which, if sent forth in tract form, the 3’car Brothers Woodworthand Piekering were in
would be equivalent to 16,370,560 tracts. It will thus Great B,’ltain, attending conventions there and visiting
be seen that with T~r~. GOLDEN AGEgoing into the hands the classes. Besides this, a number of our Pilgrim
of the people, together with the 35,000,000 tracts is- brethren have visited Canada during the year, a report
sued, the volunteer work for the year has exceeded that of which visits will appear in the Cana(hanreport.
of any year in the past.
THE MESSAGEBY WIRELESS
CORRESPONDENCE
In addition to addressing audiences directly, a num-
The correspondence during the year has been exceed- ber of our brethren have used the wireless. It is safe to
ingly heavy. Letters and cards received at this office, estimate that at least 300,000 people have received the
161fi33. Letters and cards dispatched from this office, message by wireless during the year; and we anticipate
130,443. a muchwider witness by this means next year.
THE WATCH TOWER
The total number of languages in which THe. WaTC~ WORLD-WIDE WITNESS
TowE~is now published is six-Leen. It is published in During the year the classes throughout the United
eight languages at the Brooklyn office. The typesetting States and Canada on a fixed day held public meetings,
machines with which the office is equipped set all the all using the subject "Millions NowLiving Will Never
type for these ToweRs.These machines are so equipped Die." It was thought well to have a general witness
that we can set type to the number of twenty-seven throughout the world on this same subject. Branch
languages. Plates are made, and these TOWERS are offices in the various countries of the earth were asked
printed, in the office. to advertise every available public speaker to speak on
It is gratifying to note that the friends from all this subject. The result was that a world-wide witness
parts of the field report blessings received from Tin; was given by the public speakers of the brethrea in the
WATC~ TOW~.R.It is the purpose of the Editorial Com- truth on February 26 and June 25. On October 29
mittee and the publishers to keep T~rE WATCH TOWER a~,other world-wide witness was given ; while December
free from controversy and to have it devoted entirely to 10 is set for another.
instruction in spirituM matters and to the other mat- The attendance at public meetings in this world-wide
ters in which the church is specially interested. witness is not sho~min the above report of the Pilgrims,
because manybrethren throughout the world held meet-
PILGRIM SERVICE
ings that are not reported through the Pilgrim Depart-
During the year past the Society has sent out breth- ment, someclasses arranging for as manyas sixty meet-
ren who have engaged in the Pilgrim work to the num- ings on one day in and about the city where the class
ber of 102. These Pilgrim brethren, in addition ~o meets regularly. The reports from these world-wide
visiting the classes and holding parlor meetings, have witnesses have indeed been gratifying. They have stim-
addressed public meetings regularly throughout the ulated the brethren everywhe>eto greater earnestness
WATCH TOWER
and zeal, and have advertised the truth probably more bring the desire of the nations. The pnblic press gave a
than any other one thing. Whenwe call to mind that wide wit,less to the Cedar Point Convention, which we
the same message is being spoken in more than thirty behave will result in muchgood; even those whocriti-
languages in different parts of the earth at the same cized us did some good; for a criticism is an advertise-
time, we maybe sure that it is having someeffect upon merit of the kingdom, sometimes even better than a
Satan’s empire. At least it is gMnga witness of the commendatory statement. The number of conventions
Lord and of his kingdom. here given does not include local conventions arranged
These world-wide meetings give opportunity for by the various Glasses for fifth Sundaysand other times.
every one who is able to deliver an address to do so.
ORGANIZED ACTION
They also afford occasion for the younger brethren who
are deacons and for the sister~ to aid in advertising the Thus it will be seen that with the organization at the
meetings and putting the literature into the hands of Broold3mheadquarters and the further organization of
lhe people at the conclusion of the meetings. They have the pilgrim, colportcur and class forces in the field,
stimulated the friends wherever these have participated. with a unity of heart in the Lord’s people, their con-
There has been a general and liberal response in every certed action is accomplishing a splendid work, giving
part of the earth, and by the Lord’s grace we hope to eachone. ,~.cnoa~m~
o. - ¢,in it aa opportunity of proving that
keep up these world-wide witnesses until the Lm’dindi- he is a faithful and true witness for the King and his
cates otherwise. l_( i l lgdom.
We must make and maintain the reputation which \\’, feel sure that the Lord is pleased to have his
the Lord desires his people to have: namely, a people pe.ple thus organized that they nmywork in an orderly
separate from the world who are marked as witucbses man.at; a.d each one following the instructions given
for the Lord and his ki~gdom. In this connect, ion we by the apostle Paul is specially blessed: "I-Iaving then
should remember the words of St. Paul: "Whether 1 gifls ddrering according to the grace that is given to as,
come and see you or, being absent, only hear of you, I whet.her prophecy [public proclamation], let us prophesy
may knowthat you are standing fast in one spiral and according to the proportion of faith," or ministry, teach-
with one mind, tlghting shoulder to shouhler for the ing, exhortation, etc.--let each one serve in the place
faith of the good news. Never for a moment quail where the Lord has put him and do it with a joyful
before your antagonists."--Philippians 1:27, 28, Wey- hc:~rt. If we act in harmonywith tlm Lord, the result is
n~outh. bound to be as he would have ~t. Truly, then, God’s
There is a real joy in knowingthat our brethren are people arc a happy people. :Engaged under the Captain
working shoulder to shoulder throughout the whole of our salvation, we are certain of victory as long as we
world in proclaiming the message of the kingdom; and remain on the Lord’s side.
while our enemies will slander those who are engaging FOREIGN WORK
in the work, vilely misrepresenting them, attempting
Whathas been heretofore stated in this report applies
to deceive others, seeking to destroy and always oppos- to the United States. It would require entirely too
ing the development of the Lord’s work, there is no muchspace to give a detailed report of all the foreign
occasion for the child of God to fear; but every one fichl. For the various foreign offices, their location and
should take courage and stand shoulder to shoulder
orgn nization we refer our readers to the report published
and press on, knowing that our Lord is leading on to
in Tin.: WATCH TOWER Of December 15, 1921. In addi-
victory. This witness is boundto have this effect: tic, to the branches and offices referred to there, during
CONVENTIONS the past year the work has been extended more particu-
During the fiscal year there have been held in the larly in Austria, Czechoslovakia, and some South Amer-
United States conventions to the munber of twenty-five. ican countries.
The Cedar Point Convention, a fui1 report of which is From every part of the field in Europe the reports
given in the November1 issue of T~E WA~’C.uTOWE~, show an increased interest in the truth, with but one
was beyond question the greatest convention of conse- possible exception : namely, Scandinavia. In those corm-
crated people ever held on earth. While conventions tries there has not been such a greatly increased inter-
entail considerable sacrifice and expense, yet we are est; and we think that is is due largely to the fact that
sure that they are a great blessing to those whopartici- they have not yet e.x3oerieneed their great trouble, such
pate. The ecru’enrich at Cedar Point served to give a as has come upon some other nations of :Europe. How-
wide witness to the country, not only in Ohio, where it ever that may be, the work is in a healthy condition in
was held, but in various parts of the United States the Scandinavian countries. During the year the mes-
and Canada. sage has also been translated and published in Esper-
The people are beginning to recognize that the Bible anto, which is being used in :Europe.
Students are the only people on earth whoare bringing Weshould remember, however, that our brethren in
God’s message of salvation and peace to them, pointing foreign countries are not equipped financially to do the
to the only way--becauseit is the divine way--that will work without help; and much of the Society’s ftmd8
DECE~[~Er~
15, 1922
WATCH TOWER
contributed during the year has gone to aid the work Wegratefully acknowledge the Lord’s marked kind-
in European countries, as will be seen by the report. ness toward his people in the blessing of his work from
In a tater issue we hope to give a sulrmlary of the report the financial showingduring the year.
from these various countries. SPIRITUAL DEVELOPMENT
As heretofore repro’ted in Ta~E WATC~ TowEI~the
President of the Society, during the visit to Europethis It is gratifying to note the healthy spiritual develop-
year, arranged for the publicatmn of more than a mil- ment of the church in every part of the field. It is true
lion volumes of tile books in various languages. This that there is scrod dellection here and there; but this is
work is now about completed. Because of financial and to be expected. Wearc in the evil day, the time in
economic con&lions in Europe, however, it must be paid which the saints are being tested. Some who have
for chiefly by the American ol~ice, and the books sold walked w~th us complain that the Society is giving too
often at less than cost, because the people of Europe muchattention to actix ity in the field in proclaimingthe
ha\e not sufficient moneyto pay more. But we are sure messageto others. Others criticize for different reasons.
that the Lord is pleased to have us spend at least a por- These criticisms are all to be expected, of course. But
tmn o±’ our receipts to help our brethren in foreign coun- we are quite sure that those whoare active in the field
tries and to g~ve the witness there. The world is the are the ones whohave been making spiritual progress.
field. The Lord willing, during the ensuing year we The Lord Jesus said: "My Father worketh hitherto,
hope to extend the witness in foreign countries more and I work." (John 5:17) ±\gain he said: "I am
widely than in the past. among you as he that serveth." (Luke ~: 27) The
FINANCIAL atpostle Paul urges us to be "not slothful in business;
Noneof the Lord’s dear snails are rich in this world’~ fervent in spirit; serving the Lord." (Romans1~: 11)
goods. Iqotwithstanding et[orts put forth by some 3Ioreover, we are commanded by the Apostle to be dili-
gent. Diligence does not mean inactivity.
brethren to make large sums of money for the Lord’s
Again, the Seriptttres tell us: "The zeal of thine
work, none of these have ever succeeded. It seems cer-
tain that the Lord intends his work to be done by the house hath eaten me up; and the reproaches o~ them
that reproached thee are fallen npon me." (Psalm 69 : 9)
so, orifice of his people. Hence it is that the "Good
The words of this last test apply tirst to the Lord Jeho-
Hopes" fund is made up chielly of small contributions.
vah himself, who has at all times been reproached by
But manyof these sm,~ll donations mount up to a large
the adversary. When Jesus came, the reproaches fell
su .,. It is gratifying to see that during the year the
],ord has provided through the sacrifice of his saints a upon him; and since he finished his earthly course,
goodly sum to be used in spreading the gospel of tho similar reproaches have fallen upon the body members.
kingdom; and this used in the most economical manner What, then, was the real cause of these reproaches?
that we knowhowto use it, we believe has given a wide The Psalmist shows it was the zeal peculiar to the
witness. ]~Iereto is appended a summaryof the Treas- Lord’s house. Zeal means a burning, glowing love for
urer’s report showing the financial condition of the the Lord and his cause. The Lord Jesus was zealous i~
being a true and faitlfftfl witness for the heavenly
treasury of the Society:
Father; and we are commandedto be his true and faith-
FIlgAlgCIAL SU~[I~[AllX" ftfl witnesses. By so doing we suffer the reproach from
]{EC,:H"rS : the adversary and from those whomhe can stir up to
TObalance fromlust year .............................. $ 9.336.04 oppose us--to shoot at us fiery darts, even bitter words.
To "GoodHopes"do,rations, ets ..................... 147,139.98
Jesus clearly shows that these things will have to be
$156,476.02 endured by those whoare faithfully witnessing for him
EXPENDITURES : at the end o£ the world. He states that manywill be
ByPilgrimwork................................................ $ 40,447.14
By public witness, free literature, etc ......... 26,855.94 offended, leading to betrayal and hatred; and that be-
Byconventions .................................................. 8,672.72 cause injustice would abound the love of many would
By foreign work (PilgTims, public witness, wax cold; and of course where love waxes cold there
etc.) ................................................................... 61,179.39 ill he no effort to spread the glad tidings. Then Jesus
By incidentals, annual meeting...................... 67.40 adds: "But he that shall endure unto the end, the same
Balance,October1, 1922............................ 19,253.43"
shall be saved." This endurance is spoken of in connec-
$156,476.02 tion with the proclamation of the gospel of the kingdom.
*At the closing of our books on October 1, the end of the Wherelove is the only motive that impels one to be a
fiscal year, lhere were bills already contracted which would witness for the Lord, and where he is willing to endure
more than wipe out the above balance; and there was im- privations, persecutions, false accusations, criticisms, all
mediately paid the foreign branches for free tracts and pub- because of his love to witness for the Lord, then he may
licity the sum of $24,204.90, wllich would in fact leave at be sure that such experience is developing in him the
the beginning of the year a small deficit. But the contribu-
tions are meeting lhis, and we will continue to enlarge the likeness of our Lord and Master, teaching such to be
scope of the work in proportion as the Lord grants the way long-suffering and yet kind.
by l)r.vidi,~g lhe means. It is easily observed that those breHnw.qin different
’rh WATCH TOWER BROOKLYN,N. Y.
parts of the field who are most active in spreading the the gospel of the kingdom; but we cannot stop to argue
gospel are the ones whoare most tolerant in their minds the matter with them. The Lord having committed it
toward others, kindly disposed, easy of entreatment, and into the hands of the people of his nation to g~ve the
who manifest a greater amount of good works. The witness, those who are pleasing to him must press on,
mind must be occupied by something, either good or doing daily with theh" might what their hands find to
evil; and if it is not occupied concerning the Lord’s do. The people whomthe Lord has chosen for his in-
kingdom, our great enemySatan will see to it that it is heritance are those whowill prove faitMMto him, even
occupied with something concerning his empire. So it unto death. Andtruly, as the Psalmist said : "The Lord
is to be expected that those who arc most actively en- taketh pleasure in his people: he will beautify the meek
gaged in serving the Lord, prompted only by the motive with salvation."--Psahn 149 : 4.
of love, will be the ones who will show the greatest In eonc]usion, dear brethren, as we take a retrospec-
spiritual development. These, holding on faitlffully and tive view of the things of the year just passed, we have
loyally to the end, will be given a crownof life. muchcause for gratitude in our hearts and joy that the
Here and there in different parts of the field there Lord has been pleased to hold us fast during the year;
have been some who have become weary in well-doing,. and upon examining our hearts we rejoice to find that
displeased with the food that the Lord has provided for
our singleness of purpose and desire is to serve him
his people, and have tlm~cd aside to feed upon othm
things; and these are quicldy given over to criticism faithfully, to be transformed into his likeness, and in
and harsh sayings against their brethren who are trying due time to sce him face to face. Let us gird up the
fMtlffully to represent the Lord’s cause. Weare happy loins of our minds, be sober and hope to the end, know-
to report, however, that this mmlberis negligible. We ing that if we continue in confidence and rejoicing in
should be pleased, of course, to witness their recovery this hope firm to the end, we shall reap the eternal
and their engaging ~gain heartily in the spreading of reward and soon be forever with our Lord.
W l,: l-I:kVl.] nox,, kept o)tnl)ilny with ran’ I,ui’d for three
ili,,nths. ()ill’ lesstJiiS have dealt Ii ’ t I v with the
I~ti’tli~ eli ,.le>ii.~ tuid his foi’crtlnilur John.’tiid witll
what prepared for the conling of otlr I+al’d. The (lr4’,:i;tn
elnl)lre hadspread a gEIlel’ill hlll~il:/glj ii~.cr ;11l llie I.]il,~t;
and l{oine ]lad I)ronght the wIl~de world linder nile dunlin-
thE large.r l)olti(,il of_ ,Jesus’ niini.,try. As all the Go,+l)els ion. Thus facililies for ti’:ivel and hilel’c(mrse alnong v~t-
give a niu(;h fnller account of the letter part of Jesus life rious peoples were comp~lr’ltiveiy t,:lsy. 17or Ii cons~deral~le
and work, much remains for our studies during the next time the ,lews had been under lhe c(inll’ol of l{oiin,, bill;
quarter. It was in the fulness of time that Jesus came were never fin easy people to govern, l)itrtly hocltusc of IhEir
(Gahttians 4:4)--God’s Messenger from heaven. (Malachi fanatical disposition and partly because of theh’ exlre.iiie.
3:;1) At the time of his birth the earth was in a very evil sensitiveness nbont theh’ own importance. Un(h,r Ilerod
condition. Wickedness prevailed everywhere. Sorcery and they had considerable liberty, and Judea was considered lin
demonism were exerting a powerful influence on the degen- importanl province of the empire. Tile fact flint t-lel’~(I w;is
erate world, and the lamp which God had lighted in Israel a descendant of Esau is to the Bible student more thau
was dimmed under formalism and hypocrisy. interesting; it seems typically significant.
By God’s overruling ]providence the world had been some- For 400 years Israel had heard nothing from Jehovah;
89s WATCH TOWER N.
but the force of the past had carried them on, and they had was of Judea. Jesus took these simple men, and without
now settled down as a religious community, firmly convinced putting them through the ordinary ways of training so
that they were a people of destiny, and well assured of their impressed his own character upon them that they well
ability to teach the whole world. Their leaders had fast- represent him to the world.
ened themselves upon the people, secure in hypocrisy and
In their ability to deceive. OPPOSITION OF PROMINENT RELIGIONISTS
Jesus began his ministry in Galilee, but did not remain
MISSION OF JOHN THE BAPTIST there long. He appears to have spent his first winter in
At the first advent God had a few faithful souls who Jerusalem and vicinity. Some miracles were wrought; but
looked to hhn for ~che fulfillment of his promises. To one the Pharisees held aloof from him, and he made but little
of these, Zachariah, a priest, the intimation came tlmt the progress. It was of this ministry that Nicodemus said:
time had arrived for God to fulfill his word to his people. "We know that thou art a teacher come from God." (John
To Zachariah, now old, was promised a son who was to be 3:2) Afterwards Jesus went northwards through Samaria
l he forerunner of God’s Messenger. Six months later the to Galilee, and preached there in tim towns and villages, at
angel Gabriel, who had visited Zachariah, was sent to Mary, last reaching Nazareth. He appears to have understood
uf the house of David, living in Nazareth, to tell her that that his return to Nazareth wouhl be eventful, but he had
the Son of the Highest should be born of her. Only a few no hesitancy in speaking on our Golden Text of today.
knew of these wonderful things. The more public announce- "This day," said he, "is this scripture fulfilled in your ears."
meats of the births of these two children (Luke 1 : 65 ; 2 : 17) Tiffs W:lS too ninth for tim Nazarenes. They had known
ought to have led the people into expectation that God him all his life; they despised hi,n, rejected lain, and then
would use them as messengers; but both John and Jesus tried to destroy him. The Lord must have felt the rejection
were allowed to grow up without any special attention. very keenly. He said: "A prophet is not witllout honor,
Suddenly, thirty years later, it was announced that a save in his own country and in his own house." (Matthew
Prophet was preaching in the wilderness of 3"udea. It was 13: 57) Jesus* home people were not in agreement with
aolm, announcing the coming of God’s Messenger. As John him, a circumstance which would make the suffering all the
was b’tptizing, Jesus came to him asking to be immersed. harder to bent’. (Mark 3:21,31; John 7:5) Despised
After demurring, John agreed; and as the baptism was :Naz.~reth, he is known everywhere as Jesus of Nazareth,
being perfortned, God’s witness came ; and John immediately ever a bitter-sweet reminder to him of his early days and
knew Jesus to be the one for whom he was the forerunner. of his rejection.
--John 1 : 31, 32. Our Lord taught the people chielly by parables. This
On tlme Jesus left heaven to become a man (Galatians simple forla of te-~ci~ing was all ilnlnediate help to everyone
4:4) ; and exactly on time he left Nazareth to be baptized who would pay attention to him, "rod was intended to lead
of John and to present himself to God in consecration. the people froln their darkness to the light which God had
(Luke 3: 23) Now we admire him, full of gr:lce and truth sent by hinl. l~,ut the p-lr’lbles did not serve to unlock the
(John 1:14), lowly born, lowly reared, nothing to tempt mysteries of God: rathm" they servc.l to add to these. In
him t,) higll-mindedness, in eilher parents or home or city! otller words, our Lard’s parables contained lfidden teaching
which has provided insll’uetion for the church of God all
OUR LORD’S MESSAGE
down the age---meat in title season, according to the measure
Jesu~ mu~t have realized llimself to be quite superior to of understanding which God at any time wouhl give his
tlmse uilh whmu he lived and I.iled. Reared in poverty people. Our Lord, tllen, spoke ih p’n’ables to lay up food for
and humility, he w’ts earth’s nohlesl son. After his bqptism his people in tilne of famine. They have not yet yielded
hps purity of heal’t :rod purpo,~e were immedint¢,ly put to their treasures; but now, since he has returned, he has
lhe lest. Sorely tempted o£ the devil, he ret:lined his purity, given his church the key of the plan of God, and has
and came away from the encmmter and the forty days of opened these dark sayings of old.
fasting sweetened and strengthened by victory and expe-
A comparison of Matthew 13:35; Psahns 78:2; 49:4 is
rience. As soon as he had been tempted of the devil, and
both interesting and instructive. At our Lord’s first advent
was ready lo begin his ministry, he was subjected to a test
he spoke in parahles, that the people seeing migl~t not see.
by his Father; for he had no special introduction into his
ministry. 1-Ie lind to feel his way into the work. Our But there comes a time when the dark sayings of God will
be opened, accompanied with sweet music on the Harp ; when
Goblen Text shows his cleat" view of his mission, and his
God gives a call to all the earth to hear. (Psalm 49: 1-4)
baldness in declaring himself as the servant of God. He
spoke graciously, but as one having authority, and con- That time has come. We have THE ]~ARP OF GOD and the
scions of his part in the purpose of God. sweet music with ten strings: our Lord’s teaching, simple,
heartfelt, and consequently heart-touching. His message
Our Lord’s calmness, his assur:lnCe, {rod his claims mad-
was one of love; and it was witnessed that the people won-
dened the scribes, Pharisees, chief7 priests, and elders. He
doted at the gracious words that proceeded out of his
waived all their teachings aside, and spoke plainly to the
mouth. The wonderful message is again being spoken to
r,eople. He declared that he had come to reve’tl the Father;
that none could approach the Father or know him lmless the people.
by hilnself; that he was the Way, the Truth, and llle Life; BEREA.N QUESTIONS
and that it was necessary to s-riyalion thut he should be
accepted as God’s Messenger. I-le gave proof of his heaven- Whalwerethe world conditions at J’esus’ birth? ¶ 1.
]-Iow ~as the spread of the truth facilitated? ¶2.
ordained mission by his many lnirnele~, as well as by his Whatconceited idea prevailed amongthe leaders of Israel? ¶ 3.
gracious words; by his largeness of heart and his untiring Howwere the births of Jesus and John foretold? ¶ 4.
What were the circumstances of J.esus’ immersion at Jordan ? ¶ 5.
service for the people; by his humility--all so different Whyis our Lord worthy of admiratmn? ¶ 6.
from that to which the people were accustomed. Howwas the Lord prepared for his career of service? ¶ 7.
Llow does faith incite boldness in proclaiming the truth? ¶ 8.
For the furtherance of his work, and in view of the Whydid the Lord choose twelve apostles? ¶ 9.
establislmmnt of his ellu,’etl to be revealed later, he chose Did J.esus refrain from telling the truth to former acquaiutanees?
¶1o.
twelve apostles. These were taken out of the ordinary walks What wholesome influence has suffering upon the new creature~
of life: a considerable proportion of them were fishermen; ¶11.
What purpose do the parables serve? ¶ 12.
and all of them men of Galilee, except Judas Iscariot, who Howis the Lord revealing his parablos today? ¶ 13.
International Bible StudentsAssociafion Classes
hcc~urc~
and5£udic6bgTretvciin(jBrethren
Duluth, Minn.................. .Tan. 7 Whaleu,Mmn ................... ,Tar,- 15 Princeton, B. C................. Jan. 16 Trail, B. C..................... ,Tan, 25
Onanna. Mina ........ " 8 Tunnel City, W,~.............. " 17 Cawston,B. C ................. " 17 Nelson, B. C .............. Jan. 27, 28
l"erguq Falls, Minr .... " 10 WaukeMm,~,’t,~ ........ " 19 Penticton, B. C .......... " 18 Nelson,B. C ....................... /a.u. 29
iMimleal*uhs, Mini ........... " ii Mfl~xaukec,Wi~.............. " 21 Kaledon,B. C ..................... " ]9 Balfour,B. C ................... " 3l
Eureka Center, 5.Inn ...... " 12 l-’; oHh,hid ................. " 22 Peaticton, B. C ............ laa. 21, 22 Crc>tnn, B. C ............... Feb. :l.
Rochester, Minn ............ " 14 Man,~field,Ohto................ " 23 GrandForks, B. C ............ Jan. 23 Cranbrook,B. C ................. " 2, 4
BROTHER J. A. BOHNET
BROTHER B. H. BOYD
Scdro \Vooiley, Wash....... Dec. 27 Lynden, Vtauh.............. .Tan. 4
MOUU|Vel’nOll, \Vllgt| ....... " 28 :Blaine, %VaM1 .................. " 5
Alnlcorle~,\\’It.~ll ........... " 29 Vancouver,B. C ............... " 7 BROTHER V. C. RICE
Everett. Wash... Dec. 30, Jan. 19 Vtetoriu, B. C ................... " 9
Stnnwood,Wash............... " I’ub ill li), v.rash............... " 11 Gardeu City, Kans .......... .Tan. 19
" 3 EIltnnclaw, Wash........... " 12 Colorado Springs, Colo.....~’an. :10
Eversou, Wash............... Cripple Creek, Cole ........... " 11 Friend.Kans..................... " 21
Pueblo, Colu............... Jan. ]‘3, ]‘4 Dt.l~:e City, Kans............. " 22
Trimdad, Cole ........... " 15, 16 Rolh).I~ans.................. Jan. 23, 24
~lolly, Cole....................... J-aft. 17 PI al t, l~;itllS ................. Jan. 27
Syracuse, Kans............... " 18 Arhngtou,Karts ............... " 28
BROTHER E. F. CRIST
Pittsfield, Me................... .Tan. 9 Woreesler..Mass ............ .Tan. :15
Lewl-tou. Me................. " 10 Slwilqzlleht. Mass .......... " 16
AIIIKII’n,l%[e .................. " Ii ]’il1-Imhl,.’~la.’,s ................. " 17
Portlaud,l%[e..................... " :12 Schellectlnlv, N. Y. ........ " 18
Pr,~l(leaee, R. ] ............ " 14 S3racuse, N. Y ................. " 19 BROTHER O. L. SULLIVAN
Pawtucket, R. 1 ............... " :1.4 Buffalo,N.Y..................... " 21
Dothan, Ala .................. Jam 2,4 Columbus. Ga ............ Inn 12,14
Euterprise, Ala... 3 Nolm~ulga,Ala ................. lau. [5
1,’lorala, Ala ............. ’ 5, 7 Olmlik:l..\ht ................... " 16
Stella, Fht .................... " 8 Lone Oak, Ala ................ " 17
BROTHER A. J. ESHLEMAN " 9 B~.~emer,Ala ................... " ]‘8
Opp,Ala ....................
Vo.~burg, Miss .............. Jan. 3 Columt)u~.Bliss ............... ,Tan. 11 Andalusia, Ala .............. " :10 Yolande,Ala..................... " 19
Muridntn,Miss ................. " 4- Okolona,5lis+ ............. Jan. :13, :14
%’n’k.i)urg,5[iss ............... "’ 5 Iuka, 3(i~ ................... ,Inn. :15
J:tek~,lm. MiSS............... " 7 Tuscumbm,Ala ............... " 16
Wauilla, Miss ................. " 8 Nasl~ville, Teon ......... 5an. :17, 20
West Point, Mis>........... " 9, 10 Lebanon,Term................. Jan. 18
BROTHER W.J. THORN
BROTHER T. H. THORNTON
BROTHER W. M. HERSEE AvonPark, Fla ............... Dee. 3]‘ ¯ itnsville, Via ........... .Tan. 11, 12
M’ooreTlaven, Fin ............. Jan. ]‘ Sanford, Fla .............. " 14
Rldgetown, Ont. ........ 5an. 18 Scotiana, Ont .................. Jan. 26 Y’ohokee.Flu ..................... " 3 Orlando, Fla ........ " 15, 16
Ayhner, Ont ................... " ]‘9 lqarqf(u’d.Ont................... " 2,q "Minnd.Fin ...................... " 5, 7 Aoopka, Fin ......... " 17
St. Thomas,Ont .......... I,m. 2], 22 Caledama, Ont ........... Jan. 29, 30 KeyWe’d,Fla ................... " 8.9 NewSmyrna, Fin ...... " 18, 19
Tilsonburg, Oat ........ .Tan. 23 Nantlcoke, Ont ................. J-an. 31 Mmmi,
Fla ....................... " 10 Ormond,Fin ............. " 20
Harley,Ont....................... " 24 Port Do~er. Ont ............. Feb. 1
Brantford, Oat ................. " 25 Simcoe,Ont ..................... " 2, 4
CONVENTIONS
TO BE ADDRESSED
BY BROTHER
RUTHERFORD
BROTHER H. HOWLETT BOSTON,,ASS., Dec. 17 : Alexander Ogston, 48 Wyllis Ave., Everett.
Edmonton,Alta ............ Dee. 24 Provost,.Alta ................. J’an. 5, 7 BROOKLYN,N. ~., Dee. 24;
8tony Plain, Alia ....... " 27 Alrario.AIta ..................... " 9 T. M. Bedwin, 8118 Chichester Ave., Woodhaven, L. L
Ellscott, Alta ............. " 28 Stettler, Alta ................... " 10 Da~ON,
0., Dec. 31; ............................ P. D. Pottle, 36-½ E. 4th St.
Camrose, Alta ............ l’,,~c. 29, 30 Rumsev.AIta ................. " 11
" 12 Ngw BRUNSWICK, N. J’., 5an. 14 ;
Bedgwick,Alta ................ Jan. 3 Rosedale, Alta .................
E[ardlsty, Alta ................. " ¯ Calgary,Alta ................... " 14, M_rs. J. I-I. Gourley, See’y, 260 Townsend ~t.
INDEX TO THE WATCH TOWER FOR 1922
JANUARY 1 MAY 1 SEPTI~.MBER 1
C~rlstMyLife .............................................. 3 TheGentileTimes....................................... 131 European Tour--Part V _ ...................... 259
VCho is Christ? ....................................... 3 l’oint I: Tenureof Kings .................... 134 Europea J¢oiling Cauldron.................... 262
Dutlookfor 1922................................. 7 Point II : Decree for L’tlni~hment .......... 135 ARelreshingSeason................................... 262
World-Wide Canllmlgn.......................... 8 Point IIi: D~screpancy Explained ........ 136 Interesting Questions................................ 263
Reportof Britisll Branch.......................... 9 ~0mt IV : Nebuchadnezzar’s Drea.m ...... 137 l[ Onel,acks Zeal .................................... 263
Report of Central Eurol,ean 01tirol ........... 11 Poiut V: Cyrus’Reign............................ 13S Christendom Not Desolate 70 Years ...... 264
]=lipl)odron}e Meeting, NewYork ............... 11 Point VI : Desolation Not Captivity ..... 138 Bible School.Established............................ 264
Jehovahor Deal?........................................ 12 Point VII : Ouster Proceedings .............. 138 Suggl!stions lor Bible Study .................. 265
JehovahInvoked................................. 12 The Dallas, Texas, Convention ................ 139 l~’iery Testiugs 1%reshadowed .................... 267
:Elijah’s Flight and lteturu ....................... 13 Annual Request for Pilgrim ~ isits ............ 140 World’s l)lSnltegration Foretold ................ 269
Letters frmuAfield..................................... 15 JeremiahTried for Sedition- ..................... 142 Questions for Tow~a Berean Study .......... 271
JANUARY 15 MAY 15 SEPTEMBER 15
ApprovedWorkmen .................................... 19 Chronology................................................. /47 European Tour--Part Yl ........................ 275
TheTextDivuled................................... 19 TimPeriod of Captivity .......................... 148 TheWorkAbroad................................... 277
Godthe Apl)rover...................................... 20 Seventy Years of Desolation .................. 148 Tost~and q-elllptatlons ................................ tS
I=Ieaven-Pro vidod Instrunlents .............. 21 Unreliable Sta:ulur History .................... 149 Good ~oldiers............................................. 280
ProhminaryTestings ............................ 22 Witne~sc.,sfor the Truth .............................. 150 (due.~tions and Answers............................ 2~1
Self-Tests................................................ 23 Satan the Olqmser............................... 152 Stlldies Let[ byS~sters ............................ 2S]
Elijah in NabotIFsViueyard...................... 25 TheTostimon.~of lhe lIour .................... 154 Tile Vol4:ooftile Lord............................ 2hA
Elijah Taken up into Heaven ................ 26 Joholalilnl Tries to I.+ostrey Word............ 155 Sim’it-13cgettmg Ill tlm Church ............. 2k;~
Eli,-Ala and Lbe Shnnaulnllte Woman....... 27 Jel’elllitLll (:fist lilt0 I’I’I%ou........................ 157 Birth oi delhi lhe Balltiat ......................... 2~53
:EBsha and Naamanthe Syrian .................. 28 Que.;ti0ns for ’J’o/s F.I: Bereaa Study .......... 159 Birth and Childhoodof Jesus .................... 284
]~lisha’s HeavenlyDei’ender~...................... 31 AnInteresting Letter .................................. 159 Questionstoe ’L’uwI2,t¢. Bet’cttu Study.......... 2S8
FEBRUARY 1 JUNE 1 OCTOBER 1
Views from the Watch Tower ................... 35 Seventy Years Desoiatmn (Part 1) .......... 163 Viewsfrom the WatchTower.................... 291
AuOpenCoufesston............................... 35 Desolatiou Not CapttvLty........................ 16a ..
Labor-,’Savlng5LILClltmi,~ ..................... ,(291
Tile AffectedMoVenlent .......................... 36 NoCaptll Ity ill #o:25D. C ....................... 165 Big i;u~l:le~.~ Bi’ouglit Sti’llies ................ 292
t~]ore TrenchuntWords.......................... 36 First Captivity Dcgan in 617 B. C ....... 167 Tile (2helch’s N~wLay. ................... ’d94
TimPoorl’al.qon ...................................... 37 General COllXontiea ut Cedar l’oint .......... 168 ~’lone.~t:qllll,~tel’s iLl li0’,01t ................... "294
l~Iore Soutilern Methodist Troubles ......... 37 "NoMoreUntil l-In Come". ..................... 1B9 (2Ilui uue.~liei)utllal:ed .............................. 29~
The0nly Safe Wi~ ............................... 38 Judah’s Prosperity and Adversity ............ 171 The 511m~try el John the Baptist. ........... 29"/’
TheParemhes]sof Sin .............................. 38 ]::zekml. tile Watchmanof Israel .............. 172 Jesus ’Pemllted.......................................... 299
Wicked Spirits to be Destroyed ............ 43 The Setting UI) of Christ’s Kingdom........ 173 Worhl-~*me Prolnbmon............................ 301
God’~ Dealings with a Wicked City .......... 44 Bereun Questions on May 15 TOWER ........ 175 lntete.~tlng Lottex~.................................... 302
JDnosWarnsisrael ...................................... 46 AnInteresting Letter .................................. 175 Que~uous lot Tuw~:R Berean ~tudy. ....... .,303
FEBRUARY 15 JUNE 15 OCTOBER 15
"Tlus Do Ye... in Itolnembrance of Me" 51 Viewsfrom the WatchTower.................... 179 Baptism...................................................... 307
The Bread and the Wine........................ 51 Radio Tells Millennium Coming ........... 180 lteM-and-~ymbohc ................................... 307
TheBreadIlls Body................................ 52 MillenniumNear ut Hand...................... 180 Israel Bal)t]zed...................................... 307
"Thisis 51yBlood".................................. 53 MillenniumViewsof Watts .................... 181 Whatis Ileal L~aplAsia’.~...................... d08
"Discerning tile Lord’s Body". ............... 53 SecondAdventFeared............................ 1S/ CoVCl’lllnt to DO~;:llat’! ............................ 310
’%Ve lJelag MunyAre One Bread" ........ 55 Tile Clmrchos in l’ohl:ics ........................ 182 l~rcvl011S 1111niel"b lOLl............................... ~J_l
Signihl:aae0of file Wine........................ 56 Seventy Years D~.~solatiou (Part 2) .......... 183 Brokenwith Jesus ................................ 2311
Capn~ity of the ’l’en-Tmbe Kingdom ........ 57 Convention at Cedar Poiut, Ohio .............. 188 "1 1~a~e Not Fom,d So 0reat l~aith"......313
:End of the Ten-Tril)o Kiug(Iom................. 5!) TheI=Iandwriting on tim Wall .................. 189 Je3tlS the Great ¯ il~ "’’ ~lelaLl .......................... "~15
Asa’,~ l{etorms slid l.’rayer for Victory .... 61 Bercan Questi6Lls on June 1 Towma........ 191 Jesus the Great Teacher. ......................... 317
interesting Lettcxs .................................... 63 Interesting Letters .................................... 191 World War and the Churches ................ 318
MARCH 1 JULY 1 :NOVEMBER 1
Who is Wise~............................................... 67 "I Vowto... be on tile Alert," etc ......... 195 CedarPoint Convention.............................. a~-a
TheHiddenWisdom ................................ 70 Contending with Satan’s Empire .......... 195 Prayer and Thanksgil ulg Day .............. a25
The Wise Shall Understand.................... 71 CamouflagedDemonr~m .......................... 197 Comfortaud Encoutag-~tllont Day ....... B26
Someau Hundredfold............................. 72 Acrossthe Sea............................................. 197 Peace and l-lohnes~ D’,13 "’"
" ........................ 3.9
A Fmthful and Wise ServanL ............... 73 Tile Divine Family(Poem) ...................... 199 TheDay.................................................. 33J~
Educali,m Not Ahvays Wisdom ............ 74 CedarPoint ConventJo,~ .............................. 200 Discourse by Brother Rutherford .......... 332
De~.enliy-uul in Order................................ 74 MemorialReports for 1922 ........................ 200 Conseeratiou Day.................................... 338
Qlle~tlolls and Answers.............................. 75 Daniel Cast to the Lions............................ 202 Aetlllty Day.......................................... 340
Tim1,ord l’reservc.u Joash ........................ 76 End of Seventy Years’ Desolation ......... 203 Ser~ICeDay. ............................................. 343
Tile lhseu Lord........................................... 77 TheTempleRebuilt ................................... 205 VictoryDay........................................... 344
Intere.~ting Letters ................................ 79 Questions for Tow~ Derean Study .......... 208 Trust iunl ConlidenceDay ..................... 349
MARCH 15 JULY 15 NOVEMBER 15
Applying the H~u’t umo Wisdom.............. 83 Viewsfrom the WatchTower.................... 211 Chronological Parallels (Part 1) .............. 355
Christ OurWisdom .................................. 84 Anarchyin Higli Phmes......................... 211 "’~e,~ell Tmles" . ....................................... 355
11ea~onlyWisllOm .................................. 86 "God Doesn’t Consult ’Who’s Who’ ’%..2]2 Tableof Tnnes........................................ 356
First l’ure .............................................. 86 Worhl Pohties for the Churches ............ 213 The"’520-5;ear~.l nllels ~’r ......................... 357
Peaceable, Gentle, and Forgiving .......... 87 Tile True Churcll (Poem).......................... 213 I,~aac;ul(l Rebecca ................................... 358
Merciful, Loving, and Just .................... 87 "I vowto... be on the Alert," etc ........... 214 The1-iezekiahParallels .......................... ::58
110n~ut--NotHypocritical .................... 88 He Will Never Leave Thee (Poe~a) .......... 216 ]}lid Ot l,’rench l?entlahsnl .................... 359
Fullnesso£Joy ........................................... 89 Strong Cable of Cln’onology..................... 217 ’lhlue of l,~’iul o[ tbe World................... 359
Qnestions and Answers............................ 90 Identification Certificates .......................... 218 Jesus the l.’rlend of Simmrs...................... 361
lJzzlahthe Leper.......................................... 92 Esther Saves rile Hein’ewPeople .............. 220 ,l~ns the Great M~ssion rv . .............. 363
Interesting Letters .................................. 94 Questions for TOWER Herren Study .......... 223 Bibles anll Bible Stiitly l-lelps ................... 36(5
APRIL 1 AUGUST 1 DECEMBER 1
MyVowunto the Lord ................................ 99 EuropeanTour--Part II ............................ 227 Provisions for His Own........................... 371
Howthe VowProtects the Mind .......... 101 In Dennlark............................................ 227 Prirate In teri)retation ....................... 373
SanFrancisco Convmltlon.......................... 102 Tile Workin Sweden.............................. 228 Satan’s l’urpose.................................... 374
Questions and Answers............................ 103 :EuropeanTour--Pnrt llI .......................... 229 God’sModred ......................................... 374
HarpJuvenileClass ................................ 103 BerlilL Dre.~den,StuHgart..................... 230 /ngrut~tudo1-)angerous.......................... 376
Sisters Actingas Elders .......................... 104 Conditionsill l~on.,Uallia ........................ 231 Jesus Sending out Missiomu’ies ................ 378
V. D.hi. Questions.................................. 105 Public Meetingin Vienna...................... 232 COIIflICI: v.’llh the Donlons...................... 379
TheProphet lsalah’s Vision ..................... 105 ESCallefrom l’ersee.lltOh’S ................. 233 Story of the GoodSamarmtu.................... 3S0
Messiah’s KingdomForeshadowed ............ 107 Cedar Point Convention--[lnlbortant ....... 23-1¢ True Missiou of tlle Church.................. 381
Interesting Letters ................................... 110 Buck from Babylon to God’s Temple ........ 236 Jesus amongstl;’rien(Is lind l~oes .............. 3S2
World-V¢ide Witness.................................. 111 Questmns fur Tow~a Berean Study .......... 239 Slgu Gh’eu l’rl>ent (_;enoration ........... 383
APRIL 15 AUGUST 15 DECEMBER 15
Views from the WatchTower.................... 115 EuropeanTour--l’nrt IV .......................... 243 AnnualL’eport for’ ]922........................... 387
Refommng Satan’s Empire ...................... 116 Conventnmof 3,500 at Leipzig .............. 243 lrleid Organizutmn ............. q89
Methodic Taxation for Methodists ........ 117 Tile LeipzigSI:l~lle ................................. 243 Colporleur Dol)artnmnt "[_._[_[[[...[[[[[[[[[[389
:Enlargelnm]tof the Worl~............................ 118 Pride BronghtLOW .................................. 246 VohmteerService .............................. ;390
Los AngelesConvention............................. 119 ServiceEssential ................................... 246 Pilgrim Se~wice................................ 390
ConventionQuestions............................ 119 Duties of Elllers and Deacons................... 248 World-WideWitness ....................... 391
World-WideWituess.............................. 122 Interesting Questions............................... 248 Foreign Work.................................... 392
Hezekiah Leads People Back to God ........ 123 A Sincere I’rayer Answered........................ 249 Financial Summary ................................ 393
TheTempleOpened .................................. o
1,3 Buihhnuulu,l~t AdverMty .......................... 251 Advertise the King and Kingdom ............ 394
The True Reformation Foreshadowed ...... 125 Iniorestin~ Imtters ............................... 253 Lesson in Trust and Preparedness .......... 394:
AnInteresting Letter ......................... 127 Screen tJue-~t;ons ou August 1 Towm~....255 The Spirit of Service. .......... 397